Chapter 1
Harvey Horton smiled as he reached the last pile of papers on his desk. A career teacher, next term he was going to start a new job as Assistant Headmaster of the Cotham School in Clifton. It was, for him, a good step up, with the only downside being that his son already attended, starting second year next term.
His eyes were tired after a mammoth session of reviewing the exam results from the previous school year. He had been given the task of looking at all the first-year student records, to give him an idea of that group before he started, as he would be in charge of the first and second years until he was fully informed of the way the school operated. The next batch of first years were still waiting for their results from previous schools, which he would see towards the end of summer.
He stood and went to his kitchenette to make a cup of instant coffee before finishing for the night. With his cup in front of him, he picked up the set of stapled papers that was his son’s record. The last time he had seen his son was three years previous, when he had kissed his wife and driven away to take up a temporary House Master position on the other side of the country. While he was away, she had sued for divorce, citing desertion. He sighed as he thought about that. She had, or so he had learned, been carrying on with one of the local rough boys since Tony had started school.
Tony Horton had been a quiet child, or so he remembered. The boy, now coming up to thirteen, was quiet no longer. In fact, it looked as if Harvey would be seeing him in his office inside the first week of the new term, by the look of the record in front of him. Tony was a troublemaker, and a bully, by the list of detentions that he had racked up. Harvey wasn’t looking forward to his first few months in his new job. If he was lucky, Tony would complain to his mother, and she would send him to another school.
Putting those papers with the others, he turned his attention to the file with the paperwork on the students that weren’t returning next term. It was his job to review their records and forward them to their new schools. Most of those leaving had been in Tony’s class, and he could already understand why they were moving on.
There were ten sets of papers, and he didn’t need the full details of every student, just looking at the results and teacher comments was enough to write a report for the next school, with a comment on their behaviour. He worked through the records until there was just one left.
He glanced at the surname on the front, and it was W.J. Rose. He had seen that name on Tony’s detention record, finding it several times. By reading between the lines, he deduced that Tony had bullied this other student that Tony called Billie-Jean Rose, claiming that it was she that started all the troubles. That made it even worse if Tony was bullying girls.
He looked at the girl’s marks and realised that the school was losing someone who was likely to be going on to tertiary study and a good career. Cotham was a school with a fine record for music studies, and Billie-Jean was already at a high level in piano, violin and woodwind work. Her other subjects were also in the higher grades. He hoped that wherever she went, she would be happy. He summarised the record and made the comment that ‘this girl, Billie-Jean, will go far.’ He put the report in an envelope and addressed it to the administration of the Blue Coat School in Coventry. His eyes were heavy as he turned out the light and finally went to bed.
………………………………….
William John Rose walked quickly away from the Cotham School for the last time. No more would he have to put up with the taunts of Tony Horton and his cohort of bullies. His backpack had all the leftover books that he had been able to salvage from the last time they had been tossed into the mud. His violin and clarinet had already been taken home after the final concert.
William was happy to be walking away, but sad that he was leaving the girls in the orchestra, who had supported him when he was at his lowest. At around the same height and body-mass of the girls, he had been fair game for Tony. He had been used to being called ‘sissy-boy’, or ‘girly-boy’ during the year, but the one that made him smile was the name ‘Billie-Jean’, which Tony had come up with in the second term. The girls had picked it up and it was William’s entry into the circle of friendship of their group at school. It didn’t include him mixing with them outside of school, which made him wonder what that companionship may have been like.
His father had managed to get a good job with Aston Martin at Gaydon, near Coventry, and William would be attending the Blue Coat School next school year. He had looked it up and knew that he would be in a school uniform for the next few years, and the prospect of further study in music excited him.
He walked up the path to his front door, passing the real estate sign which hadn’t taken long to get a sold sticker on it. His father had already put a deposit on another house, halfway between Coventry and his workplace. William had seen the brochure, and it looked a lot better than the ‘quaint period house’ where they now lived. He hoped that his new bedroom will be a bit bigger, and, hopefully, the floor would be flat and level. At the moment, if his bed was shifted a couple of inches, it would rock as he turned over. He knew that someone would have to plane the legs level when it was moved.
Going in, he put his backpack down with a thud and pulled the grey pullover off. It may come in handy on cold days, in the future. Walking into the kitchen he said hello to his mother.
“Hello, Bill, how was your last day?”
“Same old, same old. I got pushed into a wall and had to recover my textbooks from the chicken run. The girls and I did a an acapella piece behind the netball seating and we all did high-fives and hugged.”
“Still telling porkies, as usual. How many girls have you hugged today?”
“There was about ten. Stephanie gave me a kiss on the cheek and wished me well in Coventry.”
“What about your friends in the boy’s side.”
“I’ve told you before, Mum. I have no friends with the boy’s side. There’s just the bullies and those of us that huddle together in fear.”
“Exaggerating again. That school has a policy against bullying.”
“Oh! yes? Tell that to the teachers who sit in their rest room and complain about the noise of kids screaming, thinking that we’re all having fun. I hope Coventry will be better, but I don’t expect it will.”
“Don’t be such a sourpuss! At least we can get the piano out of storage, so you can play at home. We get the keys next week, so we’ll be busy moving. Your father said that your bedroom will be three times the size of this place.”
“That’s good. Maybe it’s the lack of bedroom size that stops me getting as big as the other boys at school. Who knows, I might gain another foot or so by Christmas, then you’ll have to get me new trousers as gifts.”
His mother giggled.
“Go and get changed. I’ve put a plastic bag in your room for all the school things you won’t need. They can go to the op-shop for some other boy.”
“All right, Mum. Don’t bother washing anything. Someone else can get rid of the bloodstains.”
He picked up his backpack as he went to the stairs. In his room, he took everything off, adding the pullover and blazer to the other things for the bag. Naked, he walked into the minuscule bathroom and washed the scratches that were the most problem. He had several on his arms and legs from when he had been pushed into a bramble bush.
Back in his room, he redressed in a shirt and jeans. When he had put on his socks and sneakers, he looked at himself in the mirror that was attached to his door.
“OK, punk. This summer is the summer that you grow into the man that Dad wants you to be. If they play rugby in Coventry, you’ll be the first one picked for the team.”
He winked at himself then giggled.
“Who am I kidding?”
Over the next week, he boxed up his things to be transported to Coventry, reduced his wardrobe by being ruthless with all the things that didn’t fit, or were worn out. At a set time of every day, he spent two hours with his instruments. One day he played the clarinet, another the violin. He also had a Casio electric keyboard and earphones to keep his technique up to scratch, although it was nothing like playing a full-size piano. One thing it did do, was switch it to a rudimentary organ, and he would piggyback his MP3 player into the line and play along with pop songs. His mother would often hear his voice, with no music, as he enjoyed the freedom of song.
Finally, came the day of the move. The house looked almost mournful as it was emptied. When the truck pulled away. They put their cases into his mother’s Ford, did a full tour of the house and garden to make sure that there was nothing missed, and left Bristol for a new life.
They stayed with his father’s parents for a few days, just outside Oxford, a visit that wasn’t full of joy. Then they headed to the new house in the Walkers Orchard Estate, in Stoneleigh Village. It had been chosen as somewhere off the beaten track, halfway between his school in Coventry, and his father’s work at Gaydon. When they arrived, Bill saw that it was a newer house with big rooms.
His father had been living in a hotel for a month or more, and had been happy to see the furniture arrive, so he could live in his own home again. When Bill saw his room, he smiled. It was as large and as flat as he had wished for. The bed had folded cardboard under two legs, but he thought that this was only temporary. The family piano was already in the sitting-room, but in need of tuning.
During the next week, his father went off to work in his company car, though not an Aston Martin, much to Bill’s disappointment, and Bill helped his mother make the house their home, pulling out the little things that made it theirs and putting them out in a good place, then moving them around until his mother was happy.
It didn’t take him long to set up his bedroom with his things in the wardrobe and drawers. The instruments were in set places, and he now had room for a desk, which he and his mother assembled when it had been delivered, along with the office chair. He now had somewhere to put his laptop and do his homework. The best thing, for him, was that his parents had their own bathroom, so he took over the main bathroom, two doors away from his room.
One day, his mother took him to the school to have a quick look around, and to leave their new address with the admin. Then they went shopping for some new things for him, having a hard time, as usual, in finding items that fitted him and was also within his age range. The expected growth spurt wasn’t happening yet.
A few weeks before the term started, his mother came into his room and waved her hand in front of his face as he was trying to keep up with Jon Lord on the organ. He turned everything off as she told him that there was a lady from his new school downstairs. She had brought his school uniform; the basics being supplied and the extras and replacements being the parents responsibility.
“It’s all in the garment bag on your bed. Try it on and come downstairs for inspection.”
She left him to it, and he opened the bag to pull everything out on his bed. When it was all out, he laughed quietly. They had brought a uniform for a girl! Well, if he had to wear it for inspection, then wear it he would! That, he thought, would be the best joke of the summer.
Besides the blue school blazer, there was a couple of white shirts, a couple of blue skirts, and a pullover. In the bottom of the bag were two pairs of shoes in his size, both sensible styles but with Velcro fastening rather than laces, as well as a couple of pairs of socks and leggings in the school colour.
He stripped down to his boxers and started dressing in the clothes. He had a little trouble with the shirt, as the buttons were on the wrong side, The skirt was easier, once he realised that the zip was supposed to be on the side, rather than the front. He sat on his bed and carefully pulled on a pair of the leggings, then put the shoes on.
He left his room and went to the bathroom to see what he looked like. When he saw himself in the mirror, he had to do a double-take. Except for his bushy eyebrows, he looked just like a schoolgirl. He grabbed the electric razor that he hardly ever used and carefully trimmed the eyebrows so they didn’t stand out and ran it over his chin in case there may be an errant hair.
There was a brush on the vanity, so he used that to alter the look of his longish hair into a slightly feminine fall, thinking hard about the girls he knew. He grinned to himself before he left the mirror. As he left the bathroom, he heard his mother calling up for him to hurry up. He went down the stairs and walked into the sitting room.
“Here I am, Mummy. What do you think?”
It was the other woman who spoke first, as his mother was flapping her jaw like a fish.
“You look great, Billie-Jean. That colour really suits you. You’ll fit right in with the other girls. I had a look at your previous results, and you already have a seat in our orchestra.”
His mother had finally found her voice.
“It’s a nice look, for a girl.”
“Isn’t it. We’re quite proud of how our students look. I must run, I have another couple of uniforms to deliver. I hope to see Billie-Jean on the first day of term. I am part of the music side of the classes. Thanks for the cup of tea, Wendy. Billie-Jean, you are allowed a small amount of make-up at school, but don’t go Goth on us.”
Bill stood with a smile on his face as the woman left the house like a whirlwind. His mother came back into the sitting room and sat down.
“Well?”
“Well, what, Mummy?”
“Don’t you Mummy me, you little minx. Where did you get that outfit?”
“It was the one in the garment bag you put on my bed. It has a few other things in it as well, all suitable for girls.”
“Why did she call you Billie-Jean?”
“I don’t know. That’s the name that Tony Horton called me in the second term. It’s what all the girls in the old orchestra called me. Somehow, it must have been sent with my records.”
“You do look cute, but we’ll have to put this right before school starts.”
“Please don’t do that, Mum. What do you see when you look at me and call me cute?”
“With a skirt on and your hair like that, I see a schoolgirl.”
“Exactly. With my height and my body, I fit these clothes. In them, I don’t stand out as a freak. If I go to school like this, I won’t get bullied so much.”
“You and your stories!”
Billie took the jacket off, then pulled the blouse out from the skirt and undid the buttons. As he took it off, he held his arms out and did a slow revolution so that his mother could see the scars and the welts on his body from where he had been hit. His mother was wide-eyed and put her hand to her mouth.
“The stories about bullying were all true?”
“Yes, Mum. They were all true. As a runt schoolboy, I’m fair game for the bullies, and it’s been going on since primary. This is my chance to come home in one piece. This is my chance to be safe and to be part of a group. This is my chance to be a better student. You heard what that woman said. She said that I would fit in with the girls.”
“I’m going to get my phone and take some pictures of you like that. Then, put the blouse back on and also the blazer and I’ll take some more pictures. Then put everything back in the garment bag and hang it in your wardrobe. When your father gets home, say nothing about this and go up to your room after dinner. I’ll talk to him and see what he thinks about the situation. If you are to go to school as a girl, there are other things we will need to do and buy before you can do it successfully.”
“Thanks, Mum.”
When the photos had been taken of his scars and welts, he redressed and posed as he had seen the girls do when they were playing around. His mother took pictures from the front, back, and sides before she sent him back upstairs. He took everything off and carefully put it back into the garment bag, hanging in it in the wardrobe before putting his jeans and shirt on. When he went back down, his mother took one look at him and told him to stand quite still before she went and got her phone to take another picture.
“Now, young lad. Go back up to the bathroom and get your hair looking like a boy again!”
When he looked at himself in the bathroom mirror, he saw what had made her take more pictures. With his hair still brushed as it had been, he still looked like a girl. He brushed it back to its usual way and went back to his bedroom to play some quiet pieces on the clarinet until his father came home.
During dinner, nothing unusual was said, and he helped his mother tidy up and load the dishwasher. She told him to go up to his room and stay there, even if he heard shouting. He gave his mother a hug.
“I hope it doesn’t come to that, Mum. I don’t want to cause friction in the family.”
As he left her, his mother stood there with a bewildered look on her face. Bill had never been one for hugging. Then she remembered him telling her that he had hugged the girls at Clifton. Now, she realised, more than ever, that he needed to be Billie-Jean Rose to preserve his health, as well as his sanity. She picked up her phone and went to talk to her husband.
Bill was in bed, reading a book, when there was a knock on the door. He called for whoever it was to come in. He hadn’t heard any shouting during the evening, for which he was thankful. His father came in and sat on his bed.
“Your mother and I have had an interesting evening. I want you to tell me about how you ended up with those injuries.”
Bill told his father everything, from the name-calling to the pushing and shoving, the damage to his schoolbooks, and then how he had peace and companionship with the girls. His father took a look at some of his injuries.
“Do you want to be a girl?”
“I never thought about it until I wore the uniform, Dad. But, when I saw how I looked, I could tell that it would be the answer to my problems. I’m about to start at a new school, where they already think that I’m a girl called Billie-Jean. Between now and the beginning of term, I have time to get into character. I’ve always been friendly with girls, not in a serious way, but as one of the crowd. I don’t know how I can avoid being found out, but I’m sure that there are ways to hide bits that don’t fit the picture.”
“There are, my son. I’ve seen a few shows in my younger days where men act as women. Done right, it will work. The point is – are you willing to play the part? If you do it, it will have to be twenty-four seven. A whole new wardrobe of clothes, a whole new way of living, a regime of hairdressers, moisturisers, shaving your legs, wearing make-up. I can get ready to go out in ten minutes. It takes your mother that long to decide the look that she wants to have, then another hour to achieve the look she first thought of.”
“I think it will be a bit like learning an instrument. Once you teach your fingers to play the chords, you can do it without having to think about it. I’d like to give it a try, please, Dad. I’m fed up with having drag myself out of bushes.”
“All right. I will get you an appointment with the company clinic as soon as I can. They will give you a good check-over and take some blood to test. I’ll tell them that you’re having problems in regard to your gender. Both you and your mother are covered under my contract, and you will both need to be seen and added to the patient records. If they think that your puberty is racing up, we can’t follow through with the plan. When you get a bit older, they can prescribe blockers to hold puberty off until you finish school.”
“Thanks, Dad. You’re the best.”
“Thank you for being such a talented and clever child. You know that we’ll both love you as much whether you’re Bill or Billie-Jean. Your mother is already thinking about you learning to cook and sew. I will never try to make a man out of you if you don’t want it. You just don’t have the body for that. Goodnight, son. Sleep well and we’ll get things moving. I’m proud of you for taking this so well.”
“It must be in the genes, Dad. I’ve never seen you get flustered since the day you couldn’t get the lawnmower to start. Goodnight, and thank you for listening.”
“I saw the pictures of what those bullies had done to you. There was no way I wouldn’t listen. Don’t stay up reading too late. It’ll be a new start tomorrow.”
His father gave Billie a kiss on the forehead and left the room. Billie put the book on the side and turned out the light. He lay in the dark, with just a hint of moonlight sneaking past the curtains and thought about being able to be happy at school, to have no fears of being shoved into walls or hedges, and to be able to make friends. Just like everything else he did, there would be a lot to learn, but eventually it would be as easy as playing a piece of music.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 2
The next morning, his mother was busy writing a list while Bill played the violin in his room. Around mid-morning, her mobile rang, and her husband told her that the two of them had an appointment at the clinic at two that afternoon. She went up to Bill’s room to tell him that she was going to get them sandwiches for lunch as they were going out after that.
They had some time together as she made their lunch and Bill looked at the list that his mother had left on the table.
“Mum, his list has a lot of things on it that I’ve never heard of. What are ‘enhancers’?”
“They’re things that go in a bra to give you a bit of a silhouette. Most teenage girls use them before they start puberty.”
“You want me to wear a bra!!?
“Of course, dear. Every girl wears a bra, sometimes well before she needs to. It won’t take you long to get used to it, although it may change your stance when playing, to cater for the slight changes in body shape and frontal weight.”
“What about these other things, under ‘foundation’? Do I have to learn to lay bricks?”
“Silly Billy. They’re all make-up items. We’ll need to get you a full kit after we’ve been to the salon. Everything depends on what the clinic says this afternoon, but I’m trying to think of everything you might need if Billie-Jean is to become a real person.”
“Thanks, Mum. I do have a lot to learn.”
“If I do your hair and we put a bit of lippy on you, we can take you to the salon and give you a make-over. After that, we can go shopping for some basics, which will then allow us to get you more specialised clothes from the stores in Coventry. There will be a lot of new underwear that you will need to get used to. I had a look at a couple of sights on the web, last night, and there is a place in the city that does special panties that hide your winkle but still lets you pee.”
They ate their lunch and tidied up, then got into the car to head to Gaydon. At the clinic, his mother filled in forms for both of them and then they waited to be called. His mother went in first, while Bill read an old music magazine. When she came out, he was called in. In the doctor’s office, he was asked to strip and put on a hospital gown.
The lady doctor who checked him over was asking questions as she did so. Obviously, his mother had told her that he had gender problems. She looked at all of his scars and exclaimed that he had a good case to sue his previous school about the bullying. In the end, he had to remove his boxers so that she could examine his genitals.
She asked him if he had ever had wet dreams or masturbated, and he had to ask her to explain what she was talking about. Finally, she looked him in the eyes.
“I want you to tell me the truth, Bill. This is very important. Have you ever been kicked or hit in your groin?”
“It was in primary. A couple of bullies had pushed me over and one kicked me there. I was walking strange for a couple of days.”
“Did you tell your parents?”
“No. I didn’t want to worry them. I didn’t want to appear weak in front of my Dad.”
“Right! We’ll draw some bloods and I want you to pee into this beaker. Then you get dressed and I’ll bring your mother back in.”
She took three tubes of blood, and he went behind the screen to pee. Then he washed his hands at the sink and redressed. When his mother was brought back in, they sat in front of the doctor’s desk and his mother took his hand. The doctor ended making some notes and looked up.
“Mrs. Rose, Wendy. From what I’ve seen, you’re in excellent health, and there is nothing wrong with you that we need to worry about. Bill, however, has some very complicated problems that may explain his general appearance. In my examination, I could not find any testicles. Bill has told me that he had been kicked in the groin in primary school. When we have the results of the blood tests, I fully expect that they will show a drastic lack of testosterone. I am going to send him to another area for an MRI on his lower abdomen do determine just how much damage was caused, then we can decide on any other treatment.”
“Does that mean that he has arrested puberty?”
“It means that we may be able to direct his puberty in the direction he wants to go, by hormone treatment. I think it’s too late to make him big enough to play in the front row of a rugby team, but he may be a good jockey if we send him down the male path. He will, however, make a very pleasing lady if we make him into a female.”
His mother pulled out her phone and swiped a couple of times before showing it to the doctor.
“Like this? That was taken yesterday. Somehow, the school brought round a girl’s uniform.”
“Wow! She isn’t going to need much work to pass easily. Are you sure that you’ve never had any desire to dress up, Billy?”
“Never, doctor. I thought that if I was supposed to be inspected in that uniform, everyone would have a good laugh and the woman would take it away and bring back one for a boy.”
“All right. I’ll email this scan request upstairs. If you follow the signs to the radiography department, the receptionist there should be able to give you an appointment time. It will take a few days for us to collate the scans and the test results, so make an appointment with my receptionist for a few days’ time.”
They thanked her for her time and walked out of the office. After making the appointment, they found their way upstairs and found the right desk. The receptionist there looked at her computer and rang the MRI operator. When she had finished the call, she smiled broadly.
“I’ve been told that the MRI will have a short period when you can be fitted in. The area that will be scanned isn’t very big. If you can be back here in an hour, it can be completed before you go home.”
“Is there somewhere that we can sit with a drink?”
“There is, just go towards the back of the clinic and you’ll find a coffee lounge.”
“I must say that this is a big place for such a small population. Well-equipped as well.”
“That’s because we have so many people working at both Aston Martin and Jaguar Land Rover. Within a couple of miles are as many people as a small town. Both of the big companies support us, and we also take the overflow from Warwick.”
They went back downstairs and found their way to the coffee lounge. When they were sitting, Bill looked at his mother.
“I’m sorry I didn’t tell you about being kicked. I didn’t want to appear weak, so I hid it and carried on.”
“It’s all right, Billy. It was a long time ago. All we have to do now is to sort things out for the future. I was thinking about your records at the school. Somewhere, there must be the paperwork with William John and the note that you’re male. I expect that someone will ring us to ask about that. I have an idea that may help. I can forge a new name on your copy of the birth certificate. The easiest would be to change William to Willow, and the John to Jean.”
“You can do that?”
“Yes. Before you came along, I was working in graphic design. All I need to get is some paper similar to the certificate copy. We have a very good scanner in the computer printer in your dad’s office. I just copy the original, make the changes, and then copy that onto the right paper. It’s how I funded my university days, making IDs for the partygoers.”
“Wow, a real mega-criminal!”
They laughed together, and then she got serious.
“If you take the girl route, it doesn’t end when you finish school. It will be for ever.”
“I know, Mum. I suppose that after a few years, I’ll take it as normal. There are several good women violinists, but I can’t think of any famous women pianists or clarinet players.”
“There’s always Mrs. Mills.”
“Who was that?”
“She was all the rage in the sixties and seventies. Think about the TV show with that Mrs. Bucket singing and you have her down pat.”
“That bad!”
“Yes, it was. She sold lots of records, though. Anyway, I’m wondering what you’ll be doing with music when you go to school. That woman did say that there was an orchestra.”
“I suppose that I’ll have to wait and see how the Willow grows.”
They went back to the waiting room and sat, thinking their own thoughts, until Bill was called in.
“Bill Rose, is it? Take your clothes off and put that paper gown on. Make sure there is no jewellery or anything metal. The machine gets angry if we put metal down the tube.”
When Bill was ready, he was put onto a moving bed and given some headphones. The operator asked him what he would like to hear, and he chose Beethoven. With the opening chords of ‘The Emperor’ in his ears, he was slid into the tube and told not to move a muscle until everything was silent. For a good fifteen minutes, the music was drowned out by loud clicks, whirrs, and other noise. He stopped listening to the music and imagined the sound of the machine as basis of a musical piece.
When it was quiet, again, he was slid out of the tube and helped to stand up.
“That wasn’t too bad, now, was it? We got some good cross sections, and the doctor will be able to tell you what you need to know. Get dressed and enjoy the rest of your day.”
Instead of going directly home, his mother drove them into Warwick. She had looked up printing supplies on her phone and had found a place where she could buy the correct paper. Back at home, she found the birth certificate and then the two of them started preparing the dinner. Over dinner, she told her husband what had happened during the day. After dinner, Bill went up to his room to catch up with the playing that he had missed by going out.
The next morning, he looked on in wonder as his mother scanned the birth certificate.
“It’s a good job they don’t use the old style, that would never let me do this.”
She put the printout on the desk and taped it down, then used a minimal amount of fluid, which she had carefully mixed with concealer from her make-up, to match the slight tinge as she obliterated some letters. When she was happy, they went off for a morning tea as it dried. Back at the desk, she used a very fine piece of sandpaper to make sure that there were no visible edges. The name was now Will J. She had a kit of implements that Bill had never seen before and picked an old-style nib on a stick. She spent a long time writing to match the paperwork before she started adding the letters needed. To Bill, it was like watching an old master painter, and he held his breath with each letter.
When she lifted her head, the paper now had the name ‘Willow Jean Rose’, and the male now had the ‘fe’ in front of it. He clapped and she smiled.
“You know what, Billy. I think that when you’re in school, I may see if I can get a job in graphic design again. That brought back so many good memories.”
They went off and had lunch to allow the ink to be fully dry. Back in the office, she removed the tape and opened the ream of special paper, then scanned the new version. To Bill, after the new one had been printed, it was almost an anti-climax to hold the two certificates. They felt the same, they looked the same. It was just that one was his old self, and the other was for his new self. Both went into the folder with his paperwork, and they tidied up.
The next day was totally different from any day he had known. He was dressed in a pair of his Mum’s older panties, his best-fitting jeans, a pair of lilac socks from his mother’s drawer, and a lilac tee with the picture of a boy band on the front. The outfit was finalised with a pair of the school shoes, and some time that his mother spent on his hair. They went into Coventry to a salon, where they both had appointments.
The rest of the morning was an eye-opener for Bill. He was waxed everywhere but his groin, had a new hairdo, new fingernails, a pair of studs in his ears, while his mother had a make-over of her own. He was sat in front of a mirror while a girl worked on his face, plucking his eyebrows and making notes of what colours worked best for his complexion. When they walked out, both he and his mother had bags with the products that worked best. Bill was now definitely Billie-Jean, looking like a smaller version of his mother.
They went to the car to store their bags, then went into the West Orchard Shopping Centre, parking the car and going in to get some comfort food from the Macca’s there. After that, they went into Peacocks to get some more clothes. The first stop was somewhere that the old Bill would have run from, or else stood looking at the floor. His mother asked the salesgirl to measure his band size, and with that information, they examined the racks of bras. With the nightmare of trying a couple on out of the way, they ended up with six bra and panty sets, as well as an extra dozen panties and a sports bra for the PE lessons, and some nighties and a new dressing gown.
After that, they moved to the teenage section and bought some skirts and tops. Finally, much to Billie’s relief, they stopped at the shoe department. She had started complaining that the school shoes were too tight, so she was properly measured and walked out in properly fitting shoes that looked a bit less ‘sensible’ than the originals. They did buy a couple of pairs of the school shoes to replace the ones which would have to be given back.
They went back to the car, with Billie-Jean now wearing a pink top and a short denim skirt, with pink socks in her new shoes. After the bags were safe in the car, her mother grabbed her hand and took her back into the shops. This time, the object of the hunt was a couple of handbags and some cheap jewellery, followed by getting a good coat for when the weather turned.
Finally, they went outside the shopping centre and her mother took her to the Job Shop, where she looked at the vacancies as her mother gave details to a clerk in regard to her skills and her contact details. Billie-Jean was noting the cards asking for people to join bands, but nobody was advertising places in an orchestra.
Back at home, the usual preparation of dinner was different while wearing a skirt and catching her new nails on things. When her father arrived home, he took one look and grinned.
“Well, who’s my girl?”
“I am, now, Daddy. How do I look?”
“Absolutely beautiful, my sweetness. It didn’t take long to turn you into a stunner. How do you feel?”
“Different, but in a nice way. I’ve spent all day as a girl and have been called love and sweetie a lot. I’m still me, inside, but a happy me. I look like I’ll fit in with the other girls, now, and that makes me feel safer. Mum spent an awful lot on me today.”
“That will be just the start, if I know my wife. No matter how many things you have in your wardrobe, there will always be that one thing that you haven’t got but need. Don’t worry about the money, sweetheart. I’ve got a good job and a good future. You are the most important person in this family, right now. I know that you will be the famous one here, by the time you leave home. Then, I will think of you as I see you now, and smile.”
After dinner, Billie went up to her room to try to play a while, mainly to see how her technique was with the new nails. It wasn’t that bad; the nails even improved her plucking on the violin strings. When it was time for bed, there was a whole new procedure of cleansing before she could put on a nightie for the first time and get into bed. She was laying there, thinking about things, when she realised that there was something missing. For the first time, she knew that she wanted a plush tiger. Not a bunny, not a teddy, not a doll, but a tiger.
On Friday morning, she had a shower with a shower cap on, and then dressed. She put a bra on and added the enhancers for the first time, then slid a matching panty up her legs. The whole experience was odd but wasn’t upsetting. There was a new pair of jeans that actually fitted, and she chose a bright red top that had caught her eye yesterday. Red socks and the new shoes and she was ready to face the day. But not until after she had tried to do a little make-up.
A half an hour later, she looked in the bathroom mirror and decided that enough was enough, and that this would have to do. Downstairs, her mother had finished her breakfast, so Billie made herself some toast and poured some orange juice. As she was eating, the phone rang, and her mother answered.
“Yes, this is Mrs. Rose.”
“All right, I’ll bring the proper papers in for you this morning.”
“Will there be anyone in the music area, as my daughter is keen to see what’s there.”
“All right, We’ll be there as soon as we can.”
She hung up and came into the kitchen.
“That was the school. It seems that there is some problem with the paperwork, and they want to view your birth certificate. It’s a good job we keep things safe. As soon as you’ve tidied up, we’ll put what you need in one of the handbags and head to the school. You look lovely, this morning. The make-up is just right for daytime. Your father researched shops that sell the other things you need. There is one which sell gaffs on-line, as well as inners for your bra. We ordered some so they should be delivered tomorrow.”
Billie went up to her room to make her bed and get a black bag from the shopping. Her mother came in and showed her all the things that she needed to carry, including a purse with her money. This was the first part of being a girl that seemed wrong, but when she had put her hand in the jeans pockets, she had found that they were only a couple of inches deep.
They left the house and drove to the school. This was the second day of truly being Billie-Jean. As the scenery passed by, she thought about playing in an orchestra as Willow Rose. It had a nice ring to it.
At the school, they went to the admin area, where the old copy of the birth certificate was produced. Her mother told them that there had, indeed, been a William Rose at the school, and the copies must have been misfiled as both being for W.J. Rose. They tore the old one up and replaced it with a copy of the one that her mother had produced. Everyone was happy, and they were given a map of the school and told that there was a couple of groups in the rehearsal rooms.
As they walked towards the rehearsal rooms, the lady who had brought the uniform over came out of a building. Billie smiled at her, and her mother gave a wave.
“Hello there, Miss Russell. You look worried.”
“I am. We have a concert to see out summer this Saturday night. We had a five-piece metal band to close it, but one of them didn’t turn up for rehearsal today. I’ve just rung his home and he’s got measles, so we won’t see him for weeks. I’ve got to give the others the bad news.”
“Surely you could get a stand-in?”
“Not at such short notice, Billie-Jean. They are going to play covers of some band that I’ve hardly heard of. It’s going to be a short concert.”
They followed her into the music building and then on to a room where four lads with longish hair were sitting and waiting.
“Lads, I have some good news and some bad news. The bad is that Jim has measles and won’t be around for some weeks. The good news is that this is Billie-Jean Rose and her mother. Billie will be starting with us at the beginning of her second year. Billie, meet Geoff, Garry, Grant and Gerry.”
The four all said hello as they were pointed out. Geoff smiled at Billie.
“Welcome to the madhouse, Billie-Jean. The four of us usually play twelve-bar and rock numbers as ‘G-Force’. We were going to play some Deep Purple covers on Saturday night. Jim, who has now let us down, plays the organ. We were supposed to run through the set today.”
“I play keyboard. What songs were you planning to do?”
“We open with ‘Child in Time’, then ‘Woman from Tokyo’, ‘Speed King’, ‘Highway Star’ and finish with ‘Smoke on the Water’. Because we’re covering Deep Purple, we called ourselves ‘Shallow Blue’.”
“So, the ‘Live in Japan’ album.”
“You know it?”
“It’s been something that I’ve played around with as a release of pressure. I have earphones and a keyboard with feed-in from my MP3.”
“How would you like to try out? Our gear is set up in the theatre.”
Billie looked at her mother and Miss Russell. Wendy had a smile, and Miss Russell was almost bursting.
“Come on then, let’s go and see if we can save the show.”
They followed her to the main theatre. It was set up with seats, except for about twenty feet in front of the stage, so some of the audience could dance if they wanted to. Wendy turned to Miss Russell.
“What’s the occasion?”
“The music and drama groups can do an optional summer project which adds to their overall marks. No set subject. Some of the drama people do skits or short plays. The music side do recitals, but we don’t do a full orchestral item, due to the logistics. The show is filmed by the drama group for a DVD which is sold through the school to raise money for equipment.”
Billie had followed the boys up to the stage, where she saw a bank of amps, and a drum set. A portable keyboard was set up to one side, along with a bass guitar. On the other side were two guitars. She knew enough that whoever played them were serious about their instrument, as one was a vintage Rickenbacker, while the other was Fender of a similar age. When she got to the organ, there was all the music on the top.
Geoff looked at her.
“Do you read music?”
“I do, but I’ve also got a weird brain. I remember every song I hear. Classics are a bit harder, as they go on for a long time, but pop music at four to ten minutes is all right.”
They turned everything on, and Billie twiddled on the keyboard, moving some knobs to see if it produced the same sort of sounds that the one at home did. She pressed the middle C key so that the others could tune up. Geoff and Gerry tested the microphones. Grant did some warm-up rolls on the drums and Garry stood beside her with his bass ready to start. He said, quietly.
“This is going to be interesting. Nod to me if you get flustered and I’ll slow things down, if I can. Grant follows my lead.”
Geoff looked at everybody.
“Let’s go!”
It was Billie who opened the set, with the organ playing the only quiet part of ‘Child in Time’. She wondered if her mother would enjoy the performance. Miss Russell looked anxious. She took a quick look at the music as Geoff joined her with the guitar. And then they were off, into the world of Purple, a time well before she was born, but still as powerful as it was in its day, some fifty years before.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 3
Willow was concentrating on the music. She was listening to the others as she played. The songs were a mixture of the album tracks, but with more of the live album content as they moved from ‘Child in Time’ to ‘Woman from Tokyo’. She glanced across to the others, to see Geoff with his eyes shut and mouth open. Gerry had a big grin on his face.
As they moved into ‘Speed King’, she could feel the pressure on her ease, as the others were playing freely. They weren’t the original band, but she thought that they were getting close to it. Geoff was no Ritchie Blackmore, but he was good, fast, and accurate. So was Gerry as they swapped the lead breaks. Geoff was using the Rickenbaker and Gerry was on the Telecaster. She looked the other way to see Garry give her a wink and a grin as he worked hard on his bass. Billie, Garry and Grant were the powerhouse, giving the two guitarists free rein to do even more elaborate things.
As they ended ‘Highway Star’, Gerry reached up and twisted the volume knobs on the amps and then played the first, iconic, notes of ‘Smoke on the Water’. Waiting for her cue to start, Billie looked out to the theatre for the first time, amazed to see about fifty teenagers on the dance floor and a row of seats filled.
As the song thundered to an end, there were cheers and applause. Geoff called out for them to repeat ‘Child in Time’, but “the way we’re playing now!” Billie started the organ introduction, and they did the live version of the song, sounding a lot louder, and a lot more full-bloodied than the first time they had played it. When they finished, she was sweating, and so was everyone else.
The boys took their guitars off and put them on the stands. Billie just stood behind the keyboard, trying to process what had just happened. Grant was sitting on his drum stool, head down and breathing heavily. Garry was the first to make the move. He came over to Billie and gave her a huge hug. Geoff and Gerry followed, and then the three of them helped Grant stand and gave him man hugs.
Miss Russell came up on the stage with bottles of water in her hands, and Billie’s mother followed with more. The five musicians took the water, gratefully, and drank before anyone was able to speak. Geoff and Gerry had shared the vocals, and both needed the water before they were able to talk naturally.
Billie had her mum help her down the steps, while the boys helped Grant down. They sat in the first-row seats and Billie looked up at the stage to see where she had spent over half an hour, playing music that had just been her sideline from the classics in her bedroom. She closed her eyes and wondered what everyone thought of what they had just done. As she started to follow the chatter, she realised that she didn’t have to worry. The teenagers that were still here were full of praise.
Her mother was sitting beside her, and they looked at each other.
“Mum. I’ve played violin and clarinet in front of audiences before, but that was something else again. Although I can play well, just now I realised that I’ve never felt the music inside me. It was if I had Jon Lord in my head, telling me that I was all right.”
“You were more than all right, my daughter. I saw Deep Purple once, and you all just relived that experience. I recorded it all on my phone. It was uncanny how you went from playing as a cover band with the normal album tracks, to being Purple live. You always played the keyboard to headphones, so that was the first time I’ve heard you.”
Miss Russell came to stand in front of them, along with a couple of men.
“Billie-Jean. These gentlemen will be teaching you when you join us. I’ve told them about your results on violin and clarinet, and they’re keen to hear what you can do. Mister Jamieson teaches three girls who should have been playing on Saturday night. Are you free, after a break, if we can get you a violin. It would be nice if they could add their recital to the evening, perhaps to open it. You do read music, I hope.”
“I do but can play without it if I’ve played it before. What do have planned, sir?”
“The girls have been working on the ‘Tchaikovsky Number One’. We planned to do the second movement, the ‘Andante Cantabile’.”
“I’ve played that a few times in my last school.”
“Good. I’ll try to muster the others, although I saw a couple of them dancing. We’ll get you a violin. I suggest that you spend a little while resting, that was some workout that you lot did on stage. If we can meet in the rehearsal room two, in about twenty minutes?”
Billie looked at her mother, who answered for them both.
“We’ll be there.”
He went off to find the girls, the other man held out his hand to Billie.
“Miss Rose. I’m Howard Bamborough, the head of the music side of the school. Miss Russell has told me that you will be transferring to us at the beginning of your second year. I have to tell you that what you have just done was well above a thirteen-year-old. I teach guitar, and you’ve just pushed young Geoff into an area which I’ve long thought him capable of but was despairing of actually seeing. Both he and Gerry lifted a couple of notches. I welcome you to Blue Coat, and I wonder if you will inspire others. I’ll be around to sit in on the quartet.”
He nodded to her mother and went off to speak to the boys in the band.
“If that’s the sort of impression you’re going to make, my girl, it’s going to be an interesting few years.”
“I’ve always tried to disappear before, but now I feel free to express myself. A lot still depends on the doctor next week.”
She looked around and saw a group of girls looking her way. She gave them a smile and they came over, an older one in front.
“Hello. I’m Abbie and we’re from the school orchestra. Miss Russell just told us that you will be joining us next year, and we all think that it’s awesome!”
Billie stood.
“Hello Abbie; girls. I’m Willow Jean Rose, and the girls from my last school called me Billie-Jean. Miss Russell has told me that I’ll have a seat in the orchestra, but I don’t know what I’ll be playing.”
“You play other instruments?”
“Yes. I play violin and clarinet and some piano. The organ stuff was something that I’ve been playing about with on my keyboard at home. We’ve just moved to a house where we can have our piano, so I’ve been using an electric one which can double as an organ. That was the first time I’ve played without headphones.”
“That’s even more awesome. It sounded like you’ve been playing in a band for years. I’ve never heard the G-Force sound so good.”
One by one, all the girls gave her a hug and told her their names. She knew that it would take some weeks before she remembered them all. They went off and Geoff came over.
“Billie, that was something else again. Can you play like that again on Saturday night?”
She looked at her mother, who smiled broadly.
“If Miss Russell can swing a couple of tickets for me and my husband, she’ll be here.”
Miss Russell put her thumb up and said that they would be at the door. After that, they were shown the school canteen, which was open for hot pies and drinks. While they were there, they had several visitors telling her that she was a great organist.
They were sitting with a cup of tea. Billie looked around the room, realising that she’ll be having many lunches here. She wondered if there were tables that never allowed strangers. Her mother saw her looking.
“Penny for them.”
“This will become a place of new experiences, Mum. This room has the opportunity to be a place of hell to be avoided, as was the lunchroom in Bristol, or a place of companionship and joy. From the girls I met, this morning, I hope it will be the latter.”
“I’m sure it will be, as long as you keep embracing the girl that you’ve become, the future has no dark clouds.”
When Miss Russell came to their table, they followed her to rehearsal room two. There, they saw that Mister Bamborough and Mister Jamieson were there, along with three girls. The Music Head took charge.
“Girls, this is Willow Jean Rose. Barbara and Dianne saw her performance in the pop band, this morning. That’s something that Zara has to look forward to on Saturday night. Mister Jamieson has his own violin for her to use. We can give you fifteen minutes to warm up and get to know each other, then you can show us what you’ve come up with.”
He turned to the others.
“We can give these girls some time to find out if they have a piece to play. Girls, if it doesn’t work out, you’re no further back than you were before. You’ll get some marks for giving it a try.”
The adults left the room, no doubt to quiz Willow’s mother. Willow went and picked up the violin and bow.
“It’s good to meet you all. How about we chat after we’ve nailed this piece. It runs for about six and a half minutes, so we’ve got time to do it twice. OK?”
The other girls grinned and took their places at the music stands. Zara sat at the cello and counted down the time and they started playing. The other three had been playing it a lot, and Billie could hear it. The music was almost mournful but had hints of a Russian folk song. They were all smiling when they finished, and Zara counted them down for a second run-through.
Barbara played violin, and Dianne played a viola. As Willow watched them play, she decided that they must be sisters. Zara seemed to be older. Once again, Willow was feeling the music spring from within her. When they finished, they had a few minutes to talk. Willow found that Dianne was going to be second year with her. Barbara was going to be starting third, and Zara would be in the fourth year. The girl that she was standing in for was a neighbour to Jim and had gone down with measles a week earlier. All were in the orchestra. Barbara laughed.
“Di and I are also in the singing group. We get to go on for the second act, before the drama people do their thing. We may be able to open the show now.”
“What do the singing group do?”
“It is part of the choir when there is a big service in the school chapel. For the show, we’re doing ‘In Dulci Jubilo’, the Pearsall version, all four verses.”
“That’s funny. That’s the last thing I sang with my friends before we left school, last term. We didn’t have a singing group; it was just some of the girls from the orchestra who would get together in the playground to let off steam.”
“One thing is that we have to wear the same dresses as them, so we could leave the stage and then come back again. They are a royal blue.”
Zara had her phone out and showed Willow the picture.
“I saw something like that in Peacock’s the other day.”
“That’s where they came from. Will you be able to get your own before the show?”
“That’s what stage mothers are for!”
The four of them were giggling when the door opened, and the adults came in.
“You seem to be happy, girls? Do you have something for us to listen to?”
“Yes, sir. I think that it will be satisfactory.”
“Right, Zara. We’ll go to the wall and wait for you to surprise us.”
They took their places and Zara counted them in. When they finished, there was a few moments of silence before Miss Russell announced that it looked like it was going to be a big show after all. Mister Bamborough agreed. Zara looked at Miss Russell.
“Miss. We’ve just found out that Willow sings acapella. Do you mind if we try a bit of the Saturday part. If she’s leaving the stage with us, she’ll be able to join the choir later.”
Mister Jamieson laughed.
“If you grab her for the singing group, she’s not going to get much rest during the evening. Let’s hear the four of you, then.”
Willow gave him back the violin and then stood with the other three. Zara counted them in, and they sang the first verse of ‘In Dulci Jubilo’. The three girls let Willow sing the repeat of the last line on her own. As the sound of ‘Alpha es et O’ faded, Miss Russell turned to Mrs. Rose.
“It looks like I’ll only need to save two tickets for you. Your daughter will be on stage for most of the evening.” They all laughed. Willow batted her eyes at her mother.
“Mummy Mum. I’ll need a new dress. Zara will show you the picture. They’re in Peacocks.”
As they were leaving, Geoff saw them and ran over.
“Willow, we were thinking about the show. If we get asked for an encore, have you any idea what we can do?”
“If we do ‘Lazy’ I can do the intro without trying to destroy the organ.”
“That’s great! Gerry wanted to do that. I’ll leave all the guitar to him, and I’ll bring my mouth organ. Most of it can be improvised. We’ll see you Saturday evening.”
He rushed away and Zara, who was near them, giggled.
“Not even in school and you’re already on speaking terms with the most eligible boy in the fourth year to come.”
“All I know is that he’s a great guitarist and I’ll be on stage with the four Gees in the second half.”
Miss Russell, walking behind them, snorted.
“My dear girl, the Shallow Blues are the second half.”
They went into the city and to the shopping centre again. In Peacocks, Willow tried on one of the blue dresses. After that, she needed some shoes, finding a pair with a two-inch heel that she could walk in.
That evening, after dinner, she went to her room to listen to ‘Lazy’ and figure out what she was going to play for the intro. With Purple, Jon Lord had altered his organ to play discord notes, similar to the way that Keith Emerson had done. She needed to be flashy enough to sound right.
…………………………………………..
Downstairs, her mother downloaded the rehearsals to a USB and turned on the TV.
“Billie and I needed to go to the school today to sort out the mix-up with her name on the admin paperwork. While we were there, we were hijacked by Miss Russell, the woman who had brought that uniform around. She introduced us to four lads who are in a band. Their fifth member has gone down with measles. Miss Russell also told me that a girl who was to play in a quartet had gone down with measles a few weeks earlier.”
“So, you have an evil look in your lovely eyes.”
“Do you remember that you took me to a Deep Purple concert, after that you made me a woman, your woman.”
“I remember it well; the band was fantastic. And so were you, my darling.”
“Well. These lads were short of an organist. I had heard Billie singing but there had been no sounds of instruments coming from her room. Today, I found out that she had piggy-backed her MP3 player into the keyboard feed and has been playing along to Purple for some weeks, as a way to blow of the pressure that she’s been feeling.”
“And you’re going to tell me that you captured her on stage?”
“Yep. If you want the full experience, we can plug in our headphones and watch our daughter light up a stage. I hope I was steady enough.”
She took the remote and chose the USB feed and they sat and watched the full program, including the quartet and the acapella performances. Then, he wanted to see it again as they cuddled on the settee. When that had finished, they kissed.
“There’s something about those songs that turn me on. What say we go upstairs and repeat that night.”
…………………………………
The next morning was Saturday. To Willow, the week had raced by. On Monday, he had been a sad boy, and now she was a popular girl. Next week would tell if it was all going to be better, but, even if they decided that Bill was the best way to go, she wanted to remain as Billie-Jean. Or, better still, Willow Rose.
She showered and dressed in a skirt and top and went down for breakfast. In the kitchen, her mother was humming as she organised some eggs and bacon, while her father was sitting at the table with a silly grin on his face as he watched his wife. As Willow walked in, his smile broadened, and he got up and hugged her.
“Your mother showed me the recording she made of you yesterday. You, my darling daughter, are out of this world. I bet that someone told you that you had too much talent for a thirteen-year-old.”
“That was the Head of the music school. He told me that he had been teaching the two guitarists and that I had pushed them onto another level. I thought that they were both good, but hadn’t seen them play before, so who am I to comment. I just hope that we can recreate it tonight.”
“You’re playing again tonight?”
“Yes. It’s the concert night. Mum has organised tickets for the two of you with Miss Russell. Didn’t she tell you?”
“No. That’s one thing that was cunningly missed.”
Her mother put a plate in his place.
“Just think, my love. You can listen to your daughter play Purple again. It might just keep you awake tonight.”
“What about the other thing you played?”
“I will be part of the quartet to open the show, then we leave the stage. When the stage is cleared, I come back with the other three girls and the singing group, and we do an acapella piece. Then, the rest of the first half is for the drama students. After the break, I’ll be part of Shallow Blue and we take the show to the end. And you, darling Daddy, have a seat in the audience. I don’t know what they will be serving in the break but be sure to save a drink for me. Can you get me a bottle of water for me to take on stage. It was hot yesterday, but tonight there’ll be spotlights, I expect.”
“So, what time are we getting there?”
“Miss Russell said that we should arrive about six-thirty for a seven start. There will be us young ones and they don’t want it to go too late.”
“That means that I get to take my two beautiful ladies out for dinner for about five-thirty. I’d better book somewhere.”
His wife picked up her phone.
“I did research yesterday. There’s a Miller and Carter steakhouse west of the main road into the city. It will be about fifteen minutes from there to the school.”
He looked at the details on the phone and smiled.
“Just what I’ll need, my darling, steak for my strength. Can you book a place for three for tonight, please?”
Willow grinned as her mother went off to make the call. She was starting to understand the plays between men and women, and how to please a man into doing exactly what you wanted him to do. After breakfast, she helped her mother with the housework until a courier arrived with a package. Her mother carried it to her room, and they opened it.
Inside, there was three pairs of odd-looking underpants and a box with false breasts that could be stuck on. She undressed and, between them, they figured out how to put the pants on while putting her small winkle so that she could pee while sitting down. Then, her mother got her to lie on her bed while she attached the breasts. After some minutes, she was able to stand up and feel the weight of the breasts pulling on her skin. This time, when she put a bra on, it was there for a reason. With panties on over the gaff, she looked more female than before, and had a look at herself in the bathroom mirror.
“This is amazing, Mum. I do look more like a girl than I did. These breasts aren’t much bigger than those fillers we got, but they have a life of their own.”
“They do that, my daughter. When you grow your own, you’ll find that they have sensations that you wouldn’t believe. Wear the blue top and the denim skirt today. Before we go out, I’ll help you get dressed and do your make-up as an artiste on stage. We’ll need to start to get ready at about four, which will allow me some time once we have you ready for your adoring fans. We’ll have sandwiches for lunch, seeing that we’re going out for dinner. You can spend the day working through your performances.”
The rest of the day had Willow working through violin exercises and getting used to the breasts, before wiping the violin over and making sure she had everything needed in the case. Then, she looked up the four verses of the carol and sang it several times to get it into her brain. After lunch, she listened to “Lazy’ again, playing her own version over the top of the original.
At four, her mother got her to shower, which was odd with the breasts on. She was powdered and dressed in the gaff, with a new bra and pantie set, in blue. Her mother opened a new pack of tights in her size and showed her how to put them on, then she put on the blue dress and the shoes. She had to go and look at herself in the big mirror to prove to herself that she looked good. Her mother went off to get herself ready, leaving Willow to walk about in the new shoes and practice sitting and standing without flashing her panties. The dress was knee-length, the same as the other girls, and she knew that, tonight, she had to look lady-like for the first part of the show.
Her father came downstairs, looking dapper in his suit.
“Go upstairs, poppet. It’s time for the face painting.”
Upstairs, her mother looked really good, and had already made up her face. Sitting Willow at her vanity, she made her up in an evening style, then swapped the studs for pearl drops and a pearl necklace.
“My mother gave me these when I was your age. They look good on you and they’re yours now. Hold still while I spritz you with this perfume, then go and get your coat in case it gets cool tonight. Don’t forget the violin.”
They took the company car and found the steakhouse and had a good dinner. Afterwards, she found that a compact toothbrush had been put in her bag as she joined her mother to freshen up. At the school, her father parked the car and they walked towards the theatre. Miss Russell was on the door and gave her parents the tickets. Zara was close by and took charge of Willow, taking her to the dressing rooms.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 4
Backstage was organised chaos. The theatre had been built with this kind of event in mind, so there were individual rooms for the different acts, with make-up mirrors and sinks. They joined Dianne and Barbara in their room, and the four of them went next door to the singing group. Willow was introduced around, and the leader told her that if she didn’t fit the rest of them to just mime. Zara insisted that Willow was perfect.
Willow was finding it odd to be wearing the same dress as ten other girls, and wondered if her parents would be able to pick her out. It didn’t seem like very long at all before they went back to their own room to take the violins and viola out of the cases and tune up. The cello was already on stage beside the music stands.
A couple of minutes before seven, the four girls were in place as Mister Bamborough came out on stage and welcomed everyone to the concert. By the applause he got, it sounded like a full house. He announced that the first act was the Blue Coat Baroque Quartet and the curtains opened. There was some applause and then Zara counted them in.
As she played, Willow could look out at the packed theatre. She had expected that it would be mainly parents but noticed several well-dressed couples in the first couple of rows. Up the back, and to each side, she saw cameras on tripods recording them. She concentrated on her playing and smiled, with the others, as they took their bows to polite applause.
The curtains closed and they took the instruments back to the cases. Some schoolboys cleared the stage, taking the cello and the music stands away. The stage filled with girls in blue dresses as Mister Bamborough was back on stage. He announced that the next act was the Blue Dress Girls Choir, and that they would be singing a well-known carol. The curtains opened and Willow was, once again in front of the audience, singing. This time, though, it was in a larger group of girls, at one end next to Dianne, as the leader had lined them up by size. She modulated her voice to fit the others and they worked through the four verses.
When they finished, there was strong applause and the leader said to bow. As the applause carried on, they bowed a second time and then the curtains closed. The leader patted her on the shoulder.
“That was good, young lady. I expect you at choir practice when term starts. Zara will make sure you get the schedule. We do a lot of carol singing around Christmas, at hospitals and aged-care homes.”
They all went down to the rooms, where the girls made sure that their instruments were properly packed away and put where they could be picked up later. The four of them were standing by the door when the four Gees came down, three carrying their guitar cases. Willow said hello.
“Hello, there Billie-Jean. You look stunning tonight. That’s just the right colour, as you can tell by our shirts.”
They were wearing royal blue shirts with black trousers.
“We’ve finished with this room. There’s just our instruments to be picked up.”
“All right, we’ll use it now. We caught your act tonight, very good, all of you. Why don’t you introduce the other girls?”
“Girls, this is Geoff on lead, Gerry on lead and rhythm, Garry on bass and Grant on drums. Boys, these are Barbara and Dianne, who I think are sisters. Dianne is in my year. And this is Zara, who will be in fourth year with you guys.”
“Zara. I’ve gazed at you from afar, in some of the classes. But I’ve never plucked up the courage to speak to you.”
“You can talk to me now, Geoff. I would like that.”
They all chatted together as the boys took the guitars out and tuned. When the final skit of the first half ended, they all went up to the stage as the audience were leaving for the canteen. They helped to roll the amps and keyboard into place and set up the drum kit. With it all switched on, they tested the guitars and organ quietly, and then went to the canteen to catch up with their relatives. Willow noticed that Geoff and Zara seemed to be hitting it off. She knew that it was a fact of life that a boy could be in class with a pretty girl and never have the courage, or the opportunity, to make contact. Barbara and Dianne, she could see, were both happy to be helping out and around the older boys.
At the canteen, she found her parents talking with Mister Bamborough. Her parents both hugged her, and he shook her hand and commented on how crisp the quartet sounded. Her mother handed her a plastic bottle and she took a few sips. Dianne and Barbara brought their parents over to say hello. Willow was thanked for standing in so that their daughters could get the points that the performance earned.
It was far too soon when a chime rang out and the audience started to trickle back to the theatre. The boys came over, said hello to her parents and the five of them headed towards the stage, Zara giving Geoff a little wave as they left. On stage, they took their positions and set the amps. Miss Russell asked them if they could tone it down a bit for the first few songs. When she left them, Garry chuckled.
“We get that a lot. ‘Love the music, lads, but play it quiet.’ When we get out into the world as G-Force, we’ll play as loud as we want.”
Mister Bamborough was on the other side of the curtain, again thanking the audience for coming along. Willow stood behind the organ and listened for her cue.
“Tonight, you have seen a girl play violin and sing with the choir. That girl is Willow Rose, and only stepped up to fill in yesterday. She will be starting second year with us after a move from Bristol. Now, you will see her filling in again for a member of the band who is sick. Here she is with ‘Shallow Blue’ to play songs from Deep Purple!”
As the curtains opened, she started the opening notes of ‘Child in Time’. She looked over at Garry as he came in and he grinned and gave her a wink. Of course, the amps hadn’t been turned down, and the song grew in stature and body as it moved on. Geoff was the singer on this and didn’t have the vocal range to get the sounds of the original but was strong enough.
They worked through the set, with the open space filled with gyrating teens. Willow could see some of the dignitaries looking like they had sucked lemons, but nearly everyone else was smiling or singing along. When the final crescendo of ‘Smoke’ faded, there was thunderous applause and calls for more. They took their bows, but the applause didn’t die down. Geoff put his guitar on its stand and went to his microphone, waving for a bit of hush.
“Ladies and gentlemen, school friends all. This performance was a one-off that our friend Jim thought of. He was to have played the organ but has contracted measles. Yesterday, we thought that it was all over, until Miss Russell breezed in with the answer to our dreams. Tonight, you have witnessed only the second time the five of us have played this set. As an encore, we are going to play another Purple number called ‘Lazy’. I can tell you that we have never played it before, so give a hand to Billie-Jean as she gets it going!”
Willow started the long intro to applause. The song was mainly a vehicle for the guitar and organ, with the bass coming in and the drummer going off on tangents. About two-thirds into it, Geoff came up to the microphone and sang, then played his mouth organ. When you dissect the piece, it’s mainly a procession of solos, blended with the whole band at times. Gerry was amazing on the Telecaster. Ten minutes after starting, they ended on a high to more applause. This time, after a couple of bows, the curtains closed, and the show was over. For Willow, it was almost as if she was a balloon and the air had been let out.
Garry was, once more, the first to hug her, followed by the others. Grant was able to stand, and they all had a group hug as the stage filled with well-wishers, Zara going up to Geoff and giving him a hug that made him have a silly grin. Willow was hugged by Dianne and Barbara, as well as most of the singing group. Eventually, they were told to head for the canteen, where all the performers were to be given a thank you from Mister Bamborough. Willow picked up her violin case on the way and sat with her parents as he thanked everyone for their performances and said that everyone would get maximum marks.
After more hugs and kisses, Willow and her parents were back in the car and going home. Everyone was quiet until they were on the motorway, then her mother looked back at her.
“How are you, sweetie? That was some night for you.”
“Like I’m a punctured balloon, Mum. I’ve had a wonderful time, but now it’s all over.”
Her father chuckled.
“Not all over, Willow, but just beginning. When you go to that school, you’ll already be a hero in a lot of kids eyes. Did you get asked to join the girls’ choir?”
“Zara will be getting me the rehearsal schedule. I was told to expect to be visiting hospitals and aged care homes at Christmas.”
“Well, it is a Church of England school, so I expect that community work is a big part of school life. I’m sure that they will be working to help you continue your academic life as well. It’s just that you could be busier than you’ve ever been before.”
“At least I’ll have Dianne in my year, and Barbara in the year above. I expect that Zara will be doing senior things.”
Her mother laughed.
“Including going out with that Geoff. They seemed like a nice couple.”
“That only started before we opened the second half. She’s been keen on him for a while, and he admired her during their last year but never managed to speak to her. We were all down in our room when the boys came in, and I introduced them.”
“Not only a talented musician, but a matchmaker as well!”
“Mum!!!!!”
It was quieter as they got off the motorway and into Stoneleigh Village. When the car stopped, Willow was asleep. Her father unbuckled her and picked her up while his wife took the violin case and opened the front door. He took her to her room and laid her on her bed.
“Let her lie, sweetheart. I’ll get ready for bed and come back to undress her and get her ready for bed.”
Now in her nightie and gown, her mother gently woke the sleeping girl to get her undressed, cleansed, and into her nightwear. Willow went through the motions like a zombie and was fast asleep again as the covers were pulled up. Her mother gave her a gentle kiss on her forehead.
“Sleep well, my wonderful daughter. You don’t know it, but tonight you’ve woken the tiger in your father.”
The sleeping girl murmured, “Tiger.”
Her mother closed the door quietly and went towards her own bed and her husband, who clearly displayed what she was expecting to be an enjoyable hour. She giggled to herself. He was a Deep Purple fan from way back, and it turned him on like nothing else.
………………………………………….
Back in Coventry, a group of teachers were in a deep discussion. Howard Bamborough was leading the talk.
“Willow Rose is going to be one of our best pupils. We have to do everything we can to help her fulfil her true potential. What do you think, Miss Russell?”
“She certainly stepped up like a trouper, but it did take a lot out of her. I could see her deflating after the show had finished. We will need to structure her studies to give her space to grow.”
Mister Jamieson cleared his throat.
“I insist that she keeps playing the violin. She has a natural talent and it lifted both Barbara and Dianne tonight.”
The Head smiled.
“She lifted more than those. I had heard the boys when Jim was on the organ. That was insipid compared to what we heard tonight. I’ve never heard Geoff and Gerry play so well before. If they take that into the school year, they’ll both be heading for an ‘A’ in music studies. Grant was much freer than I’ve heard him, as well. What did Yvonne say to you, Miss Russell?”
“She wants Willow in the choir and to be part of the Christmas and Easter celebrations. With all that, I expect that Willow will have to play violin in the orchestra, although we do have a full house in the strings.”
“What about putting her into the woodwind. She does have skills on the clarinet. We just haven’t heard her play that yet.”
“We can do that as a trial. The problem is that we’ve never had a girl who was so multi-talented. The organ was, I think, a one-off. Her mother told me that Willow would play a small keyboard, at home, to release pressure, and I expect that she’ll continue. I wonder if she’ll be allowed to play the chapel organ. I doubt that she’s ever tried a multi-keyboard organ and would have trouble with the foot pedals.”
“That’s a good idea. I’ll talk to the organist to set up a trial run for her one afternoon. She does read music, but it’s uncanny how she can play something that she’s just listened to. That encore they played showed her improvisation for all to see. I heard a lot of snippets of classic Bach in there.”
“I do know, Howard, that the girl is pure gold. She has the potential to give the Blue Coat a lot of good publicity. We had a reporter from the local paper here tonight. He left with a smile on his face and a story to write. We have to have a meeting with all her teachers and put in a plan to keep her safe and well until we send her on to university.”
……………………………………………
In a hotel, where Geoff and his parents had gone with Zara and her parents, the two were dancing to a DJ. Both sets of parents were talking about the sudden friendship between the teens and getting to know each other. For the teens, it was if a shutter between them had been lifted. He was, in her eyes, the best catch in her year. She was, in his eyes, the prettiest girl in school and had seemed untouchable to him until Willow had introduced them to each other.
The DJ moved to a set of slower songs, and they held each other close as they danced, and then shared the first, tentative, kiss, before a second that seemed to last for eternity for both of them.
…………………………………….
In his home office, the reporter from the Coventry Observer sat in front of his keyboard trying to think of a good opening line for his report on the school show. It had turned out to be nothing like any school show he had ever been to before. The second half had him recalling concerts that he had been to in his younger days. Now, as a senior citizen, he was relegated to social events and fluff pieces. He started typing.
‘There was smoke on the water at the Blue Coat School on Saturday evening……’
………………………………………….
It was well into Sunday morning when Willow woke with a full bladder. She wandered into the bathroom and sat to relieve herself. Washing her hands, she looked into the mirror and smiled at the girl looking back. Last night, she had met more people, and made more friends, than she had ever known before.
Back in her room, she put a gown on and went downstairs. Her mother was wiping the breakfast dishes and smiled when she walked in.
“Good morning, darling. I hope you had a wonderful sleep. You certainly deserved it. You were exhausted when we came home.”
“Morning, Mummy. Thanks for getting me undressed, I could hardly stand. That really took it out of me. I felt like the world had stopped after the show finished and wondered about the ‘what now’.”
Her mother put a bowl of muesli in front of her, along with a carton of milk.
“That’s why a lot of pop stars fall prey to drink and drugs. Being on stage gets you high, and they try to maintain the feeling with substances. I doubt that you’ll ever be asked to do something so intense in future. I expect that the school will structure your studies in an even way. I saw the look of concern on Mister Jamieson’s face when you came into the canteen after the show. I can’t see you playing Purple with those lads again. I gather that it was a one-off project. Maybe, next summer, you could be on stage emulating Chrissy McVie in a Fleetwood Mac cover band.”
“That would be nice. We’ll need to find a Stevie Nicks, though. We could call the band ‘Blue Mac.’”
As they sat, they could hear the sound of the bells from the church in the Village.
“Mum. It’s never mattered before. What religion are we? At Clifton, I just went along with the others whenever there were prayers and stuff. I enjoyed the singing. Blue Coat is a Church of England school, after all. I expect that they’ll have more to do with God than I’m used to.”
“Well, we’re nominally C of E. That’s what I put on the application to get you accepted. Not that we’re churchgoers, though. We were too busy studying, then creating our careers, and then the family and family home. What do you think about you getting dressed and we walk to wherever those bells are ringing. In a village like this, it has to be an old building.”
Willow went and had a quick shower and dressed in a dark skirt and royal blue top that matched the dress she had worn the night before. They walked to the road junction and looked at the road sign. Willow had to giggle.
“This is Vicarage Road, so I guess that we aren’t far away.”
They walked along the road towards the sound of the bells, which stopped as they came to Church Lane.
“They certainly signpost the way, Mum.”
When they arrived at the church, they both stopped and looked at it. The church was, indeed, old, possibly thirteenth century. A small crowd were outside the door, talking to a priest. When they had all left, he looked their way.
“Good morning, strangers! Have you come to see our beautiful church. The service is over and it’s empty now. Don’t be worried, I won’t spray you with holy water.”
They both liked the way the man talked, so strolled towards him. As they got close, his eyes went wide.
“Truly a miracle! Last night I was at the Blue Coat show and asked God to send me an organist as good as the girl in the band. And here you are, in the flesh. Come on in, I’ll put the kettle on, and you can tell me how you appeared on our porch like an angel sent as the answer to my prayers.”
They followed him into the church and were awed by the beauty of the building. The priest told them to look around while he got the kettle on. They looked at all the plaques that told about famous people who had worshipped there, including a Lord Mayor of London and a State Premier in Australia.
They sat in small tea-room, and he came in with a tray with tea, milk, sugar and biscuits.
“Now, let’s get comfortable and you can tell me how you came walking by.”
“Well, I’m Wendy Rose, and this is my daughter Willow. We moved into a house on Walkers Orchard Estate a few weeks ago, after our move from Bristol. My husband, Ashley, has a new job with Aston Martin.”
“And how was it that this lovely girl was attacking that organ last night? It’s very quick work to be part of a band in Coventry within a few weeks.”
“We had to go to the school on Friday, and Miss Russell showed us the Music School, and introduced us to the boys in the band. They were about to scrub their act because their organist had gone down with measles. Willow said that she knew the songs they were going to play, and the result was what you saw last night. She also played violin in the first act.”
“That mournful piece. It’s very Russian. I went there some years ago and attended one of their churches. That piece was said to have brought tears to Lenin’s eyes because it reminded him of the old days in his home village. What do you think of our organ, Willow?”
“I haven’t seen it, sir.”
“Stand up, look into the church and look up.”
“Wow! That’s a genuine pipe organ. How do you generate the air?”
“We have gone electric for the pumps, so it can be ready to play in minutes. That was part of an upgrading we had some years ago. The bells are recorded, with big speakers in the tower, and programmed by a computer. Do you want to try it?”
“Yes, please. Do you have any sheet music? I’ve never played a double keyboard or used the foot pedals.”
“Excuse us, Wendy. I’ll steal Willow from you and hear the organ. I haven’t heard it for a few years now, not since our last organist died.”
He led Willow up to the upper level, uncovered the keyboard and turned the fans on. She looked at the sheet music while the pressure built up. She found one of those pieces that are usually played to the congregation before weddings and funerals. He nodded that it was ready to go, so she pressed each key on both keyboards and then stood so that she could get the feel of the bass pedals. She looked at him with joy on her face, then started to play the piece, the music thundering out of the pipes above her.
The priest closed his eyes and thanked God that he could hear the instrument again, after years of silence. As the piece ended, Willow doodled with pieces of classical music that she had added to ‘Lazy’, remembering that most of the old masters had written for the church of their day. As she played, people began to come in and listen. She lost track of time as she was lost in a world of her own, but then remembered that they needed to be home to get lunch for her father. She ended the piece she was playing and sat there as the sound slowly reverberated around the church.
When the applause started, she turned around to see a dozen women clapping. The priest turned the fans off and they went back to the main part of the church, where another lady was comforting her mother. Willow could see that her mother had been crying. As Willow went to her, her mother almost crushed the life out of her with a hug.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 5
“Are you all right, Mum?”
“More than all right, by precious daughter. When you were playing, it reminded me of my wedding day. Where did you learn to play one of those organs?”
“Right here, right now, Mum. Basically, it’s just a more complicated version of what I played last night, but the music is a lot simpler, which allowed me to learn what it does. There’s a lot of buttons and knobs that make changes to the sound, but I didn’t want to touch anything.”
The priest was talking to the other ladies. He turned and introduced them to the Roses. One was his wife, while the others were ladies who cleaned the church and arranged flowers and catered for special occasions. They all lived with walking distance of the church, with a couple of the younger ones close to the Rose residence. It only took a few minutes before the Roses were welcomed as part of the community. They sat in the pews and were told all the things about the Village that they had never been told by the real estate agent.
The priest was nudged by his wife.
“I’m sorry, but I haven’t introduced myself, mainly because my name is on the board at the entrance. I’m Reverend Robert Russell, vicar of this parish and sometimes I take the odd service at the Blue Coat. Miss Russell, Hilda, is my sister and I believe that you would have met her. It was that connection that saw us attend the show. It was by far the best show of that type that we’ve seen.”
Before they went home, Willow was asked to go to the church and look at the music for the service next Sunday. The priest was keen to celebrate the organ sounding over the congregation again. They arranged for her to be there on Monday afternoon, with Tuesday pencilled in as well.
They went home in a far different mood than when they left. They had lunch with her father, who had been working in the back garden. He was told that they were all going to church on Sunday mornings, with Willow being the organist and that they had met the women who maintained the church and organised all the celebrations. He wasn’t keen but went along with things, once it had been explained that the vicar was Miss Russell’s brother and that attending the church would be better for them all.
That afternoon, Willow was in her room, downloading some of the more popular church pieces from her laptop and feeding the recordings into her headphones as she tried to emulate the notes on her keyboard. She found a sound that was close to the pipe organ. Some of the pieces were able to be played on a single set of keys, while others used a second set or the bass pedals. Now, having played the pipe organ, she was able to remember where she could fit them in. The thought of playing such a magnificent instrument made her very excited.
Monday morning was the appointment at the clinic. Willow could hardly eat her breakfast for the butterflies in her tummy. She was in a skirt and top this time and looked every inch a girl. When they arrived at the clinic, they were surprised to find her father in the waiting room.
“The doctor left a message for me to come over. She said that whatever we would be discussing needed both parents on hand.”
When they were called in, the doctor stood and shook hands with the parents and then looked at Willow with a smile on her face.
“Well, young lady. When you decide to come out, you certainly do it in style!”
She picked up the latest issue of the Coventry Observer and showed them an article that took up half a page. There was a photo of the band on stage, Saturday night, with Willow prominent in her blue dress, hair flying, as she played the organ. The sub-headline was ‘Talented teen steals the show at the Blue Coat School concert.’ Willow looked at the doctor.
“Oops”
“Oops isn’t strong enough. Last time I saw you, you were William with a problem. I was weighing up which way I was going to break the news to you all, this morning, and then I saw this and it makes everything so much easier. Sit down, and I’ll tell you what is about to happen and why.”
They sat and waited as she went back behind her desk and switched on a screen behind her.
‘We did a lot of tests and took blood the last time you were here. The bloods showed that you are normal in every way – for a teenage girl. There was minimal testosterone and a high level of oestrogens, not quite the level that one normally finds in a girl your age, but at least ten times more than you find in a boy.”
She pressed a button on her computer and the screen lit up, showing a number of cross-sections of Willow’s groin.
“This is the best picture to illustrate the reason.”
She picked up a pointer and put it to the picture.
“Here are your testicles, and they are still fully inside your body. Here is the reason why. When you were kicked, it damaged both the canals that the testicles descend through. They have been stuck well beyond the normal deployment time. They are very small, and that dark patch shows that they are starting to rot. Where they would have settled, your scrotum, the skin has never created the usual sac, which is why you’re still quite smooth there.”
Her father looked at the picture.
“What do you suggest? It seems to me that the testicles have to be removed as soon as possible.”
“Exactly. My colleagues have had a conference, and we want you to sign the paperwork that will allow us to operate. The procedure, for now, is purely to save your daughter any problems should they turn cancerous. It will be keyhole surgery, where there will be two tiny incisions and the offending tissue removed. The holes will be glued closed so there will be no need to take any stitches out. Willow will be able to go home after a couple of days.”
“What about the penis?”
“She is far too young for corrective surgery of that complexity. What we can do is use the same surgical glue to attach the penis in the ‘tucked’ position. That will need to be renewed every three months. It will mean that she can wear normal panties and look like a girl without need of a gaff. She will have to sit to pee like any other girl and will have to wipe herself after.”
“What about the hormone balance?”
“She will not need blockers, and we can start her on a low dose to build the oestrogen levels, as long as the three of you agree.”
She looked at Willow.
“What do you think? You’re the one who can say yes or no.”
“When can we do this?”
“The team would like it done as soon as possible. If you come back Wednesday afternoon, we can admit you and do the operation then. You won’t be put under. It’s a happy jab and a local. You won’t feel a thing. We’ll keep you in until Friday, but you shouldn’t do anything strenuous for a week. I believe that you start school a week later.”
Willow looked at her parents, seeing the worry in their eyes.
“Can we do this? It will solve so many problems. It’s the answer to why I am the way I am, and I will be able to live a normal life.”
Her mother reached out and took her hand.
“Of course, we say yes, sweetheart. I have come to appreciate you as a clever daughter in this past week. It will give you time to recover for the church on Sunday.”
The doctor had the paperwork at hand, and they signed.
“If you bring Willow in at four, we’ll admit her under her new name and change our records. You will be able to pick her up on Friday, about eleven. She can wear the clothes that she arrived in and will just need nightwear and a gown. We provide the slippers and toiletries. She will have a large strip on her groin. I suggest that you leave this on for a week, then carefully peel it off. It will have a hole for the urine, and we will shave her there so there shouldn’t be any problem with it pulling out any hairs.”
They thanked the doctor and went out to the reception area. Before he went back to work, her father hugged her.
“I’ll come in to see you during my break Thursday, sweetheart.”
“Thank you, Daddy.”
With her mother holding her hand, Willow was led back to the car. She was quiet on the way home, thinking about how she had arrived at this point. She felt no anger at the boy who had kicked her, and only a little towards Tony Horton. She realised that he was only acting on what he saw before him, and that he had been seeing a sissy. She started to think about what she would need for the next few days and decided that the main thing would be her MP3 player and headphones.
Her mother looked over to her.
“Do you still have that cheap phone we got you when you started high school?”
“No Mum. That went into the drain in the middle of the playground, along with my original maths book.”
“Oh! It was not expensive and a pay as you go plan. That’s why you’ve never brought it to me to be topped up. With all your new friends, I think it would be time for another one, with it added to our plan. I can’t see you being on it all day, seeing that it would take some time off of your music.”
They detoured into Warwick and found the telco that was the family provider. When they carried on for home, Willow was checking out her new phone. It wasn’t top of the range, but did allow her to send and receive texts, look on Google, take pictures, record sounds, and store her MP3 data. This one would not end up in a drain, she knew, because she hadn’t met anyone yet who hated her enough to do such a deed.
There was, she thought, grimly, still time for that, however remote it seemed now.
Her mother looked at her.
“Why the grim face?”
“Just wondering when the rainbow ends, and I come face to face with some bucket of excrement who doesn’t like me. I just remembered how I lost my other phone, and it wasn’t a good time.”
“You’re a different person now. You’ll see, there will be nothing but positive vibes for you.”
“I hope you’re right, Mum. That would be really good.”
“After today, honey, you will be a girl, and boys don’t bully girls. Only girls bully girls.”
“Oh, thank you. I’ll be looking over my shoulder to see if I can spot any ‘mean girls’ in school. How do I identify them? Well; they will be popular, pretty, grade ‘A’ students, have lots of girlfriends, as well as boys lusting after them. That means that I may have to watch out for my reflection.”
They both laughed and Willow felt a lot better. In the afternoon, she wore a full skirt to allow her leg room and held her mother’s hand as they walked to the church. Reverend Russell was sweeping the porch as they arrived.
“A very good afternoon to you, ladies. Come on in and I’ll fire up old Betsy. I sorted out some sheet music for you to look at, Willow. I’ve also thought about Sunday’s service and have pulled out the sheet music for the four hymns. They will be the main content of the service, but you can choose the before and after pieces, quiet and thoughtful ones, please. When you’re settled, I need to go off and visit one of our parishioners. I should be an hour or so.”
He waited until she had seen where things were and then left. Her mother spent some time taking pictures in the church while Willow looked at the hymn sheets. There was the list with the order. She looked down and called to her mother.
“Mum!”
“Yes, dear.”
“Can you add these numbers to the board on the wall?”
Her mother found the box of numbers under the board. Willow called out the numbers in the order she had been given, and her mother set them up on the board. While she was doing that, the vicar’s wife came in and helped.
“Now. I’m going to play the music for those hymns. I doubt that I’ll be able to hear you, but I will see you with this mirror. If I’ve gone off course, just wave a lot and I’ll stop. I’ll doodle while you get yourself sorted, so wave when you’re ready to sing. This will help me get used to using the mirror.”
She lowered the stool until she was happy with the height and started playing the quiet piece that she had learned the evening before. She was getting used to looking in the mirror while playing when she saw the raised hand. She stopped and started playing the intro to the hymn that sets the cadence. She quietened her playing as they began singing and she realised, for the first time, what a lovely singing voice her mother had.
They worked through the four hymns, and she went back down to take a sip of water that they had brought. The vicar’s wife, that her mother was calling Edie, told her that she would be getting some of the helpers together on Tuesday, so they could rehearse the service. She explained that Willow would have to follow her husband’s movements as she played the opening music, and time it to stop when he had reached the altar and turned to face the congregation. At the end, she would start again as he made his first step towards the porch. On Sunday, the bells would be only ringing before the beginning of the service, and then after vicar was outside, with them ringing as she played the quiet piece for the congregation to leave. Willow realised that this was going to be far more complicated than she had first thought. Edie told her that the speakers were directed away from the tower, so they were a lot quieter inside the church.
Willow went back up, tidied the sheets and turned the fans off, coming back with Edie giving her a hug and telling her that she had made her husband very happy. So happy, that he had called his sister and invited her to attend the service on Sunday.
Walking home, Willow held her mother’s arm.
“You have a wonderful voice, Mum. You should sing more often.”
“Surely you jest!”
“No jest, Mum. I could hear you from where I sat, even above the organ. You do realise, don’t you, that you’ll need a church dress by Sunday, and I will need something with a full skirt, suitable for the lady organist.”
“You really are a daughter. Of course we’ll get something. I’ll ask Edie where the best places are, and we’ll get something Wednesday morning, we have to be at the clinic in the late afternoon.”
“Don’t remind me! Since we were there, I’ve been totally Willow and I love it. By the way, I remember you saying something about a tiger when you tucked me in on Saturday night.”
“I thought that you were asleep! You did say ‘Tiger’ in your sleep. Is it something special?”
“It’s just that I looked around my room and there was nothing in it that suggested ‘girl’. If I invited other girls around, it would look very bland. I’ll need your input of things to jazz it up a bit, but I had thought that a small plush tiger would be a good touch. We can get some Blue Tack and put up a couple of band pictures for a start.”
“Good thinking, Willow. Better to think of things like that than have to explain the austerity later. I should look out for girly sheets and pillowcases as well.”
That afternoon, the house phone rang while Willow was cleaning her room and checking for spaces on the walls for pictures. She heard her mother answer it.
“Yes, this is Mrs. Rose.”
“Yes, I did leave my details with you.”
“Hold on while I get a pencil. Got it. Can you repeat the address again?”
“Thank you for that. I’ll be at the Seven Stars Estate tomorrow afternoon at one.”
Willow went downstairs as her mother stood with a grin on her face.
“What’s up, Mum?”
“I have an interview tomorrow afternoon. It appears that a marketing company that has a graphic arts section wants to see me about a job. The good news is that it’s very close to the school. I wondered about the speed of the appointment, but the lady told me that the client had asked for me to go in before they set up anymore. I wonder why?”
“Did you have a reputation that precedes you? Perhaps the guy was one of your customers when you forged IDs?”
“Very funny, young lady. We’ll both find out because we need to shop after I’ve seen him. You’ll have to wait in reception while I’m interviewed.”
On Tuesday, they walked over to the church, finding a good dozen ladies and Reverend Russell waiting for them. He took Willow into the church.
“Listen carefully, Willow. You will be at the organ, playing as the church fills, and I come in through the door below you. I will have a couple of church wardens with me on Sunday. Keep playing as I walk along the aisle and get to the small table that we use as a normal altar. We only use the High Altar for weddings, funerals and special occasions. As I get close to it, you will bring the music to an end. Got it so far?”
“Yes, sir. Clear as a bell.”
“I will then lead the congregation in prayer. Today will be very short. Then I go up the stairs to the pulpit and give the reading. You will be able to hear me clearly when I say which hymn we will sing. That’s when you play the intro. If there is a disturbance, hold off on the main part until things are settled. As the service proceeds, I will call the number of the hymns. When they are singing the last hymn, I come back down and give the last prayer. When you hear amen, you wait a few seconds and then start the quiet piece as I leave the church to stand by the main door. The bells will also be ringing. When the church has emptied, you can close things down and come out as well. Today we will just do snippets of the prayers but will sing all the hymns. Now, up you go, and we’ll see if we can nail it first time.”
He went towards the door and Willow went up to the organ and turned on the fans. When everything was ready, she started playing. As she did so, the ladies slowly came into the church, picked up a hymn book and took their places in the pews. Willow saw that they all had a pew of their own, with her mother sitting with Edie. When she played, she wondered if that, and the doors to the pews, was something left over from earlier centuries, when families had their own pews. The ladies settled themselves and then rose as one.
In the mirror, she saw the vicar walk up the aisle, towards the table. She really had to concentrate as he drew close, and she allowed the music to taper off. He knelt at the cross, then stood and turned.
“Thank you for coming along today. We are here, this day, to thank the Lord for sending us an angel to play for us.”
He then turned and climbed the steps to the pulpit. In a strong voice, he announced the first hymn. Willow could see the books being opened and played the intro, waited a few seconds and started the hymn, hearing the congregation sing. It made her wonder what it would be like, leading the singing in a bigger hall.
When the last notes died away, the vicar smiled.
“For Willow’s benefit, this is where I try to send everyone to sleep. Our second hymn is…”
As the last hymn was being sung, he left the pulpit and returned to the altar. As the notes faded, he asked that the congregation spend a few moments in silent prayer. After that he turned and started walking towards the main door and Willow started the quiet piece that she liked. She carried on until the church was empty and then let the organ fade. She tidied up, turned off the fans and went down to leave the building, walking outside to be hugged by everyone, many with tears running down their cheeks.
Reverend Russell also hugged her.
“Nailed it in one. You truly are a gem, Willow. That was perfect. There are a few here that have never heard the organ, and, as you can see, it has a profound effect on people. Can I depend on you to be with us at just before eight-thirty on Sunday?”
“Yes, Reverend Russell, you can. I can’t wait to hear what it sounds like with more people in the church.”
“Bless you, child, it will be wonderful, I know it.”
It took half an hour before she and her mother could prise themselves away from the other ladies, all in praise of Willow for bringing the organ to life. She began to realise that it had been a very moving experience for most of them, something that had brightened their day.
Back at home, Willow changed into her denim skirt and hung the fuller one away. They had sandwiches and then got in the car, arriving at the address a quarter of an hour before the appointment. When they went into reception, her mother gave her name and the girl asked if it was Willow with her. Her mother said it was and the girl asked them to sit while she went to let her boss know that they were there. When she had gone and they had sat, Willow whispered.
“Mum, that girl was among the dancers on Saturday night. I thought her blond hair with the blue streaks was fantastic.”
The girl came back and asked them to follow her. They were both ushered into a large office where a man was standing to welcome them.
“Mrs. Rose, thank you for coming. And you brought your talented daughter. I’m Graham Martin and I was at the concert on Saturday night. I was dazzled, along with everyone else, with the talent and sheer exuberance that she gave out. When I saw the list of names of the few people that the agency had sent me, I wondered if the Mrs. Rose was her mother so just had to see you first. If you sit over there, Willow, I’ll talk to your mother about the job.”
Willow watched as they spoke about what the job entailed, and her mother showed him her certificates and a reference from the last place she had worked. He looked at that, carefully.
“This is dated some years ago. How are you with current techniques?”
“I subscribe to the trade magazine and have kept up with the new equipment. My husband is a design engineer with Aston Martin, and we have a near-new computer. I have downloaded some of the new programs and played around with them.”
“Excellent. Can you come back on Thursday and spend some time with our graphics team. If you can convince them that you know your stuff, we can start you on Monday. We’ll work out the contract details then.”
“Thank you, sir. What time do you open?”
“The warehouse is open around the clock during the week, but the graphics usually turn up at around nine.”
“I’ll be here at nine on Thursday.”
He showed them out and they got in the car.
“Willow, my sweet daughter, your talents have another notch on the handle. You’re now also an influencer. For that, we’re going to get a couple of good church outfits. Edie has given me the name of the best place and to drop her name when we’re there. I think that we are now finding out that it doesn’t matter what you know, it’s who you know that counts.”
They went into the Coventry city to an address that had been entered into the GPS. They went into the shop and dropped Edie’s name and why they were there. They were shown an array of outfits, with Willow walking out with two full skirts and a range of tops that would go with them, allowing her to look different within a budget. Her mother had chosen a dress and a skirt suit that would be good for working in as well as for church.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
There are five completed books of this story, with a total of 114 chapters. I figure that if I post them every few days, it will take the rest of this year to complete. Hoping that you all stay with it.
Marianne
Chapter 6
Willow spent Wednesday morning playing her keyboard and trying not to think about what lay before her. The first big step in moving on from William, through the Billie-Jean period, and into being Willow. She decided that she would be Willow Rose from now on. She skipped lunch, as ordered, and then walked over to the church, to just stand there and look at the organ, thinking about being up there, with it, on Sunday, after the operation.
When they arrived at the clinic, the admission was quick, and Willow was shown a bed where she could put her small overnight bag. The nurses allowed her to get hugged by her mother and she was left on her own. She was helped to strip and was given a hospital gown to wear. She was given an injection. When she was told to get onto the trolley, she really didn’t care what was happening.
In the operating theatre, the surgeon said hello to her, and they put an oxygen mask on her face and rigged up a barrier so she couldn’t see what was happening. She felt a small prick somewhere near her groin, then decided that it was time to have a nap.
She woke in the bed of the room where she had put her bag. She looked at the ceiling for a while and then moved. A buzzer sounded and a nurse came in.
“You’re awake, sweetie. That’s good. The doctor will be doing her round soon. Is there anything you want?”
“A drink, please.”
One was given to her in a safety bottle that she could suck at. She was trying to figure out what was different in her when the doctor came in.
“Good evening, Willow. I can tell you that everything went as planned. The nurse will give you something to help you sleep, although I’ve been told that you dozed off before the operation. If you need to go to the toilet, ring for the nurse, as you might be a bit rubbery in the leg department. Sweet dreams and I’ll see you tomorrow.”
After a little while, the nurse brought in a tray with some food on it, cranking the bed into a position where she could eat. There was a water glass with a small container with two pills. She took the pills and then asked if she could go to the toilet. The nurse helped her stand and go to the toilet. When she had washed her hands, the nurse took the gown and gave her the nightie she had brought in the bag.
“That’s better, sweetie. I’ll take that nasty old gown away. Let’s get you into bed and comfortable. Those pills don’t take long to work.”
Willow slept until the early hours, waking with a bladder problem. She sat up in bed and swivelled with her legs ready to take her weight. That’s when she pressed the button. A few minutes later, another nurse came in.
“Toilet time, missy. Here, let me take your weight for a bit.”
When she had finished, she was able to stand and move on her own.
“Thank you, nurse. I think that I’m good now.”
“Let’s put your gown on. We’re starting the morning rituals. I’ll be back to take your vitals. Why don’t you take a few steps outside the room, a few up, a few back, until you feel normal. You have been in bed for a long time, but we want you to start acting normally. You’ll probably be screaming to leave before lunch, but we need you in place for another day.”
When the nurse had gone, Willow shuffled around the room, then peeked out of the door. Keeping close to the wall, she did as suggested and walked up and back until she wasn’t stooped. Back in the room, she felt around her groin, finding the cover that had been put there. She realised that she had been going to the toilet and wiping in the same fashion that she had been doing when wearing the gaff.
She sat in the chair next to the bed, turning on her phone and listening to her MP3 files. The nurse came in and took the vitals, noting them on a clipboard. A few minutes later, breakfast arrived. She didn’t care what they had served, she just devoured it all. Feeling a lot better, she went back to her phone and listened to the downloads of organ music that she imagined playing, seeing the keyboards in her mind.
The morning went slowly, until her father came in.
“How are you feeling, Willow?”
“Ready to find a motorbike and leap over the outer fence.”
“That’s one of the problems of being in hospital, my darling. The next thing is that you’ll realise that they serve rubbish food.”
“Breakfast was OK. I ate it all but never really looked at what it was. Never mind, only another three meals to go. I wonder how Mum is doing at that job trial.”
“She said that she would ring you this afternoon. I’ll call her and let her know that you’re feeling normal. She is excited at the idea of working again. She gave up work when you came along, but I know that she missed the friendship of the workplace. Just imagine if you had to stop playing music for over ten years.”
“That, dear Daddy, is something I could never imagine. Without music, I would just shrivel away. Mummy cried at the church on Monday. She said that the organ music reminded her of her wedding day.”
“Don’t be surprised if you see tears in my eyes on Sunday. Our wedding day was magical for both of us. We could hardly wait to be together every day, and every night. We still feel the same about each other. You’ll know what I’m talking about when you meet your soulmate.”
He stayed with her another five minutes and then had to head back to his office. Willow sat, quietly, for some time afterwards. In the last week, her parents had evolved into human beings, almost friends. She had spoken with her father more than the ten years before. She had been taught girly things by her mother. Even sitting still while her face was being made up was like close communication. She had shared things with her mother that would have been impossible to even mention in the past.
Her reverie was interrupted by the doctor walking in.
“Good morning, Willow. Let me look at the clipboard and then we can talk. Your vitals are all good. How do you feel? How is it to urinate?”
“I feel good, doctor. I had a little walk this morning and going to the toilet is the same as it was when I wore a gaff. I’m getting a bit bored, just sitting here.”
“That’s to be expected, a busy girl like you should be champing at the bit. Just another twenty-four hours and we let you go. We have to make sure that there are no complications, no sudden fever or sharp pains where they operated. Just think of it as writing a pop song; it never works perfectly the first time. You always have to let it evolve.”
“I suppose you’re right. I can imagine what I’ll be playing on Sunday. That will pass the time.”
“What’s happening Sunday? I hope it’s not a gig with that band, you’re not up for standing and grooving for an hour or more.”
“It’s a lot more dignified than that. I’m playing the church organ at St. Marys in Stoneleigh. Somehow, I got roped in again. The Reverend Russell is over the moon to hear it. They haven’t had an organist for a few years.”
“You do get around. I might come along to hear you. That article in the paper made you sound like some child prodigy.”
“As long as it’s good publicity for the school. I haven’t even had my first day there and I’ve met more of the other students than I knew in Bristol. Mind you, there are a few from there that I don’t miss.”
“Yes, the guys in the operating theatre commented on your scars. It must have been horrible.”
“It’s in the past. I have another life to live, thanks to you. Have you any idea when I can get the big operation done?”
“If you react as expected to the hormones, I expect that by the time you’re sixteen, you’ll have natural breasts and can pass all the tests to let you transition. It’s a big move, Willow, and you need to be totally happy with your life when it gets to that time. Anyway, must run, more patients to see. I’ll come in tomorrow to sign you off.”
………………………………………..
As Willow listened to her music, an office in Coventry was the scene of two men with the Observer on the table. Artie Hamilton and Zac Martin were promoters of music festivals. Artie was trying to win an argument,
“I tell you, Zac. These kids could be the next big thing!”
“But they’re just kids, Artie! Those boys aren’t even sixteen yet, and the girl looks younger. We’re not in the game of throwing kids to the wolves. They may have been as good as this article says, but they may be better in a few years. They have school to finish. Let’s let them know that we want to sign them, but there’s no way they will be allowed to play in the festival for a year or two. The paper says that the performance was a summer project. They may never play Purple again.”
“We’re in the box seat to make a fortune! We still have to make contact and let them know that we’re able to put them into the public arena. We can only hope that they want to be stars. I’ll agree with you, this time, but we need to talk to the school.”
…………………………………………..
At the Seven Stars industrial park, Wendy Rose was happily working on a computer, creating a page of a supermarket brochure. The design manager had given her the proofs that morning and told her that she could go home when she finished it. He knew that others would take up to ten hours to get something suitable.
…………………………………………
It was later in the afternoon, and Willow had left much of her lunch, when her phone rang.
“Willow Rose speaking.”
“Willow, I’ve got the job! I had to produce a page for one of those supermarket things that they add to the newspapers. I did it in a time that the boss said was amazing! I start on Monday.”
“Great news, Mum. Dad popped in today and I’m moving about. I had a walk to the nurses station and back, a few times. The doctor told me that I’ll be signed off after she sees me, tomorrow.”
“I’ll be there around ten to bring you home. At the moment, I’m heading for my bank to have a debit card in your name added to my account. It will let you get extra things for school without needing me around. I don’t know how we’ll get you into the city to buy the rest of the things you need, but, knowing you, my angel, something will save the day. If Miss Russell comes to the church on Sunday, I might ask her if she knows someone who can take you.”
“Don’t you start calling me an angel, Mum, or I might sprout wings and buzz around.”
They spoke some more and, when Willow closed her eyes, she imagined flying around the house with a duster in her hand. The nurse came in to take her vitals.
“It’s good to see you smiling, Willow. Something you thought of?”
“I was just on the phone to Mum. She implied that I was an angel, and I just had the picture of me flying around the house with a feather duster, doing all the high places.”
“Dusting and vacuuming are the bane of us girls. It’s like brushing your teeth every day, only not so nice when it comes to taste. Put your arm out so I can put this blood pressure sleeve on it.”
By the time that Willow went to sleep that night, she had been forced to stop and relax, as there was nothing that she could do to change things. It made her realise what she was now heading for as a girl at school, and what was going to be expected of her in later life. She may be talented, but was a boy no longer, not that she ever was one. The future was one where she would need to be twice as good as the men around her to even get recognition. She had her mother’s genes when hard work was needed, so that was a help. The fact that it was her mother’s genes made her think that she should have been born female in the first place, and the years of being William was just training in being stoic.
Her dreams, that night, were a jumble of projections into some strange future. At one time, she was in front of an orchestra in a long dress and playing the violin, then she was singing in front of a rock band. For a while, she was playing a keyboard, sometimes a piano concerto, then some Purple or Mac, or in a big church, playing one of the hymns which blended into the toccata and fugue that everybody could hum the opening bars. Before she woke up, she was playing her clarinet on the edge of a roaring waterfall. She woke with the sound of the breakfast trolley coming around and the need to pee.
After breakfast and the taking of the vitals, she was allowed to dress, leaving he gaff in the bag. She was happy that she had worn a skirt, as jeans would have been too tight in her groin for the moment. Her mother came in just after ten, and the doctor wasn’t far behind her. With a list of do’s and don’ts to follow for the following week, she breathed in the open air as they left the clinic and walked towards the car.
“You look like you’ve just finished five years in jail, honey. It couldn’t have been that bad.”
“It was all right, really, Mum. It’s just that it gave me a lot of spare time to think about life. What they did to me has given me my direction. Up to now, I’ve been wearing these clothes as a disguise, but now, they’re expected of me.”
“You do make a cute girl, honey. That really helps. Nobody at the school have ever thought that you were anything else. I saw the doctor before I came in to you. She gave me the name of a specialist to take you to in a year or so, as well as a script for your pills. They did give you an injection of hormones to start your own body working. When we get home, I want you to relax for the rest of the day and tomorrow. Sunday will be early enough for you to walk to the church.”
“I’ve thought of a couple of Bach pieces that I can use for the before and after music. I suppose that I’ll be expected to play every Sunday. That won’t be too bad, if I can go in on a Saturday and get used to all the things that the organ can do. It’s a bit liking having a supercomputer and just using it as an adding machine at the moment. I had never realised how much wonderful music you can make with something that’s been gathering dust for years.”
“The Reverend has been busy this week. We had a letter drop yesterday, inviting all and sundry to the ‘Organ Celebration’ service. There’s also a package for you from the school. I expect that it’s your information about lessons. You will have to study normal things and the music is added if you want to go to university.”
“Could I? Go to university? I know that both you and Dad went to Cambridge. Has anyone else in the family gone?”
“Your Aunt Millicent went to Cambridge before your Dad started. She’s working in America as a lawyer. One of your father’s uncles has been living there for a while. I believe that there is an extended family there, but we’ve never had the time to follow it up.”
“I remember one time we went to see my grandparents in Oxford. Great-Grandfather was funny, kept telling me to calm down or else he would hobble me like a steer.”
“Your father’s family are all a bit weird.”
When they arrived at home, Willow was putting her nightie in the wash basket. Her mother smiled.
“Go and put the other things in your room, Willow. Tell me what you think when you come back down.”
Willow went to her room and opened the door. Her mother heard the squeal and grinned. Willow stood in the doorway and looked at her room. From the girl musician posters to the lilac sheets and pillows, to the new vanity and the plush tiger sitting on her bed, just begging for her to cuddle it. She dropped the bag on her bed and ran downstairs to hug her mother.
“Thank you Mummy. It’s fantastic!”
“I’m glad you like it, sweetheart. We can change it or add to it as you want, but it will allow you to invite friends home.”
They sat at the kitchen table and opened the package from the school. It contained her curriculum for the school year. She was going to be studying the usual subjects that she had already taken exams for at Clifton. There were a couple of options with Social Science, Technology, History and Politics. She was in the KS3 stream, with three hours study of music every two weeks.
There was a note from Miss Russell to tell her that they would like her to go to the school in the week before the first day, to catch up on the first-year subjects so that she wouldn’t be behind. The first year had performed ‘Joseph and the Amazing Dreamcoat’, been introduced to staff notation, studied rhythm with performing an eight-beat composition, studied Indian and Chinese music, instruments of an orchestra and played with technology.
Much of it was part of her previous studies or things she had played around with in private. The second year was going to be interesting, with lessons on pop music, the blues, music for a computer game, drumming and drum programming, remixing and Gamelan. It was all designed to expand the children’s minds.
There was a long list of after-school activities, with choirs, orchestras, guitar, drumming, folk, gospel, and jazz groups. There was also a list of standard clothing for both girls and boys, much of what was required wasn’t yet in her wardrobe.
“What are we going to do about these clothes, Mum, if you’re at work?”
“The vicar said that he was inviting his sister on Sunday. We can ask her if there are any volunteers to take you to the shop that supplies it all. The address is on the bottom of the list. Here, this is the card that I organised for you. The bank was able to press it while I waited. It is a debit card linked to the family account. Don’t lose it, use it wisely, and bring me all the receipts. I’ll take you to school and then go into work. I finish at five, so you may have to wait for me. Miss Russell may want to use that time with those first-year subjects. I’m sure they have all the instruments in the school, so you won’t have to take your own.”
After dinner, Willow went up to her room to play the keyboard, have a shower, and dive into bed to cuddle her tiger.
On Saturday, she was told to relax and rest so that she was ready for Sunday. Next morning, they were all up early, had breakfast and then made ready to go out. Willow wore the new skirt and a powder-blue top. Her mother did a quick make-up job on her and checked that she had everything in her handbag that she may need. They walked to the church, with the bells commencing as they strolled on Church Lane. As they were early, there weren’t many there, mainly the staunch supporters on the church. They were warmly welcomed, and Willow left them to set up the organ, turning on the fans.
She looked out to the body of the church, now bedecked with flowers, and double-checked that the hymns were the same that she had played, and in the same order. She sat and took some deep breaths to steady her, then began to play the Bach piece that she was beginning to love with this organ.
She glanced in the mirror as the church started filling. She saw Miss Russell come in with Mister Bamborough. Her parents sat with Edie and, by nine, there was a group standing below her. The congregation rose and she could see the vicar, resplendent in his full regalia, walk away from her, with a similarly dressed church warden on each side. She tapered the music off as they arrived at the altar. After that, the service followed what had happened on Tuesday, but with the prayers and the sermon filling the periods between the hymns.
As the service drew to an end, the vicar came down from the pulpit and knelt at the altar after asking for the congregation to take some time in personal prayer. When he stood and faced the congregation, he smiled.
“Ladies and gentlemen, parishioners and guests. Today is the first service in a good five years when we have heard the organ. I won’t ask for applause, but I thank our organist from the bottom of my heart. I’ll greet you all, outside, but for now, play us out, Willow.”
Willow started playing the final music as the bells pealed and the vicar left the church, with a lot of people looking up at the organ before they went outside. She listened to the bells and timed her final chords for when she expected them to finish the peal. It was pure luck when the notes faded in unison. When she got back onto ground level, with the fans off and the papers tidy, she was greeted by her parents, who both hugged her. As predicted, her father had moist eyes. They went outside, where there were a lot of people milling around and waiting to thank her for the experience. As things quietened down, her father asked the vicar if he could have a closer look at the memorials inside.
“This church is your church. Feel free to explore. Come back if you want to see more. Your family is truly welcome here.”
Ashley went back in and started to look at all the memorials with a nagging thought. He was looking at the one for Gilbert Henry Chandos Leigh when a man stood by him.
“Silly bugger fell off a cliff. That’s what happens when you don’t follow the family traditions and go into politics or the military. I’m Rupert Leigh, and these folks are my ancestors, once removed.”
“Ashley Rose. It was my daughter playing the organ today.”
“Ah, you must be very proud of her. You were looking very thoughtful just before. Is there something that worries you?”
“Not a worry, but my family, on my mother’s side, had an ancestor who was married to a Leigh. I remember being at my grandfather’s knee and him showing me a photo of a painting. He told me that his father, or it could have been his grandfather, used to visit his sister at a grand house. Oddly, he had a full set of cowboy clothes for an adult, as well as a set that fitted me. We would sometimes dress up and go in local parades.”
“Do you know the sister’s name?”
“She was Marie, and her brother was Alec Campbell.”
“Do you remember the picture of her husband. Was he in military uniform, with a sword and a big star on his chest?
He got his phone out and swiped it a few times before showing the picture to Ashley.
“Like this?”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 7
Ashley looked at the picture and then had to put his hand on the nearest support.
“That’s the picture. Why have you got it?”
“Before you start hyperventilating, let’s sit in down and I’ll tell you who he is.”
They went and sat in a pew and Rupert laid out the family history, as he knew it.
“That man was Francis Dudley Leigh, the third Baron Leigh. He was born in eighteen fifty-five and died in nineteen thirty-eight. He was a direct descendant of the Leighs that are venerated in this church. He married twice, and Marie Campbell was his second wife. The only thing we knew about her was that she was American, as was his first wife. They married in October nineteen twenty-three and she died in nineteen forty-eight. There were no children from either marriage.”
“That fits. My great-great grandfather was born about nineteen-oh-five. My great grandfather in nineteen thirty, so may well have visited his aunt as a young boy. He married and their daughter became my grandmother Bates. Her daughter is my mother, who married Bill Rose. So, what happens when there are no offspring?”
“I’ll get to that. First, Francis Dudley Leigh, the third baron, was a very successful man with a distinguished military career in the Eleventh Hussars. That regiment was originally the personal bodyguard of Charles the First, and closely linked to royalty for many years after that. He ended his military service as the Colonel of the Warwickshire Yeomanry and was given that star on his chest in nineteen twenty-two. That represents the Knighthood of Grace of the Order of St. John. When he died, the Fourth Baron was my own grandfather, Rupert William Dudley Leigh, a long-lived man who died in nineteen seventy-nine aged seventy-one.”
“Wow! That’s some real history. I always thought that there was an American connection. My grandmother’s two brothers are in America, and so is my aunt Millicent.”
“Look, Ashley. The original of that painting is hanging in the Stoneleigh Abbey, in the other part of the village. If you and your family follow me, I’ll get you in so that you can see it.”
“We only live around the corner, so we walked over this morning.”
“Even better. You come with me, and I’ll bring you home again. I expect that it might take a while to explain things to your family.”
They walked outside and joined his wife and Willow, who were talking to Miss Russell. They waited until Miss Russell gave Willow a hug and headed off for lunch with her brother in the vicarage.
“Dear, I would like to introduce you to Rupert Leigh. Rupert, this is my wife Wendy and my daughter Willow.”
“Pleased to meet you ladies. Ashley and I have just had a very interesting conversation. It seems that he has a connection to this church and the Leighs buried here that he has only just learned about. If you’re free to go, please join me in my car and I’ll take you to Stoneleigh Abbey, the ancestral home of the good folk in the church. It’s been run as a charitable trust since nineteen ninety and is open to the public. We will look at a painting that Ashley had only ever seen a photo of, and we’ll try to explain a very odd coincidence.”
They went to his Bentley and got in, the two ladies in great comfort in the rear seat. Willow had an almost unstoppable urge to do the royal wave as they passed people. It didn’t help that many of the people they passed were waving to her when they saw who was in the car.
The Abbey was the other side of the main village, a couple of miles away. It did start out as a monastery, but it had been somewhat altered over the years, and was now an enormous Georgian mansion. Rupert spoke to the lady on the door and then guided them to a short corridor which had a few paintings. He stopped in front of one.
“Is this the picture?”
Ashley could hardly speak, with his eyes getting moist for the second time that morning.
“It is, exactly as I remembered it, only much better in colour.”
Wendy couldn’t contain herself.
“What’s this about, darling?”
“The short story is that this man was the third Baron Leigh, and he was married to the sister of my great-great grandfather. When he died, the title went to one of Rupert’s ancestors”
Rupert gave a little more information.
“The original Baronet Leigh was given the title by Charles the First, for accommodating the King when Warwick wouldn’t allow him entry to the town, during the Civil War. The title was changed in sixteen forty-three when Baronet Thomas Leigh changed it to be Baron Leigh. When the sixth Baron, Edward Leigh, died in seventeen eighty-six, the title lapsed.”
“The title returned in eighteen thirty-nine with Chandos Leigh, the new first Baron. When he died, William Henry Leigh became the second Baron Leigh, followed by the gentleman in the picture, Francis Dudley Leigh. As I said before, the title then went to his cousin, Rupert William Dudley Leigh, then to his son, John Piers Leigh until his death in two thousand and three. My father, Christopher Leigh, is the sixth Baron and no, he never appeared in horror movies.”
“Do I have to call you sir, sir?”
“No, Willow. You can call me Rupert. Why don’t we go to the dining room, I might be able to get the cooks to rustle up lunch for us. Then I’ll show you around. I used to come here as a toddler.”
All they could get was pie and chips, so found a table to eat at. Rupert told them the rest of the story, while Ashley was still trying to take it all in.
“When my father dies, I’ll become the seventh Baron of the new line. This house was home to the Leigh family until the nineteen sixties, when the then Baron launched a charitable trust after a nasty fire. They lived here, on and off, until nineteen ninety. It was restored from a pretty shocking state with help from the Lottery Fund. The Leigh family now calls Adlestrop Park Estate, near Moreton-in-Marsh, in the Gloucestershire Cotswolds, our home. It’s more easily called Fern Farm.”
Willow was fascinated by this cosmic shift of her family history.
“Rupert, Dad’s link is only by marriage. That means that he doesn’t have any official place in the family history, doesn’t it?”
“Correct, Willow. What today has done is to give my family a chance to fill in the gaps with Marie’s family line. With his information, we can find out more about the American connection. It also allows me to invite you all to visit the family and stay with us one weekend. My father will insist, once I tell him what I’ve learned.”
“This house seems very popular with visitors. It’s lovely.”
“That’s because one of the cousins, way back, was Cassandra Leigh, and she married Reverend Austen. They had spent some time here with their daughters, Cassandra and Jane. You know, the writer Jane Austen.”
“So, she may have used her memories of being here as the locations for her stories?”
“It’s quite possible. Her parents lived in a modest vicarage, so she had to get the grand houses from somewhere.”
They exchanged contact details and Willow was able to add Baron-to-be Rupert to her phone list. He gave them a tour of the house that included some ‘No Entry’ places. The chapel was almost identical to the church, with the doors on the pews. The biggest difference was that the organ pipes were brightly polished. Rupert took them home and they all had a hug before he drove away in the Bentley, with a few of the gardening neighbours looking on. In the house, they all went to change into something comfortable, and Willow sat on her bed to tell Tiger the news.
Back downstairs, she found her parents in the kitchen with a teapot on the table.
“Get yourself a cup, honey, and come and sit with us. That was some morning!”
“It certainly was. My brain is almost overflowing.”
“I was just about to tell your father about your next week. It sounded like you’ll be busy.”
“Yes. It was good of Miss Russell to offer to take me to the clothing store. That should make it a quick visit. There will be other teachers there, Dad, to take me and a couple of other new students through a catch-up of the first-year lessons. I have already done some of it at Clifton, but the Indian and Chinese music sounds like fun. What about you, Dad? Do you feel different?”
“I’m not sure, sweetheart. It does surprise me that we are so closely linked to this village and the church. I expect that we’ll all be going on Sundays, when the reverend hears about it, and not just to hear you play. I’m going to have to organise a visit to my parents and find out where the photo album is. Perhaps they may know where the cowboy outfits are. I never had a chance to put on the adult outfit.”
“I’m sure that you’ll look like Wyatt Earp, Dad.”
“More like Rowdy Yates. Yeeha!”
Willow giggled.
“The people, this morning, were very pleased to hear the organ playing. I’m going to have to ask the vicar if I can have some clear time on it to learn the other settings. Miss Russell said that there was a smaller, modern, version in the school chapel that she’ll get their organist to show me how to play. She also told me that I was going to try out with my clarinet in one of the orchestras, they have a full set on violin. Oh! She also said that there would be some of the first-year exams for me to take, next week. Nothing marked, but just to find out where I stand.”
“Then you’ll be ready to jump in with both feet and won’t have to do any remedial study.”
Later, that afternoon, the doorbell rang, and Willow went to open it. Reverend Russell and Edie stood there, with Edie holding some flowers.
“Hello, Willow. We thought that we would take a walk and come and see how you were after this morning, and to bring you some flowers as a thank you.”
“Come on in. Thank you for the flowers, I’ll find a vase to put them in. Nobody has ever given me flowers before.”
“I’m sure that this won’t be the last time.”
Willow called her mother and led the Russells into the sitting room. Her mother took over while Willow found a vase, snipped the stems and put the flowers into water. She carried it into the sitting room where she put it in pride of place on the mantlepiece. Her mother had opened the drinks cabinet, and the visitors were sipping a sherry.
“Go and find your father, honey, and ask him to join us. Bring yourself a soft drink when you come back.”
Wendy and the visitors spoke about the success of the service that morning. Wendy had the idea that there was something else that they were waiting to ask. When Willow returned with her father, they all sat and talked some more, until Edie asked the question that was on her mind.
“I saw you leaving with Rupert Leigh in his car. Do you know him?”
Ashley smiled.
“Not before this morning when he spoke to me while I was looking at one of the memorials. It turns out that way back in my family, my great-great grandfather was the brother of Marie, the wife of the Third Baron Leigh. Rupert took us to the Abbey to look at the original of a painting that I had only seen in a family photo album. It was a very strange experience and I’m still trying to get my head around it.”
The vicar laughed.
“So, you are linked to the Leighs that founded the church! That’s wonderful. It makes you eminently qualified to become one of the Village Council and a future church warden. One of the Leigh family was the priest in our church for many years. That also means that Willow also has that link. What did you think of the Abbey?”
“It was huge and a wonderful house and gardens.”
“I do the odd wedding there. The couple book the chapel and the dining area for the event. I believe that you can book rooms there overnight, to make it a great experience. Did you see the organ, Willow?”
“I did. It looked a lot brighter than ours.”
“That’s merely polish, my dear. It is a newer organ with more modern controls, but the basics are the same as ours in the church. If I get asked to officiate, would you be my organist? You will get a small payment.”
“If I can try out, first.”
“Agreed. How was young Rupert?”
“He was very nice. He showed us the Abbey and said that his father will invite us to their home once he is told about Dad and the Campbell link.”
“I’ll have to ring Hilda, tonight. She will be tickled pink. She told me that the teachers had a meeting after last week, and decided to make sure you aren’t overloaded at school. She was very surprised to walk into church to find you playing Bach. She really is a fan of yours, but don’t tell her I told you.”
“I’ll be close to her for a week, to catch up on the first-year subjects before school starts, so I guess she’ll have plenty of opportunity to lose the fandom.”
They talked some more, and Reverend Russell pulled a list out of his pocket, along with some folded music.
“These are the three hymns for Sunday, and the music. You can try them out on your keyboard here, then come in at any time Saturday to run through them. The only Sundays or other days that we do something special are at Christmas and Easter, but it may be nice to do something for Mother’s Day, next year. There I am, getting ahead of myself and expecting that you will be available.”
“It’s all right, sir. I’m sure that we will be able to fit something in. I love playing that organ and want time to experiment with all the stops. It’s not as if they all have directions on them.”
“Silly of me. There is an overlay for beginners somewhere. I’ll find it and put it up by the organ for next Saturday. You just seemed so assured when you play. Anyway, thank you for the drink. We’ll walk back to the vicarage and get ready for dinner. We’ll see you all on the weekend.”
On Monday morning, the household was up and ready to go by eight. Ashley kissed his wife, hugged his daughter, and went off to Gaydon. Willow was dressed in her school skirt with a casual top and the new school shoes, to get them walked in. She had a backpack with her handbag in, along with spare panties, and some pens and a notebook. Wendy dropped her off at the school and went to the workplace. She giggled as she realised that both of them were starting at a new place where, she hoped, they would both be happy.
Willow went into the admin area, where she told the girl at the desk who she was. She was told to relax and wait for the other students. By nine, there were another three girls and two boys waiting to be helped. Miss Russell came in with a male and a female teacher. The man took the boys to show them where everything was, the woman took the other girls. Miss Russell and Willow were the only ones left.
“Willow. You’re the only one of this extra intake who is doing music subjects. I’ll show you where the facilities are and give you a tour. We’ll hold off to let Miss Simpson get ahead with the girls. My brother rang me last night. I had thought that you and your family had no more surprises for me, and now I find that you have links to the Leigh family. Did you know about that before you moved north?”
“No, Miss Russell. It was a shock to us. My Dad was shaken to the core. Rupert Leigh showed us around the Abbey; what a beautiful place.”
“With a very nice organ. You played beautifully, yesterday. Before the end of the week, I’m going to get our school organist to try you out on the one in our chapel. It’s not an old one, and is fully electric, but has a lot of the enhancements that the old ones had, as well as a few more modern tricks. He was at the concert and thinks that you have possibilities.”
They left the office and Willow was shown the toilets, the various classrooms, the library, the science rooms, and the lunchroom. The last stop in the main part of the school was the chapel, which was big enough for a couple of hundred students. There was a space for the choir and the organ was to one side, with speakers spaced along the walls.
“When we have someone with conducting skills, they can play the organ while leading the choir. It is a specialist skill, which you may learn in a few years, if you continue the way you’re going. Have you composed anything?”
“Not really. I can doodle on the keyboard but that’s mainly snippets of classics that I’ve heard. The first time I thought about composing was when I was in the MRI machine. The whirs and other sounds almost sounded like a tune of sorts.”
“Yes. Your mother did tell me that you spent a couple of days in the clinic. Nothing too bad, I hope.”
“I had keyhole surgery to remove two lumps from my groin. The doctor said to take it easy for a while, but, otherwise, I’m good.”
“I’ll make a note for the phys-ed teacher to let you do light training, like walking or jogging. You should be able to play netball, but we’ll keep you off the soccer pitch.”
“Thank you. I was wondering how I would go with PE.”
“Now. You may be wondering why I haven’t shown you a locker. As you’re in the music stream, and likely to be starring sometime, you are allocated a section which has lockers big enough for stage outfits, instruments, and other things. If you need to wear something special for music, then you change there. We do like to get the students wearing appropriate clothes when they perform, even if it’s only in-house. It makes them realise that performing is not just standing there in old rags. But I don’t need to tell you much about that, as you’ve already got the standard choir and recital dress. If you play in the orchestra, you’ll need a long black skirt, but we’ll get to that when we go to the shop.”
They went to the theatre area, which Willow already knew, but she was shown a change-room which looked like a make-up salon.
“This is where you prepare for a performance. We do have regular events in the theatre. We also have arrangements with bigger theatres in the area, as well as the one in Stratford, where our drama students have put on Shakespeare in the past. We are talking with the Coventry Cathedral about an orchestral event before next summer but haven’t decided on what we’ll be playing. With your skills on the organ, what do you think of Saint Saens and the ‘Seven Improvisations’ for organ?”
“I’m sorry. I haven’t heard that one. The first time I played a proper organ was the day before the concert. I’ve never considered it to be one of my instruments, before.”
“All right. You just made me realise just how young you are. What about the tune that was featured in ‘Babe’? That was the last part of his organ symphony.”
“Now, that I’ve listened to. I’ve never thought that I would be able to play the organ part. It’s so huge!”
“Look, this gives me an idea. I’ll put it to the others and see what they think. If we get the Cathedral, next May will be the hundred-odd anniversary of the first performance of the ‘Organ Symphony’. We can do a simple Saint-Saens evening. Open with the ‘Seven Improvisations’, follow it up with ‘Carnival of the Animals’, and the second half can be the ‘Organ Symphony’. That repertoire has everything in it to test all of our orchestral members, even if we join the junior and senior orchestras for the performance.”
“This is so much bigger than anything we did at Clifton. I’m not sure that I would be up for it.”
“By the time we get to May, knowing you, you’ll have it nailed. We had wondered if you would be able to play the chapel organ, and then I walk in yesterday and you’re playing Bach on a hundred-year-old pipe organ and doing it beautifully. Never fear, Willow, you are destined to be a star, one day, and you just need to reach out and grab your chances. Just look at what they wrote about you in the Observer.”
“I’m sorry. I didn’t read it, other than get shown the photo and the headline. We don’t get it delivered.”
“I’ll give you a photocopy of the article to read. The school has put copies of that issue in every teacher’s cubby-holes. Now, I think you’ve seen everything. We can take you back to one of the classrooms and there are a couple of short tests on the academic subjects for you. By the results from Clifton, you’re well up with most of what we teach. After lunch, you and I are going shopping.”
Willow sat at a desk in a classroom, along with the others from this morning. They were given three test papers. The teacher stood in front of them.
“These are taken from our first form exam papers. They are three questions on three subjects each. This is just to see where you stand so we can properly look after you. If you don’t know the answer, just write ‘Don’t Know’ or ‘Never Studied’. If you’ve studied the subject but have forgotten, do whatever you can. This isn’t a competition, so nobody leaves until the time is up. If you do finish, sit back and I’ll bring you more papers to look at. You have two hours and start now.”
Willow looked at the questions and decided to just give a precis of her answers. The more papers she could finish, today, the more time she would have to catch up with music. The first three papers were completed, and she sat back after a bit under an hour. The teacher gave her another three, and she only had one question unanswered when the two hours were up. Others had received extra papers as well, so she didn’t feel smug.
They all went to the lunchroom where there was a long table for them. Willow, like the others, had brought her own lunch, but the water heater was on, with coffee and tea, and an arrangement of biscuits and cakes. They talked among themselves and got to know each other’s names, and a little of the history. Willow was asked why she hadn’t been with the other girls, this morning, and explained that she was in the music stream. Of course, she would be in normal classes with most of the others, so did her best to be friendly.
After lunch, a couple of them who were in the science stream had to go to the laboratory to do some simple experiments. Others rang their parents and were picked up. Miss Russell took Willow out to her car, and they went shopping.
Willow followed orders, went for bargains and kept the receipts. She still ended up with six bags with an extra skirt, a long skirt, more blouses and school tee-shirts. She had the complete PE kit, including two pairs of sneakers.
When they returned to the school, the bags were left in the admin office along with her backpack. Miss Russell needed to go and catch up with her work, so Willow took her phone and went to the rehearsal room with a baby grand and sat to brush up on her piano technique with a number of Etudes. When her mother rang to say she was outside, Willow closed the piano lid, picked up her bags and went outside, more than ready to be home.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 8
Willow told her mother about her day on the way home, then allowed Wendy to tell her how her day at work was. They arrived home before Ashley and started preparing dinner together after they had changed. Willow was finding soothing to be preparing vegetables and learning how to cook, something that most girls go through well before they reach their teens.
Ashley was given the full story after dinner, then Willow went upstairs to her computer to download the ‘Seven Improvisations for Organ’ by Saint-Saens. She listened to it, twice, added it to her MP3 files and then played her keyboard through the headphones while listening to the original. In a very thoughtful frame of mind, she got ready for bed and told Tiger all about her day until she drifted off to sleep.
Tuesday, she was back in the school, unsure of what would be happening. She was taken to a room in the theatre area by Mister Jamieson and given a number of exam papers that were from the more academic side of the music curriculum.
“These are the full exams from last year. I know that there was a lot that you may not have studied, but with your inquiring mind, I guess that there is some that you have some knowledge of, so feel free to write what you think. You have as long as you want, can take toilet breaks when you need, and we’ll go through the results, together, after.”
The first exam was about the background, meaning and plot of the Joseph show. She had seen the video of it, so was able to make a fist of the answers. She took a break and then picked up the second paper. Staff notation was her bread and butter, so she breezed through that one. Rhythm and the eight-beat composition was a little harder until she was able to create the music in her head.
After another break and some water, she moved to the instruments of an orchestra, which was almost too easy, and then finished the use of technology paper quickly, having used a lot of what was asked. She took another break before trying the Indian and Chinese music paper.
There was a lot of it she didn’t know, mainly being questions about the history of both countries, but she took a few guesses. The questions about timing and rhythm were easy as she thought about some of the music she had heard in her short life. She grinned as she remembered pieces that she may have only heard a couple of times on the radio. She knew that it was unlikely that she would be asked to play anything, even if they did have the instruments in the school.
While she was working on that paper, Mister Jamieson was going through the ones she had completed and making notes. When she finished, he told her to go and get herself something from the lunchroom. He would meet her there and they would go through all the exams that she had done.
Willow was digesting a cream bun, bought as a present to herself, when he came into the canteen with Miss Russell. She sat while they went through all the subjects from yesterday, declaring that she was well able to carry what she knew into second year. With the music papers, it was as she had expected. The lack of actual playing of Indian and Chinese music was not a problem. She would be able to try the different instruments out, if she wanted, but it was a specialist field with there being players within the school, should they need them for future projects.
The result was that she was cleared of most of the things she needed to know. Miss Russell said that Wednesday would be a class day. She would be given the textbooks for both History and Politics, and for Social Science. She would be allowed to read them in the library all day and take them home with her. That was purely for her to say if she wanted to carry on studying the two subjects. This afternoon, however, the school organist was coming in to give her a try with the school organ.
Miss Russell took her to the chapel, where a man was taking the covers off the organ. He showed her where the main switches were, then a couple of the buttons that changed the timbre of the sound. She was sat at the keyboard, and he told her to play something for the students to come in with. She played the Bach that she had opened with on Sunday, and he listened to her with a smile on his face. When she finished, he grinned.
“I’m sorry I didn’t introduce myself before. I’m Reg Edwards and I wondered if Miss Russell was trying to get me to teach a complete beginner. She’s done that to me in the past. Where have you played, other than the Purple a couple of weeks ago?”
“I did the full service at the church in Stoneleigh on Sunday.”
“How many hymns?”
“Four, all from the standard book.”
“Do you remember any?”
“Mister Edwards. I remember anything I’ve played a couple of times. I can tell you the numbers if you want to sing along.”
“I have the book here. I’ll hold you to your claim, young lady. Any slip-up and we’ll do it all again until you get it right.”
She told him the number and played the intro while he looked it up. He was ready, so she started playing and he sang the hymn, in a beautiful baritone voice. When they had finished the first verse, he called for her to stop and asked what the second hymn was. She told him and played the intro. They got through all four hymns in the same fashion. When they had finished, he smiled.
“Now that, my girl, is what I call playing. The settings that you’ve been using, and the ones I showed you before, are really all you need to play church organ. The fact that you played perfect Bach and the bones of four different hymns without needing the music puts you into a league of your own. I will be asking for you to work with me on the special days, and when we work with the choir. Now, Miss Russell said something about the ‘Seven Improvisations’ and that you’ve never heard it. Was that right?”
“It was when she spoke about it. I downloaded it last evening and played about with it on my keyboard at home. There were some notes and passages that I had to imagine because of the limitations of my set-up.”
“All right, show me how far you’ve come with it. It is a tricky piece, and I don’t mind if you have to stop.”
Willow addressed the keyboards, remembering the music in her head, and then started to play the piece. After her time on this kind of instrument, she was able to find the keys and the pedals she needed without needing to search for them. When she finished the piece, Reg looked at her with amazement.
“That was almost perfect! The only hesitations were with the second row and a couple of the bass pedals. Let me call Miss Russell and then we’ll do it again. I think that it will be perfect this time.”
She sat and took a sip from the water that was in her backpack while he used his mobile to call Miss Russell. When she arrived, Reg grinned.
“Miss Russell. I believe you spoke about Willow playing the ‘Seven Improvisations’. She told you that she hadn’t heard it. She downloaded it last night and, to put it in her words, ‘played around with it.’ Sit in a choir stall with me. Willow, whenever you’re ready.”
Willow waited until they had sat, and then played the piece, with no hesitations this time. When she had finished, Reg called out.
“Do you know the ‘Toccata and Fugue’?”
“Only the first bits. I hadn’t considered the organ as one of my instruments before.”
“Play what you know. Producing that iconic opening on a church organ is enough to hook you into a lifetime of playing one, if you’re not hooked already.”
She turned to the keyboard and thought of the powerful opening, turned up the volume and hit the notes hard. He was right, the power of the piece entered her bones, and she played about the first minute of it before she stopped. Now, the only thing she wanted to do was to get the sheet music in front of her so she could play the complete opus. Before the teachers could say anything, she hit the keyboard with the opening of the organ finale of the Saint-Saens. If they were going to play that at the Cathedral, she was going to be at the keyboard.
Tears were running down her face as she finished. The experience of playing power pieces of music transcended all the violin and clarinet pieces she had played. At the keyboard, she would be the one to wake up an audience, the one to get all the attention. From a bullied boy, she could become the girl in the spotlight. It made her happy, hence the tears, but it was also a little frightening.
Miss Russell also had tears in her eyes as she gave Willow a tissue.
“I understand the weeping, Willow. We girls get emotional at times. It may be great pain but can also be great happiness. That’s why we cry at weddings. You’ve just realised your calling. We will concentrate on the organ with you this year, but you will have to keep up with your other instruments for some relief. When the rest of the orchestra have mastered the ‘Organ Symphony’, we’ll have to get the Cathedral people in to hear it. We can use the portable organ in the theatre for that.”
“Thank you, Miss Russell. I just felt the power of the music in my bones, and it made me realise that I could produce that power. I’ll buckle down to everything that I’m taught. This school is like a parent to me, and I’ll be a good child to it.”
“That’s a very adult thing to say. Mister Edwards has promised me that he’ll teach you everything he knows, and that is an awful lot. Why don’t you have a rest and then you can sit with those textbooks for a drastic change until your mother arrives. It will calm you down, that’s for certain.”
Reg helped her get up from the organ, her legs feeling a bit wobbly.
“Miss Russell, I would like Willow to be here with me on Thursday. I’ll get the sheet music for the Bach, as well as his four Sonatas for organ. I think that Willow could be able to play a Bach recital by the time the term opens.”
“All right. If she gets a start on the two textbooks today, I might just give her the two tests tomorrow afternoon, to see how much she has absorbed. She will be well on board with her subjects then. The Clifton school had certainly taught her well, even if the other pupils weren’t so good to her.”
She led Willow back to the admin area, via the toilets, and gave her the two books, and the photocopy of the newspaper article.
“The paper between the pages is how far the first years have got, and that’s all that the exam will be on. If you want to read further, it’s your choice. Just sit in the library, tomorrow, and I’ll give you the exams after lunch. When you’ve done that, I want to hear your clarinet, so have it with you when you come in.”
Willow sat quietly, starting with Social Science. There were parts of the subject matter that she had experienced with. The bullying and group violence was something she knew well. She could see why it had been set as a subject, in order to give the pupils that knowledge of how to be good members of society. The ability to restrain one’s urges was a long way towards maintaining an orderly society.
When her mother arrived, she went out to the car, and they went home. After dinner, she spent some time in her room, downloading the toccata and those four organ sonatas that Reg had spoken about, and working through them. In bed, she told Tiger that today was the chapel, tomorrow was the world!
On Wednesday morning, she had her clarinet in its case and the two textbooks. When she was dropped off, she went to the library, to read up as far as the paper, and then another chapter afterwards of both books. Miss Russell came for her in the lunchroom and took her to a room where she sat for the two tests. After that, they went to one of the rehearsal rooms, where a music stand had some sheet music already set up.
“Look, Willow. I don’t know what you’ve played before. This is a test piece for solo clarinet. You should be able to play it from the sheet music if you haven’t already played it. Warm up your lips and then play what you see.”
She played a few notes and worked up and down the scales, then played the piece. It was one that she had played in class at Clifton, so made it sound easy. When she had finished, another sheet was put on the stand.
“This one is the examination piece from the fifth-year music.”
It was a piece that she had never heard, and noted that the composer was called Jamieson, and was quite complicated. She was hesitant with the first playing, and Miss Russell got her to play it again. This time, she was right and decided that it was rather a lovely piece of music. Miss Russell took away the music.
“Play it again, with feeling.”
Willow closed her eyes and didn’t see Miss Russell with her phone out. She played the piece as she would in a recital, and when she had finished, Miss Russell gave her a hug.
“Jim Jamieson is going to love you. I’ve recorded that and will send it to him. There’s a piano over there. Why don’t you sit and show me what you’re like with it. I know that it was one of your main instruments before we threw you into the deep end with the Purple. Just do whatever you want, I’ll just sit and listen.”
Willow sat at the piano and warmed up her fingers with scales, then played some Chopin etudes and then the quiet part of the ‘Moonlight Sonata’. She didn’t notice that she was being recorded. She ended with a few of the Satie pieces and then she packed her clarinet away and picked up her bag. She sat in the reception area until her mother arrived, reading more of the two books.
…………………………………….
That evening both Jim Jamieson and Howard Bamborough sat in their respective easy chairs, after their dinners, and looked at the three files that Hilda Russell had sent them. They each showed the pictures to their wives and commented that this girl, Willow, was going to turn the school on its head this year, and in the years after. That she was so good on piano, and organ, was amazing, but Jim Jamieson had tears in his eyes as he heard his little opus being played so beautifully.
……………………………………………
The Reverend Russell watched the file that his sister had sent, then transferred it from his phone to his computer, switched on the speakers and went to the door, calling out.
“Edie, darling. Can you come into the office. Hilda has sent me a recording of the next E. Power Briggs.”
……………………………………………..
Willow had enough of playing for the day. After dinner, she sat with her parents as they looked at the copy of the newspaper article. It was, she thought, a bit lopsided, with half of it filled with details about all the acts of the first half, and the rest waxing lyrical about the second. The whole band were named, and compliments bestowed on all of them, fairly equally. She had a paragraph all to herself, with praise of ‘such adult interpretation of Deep Purple mixed with snippets of Bach from a girl in her first year as a teenager’. It also mentioned that she had also played violin in the quartet but missed that she had been in the choir. Her mother took the page ‘as start of a scrapbook’ and kissed her daughter on the forehead.
“Wait until you see me at the concert that they’re cooking up, Mum.”
“Is that going to be in the school theatre?”
“No. They’re planning it for Coventry Cathedral, with me on the big organ. It’s still in the talking stage, but knowing the people I’ve met, they will make it happen. I found out that the drama stream has played Shakespeare at Stratford, so anything is possible. There will be other concerts, in-house, for you to come to.”
“We’ll be looking forward to those. When is the one in the Cathedral?”
“In May, next year. It’s an anniversary of the first performance of the ‘Organ Symphony’, by Sain-Saens. They want that to be the second half of the show.”
“Is it one I should know?”
“It’s the main theme from that film about a pig, you know, ‘Babe’.”
“That’s a wonderful tune! There was a pop song with the same tune, I think it was called ‘If I had Words’.”
“Tomorrow, I’ll be with Mister Edwards at the chapel organ all day. I don’t know what they have for me on Friday. It’s been so full-on this week. I’ve sat for almost a dozen exams as well as playing my music. I think I’m due a rest.”
The next morning, she walked into the school and there was a girl behind the reception desk.
“Hello. I’m Debbie and I sit here during term. I’m just getting up to speed on what’s happening.”
“Hello, Debbie. I’m Willow Rose, and I’m spending the day with Mister Edwards in the chapel.”
“Willow. Ah! Miss Russell left a note. She said that you can have tomorrow off for being such a hard worker. Then you have to experience the first day of the new term. It starts with an assembly in the theatre. That usually goes a while, depending on what the Head has to say. After that, you’re to go to your first class. There will be an entry on that in the info sheet you were sent. What year will you be in?”
“Second year.”
“There is a morning service in the chapel. First year on Monday, second year on Tuesday, and so on. It doesn’t take long; a prayer, a hymn and a message, and you’re set loose to continue your academic career. Have a nice day!”
Willow gave her a smile and headed for the chapel. When she walked in, she was alone. She put her bag down and saw a note on the organ. It read ‘Will be a little late, please start without me. Sheet music is on the stool’. She looked at the sheets, seeing the full music for the Toccata and Fugue, as well as the four sonatas. Underneath was the music for a hymn, with a paperclipped note ‘For second year service.’ She uncovered the organ and turned it on, putting the sheets on the rack, the sonatas first.
She looked around and, seeing that she was alone, turned the volume up and started playing. She didn’t notice Reg creeping in and sitting in a choir seat behind her. She worked through the four sonatas and then got to the ‘Toccata’. She was smiling as she played the opening chords and was now warmed up enough to do the complicated keying that sounds so melodious. When she finished that, she took the hymn music and looked at it, being one of the standard ones that she had sung at Clifton. She played the intro, and as she started the hymn, she heard a full choir behind her, along with Reg with his baritone. They worked through six verses, and she sat back as the last notes faded.
As she swivelled on the stool, she saw the girls she had sung with at the concert, as well as another group. All of them were busy putting their shoes on, having crept in with stockinged feet. Reg was smiling.
“Sorry about that, Willow. I came in while you were playing the first sonata, and the girls joined us while you were knocking the walls down with the ‘Toccata’. Today is choir practice before the term starts. Here are the sheets for all the hymns for the first term. You will be playing the organ, today, and I will stop you if I want the girls to repeat something. We have a lot to do, so let’s get moving.”
For two more hours in the morning, and three in the afternoon, Willow played the hymns and the girls sung. They only had to stop a couple of times to repeat the hymn from the top, or to allow a toilet break. During both sessions, several teachers came in to listen, before heading for their departments to set up for the following week.
At the lunch break, Willow was hugged by all the girls and told that she has to be part of the choir sessions after school. Barbara, Zara, and Dianne were happy to see their friend again, and there was a lot of chatter over the lunch. The lunchroom was now operating as normal, seeing that there would be a lot of students coming in on Friday as well.
When Mister Edwards declared that the session was over, Willow was tired, but happy. She had been at the keyboard for over six hours and had gained a fluidity of playing that Reg noted with a smile. As she picked up her bag, he gave her another shock.
“The organ you used for the concert will be on the stage on Monday morning. You will be playing for the choir who will be leading the hymn at assembly. There will be the entire staff on hand, and, for once, I’ll be down in the stalls. I’ll leave you the list of events on the stool, if you can come in early, the same as you have been, this week. Wear your uniform but bring the blue dress to change into for assembly, so that you match the choir. The hymn will be one we played, today, and the religious part will be led by your friend, the Reverend Russell.”
“Thank you for your faith in me, Mister Edwards.”
“It is me that should thank you, young Willow. Miss Russell told me that you were very tired after the concert, and we needed to pace what you get asked to do. The thing is, this week, you have been subjected to a set of exams that usually take place over two weeks and I could see you taking to extended playing time with better fitness. You need to be fit to play a big concert, especially if it is over three different days. The Cathedral concert, if it goes ahead, will be sold to the public, and I expect that it will be a Friday and Saturday affair. If you don’t do so now, see a fitness coach and get a set of exercises to build up your arms and legs. Admin can give you a contact. I look forward to seeing you on stage on Monday. We will spend a lot of time together, over the year, and I fully expect that you’ll be better than me by the time we get there.”
Willow was in a reflective mood when she waited for her mother. It was lightened by the chatter of the girls waiting for their own parents. She was drawn into the talk and was a lot brighter when she saw her mother arrive. It had been a big week that had almost overshadowed the previous weekend.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 9
On the way home she told her mother about her day, telling her that she had played enough hymns to fill a church. She gave herself a break from her room after dinner, going outside and walking from the house to the end of the road and back until the light was fading. It felt good to move after being sat at the keyboard all day.
As she walked, she thought about the things that Reg had said. She had a sudden attack of nerves, wondering when she would be found out as a weak and useless boy, as she had been accused of at Clifton. She stood by the front porch, closed her eyes and took deep breaths. She told herself that she was better than that, and counted off all the good things that had happened after she wore the uniform skirt for the first time.
Berating herself for the moment of weakness, she went inside and up to bed, cuddling Tiger and telling him that she had no fears. She slept well, with a dream that had her playing a huge organ, with pipes that disappeared into the distance. She was playing the Babe tune, and hundreds of girls, in blue dresses, were singing. The organ was thundering, and she woke, suddenly, as another peal of thunder sounded after her bedroom was lit from the lightning.
She got out of bed and looked out the window, with Tiger under her arm, and watched the lightning for a while. She realised that the thunder sounded a lot like power chords and wondered if this was what prompted the composers to write such magnificent music. After a while, she told Tiger that they’d seen enough and they went back to bed, with the blanket pulled up around her ears.
On Friday, she was up at the early time, as usual, and told her mother that she would be going over to the church to see what hymns they would be doing on Sunday. When the house was quiet, she went up to her room and cleaned it, rearranged her clothes in the wardrobe, and made sure that the blue dress was good for Monday.
After ten, she walked to the church, avoiding the puddles from last night’s rain. Inside, she found Edie polishing the brass rails. Up at the organ, she wiped the keyboards and the surrounds. She turned the fans on and sat there for an hour, trying all the stops that she hadn’t touched before, with the overlay that had been found, and making a note of what difference they made. She heard talking and saw that there were a few women doing odd jobs in various places.
She smiled to herself, set a few stops, and played the ‘Toccata and Fugue’ right through. It sounded more authentic on a pipe organ, and she also realised that her playing was considerably better than when she had last sat in this seat. At the end, there was applause and Edie called for her to come down for a cup of tea and some cake.
It was then that she properly met the ‘church ladies’ as well as a few who lived nearby and had been drawn into the church by the sound of the organ. They sat in the little room with tables and chairs, and she had to explain how she ended up as the church organist.
“Actually, I only came over to see what hymns we’re doing on Sunday, and to tell Reverend Russell that I’ve been told that I’ll be playing the school organ for assembly on Monday.”
“Is Reg Edwards sick?”
“No. I was with him all day yesterday, and he had me playing for the choir. He told me that I was going to be on the stage, and he would sit with the other teachers, for a change.”
“That would be a first. We will be at the assembly as my husband leads the short service. It’s a favour to his sister and allows the school to just have a Theology student as the house priest. He’s just there to provide some spiritual guidance if needed and takes the weekly services. Paul is a nice enough lad, but very driven; you’ll meet him next week.”
Edie went to the vicarage and came out with the list of hymns and showed Willow the cupboard where the sheet music was kept. Back on the organ stool, she worked through the three that had been chosen, hearing some of the women singing along as she played. It was one thing to play pop music, but playing sing-along music was very fulfilling. It made her realise where she had found the stamina to play for six hours yesterday. There were so many things that fell into place as she played the hymns, and she finished the set with a smile on her face and peace in her heart.
When she had tidied the organ area, she went back down into the church. Outside, she couldn’t make up her mind what she wanted to do, go home, get lunch and play music, or something else. She saw a girl, about her age, sitting on a bench, reading a book. She went over to her.
“Hello, I remember your face. You were at the Blue Coat the day I was roped in to play Purple. Weren’t you with that girl Abbie?”
The other girl smiled and blushed.
“I can’t believe that you remember that! I was sure that you would forget everything after that performance on the stage. You were magnificent! Yes, we had all gone in to talk about our next year with the orchestra. There are two of them, the Junior and the Senior. I play piano in the Junior. My name is Gina.”
Willow went and sat next to Gina.
“Well, hello again. I’ve been told that I’ll be playing clarinet in the orchestra this year. I had thought that I may play violin, but all the seats are taken.”
“I saw you play at the Summer Concert. You really are amazing.”
“Not amazing, Gina, I just multi-task well.”
“I was sitting out here, listening to you play the pipe organ. I wish that I had a chance to play the organ, but our cottage doesn’t even have room for a piano.”
“I know how you feel. Where we lived in Bristol was what they call ‘character’ and you could hardly swing a plush cat. My bed still has cardboard under two legs to make it sit evenly. We have a piano at home. It had been in storage for some years. It came from my father’s home; his grandfather had it to play sing-along in the local pub. I may have gained his genes; they certainly missed my father.”
“You have a piano, here?”
“Yes, but it needs tuning from years of sitting with a cover over it. I haven’t even checked it to see what it needs.”
“There’s a retired piano tuner that lives in the village. Maybe he can bring it to life. I was waiting for my mother. I was getting bored sitting at home. She is taking me into Coventry this afternoon to shop for new things for school after we have lunch.”
“I spent an afternoon with Miss Russell getting a huge bundle of things this week. Can I come with you?”
“I’ll go and tell Mum to expect a guest on the trip. What are you doing for lunch?”
“How about you come with me. I’ll make us something and we can check out the piano. Then we can walk over to your house.”
Gina’s eyes lit up.
“That will be fantastic! I’ll go and check with Mum.”
She went off, leaving Willow with a grin on her face. Gina may be a fan at the moment, but Willow needed as many close friends as she could get, especially orchestra members.
Gina came back.
“Mum said it was all right and to be home by one to go to town.”
Together, the girls walked to Walkers Orchard, with Gina showing Willow a pathway across the field that cut off a lot of distance. It came out opposite the end of her road. In the house, they looked at what was available and made lunch, talking as they did so. Willow opened up the upright in the sitting room, and they played all the keys, finding that it wasn’t so bad as she had thought.
“These old things were built to stay in tune in a pub, so I should have realised that there would only be a couple of keys out of tune. Show me what you can play, Gina, while I get a drink. Soda water?”
Gina nodded and sat on the stool and started playing an etude. As far as Willow could tell, the only wrong sounds were the fault of the piano.
“Wow! You are good. If you want, when we get this properly tuned, you can come over and practise. I have a small keyboard in my room that I’ve been using before we came here.”
“Can I see?”
They finished their sandwiches and Willow took Gina up to her room, thankful that her mother had girlified it. Gina squealed when she saw it.
“This is fantastic, twice as big as my room in the cottage. I see that you made a start on proper decorations. Let me guess, the curtains were here when you arrived. What do you call the tiger?”
“That’s Tiger. Yes, we’ve been so busy that I’ve been a bit slow decorating. We had the rest of the house to put into some order, and I didn’t do much with mine. Are there stores in Coventry where I can get things?”
“There are. I’ll ask Mum if we can visit them after the other shopping. We had better get back to my place.”
“Just a second while I change from this full skirt to something better. I wear it for playing the pipe organ as it allows me room to stretch my legs for the bass pedals.”
She took an internal grip on her feelings as she took the skirt off and found her shorter denim one. She was going to have to get used to changing in front of other girls in the near future. By the look on Gina’s face when she turned around, she wondered if it may have been the wrong move.
Willow locked the house and they walked, arm in arm, to Gina’s house. On the way, she called her mother to tell her what was happening. Her mother told her to get dropped off at her workplace and she would bring her home, as Friday was a shorter day at the office,
“Mum just said that I was to be dropped off at her workplace, in Seven Stars Park. It’s just around the corner from the school. Will that be alright?”
“I’m sure it will. Are you going to be at the after-school sessions?”
“I expect I will, with the orchestra. I have been asked to join the choir, but I spent all yesterday playing organ for them in the chapel.”
“What about Mister Edwards?”
“He was there, singing along. He has a lovely baritone. I was told that I’ll be playing the organ at assembly on Monday.”
Gina stopped in her tracks, jolting Willow.
“Your first day in school and you’ll be up on the stage playing the organ! That’s wild!”
They carried on to her house and had a cup of tea before they went off to Coventry. The afternoon was a whirlwind of shopping for Gina, with the assistant being very helpful, seeing that Miss Russell had personally brought this other girl to the shop on Monday. They moved on to a teenage clothing shop that Willow hadn’t been to, and she bought herself another skirt and a couple of warmer tops for the coming winter.
There was a section in the store that sold accessories that appealed to teenage girls, and Willow bought a couple of posters and another plush toy, this one a Shaun the Sheep. Gina’s mother told her that she usually picked up Gina after the orchestra sessions, so would be able to take Willow home. Willow thanked her and said that her mother would confirm the arrangements on Sunday, after church. When she was dropped off, outside the warehouse, Gina said that she would call her in the morning to tell her what the piano tuner said.
Willow carried her bags into the office, where she was told to go through to the graphics department, after the receptionist told her that she had been at the concert because her father was one of the benefactors of the school and it was where she had been taught. Willow told her that her hair was unmistakable and that she already knew that, from seeing her dance.
“I could see a few, in the first few rows, looking like they had sucked lemons. It was a bit funny, with everyone else having a good time.”
“Well, it was a lot different from any other concert we’ve been to. They’re usually just classics and a bit boring. I hope that you and the boys liven up future ones.”
In the graphics department, she was introduced to her mother’s colleagues, and they laminated her posters for her. On the way home, she told her mother about her morning and the arrangement that had been suggested.
“That sounds wonderful. It saves me going back into the city. Was that Gina one of the girls that you met on the first visit?”
“She was, Mum. With that Abbie. She plays piano and we tried out ours this morning. There’s a retired tuner in the village and Gina is going to talk to him. The upright only needs a little tweaking.”
“How do the two of you get on?”
“She’s very friendly and I’m happy that she lives close. I’m not sure about her motives, though.”
“Oh? Tell me more.”
“I’ve realised, in the last couple of weeks, how fine the line is between fandom, friendship, and infatuation. I saw a look on her face that I’ve only seen once before, and that was between two lesbians at Clifton.”
“When was that?”
“When I was changing out of my organ-playing skirt and into this one.”
“The thing is, Willow, that you never had a real friend as a boy. There wasn’t another boy you played with. From what you’ve told me, your only friends were girls. At your age, and being so new to the world of girls, you haven’t discovered what you really like. Did you feel ashamed, or disgusted?”
“No, Mum. Just wary. You’re right. All of my relationships with boys is being on the end of taunts and violence. Perhaps, when the hormones kick in, I might think differently, but at the moment I just want friendship, not anything emotional.”
“Even friendship can be emotional, my daughter, just wait and see how you react when one of your friends breaks up with her boyfriend. It happens a lot in your teens.”
“Out, damn hormones! Never sully me with your devious chemicals!”
“Seriously, you just be yourself unless she does something silly, like kiss you on the lips. Girls hug, air kiss, and sometimes kiss cheeks, but the lips are serious. If that happens, you have two choices. You can kiss back and enjoy it, or you pull away and tell her that you swing the other way but value her friendship.”
“It’s odd that I already know so many girls, and a few boys, and a few teachers; yet I haven’t even started school yet. I played through Sunday’s hymns today, and it calmed me. Not the words, but the tunes and the cadence. I expect that some were designed to put the worshippers into a trance so that when the plate comes around, they empty their pockets.”
“You’re too young to be so cynical, my girl! The tunes are that way to make the worshippers obey all orders and not make trouble. I’ve read that the popular version of the bible had hundreds of references to the warlords, dictators and oppressors changed to say ‘King’. With the general population quiet, it saved a lot of his money for troops, giving the overall power to the preachers.”
“Who’s the cynical one now, Mum.”
When they arrived home, Willow changed the previous posters for the new ones, and added Shaun to the bed.
“And so, ‘the Tiger shall lay down with the Lamb’. Be good, you two, I don’t want to have to clean up tufts of wool.”
She helped her mother make dinner and they were almost ready when her father came home. Willow was asked about her day and gave the potted version; some things that were discussed with her mother not being suitable for her father. She went up to her room, after everything was tidied up, and listened to some music from the internet, following it on her keyboard.
Saturday morning was cool but dry, and Willow told her parents that she intended to go for a walk as part of a new fitness regime. She had her jeans on with a thick coat, and followed the pathway back to the church, and then around the village before getting home again. When she got home, her mother said that Gina had called, and would be coming around with the piano tuner.
Willow had put her coat away and was sitting at the piano when she saw a car pull up. She went to the front door to see Gina and her mother help an older man out of the car. He had a small case with him. Gina’s mother introduced him as Ernie Basildon. He held his hand out to Willow.
“It’s a pleasure to meet you, Miss Rose. I was at the service last Sunday and admired the playing. Now, let me look at this piano of yours.”
Willow ushered them in and called her mother to meet the guests. Ernie took the front of the upright off to show the strings, then played each note, slowly, so he could hear the complete sound. Gina and Willow watched him, both listening carefully as he worked. They both could hear the changes he made. He took a little over a half an hour to fix the tune, then put the cover back on.
“All right, girls. Let’s hear you play.”
Willow told Gina to go first, and she sat at the piano to play the etude that she had played yesterday. It sounded good, but not as good as it would have done on a baby grand. Ernie heard it, too.
“I would take a bet that this was made in the early part of the twentieth century, purely as a pub piano.”
“You’re right, Mister Basildon. That’s what my grandfather used to use it for.”
She replaced Gina at the seat, thinking about the music that she had listened to, last night. She looked at Ernie and grinned as she played ‘Roll out the Barrel’, followed by others in the same vein and finishing with ‘Auld Lang Syne’. When she finished, the room was full. Her father laughed.
“Let me guess, you’ve been listening to songs on your computer again.”
“I remembered something that Mum had told me and started out by listening to Mrs. Mills, and then to a set called ‘Favourite Pub Songs’. I looked up some of them and they go back to the previous century and to music halls and vaudeville.”
Gina’s mum said that it reminded her of Saturday nights at the club. Ernie nodded.
“Exactly, lass. There is a similar piano there. We used to have Saturday night sing-alongs once a month until our pianist died from COVID. I could play a lot of the material until the arthritis hit my fingers. I have an idea. I’ll talk to the manager, this afternoon, and you can all come along tonight. If Willow plays some tunes, I’m sure that he’ll provide a free meal.”
Her mother laughed.
“My teenage girl playing a pub on Saturday and then the church on Sunday. If I hadn’t heard her with my own ears, I would never have believed it.”
“I’ll give you a call this afternoon, if you give me your number. The organ music has lifted the souls in the village already; playing in the club will lift the sinners as well. It’s a win-win, and I won’t even charge you for my time, as Malcolm will give me a free dinner as well. What about it, Willow?”
“I’m good, Mister Basildon. I’ll just have to listen to some more so that I’m not repeating myself. If I can use the computer in your office, Dad, I will be able to print some sheet music so that Gina can play, I’m sure that she can sight-read.”
Gina’s mother laughed.
“That’ll be something different, a Saturday night at the club. I haven’t been to one of those in years.”
With the idea agreed, she left, with Ernie, leaving Gina with the Roses, who had promised to feed her. For the rest of the morning, Willow searched the internet for the sheet music for pub songs. They also included typical lyrics, which made both girls blush. They had a dozen for Gina to play, and she went to the sitting room to try them out, while Willow found a few more that she hadn’t found and added them to her MP3 files. She would listen to them and try them out on her keyboard this afternoon.
Her mother came in and sat with her, as they could hear the piano playing.
“You really are something else again, my daughter. You have made Gina very happy, shown her something else that she had never seen, and have opened up another link between us and the Village. It also means that you won’t be hogging the limelight. I saw that she looks up to you, so I think that her infatuation will turn to respect.”
Gina was getting freer with the pub songs, the more she played them, and they stopped for lunch.
“Thank you for welcoming me into your home, Mister and Mrs. Rose. When I first heard Willow play the organ, I thought that she was a young-looking sixteen-year-old. When I found out that we’re almost the same age, it floored me.”
“You’re welcome here, any time, Gina. I believe that you’ll be around quite regularly to play the piano. As Willow has found, it’s good to listen to something before you need to play it at school. You’re a talented pianist, and you’ll do well. Never think that you’re in competition with Willow. She’s a freak with her ability to remember music. She could sit at that piano and play you something that she only heard a couple of times a few years ago.”
“I still have problems with longer pieces, Mum. I need the music for bigger classical pieces, although I did play the ‘Toccata and Fugue’ on the church organ from memory yesterday.”
In the afternoon, Gina repeated the tunes she would be playing, and Willow went up to her bedroom and played her keyboard to the MP3 files. She heard the phone ring, and her mother came in to tell her that they would be going to the club at six, for the meal, and that Gina had gone home to get ready.
Willow had a shower and dressed for Saturday night out. She had a good skirt with a silky blouse and her new shoes with a small heel over tights. Her mother and father were smartly dressed as well. If anything, the Roses looked good.
They walked to the club, just down the road and opposite Church Lane. Ernie was already there and helped them fill out the paperwork to become members. The manager was dubious with the sing-along plan but was willing to give it a trial run. Gina turned up with her mother, both in going-out clothes. They found a table for six and Ernie joined them. The club filled up with the locals, mainly older men, but a few wives. The Roses were a subject of some talk, until it had been circulated that the daughter was the new church organist, and they were related to the original Leighs.
When the meals had been eaten, the barman called out for order. In a surprised silence, he announced that the piano will be heard tonight. When Gina went and sat at it, Willow could see that many thought that it would be a classical recital, seeing that nobody had ever heard her play anything else. The mood lightened as she started playing pub music, with someone starting to sing, followed by the others.
Willow watched as Gina began to blossom, being the centre of attention for the first time in her life and realising that she was actually entertaining her neighbours. She played the dozen songs that she knew, and there was applause and a bit of banter as she stood up. Wendy looked over at her mother and saw the pride on her face.
Willow walked over to the piano and some wag called out that it was hymn time. She grinned at the room and turned her attention to the keyboard. Once again, she was in entertainment heaven. She played until ten, ending with ‘Auld Lang Syne’, followed by ‘We’ll meet Again’, which had some of the older members in tears. Both girls were feted and there were many hugs and cheek kisses given and received. Willow and Gina hugged and air-kissed before they all left the club to go their own way home. As they strolled towards their home, her father laughed that after the first drink he hadn’t put a hand in his pocket.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 10
On Sunday morning, the Rose family were at the church as the bells started their peal. Today, because it wasn’t a special occasion, the Reverend Russell was wearing a grey suit and his clerical collar. He welcomed them when they arrived.
“Good morning, good people. A little bird told me that my organist was tickling the ivories in a den of iniquity last night. One of my wardens rang me from the club to let me hear some of the festivities. It sounded like a good time. Are you ready for today, Willow?”
“I am, sir. I’m supposed to be playing the organ at assembly, tomorrow. Do you have an order of events so I’m not daydreaming at the wrong time?”
“Good thinking, I’ll dash off and copy mine and give it to your mother. Now get yourself upstairs and entertain us with some music. Just don’t start ‘Roll out the Barrel’ instead of the hymn.”
They all had a laugh and Willow went up to the organ to get things going. With this being her second service, she was happy that it should be easier. Once the air was up to pressure, she started playing another Bach piece that she could repeat ad infinitum if needed. The congregation slowly came in, and she could see, in the mirror, that it wasn’t quite as large as the previous week.
It all went as planned, with the three hymns and her playing them out as the bells were pealing. This time, she knew exactly when the peal ended, so was able to time the end of the music. She turned everything off, tidied the music and put the cover on the keyboard before going down and out of the main door.
Her parents were standing with Gina and her mother. Wendy saw Willow approach and stopped their conversation.
“Willow, dear. I’ve just been speaking to Maisie and Gina about the trip to the school. I’ll be taking you both in the morning and bring you home when you finish at normal school times. When you are both staying late, Maisie will go and pick you up. It will save fuel and allow Maisie to do her own things.”
“That sounds great, Mum. We should know what evenings we’ll be late. It will mean that we both will need to do the same extra studies. Junior Orchestra is a given, but I don’t know what else they have in mind for me. There again, Gina is a good enough player to start on the organ. We could ask Mister Edwards if he would tutor us both. It would give him a lot more choice when it comes to services or choir sessions. There may be another organ in the school.”
She could see Gina blush when told that she was good enough for special study.
“Gina, I suggest that when you’re in the city, you go and have a look for something you can play at home. They aren’t expensive, fifty to a hundred pounds will get you something that works well. You will need it to have a jack-plug for headphones, so you can play it at home without bothering anyone. Don’t rush, we’ll talk to the teachers to see what they think.”
“You can ‘talk to the teachers’?”
“Well, they’ve been pretty good to me in the last week. I’ve spent a lot of time with Mister Bamborough, Mister Jamieson, and Miss Russell. I guess that I’ll be able to ask them a question about their plans for you. It could alter the set-up of the orchestra. Is the Senior pianist better than you?”
“From what I’ve heard, no.”
“Well then, it’s in their interest to look after you. The one thing that I have learned is that the name of the school is paramount in their thinking. Some things have been said to me that makes me believe that promotion of the school is a priority, and looking after the better pupils is a part of that.”
Willow wasn’t going to mention the Cathedral idea but was already thinking that they may need two organists, just in case.
“Look, I’ve got an idea. Just give me a minute.”
She went and spoke to the Reverend for a few minutes and came back.
“Right. We can use this organ for a little while, as long as we’re not too loud. Come with me and I’ll give you the chance to see if you like it before we go any further.”
She led the way back into the church, with the parents sitting in a pew to see what she had in mind. She took Gina up to the organ, took off the covers and turned on the fans.
“This is to get the air pressure up. This is a pipe organ, so the note is made by air pressure in the pipe, which is controlled by you pressing the keys. I’m not going to show you how to do anything. Sit on the stool, get comfortable, and play one of those Chopin etudes, but do it as if your fingers are wading through treacle to allow the note to form. That will let you get the feeling.”
She stood off to one side as Gina felt the keyboard and pressed a key to hear how it worked. She looked at Willow and grinned, before playing an etude on the organ. As it was written for piano, she only needed to use the one keyboard. As she played, she got the hang of it and her smile was something to see when she finished the piece.
“That’s fantastic! Now I know why you’re so happy. The piano makes musical sounds, but this is something you feel in your stomach as you play.”
Willow put a music sheet to one of the simpler hymns from the morning on the stand.
“See if you can play this?”
Gina played the hymn music, a little slower than normal, but was at normal speed on the second verse. When she stopped, there was some applause from below. Willow looked down to see the parents smiling, while behind them, the vicar and Edie had big grins. Willow understood why. Now there were two organists in the village.
They tidied up and turned the fans off. Downstairs, the Reverend gave Gina a hug.
“Do you think that you can help out with the services, Gina. I realise that it will take some time to get up to speed, but from what I’ve heard here, and what I’ve been told about your piano playing last night, I think that you may be ready to blossom.”
“Thank you Reverend. It may take a little while before I can play the two keyboards, and find the bass pedals, but, if Willow and Mister Edwards are there to help, I’ll be happy to play for you.”
Willow walked home with her parents. Her mother took her hand.
“That was something that shows that you aren’t a prima donna, my girl. You’ve only known Gina for two days and you’ve had her playing honkytonk piano in a pub and have now got her hooked on playing in the church. It shouldn’t take her long to learn the extra complexity. She is a very competent pianist, but I expect that she’s just been doing enough to get by.”
“I was thinking about the plan that Miss Russell was cooking up. We will need more than one pianist if we do the Cathedral. That symphony has piano with both two and four hands as well as the organ. Even if they use both orchestras, it’s going to be tight.”
“Are you sure that you’re still thirteen, and didn’t change into a thirty-year-old concertmaster?”
“I’m just starting to think a lot more, Mum. I just hope that the school lives up to the glimpses that I’ve seen of it, so far.”
At home, she changed to her jeans, and went out for a walk. There was a roadway that went to the River Sowe, to the right of her road, so she followed that down to the bridge, then turned left and walked along the riverbank, passing the church and the graveyard, before turning onto Church Lane and heading home. It gave her the peace and quiet that allowed her to think.
After lunch, she made sure that her outfit for the morning was ready to wear, and that the blue dress was good in its garment bag. She had a look at the paper that the vicar had given her mother. She saw that she would need to be early, change, and be up on the stage at the organ before the pupils arrived.
The vicar had noted that there would be ‘arrival music’ until the theatre had filled, and everyone was on stage. She would stop when the vicar approached the microphone. The choir would be alongside her and would lead the hymn singing with one that they had sung on Thursday. After that, she had to remain at the organ while the Head welcomed everyone to the new term and made announcements.
She would leave the stage with the choir and go and change, then go to her first lesson, where the teacher would know that she would be slightly late, so would just be going over the previous year until she arrived. She looked at her information sheet to find that the first lesson was French.
The rest of the day was sorting out the few textbooks that she had left and trying to synchronise her brain with the dual role of a performer and student, after such a concentrated couple of weeks as the performer. Dinner was a happy one, with both parents complimenting her on what she had achieved in such a short time. She could honestly say that she had no idea of where it all came from, and that it must have been hidden until she wore a skirt.
That evening, her mother helped to remove the breasts, and she sat in a hot bath and shaved her legs. She then lifted her legs either side of the bath, and her mother carefully peeled the covering from her groin. This was the first time she could see what had been done. The small penis was securely tucked, giving her a very feminine look from her viewpoint. It would enable her to be unnoticeable with panties on. Her mother looked and declared that the incision places were just a couple of dots. She soaked in the bath and washed her new groin for the first time.
After replacing the breasts and moisturising, she dressed in a nightie to go to bed. That night, she slept with an arm around each of her bed buddies and dreamed about being in charge of things.
In the morning, she had breakfast with her parents. Her father was already dressed for work and left as they tidied up. Willow had a wash and brushed her teeth, then went to dress in the school uniform. It was the first time since the ‘inspection’ and she knew a lot more now than she did then. The feel of the panties without the covering was different and having to wear a bra because of the breasts was no longer a novelty, but satisfyingly normal. She put tights on because she was going to wear the dress and put a new pack in her backpack.
She took her garment bag and her backpack with her books and handbag in and went downstairs with them. When she looked in the hall mirror, she realised that she had forgotten something, and dashed upstairs to her vanity to add a little make-up. No Goth, as Miss Russell had ordered, but enough to make a difference. That was something that had never bothered her in the last school.
When her mother came down and they went out to the car, she put the garment bag on the rail on the driver’s side and put her bag on the back seat. Then, she went and sat in the front. It was only a few minutes before they arrived and saw Gina waiting by her front door. She got in the back and put her bag beside her. After cheery ‘good mornings’ they headed for Coventry.
Gina wanted to talk about the weekend and the different way it made her feel.
“I’ve played piano in front of an audience, before, but it was just something I was doing as a subject. Saturday night, I found myself reacting to the people around me.”
“It’s called becoming an entertainer, Gina. I had the same experience when I was playing Purple with the boys. It’s the moment that you know that you’re making other people happy.”
When they arrived at the school, they retrieved their things and walked in.
“I have to go to the music side, Gina. I have to change for the assembly and see that everything is good on the stage. I’ll see you at the lessons.”
They hugged, and Willow went towards the theatre and the big locker. She hung her blouse and skirt on the hangers that she had brought with her and had just put the dress on when a couple of the Senior choir came in to change. They had been in the chapel on Thursday, and they all had a hug. Willow left them as they were taking off their uniforms and went through to the back of the stage and then went out to see the organ was ready.
She turned it on and pressed the middle ‘C’ to hear it sound through the PA system. She was set up at the back of the stage, and there was tape making a line beside her where the choir would stand. A few people were making sure that the chairs were all out, now with rows where the dancing had been. The paperwork that she had seen stated that there were over fourteen hundred students, so she guessed that it would take over fifteen hundred in the theatre.
She sat and started playing the ‘arrival’ music to pass the time. People slowly started to trickle in, mainly teachers. There was movement in the wings and Reverend Russell came out and put a hand on her shoulder.
“Good morning, Willow. We have to stop meeting like this.”
“Never! It’s too much fun. Besides, your wife is always by your side.”
He laughed.
“You are one of a kind, Willow. It’s going to be fun working with you.”
Willow kept doodling the Bach as the theatre filled up with pupils and teachers. They seem uncharacteristically well behaved. The choir came and stood in a line beside her and, finally, the doors were shut, and she tapered off the music as the Reverend walked on stage and towards the microphone.
He welcomed the new students to the school and wished them well, gave his blessing on the new academic year, led the audience in the old version of the Lord’s Prayer, then announced the hymn. There wasn’t a flurry of hymnbooks, but Willow saw all the eyes look above her head. She played the opening part and then waited a few seconds before playing the hymn music. It was six verses, and, with the sound of the choir beside her, and the rest of the audience singing at her while reading the words from the screen, the sound was amazing.
As the final verse was being sung, the Reverend came and stood beside her. As silence fell, the Headmistress came out on the stage and addressed the gathering. Much of it was, to Willow, the usual things that Heads say, until she came to an announcement that made her eyes go wide.
“This academic year will have a large project that the music school has put together. The Junior and Senior Orchestras will learn some new pieces for a performance at the School concert before Christmas. They will also combine to learn the Saint-Seans ‘Organ Symphony’, which they will perform at the Coventry Cathedral in May, subject to the Cathedral Board accepting it. It is thought that the performance will be televised and recorded for a BBC DVD. The full orchestra will be augmented by our choir, singing during the final part. I have spoken to the organisers of the BBC Proms, and we have been pencilled in to provide one of the Prom Evenings, so we will need to have several more pieces to play. That performance, if it goes ahead, will be the Summer Project for the Music School, so the concert here would be for the Drama students to put on a full show.”
Willow could hardly concentrate on what else she said. The idea of playing in Albert Hall at the Proms was something so far above what she had expected out of the second year, she could hardly breath. She looked at the choir and could see that they were equally shocked. She looked the other way at Reverend Russell, and he gave her a smile and a wink. When she looked down at the line of teachers, she saw all the ones that she had already met had huge smiles.
Finally, the assembly was over. The Head turned and walked off stage, so Willow turned the organ off, then fell into line with the choir as they left to go and change. She was still in shock as she hung the dress and put the uniform on. Picking up her bag, she left the locker room and walked towards the main part of the school, now alive with chattering students. She saw Dianne and Gina and went to join them, with all three going for the first lesson.
The day went in a blur of new experiences, as she sat with either Dianne or Gina in every class during the day, was sitting with the Junior Orchestra for lunch while being complimented on her playing that morning. It was like no other day that she had known at previous schools. She was never alone, and never taunted. The orchestra girls held her as some sort of talisman, seeing that she had played the assembly music, and there was much discussion about who would play the organ in the big concert, seeing that there were several keyboard players in the school.
The end of the first day saw Gina and Willow waiting for Wendy to pick them up. They spoke quietly about the day, and the work that would be needed to put together the different concerts, on top of the work needed to be done to achieve academic success. When Wendy pulled up, they got in the car and hardly stopped talking until Gina was dropped off.
When they were alone, Wendy turned to Willow.
“Interesting day, then?”
“Very interesting, Mum. I thought that it was wonderful. I did what I had to on the stage in the assembly, and the Head made an announcement. It’s the only part of the day that we didn’t talk about, coming home. The Cathedral concert is moving forward and could be televised. The success of that will pave the way to the school being the orchestra for one night at the Proms, next summer. It’s almost too much for my brain to process.”
“Wow! That is some news. It will take a lot of work to make that happen.”
“Yes, there is talk of combining the two orchestras and all the choirs for it. The thing is that I can see it, in my mind, and feel that I know what it will take to make it happen. I’ll just have to keep quiet and follow the teachers, after all, they’ve done this sort of thing before.”
“One day at the school and you want to run things. That’s so unlike the old you.”
Willow laughed.
“Today Blue Coat – tomorrow the world! Mehaha!”
“Come on, ‘Oh! Great Ruler’; we need to prepare dinner.”
They both went to their rooms to change, then set to in the kitchen. That evening, her father was told about the performance plans and told her that there had better be seats set aside for her parents. Tomorrow was to be the chapel service for the second year, and there was Junior Orchestra after school. Willow made sure that she had her clarinet and violin ready to take with her. That night, she had her phone on recharge and used her MP3 player to listen to the ‘Organ Symphony’ before she went to sleep.
Tuesday morning was overcast, so the girls both had their coats with them as Wendy dropped them off. Willow went to her larger locker to hang her coat and store her backpack and instruments before walking to the chapel to find Gina already there, talking with Dianne. The organ was covered, and when the chapel had filled with second year students, the school chaplain walked in.
“Good morning, everyone. For those who don’t know me, I’m Paul, and I conduct these year services. Today, I will give a reading and then we will say the Lord’s Prayer and let you all head for your classes.”
He stood in front of the altar and read from his bible. Willow zoned out and wondered about playing the organ. She couldn’t see the ‘nice lad’ that Edie had referred to. She made up her mind that Paul was a little too proud of himself, then that made her wonder if she had the same problem.
The rest of the day was similar to Monday, although the blur seemed to be getting clearer as Willow sat at the same desks and walked the same corridors with the same friends around her. The fear of school was beginning to leave her, and she relaxed more.
……………………………………………
In the Head’s office, she and Mister Bamborough were taking to Artie and Zac. Or, rather, fending off offers of greatness, fame and fortune for the children under their care.
“Mister Hamilton, we know that you have a duty to promote talent. It is our place to nurture that talent. The boys in that group are almost ready to study for their biggest exams of their life, to date. We cannot allow them to throw their future away on promises of fame and fortune. When they do finish school, they can make up their own minds.”
“But the review was so positive, we could put on a Purple Power show with them.”
“If you read the review properly, you would have seen that it was part of the Summer Project and was a total one-off. Those boys have been playing at parties as G-Force for a couple of years. They play old rock and pop and are very good at it. This is the important part that I hope you’ll understand; when they finish school, they will be able to compose their own songs and be more than a cover band.”
“What about the girl?”
“That girl is only thirteen, and there is no way we can even tell her about your ideas. She is likely to be a star in her own right when she graduates and will be well above the sort of performances that you promote. Any word that you’ve approached her, and we call in the police.”
“At least let us know when they’ll be playing in public.”
“If you look at our website, you’ll see the upcoming performances. Now, good day to you both.”
………………………………………………
At the end of the lessons, Willow went to her locker with Dianne, and they picked up their instrument cases. The locker room was filled with girls talking about the announcement on Monday, keen to find out what the future held.
The meeting of the Junior Orchestra was in a larger rehearsal room that Willow hadn’t seen before. The places were set, with seats and music stands. As Willow waited to be directed to a seat, she saw a celesta and some percussion. A few girls had hauled their bigger cases in and were setting up a couple of cellos and a double bass. Willow was directed to the woodwind section, so left her violin case with the empty clarinet case and went to sit where told.
When she looked at the sheet music on her stand, she saw that it was for the ‘Bolero’, by Ravel. As the seats filled, she found herself hemmed in by boys in the brass section and a lad that she had seen in class with a flute beside her. He played a few notes and then turned to her.
“Hello. I’m Alec Hancock. I know that you’re Willow Rose as the second year has been buzzing with your name since assembly. How come you’re sitting there and not the celesta?”
“Because Gina is the pianist, and I also play clarinet. This was the only empty spot.”
“That’s good. It means that I can talk to you.”
“That’s nice. My mother has told me to talk to boys more, but to watch out for the forward ones.”
The discussion was halted with Mister Bamborough tapping his baton on his music stand.
“Boys and girls, welcome to the first session of the Junior Orchestra for this year. The announcement that the Head made will make this a very busy year for us. In front of you is the music for the ‘Bolero’. It will be one of our pieces for the end of year concert, so we need to get it perfect by then. Later in the term, we will start having joint sessions with the Senior Orchestra to work on ‘Carnival of the Animals’ and the ‘Organ Symphony’. Both are by Saint-Saens and will be part of the Cathedral concert, should we get to perform. Those rehearsals will be in the main theatre. It will be a lot of hard work, but the results will be tremendous when we’re in front of a TV audience. For six weeks, we will be here, as usual, and then there may be a second weekly session with the combined orchestras on Thursday afternoons as well, in the theatre, as I said. Right, now for the ‘Bolero’.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 11
They spent two hours working with the music. They didn’t have the numbers that the piece was written for but made do with a pruned down orchestra. There was enough percussion players to fill out that section, but the strings were thinned out a bit. There was a full complement of brass players, and Willow wondered if there was an evening brass band.
All the members of this orchestra had played for some time, and all could read from the sheet music. They had to stop and start as mistakes were made, but gradually worked towards a better sound. Willow was able to play her clarinet part first time but had to repeat it several times as they restarted. She listened to Alec on the flute and was impressed.
They had a break at the one-hour mark, with everyone getting their water bottles and some heading for the toilets. Willow saw Mister Bamborough looking at some notes and went over to him.
“Excuse me sir, can I have a minute of your time?”
“Of course, Willow. What’s on your mind?”
“It’s about Gina Summer, sir. I know that there isn’t much for her to do with the celesta. Is there a chance that there’s something else we can do on the piano to let her shine?”
“Is there something you know that I don’t. Last year she showed that she was a very competent pianist, but lacked the spark that made her different.”
“I heard her play an etude on our piano at home. Then, we both played piano in the village club for a Saturday evening sing-along. I was able to let her play the pipe organ in our church, and she has realised that she can entertain. Give her a chance, please. I think that you’ll find that she has found that spark.”
“I’ll take that on board, Willow. Your clarinet playing is very good, by the way. I think that young Alec has been trying to impress you. He’s been brighter, today, than I’ve heard him before.”
At the end of the second hour, Mister Bamborough called a halt and said that they had done very well, then spoke to Gina.
“Miss Summer. I know that the Ravel doesn’t have a lot for you to do. I’m trying to think of another piece for our concert. Can you play me something on the piano, please?”
Gina was shocked to be asked and went to the piano. She thought about the etudes that she knew and chose the flashiest one in her repertoire. As she played, the rest of the orchestra listened to the pianist that she hadn’t exhibited last year. Willow was thinking ‘good girl’ and smiled. She saw Mister Bamborough raise one eyebrow. When Gina finished, the rest of the orchestra clapped.
“Thank you, Miss Summer. That gives me an idea for the main section of our part of the concert. I think that we’ll start studying the ‘Greig Piano Concerto in A minor, Opus 16’. The quicker we get the Ravel perfected, the quicker we can move on to that, but it will give Miss Summer some time to learn it. Do you have access to a piano at home, Gina?”
“Willow has an upright at her house that she has offered to me to play, if I need it, sir.”
“Is that all right, Miss Rose?”
“It is sir, it belonged to my grandfather, but it was tuned on the weekend.”
“Right. That’s the end of the session, thank you all for your work. Gina and Willow, come with me and I’ll get you a copy of the music.”
Willow packed her clarinet away, and picked up both cases, following Gina out. They were given two copies of the music and put them in their bags. Then went out the front of the school to find Maisie reading a magazine. Gina got in the front and Willow got in the back with her cases. On the way home, Gina was full of the news that she had been chosen to be out front of the orchestra at the end of the year, as a solo pianist. Willow saw Maisie look in the mirror at her and wink.
When Willow went in, her mother was reheating her dinner in the microwave. Willow took her cases upstairs and quickly changed into a nightie and her gown. The dinner wasn’t too bad, she thought, and liveable for one night a week. When Wendy took away the plate and put some ice cream in front of her, she asked if today was different.
“It was, Mum. We had a service for the second years and the priest that Edie said was a nice lad didn’t strike me as very nice at all. He knew his stuff but was almost arrogant in his delivery. Then we had the orchestra. We’re doing the Ravel ‘Bolero’ for the end of year concert and will also see if we can master the ‘Grieg Piano’. Gina, as our pianist, will be the soloist, so expect her to spend a lot of time here on our piano.”
“How much did you have in that, young lady?”
“Who, me? She was asked to play something, and she picked the most difficult etude that Chopin composed, and nailed it, with panache. Or is that grenache?”
“A little something left over from Saturday evening, I expect.”
“Could be, Mum. See, nothing to do with me.”
“Yeah, right. Get yourself cleansed and into bed. I’ll clear up. Goodnight, dear.”
Willow held her two friends close to her as she tried to sleep. Was she a busy body? Why was she trying to help Gina? Why was everybody so damn friendly. Why was being Willow so different from being William? Why did she enjoy playing next to Alec so much? The memory of Alec playing the flute during the ‘Bolero’ was in her mind as she finally drifted off to sleep.
The morning of her third day at this school saw Willow leap out of bed and head for the toilet. It wasn’t so much the bladder driving her as the thought of another day in classes that she enjoyed, with students she liked, and teachers who knew how to teach. When they picked up Gina, she jumped in the back seat with a smile.
“Guess what?”
“What?”
“Mum’s taking me into Coventry on Saturday to look at keyboards. Do you want to come along?”
“That’ll be great. I’ll have to go to the church on Friday to check the hymn list, then.”
“Mum said that we can get a good one that I can use to play the piano on, though it won’t have the full keys. That way I can get some organ music and learn, as well.”
“I’ll help you get the right things so that you can link your phone and play along to the actual music. It really helps to get the feel for it, rather than being a load of notes.”
At the school, they were arm in arm as they walked in. The receptionist saw them and called them over.
“Gina, I’ve been told to give you this key. It’s for a bigger locker over near Willow’s. Clear your old one and give me that key.”
They went to Gina’s locker and Willow helped carry her things to the music area, where they found the bigger locker. Gina filled it with her things.
“I wonder why I’ve been given this?”
“It’s because you’re now considered to be a soloist, which means that you’ll need space to hang your special outfit before a show. As a pianist, you didn’t need the space, as I expect that you just brought the long skirt with you on the day. Welcome to the artiste’s area, my friend.”
The day was pretty much a carbon copy of the days before, and Willow was starting to get used to the tempo of the new school, as well as the feeling of safety that was starting to make her feel good.
On the way home, it was arranged that Gina would come and try playing the Greig on the upright. Willow told her that she would find a performance that she could play along to. She knew that she could play the MP3 file through a small speaker, and start the track from the beginning of the orchestra, after the piano intro.
Gina arrived with her mother as Willow was clearing the table. Wendy told her to get the things she needed, so she went up to her room, with Gina, and carried down the small speaker and the MP3 player. They set the speaker behind Gina as she sat at the piano, and Willow found the first part of the Grieg, playing the piano intro and then stopping the playback.
Gina warmed her fingers with an etude, then said that she was ready. Willow made a noise like a timpani roll and then Gina played the intro piano, then Willow started the player, bringing in the orchestra. Gina had the music in front of her and waited until she had to play again. When the piano part played, it sounded like an echo, as she followed the music. Having the orchestra behind her helped her keep the timing right. She did make a few mistakes but caught herself and carried on.
The first movement runs for nearly thirteen minutes, and the three adults were standing by the door as she played, keeping quiet. When she finished, her mother came in and put her hands on her daughter’s shoulders.
“When we get that keyboard, we’ll make sure that it’s the best that we can afford, my clever girl. We’ll get a unit that does what Willow has set up, as well. I’ve never heard you play so well.”
“That’s because I’ve never been asked to be the soloist, Mum.”
Willow set the player back to the beginning of the first movement, then they repeated the movement, starting with the timpani. Gina played the movement twice more, with it getting better every time and her not having to look at the sheet music so much. They decided that this was enough for one night. After hugs all round, Gina and her mother went home, and Willow packed up the speaker and took it back to her room.
She went back downstairs and sat with her parents, each with a cup of hot chocolate.
“Gina is a good pianist, isn’t she, Willow?”
“She is, Mum. She now has that little something that makes her more than a good pianist. I’m looking forward to being in the orchestra when she plays it for the first time. We have to get the other two movements into her mind, and then she needs to remember the whole concerto.”
“Don’t you think that you should be playing it?”
“Not really. If asked, I can give it a go, but it will boost her career to be out in front. I’ll be getting my time in the spotlight on the organ. They think that it should be my main instrument. If we do the ‘Organ Symphony’, there’s a lot of time when the organ and piano are carrying the piece. If we can get Gina up to speed with the organ, it will give me some Sundays off in the church. I’ll need to go there tomorrow evening to find out what hymns we’re doing this weekend.”
“Do you mind if I come with you on Saturday, love? I spoke to Maisie, and she said it was all right. The one that you’ve had for a few years needs upgrading if you’re going to play a lot more in the public. If we get you one with a full set of keys, you’ll be able to work on your school stuff at home, as well as just needing the sheet music for the keyboard parts of the hymns.”
“That would be wonderful, Mum. But those are a couple of thousand pounds, or more!”
“That’s as far as Maisie is prepared to go to further Gina’s playing. If she gets one that’s the same, you’ll be able to help each other with the music, as well as learn more pub songs. I’m sure that the two of you will be asked to play on other Saturday evenings.”
Willow looked at her parents.
“Are you sure? I don’t want to be a drain on the finances.”
Ashley grinned.
“We’re being canny, my daughter. When you’re famous, you’ll be able to look after us in our old age. It’s a drop in the ocean if you start playing professionally. You could play classics, or you could play pop music. If the way you played Purple was anything to go by, all you need to do is find the right band to be in. I’m already looking forward to being in the audience for the school concerts. If you play the Cathedral for more than one performance, expect us to turn up for all of them.”
“What if we get an evening at the Proms?”
“Then, we’ll have to book a room in London, won’t we?”
Thursday was now the new normal for Willow, until they got to the last lesson, which was PE. Willow went to her locker and got the PE outfit to change into before going to the gym. The teacher lined them up.
“Welcome, girls, to the new term. Today, we will have two netball games going, those of you that have played last year can sort yourselves out. The ones left over can make up any shortfall in the teams or will be doing other things. As usual, we will rotate team members as the term progresses”
Willow found herself added to a team with Gina and Dianne. Never playing netball before, she was given a goalkeeper top and told to try and stop the attacking team without knocking anyone over. She watched as her team got to the other end and then emulated the goalkeeper of the other team when the ball came her way. It was a position where she didn’t have to run up and down the court and suited her current medical condition.
Luckily, the showers had small stalls so she could slide in with her groin covered and then come out with the towel wrapped around her. She was glad that she had already changed that skirt in front of Gina, as the experience of being in a room full of teenage girls getting dressed was something she had never considered that would be part of her life.
Back in the uniform, and with some make-up, she was hugged by a few of her team and then went out to find her mother, with Gina beside her.
“Where did you play netball before?”
“That was the first time. I didn’t get picked in my last school.”
“But you were so good in blocking the attacks. I think that the teacher was taking notes.”
“As long as I don’t have to run around a lot, I’ll be happy.”
Friday was a now normal day at school. Willow had more friends now than she had ever had before. The lessons weren’t far away from her previous studies, there wasn’t the bullying, yet, and some of the other girls had started to talk to her about ‘out if school’ activities. That evening, she went to the church and found the Reverend to see what hymns were set for Sunday. He told her the numbers and she found the sheet music.
There was enough time to have a run through of the hymns and left the sheet music on the organ for Sunday morning. The Reverend asked her how her first week of school was, and she told him that it had been very good. She asked if he would let Gina work with her on the organ, and he thought it was a good idea.
On Saturday morning, Willow and her mother were ready when Maisie and Gina arrived to pick them up in her hatch. They went into Coventry and further on to a store that sold organs. When they had parked and walked in, they started looking at what was available. The store looked a little run down, and the man that came out to see them was looking a bit wizened and bent.
“Can I help you ladies?”
“We’re looking for two keyboards. Both need to be able to use as a piano and an organ. Single keyboard, and outputs for headphones, amp. Input for second keyboard an advantage.”
“Two, you say. There has to be a story there?”
“Willow, here, played organ with a band at the school concert and had a write-up in the Observer. Gina is starting to learn organ, but is an accomplished piano player, and will be a soloist in a concert next year. We don’t have room for a full-size piano in the cottage, but Willow has an upright at her home, and has just started as the resident organist in Stoneleigh Village church.”
“Do you have a budget? Or, more importantly, can you pay, in full, today?”
“We’re looking for something good, not cheap.”
“All right. I think that we have something for you here. This is a Yamaha YC88. It has everything you want, including eighty-eight keys, and is able to be a pure piano, organ, or synthesiser. Why don’t you try it out and then we can talk turkey.”
Willow went first. She tried keys with different settings. The piano sound was almost the same as a baby grand. She played some Chopin, then switched to organ and played some Bach. With a grin, she did a little bit of Purple before letting Gina sit at the instrument.
Gina had been watching carefully, and set it to piano, playing the etude that she had played Tuesday evening. Then she played a couple of the hymns on the organ setting, before going back to the piano to play a couple of the drinking songs she had learned. Maisie looked on.
“What do you think, sweetheart?”
“This is fantastic, Mum. It will fit into the cottage, and I can perfect my playing at home. If we learn some more songs for the club, I can try them out on the upright to get the right sound. I think it will allow me to shine.”
She turned back to the keyboard and played the opening piano part to the Greig. Willow and Wendy were looking on. Wendy turned to Willow.
“Will one of these be right for you, darling?”
“It would be fantastic, Mum. It’s as good as the one I played with the band. If I get to play any pop gigs, I can take it to the venue. All I would need would be amps supplied.”
“All right. What do you think, Maisie?”
“Depends on the price.”
The man smiled.
“Ladies, I have this one, and another in a box. Normally, they would set you back over three thousand, each. But I’ll do the pair for four thousand. As you can see, I may not be open much longer, so it would be good to clear stock. You will get the usual guarantees. I can take card or cash.”
Both Wendy and Maisie pulled out their cards and did the deal. The girls helped the man find the one in the box and checked that it was untouched. He found the original box for the shop unit, and they packaged it up. He threw in the worn stool and the support frame from the shop with the deal. They needed to drop one seat-back to fit both boxes in the car, with the girls having to be very friendly in the back seat that was left.
It was a quiet ride back to Stoneleigh with the adults hoping that what they had paid would be worth it. The two girls were thinking about playing the new instruments. Willow, in particular, was thinking about experimenting with the synthesiser and hoping that she could recreate the MRI sounds. At Stoneleigh, they stopped at Gina’s home and unloaded the new unit, amp and stool. Willow told her that she would pop around later to make sure that she was set up.
At the Rose residence, Willow and Wendy carried the other unit up to her bedroom, while Maisie went back to see what sort of mess Gina was making with the packaging. Willow and her mother stopped for lunch and talked about what they had done.
“I hope Dad’s all right with what you spent?”
“I told him that we may spend three thousand, so we have come out of it much better than I thought. He’ll be happy when you’re up on a stage.”
“Shall I play some Purple for him?”
“I wouldn’t, love. It may upset the neighbours.”
After they tidied up, Willow went up to her room to see what she needed to do. The old keyboard was taken off its support frame and put into a corner. She took the new unit out of the box and wrestled it onto the frame. After she had plugged it in and tested that it had arrived safely, she looked at the inputs and outputs, with the instruction book, to see what she could add.
It had a headphone jack, and she tested to make sure that it muted the internal speaker. There were jacks for two amps and a MIDI input. She sat for a while, playing around with the settings and reading the instruction manual. She realised that it would take hours to work out all the things that she could do. Taking the headphones off, she switched it off and told her mother she was going to see how Gina was getting on.
For the rest of the afternoon, she and Gina were working through the features of the unit, with Gina getting more excited as she realised how many sounds were now open to her. They experimented with Gina’s CD player, sending it into the input jack and finding out if it played through the headphones, along with the organ output. That way, she could set up and work on the Grieg.
Willow finally was able to leave, with them hugging before she left. Maisie followed her out of the house and hugged her as well.
“Thank you, Willow.”
“For what?”
“For being a good friend to Gina, and for helping her become the good pianist that was hovering on the horizon before you turned up. I’m sure that we’ll have many evenings with her serenading me. I’ll see you, tomorrow, at church. Do you think that the Reverend will let us borrow some of the sheet music?”
“I’m certain he will. He’s thinking about two organists in the Village after years of silence. The Club will be thinking about more sing-along evenings, I expect.”
Willow walked back home to help her mother prepare dinner. Her father had been at work today, some sort of upgrade for the new model. As she strolled, she thought about the deal that they had made at the shop. She expected that the demonstration model that she now had would have been written down, if not written off, so the shop owner really hadn’t lost anything. Still, they both had gig-worthy keyboards. All she needed to do now was to put hers to good use.
That evening, after dinner, her parents sat on her bed as she serenaded them with a range of piano pieces. The keyboard lived up to the hype and really did sound like a grand piano. Then she played them some Bach organ music. Her father wanted her to play the intro to ‘Lazy’ that she had played in the concert, and she did so, extending it with snippets of other Purple songs.
When her parents said goodnight, her mother gave her a hug and a wink, before her father smiled as he left. As she brushed her teeth and cleansed, she heard her parent’s bed springs squeak.
‘One day’, she thought. One day she would be operated on and able to experience the things that the boys at the Bristol school had always spoken about, although, at the moment, that was the last thing on her mind.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 12
Sunday morning, they were up and ready for church. Willow showed her parents the pathway across the field, and it was a pleasant stroll in the morning sun. At the church, they saw Maisie and Gina arriving, so the girls left the adults to talk and went up to prepare the organ for the morning service. Willow asked if Gina wanted to play the arrival music, and she sat at the keyboard and started doodling Bach and Beethoven piano pieces.
Willow told her to watch the mirror for when the Reverend arrived at the altar and stop playing. When that happened, they changed places and Willow played the hymns while Gina watched her. At the end, they swapped places again, and Gina played the departure music as the bells pealed. As they tidied up, they talked about the morning.
“You were good with the in and out music, Gina. The only thing that I do, that you didn’t, was to listen to the bells, so that you finish when they do. What did you think about using the bass pedals?”
“It looks as if you don’t have to use them a lot, just some underlying notes to the melody. I was looking at where they come on the music as you played. I think that I’ll be able to follow it, once I teach my feet where to go.”
“It’s a bit too close to the service to play anything else. We can meet here on Saturday morning for you to play the hymns for Sunday. If you feel up to it, you can do the whole service. I’ll be here beside you. We can pick up the music on Friday evening for you to try them at home.”
“I can do that now! It’s wonderful to be able to play at home. There are so many options with that Yamaha. How are you getting on with yours?”
“I played some things for my parents, last night. The piano sound is fantastic. It’s going to take me the rest of the year to get my head around all the things it can do.”
“I know what you mean. I’m going to concentrate on the piano and the simple organ sounds for church. I don’t have the wide talent that you have.”
“My problem is that I sometimes think about several things at once, then get things wrong. The school will be good for me, forcing me into one thing at a time.”
After lunch, Willow was in her room, trying out all of the synthesiser options. She found some that were like the MRI machine. Another thing she found was a variation of the speaker, to give a Leslie variation. Her brain was getting overloaded with what she needed to learn, so stopped that and just concentrated on playing the ‘Seven Improvisations for Organ’, which she thought may be her solo part of the end of year concert.
Monday morning was back in school, and it was now becoming familiar. Willow sat with the orchestra girls in second year for lunch. They were surprised when Alec asked if he could join them to talk about the ‘Bolero’. There was a place next to Willow and he sat there, making her wonder if he had seen the vacant place and made a bold decision. It all seemed normal, as they spoke about the music. When the girls spoke about things that boys normally don’t listen to, he was attentive, and stood up for normal boys, but agreed with them about the nastier ones.
Having been around boys before, Willow could see through his plans. She wasn’t upset, though, and laughed at his jokes along with the others. She could see some of the other girls warming to him and felt a pang of jealousy as he spoke to them. This was an odd feeling, as it was one that she hadn’t felt since the previous school when she had been jealous of the other girls and their freedom to be themselves.
After lunch, he was in her next class, and she found him walking beside her.
“Willow, what do you do on weekends?”
“I’ve been busy helping Gina and we both play the organ in the church at Stoneleigh. It’s been hard to change schools, but I’m slowly getting things in order.”
“Ordered enough to go out with me?”
“As far as that goes, Alec, my parents consider me too young to be dating. But I’ll keep it in mind for when we’re in fifth year, if you’re still asking.”
At the class, she sat with Dianne, but her mind wasn’t fully on the lesson. This was a first for her; a boy wanting to take her out on a date. She had no idea of the way to react, and no idea of what she should do in such a situation. She was happy to have fended him off without him getting angry, and wondered if he would continue to sit with them at lunches. Tuesday orchestra would be a bit different for her this week. It stayed in the back of her mind but was able to concentrate on the last couple of lessons.
On the way home, Gina commented that she was quiet. Not wanting to pull her friend into her thoughts, she replied that she was thinking about the new organ. Gina was happy with that, and the conversation continued about the different things they could do with it. When they were home and changed, Wendy spoke to her.
“All right, Missy. Somethings up, and it isn’t the organ.”
“You’re right, Mum. A boy asked me if I would go out with him today.”
“And what did you tell him?”
“That I am too young and that he can ask again when we’re sixteen.”
“That was very adult of you. Do you like him?”
“He’s nice. He plays flute next to me in the orchestra. Mister Bamborough thought that he was trying to impress me last week as we were playing.”
“That’s always the first step if he likes you. Next time, he’ll be asking you about things you like so he can get you a present for Christmas, if you’re still speaking to each other. Try to find out what his likes are so you can reciprocate. Boys do like to talk about themselves if given the chance. You still have a few months to sort that out.”
Willow looked at her mother, her eyes wide.
“You’re telling me that I should encourage him?”
“Why not. It’s all part of being a girl to have a boy, or two, sniffing around. It’s something you have to learn if you want to go all the way and have the operation, unless you decide that you like girls better.”
“I don’t know what I like!”
“But you do like this boy, as well as having a lot of girls as friends. Has Gina taken her feelings for you any further?”
“Not since she has realised that she is a better performer than she thought. I think that she may have been mixing up admiration with love.”
“All I can say is that you are doing the right things, even if you haven’t planned them as such. Let your instincts help you along. They seem to be working well up to now.”
After dinner and cleaning up, she went up to her room, put the headphones on, and played piano to herself, immersing herself in the music and using the full keyboard; something she could never do with the old one.
Tuesday morning was the second-year chapel. Willow thought that Paul looked her way far too often when he preached about the wickedness of pride. The morning lessons went off easily, but there was a surprise at lunchtime. There was a table set up with a pile of DVDs from the Summer Project Concert. They were five pounds each, with the proceeds going to buy equipment for the school.
There was a line of students waiting to buy one, and Willow didn’t have the five pounds, so she went and sat at the usual place with her lunch. Alec came over and sat beside her as the girls started arriving. Dianne had two discs, and Alec had the one.
“I didn’t get to see this concert, but I’ve heard so much about it since we came back to school. Some of the boys in the orchestra have been raving on about how good it is.”
“It was fun to do, Alec, but I was asleep in the car on the way home from all the excitement.”
“You were there? But you didn’t start school until a few weeks after.”
Dianne leaned over and smiled.
“Your crush was in three acts that night. She helped me and my sister get our extra marks by playing violin in our quartet. Then she was in the choir line-up. Then she played organ in the second half, as part of the Shallow Blue, replacing Jim, who went down with measles.”
“Wow! That was some show. I wish there was some way that I can do one of those summer projects. It’s a bit hard when you play the flute. I know that there’re some trios and quartets written with the flute, but hardly any pop bands use it these days.”
They had nearly finished their meal when Gerry came over to their table.
“Willow, we have had a lot of requests to do another show at the end of term. We were wondering if you could play the organ. We’re not sure what sort of music we’ll play, yet, but we have a while to think of something. Geoff thinks that once the DVD has been watched, there’ll be plenty who will want to come along. We won’t be doing a summer project, because we’ll be going up to fifth year and need to concentrate on our academic subjects.”
“I’ll have a think about things we can do. Are there any songs from your pop stuff that you think would work?”
“We have done some blues. I love to play blues, and Geoff plays a mean harmonica, which he showed a bit of in Shallow Blue. Maybe, we can do a show of blues? You might find some that use organ in the line-up.”
Alec was looking on, wide-eyed, as Gerry walked away.
“Is Geoff on this disc? He’s a good guitarist.”
“Yes, the rest of the band are now in fourth year. As well as Geoff, there’s Gerry, Grant and Garry. They’ve been doing private shows as G-Force. The show we did was all Deep Purple numbers. I remember looking out at the audience and seeing some pained expressions when we were playing, but most of the audience enjoyed it.”
That afternoon, it was orchestra. Willow picked up her clarinet case and joined the others in the rehearsal room. When she looked around, there were some extra seats. They found their places, and Zara gave her a wave as she came in with her cello case. As they were setting up, Mister Bamborough handed out the sheet music.
“Last week, I thought that the ‘Bolero’ sounded a bit thin. We’ve co-opted some of the senior orchestra to fill out the sound. I’ve had a word with the Head, and we’ve agreed that this orchestra will do a full concert at the end of this term, playing the ‘Bolero’ and the Grieg. The Senior Orchestra will do a full concert next term, with some of you being co-opted into helping them. Over next term, and next year, we’ll concentrate on the combined orchestras for the Saint-Saens concert, which we will put on at the end of the school year, and, hopefully, in May to a paying audience. Now, let’s start from the top, and see how much better we can make this.”
With extra percussion, strings, and brass, the ‘Bolero’ was much better. The seniors had played it before, so there were no slip-ups. After the first playing, they were told to take a break as a few from the drama class came in with their cameras and sound equipment.
“This is just so we can show the Head what we can do, before we concentrate on other things. How are you going with the Grieg, Miss Summer?”
“Good, sir. Willow and I have now got a pair of YC88 keyboards, and I’ve been playing it at home. I should be good to go, next week.”
“That’s great. I’ll set this room up with the piano. Right, let’s play the ‘Bolero’, and make it zing!”
They played the ‘Bolero’ and Willow thought that it sounded as good as a professional orchestra. When they finished, Mister Bamborough told them that they could go earlier than usual but would stay around if anyone wanted to ask any questions. Willow and Gina had to wait for Maisie to come for them, so they waited as he answered some of the questions. When it was their turn, Willow asked about the Summer Project next year.
“You can register your interest, and we’ll look at adding it to the concert. I know that the Gees will not be playing, so you may have to put together another band. There are some good guitarists in the junior school, and we do have a solid group of percussion players, as you’ve heard today. Let me know what you want to do, and I’ll see if we can let you have a rehearsal room in the later weeks of the last term. Then, we can decide if there’s anything good for the concert.
“Can you pencil me in, sir, and I’ll see if there are any guitarists who might like to join. I don’t know what we’ll be playing, yet.”
“Hopefully, a little more restrained than Deep Purple. I had a few complaints from the board members who went home with ringing in their ears. It may have been that you dislodged some wax, but don’t let on that I said so.”
Willow and Gina collected their things and went out to wait for Maisie.
“What are you thinking, Willow?”
“I don’t know, yet, but something will come up. What we need is music that will have a pop group, plus two keyboards, so that you can get some extra marks. There has to be a lot out there, so I’ll have to do some research.”
When she was dropped off at home, Willow had the meal that her mother had saved for her. As they were wiping her dishes, she thought about the DVDs.
“Mum. The school had copies of that concert for sale on DVD. It had been filmed and recorded during that evening. They’re asking five pounds for one.”
“Now, that’s fantastic! I’ll give you ten pounds in the morning, and you can get two. I’ve spoken to my mother, and she wants to see her new granddaughter. We can give her one to watch. She was a Purple fan in her day, it must have rubbed off on me. If you see about the church music on Friday evening, we’ll go over and see my parents on Saturday.”
As Willow was trying to get to sleep, she thought about the way her grandparents had treated her when she was still William. She hoped that they loved her as much as they did then. At least, they now knew about the changes.
The rest of the week went as usual, with Alec bringing his DVD back on Wednesday to get her to sign it for him. She bought the two for her parents and grandparents. In PE, she was quickly chosen to play goalkeeper in the netball games, and was told that, if she kept it up, she may be picked for the inter-school competition in spring.
Friday was the first music lesson, all afternoon. She found it very interesting, as the first thing that they studied was pop music. The teacher was Mister Jamieson, and he started with the popular music of the Tudors and worked forward from there. They had reached vaudeville songs of the end of the nineteenth century by the end of the three hours, with a few that both Willow and Gina already knew.
The two girls had arranged to meet at the church before dinner and were given the three hymns for Sunday. They got the organ set up, and Gina played the first verses of each of them, a couple of times. Willow gave her a hug and declared that Gina was able to play the full service. Gina took the sheet music with her to rehearse at home.
Saturday, after an early breakfast, Ashley went off to do an overtime day on the new model, and Wendy took Willow off to visit her parents. They had a copy of the DVD for them, as well as some photos that Wendy had taken since ‘the change’. It was a pleasant trip to Stapleford, just south of Cambridge, and, when Wendy parked in the driveway of the semi-detached bungalow on Aylesford Way, the door opened, and her parents came out to greet them.
Wendy was hugged my both her parents, then introduced Willow ‘in the flesh’ who was hugged as well. Her mother declared that they had a lot to talk about and that morning tea was almost ready, with the kettle needing to be put on.
Over the course of the next couple of hours, Wendy’s parents were brought up to date with the new jobs, the new school, the full reasons why William was now Willow, and she had the pictures of his scars to show the extent of the bullying. Willow was relieved that her grandparents were so ready to accept her, even praising her for the way she acted as any other girl, even with a habit of touching her chin that her mother had when she was a teenager.
They walked around the corner to the Three Horseshoes for lunch. They had an upright in the saloon, and her grandmother commented that her father would be on the ivories, had he still been alive. Wendy went and spoke to the publican, and he gave permission for Willow to give it a play. They had an uproarious hour, with Willow playing old drinking songs and most of the patrons crowding in to sing along. Back at the bungalow, Willow was now the favourite granddaughter, with her grandfather having recorded a lot of lunch time on his phone. Willow went over to their stereo player and looked at the CD’s that they had.
“Gramma. Were there any bands around when you were young that had an organ in the line-up?”
“Lots, sweetie. There were The Animals, Manfred Mann, several American bands. The one that I remember was The Moody Blues. I went to see them when they played at Yarmouth, in nineteen sixty-nine. They were doing all the seaside towns on a tour. They had just brought out the first of their ‘concept’ albums. It was ‘Days of Future Past’. I’ve got the CD here. The thing was that they recorded it with a full orchestra, but were able to play it live, because the organist had a fantastic organ that could reproduce orchestral sounds. Their act was the whole album, from start to finish, with the last track being their biggest hit, ‘Nights in White Satin’, which you’ve probably heard.”
“That one, I know. So, there is a whole album of similar songs.”
“Actually, there were seven albums. Some not so good as the first, but they all have at least one killer song on them. Look, I have the complete set here. Why don’t you take them home with you and see what you think? You can bring them back when you come to see us, again.”
“Why don’t you come to see us for a few days? We’re working towards having a school concert at the end of term, and I’m in the orchestra.”
“Yes, Mum. Why don’t you come and stay for a while. We have a spare room, so just need to put a bed in it, after Ashley has cleaned it out. That will give him an excuse to get a shed in the back garden.”
“That would be lovely, dear. Now, Willow, let’s look and see where those CDs are.”
Wendy was happy as she drove them back to Stoneleigh. Willow had a bundle of CD’s to listen to when she could.
“Mum. There was something that we never told Gramps.”
“What was that, dear?”
“We didn’t say anything about our link with the Leigh family.”
“That’s because it was more your father’s side. It’s funny, though. You with great grandfathers on both sides who played in a pub. That must be where you got a double dose of the performing genes. I never knew that I had a pianist in my family. He had passed before I was born.”
Back home, they had a light dinner, and Willow went to her room to listen to the first CD. It opened her eyes, as here was a pop group, with an orchestra behind them, and not only an organist, but a flute player as well. She researched them on the internet, to find that most had already died, or retired. Over the next week, she listened to all the CDs, including an extra ‘Best of’ and chose seven songs that would work well in a school concert. She made ten discs of the songs, in the order she thought would work. Each one was marked ‘Blue Moods’.
At orchestra on the Tuesday afternoon, she said nothing to anyone else as they went through the beginning of rehearsal for the Grieg. Gina showed that her time with her own instrument was paying dividends, and they were able to work through the first movement without a lot of fuss. Before they left, Zara gave Gina and Willow a hug, telling them that this concert was going to knock previous ones into a can.
Tuesday evening, Willow also researched the other bands that had been mentioned. Manfred Mann supplied a number of good blues songs, which she found strange considering how poppy their hits were. She added a few Eric Clapton numbers and made another set of CDs with eight tracks. These were marked ‘Blue Blues’. She then added both sets to her phone.
At lunch on Friday. She gave Alec, Gina, Geoff, Gerry, Grant, and Garry notes to ask them if they could meet in a rehearsal room the following Wednesday after lessons. She had arranged for the room to be vacant, and that it had a small amplifier in, and that Mister Bamborough would attend, as he needed to give them the green light for the project that she had in mind.
Both Gina and Alec had questions for her, but she told them that all would be revealed at the meeting. She had asked Maisie to pick them up later on Wednesday. Willow and Gina went to the rehearsal room, followed by Alec. After a few minutes, they were joined by the Gees and the Head of Music.
Willow plugged her phone output into the small amp and then turned to the group waiting for the big revelation.
“I’ve asked you here because I’ve had an idea about an end of term concert. It can be this term or next term. We’ve been told that there are a lot of requests for the Shallow Blue to play again. However, what I propose is for us to have the whole evening, with two line-ups. The first half that I propose is for a band called the Blue Blues and is all bluesy numbers. The second half is what I’ve called Blue Moods and is the music of the Moody Blues. If you think that we can do it, sir, I’m asking if we can put on the whole show.”
She found the start of the blues concert on her phone then they sat and listened to parts of the songs. It started with Layla, worked through Clapton numbers, then a few standards, like Mojo, Hootchie Cootchie Man, and ended with Stormy Monday Blues. She had added House of the Rising sun as an encore. At the end, she handed out a disc of the songs to everyone.
Then, she started the second set, beginning with Dawn, ending with Veteran Cosmic Rocker, and Nights In White Satin as the encore. As she handed out the discs, she could see Alec beaming.
“Look, we’ve gone a bit late, tonight. We don’t have to discuss this tonight. Please listen to the tracks again, in full, and see how each of you can fit in. I expect that you may have changes you want to make, but each show will be complicated enough for the school.”
There were smiles, all round, as she reclaimed her phone, and they made their way out of the school. The only surprise, for her, was that each of the Gees gave her a hug as they left, and that Alec not only hugged her, but gave her a quick kiss as well. Gina left her hug until they were outside Willow’s home.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 13
When Willow went in, Wendy had some sandwiches for her after she had changed.
“How did this mysterious meeting go? Are you ruling the world yet?”
“Not that serious, Mum. All I did was to get together with a few people and play them some songs which I thought might make a good concert.”
“Oh, yes. Now give, before I get you some ice cream.”
“It was the Gees that I played Purple with; plus, Gina, Alec and Mister Bamborough. I’ve put together two halves of a show, with the first half being blues and the second half being Moody Blues. We’ll work out the line-ups later, but I think that Gina can play organ with the blues set, and we’ll both be needed in the second half, with Alec on the flute. Mister Bamborough has a copy of each disc to talk it over with other teachers. The thing is that I’ve heard that they have needed to produce more copies of the summer concert and that there have been requests that we play again.”
“That’s quite an initiative, young lady, one that you would never have thought about once upon a time.”
“Once upon a time I wasn’t a girl and hadn’t been kissed.”
“Do tell. Is this something recent?”
“Alec followed the others and gave me a hug when we left school tonight. The thing was that he took advantage of it to give me a peck on the lips. Well, one side, but it took me by surprise.”
“So, angry, upset or intrigued?”
“Not sure at the moment. It’s not something that a boy has ever done to me in the past. Hitting me, yes, but hitting on me is new.”
“Was there a reason that he wanted to kiss you?”
“Well, he was moaning about there not being much pop music that has a flute in it, and the Moody Blues uses it a lot. I think that he just wanted to thank me by giving me something.”
“That’ll give you something to ponder when you go to bed. You know, if this concert goes ahead, it may be the subject of another DVD, and there’ll be some who will want you playing actual gigs. I hope it doesn’t come between you and your exams.”
That night, Willow had cleansed and was in her bed, cuddling her two friends. She told them what had happened and gave Shaun a quick kiss, telling him that he was a ‘Baaad Boy’.
Thursday was usual. At lunch, Alec was full of his need to be on the stage and playing his flute. Gina wondered what her place would be, and Willow told her that she could play the blues half, with them both needed to recreate the orchestral sounds in the second half.
“What about vocals?”
“Geoff and Gerry both have good singing voices, and the rest of us can do backing. We’ll just have to rehearse and fine-tune as we go.”
Friday was their second music session. Starting from the beginning of music hall and the advent of wartime music. Then on to the flapper days and big bands playing the songs that everyone knew. The lesson finished with the second war and the influx of American soldiers bringing jazz, swing bands, and American country music. The students were encouraged to research the times for themselves.
Being Willow’s turn for the church, she went over and picked up the music for the hymns on Friday evening, running through them at home on Saturday morning. In the afternoon, she revisited the two concert projects, and listened to the Moody’s, trying to make notes of what sounds were needed with the two keyboards. She knew that it all depended on what the school said they could do.
Saturday afternoon, Gina came over and they listened to the Moody Blues and tried to dissect the sounds that they would need to recreate with the organs. They decided that Willow would concentrate on plain organ and making the strings sounds, while Gina would do the brass and woodwind. On Willow’s Yamaha, they found all the settings that would do the job, then ran through the CD that Willow had made, playing along to the songs, taking turns to get the right sounds. Then, they spent a little time with the second and third movements of the Grieg, before Gina needed to go home. After dinner, Willow used the headphones to improve her parts of the Moody concert.
Sunday morning saw her up with the church organ, playing classical doodles as people came in. She saw Rupert come in with an older man, and go up to her parents, sitting with them and Edie in a pew. The service was a normal one, with three hymns. Willow could see that there were some of the congregation who were gathering together to sing. Afterwards, she shut the organ down and went outside. Rupert called her over and introduced her to the Sixth Baron Leigh, his father, Christopher, who praised her work on the organ at such a young age. Before they left, the Roses had been invited to the Baron’s home for the next weekend. It was an invitation that she knew could pave the way to better things for her family, so went over to Gina to confirm that she could take the organ for next week’s service.
It was still Sunday morning, but Wendy was now starting to jump up and down.
“Ash, my love. Next weekend we’re visiting the nobility and your favourite girls have absolutely nothing to wear. We’ll need something casual but classy, perhaps something better for Saturday evening, and something else to come home in. The shops are open this afternoon until half past four, and Bonmarche is calling us. Can’t you hear it?”
“Now that you mention it, my darling, I can hear the tills ringing from here.”
The went home to get the car out. Wendy and Willow changed into casual skirt and top outfits, and they were off into Coventry. They had lunch in the shopping centre and went into Bonmarche. The two women came out with bags containing tops, trousers, and skirts. Ashley had bought some new slacks and shirts.
Willow had been undergoing a new sensation, in getting clothes to look good in, rather than just to wear because you have to wear something. She had a good skirt on with a colourful top, and Wendy remarked that it would be a good outfit for a date. Willow looked at herself, did a pose and smiled. She wondered, fleetingly, if Alec would like the look.
On Monday, lunchtime, Miss Russell gave Willow a letter, with the school letterhead, giving the seven band members the permission to set up in a rehearsal room to work on the two halves of the concert, with a tentative performance date a few weeks before the close of the second term, in mid-March. They had until the end of the next week to see if it would work. During the lunch period, she showed it to all the others and got high-fives and hugs as she passed on the news. Now, they had somewhere to set up. Geoff, Grant, and Garry told her that they would organise amps and other equipment. Garry said that the rehearsal room had a lock, and that they could get a key from admin, so they could bring their own equipment in. The school had the organ that Willow had played at the previous concert, so, all they needed was an extra organ for the second half. By the time they were ready to go home, the Gees had taken over the logistics, with an initial session starting Wednesday, and hoping that they would know how they stood by the end of the following Friday.
That evening, Gina arranged for her mother to pick them up at around seven on the other days. Willow would have her new organ with her on Wednesday morning, as Gina still needed hers to rehearse the Grieg. Alec lived near Grant, so they had organised to take him home.
On Tuesday morning, Paul was his usual self. Willow was starting to wonder why he never had the organ uncovered, and why the hymn was always sung without any accompaniment. She had a fleeting thought that he may be just lazy.
Tuesday orchestra was good, as they worked on the second and third movements of the Grieg, with Gina exhibiting the skill that she was now embracing. The two movements took around twenty minutes, so they had a chance to play the full piece for the first time, before they went home. On the way to Stoneleigh, Gina told her mother about the session, and that it had been a genuine milestone, because she had played the whole piece with only odd times that she needed to look at the music.
On Wednesday, Willow had her Yamaha in its box, along with the frame and extra cables. Gina helped her to carry it into the locker room and put it in her locker. At lunch, Alec was almost hyper, looking forward to his first session as part of a pop group. After the lessons, the girls carried the organ to the rehearsal room, which was already open.
The Gees had set up the amplifiers and laid out cables. The other organ was already there. It didn’t take long before the second organ was set up. They all had microphones to a small PA with a pair of speakers facing them. They decided to work on the two shows alternatively. With the first blues number to start with. Gina got comfortable with the organ and Willow sat off to one side as the others started working. Nobody had suggested any changes yet, so the first number was ‘Layla’. It was something that the boys already knew, and just needed Gina to get on board. She had been listening to the CD, so had a good idea of what to do. It took the second run through to be passable. Geoff called it a good try and said that they should work on ‘Dawn’.
The work that Willow and Gina had already put in paid off immediately, as they were able to recreate most of an orchestra, once they had worked out a simple starting phrase. This sort of music suited the boy’s voices much better than Purple, and they had a passable rendition by the time they had been playing an hour. Alec was, by now, starting to enjoy himself. They all sang the backing and Willow was almost in tears as she heard them for the first time.
They had a short break, and then worked on the second songs in the list. Willow and Alec sat it out as they worked on ‘Cocaine’. They had time to work on the second of the Moody Blues songs, ‘Legend in the Mind (Timothy Leary)’, before getting time to pack up. With everything shut down and the room locked, they went out to find their rides home, the Gees now fully committed to the project and Alec looking like he had won the lottery.
Thursday, they worked on ‘After Midnight’ and ‘Hoochie Coochie Man’ for the blues part, and ‘The Voice Within’, and ‘For my Lady’ for the second part, with Alec doing the vocals for that one. Geoff was now the main vocalist and playing harmonica, while Gerry did the main guitar work.
Friday was a bit different. With Gina now getting the hang of improvising blues organ, they worked on the final three songs of the first concert, as well as the encore number. Willow was grooving along to ‘I’ve got my Mojo Working’ when Alec pulled her to her feet, and they started dancing. ‘Stormy Monday Blues’ was next, followed by ‘Smokestack Lightning’, which ends with a sudden halt. Both were slower songs and she kept dancing with Alec, much to the amusement of the rest of the band. The encore was ‘House of the Rising Sun’, which had Garry singing while playing bass. He had a gravelly voice and fitted the song well.
As they shut things down, they talked about the progress. All four Gees were happy with how things had gone, complimented Gina on her organ work, and they agreed to finish off the Moody’s part by the end of Thursday, with the Friday session being filmed and recorded by the drama students for showing the teachers.
Willow was happy to leave her organ set up, as she wouldn’t need it over the weekend. As they walked out towards their rides, Alec took hold of her hand. It didn’t seem unusual, considering that they had spent the best part of half an hour dancing with his arm around her.
That was something that they refrained from talking about on the way home. As she got out of the car, Willow wished Gina good luck with the Sunday service. She stood and watched the car go back to the junction. Her thoughts were a jumble of music and the memory of being close to Alec as they danced. It was such a new sensation, which she decided was down to the hormone injection and the tablets she was now taking.
She stood there for so long, that Wendy opened the door and asked her if she was coming in or going to stand out in the garden like a gnome. She had been eating more at lunch, so was only having sandwiches in the evening, and quickly changed to come down to the kitchen while her parents were watching the television. When she had tidied up, she looked in to see what they were watching, decided that she wasn’t interested, and gave them both a hug before she went up to her room.
She was in bed, reading, when her mother knocked on the door, came in and sat on the bed.
“Never, ever, play poker, Willow. You are far too easy to see through. Now, what happened today? Nothing bad, I hope.”
“Not bad, Mum. Just a bit different. We had a two-hour session working on the blues section of the concert, and the guys wanted to go through to the end of it, leaving Alec and me just sitting it out. Then, he pulled me up and we danced. That was all right, except the last couple of numbers are slower, and me, like a fool, didn’t sit down. We danced for nearly half an hour with his arm around me as the rest of them worked through the songs. Then, on the way out, he took my hand. And I let him!”
“My, my! You are growing up faster and faster. Usual question. Upset, neutral, or pleased?”
“I was neutral, for most of the time. It was when I got home that I realised what had really happened. I had been up close and personal with Alec in front of the others, and nobody did anything but smile.”
“Did he try and kiss you when you left school?”
“No! The rotter just gave my hand a squeeze as we got to Maisie’s car. That’s why I was gazing at nothing when you opened the door. I was wondering whether to blame the hormones or the pills, or if I’m just being silly.”
“Not silly, my girl. Just a normal teenager who has realised that boys have an attraction, after so long avoiding them. He is showing his affection but tempering it with restraint. When he does kiss you, you’ll be able to process it better for not being rushed. In the meantime, you’ll find yourself mooning about him and wondering if you should call him to talk to.”
“Funny about that. It did cross my mind.”
“Over the weekend, you’ll need to act as the adult you’re becoming. I don’t know what will be happening on this visit, but I’m certain that it will replace him in your thoughts, if only for a little while.”
They had breakfast on Saturday morning, then went off to shower and dress. Ashley was very presentable in new slacks and shirt, with a leather jacket to offset the cold. Wendy and Willow had decided to do the mother and daughter look, with similar tailored slacks and silk blouses. They had linen jackets in the same colour as the slacks. Willow felt very ladylike. Putting their overnight bags in the car, which had been warming up in the driveway, they set off for the Cotswolds.
They had the destination set in the GPS, and enjoyed being on the road, although they were all worried about what they were going to find when that got there. The house, when they pulled up outside, was a typical red brick farmhouse, but a fair bit larger than most. As they got out, Rupert came out to greet them.
“Welcome to Fern Farm. It’s nothing like the Abbey but it’s a lot easier to keep warm. Come and meet the rest of the family.”
They got the overnight bags and followed him into the house.
“Just put your bags by the stairs and come through to the control room of every farm, the kitchen.”
They must have arrived at morning teatime, as they saw Christopher and some others around a big table with cups in front of them and a big platter of buns in the middle of the table.
“You met Dad on Sunday. On his right is my mother, Marie. To her right are my sister, Cassandra and her fiancé Terry. Take a seat. Folks, this is Ashley and Wendy Rose, and their very talented daughter, Willow. Did you bring the family history, Ashley?”
“It’s in my bag.”
“We’ll have a look at that later, It’s a fair trip from Stoneleigh, so tuck in. All good with tea?”
Hands were shaken and air-kisses made, then Rupert and his mother organised the tea and handed out plates. Willow felt as if she was a fly on the wall of a movie. Everything was so gentle and polite. As Marie and Cassandra moved around, she was glad of her mother’s foresight with their shopping, as she didn’t feel underdressed.
The talk centred around the family links and Rupert recounted his first meeting with the Rose family. When he said that Willow had been playing the church organ that Sunday, Cassandra asked her if she did weddings.
“I’ve only been playing in the church for about a month. The Reverend has asked me if I would play at weddings, but we haven’t had one yet. He told me that he had done a few marriages at Stoneleigh Abbey and that the organ there is good to play.”
Marie looked up.
“There you go, Cassie. I told you that the Abbey did weddings. I’m sure that we could organise one there. Rupert, you’ve been there more than me; do they have special packages?”
“They do, I think. It includes accommodation before and after the event, the service in the chapel and the reception in the Great Hall. I think they also do a marquee event if you have more than can fit into the house.”
“Willow, dear. How would you play the organ in a marquee?”
“Using a long power lead to a central board where you take the lights and power from. They sometimes use four-fifteen out to the plugboard for safety. A portable organ has an output to an amplifier.”
The Baron chuckled.
“That’s the power we use on the farm for the workshop equipment. I think we have to look into that one, Cassie.”
“Yes, Dad. Rupert, dear brother. Do you think that you can see if you can look into dates clear for Easter. Willow, would the Reverend conduct my marriage at the Abbey?”
“He would be happy to. How many guests are you planning for?”
That took until nearly lunch to resolve, with Cassandra just wanting a smaller wedding, with Terry very happy about that, and her mother insisting that it should be a grand affair with all the extended family attending. In the end, Cassandra prevailed. Willow suggested that if the Abbey wasn’t available, St. Marys would be able to cater for a smaller affair.
“The point is, Cassandra, that it’s the church that the Leigh family founded and supported. One of your family was even the preacher there for many years. There are lots of your family buried and revered there. Even the Village is named after your family.”
The Baron smiled.
“The girl has a valid point, Cassie. I was there last Sunday. I haven’t been for years. It’s a lovely church, the Reverend is very nice, the organist is exceptional. We could always have a marquee in the Abbey grounds for the reception. By being here for thirty years has distanced us from our roots. It would be good to reconnect with Stoneleigh.”
The discussion halted so that the cook could take over in the kitchen, and the Roses could be shown their rooms. Collecting their bags on the way, they went upstairs to freshen up. Willow almost laughed when she saw where she would be sleeping, as it was very similar to the room she had in Bristol, with the uneven floor.
Back downstairs, they assembled in the parlour. Ashley and the Baron looking at the Rose family history, back to Marie Campbell. Wendy and Marie sat, talking about families, while Willow sat with Cassandra and Terry, with Cassandra asking her about her school, and hobbies. When Willow said that she played piano, Cassie grinned.
“There’s one in the dining room. Come on, the oldies won’t miss us.”
The three of them went to the dining room, where a big table had been laid for lunch. The piano stood at one wall. Willow gasped when she saw that it was a Steinway upright. She sat at the piano, while the others pulled out a couple of chairs.
“What do you want to hear?”
“Terry and I are young and spend a lot of time in pubs. We’re not into hip-hop or rap.”
“So, a little pub music, maybe.”
She started playing the drinking songs and the couple smiled and started singing along. Willow was at one of the best pianos in the world, playing the same tunes that had entertained the drinkers at the Stoneleigh Club. She had the feeling that she was in some indie film having a dream sequence. It became more unreal when the rest of the family joined them for a sing-along, which lasted until the cook started to bring out the lunch. Whatever doubts she had about being here, the ice was well and truly shattered as they sat down to eat.
That set the tone for the rest of their stay. They were shown some of the records of the family, a few paintings of ancestors, a tour of the farm and explanation of what was produced. They were taken to The Porch House, near Stow on the Wold, in a people mover with Rupert driving. There, they had dinner and Willow ate a meal of smoked haddock and prawn cakes. The adults all had wine, with Rupert stopping at one. Willow had a lemonade, with Wendy tipping a little bit of white wine into her glass when she had emptied it.
They went back to Fern Farm and then off to bed after a nightcap. Breakfast was various tureens of hot food, so they all tucked in to eggs, sausages, bacon and the trimmings. After that, they were back in the people mover and into Stow on the Wold. There, they went to the St. Edwards church for the morning service. Wendy and Willow had been told about this, so were in new dresses for the occasion.
They were early enough to be shown the famous north door, which is flanked by a pair of enormous yew trees growing right against the church wall. Inside the church, Willow was drawn to the big bank of organ pipes. There was a voice behind her.
“I’m sorry, miss. Our organist is in hospital at the moment. You’ll have to come back if you want to hear it.”
“Just professional curiosity, sir. I play the organ at St. Marys at Stoneleigh. I’m with Baron Leigh and his family today.”
“If I get the vicar’s permission, would you play for us this morning?”
“I’d love to.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 14
He was back quickly.
“Right, let’s get this opened and turned on. It’s electric in a traditional instrument. Here’s the hymns for this morning. Thank you for sitting in.”
Willow was grinning as she started playing the Bach arrival melodies. The organ had a much broader sound than the one in Stoneleigh. As the congregation came in, her mother looked for her, seeing her at the organ. She wagged her finger before she went to sit with the others. The service was similar to what Willow was used to, with the vicar being very clear with the hymn numbers. There were only three, and Willow had played them all. There were no bells, but Willow played Bach until the man who had spoken to her came up to tell her she could stop.
“Thank you, miss. It’s a dull service without the organ. We have a piano, as well, which we use for special events, such as children’s services. You are very good; St. Marys is lucky to have you.”
Willow went out to be greeted by the others. Her mother tried to be stern.
“You little minx! We can’t take you anywhere without you finding some ivories to play. I thought that today was going to be a rest day for you.”
The Baron put a hand on her arm.
“Don’t be angry, Wendy. That was a wonderful service, with the organ sounding magnificent. Willow is a special talent and a talent like hers needs to find an outlet for it whenever she can. This weekend has been very enjoyable, and I’m so glad that we’ve met. There’ll be more visits in the future, that’s certain.”
The vicar joined them.
“Thank you for bringing these visitors, Baron, the service was better with the organ. Where did you learn to play like that, Miss?”
“I’ve been playing at St. Marys at Stoneleigh for a month or so. I’m studying at the Blue Coat School in Coventry in the music stream.”
“They would have to have you in the orchestra with you playing so well.”
“I am in the orchestra, sir, but play clarinet.”
“Have you taken part in any of the concerts?”
Ashley snorted.
“There a week and she’s in a DVD of their Summer Project, and the discs are walking off the shelves. You can get it through the school website.”
“My, my! A real future star.”
The Baron grinned.
“And part of the family, as well. Willow is a descendent of the brother of the third baroness. We only found out the connection recently. I expect that you may see more of her in the time to come.”
As the talk swirled around her, Willow had that feeling that she was in a dream sequence, once more. She pinched herself to wake up, then smiled as she realised that if it was really a dream, the pinch would be part of the dream as well.
Lunch, back at the Porch House, was very real. The talk was about the likelihood of future visits, the wedding plans, and the enjoyable visit that they had experienced. Back at Fern Farm, the Roses packed up and put their bags in the car. The farewells were protracted, with many hugs and kisses, but they were heading home before mid-afternoon. Wendy waited until they were back on a main road before breaking the silence.
“That went well.”
“It did, my love. The Baron is a great guy. He will be adding our little twig to the official family tree. That will put us into the next edition of Burke’s Peerage.”
“That will be interesting. When is the next edition?”
“Ten or twenty years, I think. Just don’t hold your breath. Although he did say that they make corrections in the on-line version quicker.”
Wendy turned to ask Willow what she thought, but Willow had her eyes shut. Wendy decided that she was either shutting the world out or could be asleep. It had been a very full, and very interesting weekend, especially for her talented daughter. She had to admit that the organ, this morning, sounded magnificent and it was her child producing those sounds.
…………………………………………………
In Stoneleigh, Gina was sitting at her keyboard listening to the last of the Moody’s songs that they had to get right. For her, last week had been almost more than she could bear. At the beginning of term, she had just been a pianist in the background; now she was out front and soloing with the orchestra, playing organ with a blues group, and doubling up with her best friend on keyboard for some of the most complicated music that she had ever tried to play. Not only that, but she was also singing backing! The next week would see them, hopefully, have it all good enough to get the green light from the school. She thought about playing in the church, that morning, and wondered if Willow had enjoyed her day off.
………………………………………
Monday morning was hard for Willow to wake up to. The need to be always correct and ladylike had been draining, even without playing the drinking songs. She giggled at the thought of the Baron and Baroness roaring with laughter as they tried to remember the words to a few of the tunes. She had really clicked with Cassandra and Terry and had told them to look on the school website to see what was coming up.
The main thing that was slowing her down, this morning, was the need to go back to being just another schoolgirl. In her mind, she had realised the responsibilities that come with being a grown woman, that had never been on the radar in the future as a boy. There were standards to be maintained, with the Leigh women as perfect examples.
Going to school, she told Gina a little bit about the people she had met and the places she had been. She spoke about St. Edwards and the door, but nothing about playing their organ. Gina told her that Sunday morning, for her, went well. The day dragged for both of them, until, at last, they were joining the others in the rehearsal room.
When everything was ready, they tried ‘Driftwood’. It was a slow song, but here she was, in the band, with Alec in front of her, playing his flute. It took another two tries before they moved on. ‘Veteran Cosmic Rocker’ was to be the nominal last song. It was loud and proud, with some very difficult timing, and took them the rest of the session to get close. As they were packing up to leave, Alec came over to her.
“Willow, my parents watched that DVD over the weekend. They were very interested in the second half, seeing that the band is this one that I’m rehearsing with. They want to meet you, as Mum wheedled it out of me why I was smiling a lot. She told me that I was usually grumpy on weekends.”
“So, what is it that makes you smile?”
“Knowing you, of course. What else could it be?”
“Ooh! Finally playing flute in a rock band, maybe.”
“That too. Anyway, how are we going to arrange for them to meet you?”
“Well, I will be playing the organ in St. Marys in Stoneleigh for the Sunday morning service. If they bring you to that, I’ll ask my mother if you could come to lunch with us. That way, you’ll not only get them meeting me and my folks, but you’ll also taste some of my cooking.”
“Can you let me know at orchestra tomorrow? That would be great. Dad has always told me that you can tell how a girl will grow up by meeting her mother.”
She gave him a mock punch on the arm, then he took her hand, and they walked out to the cars. He held her back as the rest went ahead, then stopped and leaned in to give her a kiss. It didn’t last long, and, when they continued walking, Willow smiled.
“We’ll see if you want to do that again after my cooking.”
“I can’t see you doing anything that will stop me wanting to kiss you.”
He squeezed her hand before letting go as they reached the car. Willow got in the back and gave him a wave as they drove away. Alec had a smile on his face as he went to join Grant for his own trip home.
When Willow got home, she waited until she could get her mother alone.
“Mummy, dear. I was talking to Alec, and he said that his parents want to meet me, for some reason. I suggested that he talk them into coming to church on Sunday and then we sit them down for lunch. I told him that once he’d eaten my cooking he would cool off.”
“Is that what you want?”
“Not really. Can we do that? I’ll help in the kitchen.”
“Look, with something like lunch, we can prepare it all on Saturday, then keep it in the fridge. We do have a microwave, so reheating things isn’t a problem. The kitchen table has room for six, so sitting in there isn’t a problem. Not everyone has a big dining room.”
“Especially one with a Steinway upright, in perfect tune, just gathering dust.”
“All right. Tell him it’s on if his parents are happy to come out this way. Where does he live?”
“Somewhere in the south-western suburbs, I think.”
…………………………………………….
Sitting in his home office, Paul was sorting out the reading for the next morning. He was angry with himself for his thoughts. That girl, Rose, would be there with the second-year classes. He knew that she played the organ at a church, and that Reg had advised him that she would liven up his Tuesday service. He just couldn’t bring himself to acknowledge her, so did without music. It hadn’t been a problem, so far.
What worried him was that she did all the right things, but seemed to be acting on remote control, lowering her head so he couldn’t see her lips move, without actually professing her faith. He suspected that she didn’t have any faith, and was just making the moves, and for that, she should be admonished.
…………………………………………
Tuesday morning, Willow thought Paul looked stressed. The reading was about those who followed Jesus around but really didn’t believe that it was real. Doubting Thomas was the main culprit, but was won over, in the end. Willow considered him to have been weak to just roll over, and the injection of magic into the narrative left her cold. Historically, she knew that there were people in the bible who actually lived, but when the magic happened to make the population believe, it all went a little off the rails. Without the ‘miracles’ there was nothing to believe. She wondered if that was why she played a church organ, being part of the proceedings but up in her hidey-hole without needing to pray.
The rest of the day went as expected, and the orchestra went well. Today, Mister Bamborough thought they were good enough to do both the pieces that they had been working on. The piano was out front, next to his rostrum, and they started off with the ‘Bolero’. They had a five-minute break, the sort of time that they would have in a concert, then went straight into the Grieg, one movement after another. When it had finished, he told them that they were magnificent, and next week would be working on something else.
“Next week, we will be joined by some more of the Senior Orchestra and will soon start with the ‘Beethoven Ninth’. We will work through all four movements before we’re joined by the choir. Gina, there is no piano, but we can fit you into the percussion with a triangle, or you can wait for the choir joins us and stand with them.”
“I’d like to stay in the orchestra, sir. It’s more exciting.”
“Good girl. The triangle will help you reading the music, staying focussed, and getting the timing exactly right. I don’t know when this will be performed, but the Head is talking about it being something special for Christmas. Willow, we are also thinking of you opening with the ‘Toccata and Fugue’. It’s just ten minutes and will make it a pretty powerful concert. The organ can be removed quickly.”
Before they left, Willow told Alec about the Sunday, and asked him if he could give her an answer on Wednesday, so her mother could get something in on Thursday, on her way home from work.
Wednesday, at lunch, Alec told her that his parents would take him to the church on Sunday morning and would sit with her parents. After the lessons, they all met in the rehearsal room. Today was devoted to working on ‘Nights in White Satin’. When they were happy with it, they did the complete Moody concert from start to finish. After some discussion, they agreed to extend the instrumental breaks to lengthen the show. There were three that were easily extended, so they spent the rest of the session doing those three. Gina was growing in musicianship as they worked, more able to play by ear and improvise. She had always played to sheet music, and the last couple of weeks had opened her mind.
The show was good, as far as Willow was concerned, but the bits that brought shivers to her back were the flute solo in ‘For My Lady’, and the flute and bass passage in ‘Nights’. Thursday evening was for running through both halves of the concert, with the need for them to do better with the backing singing. Geoff said that he could borrow a few units that would improve that aspect, with a switchable device between the microphone and the PA which could multiply the input, but slightly out of time, so making it sound like more than one voice.
Thursday evening, they found that it improved the concert by a lot, bringing smiles to their faces. Friday was the music class for the afternoon. The lesson took them from the fifties to the end of that century, with discussion on the biggest stars of the different periods. Mister Jamieson floored Willow, Alec, and Gina when he told the class that there was to be the final presentation of a concert, after school.
“It could be part of the exam regarding the pop section of Music Study, as well as part of the blues subject that is coming up. Anyone who isn’t being picked up is welcome, but you will have to sit on the floor as there are no seats.”
Willow, Gina, Alec, and about twenty from the class followed him to the rehearsal room, where the Gees had just arrived and were watching as the drama students were setting up microphones in front of all the speakers, linked to a mixer and then to a tape recorder and a digital disc recorder. Others were setting up cameras.
With the recording equipment ready, they did a quick sound check to test the levels. While that was happening, Mister Bamborough came in and stood next to Mister Jamieson. With a final look around, the five Gees started the blues half of the concert. It didn’t take long before the students were dancing. Willow and Alec joined them.
While they danced, Willow made sure that she watched Mister Bamborough’s reactions, only stopping that when they got to the slower songs and Alec held her close. He put his mouth close to her ear.
“Is it me, or is Gina playing better than ever?”
“It’s not you. Just wait until you’re there and playing to an audience.”
When the last of ‘House of the Rising Sun’ faded, the band took mock bows and then took a break for a drink. Willow was closely watching the teachers and was relieved at the smiles on their faces. After a ten-minute break, during which a few of the audience had to leave, Willow and Alec took their places, pressing the buttons to multiply the voices, along with the others.
She played the first few notes on the organ, and then they were into ‘Dawn’. As expected, Alec was playing as if his life depended on it, and the two keyboards provided almost the sound of a full orchestra. She could see the look of shock and disbelief on the teachers faces, changing to broad smiles as they moved through the set. The addition of the extended interludes worked perfectly. The camera operators were busy moving around to get the best views, and the sound man had his eyes shut and a smile fixed on his face. When they did ‘Nights’, as the final song, the passage with flute and bass was almost dream-like. They ended it with a neat finality. After a few seconds, the remaining dancers cheered, and the teachers applauded. The camera guys straightened up and the sound guy stopped the tapes, pulling off his headphones.
Willow and Gina hugged, and then it was a general hugfest, lots of the other students wanting to be part of the action. The teachers came forward and shook everyone’s hand. The other students slowly left the room, chattering about what they had just seen, which had crystalised some of the previous lesson. The guitarists put the instruments in their cases, and the drama students were cleaning up their equipment, as Mister Bamborough was speaking to them. He then came over to the band.
“I have a couple of questions, first. You were given permission on Monday, last week, and three of you had orchestra on Tuesdays. So, you had six sessions, prior to this, to put that concert together?”
They all nodded.
“No other rehearsals on the weekend?”
They shook their heads, and Willow spoke.
“I was in the Cotswolds all weekend, sir, on a visit to Stow on the Wold.”
“Look, I expected to come and hear the bones of a number of songs, not the complete package that I heard. Now, that Yamaha. Who does it belong to?”
“That’s mine, sir. Gina and I bought one each a few weeks ago. They’re good.”
“I’ll agree. They’re also easier to move around than the school organ. There has been enough of your DVDs sold to pay for one of those for the school. I’ll put that to the rest of the teachers in our next meeting. How did you multiply the voices, it sounded like you had a full choir.”
Geoff, pointed to one device.
“I borrowed these, sir. You can set them for a single voice, or up to six, with the inputs staggered by fractions of a second to give the effect. We only used them for the first time, yesterday.”
“Do they work with instruments?”
Geoff pulled his guitar out and plugged it into the unit, strumming a few chords while pressing the button to increase the number of outputs.
“Right, thanks Geoff. I want to get some of these for the school. We can use them with the choir to make ten girls sound like a whole roomful. It will come in handy when we do the ‘Ninth’. Take your own things with you, tonight. I’ll get a few volunteers to move the organ and amps tomorrow. I’ve asked the others to get us CDs of the audio, and DVDs of the concert to show the Head and the other teachers. The performance date will still be the end of next term, as there are no dates available this term. We can give you a couple of weeks, prior, to rehearse. We will advertise it through the website and charge admission. I think that we will have a CD and DVD to sell on the night. That will, hopefully, buy a lot more equipment. I believe that you’ve been complaining that the school doesn’t have any good acoustic guitars, Geoff. All the proceeds will go towards modern instruments, and we’ll let you guys choose.”
“Thank you, sir.”
“Alec, where on earth have you been hiding? I’ve listened to you in the orchestra, but you were several levels above that, today. Your breathing technique is better as well.”
Alec blushed.
“It’s playing to an audience, sir. I had no idea that this type of music existed until Willow gave me that CD. What we have just played has been a struggle to get right, having to reproduce another flutists sound. I think I’ve learned a lot about myself in the last couple of weeks.”
The two teachers helped to pack Willows’ organ in the box and collect up the leads. When everything was turned off, they left the room, with Geoff handing over the key and the door being locked.
Alec and Willow carried the organ box, and Maisie had the boot open and one side of the back seat down. They slid it in as Gina got in the front. Alec pulled the hatch down and then kissed Willow while they were out of view.
“See you Sunday.”
“See you too.”
Willow got into the back seat and Maisie drove them home, being regaled by Gina on the evening’s performance. Willow sat, quietly, only adding to the conversation when invited to. For some reason, tears were rolling down her cheeks. She couldn’t decide whether it was the release of the stress of the concert, the kiss, or those damn hormones. When they got to her house, Ashley came out to help her take the box in. They took it up to her room, and then she went back out to retrieve her bags. When Wendy came in, while she was eating her sandwich, she just said that she would tell them all about it in the morning, and that she was tired.
Wendy took one look at her tear-streaked face and just nodded. Willow was showered, cleansed, and in bed before nine, and asleep a few minutes later.
On Saturday morning, she slept late. When she arrived in the kitchen, Wendy put a plate of food in front of her and stayed quiet until she had eaten her fill and had drank two cups of tea.
“Feeling better, now, darling?”
“Yes, thank you, Mum. I was wiped out last night.”
“You looked like you’d been crying.”
“I don’t know if it was due to the hormones, the kiss I got from Alec, or the fact that our last session with the band had two teachers, about twenty students, three guys filming with one manning a recording unit. It went well, and we were told that the performance will be certain. I hope that we get copies of the audio and visual recordings.”
“No wonder you were tired and weepy when you got home. You had your father worried.”
“I think that I’ll take it easy, today. When I’m dressed, I’ll go to the church and get the hymns for tomorrow. I might crank up old Betsie and run through them. Then I’ll need to unpack the Yamaha and set it up again. Mister Bamborough was very impressed with it and intends getting one for the school. It will be easier to move around than the old one. It was odd. He said that the DVD we have has sold so many that there’s plenty of money to spend.”
“I can believe it. If a thousand were sold, that’s five thousand income. Remember that it’s available through the website. If one of those influencers had pushed it, there may have been thousands sold.”
“He also said that they would have a CD and DVD to sell on the day of the performance. I expect he may use what was recorded last night. I have to say that we were really good. When we got into the first Moody’s number, I saw shock on the teacher’s faces. They said that they hadn’t expected what we had produced. The even queried the number of sessions it took us.”
“Once again, you’re making waves, my girl. No wonder you got stressed. You’ll be better able to handle it as you get older. I got the things in for lunch, tomorrow, so we can do the preparation this afternoon.”
“Thanks, Mum. I’ll go and get dressed now.”
Marianne Gregory (C) 2025
Chapter 15
Willow took her time getting ready, then strolled to the church. Reverend Russell was sweeping the porch when she arrived.
“Willow, welcome. How did your weekend go?”
“It was good, Reverend. We really made friends there. I met Cassandra, who is planning an Easter Wedding. I did suggest that she has it here. They did talk about having it at the Abbey. We went to St. Edwards for Sunday morning.”
“I know. I had a phone call telling me how pleased they were that I loaned them my organist.”
“Well, it was there, looking lonely, and their own organist was sick.”
He laughed.
“The hymns are on the organ, if you want to run through them.”
She went up and got the organ up to pressure and worked through the hymns, and then sat for a while, playing Bach to settle her racing heart. When she was calm, she shut it down and left the church to go and sit on the bench near the road. She had her eyes shut, thinking about yesterday’s music and the excitement with recreating the sound of the Moody Blues, especially how Alec sparkled on the flute.
She felt someone sit beside her and opened her eyes to see Gina.
“Good morning, my friend.”
“Good morning to you, Willow. It is a good morning, isn’t it?”
“I think so. I could hardly think when I got home. I was wiped out with the effort.”
“I can believe that. You know, if it wasn’t for you, Alec and I would have never had that experience. It was something that will change my life, even if it was just to compress the learning of all those tunes into two weeks. It has made me realise about the hard work that can achieve a good result.”
“It also changed the way you play. I think that you can now hear the music in your head and playing it is more natural. I bet that if we turned the organ on, you would be able to go up and play the ‘Toccata’ reasonably well.”
“I’ve never played it, or even seen the score!”
“Humour me. Let’s go and see if you can do it. You’ve heard me play it. It was the experience of playing Purple that triggered the knack for me. I felt that the music had chosen me to let it free to be heard.”
They went into the church and turned the fans on. Gina sat at the keyboard and looked at Willow.
“Close your eyes and listen to the music in your head. Then play and set it free.”
Gina closed her eyes, smiled, and started to play. She finished the toccata movement with very little hesitation. When the sounds died, she stood and hugged Willow as if she had granted her a new life.
“You were right. This is going to alter my life. I was only doing the music as an addition to the academic subjects, but it will now be a possible career. How can I ever thank you.”
“You could allow me to breathe!”
Gina let Willow go, and they shut the organ down again, before going back out to the bench.
“You looked as bad as I felt when we dropped you off. Why the tears?”
“I don’t know. I wonder if it’s puberty and hormones, or just the stress being released after the teachers said that it was all good. I wonder if they’ll go through with the new equipment?”
“We can only wait and see. Mum tells me that they would like us to play at the Club, tonight. A free meal on a Saturday night is better than the pay in the church.”
“The church will pay you in other ways, especially when you can sit down and play hymns after you become famous. It will give the newspapers something to say about you that’s positive.”
“You are cynical.”
“Just read the music papers. I bet that after we’ve played in the school concerts, the Observer writer will come along to hear you play. Church organists as young as us are not found easily. I’ve got to go. I need to put my organ back in place.”
“Can I help?”
The girls were arm in arm as they walked to Willow’s home. Wendy saw them coming. As they came in, she called from the kitchen.
“I’ve got the kettle on, girls. Come and tell me about yesterday at school.”
……………………………………….
In Coventry, at a café, the four Gees had been joined by their friend Jim, now allowed out after the measles. Grant had just arrived at the table after placing their usual order.
“Did you get to see the DVD of the concert, Jim?”
“I did, and I thought it was fantastic. That girl can play the organ as if she had been part of Purple. I’m sorry that I let you guys down at such a late date, but you were lucky with her. I’ve never seen her in the school.”
“That’s because, when we did the concert, she hadn’t started there. She’s in second year.”
“Oh! Come on, playing like that at thirteen, you’re pulling my leg!”
“Believe me, bro. She is the real deal. She plays clarinet in the orchestra, and is the freakiest keyboard player in the school, until she brought something out in Gina Summer, the piano player in the Junior Orchestra. Look, we did a session in front of Jamieson and Bamborough Friday afternoon. One half was blues numbers, the other half was Moody Blues. If you would have asked us if we would give them a go, we would have said yes to the blues. That’s the sort of things we like. Willow Rose gave us two CDs, one with a half a concert of blues, and the other with half a concert of Moody’s. We nailed the lot in six sessions, and three-quarters of the songs I had never heard before, even the blues tracks.”
“So, it was you four and her again?”
“Plus, that Alec, who plays flute, and Gina. It was the seven of us doing the second half, and she let Gina play blues organ in the first half. How she sees hidden talent in ordinary players is weird. Both of them were playing like seasoned performers, in the end. It was all recorded, and I hope Bamborough gives us copies.”
“Is there a performance date?”
“Some time towards the end of the second term. It’s filling up quickly for this term concerts, some sort of big deal with both orchestras.”
“So, it will be interesting when I come back, next week.”
“Sure will!”
……………………………………………
In the Rose kitchen, the girls had given Wendy a potted account of their Friday afternoon.
“So why the tear streaks when you came in?”
“I asked her that!”
“I’m not sure, Mum. It could be the puberty hormones, or the release of the stress.”
“Or the kiss that Alec gave you behind the car!”
“You saw that! It was just a peck to say goodnight. His parents are supposed to be bringing him to the church, tomorrow, and then here for lunch. I’m cooking.”
“Beans on toast is hardly lunch, friend.”
“I’m learning! Anyway, let’s go up and put the organ back in place.”
They went upstairs to do the re-erection of the keyboard, leaving Wendy with a smile on her face. She really couldn’t see any part of William in her child. She walked, talked, acted, and had the emotions of a teenage girl. She wondered when this concert would be. She knew that they had to be there. Then she started to prepare tomorrows lunch.
……………………………………….
In the school drama department, two students had come in on Saturday morning to work on the recordings from yesterday. They had celebrated at a birthday party on Friday evening, so were both a little under the weather. Both had worked on concert DVDs before, and it was a simple operation to make the CD audio, trimming the non-music parts. They spent a while producing the visuals, using bits of film from the different cameras and then adding the same audio track as the CD, but adding a title screen for the first half, and another for the second half. When they had finished that, they produced a cover for the DVD and CD with the names of the band members.
“What’s the band called?”
“They were Shallow Blue with the last DVD. I suppose that the Shallow bit was a pun on Deep Purple. These two halves are Blues and Moods, so, I guess that they’re to be known as just Blue.”
“Do you remember what Bambi asked?”
“I think that he said that he wanted it out by the end of next week. He said he wanted fourteen.”
When they had finalised the product to their satisfaction, they sent the completed audio, video and cover art to the company that produced the school concert discs, with an order for fourteen hundred copies each of ‘Blue in Concert’. Then they tidied up and left to go and see Coventry City play at home.
……………………………………………
That Saturday evening, Willow and Gina played honky-tonk piano in the club, with them and the parents getting free dinners. The place was full, and everyone had a wonderful time, including Reverend Russell and Edie. Ashley was a little unsteady walking home, but they made it.
Wendy told a grinning Willow to get herself to bed and that she would look after her husband. She did that by getting him to lean against the wardrobe while she took his shirt off and dropped his trousers, then gently moving him to a point where he fell onto the bed she had already pulled back. Shoes off and pants laid over the chair, she went into their bathroom to take care of herself.
He wasn’t well enough to be ready for church, next morning, so he was told to be sober and dressed and doing something productive when they came back with Alec and the Hancock parents. Willow and Wendy were wearing their new Sunday best when they walked to the church. Willow was up and playing Bach when she saw Alec come in. She gave him a little wave and then concentrated on the music. She had described Alec to her mother, and she saw Wendy speak to them, getting them to sit with her in the pew with Gina and Maisie.
The service was the usual, now becoming routine. She played the hymns as required, and started playing more Bach as the Reverend left the building and the bells started. When she finished, she shut down the organ and went outside. Her mother and Alec’s parents were standing and talking, with Alec and Gina having their own conversation about the Friday concert. When Willow approached them, both Gina and Alec gave her a hug, and then Alec introduced her to his parents, Harry and Elizabeth (Call me Beth). Gina gave her a smile as she left with Maisie, and the five of them walked to the Rose residence.
They found Ashley in his office, who came out to shake hands.
“Sorry I wasn’t at the service this morning. I had to catch up with some paperwork for Monday at the office.”
Wendy and Willow exchanged looks and then the adults moved towards the sitting room. Wendy opened the sherry and looked at the teens, who obviously wanted to be somewhere else.
“Willow, dear, why don’t you play us something while we talk, and then you can come and help me prepare lunch.”
Willow sat at the upright and started to play Chopin and some Satie, with Alec leaning against the piano. After a while she gave him a wink and played the tune to ‘For My Lady’. He took the hint and started to sing. This stopped the conversation in mid-sentence as the two of them sang. When they finished, Alec bowed. His mother asked Willow if she could play old-time songs.
“If you mean pub songs, Beth, pick one.”
Beth named one of the staples that she knew, and she started playing the tune, with both sets of parents joining in. They did a few songs and then Wendy stood up.
“Look after our guests for a few minutes, darling, Willow and I need to get lunch ready. It will be in the kitchen; we don’t have a dining room.”
Alec followed the two of them out to the kitchen, offering to help. He was tasked with laying the table after Willow showed him where the cutlery was kept. Wendy put things into the microwave.
“When did you two learn to duet like that?”
“We didn’t Mrs. Rose. That’s the first time. It’s one of the things that Willow can pull out of the hat. I sang it on Friday and played the flute. Willow just played the flute parts on the piano, along with the bulk of the backing. It’s just her and her magic.”
“Call me Wendy, Alec. Mrs. Rose is my mother-in-law. I saw Willow’s magic firsthand when we were at the school. She got up on the stage with those four boys and, suddenly, I was at a Deep Purple concert. I’d never heard her play it before, as she would use headphones.”
“I wish I had been there. I’ve seen the DVD, and it was awesome. The concert we put together will be great to see. Willow and Gina on two organs made Mister Bamborough nearly bug his eyes out when they showed him that full orchestras can be reproduced. I had seen Gina play the piano, last year, but Friday she seemed totally free, but totally in control. She tells me that she now plays the church organ. That was not something I had expected.”
“She spent some time on our piano, practicing the Grieg. She is a very talented pianist.”
“I couldn’t see her playing pub songs, though.”
“You should have seen her and Willow in the Stoneleigh Club last night, between them they kept a sing-along going from just after seven to a bit after ten. Never judge a book by its cover, young Alec.”
They busied themselves and then sent Alec off to get his parents in. When he was out of the
room, Wendy whispered that she could see what Willow saw in him. They had a cheerful
lunch, and Willow found out more about Alec and his young days. Alec found out about Willow’s young days in Bristol, slightly altered to preserve her secret. It helped that she could talk about the orchestra there and the girls she knew.
Willow found out that his parents had a haberdasher’s shop in one of the suburbs, and that he had an older sister who worked in the shop but was living with her boyfriend. After the lunch, Willow volunteered her and Alec to do the washing up, and the adults went back to the sitting room for more talking.
When they were alone, Alec put his hands on her waist and she leaned into him, putting her arms around his neck, for their first real kiss. When they came up for air, she pulled away.
“I’ll rinse and you can load the dishwasher.”
He grinned and did as requested, then she kissed him again as a reward for being a good boy. She pulled him by the hand and went to the door of the sitting room, where the adults were complaining about the government.
“We’re just going for a walk, be back in half an hour or so.”
They left the house, holding hands, and she took him to the pathway down to the river. Near the bridge, they stopped, and he held her close as they kissed again. Then, with his arm around her shoulder and hers on his waist, they walked along the river and behind the church. Hidden from view by bushes, they kissed again, now getting the hang of it.
Hand in hand, they then went along Vicarage Lane and back to the house in comfortable silence. As they approached the house, Willow said that she would try and talk her mother around to let her go on a date, but it would be difficult as they had no transport. When they were at the front door, they kissed again before going in, Willow heading for her bag in the kitchen to repair her lipstick and get a tissue to wipe his lips clean.
When Alec and his parents left, Willow walked with them back to their car. Beth was looking around.
“This is a lovely village, Willow. You’re very lucky to have such peaceful surroundings.”
“It’s glorious, and we have made so many friends since we arrived. The only drawback is the lack of shops and the poor bus service. Miss the late one and you have to stop in the city overnight.”
“They tell me that there’s a big house nearby that’s worth visiting.”
“That’s Stoneleigh Abbey, in the main village, a few miles west. I’ve seen it and it’s lovely. It’s very popular because the author, Jane Austen, stayed there. Her mother, Cassandra Leigh, was married to the Reverend Austen. The Leigh’s were strong around here. There are several memorials to them in the church. One was Lord Mayor of London.”
“You seem very knowledgeable about them?”
“It’s part of being accepted in the Village. Most places this small consider a hundred years ago to be yesterday. It really makes you part of where you live, like having an overcoat on a cold day.”
“Are you sure that you’re still thirteen?”
“You’re not the first to say that. When Gina saw me rehearse the Purple concert, she thought that I was a young-looking sixteen.”
They got to the car and Beth gave her a hug.
“I’m so glad we came to meet you. From what Alec had been saying, I expected to meet a cross between Taylor Swift and an angel. What I see is a very talented teenager with a very adult outlook and sweet as well. We’ll see more of you in the future, I hope.”
They all got in the car and drove away, with Alec waving out of the back window as they disappeared. Willow sighed as she turned to walk home. Her thoughts a jumble of her sorrow that she would never be a proper woman for Alec, along with the anticipation of being with him for more kisses.
At home, she went to her room, plugged in the headphones, and played various organ pieces to herself until it was time to prepare dinner. Conversation was light until afterwards. As they tidied up, Wendy broke the silence.
“Alec is a nice boy. You’re showing good taste.”
“He spoke to me first, so, I guess it’s him with the good taste.”
“Whatever, you make a good couple, for as long as it lasts. First love is a rocky road, believe me.”
“How many boys did you date before you met Dad?”
“Probably a dozen or more. There was one boy that I was keen on for over a year, but he migrated with his parents. He promised to write, but never did. Mind you, I was your age at the time, and I cried for days.”
Willow hugged her mother.
“Thank you for that, Mum. I’ve cried more since I’ve been here than I did before.”
“You were very loud when you were a baby, but you did quieten down after you turned one. It could be the injection or pills that have accelerated your puberty. You have done an awful lot since you started at the school. It has been good for you, as you have been good for it, and you’re still in the first term there with at least four years to go.”
“It’s scary when you think about it. I’m getting on well with the normal subjects, but the music has been brilliant. They’re talking about doing the ‘Beethoven Ninth’, the ‘Choral’. Now that would be fantastic to perform. They’re so much braver with the things they plan.”
“Maybe that’s because they trust their students to step up and do the hard work.”
“Talking about hard work, I’ve got some laundry to do.”
Monday morning was full of second-year students talking about the show they had seen on Friday afternoon. As most of the Junior Orchestra were in their year, the lunch table was full and had several visitors. There was a lot of talk about the half-term holiday, the following week. Willow hadn’t given it much thought, but some of the time was laid out when Geoff brought Jim over to the table and introduced him.
“Willow, this is our friend, Jim, who you replaced for the Purple show. He is keen for you to show him some of the tricks you used during that concert. We’re talking about G-Force being expanded to five, as you’ve shown us how much more we can do with the added organ. I’ve spoken to Mister Bamborough, and he’s promised us a rehearsal room next week. If your mother drops you off, and picks you up, on a couple of days, can you help out?”
“That shouldn’t be a problem, Geoff. I’ll talk to my Mum. Will you have the setup that we used Friday?”
“That’s the plan. We’ll be working with those blues numbers as well, so Gina, you’ll be welcome.”
“That would be good, thank you.”
“Right. Let me know tomorrow.”
As they were walking to the next class, Gina and Willow were side by side.
“Willow. If we ask that there’s a room with a piano, and we take one of the organs, we could work on something together. I wonder if we get Alec in; we could see if there’s anything written for piano, violin and flute. It would make a great act for the Summer Project, next year. We could record it on our phones to play to the teachers.”
“As I play violin, I’ve been in a few different trio’s. Beethoven wrote some that I know of. There must be dozens that fit, seeing that those three instruments were so popular in their day. There may be something for just piano and violin that we can do. Even a more modern song with you singing as well.”
“Or us playing, and Alec singing.”
“Has anyone ever told you that you’re wicked.”
On the way home, they asked Wendy if she had any plans for them over the holiday. As she had to work, Wendy was happy to drop them off and pick them up.
“I doubt that the lunchroom will be operating, so you’ll have to take your lunches. Are you sure that’s what you want to do?”
“It is, Mum. If the boys don’t need us, we’re going to work on something of our own. I’ll do some research over the weekend on a trio that we can work on with all that time. We may even see if there’s a few popular songs that we can work on as a duo.”
“Oh, yes! I can just see your names in lights. Tonight, see ‘Summer and Rose’ in concert.”
When they got to Gina’s home, both girls got out and hugged.
“See you tomorrow, Summer.”
“See you, too, Rose.”
Giggling, Willow got back in the car.
Tuesday morning, Paul was as stern as usual. Willow thought that he would never make it as an ordained priest if he kept that up. More likely to bellowing fire and brimstone to an empty church.
They confirmed the following week with the Gees, and Alec told them that he wanted to be included if Grant would take him in and back home. They also found out that Zara would be there to start to sing with the band. Geoff suggested that Willow could work with Jim on Fleetwood Mac numbers, with Zara out front. It looked as if it would be almost all week in the school.
When they arrived at orchestra, the school organ was sitting in front, with the piano off to one side. When they were all sitting, Mister Bamborough stood on his rostrum.
“Today, we will play a complete concert. We will be joined by the Head and Miss Russell, in a few moments. We will start with the Saint-Saens ‘Seven Improvisations for the Organ’, played by Willow. I’ve heard that she is happy with that. So, Willow, please take your seat. After that, the organ will be wheeled off to one side, and then we’ll play the ‘Bolero’, followed by the Grieg, after the piano has been put into place. This has been a very productive term, and I’m proud to be conducting such a competent orchestra.”
The door opened and the two visitors came in, nodded to the assembly and took their seats. Willow left her clarinet on its stand and sat at the organ. She looked at the conductor and he nodded to her. It was show time!
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 16
The rest of the orchestra sat quietly as Willow played the Saint-Saens piece, with fingers over strings and hands on the percussion, to dampen any resonances. When she had finished, a couple of the percussion players pushed the organ to one side as she went back to her seat. Alec smiled and made a kissy face as she sat down.
The baton was tapped, and they made ready for the ‘Bolero’. Willow thought that it was getting better with every time they performed it, with today being a real performance to the Head of the school. When that had ended in the great blast, the percussion players were back to push the piano into place and Gina made her way to the front to sit at it. The sheet music was in front of her, but she now knew that it was in her head and not needed.
The atmosphere was electric as they worked through the movements. Mister Bamborough knew that this was a pivotal moment for this orchestra. Today was the first time that they had an organ soloist, as well as Gina being the first real piano soloist that he had conducted. He was almost afraid to glance at the Head to see what she was thinking about it.
As the last notes of the Grieg faded, there was an audible sigh from the orchestra, followed by the sound of clapping from the two visitors. The Head went and shook the conductors hand, then went to give Gina a hug. Over in the woodwind section, Willow and Alec were enjoying their own hug, having to be careful with their desire to kiss. When things settled down, Mister Bamborough called for quiet, and the Head spoke.
“Thank you for inviting me to this concert. I have been hearing things about the Music School and this orchestra over the term. I really didn’t expect to hear such a polished performance from students. You have all done very well, and there will be a date set for this at the end of the year. We can advertise it on the website and charge admission. With how you have performed today, I can’t see any problems with the Saint-Saens concert for next year. For the rest of the year, you’ll be working on that along with others. I’ll organise the Cathedral board to come in early in the second term to hear you, with the concert likely in May. With what you have played today, you will have almost enough for a Proms Night, if we get listed. You’ve made me proud to be associated with you, and you’ll make the school proud in the new year.”
They all packed up their instruments and made their ways out of the school. Alec and Willow walked with Gina, both girls getting other orchestra members coming to them to give them hugs, including most of the boys, who saw an opportunity not to be missed. In the car, on the way home, Gina turned to Willow in the back seat.
“Did you know that you were going to play the organ today?”
“No, it was a complete surprise. I had played it in the chapel to Miss Russell, so I suppose that she had suggested it to round out the concert. You do know that you’re the first piano soloist in the school. Zara told me that she had never heard of one before.”
Maisie laughed.
“So, I’m chauffeur to a couple of classical music stars, am I?”
Gina and Willow giggled.
“Not just a couple of stars, Mum. We’re Summer Rose, the next big thing.”
They were all smiling when Willow was dropped off at home. She went in and Wendy saw the look on her face.
“So, my girl, something big today?”
“We had the orchestra, and they had me out front on the organ to play the ‘Seven Improvisations’ to kick off, followed by the ‘Bolero’ and then Gina solo with the Grieg. It was very good, and the Head sat in. She told us that we were certainly going to have a concert, this term.”
“That’s good. Let us know and we’ll get the tickets. Your father may get in touch with Rupert to see if the family would like to come and hear you all. That would be a good time for your grandparents to visit, if it’s just before Christmas.”
Willow went to get changed, then helped her mother with dinner preparation. After dinner, she sat at her desk with her computer and looked for the trio music, surprised at how many there were that included cello, but the smaller number that included flute.
Wednesday was almost anticlimactic. It was only the extra chatter among the orchestra members at lunch that livened it up. Their table was visited by one of the percussion players and a couple of other boys.
“Willow. I’m Brent, from the percussion section. I’ve been talking to my friends about what we’ll be doing for the Summer Project, next year. They’re in Mister Bamborough’s guitar group, and he has suggested that they talk to you about forming a band, seeing that the G-Force will be concentrating on the academic side and won’t be taking part. What do you think?”
“We will be in the school next week, Brent, working with Jim and the Gees to get him up to speed on how to play the organ with more freedom. Gina and I will be there, so you can join us to see how it works. The Gees will have the amps set up, so we’ll have to get Mister Bamborough to organise a second rehearsal room with more. I’m sure that he’ll be more than happy to help.”
“Thanks, Willow. We’ll talk to him and see what happens. We’ll let you know by Friday.”
When they left, Gina leaned over to Willow.
“Looks like we may have the bones of Summer Rose, next year.”
Most of the week was revision of what they had done so far, and Willow took time out to talk to Mister Bamborough.
“Excuse me, Sir.”
“Yes, Miss Rose.”
“Next week, when Geoff and the others have one of the rehearsal rooms, I was wondering if we could reserve another for the week with a piano in it. There are a few boys from the guitar group who want to see if they can fit into a band with us, so we would like a set of amps and drums there as well.”
“That would be Brent and his friends?”
“Yes, Sir. Brent spoke as if they want to be the next version of G-Force when Geoff and the others move into fifth year. Gina and I were also thinking of working on a couple of trios for piano, violin, and flute.”
“I’ll let you into a little secret, Willow. I have ordered two of those Yamaha keyboards. If you’re happy to use one as a piano, I’ll put them both in the room. You’ll be able to use the amps with them as well. I’ll need to talk to Brent to see what drum kit he wants.”
“Thank you, Sir. That will be great.”
On the Friday, Geoff and Brent collected the keys to the two rooms. Brent gave Willow three CDs.
“This has some music that Herb, the main guitarist, wants us to try. I’ve listened to it and I’m not sure if it’s possible. There’s a complete CD, plus a couple of live versions of songs to show how the band performed them. It is a lot simpler when they play it live. There’s a copy there for Alec; none of the guitarists sing, so he might consider being up front. He sang very well last week.”
Willow passed the extras on to Gina and Alec, saying that they should listen to them over the weekend, and talk about it on Monday. They had questions, but she had to say that she had no answers.
Friday evening, Gina sat next to Willow as they looked for the particular trio they wanted. They found free sheet music for two modern pieces, and there was one video on YouTube of a Nino Rota piece that was thirteen minutes. They sat and watched it and then Willow emailed Alec with the link. After that, there was a Cesar Cui piece that was very bright, and they emailed that link as well. When they looked, there were a number from that composer that they could use, but starting with a couple was the first step.
They put Brent’s CD in the player and sat on the bed to listen to it. There was a sheet of paper in the CD case with all the details. The band was called Kansas, which neither of them had heard of. The first track nearly blew their minds, but, when they listened closely, they could hear the usual rock group plus an organ and a brass section, with the organ double tracked. It was a concept album, called ‘The Point of Know Return’, about the end of the world as the one person who knows how to run the place disappears. In the middle of a mass of big-stadium rock, was a slow number that the girls immediately loved, called ‘Dust in the Wind’. When they got to the two live versions, they could see how the songs had been pared back for a stage group.
“Well! That’s something else, Willow. Do you think we could do that? When you take it apart, it’s not that much harder than the Moody Blues.”
“If we did, it would have to be the whole show. Some of the tracks are seven or eight minutes, and you would need to tell the whole story with the ten tracks. It would certainly stretch us, and we could use two organs to get the complicated bits sound good. Those boys must be sure of themselves if they think that they can nail this stuff.”
“It might be a good project for us. We could call the show ‘This ain’t Kansas’, with a picture of you on the front, dressed as Dorothy with red shoes.”
They both listened to the CD over Saturday, trying out the different organ sounds. On Sunday, Gina played the church organ, and Willow found herself sitting in the pew with her parents for the first time. After church, Willow went to Gina’s house to discuss the things that may happen on Monday.
Wendy took them to the school on Monday. It was strange to walk into the quiet building after half a term with well over a thousand other students. In the music area, they found the Gees and Jim setting up. Jim said that he had listened to the CD that Willow had given Geoff, and wanted to work on the blues numbers, rather than try to recreate the Purple.
Gina stayed with them while Willow went to the other rehearsal room, where the other boys were working out what they wanted to do. She was introduced to Herb, the lead guitarist, Victor, the bass guitarist, and Ron, the rhythm. There were both the new Yamahas, so Willow set to plugging them in and trying them both out. Alec joined them.
“Good morning. I’m blown away by that music. I’ve transcribed all the words and have been trying to get them all into my head. It’s quite a story. How much of it have you guys worked on?”
“We’ve been able to remember most of it, so we can get working on it from track one. How about you, Willow?”
“I’m with you, lads. Let’s get working.”
They took their places and started with the first track. After a number of false starts, they finally made it through to the end. They decided to take a bit of a rest with a simpler tune and worked on ‘Dust in the Wind’. They had just started what they thought may be the final run-through when the door opened and Mister Bamborough came in, nodded to them and sat down. They carried on and went through to the end.
“That was really good. Have you mastered any others?”
They played him the first track that they had mastered. He grinned when they finished.
“That sounds even harder than the Moody Blues. Well done, you. Now, if you can take a break, let’s go and get the others. We need to have a talk.”
They opened the door of the other room, where Gina was sitting by the wall as the boys were working through ‘Smokestack Lightning’. When they finished, they were all asked to follow Mister Bamborough. They were led into the main school, to the teacher’s common room, where the Head and Miss Russell were at the hot water urn, making a cup of tea. The Head saw them come in and smiled.
“There you are! Welcome to a safe place to talk about something very important and very urgent. Get yourselves a drink and we can discuss a problem that we have.”
They all got the drinks and took a biscuit from the jar next to the urn. They sat in a group and the Head cleared her throat.
“The week before last, some of you played a rehearsal which was recorded, both on good audio and on video. Mister Bamborough asked the lads doing the recordings to let him have fourteen copies of each, so that you can listen to them, and we can see about putting together a performance date.”
They stayed silent as she picked up a copy of each of the discs.
“Here is a sample of each disc, and I have to say that they are excellent quality. The problem is that instead of another thirteen, we have received thirteen hundred and ninety-nine. That gives us a cashflow problem. We cannot afford to keep these in stock for another six months. Can you play a concert at the end of November? These will go on sale three weeks before, in the school and through the website, at the same time we advertise the live performance.”
Miss Russell came into the silence after she finished.
“I’ve had a look at the DVD, and it doesn’t look like something performed in a rehearsal room. I think that we’ll price the CD at five, and the DVD at ten pounds each. The performance will be five pounds a ticket. The music might make a good Christmas present. We’ll be putting the orchestra concert on in the second week of December, with the choir starting their outside performances around then.”
They sat and thought about what had been asked, then Geoff spoke up.
“If we do it, we can have Jim playing the blues half and the girls with Alec in the second. I’m sure that we can do what you want. If we concentrate on getting Jim up to speed in the next day or so, Gina can go with the others, then we can all get together after we’re happy, and do the second half of the concert. Will it be a Friday evening, after school? If so, we can be set up in the theatre and do a sound check before anyone comes in.”
Willow spoke.
“We could do the show with the two Yamahas. Are we getting the voice multipliers?”
“They should be with us on Wednesday, so you’ll have them in plenty of time.”
The boys all nodded, with the new members looking surprised at being part of such a important occasion. Willow turned to Herb.
“With your taste in music, you must have listened to the Moody Blues?”
“You’re right.”
“Well, if the Gees and Jim work on the blues half, we can work on the second, now that Gina can join us. Can we have a copy of the CD, Miss?”
“I’ll give each of you a copy of both discs. If we sell the bulk of the rest, it will be a great result. We can’t be too hard on the boys that placed the order. It may all end up as a good moneymaker.”
The bands were given their discs and went back to the rehearsal rooms in relative silence. Geoff said that they would start working on the set, knowing the sequence of songs already. The others went into the other rehearsal room. Willow took charge.
“Look, lads. We’ll leave the other stuff until tomorrow, after you’ve seen the DVD. The three of us are good with it if we continue what we were doing before we were interrupted.”
So, they took their places and resumed working with the Kansas. They started with the first track, with Gina adding her input, then did ‘Dust in the Wind’, before working on the second track together. They stopped for their lunch, taking the wrapped sandwiches to the lunchroom and bought drinks from the vending machine. They got the best part of another two tracks right before turning everything off.
The boys needed to be somewhere else but were very happy with what had been achieved. Gina opened the door of the other room slightly and could hear the others still working. The three friends went back to their room and talked about the trios that they had sent Alec. He was excited that he could be part of a classical project.
“I’ll bring my flute tomorrow, if you bring your violin. Gina can play one of these organs as a piano. If each of us download your sheet music for the three pieces, we may be able to work on them if the others leave early.”
Alec went to the other room to wait for Grant to be ready to leave, while Willow and Gina went to the front of the school to wait to be picked up.
“What did you think of the mess with the discs?”
“When we finished, I saw Mister Bamborough speaking to them. I think that they hadn’t settled back enough to understand what he meant. We were all a bit worn out. It could be good, as it gets the concert over and done with, letting us think about other projects. Here comes your mother.”
On the way home, Wendy put the CD into the car player, and they went back to Stoneleigh listening to blues. That evening, the Rose family watched the DVD, after which, Willow was hugged and then went to prepare for bed. In her nightie, she sat at her computer and printed off the trio music, then hugged her two bed buddies before drifting into sleep.
On Tuesday, the two girls helped Brent and his friends master the Moody Blues numbers, being able to recreate the entire show by the time they needed to leave. The Gees came in as they were working through the last couple of numbers, having got Jim playing with a lot more soul. When they had finished, Geoff spoke for the other Gees.
“That was tremendous. You guys are good enough to do that half yourselves. We should have some voice multipliers tomorrow. When you hear yourselves using those, you’ll be blown away. If we get the teachers in to hear us, as separate groups, we should be able to do other things in the rest of the week. Zara will be coming in and we plan to work on a Fleetwood Mac concert for the second or third term.”
When the Gees left, Willow turned to the others.
“It looks like we’ll be Blue Two on the night. You guys wanted to have a project, and it seems that your wish has been granted, depending on permission. Bring your main game when you come in, and I’m sure that you’ll be rock stars.”
The others left, and the three friends set up to play a trio, with the music on stands. They did one piece, which they thought sounded good, and left the flute and violin with the rest of the equipment when they left. With Grant already gone, Wendy was asked to take Alec home. After a cup of tea with Beth, they carried on to Stoneleigh.
The CD was still in the player, so they listened to the end of the blues and the beginning of the Moods on the way. After dinner, Wendy packaged the DVD in a post pack and addressed it to her mother for posting on the next day, telling Willow that they’ll buy another one of their own when they’re on sale.
Wednesday was a success on every front. The teachers joined Blue Two, and Zara, when Blue One played the blues half of the show. Then, everyone trooped to the other room as Blue Two recreated the second half, now with the vocal multipliers. The permission was given to work on whatever else they were doing, as Zara joined the Gees to go and see what they could do with Fleetwood Mac.
Willow and the rest of the band worked on the Kansas concert, nearly completing the set when it was time to pack up. The others were still working, so Alec went in to wait for Grant as the girls went out to the school entrance to wait for Wendy.
On Thursday, they finished the ten tracks, and played the set all the way through, with Herb recording it on his phone. The boys had a birthday party to go to, so took their instruments with them and told the others that they would see them Monday. It left the girls and Alec almost two hours to work on the two trios, enough to be an act in one of the concerts.
With just the three of them, so they started to explore other things. Alec was told about Summer Rose, and asked if there were any current pop songs that he liked to sing along to. He had some on his phone, so they listened to one, then tried recreating it with the two keyboards and Alec singing. The songs ended up sounding totally different to what they had been working on in the first part of the week. They were almost jazzy. As they had each one how they liked it, they all had their phones on record to have their own set to listen to.
When it was time to go, Willow took her violin with her, and Alec had his flute when he went to wait for Grant, locking up and taking the key for Geoff to hand in. Gina needed to go to the toilet, so Willow and Alec took the opportunity to have a kiss while waiting for her. Before they parted, he told her that his parents wanted to see the Stoneleigh Abbey and would be coming to the church first on Sunday morning. He asked her if she could join them after the service. She said that she would love to show them around. On the way home, she told Wendy about the plan.
On Friday, she went over to the church to check the hymns and run through them. It was a pleasant rest from the full-on week. She tidied her room, did her laundry and transferred the recorded songs to her computer, then burnt a CD of them. At a loose end, she got the vacuum out and worked through the house, then started preparations for dinner. Once she had things ready to start, she went up to her room and looked through her wardrobe for something she could wear on Sunday, that would give her legroom at the organ, but still be good for a trip with Alec and his parents.
After dinner, she played the CD of their songs to her parents. Wendy gave her a hug, and her father said that she should start thinking about writing her own material. That was so far from left field, she sat, stunned. Her brain was full of tunes, both classical and pop. Why not try what he had said. She gave him a hug and thanked him for the suggestion.
That evening, while her parents watched the television, Willow was at the keyboard, headphones on, and trying out various tunes. She already had the words in her mind. They dealt with teenage love and a girl’s first kiss.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 17
On Saturday morning, after breakfast, Willow went for a walk. She went down to the bridge over the river and then along the bank to the church. Instead of cutting back along Church Lane, she continued through the orchard to Coventry Road and back towards home along Vicarage Road.
She was passing the Club as a truck was delivering beer. The Club Manager saw her and called her over.
“Willow, my lass. Just the person I wanted to see. Those piano sessions have been very good for the club takings. We haven’t had crowds like it for years. Can we organise a monthly, or even fortnightly, event?”
“That would depend on Gina helping out, sir. But I can’t see much of a problem unless we’re both deep into exam time. Would you mind if the two of us start with other types of songs while the patrons are eating?”
“You can do whatever you like, as long as it’s entertaining. Can you play a week next Saturday?”
“I’ll be there. My Mum appreciates a night without cooking.”
She carried on home to tell her parents about the arrangement. Wendy told Ashley that he had to slow down with the drink, or else she would go without him. After lunch, Willow went out again, but only as far as the bench by the church. She took a notebook and pencil, sitting there with her eyes closed while she thought of all that had happened in her life. She opened her eyes and started writing.
By the time that she went home to prepare for dinner, she had a number of song lyrics written down. There was a song about the transition from childhood into being a teenager; another about finding a best friend forever, that would precede the one that she had written about the first kiss. Having worked on two concept albums recently, she was writing a story, her story, in song. This would be her secret project.
On Sunday morning, she wore one of her better full skirts and a matching top. When the family walked to the church, they all had coats on against the winter cold. She went up as the bells started and got the organ ready, then started playing Bach, which always calmed her down. She saw, in the mirror, her parents come in with Alec and his parents. Gina came in with Maisie and sat in the same pew.
The congregation rose as Reverend Russell entered, and Willow faded the Bach out as he approached the altar. The service was routine, and she started the departure music as the bells started. Gina led Alec up to the organ as the church emptied, and he watched Willow playing. When she stopped, with the bells, she turned it off and covered the keyboard.
“Gina. I was asked, yesterday, if we could do our club gigs on a regular basis, even fortnightly. Are you up for that?”
“As long as it doesn’t interfere with schoolwork.”
Gina turned to lead the way back to ground level, and Alec took the opportunity to give Willow a kiss, before they followed.
“You do realise, young man, that kissing your girl in a church usually only happens after the wedding vows.”
“If that’s the case, my sweet, then so be it. We can get married here, can’t we?”
“Not so fast, young buck! There are demons to slay and dragons to vanquish before the maiden is yours.”
They joined the adults outside, with her parents walking home as she joined Alec in the back seat behind his parents. She showed them how to get to Stoneleigh Park, and then to the Abbey. His father paid for them all to go in, and they started exploring the building. Willow was able to talk about some of the places which had ‘No Entry’ signs as they moved around.
Beth was starting to wonder how this teenager knew about the hidden rooms when a voice called out.
“Willow! Fancy seeing you here.”
Willow turned to see Cassandra and Terry walking towards her.
“Hello. Are you here to look at the chapel?”
“We are. We were wondering what the organ sounded like.”
“I don’t know. I haven’t played it.”
“We have to get our organist to try it out, won’t we? Dad is around, somewhere, with Mum. He can talk to the management. Now, who is this young fellow, with his parents if my eyes don’t deceive me?”
Willow introduced Cassandra and Terry to the Hancock’s. Alec was looking at her with a quizzical expression, which Cassandra saw.
“She hasn’t told you about us, has she? I’m Cassandra Leigh, and my father is the Sixth Baron Leigh, who lived in this house for a while as a child. Willow is a descendant of the brother of the Third Baroness, if I’ve remembered it correctly. It was all a long time ago. Have you shown them the portrait of the Third Baron, Willow?”
“Not yet.”
Willow hadn’t wanted to reveal all, but it was now out in the open. Alec still looked quizzical, and his parents looked shocked. She took Alec’s hand and pulled him up to the corridor where the portrait hung. It may have been a mistake as they found the Baron looking at it carefully.
“Good morning, sir. Cassandra said you were in the house.”
“Hello, Willow. Who is this young man with you.”
“This is Alec, who plays flute in the school orchestra, sings in a pop group, and is my boyfriend.”
“Good morning, talented Alec. I know that Willow is a talented girl, and it looks as if she attracts talented young men. What is the pop group?”
“It’s a school thing, sir. We will be playing in part of a school concert. I’m with Willow, and others, recreating the sound of the Moody Blues.”
“Now, that’s something I’d like to hear.”
“It will be advertised on the school website in a couple of weeks. You will be able to buy a DVD that we’ve already filmed, and there are some of the concert that Willow played Deep Purple songs in still for sale.”
The Baron looked at Willow with a raised eyebrow.
“You kept that quiet when you visited, young lady. As far as we knew, you were a quiet young thing who played church organ and sometimes honky-tonk in a club.”
Willow laughed.
“It’s been a busy couple of months, sir. We worked with another group perfecting a Kansas concept album last week, with Alec singing, and our friend, Gina, on another organ. The three of us then did something completely different, learning a piano, flute, and violin trio.”
“Right. Now, are you two here on your own?”
“No, Alec’s parent brought us. They’re probably still downstairs talking to Cassie.”
“Let’s round them up and I’ll lead them into the forbidden zones that Rupert has already shown you.”
He set off and the two teens followed behind. Alec whispered to Willow.
“You never let on that you’re practically nobility!”
“No, and it’s not something that needs to go any further. It’s just that my great-great-great grandfather was brother of the wife of that man in the picture. It’s so far removed that we’re not considered officially family, except that the Baron has accepted us as part of his history. When the third Baron died, childless, his cousin inherited the title, and that’s Christopher’s great-great grandfather. If you go back to the church, you’ll see a lot of signs of the Leigh family connection.”
“Christopher Leigh?”
“Don’t make that joke. He’s good with it but has distanced himself from the actor, years ago.”
They found the Baron rounding up Cassie and the others, and then leading the Hancock’s on a personalised tour of the house, collecting Marie on the way, who gave Willow a hug. They ended up in the chapel, where Willow was asked to try the organ out. She had been to enough weddings, in her younger days, to be able to play the wedding march for them.
As they left the chapel, Cassie made a joke that Willow wouldn’t be able to play at her own wedding, and Alec said that Gina could do the honours. His mother looked at him and he blushed.
They had lunch at the Abbey dining room, and Beth announced that they had an appointment that afternoon. Willow saw the look of surprise on Alec’s face. The Baron looked at Marie, who nodded.
“Look, we were going to St. Marys to have a look at that church, this afternoon. If you want to dash off, we can take Willow home.”
“If you can do that, it will be good. Thank you.”
Willow and Alec managed to separate themselves from the group on the way out. Alec gave her a quick kiss, before he raced to the open car door, held by his mother. When they left, Willow stood, wondering about the change in the atmosphere. The Baron came up to her.
“It’s something we have to live with, Willow. That family has to be staunchly left. Meeting a right-wing peer of the realm was an unwelcome shock. I saw the look that Beth gave Alec when he spoke about Gina playing at your wedding. If I’m any judge of character, he will tell you that his mother has laid down the law. I’m sorry.”
“Not as sorry as I am, sir.”
“Willow, we’re family, call me Chris.”
“All right. Chris. I’ll try not to cry and spoil your afternoon.”
He pulled her into a hug.
“You’ll get over it. He may not be husband material, but you know that he’ll stay your friend. And everyone needs friends.”
She smiled.
“Thank you, Chris. Has Cassandra met Reverend Russell yet?”
“Not yet. With you to introduce her, I’m sure that he’ll be happy to let her look around the church.”
“Will you pop into my home when you drop me off? I can ring Mum to open a fresh bottle of sherry. I think that Alec’s parents emptied the last one.”
He nodded, so she pulled her phone out of her bag and rang home.
Back in the Abbey, both Marie and Cassie gave her a hug and told her that she shouldn’t be upset that her boyfriend was whisked away so suddenly. The Baron completed his task by getting the official brochure and the prices for weddings, with a discount as a Leigh. They all got into the people mover and drove into the village. Willow went to the Vicarage and spoke to Edie, who told her that the Reverend would join them in a few minutes.
Willow led them into the church, where Cassandra and Terry went around the walls, carefully looking at the plaques and taking pictures. When the Reverend joined them, the Baron asked about a wedding.
“For you, Baron Leigh, it will be free, seeing that it’s for the Leigh family, and will be a full-service event, with the flowers and ushers thrown in. The Leigh family is revered here, as you can see on the walls. It would be churlish to charge you a penny, and my parishioners feel the same. I’m sure that the Stoneleigh Club would be happy to accommodate a reception, it’s just a stroll across the road, so you can have a four ‘o’clock wedding and then go over for the reception. The happy couple can change in the vicarage.”
“That’s most kind. I would, of course, donate.”
“That would be your prerogative, sir. I wondered if you would be having the wedding at the Abbey.”
“It’s nice, but a little commercialised. This has a much nicer atmosphere. Cassie, do you want to hear the organ?”
“Yes please. Would you, please, Willow.”
Willow went up to the organ and turned it on, waiting until it was up to pressure. Then she played the wedding march. She thought that this instrument sounded mellower and full toned compared to the Abbey. She shut the organ down and covered the keys, then went down, where the Reverend was showing Cassandra and Terry the way that the wedding would take place, seeing that the main door was at the side.
She slid outside and trotted across to the Club, where the manager was cleaning the taps.
“Excuse me, sir. I need to tell you that the Sixth Baron Leigh is in the church, seeing if it would be suitable for his daughter’s wedding. Reverend Russell has just suggested that they hold the reception here, so they may be in to ask you about it.”
“Thank you for the heads up, lass. We have rooms that we don’t use, so a big do is easy. I’ll give him a really good deal, never fear.”
She went back to the church, and slipped inside while the group was being shown the area that the Reverend emerged from on Sundays, and where a table would be set up for the signing of the official documents. Cassie would have to come in through that door on the day of the wedding. She pulled out her phone and called home.
“Mum, we’re at the church so that Cassie can see if she wants to marry here. I think that we’ll be going over to the Club after, to see about a reception. I’m sure that the manager will try and sweeten the deal by offering them a meal, tonight. Be prepared for me to give you another call.”
She then rang Gina.
“Gina. Are you free tonight, if I call you. We may be asked to play at the club tonight as a special occasion. It shouldn’t be as late as Saturday nights.”
With Gina’s reply that she would warn her mother, Willow put the phone away and tried to look angelic as the Baron came back out into the body of the church.
“The organ here sounded much better. Did you play it differently?”
“It’s the difference between a newish instrument and one that’s been in place for over a hundred years and is powered by pumped air pressure. Having played the other one, earlier, I thought that this was much more authentic.”
“Authentic. That is exactly the word, Willow. This whole village, the church and the people. They are the real thing. My family has forgotten our roots, and they lie here, with all these good people. The club, that’s just across the road?”
“It is, and I think that the manager will be setting up for the Sunday evening drinkers about now.”
“They do meals?”
“Only on weekends. They get a full house on the Saturdays that Gina and I play there.”
“What about space for a band at a reception, or, at least, a DJ?”
“I don’t know. I do know that we fill the front rooms, but I believe that there are more rooms out the back.”
“We’ll just have to ask about those. This is great! My wife is happy here, my daughter is positive about the church, especially with all the ancestors here. If we get too many coming, we can always set up a screen outside and a camera inside.”
“It’s a good view from where I sit, if you want to have a look.”
She led him up to the organ, and he took in the view.
“For a wedding, the Reverend has told me that he uses the main altar, right at the end, so the cameraman will need to be able to zoom in. The procedure would happen just between the current altar and the main one.”
He looked hard at the view, then took some pictures on his phone.
“Thank you, Willow. You really should direct films when you’re older. We can put a couple of go-pros facing the couple on the day, to be slipped into the official record. What about unwanted noises up here?”
“I will be turning the fans on when I arrive, to get the pressure up. The only other times that they start is if I’m doing a long, or loud, piece. They kicked in while I was playing the ‘Toccata’ the other day, but you wouldn’t have heard them in the body of the church. Will there be many cameramen, seeing that it would be a society wedding?”
“We’ve talked about it and may have a single photographer from a society paper, keeping the general newshounds outside. It would be a lot easier to control than the Abbey. Then there would be the family photographer to do all the group photos.”
He took another look at the church from this vantage point, gauging how many could sit in each pew.
“The pews are authentic, as well, with the doors.”
“They’re the same in the Abbey. It must be something from earlier days.”
They went back down and joined the others. Cassandra smiled, sweetly.
“This is all right, isn’t it Daddy? All we need is to see where the reception can be held.”
“Thank you, Reverend. I’ll get back to you with the exact date and time, but it will be around Easter. Now, let’s go and see this club.”
The strolled over to the club and went in. Willow had suppress a giggle as the manager had put on a jacket with his name badge on the lapel.
“Good afternoon, folks. Hello, Willow. What can we do for you?”
“We’re here to see if you can host a wedding reception for up to two hundred guests.”
“Certainly. If you follow me, I’ll show you a bigger area. We generally fit around sixty to seventy here on a good night, but there are rooms where we used to hold dinner dances.”
He led them down a passage and opened the door to a large room and turned on the lights.
“We can sit around two forty, with the dance floor it comes back to two hundred. There’s a stage for a band, as well as a PA, which we would make sure was in full working order. It’s a bit messy at the moment as we haven’t used it for a few years. We had monthly shows up to the COVID period and it hasn’t restarted.”
“What about catering?”
“We have the kitchens here, and I would need enough lead time to make sure the kitchen is back at full capacity. We do feed around fifty or sixty on the sing-along nights. The usual charge for receptions is sixty pounds a head, but I believe that you’re special, right?”
Willow stepped in, looking at his name badge.
“Malcolm, this is the Baron Leigh and the Baroness. It is their daughter who will be getting married.”
“Right. I can bring the price down to thirty a head, two-plate drop, and dessert. Drinks would be by a pre-paid bar tab. I can do the price because I can get a good deal from my suppliers. All they need would be a group picture outside the Club, and your permission to add the caption that they had been the preferred supplier to the wedding reception. They would put the picture in their windows.”
Christopher laughed, and Marie giggled.
“If my daughter is happy, you sir, have a deal. This village is priceless! Or, at least, half price.”
“Look, Baron. Why don’t you and your family stay for dinner, tonight, on the house. There’ll be others coming in. Willow, would you be able to provide some entertainment if we include you and your parents?”
“That can be arranged. Can Gina come in and help out?”
“The more the merrier. What do you say, sir?”
“All right, we’ll stay. We can rest with a drink until dinner time. Willow, do you want to go and get Ashley and Wendy, and call your friend?”
The family settled in as Malcolm gave Willow a smile as she went off to collect her parents, calling Gina on the way. When she got home, Wendy had already changed and was putting on her socialising face. Ashley had a sports jacket and slacks.
“Right, Missy. You left with Alec and his family and return with the Baron. Spill the beans, kid!”
“Short answer, Dad. Hancock’s happy looking around Abbey, run into Cassandra and Terry. Cassie spills the beans about me being almost family, Beth looked like thunder. Baron appears on the scene and does the full behind-the-barriers tour, then we had lunch. Beth announces that they have a prior appointment this afternoon and they leave in a hurry, taking Alec and my love life with them.”
Ashley hugged her.
“So, a left hook met a right jab and decided to throw in the towel.”
“If you meant that she got the hump because I’m almost nobility, then – yes.”
“So, the Baron brought you home?”
“We stopped at the church to have a look and they’re now sitting in the club having a drink. Malcolm has shown them the big room at the back and offered them, and us, a free meal tonight. Gina and I will be doing an impromptu sing-along. If you’re worried that I might start bawling, I’ll keep it in until I have a pillow to soak.”
She went upstairs to freshen up and let Wendy redo her make-up. Then, they left the house and walked to the club, where the Leighs had been joined by the Russell’s and the Summer’s, as well as a few more locals who had come along for a meal and a drink. The Reverend had introduced Gina and Maisie to the others, and, when she saw Willow come in, she stood and came to her side.
“So, when were you going to tell me that you’re this pally with the Baron?”
“It isn’t that important, friend. They are almost normal people with a bit more money and a Steinway upright in the dining room. It’s a short story from a long time ago, and I’ll let you know it all on the way to school in the morning. It makes no difference to us.”
They hugged.
“I’ll believe you, friend. They seem nice.”
“I met them at the Abbey this morning. I was with Alec and his parents and Cassandra spouted it all out about our family and theirs. His mother carried him off after lunch. I suppose that my boyfriend isn’t my boyfriend anymore, on mother’s orders.”
“Oh! You poor girl. You two were getting on so well.”
“Let’s forget that, tonight. We have some entertaining to do. I’ll open up with something different, and then you can get them going. I don’t know how long the others will stay, but they do like drinking songs.”
Willow went to see the manager, getting him to put a microphone on a stand, next to the piano. Then she joined the others for a while and had a lemonade. Before the food came out, she went to the piano, sat down and moved the microphone closer, and turned it on.
“Ladies and Gentlemen, tonight I’m going to start with something a little different. Please refrain from throwing tomatoes, they’re terrible to clean off.”
She started playing a tune and then started to sing, softly. It was her song about a child becoming a teenager. It was followed by one about a teenager finding a true friend, and one about the teenager experiencing her first kiss. Wendy had tears in her eyes as she realised that these were Willow’s own story. The next tune was one that Gina knew but had never heard it played with just the piano. It was ‘Driftwood’, and includes the line ‘Don’t leave me, driftwood, on the shore’.
She switched the microphone off and went back to her seat, to polite applause. Wendy stood and held her close before they sat down. After the meals were eaten, Gina went to the piano to start the sing-along. When she got to her final piece, Willow took over and kept the entertainment going. There was at least fifty in the club for the extra entertainment, some of the regulars having rung their friends.
When Willow played ‘Now is the Hour’, she put the lid on the keyboard and there was general applause, hugs and kisses as the Leigh’s left to go home, and the other patrons drifted off. The manager asked Willow to stay for a while, and the evening drew to a close with just the Russell’s, the Rose’s and the Summer’s, sitting with hot coffees in front of them.
The Reverend confirmed that a date had been set the weekend before the Easter weekend, and Malcolm confirmed that the Baron had paid a deposit for the reception at the club. Ashley said that they had been very happy that they had been so well accepted by the Village.
Willow was hugged by Maisie and Gina, with Gina saying that she’ll be looking forward to the story in the morning. Willow walked home with a parent on each side, each with an arm over her shoulders. When they got home, she went to her room and changed into her nightie, then went to the bathroom to cleanse her face and clean her teeth.
She didn’t cry until she was in bed, cuddling her furry friends. And then she cried herself to sleep.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 18
On Monday morning, Willow felt better. She had dreamed about life back in Bristol and had pictured herself in a bramble bush after being bullied. The word ‘stoic’ stayed in her mind. She went down for breakfast, determined that life continues, whatever had happened, and you just have to adapt. She was even able to speak about things when Wendy asked what had happened.
“It’s simple, Mum. Beth dragged Alec out to the car, and they took him away. The Baron thinks that she must be a staunch leftie and meeting a Tory peer had rattled her. I’ll be nice to Alec, as it isn’t his fault, but his parent’s support for our relationship has evaporated.”
“But we’re not even related.”
“Doesn’t matter. I was treated like family, and the acceptance of me just disappeared. I put my pillowcase in the laundry, it was a bit soggy.”
When she went up to get ready for school, she was meticulous in her dress and make-up. Luckily, the nighttime tears hadn’t left permanent evidence on her young face. On the drive to school, she had to fully explain the historical link to a peer to Gina, minimising any actual blood relationship. Gina was asked to just accept it as her family having a family friend who just happened to be a Baron.
“It’s all right, Willow. Spending the evening with them was enough to show me that they’re good people. Cassandra told me about you playing the wedding march on the two organs, and how it was so different. She’s one of those who hasn’t realised that the sound of an instrument can be different, depending on who made it.”
They walked into the school, confident that last week had been productive, if surprising. Alec was in a couple of classes, and he looked unhappy and couldn’t hold Willow’s gaze for long. At lunch, he sat next to her.
“I’m really sorry about Sunday. My mother gave me a good talking to about not following the family politics in being with you. She really laid it on thick. I don’t know what her problem is; the Baron and his family are nice people, even if they are Tory.”
“It’s all right, Alec. I realise that she’s made it very difficult for you. She didn’t talk about taking you away from school, did she?”
“Only if we remain as a couple. I’m not allowed to talk about you, but she will quiz me on what I’m doing. If we’re in a concert, together, she doesn’t want us to sit next to each other.”
“Is she afraid that I’ll infect you with a political virus? What about the band shows?”
“I told her that I would be singing with a group, and that you play the organ. She told me to make sure that there’s no contact, or else I’m out of here.”
“Alec. I’ll be blunt. Last night I cried myself to sleep. Today I’m prepared to be your friend and forget our closeness. I want to hear you playing flute and singing and am not prepared to let you leave this school because of her prejudices. I’m not happy about it, but seeing you here is better than not seeing you at all. Remember – hugging but no kissing!”
Gina was listening in and admiring her friend’s depth of character. On the way to the next class, she linked her arm in Willow’s.
“That was some speech, friend. It was almost statesmanlike. You could go into diplomacy when you get older.”
“It was hard, friend. I didn’t know if I could tell him that it was definitely off, but it’s done. I just hope that his mother lets him be himself. I doubt that she would approve of our trio pieces, though, unless he’s your boyfriend.”
That comment started Gina thinking. Living with her mother in a village of older people, she hadn’t had a lot to do with boys, other than seeing them in school. Learning to play the piano had also isolated her. Alec had been the first boy that she had spent time with as they learned new music. She didn’t really think of him as a potential boyfriend, just as a friend. Her first real friend who was a boy. She did think that Brent was cute, and playing the triangle near him may be an opportunity to get to know him better. In the band, he was with his mates, and she knew enough that this was a bond that one doesn’t intrude into.
Tuesday morning, Paul was his usual self. When they gathered for the orchestra that afternoon, Willow asked Zara if he was any different with her chapel mornings.
“He’s a bit stuck up, but all right. He can’t be anything else with Reg there.”
“Reg? Does he play the organ?”
“Yes, he does. He plays in every chapel.”
“Not in ours, the organ stays covered.”
“I’ll ask Reg when I see him. He helps out with Senior Orchestra on Wednesdays.”
Willow went and sat next to Alec, with them smiling at each other. The one thing that Willow had seen, when she walked in, was the two Yamahas set up in front of the orchestra.
Mister Bamborough tapped his baton on the rostrum once the orchestra had settled.
“Today, you will see the sheet music to ‘Carnival of the Animals’. It is a composition that highlights a number of instruments, and I’m certain that we will do it justice. In the original, it only uses eleven members of the orchestra. We have made changes so that most of you get a chance to play. We have a new instrument with this piece, called the glass harmonica. Can you give us a demonstration, Julia, please.”
The orchestra sat as they heard the sound of this new instrument, a proper part of some compositions in its day, a sort of industrial method of rubbing a wet finger around the rim of a glass.
“Thank you, Julia. Today, we will start with the first short piece. It uses two pianos, and we are now lucky enough to have been able to buy these two keyboards. Gina and Willow, can you come forward and take your seats.”
They went and sat at the keyboards, each with a small amplifier. They were set on the grand piano setting, and Gina played the middle ‘C’ for the rest to tune to. The baton was tapped again, and they prepared to play.
Saint-Saens may have written the opus as a musical joke and a poke at various people, but that didn’t make it easy. It took the whole session to get the first three of fourteen pieces to an acceptable condition. Mister Bamborough told them that they had done well, and then called out some names, including Willow and Gina.
“Can those named please arrange to be able to attend the Senior Orchestra on Wednesday, next week, and every week until the end of term. You will be working on the Saint-Saens concert. We will get this item settled in two more weeks, and then we will work on the ‘Ninth’.”
On the way home, they told Maisie about the new arrangements, excited that they would be in the Senior Orchestra as well. Wendy was also told that evening.
In Thursday lunch, Zara came up to Willow and spoke to her, quietly.
“I asked Reg about the organ in the chapel. He said that Paul told him that he had you playing it on Tuesdays. Something doesn’t add up!”
Friday was the first music lesson for the second half of the term. It was about the blues. Mister Jamieson spoke about early use of song that slaves used to communicate their feelings, and then the movement to other parts of society in southern America. They touched on Cowboy Blues that became sad country music songs and came to the more modern songs.
“We’ll delve deeper into the reasons and history of the blues, but some of you had a close encounter with modern versions in the last week before the break. We can watch this and discuss it.”
He turned on a big screen and they watched the first half – Blue Blues. When he ended it, he turned to the class.
“You will have seen our own Gina playing the organ in this show, the rest of the band are in fourth year. Some of those songs were written more than fifty years ago, who can identify them?”
It was Gina’s week to play the church organ, and Wendy told the girls that Willow would be having a short break in Oxford, to visit her grandparents on her father’s side. They would be leaving in the morning, staying in a hotel overnight, and would be back Sunday evening. It would be the last chance to visit before Christmas. When they were home, Willow asked her mother if the grandparents were aware of her change of status.
“They have been told, love, and your father has sent them pictures. Their replies have been a bit off-handed, though. If it all goes belly up, we can always tour Oxford and sight-see.”
They packed overnight bags that evening and left as soon as they had tidied up on Saturday morning. The drive was reasonable, and they arrived late in the morning, checking into the hotel before going to visit Ashley’s parents. To say the visit wasn’t successful would be an understatement. Her grandfather just made a sour face and left the room to read the racing pages of the newspaper. Her grandmother kept calling her Bill, while being quite chatty with her son and daughter-in-law. There was no offer of lunch, so, in the end, Ashley spoke up.
“Mother. I can see that you are not accepting of our daughter, and that Dad will have nothing to do with her. No amount of telling you that her transition was not of her desire doesn’t seem to sway your hide-bound thinking. We’re going into the city, now, to enjoy our break. Any visit, in future, will be just me. We did hope that you would be as good with this as Wendy’s parents. We wish you both a Merry Christmas. Hopefully, you might reconsider your prejudices at a later date. Say cheerio to Dad for us, we’ll see ourselves out.”
On the way into the city, Wendy put her hand on Ashley’s arm.
“I’m proud of you, my love. That took a lot of courage to talk to her like that. Any time you want a weekend down here, Willow and I will be able to get by.”
They stopped at a pub for lunch, and then did the double-decker tour of the city, getting off if they wanted to see more, and getting on the next one. They had dinner in the hotel, had an early night, and were back on the road home by ten. Willow had a number of brochures to look at, including some from the University. They didn’t take the M40, but stayed on the ‘A’ road to Banbury, where they had lunch in a pub. They took the A423 towards Coventry and then took a side-road to Stoneleigh.
Back at home, Willow hung the good dress that she had taken but not used and checked her skirts for possible reuse. Putting the used underwear into the laundry, she went down to help Wendy put together a light meal.
“That went well, Mum!”
“I’ve told you before that your father’s family are a bit crazy. It means that, if you go to Oxford, you’ll be staying in a dorm, rather than with them. Of course, you could stay with my parents and go to Cambridge.”
“I think that Cambridge would be the go, Mum, unless there are Uni’s closer with good courses. Of course, that is a long way into the future. Who knows how my life will unfold, considering the last three months. Actually, talking about three months, don’t I have to go to the clinic soon?”
“I’ll ask your father to check when they can see you. If it’s only a short visit, he can book you for a Saturday.”
On Monday morning, they told Gina a revised story about their visit to Oxford, and a lot about sight-seeing. Gina said that the general talk at church had been all about the upcoming wedding. Edie had been rounding up the volunteers already, and talking to the flower suppliers to make sure that there would be plenty of spring blooms.
The classes were all routine, Willow well able to keep up. At lunch, there was more talk about the juniors being added to the Senior Orchestra. Alec was one who was going to be there, as was Dianne. Monday evening, Willow listened to the complete ‘Carnival of the Animals’, noting how much of it was the two pianos.
Tuesday morning, Paul looked angry. At the end of the short service, they were turning to go as he called out.
“Miss Rose. Could you stay, please. There is something we need to talk about.”
Willow hugged Gina and Dianne, with her back to him, while she pulled her phone from her inside pocket of her blazer, switching it to record. Slipping it back in, she nodded to her friends and then turned back, looking at Paul. He waited until the last of the students had left and the door had shut.
“What do you have to say for yourself, young lady?”
“About what?”
“About making trouble for me. Reg Edwards asked me about a claim that we don’t use the organ on Tuesday mornings.”
“But we don’t use the organ.”
“Don’t you know why, Miss Rose?”
“No, I don’t.”
“When you speak to me, you call me sir or reverend!”
“But you’re not a teacher, and I was told that you were a theology student by the Reverend Russell. Did I miss your ordination?”
“You’re being cheeky! That old fool, Russell, wouldn’t have the gig here if it wasn’t for his batty sister. I’ll tell you why we don’t use the organ. I was at the Summer Project and saw you playing the devil’s music. I refuse to allow your satanic hands play this organ and desecrate the keys.”
“Why don’t you get Mister Edwards to play, then?”
“He’ll only get you playing, and I would have no power to stop him. I can’t wait until that Russell retires. When I’m the Reverend, there’ll be changes, I can tell you. Given the chance, I’ll get a pile of cushions and get the whole school on its knees for assembly.”
“So, would I be acceptable to you if I attend chapel in a sackcloth with a chain for whipping my own back?”
“You would never be acceptable, Rose! I see you, looking down during the prayers. I doubt that you even open your mouth. In future, you will look at me and pray properly, or I’ll put you on detention. Now, get out of my sight!”
Willow left the chapel and switched the phone recording off. Now, she had to think about what she should do next. She was late for the start of the first class and told the teacher that she had been detained in the chapel about future services.
At lunch, the others wanted to know what had happened. She told them that, at the moment, it was a private matter between her and Paul. Orchestra, that afternoon, continued with the ‘Carnival of the Animals’. On the way home, she asked Maisie if she could drop her off near the church, as there was something she needed to talk to the Reverend about. As she got out of the car, Gina gave her a look, and Willow smiled.
“You’ll know when everyone knows.”
She knocked at the Vicarage, and the Reverend came to the door.
“Willow, what can I do for you?”
“Reverend, could you please arrange for your sister to come here one evening? There is an important matter that I need to talk to both of you about. Around this time tomorrow would be all right as I’m with the Senior Orchestra.”
“Just a moment, I’ll give her a call. I know that it must be important, as you would never do something like this without a reason.”
He went into the house and came back a few minutes later.
“She’ll come to tea, tomorrow, so knock when you arrive.”
“Thank you, Reverend.”
She walked the rest of the way home. She was eating her sandwich and drinking tea as her mother was tidying the kitchen.
‘Mummy, can you do me a favour?”
“Certainly, dear.”
“Tomorrow evening, I’m going to need to go back to the Vicarage as soon as I get home. Can you come with me, please?”
“I can. Is it important?”
“I’m going to play them a recording of a conversation I had this morning. It was highly unusual, and I’ve asked that Miss Russell listen to it as well.”
“That serious? Can I hear it?”
Willow took her phone and pressed the buttons to replay the conversation. When it finished, Wendy sat there for a few moments, her face like thunder.
“That ‘holier than thou’ bastard. Give me five minutes alone with him and he’ll be singing soprano. That is going to blow up in his face after Miss Russell hears it. We’ll be there, together, and show them what the Rose women are made of. Transfer that to a CD for them to take to the Head, with a copy for me, if we need to play it to a lawyer.”
Before she went to bed, Willow transferred the conversation to her computer, then made four CDs.
On Wednesday, she kept herself to herself. With Senior Orchestra, it was conducted by Mister Jamieson, with Reg Edwards helping him. Willow had the school organ, Gina had a piano, with the senior pianist on another. They had already worked on the first movement of the ‘Organ Symphony’, with Reg at the keyboard. Over the course of the session, they ended up playing the movement twice, with Mister Jamieson telling them that they will move on next week.
Maisie dropped Willow off at home, and she went in, coming back out with Wendy, five minutes later. They walked to the vicarage and knocked on the door. Edie let them in and showed them to the sitting room, where the Reverend and Hilda were sitting.
“Good evening, thank you for seeing me tonight. I have a recording to play you, but first, I need to give you some background. Since the beginning of the term, the second-year Tuesday service has sung our hymns without organ accompaniment. In discussion with Zara, she mentioned that all of the services used the organ. She said that she would talk to Mister Edwards about it. When she got back to me, she told me that Paul had told Mister Edwards that I was the organist.”
Miss Russell looked at Willow with an odd look.
“And?”
“On Tuesday morning, this week, Paul asked me to stay behind when the others were leaving. I’m sorry to say that I recorded the conversation on my phone, because I had been having reservations about Paul from day one. I was worried that he may have sexual thoughts. I didn’t expect what he did say. If I may, I would like to play you the recording. The only person who has heard it is my mother.”
The Russells both nodded, and Willow took her phone out and pressed the right buttons, so that the conversation could be heard, loud and clear. For Wendy, it made her blood boil again. The Russell siblings listened, with both of them getting angrier as it went on.
“That jumped up little shit!”
“Now, now, brother dear, that’s not proper language for a man of the cloth. Mind you, I was about to say the same thing, but with a few four-letter words added. Willow, what do you want done?”
“That’s not my call Miss Russell. I’ve brought this to you to do with as you think fit. He hasn’t vilified me in public, and, as far as I’m concerned, I still think that he’s creepy. His main attacks are against both of you, and the implications of his ideas are for the school to consider. I have made three CDs with the conversation, so you have something to use as you wish.”
“What about you, Wendy?”
“I would feed him his nuts on a piece of toast, but I have to go with my daughter. What you’ve just heard is something the school has to work through. Willow is happy to carry on as usual and will stay quiet about the recording. She is not vindictive. But I will say one thing, if you do nothing, and he expands on his battle with her, I will take the school to court for not taking this seriously, to the detriment of students. His ideas about music do not allow movement into the modern age, in fact his ideas are almost medieval.”
“I agree. Brother, dear, can you contact the seminary and see if there is a replacement we can get at short notice. I will see the Head tomorrow, calling Reg in. I’ll play them the recording. If I know the Head, he’ll be out of the place before the afternoon. Can you just imagine fourteen hundred children on their knees, it’s absurd!”
The Reverend nodded and touched his cross.
“I am not a strong character, Wendy, and just like things working well. Since you and Willow walked into the church, my world has expanded. I believe that we may get a visit from the diocese before Christmas, because of the increase in congregation numbers. The idea that we may host a society wedding next year will get back to them and we’ll be asked a lot of questions. They will want to know how we do it. Hilda, if I’m needed in the mornings, I can come in to conduct the services.”
“Thank you for that. We can only leave it to the Head. It is part of her job description, after all. Thank you, Willow, for not screaming blue murder. We can minimise the disruption and any student worry. I never realised that Paul held those views, but now, when I think of times I’ve spoken with him, he was never respectful of the teaching faculty.”
As they walked home, Wendy had her hand on Willow’s shoulder. They had done all they could and needed to trust the Russells to do the right thing. After they had taken their coats off, they hugged, and Willow was given her sandwich and tea.
When she was in bed, hugging her two friends, she whispered to them.
“Now the excrement hits the rotating barrier, lads. We may have done it now!”
Thursday morning had no upheavals to mar the day, but Friday, they saw the Reverend’s car heading for Coventry as they went to the school. At the lunch, Miss Russell came into the lunchroom and asked Willow if she, and her mother, could go to the Head’s office when she arrived to take them home. Willow asked if Gina could join them, as she had been there when Willow was asked to remain behind, and that she wouldn’t shout it out if she’s told what has happened.
That afternoon, as they stood by the main door, they were joined by Miss Russell. When Wendy arrived, Willow went down to get her mother to lock the car and follow the three of them for a meeting.
In the office, they were sat down, and the Head had a teapot ready.
“Thank you, on many fronts. Gina, you must have had some idea that something was wrong when Willow was asked to stay behind after the service on Tuesday. I’ll leave it to her to tell you exactly what happened. She took a recording of that meeting to Miss Russell and the Reverend Russell. Miss Russell brought that recording to me yesterday. The upshot is that Paul has left the school and returned to the seminary. He may have to undertake further training. The Reverend took the service today and will fill in until there’s a new house priest. We will be pushing for one who is already ordained, maybe one who has retired.”
Gina was starting to realise that this had been something serious.
“I won’t say a thing, Headmistress. I don’t think that anyone has realised that he’s gone for good.”
“We want to keep it that way. Willow, the school offers you a sincere apology for his actions, and his allegations. Your faith is your own business, but your service to the school and St. Marys is noted and appreciated, as is yours as well Gina. Wendy, we thank you for keeping it all in perspective and going with Willow. You are a remarkable family. I will look forward to seeing you and your husband at the various concerts during the next few years. I’ve been told that they will be as good as going to London to see professionals.”
In the car, Gina wanted to know what had actually happened, so Willow played her the recording on her phone, then, ceremonially, deleted it.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 19
When they got to Gina’s home, Willow got out and they hugged.
“I’ll be at the church in the morning to see about the hymns.”
“I’ll come and we can talk. You’re so brave. I would have just dissolved into jelly if I had been spoken to like that.”
“We’ll talk tomorrow.”
When they got home, Wendy took the CD and put it into a safe place. Then they went to change and met in the kitchen to prepare dinner.
“That went well, sweetie. We just have to hope that he doesn’t make waves. He won’t be happy and may consider what happened to him as a sign that you really are the devil’s spawn.”
“Does Dad know?”
“Not yet. He would have gone down to the school and tried to beat the shit out of this Paul. Now that it’s settled, we can tell him that we’ve done all we could, without violence, and then talk about getting security cameras here, in case the bastard comes looking for you.”
After dinner, Ashley was brought up to speed with the situation, restrained from dashing somewhere to hit someone, and then they spoke about the extra security. He said that he would go into Coventry, in the morning, and see what was available. They didn’t play him the CD, with Wendy telling him the gist of it and the result that had been reached.
That night, as she lay in bed, cuddling her friends, Willow told them that changing to a girl changed nothing, as there are always people who hate other people.
“I know that you’ll try to protect me, Tiger. I used to have to look out for a lot of bullies, once upon a time, surely one crazy man should be easy to avoid.”
In the morning, she walked to the church. The Reverend was sweeping the porch.
“Good morning and welcome, Willow. Hilda has kept me up to date with what happened at the school. After you had left, the other evening, I rang the Bishop and played the CD to him over the phone and told him the rest of the details. He told me that he would see to it, and that he was coming to our service tomorrow. Hilda rang on Thursday, saying that a couple of guys from the seminary turned up in the morning and took Paul away with them, then asked me to take the Friday service.”
“We told my father last night, and he’s gone into the city to see about surveillance cameras in case Paul comes looking for me.”
“He won’t be a problem. The Bishop rang me late on Friday. Paul was taken to his home and kept in the car while one of our men packed his bags. The Bishop said that there was enough hate literature and far-right brochures from an American cult, that Paul was given two options. The first was to be thrown out and the police advised that he was an extremist that needed watching. The second was to be sent to Africa with extensive retraining. He chose Africa and is being kept at the seminary until they put him on a plane.”
“That’s a relief! I won’t tell my Dad; he’ll be able to watch the camera footage when I’m brought home by a future boyfriend.”
“Not that Alec?”
“Not anymore. Last week having his parents meet the Baron threw a spanner in the works. We are now just good friends, if it got any hotter, she would take him out of school.”
“That’s a bit harsh! I’m sure a lovely girl like you won’t be left hanging for long.”
“It really is all right, Reverend. Alec was interesting but far too early in my development. I’ll see how I am in a couple of years. Before then, I have a lot of learning to do. What have you got for me for tomorrow?”
“The sheet music is on the keyboard. From what I’ve been told, you don’t need it.”
“I do have a strange brain. I can remember most of what I’ve heard in the last few months, and the more I play something, the longer it stays. Earlier than that, it just needs a look at the music, or the first few bars, to bring it back. You’re right about hymns. Paul would have been incandescent if he had known that I had spent close to six hours on the chapel organ playing hymns for the choir practise.”
“All right. You go up and get Betsie going, toss the sheet music down and I’ll call out the numbers.”
Willow grinned.
“You’re on!”
She went into the church and up to the organ, picking up the music and dropping it down to him. She sat and warmed up with a few bars of Bach. In the silence, he called a number, and she played the intro to the hymn. He called another, then another, then another.
“All right, young lady, you win. This will give you a head start on the Bishop. He has been known to call out a hymn number at random when he gives a reading, to see if the organist is up to scratch. I expect that reports that he has received from the school will tempt him to try it. If you just sit without playing, he’ll look at the board and tell the congregation that he had made a mistake and then call the right number.”
She turned the organ off and went down.
“This Bishop sounds like quite a card.”
“He was a few years before me in the seminary. He had some difficult assignments in his early days and has learned to go with the flow. We served in adjoining parishes for several years and became good friends. He will be staying at the vicarage overnight, so will be coming to the club for dinner tonight.”
“We’re starting monthly sing-alongs tonight, going to fortnightly in spring. So, he’ll get to hear his organists playing honky-tonk.”
They laughed and went back outside as Gina was approaching. Willow went over to the bench, and she followed, sitting beside her.
“All good with the hymns tomorrow?”
“No problems, it should go well. How are you feeling after the surprise of yesterday?”
“Really well. I still can’t see how you could stay steady and calm for four days. I would have been in tears to have been spoken to like that.”
“It’s training, just training. When you’re confronted by a bully, tears make them worse; looking frightened makes them happy, and begging ends up with you getting a kicking. Stare them in the eye and hold your nerve and they think twice. Paul couldn’t lay a hand on me in the school, and that was my strength. The Reverend has just told me that Paul will be kept at the seminary until he’s flown to Africa on a new assignment.”
Gina was quiet for a few moments, looking at her feet, then held her head up.
“It’s odd, us sitting here like this. When I first met you after that concert, I thought that I was in love with you.”
“I know. I saw the look in your eyes.”
“You knew! Why didn’t you tell me to buzz off?”
“Because I also knew that you are a nice girl. I wondered if it was just awe from the concert.”
“It was, I think. Knowing you better, I respect you and your talent. Your friendship and leading me to better things has made me realise how special you are. I had never thought that I was a lesbian, but there was one short period when all I wanted to do was kiss you. Now we hug and it’s so much better.”
Willow turned to her and opened her arms. They hugged for a while, then drew apart. Gina looked serious.
“I’ve been thinking about the orchestra. If they do a full Saint-Saens concert, it will be the two of us highlighted. You first on the organ with ‘Seven Improvisations’, then the pair of us with ‘Carnival’, seeing that the pianos hog the show. After that you’re the mainstay of the ‘Organ Symphony’ and I get a lot of work on the piano. It’s making me realise that we’re both being picked out.”
“Why is that a problem, friend? We are the youngest church organists around, the best pub piano players in the area. I get a solo in one concert; you get a solo in another. We’re both good enough to wear the mantle with humility and a touch of pride. Our playing lifts the others to new heights, with just a chance that they will get more exposure over the next few years. Take on a side-job. Listen to the others and see if there are any who deserve a chance. Then we can make suggestions. When we get to ‘The Swan’, I think Zara will be setting herself up for a cello concerto later. Mister Bamborough is very good at promoting talent when it is pointed out to him.”
“Talking about talent. Those songs that you opened the show with last week. I can’t remember hearing the first few, before. ‘Driftwood’, I knew, of course, but never how you played it.”
Willow reached into her bag and pulled out her notebook, showing her writing to Gina.
“That’s because I sat here and wrote them. The tunes had been whirling around in my head, and the stress of having Alec wrenched from my life made them bubble to the surface. There has been one thing about a lot of songs, and that is that they are written about a personal loss. Or a personal gain.”
“That second song. That was about me?”
“Of course it was, my best friend forever. Who else could it have been.”
They hugged again. Gina was crying tears of happiness.
“Don’t go blubbing on me, it will set me off as well.”
“I can’t help it, I’m so happy.”
“Stay that way, friend, and nothing will stop you.”
“Talking about stopping, I told Mum that I’ll be stopping at your house for lunch.”
Willow laughed.
“That’s good. We can research the internet for more pub songs, maybe we can get sheet music for you to extend your session.”
They went to Willow’s home, had lunch with Wendy, and then went up to Willows bedroom to get the keyboard, re-erecting it in the sitting room next to the upright. When they had set up the computer, they looked for more pub songs. As they found one that they hadn’t played, they listened to it and then Willow played it on the Yamaha, with Gina watching her fingering and getting the tune into her mind. Then, she played it, solo, with Willow looking on. Over on the other side of the room, Wendy watched as they worked, growing more amazed at her daughter, and her ability to transfer her talent to Gina.
When they had found ten that would work, Wendy asked the question that had been on her mind for a week.
“Those few songs that you opened with. Where did you learn those?”
“The last one was one that we had worked on for the Moody Blues show. The others were ones I wrote. They were just right to fit my mood. Those who had been there at the Abbey understood them, completely.”
“So did I, my daughter. It was the story of your recent life. Have you got any more?”
“Not yet, but there are a lot of songs that Gina and I did with Alec singing. Are you up for it, friend?”
Gina grinned and started playing one of the tunes; Willow switched to a strings setting and started singing. They played recent chart-toppers for half an hour, Gina amazed at how she could drag each song from her memory, as long as they did them in the order that they had played them before. When they finished, Wendy smiled.
“Why don’t we take the keyboard and amp over to the club. You could open the evening with that set. It’s songs that the younger ones would be able to sing along to. You don’t need to be playing old time stuff until they’re getting drunk.”
She left them and walked over to the club, seeing Malcolm, organising a power plug and two microphones. He had a twenty-watt amp that could be used for both the mics and the organ. She went back home.
“All worked out. We just need to take the keyboard, stool, and stand. Let’s get them there and then we can tizzy up for the Saturday Night Hoedown.”
That’s what they did. With the keyboard set up, a sound-check made, and a song sung, they left a beaming Malcolm polishing glasses. Gina and Willow hugged and then parted to get into better dresses for the first performance of Summer Rose.
Ashley had returned with boxes of cameras and other items.
“What on earth have you got there?”
“Security, dear wife. We have five cameras. One to look down the road to the junction, one to be set on wide-angle over the front door, one for the left side, another for the right side and the last looking at the back yard.”
“That one will be nice, I’ll be able to watch you putting up a shed to store all our extra stuff. We’ll need the spare room if my parents come visiting.”
“Very funny. The rest are a siren and a lot of panic buttons. The whole lot is blue tooth driven and able to be monitored through our phones.”
Willow snorted.
“It looks as if I’ll have to have a goodnight snog around the corner before I get driven home. There’s no way you’ll get me on disc by the front door. Thank you, Daddy.”
“I can always get another one and put it in a tree on Vicarage Road.”
“You do that, and you’ll be getting pictures of the fish in the river!”
They had a laugh and finished getting ready to go out. Both Wendy and Willow had the dresses that they had bought to visit the Baron, and Ashley had to take himself out of his comfort zone to match the good looks.
At the club, they were seated early, and Willow and Gina were fed first. The place started to fill, and Willow saw the three Russell’s come in with a jovial looking man, the only clue that he was the Bishop being the gold cross on a chain, matching the Reverend’s own. As the food was brought out and the talk subsided, the girls went to the two keyboards and sat down. Willow spoke into her microphone.
“Good evening, ladies and gentlemen. Welcome to the Stoneleigh Club and what will become a monthly event, hopefully becoming fortnightly as the weather improves. Of course, that also depends on you turning up, drinking up, and singing along. Tonight, we are doing something different. Tonight, we’ll start with more modern songs, so that the younger ones among you can go home to bed. After that we’ll do more of the old favourites.”
Gina spoke.
“I’m Summer.”
“And I’m Rose.”
“Together, we’re Summer Rose!”
And then Gina started playing. They were not a couple of thirteen-year-olds as they worked into the set; they were a pair of seasoned performers. The Bishop leaned towards his friend.
“Those two are fantastic. I wonder what they charge?”
“They do this show for a free meal, my friend. The one on the piano is Gina, a long-time resident of the village. The other is Willow, who moved here in the summer. They both attend the Blue Coat, and they are both organists in the church. You’ll see Willow in action, tomorrow, as they alternate.”
“My word, you are a lucky man!”
The girls finished the modern songs, and the Gina started with her part of the show. Unbidden, Willow continued to play accompaniment, with them both leading the singing. Malcolm brought them lemonades and they continued into the evening, with a swap of seats to put Willow on the piano. Gina found her improvisation skill and switched from strings to organ to brass sounds as needed. After the last song, Gina bade the audience goodnight from Summer Rose, and they stood and bowed.
They hugged and then joined the others at their table for more hugs all round. Willow saw a smiling Bishop being taken back to the vicarage, with more than communion wine in him. Malcolm surprised them by telling them that they would get a share of an overflowing tips jar and thanking them for such a great show.
“Girls. I have an idea. If we need to get the back room into good order for that wedding, perhaps we can do that early and put on a Christmas Party. Give it some thought, and we can discuss it another time.”
Willow walked home with a parent on each side, with arms over her shoulders. She felt tired, but happy at what she and Gina had done. It was if they had a mental connection as they played. It didn’t pass her by that Miss Russell had been there. There would be ramifications during school hours, likely a spot in one of the concerts using both of the new keyboards. She wondered if the guys from Blue Two would be interested in joining them. A party gig in front of a couple of hundred might be something to get them excited.
The relief that Paul wouldn’t be a bother, and the tiredness of playing, allowed her to sleep deeply, dreamlessly restoring her body. Waking up to a cold, but bright, day, she showered and dressed for church, then went down for breakfast. Wendy gave her a hug and then put a plate in front of her. She devoured the food, needing the strength it gave her, and then went up to brush her teeth.
When she came down, her parents were waiting for her, and they walked towards the church, the bells starting as they approached. Reverend Russell was waiting.
“Good morning, good people. Today, we are blessed with having the Bishop give the service. He will join us before it starts, but is being a little slow getting going, this morning.”
Willow grinned to herself as she went in and got the organ ready. She had retrieved the sheet music, just for show, and set it to one side to start playing the Bach variations that she improvised. Slowly, the church filled, the bells stopped, and the congregation rose. She could see the Bishop walk up the aisle, the Reverend to one side and a warden to the other. She timed the music to stop as he arrived at the altar, then sat as he led the welcoming prayer. She was ready when he climbed the stairs to the pulpit.
“Today, the first hymn is one of my favourites”
He called out a number and there was a general rustling of pages as they tried to locate the hymn. Willow left it a few beats until she could hear that they were mostly ready, and then played the intro, which allowed any laggard time to find the right page. Every hymn, thereafter, wasn’t what was on the board, and Willow could see some smiles in the mirror as she played the right tune. The readings and the sermon were normal, and after the Bishop had descended the stairs, he knelt at the altar, and it was quiet. When he rose, he turned to the congregation.
“My friends. I had heard whispers about St. Marys and my friend, Reverend Russell. They told me that great things were happening here, in Stoneleigh. I came to your lovely village yesterday and was taken to your community club last night. There, I was amazed at how strong the community spirit is, and enjoyed the show that was put on by two, very talented, girls. One of those girls was at the organ, today. I have a habit which I should stop, and probably will, after this morning. I would call out a hymn number that isn’t scheduled to see if the organist is up to scratch. Usually, it only those with many years behind them who will be able to adapt. If they remain silent, I say that I’ve made a mistake and revert to the one on the board. Today, every hymn that was sung were my personal favourites, and my personal choices. Your organist, Willow Rose, was with me all the way and I hereby vow that I will never play that trick again, having been beaten four – nil.”
He turned and left the church, with the two attendants behind him. Willow started playing the music as the bells were ringing. There was some applause as the congregation slowly left. When Willow thought that everyone had gone, she timed the music to finish with the bells, then turned the organ fans off and went downstairs. Her parents were waiting for her and hugged her. Her father laughed.
“Queen takes Bishop, check mate!”
“Don’t pretend that you play chess, Dad. That was fun, though. The Reverend had warned me that he might try one ring-in, but four was interesting.”
Wendy gave her another hug.
“But it was a very enlightening set of hymns. The Bishop is a man of joy and hope, if those show his feelings in song.”
They left the church as a family. Gina was the first to hug her, the Bishop was next.
“What can I say, Miss Rose. I have had seasoned organists cry when I’ve played that trick, and then I come here to find a teenager who beat me at my own game. Hilda Russell has told me about you two girls at the school, and I’ll be with my church committee to listen to the concert that’s planned. With the two of you on piano and organ, it can’t go wrong.”
“Thank you, Bishop. We’re working on ‘Carnival of the Animals’ at the moment and should have the whole thing ready to hear by the end of February.”
“Excellent. Now, I have a favour to ask you, young lady. I’m told that Gina will be playing here next Sunday. I wonder if you’ll like a chance to get some time in on our organ, at the Cathedral. I’ll give my organist the day off, and you can come in on Saturday afternoon to see what you think. Then we have two services on Sunday, the usual and an Evensong. Do we have your permission, Mister and Mrs. Rose?”
“You don’t have to ask, Bishop. We will be happy to bring Willow to Coventry and see your wonderful Cathedral. Saturday would be a good opportunity for Willow and me to get new dresses for the occasion. My husband can give the house a clean on Saturday.”
They all grinned and then the Bishop left them to speak to others. Gina hugged Willow again.
“Playing the organ in the Cathedral! It’s a wonderful instrument. You’re so lucky!”
“What is lucky is that I get to play it before we go there for a rehearsal of the concert. It will let me know how quickly I can leave the piano, after Carnival, and be ready to play.”
Miss Russell came over to them.
“Well done, you two. The Bishop was the one who had doubts about our concert idea. Now, with him on board, we can push forward with it. Last night was an eye-opener. My brother had told me that you played pub songs in the club. What I didn’t expect to see was a three-hour show of new and old tunes that everyone could sing to. I guess that you won’t be surprised if I pencil the two of you in for a complete show in the school theatre, sometime next year.”
“We had spoken about that, Miss Russell. We were wondering if we could pull Blue Two into it and make it a complete band. They were thinking about a Christmas party in the Club, in the bigger room out the back.”
“Blue Two?”
“Yes, the four Gees will be Blue One when we do that blues show, with Jim on the organ. Blue Two are all second years, the two of us plus Alec, Brent and three of his friends. We will do the Moody Blues half of the show. We have all rehearsed the two halves, so the actual show will be different looking to the DVD.”
“You have four new members able to play that set?”
“Yes, is that a problem?”
“Certainly not. Can we have a demonstration, some time?”
“Not a problem, Miss Russell. After that, we can show you the other show that we’ve put together. It’s from a concept album by Kansas and will be a full show of ten long tracks.”
“That, we’ll have to hear. Do you have any idea how much you two are doing for the school? Mister Bamborough has been in my ear about how much better the orchestra is, with the two of you providing the higher bar for them to jump over.”
“We’re just doing what we love. We’re both amazed at how well we play, together. Last night was the first time we had both stayed out front, and it worked. That reminds me. I have to get my keyboard back from the club.”
“You go and do what you have to do. I’ll be telling the Head that you’ll be at the Cathedral next week, so expect some of the school staff along, although you won’t see them from where you’ll be sitting.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 20
Finally, Willow and Gina could take their leave and go to the club to collect the keyboard. They were greeted by Malcolm, who gave each girl an envelope, with notes in them.
“That was a great show you put on, last night, girls.”
“Even the Bishop mentioned it in the service this morning.”
“We had the Bishop in here, last night?”
“We did, and he told everyone how much he had enjoyed it. Can we have a quick look at the back room, please? We’re thinking about your idea of a Christmas party.”
He showed them the room, and then the storeroom where the house amplifiers were stored.
“It will all need a clean and test before we use anything. If we do long tables, we can fit about two-twenty sitting, with space for dancing. The wedding will have to be limited to two hundred if they want a head table. There is a PA system, which hasn’t been used since COVID started. There are a few volunteers, mainly the ladies from the church, who will be able to get the place tidy and clean.”
Ashley came in while they were unplugging the keyboard. He had a quick talk to Malcolm, and then picked up the keyboard while the girls took the frame and stool. They went to Willow’s home, where Wendy and Maisie were getting a kettle going. Wendy rummaged in her larder and was able to produce lunch for them all while Willow and Gina were putting the keyboard back in the bedroom.
As the shops were still open that afternoon, Wendy and Willow were joined by Gina and Maisie to go and look for things suitable for an organist in the Cathedral. Willow decided that she already had a full skirt for Saturday but went home with a matching skirt and top in white for Sunday, with a wide blue hem on both the top and skirt. She had to have a smile when she saw herself in the shop mirror. At the beginning of the year, white wouldn’t have lasted a half an hour. While it was the only thing that they left with, between them they had all tried on a lot more.
When they got home, they had dinner and Willow went up to her room and listened to some MP3 tracks for a while, before turning on her laptop to research the Cathedral. When she was in bed, she thought about the prospect of playing that wonderful organ next week, in front of a big congregation, until she went to sleep.
On Monday, the DVD and CD were for sale, and the concert was being advertised on posters and the website. The envelope that she had been given had enough to buy the DVD. During lunch, she spoke to Alec about fronting a band for a Christmas party at the club. He said that he would talk to his mother about it but would tell her that it was a school outreach project. She then went to talk to the rest of the band, and they said that they would think about it. Herb wanted to know what sort of music they would play.
“Dance music, slow stuff, carols, pop songs, all sorts. You must have played a lot of it in the past.”
“Does it pay?”
“Of course it will. I don’t know if it would be a lot, though. Perhaps a lot of goodwill.”
Tuesday morning, Willow joined the others in the chapel. A stranger stood as they found seats.
“Good morning. My name is Jack Heinrich. I’m an ordained vicar but have retired due to my health. I was asked by the Bishop to stand in for as long as I felt able. So far, it’s been good. I’m told that Miss Rose will play the organ, today, with Miss Summer next week. So, if you can join me out the front, Miss Rose, we will begin.”
It was so different from how Paul conducted the service, that the relaxation of tense muscles was almost palpable. The Reverend Jack showed his years of service in an easy delivery, non-combative style and, when Willow played the hymn, he was beaming as he brought the short service to an end. As the others started to leave, he stood next to Willow as she turned the organ off.
“The Reverend Russell told me, yesterday, that there were two girls in this year who played well. Your talent, young lady, is the talk of the diocese. I hear that you will be playing at the Cathedral on Sunday. I know several vicars who are planning to attend the Evensong if they don’t hold one themselves. I also heard that you outfoxed the Bishop.”
“Four – nil, Reverend.”
“There are several organists in the area that would buy you a drink because of that. Now, go along to your studies, I’ll see you in the Cathedral.”
Willow caught up with her friends, all saying how nice the new vicar was. That lunch, Alec told her that it was still iffy about being able to sing at the party. At the Junior Orchestra, everything changed. Miss Russell was there, and waited until they were all seated before she spoke.
“Before you start, today, I want to ask for volunteers to play in a dance band at the Stoneleigh Community Club before Christmas. It will be a Saturday evening, and we will have the school coach for transport. It will be classed as an outreach project, raising money for the St. Marys church roof, and will be repeated, in our theatre, for an audience of disadvantaged members of society, in the week after. We already have Gina and Willow on keyboards and vocals. We need drums, bass, guitars, horns, saxophone, woodwind. The usual dance band, limited to about ten. Just google Benny Goodman or Billy Cotton to see what they used. Talk to your parents and let me know by Friday. We’ll schedule a short set of sessions to put it together.”
She nodded to Mister Bamborough on her way out. They continued to work on ‘Carnival of the Animals’, with just the last five movements to do. As the friends had expected, Zara put in a performance with ‘The Swan’ that raised the conductor’s eyebrow.
On Wednesday, the two friends had to field lots of questions about the proposed party, telling everyone the sort of songs that they would be playing, as well as several carols that the orchestra already knew. Wednesday, at Senior Orchestra, they moved on with the ‘Organ Symphony’. When they were packing up, Mister Jamieson came over to Willow.
“I’ve been told that you will be playing the organ in the Cathedral on Sunday and going in on Saturday afternoon to try it. I’ve had a talk with the others, and we’ll be bringing the choir in. I’ll write out a variation of your sheet music for us to try, which will give the choir three verses of the lyrics. I’m keen to try those multiplier units through their PA to test the effect. It will be good to see what the Bishop thinks. If I were you, I’d see if I could get something from the ‘Seven Improvisations’ in. That will go a long way in getting a positive decision for next year.”
“No pressure then, sir.”
“Not for you, Willow. There are a lot of people keen to make this work. Just do what you usually do, and everything will be all right.”
Willow was quiet on the way home. Gina asked her what was wrong.
“Nothing wrong, Gina. I’m just trying to remember the fourth movement to the ‘Organ Symphony’ and figure out how we’re going to fit three verses of the pop song in, you know, the words from a record of the day. Mister Jamieson has told me that the choir are coming to the Cathedral on Saturday so that we can test it out in front of the Bishop.”
“Mum! Can we go to the Cathedral Saturday?”
“Of course we can, dear. I’m not missing a chance to hear Willow on that organ.”
When they dropped her off, Willow went in and hugged her mother.
“What was that for, darling?”
“That was just pure happiness, Mum. On Saturday, when we’re at the Cathedral, Mister Jamieson will bring a revised music sheet for me to play part of the ‘Organ Symphony’, along with the choir. I can hear it in my mind. It will be fantastic!”
That evening, she listened to the fourth movement and made some variations of her own, playing through her headphones. She thought that it would be interesting to see if it was similar to what she was given.
Thursday and Friday dragged, until they got to the music lesson. Both Yamahas were set up in the classroom. Mister Jamieson got Willow and Gina to sit at them.
“Today, we are continuing with The Blues. Much of it is made up of repeating your woes, complaining about your situation, or telling the world about your true love. If you will lead us off, Willow, with a typical blues refrain, I want you, Gina, to add typical sounds. The rest of you, when I point to you, you will sing me a few lines. By now, a lot of you have seen the DVD of the concert, even if you didn’t attend it on the day.”
Willow grinned and played a typical blues into, then started singing.
“I’m here in this class, playing on these old keys.”
“I’m here in this class, playing on these damn keys.”
“If I could be anywhere else.”
“I’d be out in my boat, sailing on the high seas.”
The class were all smiling and now had the idea of what they had to do. When each one was pointed at, there weren’t very many who couldn’t think of a line. There were a lot of smiles, as some juicy gossip was aired in song. Gina was pointed at as she was adding her extra accompaniment.
“I’m here with my friend, who is quite a freak.”
“I’m here with my friend, the musical freak.”
“But if I tell her that fact.”
“She would just give me cheek.”
It took over half an hour to let everyone have a go, and those who had baulked put their hands up to add their lines, now that they’d had a chance to think of something. When they had run out of steam, Mister Jamieson clapped for a few seconds.
“Well done, class. You have just passed the first barrier of truly understanding the blues. We will all forget the gossip. Just joking. What these girls played can be played on guitar, harmonica, piano, organ, and a lot of other instruments. The thing is that you don’t need electric power to play blues, you just need something to say. For the rest of this lesson, I want each of you to write a verse, one that we haven’t heard before, about good looking girls and sexy boys. We will pick ten of the best, then Willow and Gina will play the music while we sing them with as much pain and suffering as we can muster.”
He motioned for the two of them to continue with the music, to give the others the cadence they should be working with. A half an hour later, there was the ten best verses written on the blackboard. Mister Jamieson went to the back of the room, took out his phone to record the result, then nodded to the girls to start playing. When they had worked through the ten verses, with much giggling, he called out.
“Do it again, with pain and suffering. Tomorrow, you have to work in the cane field for fifteen hours.”
When they had finished, he walked to the front of the class and clapped the students.
“Well done, class. That captures what the blues is all about. Next lesson, we will look at the first part of the DVD again and discuss how the blues has developed into entertainment. Now, off you go.”
As the class filed out, he went over to the friends.
“That was truly awesome, you two. What you produced was perfect. It made the rest of the class grasp what I was aiming for. Thank you. I’ll see you, tomorrow, Willow. Now, just let me get the new music from my bag and you’re free to go.”
He gave Willow the sheet music and she put it in her bag. The girls strolled out to wait for Wendy.
On the way home, Willow looked at the music and hummed the tune, seeing where he had added several lines that allowed the choir to sing. It was almost identical to what she had played to herself the night before. That’s when she realised that she should actually take the time to write things down, instead of just committing it to memory. That evening, she wrote out the tunes and lyrics to her three songs, adding other instrumentation as well.
Saturday morning, her father had booked her into the clinic for a check-up. She was woken early, had a quick breakfast, and they were on the road before eight. He dropped her off and then carried on to office for a few hours.
In the clinic, she had to undress completely and wear the hospital gown. The false breasts and the glue holding the penis in place was given the solvent treatment, and her own budding breasts were revealed. Her chest was thoroughly cleaned, as was her groin, and then the rebuilding started.
The new breasts were hollowed out slightly, to allow her own more room to grow, and then they changed how her groin looked. After it being well shaved, they gave her a local anaesthetic and pulled folds of skin over the penis to create a more female-looking groin, glueing the folds to look like a vagina, and leaving a gap in the bottom for urine to be passed. A nurse held her hand and explained what they were doing.
“Because you never developed a proper scrotum, we have to stretch skin from either side. You may feel that it is tight, after the local wears off, and you shouldn’t do any hard exercise for a week. We could stitch the skin together, but then we would need you here for several days. If this doesn’t work, we may have to resort to that over the next school holidays.”
By the time her father came back to take her home, she had practised passing water and shown how to properly clean up. They had also taken blood and given her another hormone injection. When she redressed, the panties fitted much better.
At home, they sat in the kitchen for lunch. The front doorbell rang, and her father went to answer, putting his head back into the kitchen.
“It’s Joe from work. He’s got a ladder in his van and he’s going to help me fit the cameras this afternoon.”
Wendy and Willow went to dress for the afternoon at the Cathedral, and then left, seeing Joe up a ladder with Ashley rummaging in his toolbox for something.
“Looks like we’ll have the cameras up when we get home.”
“It’s all for nothing, Mum. Paul has been sent to a ministry in Africa.”
“That’s good, but we won’t tell your father. This helps him to feel as if he’s protecting us. Mind you, it could all come in handy when you’re famous and we get fans come to see where you live.”
“Yeah, and when I’m being dropped off by boys. At least this will give the neighbours something to talk about. I saw a few curtains twitching as we left our road.”
When they arrived at the Cathedral, they parked next to a coach with the school signage on. As they entered, they both just stood and looked, in awe, at the magnificent interior. Gina was already there, and rushed over to Willow and gave her a hug.
“Isn’t this just fantastic. Look at that lovely organ. The place is huge!”
“Calm down, friend, by the time we get to the concert, we’ll be used to it. The place is truly magnificent, though.”
Mr Jamieson came over, shook Wendy’s hand and took Willow over to the choir girls. He explained what he wanted to do, and Willow hummed the organ part so that they could be certain of where they came in.
As they were doing that, the Bishop came over and waited until they had finished.
“Good afternoon, Willow. Come with me, there’s a few people that you should meet.”
He took her and introduced her to his Dean, his organist, and a man from the BBC, here to get some idea of what the proposed concert would be like before he committed an outside broadcast van.
The Bishop asked the organist to take Willow up to the organ and show her the ropes.
“Get used to the instrument, Willow. Play something to let the Beeb know that you’re worth coming to see. Then run through the service for Sunday, you’ll find it a little different to what you’re used to, this being a High Church service.”
Willow beckoned Mister Jamieson over.
“I’ve been told to get used to the organ and then play something for that man over there. He’s from the BBC and here to see if we’re worth his trouble. I’ll play the last movement of the ‘Seven Improvisations’, and then what you gave me, so have the choir ready to sing their part at the right time.”
“Right, I’ll get them miked up and tested. You’ll be doing the service afterward?”
“Yes. You don’t have to hang around, if you don’t want to.”
“Don’t be silly. The girls would kill me if I told them to leave. They brought their hymn books with them.”
As Willow went to follow the organist, she saw Vicar Jack come in with a few others wearing clerical collars. She gave him a wave and he smiled back. There were a lot of people in the building, some cleaning, some sightseeing, some sitting in pews with their heads down. That strengthened her resolve.
At the organ, she was shown some of the stops that were unique to this instrument. She asked for, and was shown, how to add a trumpet sound to a second keyboard. This organ had four keyboards and a full set of bass pedals. It was almost too much to take in. There was a bunch of sheet music and was told that this was for the service, and she would be shown what to play as they trialled it.
“I’ve never played something with so many sets of keys.”
“It takes years to be able to use the power of this instrument properly. At your age, I’m surprised that you’ve even been invited to play. I’ll just set it up, so you use only the first two rows. Now, young lady, I’ve been told that you’re a pretty good player. Impress me!”
Willow started by playing some Bach church music to warm her fingers, savouring the tones of the pipes. She tapered that off and then played the Seventh movement from the Improvisations from memory, adding some extra that this organ could provide. When she finished, there was a smattering of applause.
“Looks like you brought some fans.”
“It’s some of the school choir. We’re planning a Saint-Saens concert, and there’s one more thing we need to try before we do the service.”
She grinned and hit the keys with the opening part of the final movement, playing it as well as she ever had. When she reached the point that the choir was going to sing, she trusted that they were ready, breathing a sigh of relief as they sung.
“If I had words to make a day for you.”
“I’d sing you a morning golden and new.”
“I would make this day last for all time.”
“Give you a night deep in moonshine.”
She continued with the linking section, thinking that it had sounded good through the PA system, if a little light. When she got to the next place that the choir sung, they had switched the input to three times the number, which made her smile and the organist grin. At the third time, the choir was now six times stronger, and the words thundered around the Cathedral, and she added the trumpet fanfare in the between bits of the third verse. Willow played the final part of what they had planned and then sat back.
The organist slapped her back.
“That was absolutely fantastic. And all from memory!”
There was applause from the body of the Cathedral, and then they started with the service.
“All right, Willow. This service is a lot more complicated than you’re used to. For one thing, being High C of E, it’s similar to a Catholic Mass. You play the accompanying music during his entry and exit, and there will be a tolling bell, tomorrow. The rest of it is pretty much what you usually do. Entry music and exit music, and hymns. Now, if your choir is still miked, this is going to be interesting. I’ll give you a sheet with all the points and the approximate timing when we leave. Now, the hymns. I hear you can play them from memory. This, I want to hear.”
He said a number, and Willow played the intro. She had already seen the numbers on a board in the body of the Cathedral and hoped that the girls were ready. She needn’t have worried, as the sound of the singing came out through the PA. It swelled as the general public found hymn books and joined in. They did the four hymns in full, with the final one sounding, to her, as if the place was full.
When the sound of the last one faded, she stood and the organist hugged her, and spoke in her ear.
“Four-nil, again. They told me about you, but I found it hard to believe. I heard that the Bishop vowed never to pull that trick again. I’ll buy you a soft drink for that!”
They went down to the body of the Cathedral, where a number of people wanted to hug her and tell her how great she was. The man from the BBC shook her hand.
“I was ready to commit as you played that first piece. When you and the choir let loose, that was when I was totally ready to film the concert. With a full orchestra, it will be as good as the Proms.”
When Gina hugged her, she had tears in her eyes.
“It was so wonderful, friend. I could see us below you, in the orchestra, soaking up the atmosphere. It’s going to be mega awesome!”
The organist came over and shook Wendy’s hand.
“Your daughter is almost too good to believe! She will be a star, whatever she does. I’m sure that she could take my seat when I retire, if she wants. I’m already looking forward to being in the audience for the concert. I’ll keep an eye out for other events that the school is doing. I believe that there’s a pop concert coming up, soon.”
Gina giggled.
“Blue One and Blue Two, sir. Blues in the first half, Moody Blues for the second. That’s when you can see Willow and me on keyboards. It’s a bit different from what she just played.”
“I’ll see if I can get a couple of seats. It would be a good night out.”
He then took Willow to one side, arranged a drink for her, and went through the service again to make sure that she played the right thing at the right time. Then he had a list of items that she would have to play at Evensong, which is mainly one hymn after another, and some choral pieces with the Cathedral choir. Her gave her the full list of items that were planned and then said.
“I’m told that the Bishop gave the choirmaster a call after your choir sung. He has called them in to try out those vocal devices with the choral pieces that’s on the list. Can you hang around and play for them?”
The school choir had taken the mics off and Mister Jamieson had been asked to loan them to the Cathedral choir. They were never going to leave if they had a chance to hear semi-professionals singing. Mister Jamieson was thinking that it would be good points to the school if they had introduced the Cathedral to some new technology. Then smiled as he imagined the Bishop in full six voices with a sermon.
“Something tickle your fancy?”
“Hello, Reverend Jack. I just thought of the Bishop using those multipliers.”
“Don’t be too sure that he hasn’t thought of that himself. I was looking carefully as young Miss Rose played those hymns. She never looked once at the sheet music, so it was four-nil to her again.”
“Four-nil? What’s that about?”
“The Bishop took the service at Stoneleigh, last Sunday. He has a habit of calling out the wrong hymn number. I’m told that he did it four times that day, and she was playing the intro as soon as he spoke. He did promise to never do it again. She played for us on Tuesday morning, the first time I’d heard her. She is something that comes along once in a blue moon.”
“We know. She’s the reason we’re planning this concert. She helped Gina blossom, and now Gina will be playing the Grieg as a soloist. The two of them have lifted the orchestra.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 21
The other choir came in and were followed by the choirmaster. Mister Jamieson went to help them get connected up and test the devices, while Willow took Gina up to the organ with her to get ready for the Evensong practise. She started with a short piece of Bach, then played the intro to the first hymn on the list, one that most churchgoers know by heart. There was some singing from below, which heartened her. Every hymn was from memory, while Gina looked on, in awe.
When they got to the first choral piece, she just hoped that the choir was ready, as she played from the sheet music in front of her. The six girls and three boys of the choir was right there, with her, sounding like thirty-six girls and eighteen boys. They worked to the end of the list, and she turned the organ off, and gave it a pat. She, and Gina, went back down to find that the multipliers were staying there for tomorrow, and that they would be given to Willow after Evensong to take back to the school on Monday.
As Wendy and Willow went to their car, the school choir were boarding the coach. Mister Jamieson came over to them.
“Thank you for coming. It has been a very productive day for the school. Not only do we have Willow playing here tomorrow, which will be attended by several teachers. But we also have the permission to finalise the concert to play here, with definite BBC coverage. Not only that, when I told the Bishop that we were working on the ‘Beethoven Ninth’, he insisted that we present it here, in the Cathedral, before Christmas. It will be hard work for the orchestras, with both working on that one, but it will be worth it. I think the Head will be pleased.”
Wendy agreed, then looked at Willow in the car, belted up and with her eyes shut. She saw Maisie and Gina come out and went over to them.
“Are you good for a dinner, out? I’ll check to see if I can get a booking.”
They both said that it would be perfect, so she rang the Miller and Carter, making a booking for five. Then she rang home and spoke to Ashley, to get him to meet them at the restaurant when he can. He told her that everything worked and that he’ll shower and be there.
When Wendy got in her car, Willow didn’t move. She drove, carefully, to the restaurant and parked. Wendy nudged Willow, who opened her eyes.
“Are we home, yet?”
“Not yet. We’re at the steakhouse and your father is going to join us. That was too much of an afternoon to be cooking. Here comes Gina and Maisie. You go with Gina and splash your face. You’ve had about half an hour sleep.”
“Thanks, Mum. I feel better now.”
She got out and Gina came over.
“Gina, dear. Can you help Willow to the ladies room? She just had a short sleep and needs to wake up.”
She locked the car and went over to Maisie, who was locking hers.
“That girl of yours is on automatic until she stops. Then she just falls over the cliff.”
“I know. This afternoon was tiring for me, and I wasn’t playing that organ. She was magnificent, wasn’t she?”
“It was a pleasure, and a privilege, to be there and be part of it. Talk about a performance! There’ll be a couple of hundred others who will be feeling the same as us. The Evensong was really beautiful, I think that Gina will want to be there tomorrow.”
“Both of us will take Willow in and see what happens between the two services.”
They went into the building and were shown to their table. They ordered wine for themselves and soft drink for the girls. They sipped their wine and relaxed.
“I never thought that I would be in the Cathedral and seeing my daughter, up next to Willow as she played the organ, with nobody telling her to come down.”
“It’s a strange thing, all round. If the Reverend Russell didn’t know the Bishop when they were new clergymen, he wouldn’t have been in the church last week. Life really is a line of skittles. Knock one against another and you start a chain of events. Here come the girls. Sit yourselves down girls, soft drinks are on their way.”
“Thanks, Mum. I feel better, now. It looks like I go until I stop, and when I stop, I fade. Like that first concert.”
“You’re getting longer before you fade, dear.”
“I was told that I should start seeing a fitness coach, if I want to withstand long performances.”
“I think that’s a good idea. Are there any in the Village, Maisie?”
“There’s a woman who works with older folks, in the village social club on Thursday evenings. She might be able to set something up for the girls. I think that Gina will need something like that, as well.”
They sat, sipping their drinks and talking about that afternoon, until Ashley joined them. Then, they ordered their meals, making sure that Willow had plenty to eat. It was around seven when they left, taking the three cars. Wendy followed Ashley home. Willow said that she was going straight to bed, via the bathroom, and they kissed her goodnight. Willow was in bed and thinking about her afternoon, while cuddling her two companions. The last thing she wondered was why anyone would need four keyboards.
When she woke up, the thought came back to her. Overnight, her brain had worked it out. Set one up to be in a different key, and the other two can be different musical instruments, like the trumpet fanfare she had played. That answered, she was full of beans as she got out of bed, went to the toilet and put a robe on to have breakfast. She was the first in the kitchen so found the makings of a cooked breakfast.
The smell of cooking sausages woke Wendy and Ashley, who came down to sit at the table as Willow made their meal. When they were all served, they sat and ate, with Ashley putting bread in the toaster for them.
“Is the eye in the sky, working, Dad?”
“It certainly is my girl. Here, look at these.”
He got his phone, and worked a couple of buttons, bringing up the scene down the road from the front of the house. As they watched, it shifted to one side, then the back, then the other side, and then to the porch.
“The program is set to stay on one camera if there’s movement. You can alter the timing between switching. I set it to ten seconds. There’s an override if there’s movement from a camera not in operation. I can see what’s happening from my office. There aren’t any lights on the cameras, so an intruder won’t know of it’s on. They even work in low light.”
He called up the front one, and fast forwarded until he saw movement. The time was around one in the morning, and a neighbour’s cat used their gatepost as a scratching post, then squatted in the flower bed.
“That’s wonderful, Dad. We just caught a feline vandal who then took a dump on last summer’s peonies. We really are in the current century.”
“It just shows how good the system is. We may be thankful we have it, one day. I hope it’s never needed, but it’s good to know it’s there.”
“You’re right, Dad. Thank you for installing them. I’m just making fun because I’m nervous about today.”
“You mother told me how much work you put in yesterday. I’m sure that it will all be great. Anyone know what we’re doing between twelve and four?”
“No idea, honey. If nothing else, we can always go into the shops to get something to eat.”
“Plus, a little retail therapy, perhaps?”
“That ability comes with the extra chromosome, love. It’s not something that you’ll understand, unless it was hardware, software, or sporting memorabilia.”
“Don’t forget gardening tools, my love.”
“How could I ever forget your tool, my darling. Now eat up, we need to be at the Cathedral before ten, so that Willow can be sat on her organ stool.”
When they arrived and went in, the Cathedral was bathed in muted lights, with the wall panels up floodlit. An attendant led them to reserved seats, and then took Willow up to the organ.
“The order of service is there, with the hymn numbers. What you did, yesterday, is all you need to recreate. If you look, there are three mirrors. The centre one shows you what’s going on behind you, the left shows the door where the Bishop arrives and the altar, and the right one shows the body of the church. Now, if you turn that small screen on, it will show you the view of the centre aisle and the altar, from the far end.
She turned the organ on and sat for a few moments before starting her performance. She started playing Bach and the attendant pointed to a glass of water beside the organ, and then left her. She was playing something she had played in Stoneleigh, and she settled down, while watching all the mirrors and the screen to see what was happening. Just before ten-thirty, the Cathedral was almost full.
In the left mirror, she saw the Bishop enter in full robes, with the Dean in front, carrying a big cross. There were wardens behind them. Willow tapered the music off as he arrived at the altar. There wasn’t a high pulpit, just a raised lectern with a microphone. Everything happened as it should, with him calling out the hymn numbers correctly. His sermon was, Willow thought, a little long. There were two guests who gave readings. One, to Willow’s surprise, was the Head of Blue Coat, and the other was a well-known actor.
An hour and a quarter after the Bishop had entered, he turned to leave, with Willow taking that as the sign to start the exit music. To her total surprise, he suddenly stopped, looked up at her and raised his palm. She stopped playing. He went back to the lectern, with murmurs coming from the congregation.
“Brethren, today, our organ wasn’t played by our usual organist. Today we have heard one of the most talented thirteen-year-olds in this city. Sorry about this, Willow, but I just have to give you our thanks for your playing. Brethren, please applaud Willow Rose, one of the organists at St. Marys in Stoneleigh.”
There was applause and a few cheers. When it died down, he looked up at her.
“Now you can play me out, Willow.”
She grinned and restarted the exit music as he left the Cathedral. The attendant came back to her before the Cathedral had emptied.
“You can stop now, Miss Rose. A lot of people remain to take private prayers, or to just look at the building.”
She tapered the music off and turned the organ off. When she stood, she made sure that her white outfit still looked good and smoothed her skirt. She followed the attendant, and he took her to the door that the Bishop had gone through. She found herself in a large, circular room with a huge window. The Bishop was there, with slightly less robes on, and came to take her hand.
“Welcome to Chapter House. This is a little gathering of people who want to congratulate you. I’m sorry I interrupted the flow, back there, but I just had to acknowledge the playing. Most of the regulars would have glanced up and thought that our usual organist had taken to wearing a white shirt without a jacket, it was so close to normal.”
She was spoken to by the Dean, the School Head, the actor, and several members of the city council. Then, her parents were ushered in. As they went to give her a hug, she excused herself and spoke to the attendant.
“Can you show me where the toilets are, that glass of water is making itself known.”
He grinned and showed her a door with a very small female figure on. She went in and relieved the pressure. She washed her hands and reworked her lipstick before going back to give her parents a hug.
“Sorry about that. They had a glass of water next to the organ and it worked quickly.”
“That’s all right, my daughter. You were fantastic. I bet you wanted to disappear when the Bishop pointed you out.”
“It was a surprise, but he just told me that he couldn’t help himself. The Head is here, if you want to meet her.”
She took her parents to where the Head was talking to the man from the BBC. He saw her come over.
“Willow Rose, that was a tour de force of church organ. I was just telling your Head that we will be coming along to the rehearsal at the school, the rehearsal here, and the actual performance of the Saint-Seans concert. I just surprised her by saying we will also film the Beethoven concert.”
“Yes, Miss Rose. What do you know about that?”
“Mister Jamieson is the one to ask, Miss. He was talking to the Bishop yesterday and mentioned that we were rehearsing the ‘Ninth’. The Bishop insisted that we will be performing the concert before this Christmas. I didn’t find out about it until my mother told me over dinner. It’s going to make things tight.”
“Tight! You’re right about that. We’ll have to have that as our outreach for the choir this year. I’ll get the combined orchestras set up in the theatre from this week, and it will be full on with the ‘Ninth’. If we pull it off, it will be amazing, especially if it’s shown on TV during Christmas week. You realise that there’s no keyboard in that opus.”
“I’ll be playing my clarinet, I hope, unless I’m needed in the string section. Gina will be alright; she’s already been told that she’s going to be on a triangle. Oh! By the way. The Bishop has borrowed our voice multipliers for his choir to use in Evensong. I’m to be given them to bring back to the school, tomorrow morning.”
The man smiled.
“Now, they are something else again. The ten girls used them when they did the bit from the organ symphony, with the third verse sounding like sixty voices. It was what confirmed my desire to film your concert. Look, I have to run, I’ll see you at the school to confirm times and dates.”
He left them and the Head was introduced to Willow’s father. Then she spoke to Wendy.
“I gather that you were here with Willow yesterday. Can you tell me what went on?”
“Well, Willow played an organ solo, and then she had some music from the ‘Organ Symphony’ that Mister Jamieson wanted her to play, so he could test the voice multipliers through the PA. Then Willow did the music and hymns for this morning service, followed by the hymns and choral pieces for Evensong this afternoon, with the Cathedral choir using the multipliers.”
“He added the words from the Babe film?”
“Yes Miss. It was really beautiful. I think that he may have recorded it on his phone.”
“So, let me get this right. You and two bands are doing a concert in the school in a couple of weeks. Then we’re doing the ‘’Ninth’, here in the Cathedral in the middle of December. After that, we have a Junior Orchestra classical concert, with a Christmas party for the Stoneleigh church thrown in.”
“It’s not that bad, Miss. The band concert is already rehearsed to the point of performance. The Junior Orchestra has rehearsed that concert. All we need to do is perfect the ‘Ninth’, with the combined orchestras and the choir. The Senior Orchestra has already started, with the first movement done, and our orchestras are good enough to pull it off. The party will just take a couple of Saturday afternoons to kick into shape, once we put the band together.”
The Head smiled, then hugged Willow.
“Just keep driving them, young lady. Mister Bamborough has told me that you lift those around you.”
Just then, the Bishop joined them.
“I’ve been thinking. If were doing a Saint-Saens concert. It can’t be complete without ‘Danse Macabre’.”
Willow could hardly suppress a giggle. The Head thought for a moment, then smiled.
“You’re exactly right, Bishop, we will add it to the concert. We do have until May to get it rehearsed.”
The Bishop nodded and left them. The Head looked at Willow and her parents.
“That man!”
Then she giggled.
“Whatever happens, it’s going to be memorable few weeks.”
After that, there was about ten more minutes before attendants came in to take the Roses, and selected others, to St. Michaels House, now used for various administrative projects, but still retaining its grand dining room, now set up for lunch. The diners included the Bishop, several of his staff, the Head, some of the City Council, and the Roses.
It was a pleasant meal, with much chatter and the Bishop announcing that there will be a performance of the ‘Beethoven Ninth’, performed by the Blue Coat School. Willow saw the Head trying hard to keep a smile on her face. She started to think about this as a dream sequence, but then brought herself back to reality. This was real, this was happening, she really was sitting at a dining table with the Bishop, the Head and city managers, next to her parents. If this was what fame brought, she would just have to get used to it.
The meal was a protracted one, finishing in time to freshen up, have a look around the Cathedral, meet Gina and Maisie as they came in, and then go up to the organ for her second performance. She started playing random Bach melodies until the choir master joined her to check the Evensong order.
“I’ll stay with you until we start, then I’ll go down with the choir. Do everything as you did it yesterday and we can’t go wrong.”
She restarted the Bach as they waited. He told her that it was five minutes to go, and set a timer on the organ, next to a glass of water. She worked the Bach so that it finished with five seconds to go, and, at the stroke of four ‘o’clock, she started playing the first hymn. There was almost a full house, and they were there to sing their praises. All the hymns were in the same vein, with the choir leading the singing, and the choral parts also singable by the masses. It sounded so beautiful that it made Willow get teary. She had to grab a tissue out of her bag between hymns. It was timed to end at five, and her watch showed two minutes past as she sat back. She drank the remaining water, turned the organ off and went down to join her parents and friends.
There were a lot of friends to greet her when she reached floor level. Her parents, Gina and Maisie, the Head, several teachers, the school choir, Reverend Jack and some of his colleagues, the Russells, and even some of the ladies from church were there to hear their organist play for the masses. Everyone wanted to hug and kiss, and it took an effort of will, putting a halt to the congratulations so she could go to the toilet that she had been shown, earlier.
When she returned, she felt a lot better, and accepted the adulation with grace and humility. The choir master came to them with the box of voice multipliers, leads and mics. When they finally left the Cathedral, her father drove to the steakhouse again, with Maisie following. They sat to have a meal, with Willow glad to be in some quiet. That night, she hung the white suit on a hanger and didn’t take long before she had cleansed and fallen asleep.
On Monday morning, they transferred the box of electronics to Wendy’s car. At school, Willow took it into the admin office for giving back to Mister Jamieson. It was an odd morning, for her, still coming down from Sunday’s excitement. At lunchtime, her table had visits from the choir singers, all very happy with how things worked out.
Tuesday morning was a joyful chapel service, with Gina at the organ, for the first time. The rehearsal room had a notice to go to the theatre. There, they found enough seats for both orchestras, and the choir. They found seats, realising that they were now oversubscribed. They were joined by both conductors and the Head. The Head called for quiet.
“Today, we start an accelerated rehearsal of the ‘Beethoven Nine’. We will be performing it at the Coventry Cathedral on the second weekend of December. It will be advertised through the website and in the media, with a percentage of sales going to the Cathedral outreach, and the rest to our own outreach. The choir tried the voice multipliers in the Cathedral on Saturday, with their own choir using them during Evensong yesterday afternoon. I was there and they really lifted the sound.”
She stopped and looked at a piece of paper.
“The Saint-Saens concert is a definite performance. It will happen in the middle of May. That will give us the half-year break to make sure it’s perfect, and to get set up in the Cathedral. That one will have us visited by the BBC for the rehearsals here, and at the Cathedral. The concert will be filmed, and it could be a live broadcast, depending on the first time we play it to the Beeb. Now, both Cathedral concerts may be Friday and Saturdays, so you will need to stay committed.”
She took a long look around the sitting musicians.
“You will see that we have more here than we need. Seeing that the ‘Ninth’ is so close to Christmas, anyone who has other things to do can put their hands up now and leave. No ramifications. Others may be nominated as spares, to make sure that we can fulfil our agreement.”
A half a dozen players put their hands up and they waited as instruments were picked up and taken out of the room.
“Right. Everyone here will rehearse the ‘Ninth’. That is our total project for the orchestra. The concert will be considered this year’s outreach for the choir, any carol singing needs to consider the main event. We will get together tomorrow, and next Tuesday. Wednesday will be set for the pop groups to finalise the concert in this theatre, with the stage set for that concert. I can tell you that it will be over the Friday and Saturday with the number of bookings. There will be a Christmas Party in the Community Club in Stoneleigh Village, on the third weekend of December, with proceeds going to St. Marys church to refurbish the roof. That one needs a dance band and I believe that there are already volunteers for that. Rehearsal for the party will be the Wednesdays after the pop concert, until it’s perfect. We will repeat the dance music for the students, here, in the last week of school, after the exams. Next year, we will concentrate on the Cathedral concert until May. The Junior Orchestra concert for this term will be postponed until the end of next term. Any questions?”
There was silence as they took it all in. Willow thought that hard decisions had been made to ensure that everything happened as it should. The Head left them to it, and Mister Bamborough went around the group, nominating those who will be the first team, and those who would be the second team. On the rostrum, he said that they would run through each movement with everyone playing so they all get the idea, then the first team would be needed to attend tomorrow.
That all decided, and with half of the orchestra already good with the first movement, they played the whole piece, with the choir singing in the fourth movement. Willow thought that it was pretty good for the first time, if a bit overloaded in some departments. They stayed a little late to play it again, with just the first team. Willow decided that they were now much better.
Wednesday was just the first team, and they did it twice. After they had finished, Mister Jamieson came over to Willow as she was putting her clarinet away.
“Willow, I’m sorry to tell you, but something has come up.”
She looked at him, waiting for something bad.
“The Bishop has had a brilliant idea. He thought that because we’re doing Beethoven, and because of his high regard of your playing, he has suggested that you play the ‘Toccata and Fugue’ as an opening piece.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 22
Willow couldn’t help herself. She just had to laugh.
“I’ll say the same thing that the Head said when he suggested we add ‘Danse Macabre’ in May. That man!!! He’s not a person one would tell that he’s wrong, so we’ll just have to go with the flow. It will be a powerful concert, though. I’ll have to go to the Cathedral to rehearse before the show. I could perfect it here on our organ, but there are more options on theirs.”
“That will be all right. I think that he just likes hearing you play.”
“What if I said that I couldn’t do it?”
“Too late. It’s already up on the two websites. Dates, times and prices. It will be released to the media tomorrow, and the Head has arranged for you to miss a class if they want to interview you.”
Gina came over as he left.
“What was that about?”
“Oh, just a slight variation of the show. The Bishop has decided that I’m playing the Bach ‘Toccata’ before the Beethoven ‘Ninth’, I think that he was miffed that his organ didn’t star in the main event.”
“That will be fantastic. How are you going to work it?”
“Rehearse on the chapel organ with Reg Edwards, then have a session on the big one before the show. I suppose that the teachers have already written up the dates. Anyway, we’ll get some time to sort out the pop concert and the party. Hold on, I’ve got an idea.”
She went over to where the teachers were talking.
“Excuse me, but can I make a suggestion?”
“Certainly, Willow. What is it.”
“Why can’t we put one of the second team clarinet players in my seat, and I just concentrate on the organ. That means, if Mister Edwards will stay late, I can work on my opening in the chapel, instead of having to make extra time.”
“Excellent idea. I’ll talk to him in the morning and let you know at lunch. Are you sure that you want to give up the chance of being part of the orchestra for the ‘Ninth’?”
“I am part of the orchestra, sir. I just played it twice. It’s not as if I’m unreplaceable.”
“We’ll let you know tomorrow.”
Willow went and picked up her clarinet and the two girls followed the others out of the theatre. She had Geoff’s number on her phone and called him to say that the band would be rehearsing the next week. On the way home, they discussed the way that their final month of the term had been arranged, with Gina mentioning that there would be exams as well.
Wednesday, at lunch, Miss Russell came to their table and told Willow that her idea would be followed, and for her to go to the chapel after the last lesson. When she arrived there, she found Reg Edwards at the organ, playing some Bach. She put her bag down and he stopped playing.
“Willow Rose, church organist to the stars! We have a lot to show you, things that you need to know to make your ‘Toccata’ sparkle. Come and sit down and we will start.”
He got off the seat and she went and sat at the keyboard.
“I want you to play the piece but stop when I tap you on the shoulder. I’ll then show you a stop or a setting that enhances the music. Firstly, we will go through the process of setting the second set of keys to another octave and talking through the whole composition to discover when it’s better. Although you can now play it on one keyboard, two is better.”
For some time, Willow ‘spoke’ the composition, note by note, and he showed her where she could make changes. It was her first time in really pulling apart some music and tracing the bones underneath. When she did play, it was a much better sound, and easier as well. Instead of having to move her hands further along the keys, she could just play the other set. When she ended the ‘Fugue’, she looked at Reg.
“So, everyone has been telling me how good I am, yet I was sounding like a beginner.”
“Just the opposite, Willow. You have been playing the organ like a piano, and that is hard to do. What we have worked on will let you have the room to add things of your own as you play. You’ve seen the number of stops and the four keyboards in the Cathedral. Now, you’ll have time to experiment, if you get the chance.”
She played the ‘Toccata and Fugue’ again, now able to sit more upright without any difference to the music.
“You realise that I should have bought a waterfall keyboard for home use.”
“Your Yamaha has an input for a second keyboard. It doesn’t cost a lot because all you get are the keys. The alterations are made with the original controls. All you need as an extra is a different stand.”
“What about the four keyboards at the Cathedral?”
“I’ll come with you and show you tricks with those. We’ll organise a visit before you have a proper rehearsal with the orchestra there.”
At the end of the session, she went and joined Gina to go and wait for Maisie. They compared notes as they waited. When she was home, she turned on her computer and researched plug-in keyboards and different stands.
That weekend, it was her turn at the church, now knowing a lot more than before. The hymn playing didn’t sound any different but was less work. The arrival and departure music had an extra feeling, though. She spent a lot of her weekend researching dance music and creating a file of numbers for the party at the club. She spoke to Malcolm, and they agreed that the party would replace the sing-along in December.
That weekend also saw a change at home. A truck arrived on Saturday morning with dismantled crates on, and her father spent the weekend re-assembling them into a rudimentary shed, then covered it with a tarpaulin. Now they had somewhere to put all the items from the spare room and an invitation was extended to Wendy’s parents.
Wendy went off to a furniture store and arranged for a bedroom suite to be delivered the following Saturday morning. She also went on-line and ordered two tickets for the Friday pop concert, and four for the Saturday, when her parents would be with them. She also ordered four tickets for the Cathedral concert. She knew that her parents would be happy to sight-see during the week. They had been invited to stay until the New Year, and she started to stock up with packets and tins to see them through.
The following week was busy for Willow and Gina. On Tuesday Willow played the organ in the morning service, now using both keyboards. Gina had the rehearsal with the orchestra in the afternoon, while Reg Edwards took Willow into Coventry City and the Cathedral. There, she was given better understanding of the organ and played the ‘Toccata and Fugue’ twice, before being taken back to the school in time to be picked up with Gina.
Wednesday, when they went to the theatre, the orchestra set-up had been removed, and the stage now had the amplifiers, drums, and two Yamahas on stage. There were lads putting the seating back in place, without any space for dancing.
“Looks as if we have a full house, Friday.”
“Actually, Geoff, we have a full house on Saturday as well. Miss Russell told me, at lunch, that they could have started a third show.”
“Is that right, Gina? So, we’ll be playing the show to three thousand over the two shows, that’s insane!”
The five boys got up on the stage, while the others sat in the body of the hall. Willow went and sat at a mixing desk to monitor the sound levels, with Mister Jamieson manning the slides.
The first half of the show was as good as ever, then they swapped over, with Brent and his friends taking their place, while Alec stood with his flute and the girls took their places at the keyboards. Willow saw that the one that she was to use now had a plug-in second tier. She experimented with the switching and then declared herself ready and playing her intro to ‘Dawn’.
They had the voice multipliers, and the sound was better than they had been able to produce in the confines of the rehearsal room. As she played, she could see several teachers, not wanting to go home, standing with the Head. They worked through the set, and she saw Maisie come in to listen. She smiled as she saw them all swaying as they played ‘Nights’.
When they finished, they turned off the equipment and made ready to go home. Reg was still there and spoke to Willow.
“What did you think of the addition?”
“It was great, was it new?”
“The Head approved it Monday. I think that she wants you to get totally immersed in being a concert organist, considering what you’ll be doing in a weeks’ time. It was a drop in the ocean, considering what this show is going to make for the school. She said that there will be another thousand copies of the CD, and five hundred of the DVD, for sale at the show. I believe that the Cathedral has sold half the tickets for the Friday and is close to being sold out for Saturday. A little bird told me that the BBC will be recording both nights for the classic music station.”
“That’s ---- amazing?”
“That’s the power of a renowned venue and an interesting pre-Christmas offering. If he’s anything, the Bishop is a canny showman.”
On Thursday, the classes were more revision than teaching, with the exams coming up in a week. The girls needed to concentrate on the academic side of schooling, for a change. Friday was the last music lesson for the year, and they watched the video of the first half of the show, then discussed how songs of pain had become entertainment. Wendy took the girls home, where they had quick meals, and changed for their show. The outfits were to be the same as the previous show, the blue dresses, with the boys in black slacks and blue shirts.
The Roses picked up Maisie and Gina in the company car to go back to the school. When they arrived, it was busy. They parked and the adults went through the ticketed entry, while Gina and Willow went backstage, to find the rest of both bands tuning up together. While they waited, Willow sat with Alec.
“Are your parents coming to see you?”
“Dad’s here tonight, and Mum’s bringing me tomorrow, if he deems the show worthy of her attention.”
“That’s harsh.”
“It’s better than I expected. I thought that they may just refuse to let me be here.”
A stagehand popped his head in and said it was five minutes to the start. Blue Two stood in line to give Blue One hi-fives as they left to set up. Alec and Willow followed, with Brent and Gina behind them, to stand in the wings and see the sort of audience they would have. Tonight, the Head did the honours of welcoming everyone and introduce ‘Blue One, and a set of Blues music!’ The two couples looked out through the curtains, to see a full house, with a lot of their schoolfriends with their parents. Zara was in the front row and smiling at Geoff as he played. Jim had become fluid on the keyboard. Willow glanced over at Gina, to see her standing with Brent behind her, hands on her hips and his head on her hair. She smiled and then felt Alec copy the action. She leaned back into him and relived their times together.
As the set neared its end, the two couples went back to the room and interrupted the guys’ discussion on whether United or City were the better team. When the others had played the encore, the curtains were closed and they came down, put their instruments in the cases, then left to mingle. They all had seats saved for them for the second half.
Blue Two went up to the stage to make sure everything was ready to go, then stood around with bottles of water while they waited for the audience to return. The only ones with any nerves were the three who had never played in public before. The other four soothed them, saying that it would be exactly the same as Wednesday afternoon.
They were in their places, and ready to go, when the Head came back on stage to introduce ‘Blue Two, to play songs of the Moody Blues. No-one, in this group, is yet fourteen, and exude so much talent. I give you Blue Two!’
As the curtains opened, Willow played the first notes of ‘Dawn’, and all their worries and fears evaporated as they saw a full house of expectant faces, waiting to be entertained. When they got to ‘Nights’, they had entranced the audience, who were swaying in their seats. The section with the flute and bass, near the end, was played to a crowd collectively holding their breath. As the final chord played the place erupted. They took the bows and then the Head came back on stage and beckoned for quiet.
“I do have an announcement to make. We still have a few CDs and DVDs to sell. Now, there are members of this band who will be appearing in a concert, next week, at the Cathedral. It will be a little different, with one of tonight’s organists playing the Bach ‘Toccata and Fugue’ on their organ, while the rest will be part of the Blue Coat Orchestra and playing the ‘Beethoven Ninth’, the ‘Choral’. It should be a memorable concert. Thank you for coming, and a safe journey home.”
She backed up as the curtains closed and went around to give every member of the band a hug, telling them that she was proud of them. They switched everything off, and the boys put their guitars in their cases. Then they went off to find their rides home, although that took a while as many wanted to talk to them about the show.
When Willow was able to leave, with her parents, she realised that she wasn’t as tired as usual, and kept up her part of the conversation as they drove.
…………………………………..
In a pub, not far from the school, Artie was waxing lyrical about what he and his partner had just seen.
“I tell you, Zac, those kids are a gold mine, treated properly. Both halves of that show was good enough to tour the country!”
He could have saved his breath. Zac was texting a friend of his who booked classical concerts. He was getting tired of ferrying drunk teenage bands around and was certainly not going to try and poach a bunch of thirteen-year-olds, no matter how good they were. He had been talking to his friend about joining him for months. This concert in the Cathedral would be a chance for him to show some class, for a change. He would get tickets, on-line, in the morning.
……………………………………………
On Saturday morning, Willow walked over to the church to check the hymns. The Reverend was there, sweeping, as usual.
“Good morning, young Willow. Smashing show last night, it brought back a lot of memories. I tried to get tickets for tonight, but it was all booked out. I did buy the DVD.”
“You’ll find that a little different. It has Gina on the organ for the blues, and the same band for both halves. We re-organised it since the DVD was shot.”
“Maisie told me, last night, that you’ll be playing here until into January. She’s taking Gina to the South of France for a holiday as soon as school breaks up.”
“That’s right. I have my grandparents staying with us. They’ll arrive this afternoon, hopefully after the bedroom suite is delivered. She will be in the Cathedral for the concert, and in the Club for the party, then off to the sun. I said that I would sit in to give her time to pack.”
“The hymns are on the organ. I’ll just potter around. I did manage to get some tickets for Friday night’s concert. It will be interesting to hear you on the organ.”
“We are all going in, by coach, on Thursday, to set up and do a single rehearsal. We’ve all been excused lessons for the day. It’s mainly revision so we won’t miss much. It’s hard to believe that I’ve only been in that school a term; so much has happened.”
She went up to the organ, started the fans, and played the intro and first verse of the hymns. When she switched off, she went back to the Reverend.
“What have you got planned for Christmas?”
“I’ve got time to advertise a carol session, if you want to play for it. The last Sunday before the Holy period. Then, we can do a big Christmas service, with hymns and carols. I’m in your hands, Willow. Say the word and I’ll fill the yuletide with things to sing about.”
“You have the word, Reverend. I’m not going anywhere.”
She walked home with a smile on her face. In all the hustle and bustle, there was a place of rest and quiet with walking distance. She had the idea that her grandparents will enjoy their stay.
At home, the suite had arrived and had been set up in the spare bedroom. She helped Wendy make up the bed with all new sheets and blankets, then helped Ashley collect up all the plastic and foam packaging to hide in the ‘shed’ until they could get rid of it. Her grandparents arrived after lunch and were settled in, with a lot of hugging and chatter. Willow joined in until she needed to get ready for the show, then went upstairs to shower and dress. When she arrived downstairs, her grandmother saw her earrings and necklace and smiled.
She was picked up by Maisie and Gina, and they went to the steakhouse for a quick meal before going to the school. Gina was excited to be in the second show and was starting to think about her holiday.
At the school, they went backstage and spoke to the others that had arrived. As Blue One was getting ready, Willow went and peeked through the curtain, seeing her parents and grandparents out there. She also saw the Bishop in the front row, with several of his team.
She ducked back down to the room as the Head came out on stage to introduce the first part of the show. She sipped water as they waited, then went up to the stage as the others came down. Tonight, Blue One was going to mingle during the break, and then leave. They had a group hug as the boys left the backstage area, then went up to make sure that their set was ready to go.
A couple of minutes before the start, they were all in position and a lot less stressed than last night. The Head came out on stage and made the introductions and then they were off again, into a Moody World. At the end of the nominal last song, there was calls for an encore, with several of the audience standing for them. Willow spoke.
“Thank you for coming along to hear Blue One and Blue Two tonight. Of course, we can’t end a Moody Blues concert without the best song of all. Feel free to sway all you like, and sing along if you want.”
She started the first notes of ‘Nights’, and they took it easily and smoothly to the end, with the flute and bass section bringing tears to her eyes. This was likely the last time Alec would be in a band with her, unless there was a drastic change. He had stayed diplomatically apart from her, so she thought that his mother was in the audience. When they ended the song, there were cheers and much applause, until the Head came back and announced the concert, next weekend.
After the curtains had closed, they turned everything off and went to mingle with anyone who had stayed. Her parents stood back as her grandmother engulfed her.
“You took me back to my youth, tonight. I felt as if I was watching the band at Yarmouth.”
As they stood there, the Head came over with the Bishop.
“Another tour de force, Willow and Gina. I’m glad that we didn’t have to wait until next year to see this show.”
“I agree, that was the best show of its type that I’ve seen in years. The two keyboards were masterful. You must be Gina, who doubles with Willow at the church.”
“I am, Bishop. Next weekend I’m just a lowly triangle player in the orchestra.”
“Everyone has their place, child, a grain of sand is only small, but many create a lovely beach. Now, introduce me.”
Wendy took over and introduced her parents to the Bishop, telling him that they had tickets to the Cathedral. After a bit of chat, he went off to circulate. The two girls were starting to droop, so they all left the school, Willow between her grandparents in the back seat of the company car.
“So, daughter of mine. When were you going to tell me that you’re of speaking terms with the Bishop of Coventry?”
Wendy laughed.
“It was all too recent to tell you, Mum. We had lunch with him last Sunday. Willow played the organ for the morning service and Evensong. We were at the Cathedral from before ten to nearly six. It was an interesting day. He took the service at our church, the week before. We go regularly, now that Willow is a regular organist there.”
Her mother looked at her granddaughter, who had her head on her shoulder and sleeping, quietly. Life, she thought, produced miracles, sometimes, and it had come up trumps in her grandchild.
Sunday morning, the five of them walked to the church as the bells started.
“This is such a nice village. Almost out of a TV series, without any murders.”
“And no mad clergymen, Mum.”
The Reverend was waiting outside and greeted them, being introduced as Willow slipped into the church to start playing. She had slept well, last night, safe in the knowledge that the shows had been a hit. Today was her time to relax and unwind. She watched the mirror as people arrived, grinning as she saw Christopher and Marie come in, to go up to Wendy and Ashley and sit with them in the pew. If her grandparents had been shocked to meet the Bishop, they may have difficulty in meeting a Baron.
The service was all as usual until Reverend Russell was about to leave. He turned to the congregation.
“Good people. It’s late notice, but, as you know, next Saturday week is the Christmas party in the Club. For those of you able to wake up on the Sunday, we will have a later service, followed by an afternoon of carol singing, with Willow leading us on the organ. I’ll post up Christmas service times by then.”
He then turned to leave, and Willow started playing as the bells started. When she went outside, there were still a few chatting, but the cold had driven most away. The Baron and his wife were talking to the Roses and Wendy’s parents. Willow managed to go to Gina.
“How are you, friend?”
“I was tired after the two shows but feel really good now. We did well, didn’t we?”
“We did very well. I expect that the school has made a good profit with two full houses and more discs sold. The next week should be interesting.”
“If it’s anything like last year, it will be exams and some off-time to revise. We will be having the last rehearsal in the theatre on Tuesday, and I believe that we will have a group to knock into shape for the party. At least we should have about four or five hours to get it right. If it doesn’t work, the two of us can hold the fort.”
“I’ve put together a list of numbers. I’ll give it to Mister Bamborough tomorrow morning to see how many the school has the sheet music for. That should give us a solid base for the party. Are you coming to the club this afternoon?”
“Yes. I’ll be in my oldest stuff and will grab a mask from our old COVID supplies. Mum told me that some of the church ladies have been there with brooms, mops, and vacuums, so it should be better.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 23
They hugged, and Willow went over to her parents. The Baron gave her a hug.
“We went to that concert of yours, last night. I got the tickets through the website. Cassie and Terry were with us, and you, young Willow, are the talk of the family. We also managed to get four tickets for Friday at the Cathedral. Cassie said that there was no way she could miss hearing her wedding organist play in the Cathedral. We’ll be popping into the club before we go, to book some seats for the party, which will let us confirm our booking for the reception.”
“That will be good, Chris. Gina and I will be in there this afternoon, pulling the amps out of storage and testing things. We don’t have a set band yet, just a bunch of volunteers. We’ll be rehearsing on Wednesday afternoon, with one more rehearsal before the event. As all of the orchestra are sight-readers, we should get it sounding good.”
When the five of them were walking back to the house, her grandmother spoke up.
“What else are you intending to surprise us with? First, I see my grandchild playing in a rock group, then I find that you’re on speaking terms with a Bishop, and now I discover that you’re considered family by a Baron! And that Willow will be the organist at a society wedding!”
Wendy laughed.
“You forgot your grandchild playing in the Cathedral next weekend. We have the tickets.”
“If you’re in the city on Thursday, Gramma, we’re bringing all the school orchestra stuff there in the morning and setting it up. We’ll be doing a full rehearsal in the afternoon, with it being a sound check for the BBC.”
“What are they there for?”
“I’m told that they will be recording it for transmission later. They’ll be filming us in May, when we play a Saint-Saens concert there. We’ll be doing four numbers, finishing with the ‘Organ Symphony’.”
“You’re telling me that you’re going to be on the box?”
“That’s what I’ve been told. We’re also pencilled in for a spot in the Proms in the summer.”
“You’re telling me that a school orchestra is that good?”
“It’s not just any old school, Gramma. The drama class has performed Shakespeare in Stratford on Avon. You wait until you hear us in full flight. Although you won’t hear my clarinet playing on the weekend. I gave up my seat to concentrate on the organ.”
They went home to have lunch, and then Willow put on old jeans and a tee, with a hoodie and a mask from the COVID supplies, walking to the club. The passage to the back room was open, and she went through, to find it a different place from before. It had been cleaned and polished up. Malcolm had put some tables out and the door to the storeroom was open, showing more tables and chairs. The Baron was helping pull tables out.
“Hello, Willow. This gives us good ideas for the reception. Are you getting more help?”
“Gina’s coming along. All we plan to do is clean the stage are and pull out the amplifiers. Malcolm has microphones that we can test them with. Did you have lunch here?”
“We did, and very good it was too. Marie’s in the kitchen, helping get the unused parts back into working order. We plan to come along to the party.”
Gina joined them and the two of them went up on the stage with a broom each. They swept all the dirt to one side and got a vacuum to suck it up. Then they opened up the storeroom where the equipment was kept. There was a set of PA speakers which they placed, one each side of the stage. Four fifty-watt Marshalls were a revelation. These were put up on the stage and the girls carefully cleaned them before plugging them in. There was a separate PA amp, with modern wireless connectivity. They plugged a microphone in and tried the settings.
They found that they could send the output to the stage speakers, the room system, or both. There was an inbuilt mixer with input for six microphones, and an output mixer to set the speaker volumes. They tried a microphone in every input of the Marshalls and polished everything they could see. While they were doing this, Willow was visualising the band on stage, and moved two of the amps to one side, with the other two on the other side. Gina raised an eyebrow.
“Two guitars over there, wind in the middle with singer out front. The two of us this side with the bass. There’s room for, what, three guitars, drums, two keyboards and up to five others. That lets us choose wisely. We might be able to rotate the other players if we have more than we need, depending on what we’re playing.”
They cleaned the areas where the amps had been stored, and other places around the back of the stage. When they had finished, the switched everything off and helped pull out chairs. When that was completed, with everything cleaned, Malcolm tried all the lights, including a rotating mirror ball with spotlights that changed colours. Marie had joined them and stood looking at the set-up.
“This is wonderful. It’s like going back fifty years but with modern appliances in the kitchen. It’s perfect for the reception. How many seats have you got out, my dear?”
“It looks like two hundred in this format. There are a couple of extra tables if you give up the dancing. That should give you a target for the guest list. Willow, will you and your folks join us for a meal, here. My treat. Your grandparents looked like they had seen a ghost, this morning.”
“That’s understandable, Chris. Yesterday they found out that we were on speaking terms with the Bishop, and today they met you. I think that they thought that we lived in a tiny village, where nothing ever happens, and everyone keeps to themselves. It’s a bit like that where they live, near Cambridge.”
The girls left to go home for a shower and tell the family that a dinner was offered. Wendy and her mother retired to their rooms to get ready, and Willow had to wait for her shower until her grandmother had used the bathroom. Her grandfather was told that a shabby old cardigan was not going to be acceptable for dinner with a Baron. Eventually, they all strolled to the club. Ashley went and spoke to Malcolm for a few minutes, then sat with them.
“Dad. You and Malcolm seem to be having a lot of little discussions?”
“I’m talking to him about the future, my daughter. Malcolm happens to be the Mayor of the Village, or, at least, the Manager. He’s talking to me about putting my name forward to join the Club Committee and the Village Council. With what you’ve been doing, and my link to the original Leighs, he wants me on board. I’ve never been asked to be so involved, before, and would also look very good on my resume, should there be higher jobs coming up at work.”
They had a good meal, with a lot of chat. Willow was cajoled into sitting at the piano and led them in a half an hour of singing, before the Baron needed to get going and the family strolled home.
Monday, she took her list to Mister Bamborough.
“Excuse me, sir. I have a list here of typical dance numbers from the last twenty years. Would it be possible to check with your music library to see if you have the sheet music for any. If you don’t, any suggestion for others would be appreciated. The orchestra will be rehearsing Tuesday, and we’ll have our volunteers for the party on Wednesday.”
He took the list, and she went off to her first lesson. This week, it was all revision and non-academic periods, like PE, was set as private study. Tuesday. Willow played in the chapel, using the second row on the organ. Tuesday afternoon, she went along to the orchestra rehearsal, to watch until it was time to be picked up by Maisie. Mister Jamieson saw her come in.
“Willow, just the one I needed. The choir aren’t happy that you aren’t part of the orchestra, so you’ve been added to the singers for the ‘Ninth’. I have a spare songbook for you, there will be a microphone for you. It will be a big group, as the Cathedral singers will be joining us, so, with you, there’ll be twenty, sounding like a hundred and twenty. Leave your bag and go and sit with the others.”
So, Willow was greeted by the other ten girls, and sat until they came to the fourth movement. She thought that the eleven of them made ‘Song of Joy’ pop without being amplified. The thought of her adding her voice, at the performance, sent shivers up her spine.
Wednesday, they had a bunch of sheet music of songs, and an extra ten players with a range of instruments between them. The base of the band was Brent, Herb, Victor, and Roy. They had a trumpet, flute, saxophone, trombone and a violinist. They had the amplifiers and the two keyboards on stage. They didn’t stand around talking and got straight into working with the sheet music. Herb, Victor and Roy did the vocals, along with Willow, and they did well, by getting through half the pile of music with the first two hours. They were all upbeat when they finished. They would have two more sessions the week after, much needed relief from end of term exams.
Thursday, the orchestra were in two coaches, their instruments in a truck, and they were taken to the Cathedral. They were shown the space that they would set up, in front of the altar. It took an hour to put all the chairs out, with the music stands and the music. The choirs would be sitting directly below the Christ in Glory tapestry. As they worked, a group of guys with hi-vis came in and started laying out cable to a whole forest of microphones. They were bunched as they went outside to an OB truck full of recording equipment.
They stopped for lunch, with sandwiches and soft drink supplied by the school canteen, and then took their seats. They had a group of teachers; Miss Russell, Mister Bamborough, Mister Jamieson and Reg Edwards, who followed Willow up to the organ and helped her set it up. He had a two-way and they waited until they got word from the supervisor that the recording van was ready. Willow was looking down in the mirror and saw Mister Jamieson get the same message and gesture to the orchestra to be silent. A BBC man asked the public in the building to please be quiet.
Reg nodded to Willow, and she started playing. Although she had been here and played it before, this time felt different. This time it was almost for real. When the last notes of the ‘Fugue’ died, there was applause from below, as this was the first time the orchestra had heard her on this organ. Reg patted her on the back as she headed down to join the choir. The mic was clipped to her top and the sender to her waist.
A few minutes later, Mister Bamborough tapped his baton and the first strains of the ‘Ninth’ sounded. When they got to the fourth movement, the singers all stood, with their songbooks opened. When they started singing, Willow teared up, as they were all set on maximum voices and the words thundered through the Cathedral. When they finished, there was silence for a few moments before all the public, the Cathedral workers, the BBC technicians and everyone else who was there burst into applause and cheering. The choir all had hugs, with the orchestra with big smiles. They were instructed to leave their instruments and the microphones in the Chapter house, which would be secured until they arrived on Friday.
It was a very happy group that were taken back to the school, confident that they will be successful with their performance. They were given free rein to head home or stay in the school, and Gina and Willow opted to sit in the library until it was time for Wendy to pick them up, catching up on their revision.
When they arrived home, her grandmother gave her a big hug, followed by her grandfather.
“We took your advice and were in the Cathedral, getting there after lunch. We sat in the pews and heard you play the organ. It sent tremors up and down my spine. And then I could have been in the Royal Albert Hall. That singing at the end is so iconic, it made me cry.”
“Don’t worry. Gramma, I was the same and I had been in that choir. I think the guy from the Beeb was happy, I saw him talking to someone on his phone and waving his arms around.”
On Friday, Willow was wearing her blue dress when she went to school. All of the orchestra had their long skirts or blue shirts and black trousers. The choir members all had the same dresses as Willow. They had the lunch and then gathered in the theatre for a last-minute pep talk, then were back in the coaches and heading for the Cathedral. When they got there, they saw a second OB truck with another bundle of leads snaking inside.
They were checked in, with the building now closed to the public. When they entered, they saw the lines of seats with programs on, several cameras set up, and technicians scurrying around. The Dean met them and spoke to the teachers. The whole group were ushered into the Chapter House and Miss Russell got some quiet so she could speak.
“There’s been a change in the broadcast. Your rehearsal, yesterday, was so good that tonight will be filmed for showing during Christmas Eve. Tomorrow evening all the extra stuff will be gone, so we want you all to be on your best behaviour today. No making faces or whispering that could be picked up by the microphones. We want you to be smiling and looking happy to be here. There will be cameras taking in views of the Cathedral and Willow, you have a fixed camera over the keyboard. If you look up, it will capture your face. When we go back out, with the instruments, we will play the first movement so that the cameras and sound can be set. Then we take a break until show time.”
They got themselves organised, all the singers, including Willow, went behind a screen to clip the sender to their panties and the microphone to their dresses. She joined the other singers in a pew as the orchestra sorted itself out. The man from the Beeb made sure his crew was ready and nodded to Mister Bamborough, now wearing tails. They orchestra played the first movement and the man from the Beeb spoke to Miss Russell. She came over to the singers.
“They want us to give them a sound check of the organ and the choir, any ideas?”
“We can do what we did the other Saturday, Miss. I’ll play the snippet from the ‘Organ Symphony’, and the girls can sing the three verses. Do you all remember it?”
There was a chorus of yesses, so Willow went up to the organ, and powered it up. She saw the girls lined up, and one called out the old test – ‘two, two, two. She was given a wave, and started the final part of the organ symphony, concentrating on the music with her new-found skills. When she got to the bit when the singing started, she sung it herself, looking up at the camera above her. When they ended the piece, there was some cheering from the orchestra, being the first time that they had heard it played in the venue. When she went back down, Miss Russell came over to her.
“The man from the Beeb said that the picture of you singing along with the choir was so magical, they want you to do the same in May. He’ll play it back if you want to see it.”
“I didn’t know my mic was on.”
“All the singers are going through the same mix, so you were included. I really didn’t know that you were singing until he just told me, you blended in with the others perfectly.”
They went out to the OB trucks and were invited into the one with the video feed. They were shown what the camera above her had seen, and she had to admit that it was different from any organist she had seen before.
The man from the Beeb told them that this would be a clip used in the advertising of the live feed in May, with the song from Babe being a strong trigger for viewer interest.
As they went back inside, Willow commented.
“Will that make me the face of the school for a few days?”
“You bet it will. I can’t think of a better ambassador of that concert. I expect you to feature on the posters, as well.”
They all relaxed and there was a light meal that the school canteen had packed for them, with sandwiches and salad and a small drink. Before the public admission started, they were all taken into the Chapter House, where the Bishop came in with a natty suit on and blessed the orchestra with prayer for a good concert.
They talked among themselves until a radio call came through that the main doors were closing. They were lined up, with Willow last. The Chapter House door was opened, and the orchestra walked out, in line, to take their seats. There was applause which swelled as Willow went up the stairs to the organ. She made herself comfortable until Mister Bamborough gave her a nod after the audience had settled.
She grinned as she played the first strong notes of the ‘Toccata’. When the last notes of the ‘Fugue’ faded, there was strong applause and she stood, faced the audience and bowed, before going back down to join the choir, with them all smiling.
She sat as the orchestra began the first movement. Relaxed and happy that the first hurdle was over, she listened to the music swirl around her until they stood for the fourth movement. She had the feeling that someone had turned the volume up when they started singing, but then realised that there was almost twice as many singers as there was yesterday. The piece came to an end, and they all waited until the audience started clapping, with many standing in ovation. The entire orchestra we signalled to stand, and they all bowed, with the conductor pointing to individuals, with Willow getting cheers as she was pointed out. Eventually, they left to walk back into the Chapter House. The applause continued and Mister Bamborough asked Willow if she had an encore.
He then led her out and they both bowed. He pointed to the organ, and she went back up, with the audience settling as she sat at the keyboard. She played the ‘Allegro’ from ‘Seven Improvisations’ and there was applause when she finished. She went back down, the two of them bowed, and went into the Chapter House to wait until the building was cleared.
Her parents were waiting in the car when the coach got back to the school, in a full car park. Willow and Gina got in and they went home. Maisie would do the honours on Saturday, as Wendy and Ashley would be back at the Cathedral, with her grandparents, on Saturday evening.
On Saturday, Willow took it easy until Maisie arrived, with Gina, to take her to the school. She had been careful with her dress and make-up, and her grandmother commented on what a beautiful girl she was. She hugged her family and then went out to the car. Maisie dropped them off at the school and then went into the city to do a little shopping before the performance.
Before they left, the Head took Willow aside and asked her that, if she did another encore, to get the entire audience on their feet with God Save the King. The orchestra would go back to their places to receive a standing ovation of their own.
The performance was a repeat of the Friday one, but without all the microphones and cameras. There were the calls for more. Willow was sent back to the organ and did the ‘Seven Allegro’. As she played, the orchestra were quietly led back to their places. When Willow started the National Anthem, the entire place were on their feet and in good voice. When she finished, she waved towards the orchestra, who bowed to their own standing ovation.
When she was dropped off at home, the family were waiting for her. The grandparents beside themselves with joy and loving. When she went to bed, she cuddled Tiger, and told him that he should have been there.
Sunday was lovely, with a quiet time at the church, the Bach helping her to calm the flutters of the big performance. The Russells had been at the concert, and she was hugged and complimented on her playing. The following week was all exams, except for the rehearsal of the dance band. They were now good enough to wing it, should they be asked for anything special. On Friday, they were all allowed to leave after lunch, and Maisie was there to pick them up.
On Saturday, Ashley and her grandfather helped to take the keyboard and stand to the club, then they went to help get Gina’s. The rest of the band arrived during the afternoon, and they had a short rehearsal. After six, the room filled, and the drink flowed. The band were given a meal in the front section, and then went through to start playing. The fact that the audience were ready to have fun was an impetus to the performance, as was the fact that there was a table full of teachers, the Head, and their spouses.
The evening was a roaring success, with the dance band doing everything that had been desired, even managing some extra songs that were requested. Towards the end of the night, it developed into a sing-along, with Willow and Gina leading the way and the rest using every inch of their imagination to follow. At the end of the night, they did ‘Now is the Hour’ and wound up the show. Willow and Gina made a point to give the band members a hug, followed by the Head coming on the stage to add her hugs. There had been a whip-around as the night went on, and Malcolm announced that they had raised over two thousand pounds towards the church roof restorations, with a percentage of the takings to be added to that.
For Willow, it was almost the culmination of the first term. One that had been like no other in her life. On Sunday morning, she helped Gina collect her keyboard, and they hugged. Willow wished her a good holiday as they were heading to the airport that afternoon. Willow had a gift for Gina in her bag, and Gina gave her one in return. When Willow opened hers, she found that they had both chosen the same pendant, with entwined hands on it.
The later service, on Sunday, was a very calming affair, and that was followed, after lunch, with the carols. Willow sang as she played, hearing her mother and grandmother singing. It was a lovely time, which then moved them into Christmas and all the joy and gift giving that it brings.
The following Tuesday, the dance band, without Gina, played again, in the school theatre, to a bunch of teachers and students, and several hundred invited members of various aged people homes. There were tables with nibbles, and plenty of chairs for those needing a rest.
Christmas Eve, the family watched the performance on the television. For Willow, it was strange to see herself and her friends on the screen.
…………………………………………………
In Bristol, Harvey Horton saw the performance and was happy that Billie-Jean had gone on to better things, unlike his son, who was now in a juvenile detention home. He raised his glass to the girl who he now knew was actually called Willow Jean Rose, as shown by the credits that were scrolling on his screen. He went to join his new love, unlikely ever to know the drastic changes that his assumption had made.
…………………………………………………..
Christmas day, it was just Willow and her grandmother who walked to the church, arm in arm with their breath steaming. Willow played to a church full of joyful villagers, singing the carols as she played them. Afterwards, there was a lot of hugging, kissing and love being spread around. Willow was happy that she was fully accepted by the villagers, but more so by her grandmother’s joy at being with her.
Christmas night, Willow was in her bed, in a new nightie and cuddling her bed friends. She wished the two of them a happy Christmas, and dozed off to sleep, wondering what the new year and new term would bring. It couldn’t be any busier than the last one, now, could it?
Marianne Gregory © 2025
End of Book One
Ending of Book One
Christmas day, it was just Willow and her grandmother who walked to the church, arm in arm with their breath steaming. Willow played to a church full of joyful villagers, singing the carols as she played them. Afterwards, there was a lot of hugging, kissing and love being spread around. Willow was happy that she was fully accepted by the villagers, but more so by her grandmother’s joy at being with her.
Christmas night, Willow was in her bed, in a new nightie and cuddling her bed friends. She wished the two of them a happy Christmas, and dozed off to sleep, wondering what the new year and new term would bring. It couldn’t be any busier than the last one, now, could it?
Chapter 1
Willow Jean Rose had a quiet week between Christmas and New Year. She played her violin and clarinet for her grandparents, happy that they loved her as much as her own parents did. The showing of the concert on Christmas Eve had resulted in a lot of messages on her phone. The only downer of the period was the rather cheap Christmas card from her father’s family which had greetings ‘To you and your family’.
They had all eaten too much, and she took her grandmother on walks along her favourite paths to get exercise. Sundays in church were now going to be a regular thing and the notice board now had Willow Rose and Gina Summer sign written as the church organists. She had received a postcard from Gina, showing a sunny beach with bikini clad beauties playing volleyball. With ‘Wish you were here’ as part of the message.
With New Years Eve being in the week, the club manager had reacted quickly to the rousing success of the Christmas Party. He had contacted a friend who was a DJ to host a New Year’s Eve party and had letter-dropped the village. Willow and her family went along, all in party dress, and joined in with the festivities. Malcolm had supplied a lot of party food, and nobody went hungry.
Willow was nibbling a cheese stick when a boy, about her age, asked her if she wanted to dance. She smiled and he led her out next to the stage where several couples were dancing.
They were gyrating slowly, and he told her that his name was Jacob.
“I know. You’re at the Blue Coat, and in some of the classes I’m in.”
“You noticed me?”
“Of course, I look at everyone and recognise faces. It’s names I have a problem with. You sit next to Roy, who played in our band.”
“Wow! I’m flattered that the Wonderful Willow knows so much.”
“Wonderful Willow?”
“That’s what some of the guys and the girls call you. It fits, doesn’t it?”
She touched a finger to her thumb, on both hands, and brought them up to her face, like spectacles.
“So, should I get a mask, a cape, and a plastic outfit with ‘WW’ on the front?”
Jacob laughed.
“That would be silly.”
“About as silly as calling me Wonderful Willow. I’m just a normal person in a good school and trying hard to get enough results to go to university.”
“How many normal people get to be featured in a Christmas Eve broadcast?”
“Well, there were about forty of us from the school. Just about everyone was shown as they were playing. OK, so I played the organ as a soloist. Next time, it may be Gina playing the piano, or Zara on her cello. None of us are trying to stand out; we’re just trying to be the best player of our instruments that we can be. You have no idea how much I was taught in the week before we did that concert, and how many hours we all put in. I haven’t seen you in the orchestra rehearsals, do you play anything? If you know Roy, there must be some guitar in your life.”
He grinned and looked her in the eyes.
“Willow, there I was, thinking that you could be an ice queen, yet you’re nothing like the person that the rabble think you are. Yes, I do play guitar, and Roy and I had the same teacher a few years ago. I play at home, because I’m afraid that I would be laughed at. I play classics and folk songs, mainly, but do stray into modern pop. I was at both the pop concerts you played in, and I enjoyed them, but they were far too loud for me.”
“Do you live nearby? I haven’t seen you in the club before?”
“We have a farm, between the Village and the main motorway to the city. My parents have to look after the farm, so we don’t get out much.”
“Gina and I do a sing-along, here. It’s once a month at the moment, with the next one being towards the end of January. Why don’t you get someone to bring you and your guitar and see if you like playing. The crowd is very forgiving, they even clapped when I sang three songs that I had written, which, when I come to think about it, were sort of Joan Baez.”
He was quiet for a few moments as they continued to dance. Then he smiled.
“Look, my parents are here, on a night out that is the first in a long time. When I mentioned that I knew you, while we were watching the broadcast, they didn’t believe me. Can I introduce you to them?”
“Sure, Jacob. Why not.”
They left the dance floor, and he took her to a table where a couple were sitting, smiles on their faces. To Willow, they looked too old to be his parents, but that could be their long days in the fields.
“Mum, Dad. This Is Willow Rose. She was the organist in that TV show. Willow, these are my parents, Rosalie and Wilhelm Epstein.”
“Hello, Rosalie and Wilhelm. I’m glad to see you here, tonight. I was just telling Jacob that we have a sing-along here once a month. It’s very friendly and a lot of fun. I’ve asked him if he could bring his guitar along and sing for us.”
“You would let our boy sing, here, in public?”
“Of course. My friend Gina, and I, play piano and organ. We started out just singing drinking songs, but the last time we sang a number of singable modern pop songs. I believe that this room will get a lot more use, now that it’s been cleaned up after years of being closed. We had a dance band from the school here for a Christmas party. Roy, Victor, Herbie, and Brent were in it. I’m sure that there will be something said when we start next term.”
“Does it finish late? We need to be up early to see to the stock.”
“We do the drinking songs until about ten but get the other songs in during the seven to eight period, so Jacob could be taken home then.”
“You’re a very pleasant girl, for a TV star.”
“No star here, Mrs. Epstein. Just another player in the school orchestra. I also play the organ in the church across the road.”
“We’re not that religious, Willow. Our families escaped Germany before the war. They were orthodox Jews, but the faith has left the family with subsequent generations.”
“My own family aren’t committed Christians, but we do find it soothing to sing the hymns. I like being up with the organ, so I can listen without someone watching to see if my lips are moving.”
His mother looked at Willow hard, and then laughed.
“You are so much different to the woman who played that organ. I can’t believe that you are so open. What about the Blue Coat? It is, after all, a church school.”
“You know that they accept all that are prepared to do the work, and to be good students. If they didn’t accept me, would they accept Jacob from a Jewish background? My mother wrote that we were C of E in the application and hadn’t stepped inside a church since her marriage. Yet, here we are, Jacob and me in some of the same classes.”
“Are you sure that you’re thirteen?”
“Mister Epstein, you are not the first to ask that question. I have been able to become a person who can perform in public because of the school. It gives me strength beyond my years. If I was allowed to bet, I’d give you twenty to one that you might see Jacob on TV next year. There’s one thing we don’t have in the orchestra, and that’s a good player of acoustic guitar, in the classical style.”
“How could he join?”
“All he needs to do is impress Mister Bamborough with his skills. He’s the one who leads the guitar group, but so far, the only ones from that group that I’ve heard want to play electric pop. The Junior Orchestra meet on Tuesday, after school. If Jacob comes along, he can ask to join. At the moment, we’ll be rehearsing a group of Saint-Saens compositions for another concert at the Cathedral in May, but there will be end of term shows where he can shine.”
“We will talk about it when we get home. Now, you young ones, it’s not long to midnight, so you had better be dancing.”
They went back to the dance floor, just as the DJ started playing slow numbers. Jacob put one arm around Willow, and she put her hand on his shoulder, with their other hands entwined. Willow was reminded of dancing with Alec. This partner wasn’t Alec, but was handsome in a way, with curly hair, a nice smile, and danced well. When it came to the countdown, there was a big screen set up on the stage, and they watched as the hands hit midnight and Big Ben started chiming. It wasn’t hard for Jacob to kiss her, and she didn’t find it hard to reciprocate.
“Happy New Year, Willow.”
“Happy New Year, Jacob. May it bring all the things we wish for.”
“It already has, Willow. It already has.”
The party didn’t last much longer. Jacob squeezed her hand as his parents came to collect him, and she walked home with her parents and grandparents. As she was ready to sleep, she contemplated on how much different this New Year was. It was the fact that it was the first time she had been out at a party for one thing. The year had to be good. It had started with a kiss.
Her grandparents were leaving on the next day, so it was a mixture of joy that they had been with them, and sadness that they were going. After breakfast, they loaded up their car, everyone hugged and kissed, and then they were gone. To Willow, the house now seemed a little empty. She had really bonded with her grandmother in a way that had been impossible before. Her grandfather treated her like a grandchild, but didn’t have a lot in common with her, so conversation was on general subjects, but genial. She had the nagging feeling that he was holding something back, which she wondered could be female intuition that had been injected along with the other hormones.
…………………………………………
The women were tidying up the spare bedroom when the doorbell rang. Ashley answered it to find a policeman on the doorstep.
‘I’m sorry to bother you on New Years day, sir, but your neighbours at the end of the road were robbed while they were at a party in the local club last night. Did you see anything unusual during the evening?”
“We were at the same party until nearly one, officer. If it’s any help, I do have cameras.”
“You would be one of the few in the village, then. Can I come in and look at the recording?”
Ashley led him into his office, where he turned the computer on and called up the camera at the front of the house, taking the vision backwards until it showed something, then back further until they could see a van enter the road, turn around and park outside a house. Two men got out and went inside, with them coming out several times to put things in the van. They came out and got in to drive away. The policeman asked Ashley to reverse the scene again, and then got him to stop the vision and print the picture at several stages of the robbery. The last was when the van left. When it had arrived, the lights had been out, but as it pulled away, the driver had put the lights on, fully illuminating the rear number plate. The policeman took the pictures and gave Ashley an email address to send the original file to.
It was Saturday afternoon when the doorbell rang, and the neighbours were standing there with a bottle of wine which they gave to Ashley.
“This is to thank you for having that camera. When we saw you put it up, we wondered about your sanity, but you really helped us get most of our property back. The robbers were our son and a friend of his who was the van owner. Our son has been away from home for a while and had got in with some bad people. He had offered our things as payment of his drug debt.”
“We’re glad we could help. We put up the cameras because someone had threatened our daughter.”
“Willow the wonderful organist! She has brought so much pleasure to the village. How could anybody want to harm her?”
“It was someone from her school, not the village. Thank you for the wine.”
They left and Ashley watched them walk back to their house. The wine didn’t put a dent in the cost of the security system, but it had paid for itself in good deeds.
………………………………………….
Gina was home Sunday morning and met Willow outside the church after the service. She was tanned and looked very healthy. They sat on the bench for a little while, catching up on what each of them had been doing, until Willow’s phone beeped that there was a message. She looked at it and giggled.
“It says, ‘bring blue dress, you’re playing for assembly’ and is signed from Miss Russell.”
“Oh, joy. School starts in the morning. I wonder what days we will need to stay back for the orchestra. Home five minutes and the holiday seem like it was last year.”
“But it was last year!”
Willow went home to make sure the dress was still suitable to wear on the stage. She was going to have to get her mother to take it into a dry cleaners. Her school uniform was all ready to go, including a new sweater that her grandmother had bought her for Christmas. Among her presents had been a diary, which she opened and pencilled all the things that were likely to happen in the coming year.
Monday morning, they picked up Gina and headed for the school, the dress in a bag and hanging on the handrail. At the school, they both headed for the big lockers and Willow changed into the dress. When they walked into the theatre, they saw both Yamahas on the stage. Reg Edwards was there and called them over.
“Gina, we want you to play for the hymn this morning. I know it’s a late call and you don’t have a blue dress yet. We want you both to play the ‘Wild Donkeys’ movement of the ‘Carnival of the Animals’; the sheet music is on the Yamahas, and one will be needed to be reset to the piano output after the hymn. Willow, the Head wants you to play the encore piece that you played in the Cathedral, the ‘Allegro’ from the ‘Seven Improvisations’.”
“That’s all right, sir. Will we have the choir girls with us?”
“Yes, and they’ll be using the multipliers. This assembly will be a bit longer than usual, but a lot has happened since the beginning of the first term. Now, can you improvise the entry music, and then the Reverend Jack will take the service. The Head will come out and invite you, Willow, to play that ‘Allegro’ that wowed them in the Cathedral. It will allow her to talk about the upcoming concert. Then she will ask you to play the dual piano piece. You will also have to expect her to talk about the Christmas dance. She enjoyed herself so much that she wants you all to do it again, here in the theatre, one evening later in the year for the students and parents.”
The friends nodded, then went to sit at the keyboards, making sure that both were set as organs, and Willow started with some Bach, then nodded to Gina to take it over. They swapped as the hall filled with students and teachers. Willow was playing when she saw Reverend Jack out of the corner of her eye and ended the playing.
He walked to the microphone and welcomed everyone to the new year and the new term, then gave a reading, followed by a short service to pray for success with all things that the school was going to do, followed by the Lord’s Prayer. He called out that they would now sing the hymn, and Gina, already in organ mode, played the intro. The choir was in fine voice and Willow, now in full view, mouthed the words, as it was one that she had played a number of times.
When that ended, the Head came on the stage, smiling at the two girls as she walked towards the microphone.
“I would like to add to the welcome that Reverend Jack said. This coming year is likely to be one that will go into the history books. Last term, a clerical error had us with more merchandise than we could need, but the two pop bands that had been recorded put on a concert to help us clear the stock. Not only did it clear the stock, but we had to order more items as we had run out before the concert. Or, should I say, concerts, as we filled this theatre on two nights. If those two bands would please stand, I want to applaud their addition to the school’s standing.”
The Gees, and Alec, Brent, with his friends, stood, while Willow and Gina stood on the stage, all blushing as the entire school applauded them.
“That led us into the last few weeks of the year, which had our combined orchestras and the choir performing at the Coventry Cathedral. It was shown on the TV during Christmas Eve, and we have received a lot of messages of praise. On the two nights of those performances, Willow Rose played an encore piece, which she will play for us now.”
Willow played the ‘Allegro’, and heard that it was going through a multiplier, sounding much stronger than a portable Yamaha by being tripled. There was applause when she finished.
“Thank you, Miss Rose. In May, the orchestras will be back in the Cathedral, playing a Saint-Saens concert. That will also be filmed by the BBC, as a live broadcast, so you’ll have to set your recording machines. I have been told that official BBC DVDs of both shows will be available in the shops, with us getting some to sell in the school. In the next concert, the orchestra will be playing the ‘Carnival of the Animals’, and, as we have the two pianists on stage with us, I’m asking them if they’ll play a very short piece, called ‘Wild Donkeys’.”
The girls, now with the piano setting, played the humorous thirty seconds of the piece, with a lot of smiles from their audience.
“There was one last show that the school was involved in. It wasn’t advertised through the school website, so a lot of you will be hearing about it for the first time. Some of the pop band that you have applauded, plus volunteers from our orchestra, spent four hours only, putting together music to dance to. The event was held in the Stoneleigh Village Community Club, with proceeds going to the Church Roof Fund. That church is led by our own Reverend Russell, and has two church organists, both being behind me on the stage. That Dinner Dance was very successful, with a number of the staff attending. It was repeated here, in the last week before Christmas, for some students and invited guests. We intend to ask the dance band to recreate the performance here, in the theatre, as a student dinner dance. It will have to be held over two nights if everyone wants to come.”
She paused for a moment.
“I suppose I have to talk about other things that are happening.”
She spent five minutes talking about academic and drama items, then wound up and walked back to where the Reverend Jack was standing.
“Play them out, girls.”
Willow and Gina switched to organ mode and played Bach as the students filed out, then turned the keyboards off and followed the choir to the lockers, where Willow changed back into her school uniform. They walked to their first class, where they were given a cheer as they entered. After that, it was back to normal, with the first item of class being envelopes given to every student with their exam results. Some read them immediately, others just put them in their bags for later. They were told that the reports had already been posted and were likely to be in their letter boxes that day.
At lunch, their table had several visitors coming to say how much they enjoyed the music in the morning, and some wondered if they could set the Head’s speech to music and get her to sing it. Jacob came over and told Willow that his parents had encouraged him to see if he could be in the orchestra. Willow stood and picked up her bag.
“See you lot at the first lesson, this afternoon. There’s something that Jacob and I need to do.”
She led Jacob out of the lunchroom, over to the music area and knocked on Mister Bamborough’s office door. When he called to enter, she pulled Jacob in with her.
“Mister Bamborough, Jacob Epstein learned to play guitar with Roy when they were younger. He plays acoustic and has been dithering about playing in public. I told him that the only way to find out if he’s good enough would come and see you.”
The teacher smiled and then looked at Jacob, who was looking as if he wanted to be somewhere else.
“Jacob. What guitar do you play?”
“I have a couple, sir. An old Yamaha and a Karrera that I got for my birthday last year.”
“See those guitar cases by the wall?”
“Yes, sir.”
“Those were purchased because of the money that Willow and her bands have made for the school. Geoff chose them and they were delivered today. They have not been played. How would you like to open one of the cases and play me something. Whatever you feel happy with.”
Jacob went and opened one of the cases, gave a little cry of surprise and lifted the guitar out of the case.
“This is a brand-new Martin, sir. It’s magnificent. Even if you kick me out, just holding it has made my day.”
“Take a seat, make sure it’s in tune, and play me something.”
Jacob went and sat down, the guitar resting on his legs. It was in tune, and he played a few chords to check the feel of the fretboard. Willow was holding her breath as he looked at her, smiled, and played something that she had heard before, on a classic station. When he finished, he wasn’t about to let go of the best instrument he had ever played.
“Do you play lighter music, folk, maybe?”
Jacob nodded and played a tune, then sung an old Peter, Paul, and Mary number.
The bells started sounding for the start of the afternoon lessons, and he, reluctantly, wiped the fretboard and put the guitar back in its case. Mister Bamborough stood and shook his hand.
“Jacob. If you want to play in the orchestra, you will be welcomed. You don’t need to bring your own guitar, as that one will have your name on it. The first orchestra is tomorrow afternoon. There won’t be anything for you for a week or two, but I promise that we’ll start working on something for you. By that time, you’ll know everyone and feel settled as part of the group. You get to help out and be part of what we do. Thank you, Willow, for finding another star in our midst. Now, you two, run along and learn something.”
As they went back to the other part of the school, he asked Willow how she got home after the later afternoons.
“Gina’s mother picks us up. We can see if she can drop you off at home on the way. Other times, my mother picks us up when she finishes work.”
Jacob spent the afternoon wondering why he hadn’t tried to join the music side before. It was going to open his life, he knew, and all because he had gained the courage to ask Willow Rose if she wanted to dance. A Martin was something he had only ever seen on the television, and playing one showed him why they were played by the stars.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 2
Monday, on the way home, Willow asked Gina if she could ask her mother if she minded going out of the way on the late evenings to take Jacob home.
“Why are we taking Jacob home, may I ask?”
“Because, friend, he will be joining the Junior Orchestra as a classical guitar player. Hopefully, he will round out Summer Rose playing folk songs. He is a fine guitarist, but not one who wants to be a rock star. He’s been shy about letting everyone hear him.”
“How do you know all that?”
“Because his parents brought him to the New Year party, and we danced.”
“So, where does he live?”
“At a farm that his parents run, if we turn off the Coventry Road, we can drop him off and end up going into the Village on the Birmingham Road.”
After they had dropped off Gina, Wendy turned to Willow.
“Once again, young lady, you’ve drawn another boy into your orbit. I saw you kissing him at the party, but there has to be more to the story.”
“I dragged him in to see Mister Bamborough at lunchtime. He had a brand-new Martin guitar for Jacob to play. Jacob almost fainted when he took it out of the case, and then made it sing. After that, he was asked to join the orchestra, with a promise that there will be something for him to play with us.”
“You really have to stop interfering in people’s lives.”
“Why? All I’m doing is helping them express themselves.”
Wendy had no answer to that. She parked at their house, and they went in to change and get dinner ready. She had to admit that Willow was doing well, so far, in moving the chosen few to another level. Actually, it was the chosen many, after speaking to the teachers.
Tuesday morning, Gina announced that her mother was happy to give Jacob a lift, and even knew how to get to the farm. Willow played the organ for the morning service, and the day was as normal as it could be. Lunchtime, there was much talk about the exam results. Willow just said that she had done well, without letting on about the number of ‘A’s she had. Jacob told them that he was able to come to the orchestra, as long as he had a trip home. When he was told that he had a lift, he rang home and left a message.
The rehearsal was, once again, in the theatre. The two Yamahas were set up, so Willow and Gina sat at one each. Jacob took a seat in the back, next to the percussion, and was immediately given a triangle and a stack of sheet music. Willow noticed that the choir were with them. Mister Bamborough tapped his baton for quiet.
“Welcome to the new term. Today, we’ll just repeat the full show for May. We start with the ‘Seven Improvisations’, played by Willow. Then we will go on with ‘Danse Macabre’, with Abbie leading the violins. We will follow that with the ‘Carnival of the Animals’, and finish with the ‘Organ Symphony’. It will take us a good two hours, so consider it a performance. Any mistakes need to be forgotten and you just carry on, as if you have a paying audience.”
He tapped his baton again and took the pose. Then the orchestra sat to listen to Willow play the ‘Seven Improvisations’. The organ was fed into the theatre PA, with three times multiplication, so sounded very much like the big organ in the Cathedral. When she finished, the orchestra then made ready for the ‘Danse Macabre’, which Barbara was very good playing her spooky violin. At the end, they were straight into the ‘Carnival of the Animals’, with Gina and Willow on the twin pianos. Julie, who had played the xylophone earlier, now had the glass harmonica.
When they finished the final movement, they then readied themselves for the first movement of the final piece. The choir, finally, had their five minutes of fame as they sung along to Willow’s organ playing. Just over two and a half hours after they had sat down, the last notes faded.
“Before we go, I would like to welcome Jacob Epstein to our orchestra. Next week, we will give him some work to do, by hearing him play guitar when we rehearse the ‘Concerto de Aranjuez’, by Rodrigo. I’m thinking that we can do some Spanish music over the year, with an Albeniz piano concerto as well. No Senior Orchestra on Wednesday.”
They all left the theatre and picked up their things to go home. Jacob joined the girls as they went out to find Maisie looking at a magazine in the reception area.
“Sorry we’re a bit late, Mum. We played the entire May performance. We’re moving on to other things for a while.”
“It’s all right. I stuck my head into the theatre and listened to you all for a little while. What did you think of your first time, Jacob?”
“I didn’t know what to expect. In the past, if there was no guitar in the piece, I never bothered to listen much. Tonight, I was sat at the back with a triangle and actually had to follow the score, and it made a difference. Being inside the orchestra, and able to watch all the players as they did their part; it was like a blind man being able to see. I wasn’t just a spectator but could feel the music vibrate inside me as it was played. I see why you all do it, now.”
“That’s why I told you that we are all just part of it, whether we’re playing solo or one of the group. You’ll have your chance next week, if we do the Rodrigo, are you happy with that?”
“I’ve played along with it on a CD I have, so I think that I’ll be able to hold my own. It will be totally different with a live orchestra. Have either of you played any Spanish pieces?”
“I have played some Albeniz piano pieces when learning the piano. What about you, Willow?”
“I’ve played a few. I’m sure that we’ll be told what we’re doing after we get Jacob as an integral part of the orchestra.”
As they went towards Stoneleigh, Maisie turned off on a side road, then turned into a driveway.
“You know where to go, Mrs. Summer?”
“I do, Jacob, although I haven’t been here for a good many years. When I was a teenager, I used to work here in my summer holidays, picking berries for your grandfather. That’s when he had a small field of loganberries. They were the worst thing to pick, and I had a lot of scratches before we finished. That was just before I went to Birmingham and got a job.”
She drove into the yard in front of the farmhouse, and Rosalie came out.
“Come on in for a cup of tea before you carry on. How was your first time in the orchestra, son?”
“It was good, Mum. I’ll tell you all about it later. Mrs. Summer was just telling us that she picked loganberries here when she was a few years younger.”
“That was a thing that your grandfather grew. We pulled them out as soon as he passed, as being far too difficult to pick. Now, Willow I’ve met, who are these others.”
Gina and Maisie were now standing, and Gina spoke up.
“I’m Gina Summer, and I play with Willow on the church organ and in the Community Club. This is my mother---”
Just then, there was a voice from the porch.
“Maisie! How many years is it? You haven’t aged a day.”
“Wilhelm, you look like you’ve been working hard in the fields.”
“Not what I planned to do when we last spoke, is it? I was ready to travel the world and study to be a teacher. Then my father injured himself by falling out of a tractor, and suddenly, I became a farmer as my brothers hightailed it as far as they could. I can’t complain, though. It’s kept the roof over our heads. Come on in and tell me what you’ve been doing with yourself.”
They went into the house and sat around the kitchen table, with Rosalie pouring out cups of tea.
“So, Maisie. Last time you were here, you said that you had an interview, then you were gone.”
“That’s right. I went to Birmingham and got the job, working in a bridal shop as a salesgirl and helping with the dressmaking. I ended up as the main dressmaker and stayed there until I married.”
“Who was the lucky man?”
“He was Roger Summer, a career soldier who I met at a dance. I ended up living at various army camps for a while, and we created Gina in twenty-eleven. He was badly injured by friendly shrapnel in Helmand Province, that year. It turned sceptic and he died before he could be repatriated. He wasn’t classed as an official war fatality, but they did give me a small pension. I came back to Stoneleigh to live with my parents. I ended up as their carer until they both died during the first years of COVID. I inherited their house, where we live.”
“So, how do you make ends meet?”
“I’ve set up a workroom in the old main bedroom, and Gina and I use the spares. I make bespoke wedding dresses and formal wear. It just takes time, which I have plenty of, or should I say I used to. Since Willow and Gina have got together, I’ve been out for meals and things more than I did. It’s been good and seeing these two in the Cathedral was worth everything. Gina will be solo on the piano this year and is now playing the organ in the church. Anyway, we have to move on. It’s been good seeing you. I bring the girls home whenever they have late studies, so I’ll be seeing you again.”
The three of them got back in the car and carried on into Stoneleigh. Willow got out at her home and went in.
“A bit late, dear?”
“We did the entire May performance, Mum, then we had to drop Jacob off at the farm. We went in and had a cup of tea. Maisie had worked at the farm when she was a teenager, working for Jacob’s grandfather picking berries.”
“So, how was Jacob after his first orchestra session?”
“He knows why we love doing it, as he realised that he was inside the music for the first time. He was on the triangle, which sounds easy, but takes a lot of focus. He’ll be playing the guitar next week as we try something new.”
She sat and ate her sandwich and drank more tea, then went off to get ready for bed. Next morning, at breakfast, she had a thought.
“Last night I found out that Gina’s father died in Afghanistan before she was born. That is so sad. I wonder if that was why she didn’t push herself forward in the past. Her first nine years was living with her mother and grandparents, probably the only girl of her age in the Village.”
“That is sad, dear, but you’ve pulled her out of that, the same way you’re pulling Jacob out. Every member of that dance band were here for you, more than gaining kudos from the school. You gave them the opportunity to enjoy something different. I spoke to a few of the parents, and they all praised your skills in organising, and leading, a small group.”
‘I find that difficult to believe.”
“Believe it or not. Now it’s time to get ready for another day at the grindstone.”
“One day, you’re going to have to explain that one to me.”
At lunch, that day, Jacob asked Willow if it was possible for him to be picked up and taken home, as it was taking a lot of his sister’s time away from her agricultural studies,
“Does she live at the farm?”
“No, she’s in a flat in southern Coventry. She comes to the farm and picks me up, then goes to the college.”
That afternoon, he waited while Wendy was asked, then went to his sisters’ car to tell her that she was off the hook. That afternoon, Wendy was guided to the farm to drop him off.
Thursday, on the way to school, Wendy asked the question that had remained unspoken.
“So, how was your results from the first term?”
Gina was happy to reply.
“They were better than last year. I even had a comment on how much better I had done.”
“That’s because you’ve started to train your brain, Gina.”
“How does that work, friend.”
“It’s happening because you’ve started to remember music, after just being happy to read the sheet. It makes your brain able to come up with facts that you weren’t able to before. I bet that you’re an ‘A’ student, Jacob.”
“I have always downplayed that fact, Willow. It must be the reason that you’ve just given. I can play hundreds of tunes from memory, and school has never been a problem for me. How did you know?”
“Because I’m the same. The more music I remembered, the better my retention of academic facts became. Keep up what you’re doing, Gina, and you’ll be straight ‘A’s by third year.
“That would be wonderful. I had a talk to Mum, last night, and she told me that she had enough savings for me to go to university, if I kept improving. I had thought that I may carry on her business, but can’t sew a button on properly, according to her.”
That short discussion had long-lasting effects, as the three of them now knew that they were as good as they could be. The school did not publish a class honours list, just had an honours board for those students that had achieved greatness when they left.
It also made Gina take more interest in class, realising that she would remember and understand more of the details. Another thing that happened, that week, was the number of members of the dance band who asked about another performance in the club. They had been told, by the parents who had gone before Christmas, how much fun it was, and that it was a breath of fresh air after the lack of entertainment during the lockdowns.
Friday afternoon was the first Music Studies lesson, and they were introduced to creating music for media and video games, something that they all had heard, but never thought that it could be a job. Both Willow and Gina realised that they had an advantage with the sounds that they could produce from their keyboards. For Willow, it would give her the impetus to write out the score.
On Saturday, Willow met Gina at the church to see about the hymn playing, and, together, they went in to see Malcolm.
“We’ve come in, Malcolm, because there are members of the band that played here who want to do it again. What do you think?”
“I think that it’s a damn fine idea. There have been quite a few locals who think so, too. What say we pencil in a sing-along evening next Saturday, with a dinner dance at the end of the month. That will give a two-week break. If we’re not collecting for the church roof, we can pay the band, cash in hand.”
“Don’t we have to register, or something?”
“Not if you aren’t paying tax, and you won’t be doing that for a while. I can always give the money to the parents, to be put into a trust account for your further education. Look, I’ll start doing that for the sing-along nights. It won’t be a lot, but it will be a start. I’ll make it a set amount, instead of a slice of the tips. That evening was a very special one.”
“Thank you, Malcolm. We may have a third member of the group at the sing-along. Jacob is a local, a good guitarist, and knows a lot of folkish songs. I’ll bring my keyboard over, if you can set up that amp and three microphones, we’ll see what difference we can make.”
The friends went to Willow’s house, to tell Wendy what had been arranged. Wendy just shook her head and smiled, thinking that, once again, Willow was becoming an event organiser, and now dragging Gina along with her. The girls brought the keyboard down and set it up next to the upright and spent the day getting their groove back after the break.
Sunday was Gina’s turn in church, with Willow sitting with her parents. Maisie had been told about the arrangements and was happy to support the plan. On Monday, Jacob was told that he was needed to expand Summer Rose on the following Saturday evening. He said that he would talk to his sister about picking him up, as he thought that a pub sing-along wasn’t to his parent’s taste.
That day, Willow and Gina went to see Miss Russell to tell her about the dinner dance plan. She was happy to follow the plan and would arrange the school coach if there was enough parents and band members who would want to leave from the school. At lunch, the previous band members were told the date, and the likelihood of some payment.
Tuesday was Gina’s turn to play in the chapel. She found that the hymn, being one she had played in the church, hardly needed her to read the sheet music. Willow stood with the other members of the choir who were in her year and sang with them with gusto. The joy of singing in the Cathedral had made her willing to use her voice.
Orchestra, that afternoon, was like nothing they had done before. Nobody, except Jacob, had played the ‘Concerto’ before, so it was a learning curve for all of them, needing to read the score as they went. There were mistakes, but they restarted, from the top, and overcame the hurdles as they went along. Jacob made the difference, playing the Martin with skill and feeling, and not needing to read the music in front of him. When they had played it completely, Mister Bamborough told them to take a break while he left the room. When he came back in, he was getting them settled, and pointing out some things to various members, when Miss Russell and the Head came in and sat by the door. They, alone, had the effect of sharpening the orchestra. The next playing would be a performance.
The baton was tapped, they readied, and then they were playing the piece, a hard one on the guitar, but a beautifully dreamlike piece of music in parts. Willow watched the Head from her seat, noting the amazed look, then the smiling. Miss Russell just smiled a lot. When they finished, the Head went to give Jacob a hug.
“That was wonderful! We’ve had good guitarists in the school, but never one as wonderful as you. My congratulations to you all, this gives us a new route to follow with public performances.”
She left the room and Miss Russell then called for quiet.
“I agree with everything that the Head said. This orchestra is proving to be the best that we’ve ever had. Now, a little bit of news. This Saturday, there will be a sing-along evening that Willow and Gina play at, with singable songs for the young, and then drinking songs for the not so young. That ends around ten. Two weekends later, on the Saturday evening, there will be a dinner dance in Stoneleigh and our very own dance band will be playing. Anyone from the band who can’t be there, please let us know so we can arrange stand-ins. If there is a requirement, I’ll organise a driver for the school coach, which will allow you to bring your parents or friends along in comfort, leaving from here and coming back here afterwards.”
The three friends went out to get in the car with Maisie for another trip home. They only stopped to let Jacob out and then headed to the Village. When Willow was dropped off, she had her sandwich and drink. Wendy eyed her daughter.
“So, something good, again?”
“We did a Rodrigo guitar concerto, from the basics to a performance for the Head. Jacob blew us away with his skill. I’m sure we’ll be trying more Spanish music to add to that for a full concert. Miss Russell announced our show on Saturday evening, and the dinner dance. That will be interesting to see how many from the school turn up. Except for the Christmas Party, we’ve been totally distanced from them up to now. If they start turning up at the club, it will change our relationships with some in our year. I suppose that it had to happen, sooner or later.”
“That’s what you get from being popular.”
“I know. By the way, I’ve noticed some of the ladies in church are standing together to sing the hymns, I wonder if they rehearse anywhere, or if it’s just a Sunday thing.”
“Why don’t you ask Edie when you see her. If they want, you can arrange a rehearsal, with one of you playing the organ and the other conducting. It would be nice if there was a Village choir.”
Willow went to bed wondering if she should have stayed silent.
On Wednesday morning, Jacob told them that his sister would be bringing him to the club on Saturday, along with his older Fender.
“Before I got it, someone had fitted a pick-up inside, but I’ve never tried it out.”
“Don’t worry. Malcolm will be setting up a twenty-watt amp for the mics, and we have leads to spare. It will be interesting to hear you amplified. If your sister can bring you early, we get an early meal before we start, which will give us a few minutes to set the volumes.”
The rest of the week went normally, with Willow and Gina having to answer a lot of questions about the sing-along and the dinner-dance. The girls organised themselves to transport the Yamaha to the club on Saturday morning. Jacob told them that his sister would drop him off around ten, so they could see how he could fit in, and pick him up at lunch time. She would bring him back at around half past six, in her boyfriend’s car, and they would take him home after eight.
Willow went over to the church on Friday evening to check the hymns. The Reverend and Edie were tidying up and they sat in the small kitchen with hot chocolates.
“Mrs. Russell. I’ve noticed that some of the ladies are standing together in church to sing hymns. Are they practising at other times?”
“Not that I know, Willow. A couple have wondered if they could get together in the church on weekday evenings. It would have to wait until the weather improves, as it’s far too expensive to warm the building for a few. It costs enough to make sure it’s warm enough on Sundays.”
“What about using the club? That’s got good insulation. If they get together on a weekday, the room will hold the warmth of the weekend events, so they could plan two or more sessions a month. It would be a good thing if there was a Village Choir, especially getting towards next Christmas.”
“That might be an idea. I’ll ask Malcolm.”
Willow went home, thinking that she may have provided a solution to something good for the Village. She reported the conversation to Wendy, who rolled her eyes and smiled.
“Willow, my daughter. You know that you have to do well in school. You can’t go committing yourself to yet another project.”
“But Mum! They will be singing acapella. They won’t need me around!”
“I’ll believe that when I see it. Now, get off to bed, you have a busy day ahead of you.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 3
Saturday morning, Willow and Wendy carried the Yamaha to the club, making another trip to collect the stand and stool. Malcolm had put the amp in place and set out three microphones. Willow took a dining chair from the back room and set one microphone in front of it, at a level to pick up a seated singer.
They tested the sound and spoke to Malcolm while waiting for Jacob. He told them that there was to be a meeting that afternoon, where Ashley was going to be elected to the club board. Because the Roses lived so close, he would be given the keys if there were any evening events in the week, which would allow Malcolm some time off.
When Jacob arrived, he was followed in by his sister. Racheal was in her twenties and much more social than the rest of the family. Willow took to her immediately. Jacob opened his guitar case and pulled out a Fender acoustic that had been altered with a pick-up inside the body, a volume and a tone control, and a jack plug in the usual place. He plugged in the lead and played a few chords, adjusting the volume and tone to his satisfaction.
“Jacob. We can work this two ways. Either you play something you know, and we’ll follow; or we play something we know, and you follow. When we’re playing, tonight, we’ll let you lead and pick the songs, so, I suggest that we start this that way.”
“All right, Willow. A lot of what I know is stuff that you may have heard before.”
He tuned up as Malcolm brought Racheal a drink. With his first song, Willow was able to catch on quickly, while Gina took a bit longer. They repeated it and Racheal told them that it was great. They worked for an hour, with Gina getting faster to find the accompaniment. Then they swapped, with the girls playing their singable pop, and Jacob finding it easy to add the guitar, sometimes with a lead-like passage. When they stopped, Racheal was grinning.
“I told my boyfriend that we were going to a community club for a sing-along, tonight. He’s a dear, and agreed to come, but I think that he had the idea that it will be old fogies singing war-time ditties. He is a budding singer in a new band in Coventry. This will blow his mind.”
“You don’t mind bringing Jacob?”
“Certainly not. I used to hear him play while I was at home and was amazed at how good he was. It took you girls to pull him out of his bedroom and into the world. He told me that he played in front of the school orchestra and that it was so different. I think that he may be a good entertainer, rather than the farmer he’s been pencilled in as. Rick and I watched that concert on Christmas Eve. I never thought that I would be here with the star of that show.”
“Has Jacob shown you the two DVDs of school concerts that we were in?”
“No. I’ll have to borrow them from him and have a look this afternoon before I come back to collect him. What time will you need him here?”
“About half past six. There will be food served, and he will get a free meal before we play. Does your boyfriend’s group do gigs? We have a bigger room in the back where we’ll be having a dinner dance on the last Saturday of the month. Come on, I’ll show you.”
Willow led Racheal through to the back room.
“This seats up to two forty without a dance floor. There are four fifty-watt Marshalls and a PA system in-house. We had eleven on stage before Christmas for a party to a full house.”
“Are you heavily involved in this club?”
“My father will be on the board by tonight, but I just seem to be here a lot, playing and singing. Gina and I are the organists for the church across the road.”
“That’s interesting. I’ll have a look at that before I take Jacob home. I’ve been dropping hints to Rick for a few months and having a venue in mind is the first step in getting him to propose.”
“There will be a society wedding there just before Easter. The reception will be in this room.”
“Oh! Who are the couple?”
“Cassandra and Terry. She is the daughter of Baron Leigh. If you look in the church, you’ll see lots of memorials to the earlier side of the family. The third baron died without children and the peerage went to his cousin.”
They all left the club; Gina went home, and Willow took Racheal and Jacob into the church. They were amazed by the beauty and the calmness of the building.
“This is amazing, Willow. I’ve never been in here before, even though I lived nearby. Our family lapsed without a synagogue close by.”
“I was told that by your parents. What is your boyfriend?”
“At the moment, semi-goth satanist on stage. I believe that he had been a choirboy in his early years.”
They went to her car and Willow went home.
“How did it go, sweetheart?”
“Good, Dad. Malcolm told me that you’re going to be on the club board and will be getting the keys. Will that mean that you’ll also double as bartender?”
“Probably. I did that for a while as a job while I was at Cambridge.”
“Did you serve any drinks to Mum while she was still underage?”
“Of course. She had an excellent ID, and so did all of her friends.”
“Oh, great! My Mum was a forger, and my Dad worked as an underage barkeep in a speakeasy. No wonder I’m so mixed up.”
“You really are a bright one. You know that you light up our lives.”
“My battery seems to be lasting longer, these days. I told Mum that there are some church ladies who have started singing together. Don’t be surprised if you’re asked to open up the club on a weekday evening so they can practise. I won’t be surprised if they want someone on the piano.”
“Are you set for this evening?”
“Yes, Summer Rose is now a trio. You’ll be able to sing as you pull pints.”
When Wendy and Willow walked to the club, Ashley had been there for a while and was now a member of the club management. He had been surprised to see the books, and how much more business had come in since the sing-alongs started, compared with the previous few years. Gina and Maisie were already sitting with drinks.
When Jacob arrived, they had a meal before they started playing. The place was filling, with Rick, Racheal’s boyfriend, looking almost normal. The Russell's joined Wendy and Maisie at their table, and the three teens went to start the evening entertainment. Willow looked out at the crowded room, seeing some faces from school and then made an announcement.
“Ladies and gentlemen. Tonight, Summer Rose has been joined by Jacob Epstein on guitar. We hope you like what we play.”
They started with the songs that had Jacob leading, with Gina on the piano and Willow on the keyboard. Obviously, a lot of people had listened to the radio over the previous years, as there was good singing. At around eight-thirty, Willow said that they were taking a short break and then would be back with the drinking songs. Jacob was reluctant to leave the spotlight, but both Willow and Gina gave him a hug and told him that this was just the start.
They took a comfort break and were playing again when Racheal and Rick came back in, staying to the end and singing along. When they finished Rick came over to them.
“I have to compliment you two on your professionalism. That was a full evening of entertainment. I know how hard it is to capture your audience, and you had everyone in the palms of your hands. Jacob was better than I’d ever heard him, and I never thought that I’d see him basking in the spotlight and enjoying being an entertainer.”
“He was magnificent in front of the school orchestra. You can expect to see him starring in a future concert.”
“Rachael said that you were the organist in that Christmas Eve concert. That piece is one that always gives me shivers down my spine.”
“We’ll be back in the Cathedral to play a Saint-Saens concert in May. Who knows what else we’ll be doing in the rest of the year. Did you see the DVDs of the school concerts yet?”
“Not yet. Rach has them in the car and we’ll watch them during the week.”
“I hope that you enjoy them.”
Wendy and Willow helped to tidy up before Ashley could leave, with Ashley carrying the keyboard and Willow with the stand and stool.
“Another great show tonight.”
“It did go well, didn’t it. Jacob added so much to the entertainment.”
“He seemed to grow as he played. You look like you’ve done it again, my girl.”
“I can’t help it if people hide their skill. His evenings in his bedroom has made him a very good.”
“Just like someone else we know.”
Sunday morning, the family walked to church, with Willow going up to fire up old Betsy. When the church was empty again, she went down to find out what the gossip was. It wasn’t surprising that a lot of it was about last night’s entertainment. Rick and Racheal were there, and Rick came over to her.
“Good morning, Willow. I thought that I was just being dragged here to check out a likely marriage venue. I never thought that I would be hearing you play. I’ve never heard a genuine old organ before, and I have to say it was worth coming. It has a tone all of its own.”
“That’s because it’s old, and still uses air pressure from a reservoir. The word that best describes it is authentic.”
“That’s it. I wonder if I could get a tune recorded here. There are a few that we sing that should have an organ, and it would really make a difference with that sound.”
“As long as it’s not one of those Goth dirges about death and destruction. I don’t think that the Reverend would approve of that.”
“Actually, one’s about love and marriage, and a short burst of the wedding march would round it out nicely.”
“If that’s it, I can organise for you to bring your sound gear in and I’ll play it for you, in full, and you can cut it to suit.”
“Would you? That would be great! Give me your number and I’ll get back to you.”
That afternoon, Gina and Willow worked on their Music Studies project. They had been given memory cards with a short segment of a video game, but without any sound. Their task, before the next lesson, was to see if they could create a musical accompaniment to the action. They both used Willow’s organ and laptop but created their own takes on the segment that they had been given. They used some of the synthesizer controls, recording the output to the laptop and then adding the video, before recording it back on their memory cards.
The following week the girls and Jacob were the centre of some attention, as those who had been at the club told their friends about the show. On Tuesday afternoon, they played the ‘Concerto’ through, and then went on to start learning an Albinez piece.
“Today, boys and girls, we will start learning one of the harder pieces that you’ve come across. It is Albinez, ‘Opus 232’, his ‘Cantos de Espana’. We will do it in its original form, with three parts. The thing with this are the odd timings and chords. The second and third movements do not flow as easily as you’re used to, being based on flamenco.”
It took them the rest of the session to master the easier movement. The whole opus was aimed at a piano and cello. With other parts of the orchestra adding their weight. Gina was on piano, and Willow was sitting with her clarinet. Alec was quite friendly, and they spoke between playing. By the time they went home they had worked hard.
………………………………………………………….
While the orchestra was rehearsing, the Head and Miss Russell were in the Head’s office, speaking to a well-dressed man who had asked for an appointment.
“I have to tell you, Mister Waddington, that we have had promoters in here before, offering the world but really just wanting to use our school talent to make a killing. I’ll say to you, before you start, that our children are our first responsibility, and they’re not for signing for pop shows, no matter how good you think they are.”
“What it says on the card is that I am a promoter, true, but I have a great interest in classical music, and find talent good enough to make recordings for a classical music CD company. I could organise a weekend in a studio with your wonderful orchestra, and you would have a CD on the market showing just how good this school is. I was at the concert at the Cathedral and was totally enraptured by what they did there. I know that show will be a BBC production, but I’m sure that there are other items in their repertoire that deserve greater exposure.”
“Give me your contact details, and a list of other orchestras that you have recorded. We’ll do our research. If the signs are good, we’ll get in touch.”
……………………………………………………..
Wednesday evening, Ashley was needed to go to the club and open up. He found a group of village ladies asking to use the front area to rehearse their singing. One of them asked if Willow could help them with the piano, so he rang her and told her that the speculation was now fact, and if she could come and play the piano.
That evening, she played as accompaniment on some hymns, some carols, and told the ladies that she would get some lyrics for them next week. None of them read music, so she would have to lead the singing until they got the hang of every choral piece. She walked home with her father, and he put his hand on her shoulder.
“Tonight, I saw, at first hand, how good you are with teaching. You could have a career teaching singing, even if you don’t get to sing, yourself.”
“I’m just repeating what I hear at school, Dad. It’s no big thing.”
The rest of the week was as usual as school days could be. They submitted their music for the video games, and they went home Friday with an arrangement for Jacob to join them again for a practise session on Saturday afternoon. It was Gina’s week for the church organ so Willow had some spare time on her hands to source easier choral pieces that the ladies would be able to master.
Saturday morning, Rick got in touch and asked if Willow could arrange a session in the church one evening in the week.
“I’ll go and see the Reverend and call you back. I do have an idea. If you have the actual songs that you want rearranged, can you bring a CD or tape player with them. If I listen to them once, I can then play something suitable the next time. I can count down to the start of a song, so you can then record the organ and will have the timing when you add the track. That might be easier than trying to make the actual classical piece fit.”
“Great idea, I’ll bring the recording gear and the player. Do you have headphones?”
“I have some of my own. I’ll call you back with a time.”
She went over to the church where Gina was running through the hymns and sought out the Reverend.
“Reverend, I’ve been asked to provide a backing track on the organ. It will only take one evening. If I tell them to list the organ of St. Marys, Stoneleigh, on the cover notes, will it be right?”
“I wouldn’t be doing my job if I didn’t ask for a donation, but we can accept a small percentage of sales, say a couple of percent to the roof fund.”
“Got you. I’ll tell you tomorrow if it’s on. Will Thursday evening work for you?”
“I’ll be here. Who are the group, someone from school?”
“No. It’s Rick, Racheal Epstein’s boyfriend. He was here with her last Sunday. That’s when he heard the organ.”
Back at home, she rang Rick. He agreed to the Thursday, and readily agreed to paying a small percentage to the roof fund. That afternoon, Racheal brought Jacob to the club. Because it wasn’t a show night, Gina and Willow swapped seats on the upright for two hours, with the one not playing being the lead singer. They worked through more of Jacob’s repertoire. By the time they packed up, they would be able to handle a full evening of song, the next time it happened. Racheal told them that she would be coming to the dinner dance, so Jacob would be available if needed.
On Sunday, Gina played for the service and Willow sat with the ladies of the choir, trying to gauge their voices in full flight, as they had been a little reticent on the Wednesday evening. That afternoon, she looked for choral pieces on her computer, sending suitable ones to the printer. She found three that she liked, and made ten copies of each set, thinking that they would last her several weeks to get the ladies singing properly.
The school week passed quickly, with much discussion about who were going to be at the dinner dance with their parents. If they, and the usual villagers, turned up, the casual event may be more crowded than the New Year’s Eve party. Gina played for Tuesday morning chapel and the orchestra practise saw them work on the second and third movements of the Albinez.
Wednesday, Willow introduced the ladies to a genuine choral piece for the first time. They worked on it for two hours, with her having to coax some in using the voice that they had sung hymns with on the Sunday. On the way home, Ashley patted her on the shoulder.
“Tonight, you took those ladies out of their comfort zones. If they all turn up next week, you’ll have the foundation of a good choir. That choral piece will make, or break, them.”
Thursday evening, Willow had warmed up her fingers with some Bach when Rick, Racheal, and a couple of guys lugging big bags came into the church. She went down to watch them set up the recording equipment.
“What we have here, Willow, is a small transmitter which will send a signal to this receiver, which you have the headphones plugged into. We will be able to record that signal, digitally, onto a hard drive, which will also be able to record what the microphone catches. All we need is the best place to set up.”
“There’s an outlet in the tearoom for the power, and I believe that the sweet spot is just in front of the temporary altar. Just don’t put anything on it! Play me the songs while I play you some music to set the levels. I’ll go up and start.”
She played some Bach and some bits of the ‘Organ Symphony’ to give them a volume range, while listening to the three songs that Rick wanted to overdub. When they indicated that they were ready, she called down.
“Play me the songs again but be prepared to reject the result. It’ll be better by the second or third take.”
She set herself to improvise and gave an arm wave to start. She could see the four of them all had headphones on, so were probably listening to the final cut as it was being recorded. The song that Rick had said was about love and marriage was quite sweet, she thought, and she was restrained with the additional parts of the Wedding March. After the third set, everyone in the body of the church had big grins, so she took her headphones off and they waved her to come down. She switched the fans off and tidied up, then went down to have Racheal give her a hug.
“That was fantastic, Willow. It really made those songs stand out!”
Rick then gave her a hug as well.
“Rach is right. The organ sound has made all the difference. Those three tracks will join another three that we have perfected and will be issued on the internet by the weekend. We have a video of us doing ‘Love and Marriage’, and we’ll have this audio added to it. You took what we were doing to heart and the result sounds as if you’ve been in the group for ever. Still, with what I saw of your Deep Purple and Moody’s acts, I wouldn’t have expected anything less.”
Willow stayed with them until they had collected all their equipment and the waved to them as they left, before locking the church and taking the keys to the vicarage. She strolled home, her headphones around her neck, wondering why she was so good at blending organ music into a track that she had never heard before. She wasn’t able to do something similar with piano, violin or clarinet, yet. But, there again, that was something she hadn’t had the chance to work on.
The dance band spent two hours after school on Friday sorting out a basic repertoire. Jacob joined in but Alec had bowed out because his mother refused to let him go to Stoneleigh on an unofficial event, as well as Herb, who had a family party to go to. The violinist had also gone down with the flu. They went with what they had. Without the strings, it became more of an electric band, but with the volume lowered, and the girls creating the strings sounds on the keyboards, it sounded good.
Saturday was busy for the Rose family. Ashley went to the club in the morning to help set up, taking the Yamaha with him. Willow followed with the stand and seat, then went to Gina’s house to help carry her Yamaha and stuff to the club. They hauled the amps and PA system out of storage and set them up, as the tables and chairs were being set out. Malcolm was setting up for the two hundred, and able to take tables away if the numbers didn’t happen.
Gina tested her keyboard and went home, while Willow went over to the church to check out the hymns for Sunday, before going home for her own lunch and changing before she went back. In the afternoon, Ashley was preparing the bar for a hopefully, busy evening. Malcolm, Wendy and a few of the church ladies were laying the tables and setting out water carafes. Willow and Gina made sure that the stage equipment was ready to go. Being the third event in here, since COVID, the kitchen was regaining its old efficiency, and the suppliers were keen to make sure that nobody left feeling that they hadn’t had a good feed.
The other band members started arriving and set their instruments in place. Racheal, Rick and Jacob arrived in the late afternoon. As diners started to arrive, going for drinks and finding a table, everyone breathed a sigh of relief. When the two coaches from the school arrived, with other students and their parents, it started to look like the event was going to be a runaway success. In the end, just before orders were to be taken, Malcolm had to add two small tables for another eight diners, which didn’t take a lot out of the dance floor.
The band were given their meal in the front section of the building, and then went to the stage to entertain the crowd. Over the next three hours, they played everything from standard ballroom numbers, to folk, pop, love songs and fun songs. Almost every member of the band had sung more than once, with Jacob and Willow doing the most. The dance floor was packed for most of the time, and the room slowly cleared while a few couples danced, cheek to cheek, to a brace of slow numbers before Willow announced that the evening was drawing to a close.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 4
At the end of the evening, Malcolm went around the band members with envelopes of cash. The girls left the keyboards there to be collected the next day, while the other band members took their equipment with them, Brent being the only one to need help taking his drums out to his father’s works van. Several of the parents had expressed their appreciation of the event being both suitable for the teens as well as good entertainment for adults.
………………………………………..
Two of the late arriving couples left with more to think about than many. Zac Martin, Marcus Waddington, and their wives had thoroughly enjoyed the evening, but it left them wondering just where they could place the band members to achieve the greatest outcome. One thing that the two promoters were certain of, and that was that it was going to be a long-term project. For at least two on the stage, Marcus was starting to think in terms of a lifetime.
………………………………………….
Another couple were driving back to Coventry as well. The writer for the Coventry Observer was sitting in the passenger seat as his wife drove. He was thinking back about that article he had written after the Deep Purple concert, as well as his critique of the concert in the Cathedral. They had parked near the church, and his eye had been caught by the names of the organists on the signboard.
“Tomorrow morning, my love, we’re coming back to that church. Both of those girls on stage tonight are listed as the church organists. They’re both still only thirteen, and there has to be a story there.”
………………………………………………..
Wendy and Willow strolled home.
“That show was something else again, my daughter. You and Jacob were almost like a couple with the way you sang together. At times, it sounded like the Carpenters. I thought that the sing-along was good, but this was almost professional. There seemed to be a lot from the school there, and the few that I spoke to were happy that they had come. Miss Russell and the Head were there on the Reverend’s table, and looked as if they were enjoying themselves.”
“That’s because there are now a lot more opportunities to open up the theatre to the paying public. I can see us even more certain to be playing at a school dinner dance or two.”
…………………………………………………..
At that very moment, in Birmingham, a popular influencer, who had been sent a link to a video clip by a friend, was extolling the joy of watching Rick Sacks and the Hikers, with their debut single ‘Love and Marriage’. She was particularly taken by the sound of a real church organ. She paid the small fee to download the six-track album for listening before she slept. As Wendy inserted her key in the front door lock, the recommendation was on its way to her followers.
………………………………………………..
As Willow was in her bed, tired but happy, she thought about the events of the evening. The band had been different without Alec and some strings, but it had sounded good. She thought about what he mother had said and realised that there were several songs that she and Jacob had sung, together. One, she suddenly remembered, had him singing the words ‘You are my everything’ as he looked into her eyes. Surely, she reasoned, it was only his showmanship coming to the fore. Before settling, she googled The Carpenters and realised that she had heard most of the songs on a MOR radio station while in Bristol.
Sunday morning, the family walked through a thin layer of snow to the church, where Edie had the heaters going at full blast. Willow went up and played Bach as the pews filled with the congregation. The bells had stopped, and she saw everyone rise, and faded the music as the Reverend reached the altar. During the hymns, she was gratified to hear the ladies of the choir leading the singing and doing it as well as the school choir.
When the church had emptied and the bells had gone quiet, she tidied the organ loft and went outside, where only a few remained. Wendy was waiting for her in the porch.
“Come along. Your father’s gone over the road and opened up for anyone who wants tea or coffee, and most of the church followed him. There are a few who want to talk to you, so close the door and follow me.”
They went across the road and into the club, which had kept a lot of its warmth from the previous evening. Ashley had the big urn going and was starting to hand out free teas and coffees. The first person to speak to her was Rick.
“Just letting you know, Willow, we’ve sent out a link to our supporters and groupies. It went out around six, so should be on your computer when you get home. It’s the video of the debut single, with a link to a paid download of the album. It’s only a pound, but that will give the church two pence for every sale. If we sell a few hundred albums, that will be two pounds a hundred, so we may be able to give a bit to the Roof Fund.”
“Thanks, Rick. I will look forward to looking at it. I may even download the album myself.”
The next person to speak to her had been talking to Wendy, who brought him over.
“Willow, sweetie. This is Bruce Miller, the writer from the Observer. He did that great piece about you after the Purple show. He and his wife were at the show last night and just had to come back to hear you this morning.”
“Good morning, Mister Miller. I’m sure that hearing me play hymns wasn’t worth the trip on a cold day.”
“On the contrary, young lady. It has provided another string to your impressive bow. I missed the Blue pop concert in the school, but have purchased the DVD, which shows you, and your friend on the other keyboard, from a new perspective. I was at the Cathedral to cover the school concert and there you were, again, up there on their organ. Now, I hear you playing wonderfully on the old organ here. I said to myself, ‘Bruce, there has to be a story in this.’ So, here I am, asking you if you would make this old man happy with the background of how you came to be here. I even heard one of the ladies here saying how you’ve improved their singing.”
Willow looked at him, then a questioning glance at her mother, who nodded her head.
“Mister Miller. I will give you my story, but it must be in private, and only published if other things happen. When I tell you how I came to be standing here, you’ll know what those other things may be. I will tell you the truth, and give you all the relevant copies of documentation, but you have to promise that you will not publish unless it becomes imperative. When we finish here, if you and your wife would like to walk around the corner to our house, we can sit and discuss whatever you want.”
“I will agree to sit on it for as long as necessary, Miss Rose. With a talent like yours, it won’t take long before the national press are hounding you and nipping at your heels.”
“Exactly why I’m going to tell you the truth, so you can refute anyone who publishes any other version for their own gratification.”
He looked at her to gauge her sincerity, and his honed senses told him that there was much more to this story than he expected.
“My wife is bound by any promise that I make, Willow, and I promise that I will be bound by your wishes. I will, in future, be reporting on other concerts that you appear in, and will treat you as fairly as I do the others. If you’re going to be here for a while, I’ll go and speak to the Reverend.”
“You may want to talk to Rick, who was just speaking to me. We did a recording in the church last week, with me playing an organ overdub of his band. The video was sent out on the internet yesterday. I should be able to play it for you at home.”
He went off and Wendy got them cups of tea.
“Are you sure this is wise, darling? He could be just out for a slice of fame for himself.”
“It’s insurance, Mum. If he does renege and print, at least it will be the truth. If someone else follows our trail and writes something truly awful, at least we have a record of the truth with an independent journalist. With the exposure I’ve been getting, it’s going to have to come out sooner or later. I hate having to conceal my true self from the school and all my friends. The sooner I get operated on and can declare myself to be a medically created woman, the happier I’ll be. That will be years, unless we can get it in earlier. Even if it’s allowed, it will cost more than we can afford. In the meantime, we just keep doing what we do best.”
After the congregation had warmed enough to go home, Ashley and Wendy put all the cups and saucers in the industrial dishwasher, locked up, and the five walked to the Rose residence. Bruce was saying how much good will there was towards them as a family. He had been told, by the Reverend, about the link between the Roses and the Leighs, something that he thought could be an article all of its own.
In the house, Wendy put the kettle on, and they divested all their coats, since the house was nicely warm from the central heating. Bruce put a recording device on the table and just looked at Willow. She started at the very beginning, from her birth, with Wendy supplying a copy of the original birth certificate. There were old photos, school reports and results from Clifton. When they got to the original misunderstanding of Miss Russell bringing around the girl’s uniform, they supplied copies of the clinical report, photocopies of the scans and prints of the scars that still marred Willow’s body. Wendy owned up to forging a new birth certificate to allow Willow to appear at the school without the fear of being bullied.
“After that, Mister Miller, things just got out of hand. The Purple concert was the first, and the rest seemed to just move along, one after the other. If you want to delve into the earlier days in Bristol, feel free to ask about William Rose. I doubt that there will be any who really care after six months of us being here. You can talk to our doctor at the clinic in Gaydon, she’ll tell you that there really is no other path I could have taken. The next step is for a complete transition, the sooner the better. I feel so much more alive as Willow, and I have no need to fear bullies, unless all that you now know becomes public.”
“I have to tell you, all of you, that I admire your family values to create the best life for your child. I’ll write this up for myself. I’m sure that if I keep writing reports of your career, anyone looking into your life will come to me as a contact point. I’ll be able to warn you at that time. Now, how about we look at this video that you say that you overdubbed?”
Willow went and got her laptop, turned it on and found the link in her in-tray. She clicked on it and the video started. She had heard it when it was being recorded but was amazed at how much better the organ made the tune sound. When it finished, there was silence around the table. Wendy was the first to speak.
“I think that you’ve just gone and done it again, my daughter.”
“Why, Mum. Rick said that it was only sent to groupies and friends and expects to sell a couple of hundred copies of the album download.”
Bruce laughed.
“While you were busy looking at the band, Willow, I looked at the YouTube statistics. That clip has been seen more than half a million times since it went online, and, if you click on it again, I think that you’ll find that it’s been accessed a few hundred more while we watched.”
Willow clicked the link again, and they waited a few minutes to repeat the process, finding that it had been accessed nearly seven hundred times in the few minutes that they waited. Bruce put his hand on her arm.
“You just keep giving, Willow. That, my girl, is the sign that this video has gone viral. Those numbers, for an independent band on YouTube, are getting towards being a viral sensation. Rick and the Hikers are going to find promoters knocking on their door next week.”
“Aaaarrrggghhh! Why does this keep happening to me?”
Ashley grinned.
“It’s your talent adding to others. Oh, talented daughter. There were a couple of guys there, last night, and they gave me their business cards. Perhaps you’ve heard of them, Bruce?”
He handed over the cards.
“Zac has been working with a real sleazebag, one Artie Hamilton. If he’s broken off the partnership and gone in with Marcus Waddington, that is a real plus in our favour. They were both at the dinner dance, you say. That can only mean that they were there to see someone who was presenting some entertainment, and we know who that has to be, don’t we? Do you have a number for this Rick?”
“I have it on my mobile. I’ll give him a call and put it on speaker.”
She dialled the number. When he answered, she asked him where he was.
“We’ve just got to Racheal’s home and put our feet up. What’s up?”
“Do you recall telling me that you may sell a few hundred albums locally?”
“Yes. That’s all a local band can expect.”
“We’ve just looked at the video clip on my computer, and it’s had over a half a million hits, and climbing by about a hundred a minute. I have Bruce Miller of the Coventry Observer with me, and he wants to ask you a few questions.”
“Rick, it’s Bruce. I write the entertainment reports for the Observer, and I’ve just been interviewing Willow. Tell me; do you have a band bank account that you can look at on-line? If so, can you look at it now and see if there’s been a take up of the album download.”
“Just a moment while I open up my laptop. That was a hell of a show last night, by the way. Now. Banking accessed, let’s see what…. Holy crap! Thanks for warning me. According to our balance, we’ve been paid for over a quarter of a million album downloads.”
“Rick, can you give me your address so I can come and talk to you. I’ve been around the traps for quite a while, and I know that there will be some trying to get you to sign on contracts that fleece you dry and work you to death. There were a couple of promoters at the dance who were looking at Willow. She’s safe as she’s underage, but you’re not. You will be rich pickings for the wrong guys.”
“I hear you, Bruce. I read your reports, and you sound like a fair judge, so I’ll wait here for you. Thanks, Willow, for ringing, and doubly thanks for making the single sound so good. Talk to you later.”
He gave Bruce the address and then rang off.
“Before we leave you, who else knows what you’ve told me?”
“Other than the medical staff, only us and both sets of grandparents. Mum’s side were with us over Christmas and are really happy for me. I bonded closely with my grandmother.”
“And the other side?”
Ashley groaned.
“Not so good, Bruce. They kept calling her Bill when we went to see them. I’m afraid that I put my foot down and we left then to their own prejudices. We haven’t spoken since.”
“What! Even when she presents as a lovely teenage girl. Look, folks, when I’ve seen Rick, I’ll give Marcus Waddington a call and sound him out on what he has in mind. We’ve spoken in the past, as he mainly organised classical concerts. I expect that it was Zac that put him on your trail. I came here to see about getting a nice story about a young talent, and here I am in the middle of an emerging story about a local band creating a hit single.”
The couple put their coats back on and walked up the road to get their car. Ashley watched them go. He wasn’t totally happy with a reporter now knowing everything, but he was trusting Willow’s hunch that they may need an independent record of the truth and giving Bruce enough time to verify things. They hadn’t gone out of their way to fool the school; it was the school that had set the tone of proceedings. He closed the door and went back into the kitchen.
“Now! What about this record?”
“That depends on what the rest of the band say, Dad. I just added an overdub track to the existing song. They’re a local group and have been playing parties and stuff for a while. I don’t think that they have an organist, there wasn’t an organ on the tracks I listened to.”
“Tracks?”
“Yes, there were three that we re-recorded with the organ. Rick said that they were half the album. I haven’t heard the others. If there’s four, or five, in the band they and split the proceeds equally, it will be a nice little earner. The church is getting two percent of sales for the church roof.”
“And you?”
“Never discussed. I’m underage, remember. If they want to slip a few pounds my way, we’ll have to sort out a separate account for my earnings. This isn’t a school thing, so nothing goes to them.”
“That’s the thing, Willow. With it being outside the school, it is yours to run with as you want. I doubt that the Hikers will want you on stage, as they can’t recreate that authentic sound, so any organ player with a good unit will do. You deserve something out of it. The debut video doesn’t work without the organ track, so their success is very much down to your input, and they should accept that.”
“We’ll see what happens in the week, Dad. If you can set up an account for me so we can set aside anything that comes my way.”
“There is one that we already opened when we came here. It’s mainly to fund your tertiary studies. If you can add to that before you go to Uni, it’ll be good. Now, I feel like taking my favourite ladies out to lunch. How about our steakhouse?”
They all got ready and took the car out to the steakhouse, where they had a leisurely lunch. While they were there, Willow’s phone rang, and she left the table to answer it. When she came back, she sat down and took a sip of her drink.
“What’s up, sweetie?”
“That was Rick, Dad. They have decided to give both me and the church a five percent cut of the profits. He said that the video was now being viewed in America, and that the album sales have passed four hundred thousand. The band are getting queries about merchandise, and their email account has hundreds of messages that will take weeks to work through. He says that he’ll be coming to Stoneleigh, later today, to see us. I gave him our address. He says that he will need a bank account number to deposit my earnings, with thanks from a grateful band, and will need the account number of the roof fund to deposit that donation.”
“Wow! The lad doesn’t hang around! From what I’ve read about viral videos, the take-up tends to peter out once it has gone around the world. Asia isn’t likely to buy up big, although Japan does like western music. From what’s happened, so far, I’ll guess that the final sales may be somewhere between one and one and a half million. That will put the band on the international map and give them the backing to go their own way. It will give you between forty and fifty thousand by the end of the week. That’s an impressive result from an evening playing the church organ. It will also boost the roof fund, very likely enough to get the repairs done when the weather improves.”
“The other thing, Dad, will be the number of albums out there with me named as the Stoneleigh organist. I’ll have to see Miss Russell or the Head tomorrow and let her know what’s happened. We should talk to Reverend Russell on the way home to let him know of the windfall coming his way.”
They stopped at the vicarage on the way. When they were let in, Miss Russell was there, having stayed overnight after the dance. They were sat in the formal lounge and the Reverend asked what had brought them around.
“Do you remember the guys that came to the church on Thursday evening?”
“I do. I listened for a while but couldn’t make out what you were doing. All I could hear was bits played on the organ.”
“That’s because we were all listening to the songs through headphones. Last night, Rick told me that the link to the debut single went out to the fans that they had email addresses for.”
Miss Russell leaned forward.
“Who is Rick?”
“He is Rick Saxon, and the band is Rick Sacks and the Hikers. He is the boyfriend of Racheal Epstein, the older sister of Jacob, who lives on a farm nearby.”
“I remember her, she’s about ten years older and, if I remember rightly, was a good student without a skerrick of musical talent.”
“She and Rick had been here last week to check out a marriage venue and he had been really taken with the old-world sound of the pipe organ. Anyway, I followed the link to the YouTube video this morning. The track is really very good. There is a link to buy a download of a six-track album.”
“The world turns faster and faster.”
“Exactly, Reverend. The thing is, in the ten or twelve hours after being sent to a few hundred locals, the clip had been viewed over a half a million times. I rang Rick and he checked the bank account. Mid-morning, they had sold over a quarter of a million albums at a pound a piece.”
As the Reverend sat back and Miss Russell’s jaw dropped, Ashley clarified the latest news.
“Rick rang Willow while we were having lunch. He told her that the band has decided to donate five percent of the profits to the Roof Fund, as a thank you to the church. They are going to pay Willow the same amount as the stand-in organist. Everyone who had seen the video say that it’s the organ addition that lifts the track out of the ordinary. I’ve calculated that, by the time the link has gone around the world, the Roof Fund may be around forty thousand better off. Rick wants the account number so he can start paying in.”
“Now that is what I call a result, brother dear. Tell me, what happens to Willow’s share?”
“That’s going into her Uni Fund. Both Wendy and I went to Cambridge, and Wendy’s parents live there. They were the ones with us over Christmas.”
“Can you wait while I get my laptop. I always carry it with me in case of emails from the school.”
Miss Russell left the room and Edie went to the drinks cupboard.
“I think this calls for a sherry, being such a grand day.”
She poured small glasses for all the adults and gave Willow a glass of lemonade. Miss Russell came back and started her laptop. Willow told her to go to the website for the band, as there would be a link to click on that. She found the video and clicked on it to play, and they sat as the track played. When it had finished, Miss Russell spoke.
“That is an ordinary piece of music made extraordinary by your playing, Willow.”
“What is extraordinary, Miss Russell, is the number of views under the picture. Which is now at over eight hundred thousand views.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 5
“I believe you’re right, Willow. It seems to be quite popular.”
“If the take-up of albums remains at half the views, that means that they’ve sold four hundred thousand.”
“My word. That’s almost enough for a gold record, or whatever they give out for a digital offering. These are local Coventry boys, you say?”
“I think so.”
“That will be nice. We haven’t had a good local band since The Specials. There have been some popular punk groups, but I don’t listen to that. I will have to tell the Head about this, but it isn’t linked to the school in any way. What you do in your own time is no responsibility of ours. We have had some promoters come and see us.”
“There were two at the dance last night. So was Bruce Miller from the Observer. He knows one, a Marcus Waddington, and is going to talk to him to find out his intentions.”
“When he saw us, it was about organising a recording session for the orchestra, to be issued by a low-cost classical label. The ones before just wanted to sign you all for a Deep Purple concert tour. One was particularly sleazy.”
“Rick is coming to see us, later on. If we can have the account number for the Roof Fund, we will give it to him, and you can expect to see some donations before next weekend.”
When the Roses went home, Wendy put on the kettle, and they sat in the kitchen. Ashley took a sip of his drink and looked at Willow.
“Did you hear Miss Russell say that there were promoters trying to sign you up at the beginning of the first term? The Head must have been forceful if they haven’t contacted you before. I like the idea of a classical CD, though, with my precious daughter listed in the orchestra. That’ll be one for the scrapbook.”
“Dad. With all the excitement, I forgot that the keyboard is still at the club. Can we go and get it, please?”
The two of them went in the car and collected the keyboard. Malcolm was setting up the front section for the Sunday evening.
“That was a tremendous show, last night. We were at almost capacity, and they weren’t shy about having a few drinks, either. I expect that there were several wives doing the drive home. A sing-along in two weeks, Willow?”
“Sure thing, Malcolm. We may have a few new songs for the first part by then. Got to mix things up or else it gets stale.”
“Nothing that you girls do is stale, Willow. If I were you, I’d find myself a manager.”
“We’ll pop back tomorrow evening to tidy up the stage area, so you can leave that to us.”
They took the keyboard and went home with it, taking it up to Willow’s room. She was listening to Carpenters songs and playing the keyboard set to piano when a car pulled up and the front doorbell rang. Wendy called up to tell her that Rick and Racheal were here. She went downstairs to be enveloped in hugs from Rick, Racheal, and Jacob. His hug was the best, and she kissed him on the cheek. They sat in the sitting room and Wendy raided the drinks cabinet, bringing out something a little stiffer than the earlier sherry. Jacob and Willow sat on a small sofa, close together and clutching glasses of cola, while the other sipped at their own drinks. Rick raised his glass.
“A toast to Willow Rose, who took an ordinary song and turned it into a hit. The rest of the band send their thanks. We were visited by Bruce Miller, this morning. Now that is one very cluey guy. He was a school with some of The Specials and gave us a lot of good advice. He asked me to hand this card on to you. It’s the contact for a manager who he says is a good guy. I have an interview with him tomorrow, but Willow may need him in a year or two. He’ll cost us fifteen percent, but what we earn prior to signing will be ours to keep.”
“With a hit single and album, I guess that you’ll be touring this summer.”
“I think so. That means that Racheal and I will need to get married before that, now that I will have something to offer her. I’ll go and see the Reverend next week, once we’ve sorted out a date.”
Wendy and Willow gave Racheal a hug. When they sat down again, Rick looked serious.
“I hope you don’t mind, Willow, but we’ll be getting an organist in the band, so we can play the hits. I realise that you won’t have the spare time to be hiking around the country in a coach.”
“That’s all right, Rick. It’s what I expected. Just make sure he has a good enough keyboard to recreate something close to the sound. Dad will give you the account numbers you’re after. Jacob and I have something to listen to upstairs. Mum gave me an idea for some new songs to play at the sing-along.”
She grabbed Jacob’s hand and pulled him out of the room, and upstairs. In her room, he looked around in wonder. She sat him on her bed and turned her laptop on. She had a list of Carpenters songs cued up, hit the play button and then went and sat beside him.
“There’s something I need to say, Jacob Epstein.”
“What have I done, Willow?”
“It’s what you haven’t done since the New Year party. It’s been a month, and you haven’t even tried to kiss me.”
“But there’s always been people around.”
“Do you see anyone else now?”
He grinned and put his arm around her. They kissed as Karen Carpenter sang that they’d only just begun.
They kissed and listened until Racheal called up that it was time to go. They embraced and kissed before leaving the room. Jacob smiled.
“I know most of the Carpenters songs. Richard was a good pianist and Karen played drums. We can do them on stage at the sing-along. Gina won’t take long to pick up the strings backing on the keyboard. She’s pretty friendly with Brent, so we can get him to play the drums for us.”
“That’s interesting, I wonder if Brent would be able to join us for the sing-along. Mum said that we sounded like the Carpenters last night, and we could do a segment of their slower songs.”
“Rach mentioned that similarity as well. This will mean that I can sing you love songs in full view and get away with it.”
“As long as you mean it when you say the words.”
“Oh! I will, my darling. I will.”
As Willow stood to watch the car leave, Wendy came to stand beside her.
“Good kisser, is he? You’d better go and repair your lipstick before your father sees you.”
“He said that when we sing love songs, he’ll mean every word.”
“And you’re trying to tell me that you won’t!”
Willow hugged her mother and dashed back upstairs to repair her make-up. They had a light meal and spent the evening watching the television. Willow went to bed, sitting where she had next to Jacob for a few minutes, before going to the bathroom and changing into her nightie. As she was drifting off, she thought to herself. ‘Yes, Mum, he is a very good kisser, and I think I’m in love, again!’
Monday morning was school. Willow was ready and in her school uniform before breakfast. Ashley gave them both a hug before he left for work.
“Finally! A normal day at last. Let’s hope that the week stays on an even keel. See you both tonight.”
Wendy drove the three children to school. On the way, Gina was brought up to speed on Rick’s success by Jacob, without letting on the amount of money that was being bandied about. Willow remained coy about how much her input had helped, saying that all she did was play an overdub on an existing track.
Willow was called to see the Head during lunch. She wasn’t away long and came back with a smile. Jacob and Gina were keen to find out what she had been told. She had been congratulated on the events of the weekend but didn’t say anything about that. She grinned.
“The dance band will be playing in the theatre on the evening of Friday week. They will be setting up tables and chairs, and we’ll be on the stage. The school canteen will be supplying food. It will have a limit of six hundred couples, and we start playing at seven to finish at ten-thirty. Dash around to the others and tell them. We will try to get a two-hour rehearsal on Thursday evening. This is what you get when you make the Head enjoy her evening out.”
The three went to other tables and advised the other band members of the plan. What she hadn’t told them was that the whole show was going to be filmed and recorded for a two-disc DVD. She went to Miss Russell and organised a rehearsal room for Thursday, after school.
On the way home, Willow asked Gina if she was keen on Brent. Gina was flustered but agreed that she liked him.
“Jacob and I are thinking about doing a segment of our show playing Carpenters songs. It was noted how much we sounded like them at times. I wondered if we could persuade Brent to join us at the club for our sing-along. That would give us me on piano, Jacob on guitar, you on the organ with other sounds, and Brent on drums. It would be idea if we wanted to make a recording as Summer Rose.”
“So, you want me to ask him if he’ll join us?”
“Actually, I thought that Jacob could talk to him at the orchestra practise tomorrow, that will allow us to find out if he’s keen on you.”
It was Wendy who commented that Willow was wicked.
That evening, Willow did her research on Carpenters songs, downloading the music and lyrics that she could. She also paid the pound for the Hikers digital album and listened to the other tracks. She decided that it was pretty good for a debut album and noted that the viewing numbers were now well over the million.
Tuesday morning was Willow’s turn playing the organ in chapel. At lunch, she had a message that the rehearsal room would be available, so went around all the band members to let them know that there was a practise on Thursday, after school. The orchestra session was with the combined one still, and they ran through the Albinez and a couple of other items. Mister Bamborough announced that they would be having one more combined session, then would go back to the junior and senior sessions on Tuesdays and Wednesdays, as usual in the second half of the term. He told them that the date for the next Cathedral event would be on the Friday and Saturday of the middle weekend in May, a week before the half-term holidays.
On the way home, they verified that Maisie would be picking them up late on Thursday. Nothing was said about Brent. On Wednesday lunch, he came over to their table and sat down.
“Jacob says that you would like me to play drums with you guys. How would that work?”
Willow took the lead.
“You know that we have the school dinner dance on Friday week. Well, we have our sing-along at the club the day after. We thought that, as the school will provide the drum kit here, if you bring your kit to the club next week, the four of us will be able to nail some new songs, as a quartet. We’re looking at a set of Carpenters pieces, and we could add them to the end of the dinner dance set as something different. They’ll be all smooth love songs to end the night, but easy enough to be played at the club while the audience eat.”
“That sounds good. So, all I’ll have to do is get my kit to the club on Wednesday or Thursday and pick it up in the holidays. What will the rest of the band do while we finish the evening?”
“We’ll get the school to drop the house lights so that the setting is more intimate and let them all join their friends or relatives for the last half-hour or so. Jacob and I will do the singing, as it’s comments made about how we sounded like Karen and Richard last Saturday evening. I see it as slightly night club, which will be fun for the other students.”
Brent grinned.
“Has anyone told you that you’re wicked, Willow?”
Jacob and Gina replied. ‘Everyone’, in unison.
That evening, Willow was at the club working with the choir ladies. Contrary to her father’s sense of doom, she had two extra voices who didn’t attend the church. They carefully worked through the choral piece that they had started last week, with Willow happy that the new additions were good singers, who had been despairing of finding a singing group in the village.
At the end of the evening, she was helping Ashley tidy up the club.
“Dad. I have a question for you.”
“Ask away, kiddo.”
“We seem to be here a lot, these days. With the choir, the sing-alongs and the dances, it’s a bit of a problem lugging the Yamaha here every time it’s needed. What if we dropped it?”
“Let me guess. You want the club to have one of its own.”
“What a great idea, Dad! Clever you for thinking of that!”
“All right, I give in. What’s the plan?”
“I wonder if we brought the Yamaha here on loan. With the money that I’m likely to be earning this week, will you allow me to spend a little over three thousand on a new unit. I’ve looked online, and there’s a store in Birmingham that carries the Nord range. They have an eighty-eight key similar to the Yamaha, but with the ability to preload a large number of soundscapes that you can switch to in the middle of a song. It’s several grades higher than the Yamaha, and has grand piano, but also electric piano, as well as a setting that gives an authentic pipe organ.”
“I’ll take you to Birmingham on Saturday, but only if there has been more than ten thousand added to your account before that. Hold on, I’ll check the account on my phone.”
He pushed buttons and inputted a code, then sat down, looked closely at the screen, then showed it to Willow. What she saw was a balance in excess of thirty thousand.
“What was it before, Dad?”
“On Sunday, after you asked about it, the balance was just under five thousand. I’ll check this with your mother, but I think that she’ll be happy to visit Birmingham on Saturday. We’ll make a day of it. It’s Gina in church on Sunday, so you aren’t needed in the village.”
They strolled home, happy in the knowledge that great things were happening as they did other things. Willow was cosy in her bed, with Tiger and Shaun, and wondering about the set-up that she wanted. If she brought home the Nord and a two-tier stand, she would be able to set up her trusty Casio on the upper tier, giving her a complete second sound and would get her used to single hand playing on both sets of keys.
On Thursday morning, Wendy was happy to be going into Birmingham, and had started looking up various shops that she wanted to visit. When she dropped the three off, she said that she would see Willow when she got home.
“Your Mum’s looking happy this morning?”
“We’re planning a trip to Birmingham on Saturday, to visit some bigger shops. It’s going to be a day out, and she’s been making a list of new things she wants to look at.”
“What are you going to look at, Willow?”
“We’re visiting a music shop. Just to look and learn.”
That afternoon, the dance band got together in the rehearsal room. When they were all settled, Willow asked for hush.
“Friends. We will be playing next week to our fellow students, the teachers and a lot of parents and general public. I spoke to Miss Russell at lunchtime, and she told me that we were nearly sold out in the three days that the show has been up on the website. What we do, now, is to have a run-through of the newer pieces that we added at the club. I don’t have to remind you that an official school show needs to be perfect. Now, Gina, Jacob, and Brent have agreed to form a quartet. We plan to perfect a set of Carpenters songs that we will add at the end of the evening. This will allow you others to go down and join your friends or relatives. One thing that I didn’t tell you at the beginning of the week, is that we will be filmed and recorded for a two-disc DVD set to be sold later.”
Herb asked when the extra songs would be rehearsed.
“We will rehearse them when we can, next week, at the club. We won’t do them if we’re not happy with them.”
“Can we come along?”
“Certainly. The more the merrier. You can be our critics. Bring your girlfriends. My father will open up and there will be drinks and chips available. It will give us all a chance to talk about where we plan to take this into the future. We may be asked to do more dances in the theatre, and we all know how much better that will be for our grades. The more we play, the better we sound. So, we had better start playing.”
They had the two Yamahas, and an amp for Herb and the other guitarists. Jacob played the Martin to a microphone. They worked on the newer songs that they had added, adding some extra bits to make it all sound better. When they finished, they agreed to get back on the following Thursday, to be prepared for the Friday performance. Brent would be bringing his drum kit to the club on Monday evening, so they set that evening as the Carpenters’ night.
On Friday, it was the last lesson on Music for the Media. All the submissions were played to the class and discussed, anonymously. That allowed open speaking on every entry without anyone being picked out. Most were passable, a couple were a bit so-so, and a few were praised. Mister Jamieson was pleased with the overall level of competency and flair, then told them that the second half of the term was going to be about drumming and drum programming to provide backing by remote control. He then let them off early.
Willow, Gina and Jacob were waiting in the foyer for Wendy to arrive. Willow thought that she had better come clean with her friend.
“Gina, there’s something that I need to tell you.”
“That you and Jacob are more than friends? That’s been obvious since the beginning of term.”
“No, not that. Racheal brought Rick to the church when I played last month. He liked the sound of the organ. A week after that, I was in the church overdubbing some tracks that his band had recorded. They released the main track on the internet while we were playing the dinner dance; with a link to buy the album.”
“’Love and Marriage’. I know. Zara sent me an email to watch it. Are you telling me that the organ track was you in St. Marys?”
“It is. The thing is that the band is giving me a slice of the profits, as well as giving the Roof Fund some. Our trip, tomorrow, is to see about getting me another keyboard with greater features that will help me as we move on. We’re going to take the Yamaha to the club and leave it there on loan, so we won’t have to lug it around every weekend. Would you like to come along?”
“You bet! What were you thinking?”
“A Nord Piano 5. I’ve checked it out online and it looks good. We can wow them in the music store. How about you, Jacob? You could keep my father company while us girls try on dresses.”
When Wendy picked them up, she was sounded out in regard to a couple of extras for the visit to Birmingham. She was happy that Willow had invited her friends and was involving them with her activities. Gina was happy to get the details of the hymns that evening if it meant a day in the big city. Ashley and Wendy had agreed to fund the expenses from their own bank account and transfer the total the following week, so Willow will be able to pay for the extra meals.
That evening, Ashley rechecked the bank balance, finding that what they expected to spend in the morning had already been added to the bottom line.
The next day, it was a happy group going to Birmingham. Wendy had decided that she wanted to go to the Bullring shops after they had sorted Willow out. They were in the company car which had enough load space for a keyboard and stand. They arrived at the music store that Willow had told her father to go to. The teens dashed inside to have fun with the floor stock.
When a salesman approached Ashley, he was told that his daughter wanted to see a better keyboard. The man wasn’t too interested until Wendy mentioned that her daughter had been taken with the settings on the Coventry Cathedral organ when she had played it. That brought out a sense of professionalism in the man, so he went to the two girls and asked what they were looking at. Willow told him that they both had a Yamaha 88, and she wanted to try a Nord 5. He took them over to one and Willow played around with it, being shown the extra things that it could do.
“I have an older Casio CTX5000, which I want to mount as a second tier. Is that possible?”
“It is, Miss. There is an input for the second tier, which can have its output controlled by the main unit. I can do you a good deal with one that suits. Is there anything else that you’re thinking of?”
“Yes. I have a laptop, and I want a program to act as a mixer so that I can record separate tracks.”
“That’s not a problem. They don’t cost a lot, but you’ll need a bit of training.”
“We all go to the Blue Coat in Coventry and are in the music stream. We’ve done a course on the technology and will be doing a course on mixing next term. Can you do a really special deal for two of these programs?”
“Can you tell me how you are paying for these items. If it’s on time payment, I may be a bit held back with super specials.”
“Have you heard about Rick Sacks and the Hikers new video track?”
“Who hasn’t. It’s all over the internet.”
“I did the organ track for the single and two other tracks. What they’re paying me from the income will more than cover what we’re spending today. I expect that my father will settle up with his credit card and transfer from my account, seeing that I’m still a minor.”
A new Nord Piano 5 was loaded into the car, after an hour of Gina and Willow playing the Nord and other keyboards, while Jacob enjoyed playing a lot of different guitars. They had a two-tier frame and a new seat, as well as two boxes with the software and two mixing boxes with a number of standard cable inputs to a single USB plug output into the computer. Jacob had a box with an effects pedal. They had also been spoken to by the manager, snagged a further discount and a letter on company letterhead, and signed by him, offering Willow Rose or any member of the band Summer Rose, support and sponsorship when they start playing live.
From there, they went to the Bullring, where Jacob and Ashley looked at manly shops while the three tried on dresses at several shops. They met for a late lunch at an in-store restaurant, and then went back to Stoneleigh. Dropping Jacob off on the way, with his box of tricks. He was just happy to have tried the guitars and being with Willow the whole morning. Gina gave Willow a hug as she was dropped off with her new mixing box and software. Willow knew that she would make good use of it, and that the cost would be negligible, if and when they were in the charts.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 6
That Saturday afternoon, Willow put the Yamaha in its box, added the support frame and her old seat, and Ashley carried the keyboard to the club, where they stored it in the stage storage area, telling Malcolm that it was on loan.
Back at the house, Willow spent the rest of the day setting up the two-tier support frame and settling the Nord into the lower tier. It took a bit of fiddling with the brackets to have the Casio safely housed, then she went about plugging in the cables. The output from the Casio effectively silenced the speaker, and her headphones silenced the speaker on the Nord, but the output was able to be sent to the computer through the mixing box.
That evening, she played with the new software, recording multiple tracks with different settings. She was in seventh heaven. She was already thinking that once she had learned about drum programming, there must be a unit that she could add to lay down a drum track.
Sunday morning, she stood with her family to sing the hymns while Gina played. Afterwards, they hugged before going over to the club for a hot drink. This was something that Ashley had started and was becoming quite a popular talkfest after the service. The hot drinks were free, but there were remains of last night’s cakes or bags of crisps to buy.
Gina and Willow had a long discussion about the new software and the use that they could make out of it. Willow was planning to record her own songs using it. With a microphone, she could add vocals, violin and clarinet, as well as the sounds she could generate with the Nord.
On Sunday afternoon, the two friends set up the Yamaha next to the piano and worked on the Carpenters songs, with Willow on the piano and singing, while Gina found string or brass accompaniment. The few locals having a drink enjoyed the entertainment. By the time they went home, they had sorted out fifteen songs that would just need Jacob and Brent to add their parts to.
That evening, Willow recorded her own three songs with just the piano and vocal to start with. It didn’t take her long to realise that she would need a good solid-state drive to store the songs on, or else she would overload the drive in the laptop.
Monday morning, she asked Wendy if she could drop into an electrical store and get one for her, brand wasn’t a problem, just the need for two terabyte or greater. The last week of the half-term was mainly going over what had been covered earlier, with them having more time in the library to make photocopies of charts and hand-outs.
Monday evening, she went to the club and set up for the quartet. Gina arrived and Racheal came in with Jacob and his Fender. Five minutes later, Brent arrived with his father, and they all helped carry the pared-down drum kit in and set it up. Brent had decided that the music would need more brushwork and a light touch. By the time that Brent left, they had worked through almost an hour of Carpenters songs, with the few locals entertained, as well as some of the other band members. Gina and Brent spent a few minutes in the storeroom, saying that they were checking on something. They came back with Gina looking a bit flustered. Willow and Jacob just hugged and kissed before he got in the car, with Racheal looking on with a smile.
Tuesday was Gina playing for chapel, and the orchestra session was a straight-forward playing of a few of the pieces that they had been rehearsing. Willow took her clarinet home with her that night. Wednesday was a normal day, and Willow had the organ to play when her choir were singing, giving her a better range to go with the choral piece, which the group was now singing well. Willow decided that they would start on something else next week.
Thursday, the after-school session had the band running through some of the more complicated pieces for an hour, then the rest sat back as the quartet demonstrated what they had achieved, with Jacob playing his own Fender for this. The others were full of praise for the set.
On Friday, the band members were all allowed time in the afternoon to set up in the theatre and get a sound check in. Willow spoke to the guys manning the lighting and organised for the lights to be lowered when she announced the last set. Wendy had asked for an early finish and picked them up. They went home to have a shower and change for the show. Gina and Willow had matching long dresses in a midnight blue, purchased on Saturday, which added a year or two to their apparent age, especially with make-up.
Ashley drove them in, picking up Jacob on the way. It was a squeeze in the back seat, but Jacob and Willow were happy with it.
The band was fed in the lunchroom before the show, with the audience arriving, getting seated and ordering drinks. The meals were being served when the band appeared on stage and got themselves ready. Willow made the welcoming announcement and then they were playing gentle eating music.
As the meals were finished and couples began dancing, they moved into standards for a while, then into more modern music for the teenagers to have fun. They had a short break as coffee and cheese was served, then took it to before ten with dancing and sing-along songs that had gone down well at the club.
Willow nodded to the others, who left the stage, and she made her announcement as the house lights dimmed.
“Ladies and Gentlemen, we will finish our performance with a set of songs that only need the four of us. We will be playing as a quartet tomorrow night at the Stoneleigh Community Club, should any of you enjoy an evening of singing drinking songs. We go by the name of Summer Rose, and this segment is something I call ‘Coventry Carpentry’. Please sing along if you know the words.”
As she said the last words, she was starting to play the introduction to ‘Close to You’, which had her and Jacob singing, with him having changed to his Fender. They played to nearly eleven, with a lot of couples dancing close together and a good number singing along. Willow announced that they we about to play the last song and thanked everyone for coming, which got some applause and cheering. Then they sung ‘We’ve only Just begun’. When the last notes died, there was a lot of applause and cheers, and the audience started to leave.
The quartet had a group hug, then the two couples hugged before they left the stage. The rest of the band, who had taken the opportunity to dance with their boyfriends and girlfriends, came over and they all had a big group hug. The Head came by to tell them that they were all magnificent and that they would be doing it again, during the next term, for all those who had wanted to come but weren’t able to be fitted in.
The film crews were packing up, with big smiles on their faces, and the sound guys were putting their equipment away. They would spend a while to collect up all the microphones they had used and remove all the cabling. Ashley and Wendy came and hugged all and sundry, took the quartet aside and then Ashley took a card out of his pocket.
“Guys, Bruce Miller was here tonight, and while you were doing the final set, he brought Marcus Waddington to our table. Marcus will be in touch tomorrow with a day while you’re on holiday, to record you with the Carpenters songs. He will make a CD of them and then see what the radio stations think, without telling them how old you all are. If the answers are positive, he’ll get enough CDs to sell on-line. There’s no way you’ll be taking the music to any other stages, but who knows what will occur. This last week has been crazy enough for me to believe that you’ll be in the charts, forty years after the originals.”
As the others hi-fived, he got serious.
“Bruce is talking to his friend who could be managing Rick and the Hikers. He will be in touch with an appointment. Brent, if you want to remain part of this, then you had better tell your parents. If they bring you to the sing-along tomorrow evening, then we can sit and discuss the implications. We were given a letter from the big music shop in Birmingham on Saturday. They have offered support and sponsorship for Summer Rose members. If you want to leave your drums at the club, I’ll buy a set for you to use at home. We can take it out of your earnings with the CD.”
“Thank you, Mister Rose. That would be fantastic. Here comes Dad to take me home. By that smile on his face, I think that he’ll be happy to let me record. Gina has my number if you need to get in touch. I’ll say goodnight and thank you for the opportunity to be part of this tonight. I’ve never experienced anything like it before.”
He gave his band members a final hug before going off with his smiling parents. Racheal had brought Jacob’s parents, and he went home with them. Maisie was there, ready to leave with Gina. Which left just Willow and her parents to go out to the car and go home. On the way, Willow was tired but awake enough to speak.
“That was kind of you, Dad, offering to buy Brent a kit.”
“I could see that it wouldn’t work without him, love. The heat that you and Jacob generated on stage was mirrored by the smiles that he and Gina were exchanging. To put it into musical terms, the four of you gave off the same vibes as ABBA.”
“And look what happened to their relationships.”
“That may be so, but they had fun and made a lot of money along the way. You have to remember that they started out a lot older than you and had all been in other relationships before.”
“OK, I’ll give you that point. Did you get some dancing in?”
“We did, and so did a lot of others. What you played was perfect for the occasion, and that final set was inspirational. You even gave out the name of the quartet and the title of the CD. As far as Marcus Waddington was concerned, you’ve done most of his work for him. He will fund the recording, and you’ll only start earning when the sales exceed the costs. He was talking to the Head as well, and I believe that she is getting ready to authorise time in the studio for the orchestra. I expect that it will be during your next holidays.”
There was silence from the back and Wendy glanced behind her. She saw that Willow was asleep. She whispered to her husband.
“You’ll have to repeat that last lot, darling. Our talented daughter has reached the edge of the cliff again.”
When they got home, Ashley carried Willow upstairs and laid her on the bed, noting, for the first time, the set up with the keyboards and computer. He looked at the notes on the desk and realised that she was laying down her own songs. He smiled as he went to the bedroom to undress. Wendy was already in her nightie and was cleaning off her make-up.
“Have we pushed her too far?”
“No, darling. She is gaining stamina with every passing performance. She just spent nearly four hours on stage entertaining about fourteen hundred people of all ages. That’s enough to take it out of anyone. Get into bed and I’ll sort her out. No tiger tonight, please, just slow and easy when I come back.”
Wendy roused her daughter enough to get her undressed and cleansed, then into her nightie and into bed.
“Goodnight, sweetheart.”
“Goodnight, Mum. I love you.”
“I love you too, my darling.”
They let her sleep in on Saturday. When Willow woke up, she was a little disorientated until she started to remember what had happened the previous evening. Then she thought about the club tonight, and smiled when she realised that Jacob would be with her for the evening. She wondered how much Gina’s attachment to Brent would change their own relationship.
When she had been to the bathroom, she put a gown on and went downstairs. Both her parents were only just finishing their own breakfasts, having stayed awake a bit longer last night.
“Good morning, dear. How are you feeling today?”
“Good, I think. Be better with some tea and toast.”
As she was eating, Ashley asked her how much she heard of the conversation in the car.
“I know that I asked you if did some dancing, but then everything went hazy.”
“I told you that Marcus Waddington was going to organise a studio this week, so that you can record the ‘Coventry Carpentry’ album. He’ll see if it flies with the radio stations. I expect that he’ll want the ‘We’ve only just Begun’ track as the lead single. We also need to get in touch with that manager that Bruce recommended. I spoke to Maisie last night, and she’s happy to ferry you around this week if needed.”
“That’s good, Dad. I need to go over to the church as it’s my turn tomorrow. Then, I’ll just relax until it’s time to head for the club. Talking about the Head, did I imagine you saying something about an orchestra recording session?”
“Yes. I said that I thought she was seriously considering it, possibly sometime in the next holidays. She was really knocked out by what you guys did last night.”
“So was I, Dad. It worked like a dream, didn’t it? The rest of the band are all good. It will be hard to keep them together.”
“As long as you keep Summer Rose as the main core, I’m certain that there’ll always be some wanting to join you on stage.”
Willow rugged up and walked over to the church. The Reverend and Edie were sweeping and polishing inside.
“Good morning, young Willow. That was a cracking show last night. You never cease to amaze with the things you come up with. We need to talk about tomorrow. The Bishop will be with us again, but it’s a casual service, with us both in suits. There will be four hymns and then there will be a presentation. Your friend Rick will be joining us with the rest of the band. It’s been arranged for him to give the church a bogus cheque for fifty thousand pounds, with Bruce Miller and others from the press on hand. Of course, the actual money is coming in electronically, so it’s for promotional reasons only. The band gets home-town publicity, the Bishop gets his face in the papers, and we get to have the roof repaired when the weather improves. I reckon it’s a result all round.”
“That’s great, Reverend. It all seems like a dream, after all, I was just here for part of an evening with them.”
“Sometimes that all it takes, my child. Now, I hear that the village choir is moving on to choral pieces.”
“Yes. We have got one item ready for public attention, and I’m going to start them on something a little harder this week, with different voices carrying different lines, rather than all together.”
“And what about you, Willow? That show must have taken it out of you, with another one tonight. Are you more able to last that time in the spotlight.”
“I went to sleep on the way home, last night. In the middle of Dad telling me that Marcus Waddington is going to get us into a recording studio this week. He’ll be getting in touch soon.”
“You make sure that you get as much sleep as you can. A growing girl can’t get enough, so they say.”
Willow looked at the hymns, saw that they were all bright and cheery, and went up to the organ to play them all. When she was happy with them, she went back down and helped Edie set out hymn books and tidy up the information table. She then went home. As she walked in the front door, her mother called out to her.
“Willow, there was a call for you from the clinic. They said that it was time for a review of your case. I told them that you’ll be in on Monday and your father will take you in, then bring you home in his lunch hour. I’ll make him some sandwiches that he can eat at his desk.”
“Thanks, Mum. It is getting towards three months since the last time, and I’m a bit itchy under the boobs. I’ve just been talking to the Reverend. We’ll have the Bishop with us tomorrow, and there’ll be a presentation of a cheque from Rick and the band. There’ll be press there, as well as Bruce Miller.”
“We had better look good then, won’t we?”
“It’s not about me, Mum. It’s between the band and the church.”
“And you don’t think that you won’t be dragged into the photos? You’re the one that played the organ, so we’ll need to be up early enough to glam up.”
Willow was struck with a thought and went up to her room to write some lyrics about a girl who was caught in a whirlwind of events that seemed to spiral out of her control. She was deep in trying to get a suitable tune when Gina knocked on her door.
“Hello, friend. Hiding away from the world in your cocoon of creativity, are we?”
“Not hiding, friend. I was just writing another song but can’t figure out how to finish it. How are you after last night?”
“I’m good, really. It was lovely when we played with just the four of us.”
“My Dad told me that we reminded him of ABBA, you know, the two couples bit.”
“Now that’s funny. Mum said the same thing on the way home. I hope that the Head won’t give us detention for being too lovey on stage.”
“I think the Head is all for it if we sell the merchandise. It will be good to see what the cameramen caught. That will take a couple of weeks before we see that. I was told that we’ll be in a recording studio sometime this week, laying down a ‘Coventry Carpentry’ album. That will be crazy.”
“Why crazy? You heard the singing last night. An awful lot of people know the words as that band were huge in the seventies. I think that the world is crying out for some soft rock instead of all this violent rapping. We may just be at the head of the game.”
“I suppose it depends on how it’s put out there. When we see Marcus, it might be good to mention the school had filmed our show. Then he can put one of the tracks out as a single on YouTube, with a link to buy either a download album, or the real thing. The school may even be able to tag along with that set as a live recording on DVD. A lot hangs on what can or can’t be done. That’s for brighter minds than mine to sort out. Are you ready for tonight?”
“Yes. Are we going with what we did at the last sing-along?”
“I think that we might add some Carpenters, seeing that we’ll be performing as a four-piece for the first time.”
“I didn’t think of that! We could smooch our boys in our breaks, that will be ten minutes every ten minutes.”
“You wish!”
“You bet. Now show me more of what this new machine can do that the old one couldn’t.”
They spent the rest of the afternoon exploring the Nord, with Willow learning more about it as they tried all the knobs and sliders. They only stopped for a bite to eat and were surprised when Wendy called out that it was time to start getting ready for the show. Willow showed Gina the dress she intended to wear before they parted.
Ashley joined them as they walked to the club. Willow brought him up to date on the church service in the morning. At the club, they were joined by Jacob, who had his parents with him this time. A few minutes later, Brent arrived with both his parents, able to come in a car without having to transport drums.
Even before the quartet were given a meal, it became apparent that the front of the club wasn’t going to fit everyone in, so the band and the parents helped set out tables in the back room. Wendy went into the kitchen with Edie, who was on her phone to the casuals who helped out at the dances. The customers were helping pull out tables and chairs and the band started moving the instruments. Gina and Maisie went home to bring her Yamaha back as the upright was too heavy to move.
Willow and Jacob pulled out the PA system, two of the Marshalls and set everything up. Gina and Willow would go through one, with Jacob setting the other to suit himself. It seemed like bedlam for a while, but they were able to have a quick snack before going to the back room and up on the stage, to see a good hundred and fifty eager diners waiting to be fed and to listen.
Willow looked towards the back of the room, and Ashley gave her a thumbs up. She spoke into her microphone.
“Welcome to the Stoneleigh Community Club and our regular sing-along. Tonight is so far from our usual audience, and we apologise, in advance, if the food is a little slow. We normally only cater for about fifty on these evenings. We’re Summer Rose, and we’ll start the evening with easy-going tunes to help you drink and digest. Please don’t sing with your mouths full.”
They looked at each other, smiling, and were into the same set that they had started last night with, but pared down to the four of them. It became apparent to the diners that these four musicians really enjoyed being together and entertaining. As the evening moved on, they went to the sing-along pieces that all the locals loved, and that all the new visitors learned to love.
At one point, later in the evening, the house lights went out, plunging them all into darkness. Some wag called out ‘Don’t put the lights out father, wait till we get in bed’. Willow suddenly remembered something in the music classes about the history of pop. It had been said that there was a dirty wartime ditty that used the tune of Colonel Bogey. She repeated the notes of what the wag had said on her keyboard and then went on with the tune. By the time the lights were on again, the crowd were laughing fit to bust, and the teenagers had learned the words. Willow had to grin to herself. The last line tended to resonate with her.
Normally, the sing-alongs didn’t have dancing, as the front rooms had no dance floor. Here, they were able to utilise all the space. The band took a short break, and she found Malcolm, asking if he could get the mirror ball and coloured spotlights going when they returned to the stage. When they were ready again, she spoke into her microphone.
“Ladies and Gentlemen. Being back in this room allows us to play you dancing music. Feel free to take your loved one and circulate. We’ll end the evening with songs that you can dance to, as well as sing along to.”
They started playing the standards for dancing, and the floor filled with couples as Malcolm turned the house lights down and started the mirror ball going. For the band, it was an amazing sight in the flashing-coloured lights.
They ended the evening with the Carpenters set. When they ended, there was cheers and applause. Many of the crowd got ready to leave, some ordered more drinks, and others came over to congratulate the band on a great evening of fun and laughter. Malcolm came over with four envelopes for the band, which he handed out with heartfelt thanks.
Jacob unplugged his Fender, and Gina got her keyboard ready to take home. A man came over to the front of the stage and spoke to Willow.
“Miss Rose, Rick Saxon told me that you were good, but that didn’t prepare me for what I’ve seen tonight.”
He pulled out a card and gave it to her.
“I’m Peter Hodgson and I’m going to be the new manager of the Hikers. I only came this way to make sure I’d find the church in the morning, but the crowds coming in here drew my interest. I believe that I need to arrange a talk with your father. If he’s at the church, tomorrow, I’ll bring the paperwork and save you a trip into Coventry.”
“He’s here, tonight, Mister Hodgson. He is on the board of the club. I’ll take you to him, I think he’ll be in the front bar, pulling last orders.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
For those of you not old enough to know dirty, wartime ditties, the one mentioned has four lines -
Hitler, he only had one ball,
Goering, he had two – very small,
Himmler was very similar,
But poor old Goebbels had no balls at all.
Chapter 7
Willow led Peter out to the front bar and introduced him to her father, then went back to tidy up on stage. Jacob gave her a look.
“Who was that?”
“If it works out, that’s our manager. Bruce Miller has recommended him and he’s coming along tomorrow to the church. There’s going to be a presentation of a cheque for the Roof Fund, and the Bishop of Coventry will be taking the service. Racheal will be there with Rick, so she might be able to bring you. I’ll be playing the church organ.”
“You mean that I won’t get zapped by lightning if I step inside a church?”
“You attend the school chapel. This place is just a lot older and more interesting. I will instruct the almighty that Jacob Epstein is one of the good guys. Your parents are over there, so pick up your Fender and walk, young man. I’ll see you in the morning.”
They slowly got the stage cleared and the equipment stowed in the storage area. Brent and Gina went behind the backdrop for a little canoodling. Willow made sure everything was neat and then looked at the hall, which looked like there had been a riot. The tables were haphazard, due to the rush to get them up, and there was plates and glasses still on them. Wendy found her, stacking dirties.
“Don’t bother with those, love. The casuals will be coming in tomorrow and clean up. We’ll walk home, your father is talking to a guy.”
“The guy is Peter, and he’s the manager that Bruce knows. He will manage Rick’s band when they’ve signed.”
“Come along, you did well tonight and need your beauty sleep to be ready to be part of tomorrow’s happenings. I suggest that you select something nice to wear tomorrow and hang it on the door hook to fall out.”
They left the club and walked home. The night was chill, and their breath hung like steam around their heads. The house was warm and cosy, and Willow suddenly felt tired, hugging Wendy and going up to get ready for bed. Wendy stood and watched her climbing the stairs, wondering where all that talent had come from. OK, there were two great grandfathers who played piano in pubs, but what Willow was doing at such a young age was unbelievable.
The next morning, Wendy roused a reluctant daughter to get up and in the shower. Willow was dressed in one of her better full skirts and a pink sweater when she came down for breakfast. Ashley was smiling as they ate, which looked almost creepy to Willow.
“What’s the joke, Dad?”
“No joke, just lots of good things. Last night, Peter and I had a good discussion and he agreed that he needed to rebuff any promoter who wants you touring and that you had to be allowed to finish school. He thinks that the idea of an album is a good one, if all you need to do is appear for interviews. He has the idea that you’re creating the brand ‘Willow’ with all the things that you’re involved with.”
“Brand ‘Willow’! Like some washing powder or toothpaste?”
“Exactly. There are products on the market that give their name to the action, like everyone saying that they’re Hoovering. It’s still only local, but Willow Rose is getting linked to brilliant organ playing.”
“Yeah, right. There I was in the Cathedral, willowing away. I need to get the church notice board changed to ‘W.J. Rose, church willower.’ If that’s the sort of thing he comes up with, is he going to be what we want.”
“That was just a bit of what we spoke about. He is a man with a lot of ideas. Some crazy, some not so crazy, but he thinks about his clients and what’s needed to further their careers.”
“My career doesn’t need furthering, Dad. Not until I graduate, and the Brand Willow will be yesterday’s news by then,’
“Maybe so, but we had better get going to the church.”
They arrived at the church as the bells started ringing and went inside. The heaters must have been on all night as it was cosy. Willow went up to the organ to start playing, Wendy went to help Edie with the flower arranging, and Ashley went over to the club to get the urn on and make sure the heaters were on.
Willow was playing Bach as the church filled. She saw Jacob come in with Racheal, and Rick with the rest of the band. There was a guy with a lump of a camera panning around the church and then pointed it up at her. She could just make out the logo of the local TV station on his coat. Bruce, Peter and Marcus came in, followed by another guy who she surmised was Zac. It was standing room only when the bells stopped, and she saw the Bishop and the Reverend appear in the centre aisle.
The service went as usual, with the Bishop giving the readings and the sermon, giving praise for the mysterious ways that his god worked. The four hymns were all rejoicing the wonders of the world, ending with ‘All things Bright and Beautiful’. The Bishop descended from the pulpit and asked everyone to silently pray.
He then turned to the congregation.
“Friends. We are gathered here to give praise for a small act of kindness and a large portion of talent. A few weeks ago, our church organist, Willow Rose, helped out a young band by adding the sound of this wonderful organ to some songs they had produced. I’m told it’s called ‘overdubbing’. In the short period since, that song has, I’m told, ‘gone viral’. The band agreed to pay a percentage into the Roof Fund, and we have Mister Richard Saxon, the lead singer, here today to pass over a cheque for fifty thousand pounds to Reverend Russell, as the donation to the Fund.”
There was applause and a TV camera light came on to allow the handover to be filmed. Rick was gracious, and the Reverend was duly thankful, and then everyone clapped. The local paper wanted photos and Rick refused unless Willow was included. Willow switched off the fans and went down to join the official party.
The paper wanted interviews and they all told the reporter that he could ask his questions across the road and over a mug of tea. For once, Willow wasn’t the last one in the church, as she was included in the main group heading for the club.
Once in the warm, she made sure to separate herself from the band and went to help Ashley dispensing the drinks, joined by Jacob.
“That organ in the video can’t be any other than the one in that church. It has a distinctive sound.”
“If you mean that you can hear its aging wheeze, then you’re right.”
“But you play it like an angel of music!”
“It’s a church, Jacob. You’re supposed to see angels.”
“I see my angel in all sorts of places.”
“You are so sweet, my lad, you could replace the sugar in that big bowl.”
They were interrupted by Racheal, who was letting Rick and the band hog the limelight.
“Anyone would think that those boys have made a hit record.”
“But they did, Racheal. It must had been viewed close to a million times.”
“Actually, Willow, it’s nearly two million but it’s slowed down. The odd thing is that there must be people who took a while to decide to spend the money on the album. Where it was running at about fifty-fifty, it’s now close to seventy percent that have bought the album. The boys are going on national TV next week in one of those chat shows. They’ll be showing the video, rather than playing. Rick is talking about buying a big house and a flash car, but I’m trying to keep him in the real world.”
“Good luck with that.”
“Will you play at our wedding? Not only the service, but the reception as well. There isn’t another band around that Rick wants other than you.”
“I’ll get my manager to talk to your manager.”
Racheal stood for a few moments and then saw the joke. That started them laughing. The Bishop came over and said hello to Willow, who introduced Racheal and Jacob.
“Ah, a pair of the original flock, with names like that. Did you enjoy the service?”
Racheal smiled.
“Rick and I have been to this church a few times, now. My little brother was here for the first time and was worried about getting a lightning bolt.”
“No need to worry, young man. The Lord grew up before electricity was invented. It would be more like having a slab of stone, covered in writing, landing on your head. Do I detect that you and Willow are a couple?”
“Yes, sir. We both go to the Blue Coat and play in the orchestra.”
“I don’t remember seeing you in the Cathedral Concert.”
“I wasn’t in the orchestra then, sir. I play guitar with Willow in the school dance band as well.”
“Ah! A guitar player. You know, I sometimes think that if Jesus had played guitar and travelled around as a troubadour, he may have got his ideas accepted and lived to a ripe old age.”
The Bishop gave Willow a hug and shook Jacob’s hand, then went off to get his picture taken again.
“Wow! If that’s the main man, I’m joining his party. He’s a great guy!”
“He also likes to play games, Jacob. He has a mischievous streak a mile wide. He will remember you when we play at the Cathedral again. If he had gone into politics, he would have been dangerous.”
Gina joined them.
“This is some show for our little old village. The TV guys have been filming the church and the surroundings. If we’re lucky, we may score a visit from the Antiques Roadshow next.”
“That would have to wait until summer. How are you this morning, friend. Lips sore, are they?”
“Not chapped enough, friend. That was an interesting night for us, the first outing of the Summer Rose Quartet went well. I didn’t expect the crowds, though.”
“Nobody expected that, but I reckon Malcolm will leave the tables in place in case it happens again.”
Ashley came over to them.
“Can you get a table and about a dozen chairs ready out the back, please? Just about everyone who are involved are here and we can have a conference to make some plans for the future.”
The four went to the back room and put together two of the tables. Wendy joined them with a damp cloth and wiped them down as they put chairs around it. Willow went off to get a couple of water jugs and some glasses. The activity in the front room abated as the reporters got their copy and the TV got their pictures. The villagers, agog with all the excitement, started going home. Ashley left Malcolm in the front bar and ushered the others to the back room.
When everyone was seated, Willow, Jacob and Gina sat together, with the Roses, Maisie, Racheal and Rick. They were joined by Bruce, Marcus, Peter and Zac Martin, as well was the three Russells and the Bishop. They had to pull another table up with chairs to fit them all. Marcus Waddington took the lead.
“As you know, this meeting is going to lay some ground rules and plans to allow the Summer Rose Quartet to become well-known but refrain from touring because of their age. I’ll lay out my part in it. I want to record a ‘Coventry Carpenters’ album. This will be taken around to radio stations and the media. My business partner, Zac Martin, will have that job with his connections from promoting pop concerts. After that, I will like a follow-up album if the first one takes off. I will fund the process until the returns outweigh the costs, then the band will start to be paid. That becomes Peter’s part of it.”
Peter had a briefcase which he had collected from his car.
“I’m here as the manager of Rick’s band, when they finally sign. I want to be able to manage the Quartet and the individuals that make it up, including additions and replacements. I will supply assistance with interviews and performances, with my initial fee being five percent of earnings. That will increase to the usual fifteen percent once the band, or individuals, come of age or are playing regularly. I will organise transport and logistics, as well as administration and financial services. I will open a trust account for every member and any earnings would go into that. Any payments earned, before I get your signatures, will be yours to keep. With Rick, I will only start taking my fee after the band have signed, as what they are currently earning is still theirs to keep. Of course, as all of the quartet are still underage, we will need the parents to authorise the contracts.”
The Bishop put his hand up.
“Are you telling me that I will need to pay Willow to play at the Cathedral?”
“Not if she is volunteering, no. The same with both her and Gina playing the church organ here. The school orchestra at the Cathedral is a grey area, which depends on whether the members of the orchestra get a financial return on their involvement, seeing that all of the quartet are members.”
Miss Russell came in.
“The school gets no payment from the BBC, except for a percentage of the DVD sales, which haven’t started yet. The school will use that income to pay for equipment. The money that was taken for our concert goes to charity after costs are taken.”
“That makes that clearer. As I said, the aim is to get the quartet played by the radio, and we will also create a Summer Rose website, with links to whatever video that we film. Miss Russell, I believe that the entire show on Friday evening was filmed?”
“That’s correct, our technical students will have something for us to put out as merchandise in the next half-term.”
“Can I ask that you put a premium price on the complete show and allow me to have a master of the Carpenters section. We can put up one of the songs as a leader on the website and have a paid download of the complete set that we’ll split seventy-thirty between the quartet and the school. It would work like Rick’s website, but we’ll charge extra because there are a lot more tracks. We will also have a link to buy the physical CD that Marcus will be recording.”
“What sort of timeline are we talking about?”
Marcus leaned forward.
“If we start getting management contracts going, I’m able to have a recording studio on Thursday, all day. We can have digital versions available the next week, with the CDs coming off the production line later that week, as long as the radio stations start playing it. I guess that we can be completely operational by the middle of next month.”
Willow put her hand up.
“What say do we have in all this?”
Peter smiled.
“You four get to say what you want to record, who you talk to, and how you live your lives at home and at school. Remember, once this starts to work, your status at school will be different. You’ll be celebrities, and it will be up to Miss Russell to handle that side of it.”
“Yes, Peter. It has already started to happen. When Willow rehearsed at the Cathedral, she played a bit of the ‘Organ Symphony’ to test the new devices we had for the choir. There was a camera over her, and she was singing along with them. The BBC want to promote her as the face of the advertising for the live concert, and I had a call from them on Friday to verify that she was, indeed, the Willow Rose that played organ on the smash hit with Rick’s band. I’m afraid that she is already on the way to being a celebrity. They have already bought copies of our school DVDs and have asked for permission to use cuts from these. We haven’t given that permission, yet, but if we agree that there’s a contractual requirement, we can ask them for a payment, with residuals, that we will split with Willow.”
“Does anyone else have any questions? If not, I need to ask the parents here if they have any reservations.”
Ashley said that it all seemed reasonable, as long as the children were able to continue with their schooling. Maisie agreed. Racheal said that Jacob’s parents would need to be spoken to. Peter asked if anyone could contact Brent, so Gina pulled out her phone and called him. When he answered, she told him what was happening and asked him if he could get his parents and put his phone on speaker.
When the parents were listening, she quickly described what had happened that morning, named all of those around the table, and told them that she, and Willow, would be signing with Peter as their manager. She then pushed the phone towards Peter, who outlined what had been discussed. At the end of the conversation, Peter asked for, and got, Brent’s address with an appointment to see the family that afternoon.
The paperwork was signed by Willow, her parents, and Maisie and Gina. The band’s payments to Willow would be diverted to her new account when it was set up. Racheal had a grin and asked.
“Mister manager. I asked Willow if she would play at my wedding. She told me that I needed my manager to ask her manager. With you handling both her band and Rick’s, it will be a good promotional event. Perhaps you can organise one of the magazines to pay for exclusive rights, split both ways, of course. What do you say?”
“I say that I think it’s a great idea, and something that I’ll start my office thinking about. Have you set a date yet?”
“Not firm, but it will be before summer, perhaps after Easter. Willow is already booked for a society wedding before Easter, and I’m sure that the church or the Cathedral will have plans for her over the Easter weekend.”
“A society wedding. Who are the lucky couple?”
The Reverend took over, telling them about Cassandra and Terry, and Willow’s link to Cassandra’s family, by association. This was news to Jacob, who had a big grin on his face. He whispered to Willow.
“I promise to stop calling you my angel, from now on you’re my Princess!”
“You dare, Jacob Epstein. Just you dare!”
There was general talk, a few niggling points cleared up, and then Bruce, Peter and Marcus went out to their cars to follow Rick as he took Jacob home. Willow and Gina made a start on the mess until the casuals came in to take over. As they were working, Gina was a bit quiet.
“What’s the problem, Gina?”
“I was just thinking about how we’ll be treated at school.”
“The thing is that we just be ourselves, without getting above ourselves. Everyone will then start to see that we haven’t changed. We will probably be on the ‘A’ list for evenings in the theatre, but, besides that, we’ll just continue to be members of the orchestra and ordinary students. If we continue with the sing-alongs and dinner dances, Malcolm will need to send our payments to Peter. That will provide a small, but steady income.”
“He paid us fifty, each, last night. That, alone makes me independent.”
“Wait a while, and then we’ll tap Peter for a regular transfer from our accounts. The cash in hand will have to stop. If the album takes off there will be enough money coming in to see you right.”
Gina and her mother left, with the girls having made a time to meet on Tuesday, with Maisie taking them into the city. They were pencilled in to talk to the Bishop, who was a bit cagey about what he wanted to talk about.
When the Roses walked home, they were all quiet. Inside, Wendy put the kettle on, and Ashley opened his laptop. He checked the account balance. He whistled.
“I was a bit conservative when I estimated your income, rich daughter of mine.”
“Rach told me that the video had got to two million, with an album take-up of around seventy percent. That would be one point four million, so my account should be close to seventy thousand. Am I close?”
“Just a whisker shy of that, you clever thing. That’s also after the money I transferred back into my account after your shopping spree.”
Wendy, who was pouring out mugs of tea, sat down with a thump.
“Did I just hear you say seventy grand?”
“That’s what it says here. Whatever is in here will be more than enough for Willow to go to Cambridge. It may even allow her to go for a sex change privately. When you’re talking to the doctor, tomorrow, you may want to bring that up.”
“I will Dad. There must be some way that I can get in earlier.”
They had lunch and Ashley went out into the back garden. The temporary storehouse was looking worse for wear, so he decided that he would investigate a proper shed, big enough for all the odds and ends that were taking up space.
Willow went up to her room, thinking about her own songs. She decided that she would only record them as piano, organ, or other sounds over the vocals. That way, they could play them as the quartet. If she did the vocal, piano and organ, she could email each track to the other to work out what they wanted to do with them. She would make the organ part simple, to allow Gina to fill in with more complicated arrangements.
She saved the output, so far, to her new SSD storage, and made room on the laptop for a second go at her songs. By the end of the afternoon, she had laid down the new tracks, and had started thinking about her fourth song, as well as investigating the internet for suitable songs. She entered ‘Young Love’ into her search engine, and immediately came up with a song that she loved. It was from the fifties, by Sonny James. She copied the audio track to her laptop and downloaded the lyrics. After hearing it a few times, she added her vocals and backing to her ‘new song file’ then went down to help her mother make dinner.
After dinner, her phone rang. It was Jacob to tell her that his parents had signed the paperwork to allow him to be part of the band. He said that his father was a little sceptical about the future earnings, but went along with it, considering that there were a few years before he came of age. They spoke for a while and Willow asked him for his email address to send him some sound files that he might like to add to.
Five minutes after they hung up, her phone rang again, with Brent telling her that his parents had signed. He apologised for it being a bit late, but he had been on the phone to Gina for an hour. Willow got his email with the promise of sending him something to work on. He told her that his father was taking him to Birmingham in the morning, to look at drums. His father would pay, and he would scan and email the account for her father.
In her room, she turned on her laptop and sent both boys the four sound files and the link to the original song, then sent Gina the same, with a note that these were new songs that Gina had heard three of some weeks before, after the break-up with Alec. She went to bed early, to catch up on her sleep, happy with the outcomes from a momentous day.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 8
The following morning, Willow told her father about Brent going to buy the drums and that the account will be emailed.
“You can pay for them out of my account, Dad, and transfer a thousand to the debit card account I use. When Maisie takes Gina and me into Coventry, I’d like to take them to a decent lunch. The way that Maisie has pitched in with everything is amazing.”
“That’s all right. I’ll do that tonight. Just make sure that you’re not Miss Moneybags. You may need that nest egg later on.”
With his sandwich in his briefcase, he drove Willow to the clinic at Gaydon, then went on to work. Willow presented herself at the reception and was sent to a waiting room. She had enough time to look through a couple of old magazines before she was called in. She was instructed to strip completely and put on the paper gown. Over the course of an hour, she was prodded and probed, had the solvent treatment on the glues and was in her original state, minus some fluids, to be looked over by the doctor.
“How are you doing, Willow?”
“Really good, Doctor. School is good and I’m making music. Me and my bestie share the organ duties at the church now, and we’re now doing regular sing-alongs and dances in the club. Our last show, on Saturday night, had us as a quartet for the first time.”
“What about yesterday, I thought that I saw you in some event that the news had filmed.”
“Yes. I was at the church when a cheque was handed over for the Roof Fund. The Bishop was there as well.”
“From what the reporter said, the cheque was all down to a teenage organ player who overdubbed the church organ onto a global hit.”
“Well, that too.”
“How many videos are you in, now?”
“Two on the school website, plus another currently in production. Then there’s a BBC DVD coming out with the concert in the Cathedral. We go into a studio on Thursday, to record an album of Carpenters songs.”
“I liked them. They were non-confrontational. It’s good to see that those scars are fading, a bit of foundation should allow you to wear a backless dress in a year or so. Now tell me, are you having any pain passing water?”
“Actually, except for feeling pressure in the bladder, I feel very little. It’s a good job I sit to pee.”
The doctor pulled up a couple of the scans from the previous time.
“There was a very slight shadow around the base of the penis, last time. I’m sending you up for another scan. When are you being picked up?”
“Dad will be here at his lunch period. He has time to take me home and come back to work.”
She was taken to radiology on a trolley and was carefully scanned and the put in the MRI machine again. Redressed and back down with the doctor, an hour later, she was allowed to sit on a chair while the doctor looked at the computer. She had ordered urgent processing, and her fears were proved right.
“Willow. How soon do you want sexual reassignment?”
“As soon as possible, doctor. As part of my involvement with that hit single, I’ve earned enough to pay extra for private, if needed.”
“I should wait for your father, but I’ll tell you what I think has happened. When you were kicked, it did more than close off the tubes to your testicles. Over the years, the area around the base of the penis has started to discolour. If we do nothing, it will turn gangrenous and that’s not good at all. We need to operate within a couple of months. It will be as close to a sexual reassignment operation as we can make it, taking out the bad cells and rerouting the urinary tract. Is there a time within that limit that’s good for you?”
“The term ends at the end of March, and I have two weeks holiday. I have an appointment to play at a wedding on the weekend before Easter. How long will it take to heal?”
“You should be up and around inside a week, considering that the testicles no longer exist. Stiches will come out around ten days later. I think that you would be all right to play the organ, but no dancing. I’ll book you in for the Monday morning of the holiday. I’ll run it by your father, and we can work out any extra costs, but, being needed to save you from the chance of life-threatening problem, it will be on the National Health.”
“I think that there is only a week that we’re back at school, and then we have the Easter break, so there will only be four days at school. I can manage that, and Gina can take my place at the organ if it’s needed.”
“Head down to the café for a while. I’ll leave a message with reception to send your father here. When I see him, I’ll phone the café to send you up. If it takes too long, I can authorise a taxi to take you home. The thing is; if you have any unusual pain or notice anything in your urine, call me immediately.”
Willow thanked her and went down to the café, where she had an early lunch of pasta and salad, followed by cake and ice cream. She was drinking a cup of coffee when the girl who tidied the tables came over and told her to go up to her doctor’s office.
When she arrived, the assistant told her to go straight in. Her father stood and hugged her closely, tears in his eyes.
“Don’t cry, Dad, this only brings everything forward a few years. It will make it harder for anyone to out me.”
“It’s just a shock, honey. You’ve been so alive in the last six months. I had this sudden fear that if we didn’t do anything, we might lose you.”
The doctor had some pictures on her screen now.
“This is the picture that shows the problem best, Willow. You can see the darker parts, which were just a shadow six months ago. I’ve spoken to the office, and we can fit you in on that first Monday of your holidays. Now, we didn’t reglue you, so will just put a plaster over your groin with a gap to pee through. It’s the same as you had after the first operation. What I can’t guarantee, at this point, is whether you’ll be able to feel any sensations in what we create. You will have to dilate regularly, and when you do that, you’ll be able to report what you feel. We won’t reattach the breasts either. You have enough growth to buy bras with an uplift and look close to what they were.”
“Thank you, doctor. I’ll see you in a month.”
“You look after yourself, Willow, and slow down. If you go next door, the nurse will apply the cover, while I talk to your father a bit more. If he wants to go back to work, I’ll order the taxi.”
Ashley and Willow were in the café when a taxi driver came in and called out ‘Taxi for Rose’. She hugged her father and followed the driver to the foyer. The trip home was interesting, with the taxi being an electric one. When she got home, she went in and played her organ with the volume up, playing along to Deep Purple, her old go-to soundtrack when she was feeling vulnerable and scared.
When she had settled down again, she started writing a new song, one of looking into the unknown and with the concept that the unknown could be fatal. When she had recorded the vocal and an organ track, she saved it for later, when she was convalescing.
By the time her parents arrived home, she was in a better frame of mind than they were, once Wendy had been told the outcome of the visit to the clinic. It was an evening of discussion, and plans. There were many hugging sessions before she went to bed.
Tuesday morning, after her parents went to work, she waited for Maisie to pick her up. She was looking forward to the day and was prepared to make sure they enjoyed themselves after seeing the bishop. The trip in was a welcome return to normality. Willow told the others that she wanted to go shopping for new bras, and the others wanted to look for material for an order for wedding dresses.
At the Cathedral, they had to wait a while to see the Bishop. Willow looked at the big artwork behind the altar and wondered if life was ordained to be a series of problems to be endured. When they went to see the Bishop, he was very cheery.
“Good morning, ladies. I suppose that you’re wondering why I needed to see you here, rather than talk to you on the weekend. The thing is, I have a problem. My organist has a family problem with his son in Germany. The lad went over there to learn new building techniques. He fell off a scaffold and is in hospital. Can you girls help out?”
Willow looked at Gina, who asked the question.
“What days, and how long, sir?”
“It will be this Sunday, both the morning service and Evensong, which Willow has already had experience with. Then Sundays next month. He has told me that he should be back for the Easter services. You girls will probably have a lot to do at St. Marys during that weekend. If he goes back to Germany after Easter, we may need you for a few more weeks.”
Willow could see Gina smiling.
“If Gina’s mother doesn’t mind bringing her in, mine will be able to bring me, sir. You were at the meeting on Sunday; is there any payment with this, seeing that the organist is a salaried employee of the Cathedral?”
The Bishop smiled.
“Can’t get anything over you, young lady. You’re right. What I’m asking is beyond what I would ask of a volunteer. There will be a payment, so I’ll have to sort that out with your manager. I have his number. Now, do you think that you can do it?”
“I can do it this Sunday, sir. Gina is at Stoneleigh this week. If we can have a little while with the organ, today, I’m sure I can give her enough information to be good for the week after, when I’m at Stoneleigh.”
“What about you, Gina?”
“If I can get some time on the organ, sir, I think that there won’t be a lot of difference that would be heard by your congregation. I’ve learned a lot from watching Willow play, and my time at St. Marys has given me an appreciation of how church music should be played.”
“Excellent. Are you in agreement, Mrs. Summer?”
“If I can sit in the Cathedral and hear my daughter on the organ, Bishop, I would carry her over hot coals.”
“I don’t think that would be necessary, Mrs Summer. See my Dean and he’ll give you the times and the hymn numbers for this week. The Evensong hasn’t been finalised yet so give him your emails and he will keep you both up to date in the days before the services. Thank you for helping me out. There are several other organists that I could have called on, but there are none who carry the same reputation as you two among the church community.”
The Dean was waiting for them when they left the office, and he took down all the details to contact them. Willow had Peter’s card in her bag, and he took those details to organise the payments. Then Maisie sat in the pews as Willow took Gina up to the organ, showed her how to turn it on and off, and pointed out the stops that were different to the one in the church. There were some sheets on the music holder, one a normal hymn, and another one that was an Evensong tune.
“Look, Gina. I’m not here to tell you how to suck eggs. Play some Bach to get warmed up and then have a go at these pieces. I’m going to go and sit with your mother.”
Gina stood and hugged Willow.
“Thank you, friend. This is such a privilege and an honour. I’ll turn it off when I’ve finished.”
“Then I’m taking you two for lunch before we go shopping.”
Willow went down to sit next to Maisie while Gina played the usual welcoming music. She saw that Maisie had tears in her eyes.
“Something wrong, Maisie?”
“Nothing wrong, Willow. Just that I’m sitting here, in Coventry Cathedral, listening to my daughter on the organ. I have to thank you for being the pathway that brings us here. I don’t have any idea what Gina would have done without you to give her a lift up.”
“It’s me that has to thank you for allowing me into your lives. I’ve told Gina that I’m taking you for lunch after this. Is there anywhere that you would like to go to? My treat, from the payment I’ve received from the Hikers album sales. After that, we go shopping. Excuse me for a moment, I need to let my mother know about the arrangements.”
She went outside and rang her mother at work.
“Hi Mum, I’m calling to let you know about something we’ve just discussed with the Bishop. He wants the two of us to alternate at the Cathedral on Sundays for a while. His usual organist has a problem in his family.”
“All right, dear. What’s the plan?”
“Gina is in the church this Sunday, and I’ll be needed here for the service and Evensong, like we did last time. I expect that there’ll be no lunch thrown in, so we can go into the city for a couple of hours. We then alternate until the organist comes back. He has promised to be back for Easter, anyway. After that, we just have to see.”
“What about you and your operation?”
“If I’m not available, then Gina will have to sit in, and the Reverend can lead the singing without an organ. He did it for five years, so it may be a shock, but nothing new. The fact that both of us will be here, in the Cathedral, for a few weeks, will make him feel good, anyway.”
“What are you doing now?”
“I’m taking the other two to lunch, and then I need to shop for new bras to suit my budding boobs. I’ll arrange to meet up with them after they’ve been to the haberdashers.”
“Tell Maisie to drop you off at my work. I’ll take you home. If you get any more posters, I’ll get my friends to laminate them for you. I think that my boss wants to talk to you about the show on Friday. I saw him there, but we didn’t have a chance to speak.”
“All right. I’ll see you later.”
She went back to sit by Maisie as Gina let loose with the Evensong piece. Willow could hear a new Gina, a girl who had climbed the mountain of organ works and was now sitting at the summit, looking at the view and singing. She leaned towards Maisie.
“Your daughter has just discovered how good she really is.”
“I know. It gladdens my heart to hear her now. She is really telling that organ what she wants, and it’s following her orders. There’s no way that she will be consigned to be a seamstress now. That money I spent on that Yamaha has been repaid several times over.”
They sat, with Willow looping her arm through Maisie’s, until Gina decided that she had done enough. When she came down, her mother held her for a while, and then let Willow give her friend a hug. Maisie drove them to a nice restaurant, and they had a good meal, with Gina almost hyper, only calming down by the time they got to the ice cream.
“Welcome back to Planet Earth, friend.”
“Have I been that bad? It was such an uplifting experience. It was if there was someone beside me telling me that I could do it, and I did!”
“We heard it, friend. That was a great performance. There’s no problems for you when you come in. The only thing that the two of you need to think about is what you’re going to do between the service and Evensong. I rang my mother, and she wants you to drop me off at her work on the way home.”
They arranged to meet at the café in the shopping centre, and Willow was dropped off there. She went to one of the better lingerie shops and walked in. When a girl asked her if she could help, Willow was happy to tell her that she’d been using enhancers but had now developed enough to go for new bra and panty sets to suit her new breasts. She was in the shop for a good two hours, being measured and trying on different styles.
When she left the shop, she had bags with her new sets, her old set and the enhancers. She was wearing a new set of uplift bra and padded pants. The assistant had seen her groin covering and was told that there were stitches that needed to come out later. This was a new Willow, one who was embracing life, having realised that life can be fleeting. She had also spent some money on slips and nighties, more expensive than anything she had in her drawers.
She went to the shop where she had bought posters and got a lovely one of Karen Carpenter looking happy. It was, to Willow, yet another reminder that life is only as long as it lasted, and to make the most of it. She sat in the café, having a cake and coffee, to wait for the others. She had her notebook, and some lyrics came into her mind about shopping for the good things in life. When the others joined her, they had drinks of their own, and then they went down to the car.
When Willow went into the factory reception, the girl had a brilliant smile on her face when she saw who had come in.
“Willow Rose, you are my absolute hero! We went to that school show on Friday, and it was a blast! My parents were on top of the world, excuse the pun, and I was able to dance with my boyfriend holding me close. It was lovely. I’ve also downloaded that album that you played on. Go on through, your mother’s expecting you. Leave your bags with me if you want.”
Willow went through to where her mother worked, to be hugged.
“Well, my darling. You’ve helped Gina up another rung. How did she go?”
“She reached the top, Mum, and then took off into the sky. It was amazing. I sat with Maisie and we both had tears in our eyes to listen to how she played. The spots will be paid, and I left them the details to talk to Peter.”
“Even better. How are you after yesterday?”
“Really good. I bought a poster of Karen Carpenter looking good. It will remind me to enjoy life and stop trying to help others so much. It’s in my bag in reception.”
“Run back and get it. I’ll get the laminator warmed up.”
Willow went and got the poster, and Wendy laminated it for her. The guys were talking to them when the boss came in. He took the two of them into his office.
“Willow. I was at the show on Friday evening. I had expected to be listening to the normal school event. I didn’t expect the show that we saw. My daughter had only come along to hear you sing but spent the night dancing. Now, as you know, we produce brochures for various companies, as well as stocking some of the imported lines for them. I have a customer who puts out a brochure with fashion, and I mentioned that I knew you. She’s keen to have you model for her, with teen outfits. My daughter has done it for her and will be now in the younger woman pages. Do you think that you could see her?”
“I suppose it wouldn’t harm, sir. I won’t be able to be in the Spring pages but should be ready for the Summer brochure. We’re recording the Carpenters set on Thursday, to be put out as an album, and will be pretty busy for a few months. This morning, Gina and I were asked to alternate at the Cathedral on Sundays for a few weeks, and we do have a big performance there in May with the orchestra.”
“My, you are one busy teenager! I’ll give you her card, and you can make your own mind up. She does pay well.”
“That will make my manager happy.”
He grinned.
“I had to expect that; you Rose women are level-headed and prepare for things. You’re just like your mother, who I am very happy to have employed.”
They took the card, left his office, and Willow sat, watching her mother working on the computer.
“Mum, do you have that program at home?”
“I do, love. It’s knowing my way round it that got me the job.”
“It wouldn’t be a big call for you to design our album cover, would it?”
“Do you want something around pictures of the band, or something more creative?”
“The pictures can go inside; perhaps something based on the first song, which will be ‘Close to You.’ I can see cartoonish depictions of the band members as two couples with birds above them on tree limbs. Perhaps with the girls holding bunches of roses.”
“Now, that’s really good. I can see it already. You must have some of my genes in you.”
They left the warehouse when Wendy knocked off, and drove home, with Wendy thinking about the album cover.
“Are there any other covers that you’re thinking of?”
“It depends on whether we bring in the rest of the band. Not the dance band, but the guys that I did the Moody Blues set with. We could do a cover version with that set, but I’m thinking of the set we rehearsed but didn’t play at the school, with the urgency of putting on the two Blue groups show. We covered a complete album from a band called Kansas. Gina joked that we could have a picture of me in red shoes and call it, ‘This Ain’t Kansas’.”
“But you have another idea?”
“Just an extension of the original. If we have the drawn picture of the two of us, on the yellow brick road, looking around, we could call it, ‘This can’t be Kansas’. It sounds better as far as literacy goes. Because we haven’t done it for the school, it could be an out of hours project for the other band members to give them some income.”
“How many are there?”
“Well, there’s Herb, Victor, and Roy. They’re all guitarists. Brent was the drummer and he’s already signed on. Then there was me and Gina on keyboards. If we add Jacob to the line-up, there’s a killer track called ‘Dust in the Wind’ which will sound good with his Fender. Alec was the singer, but I doubt that he would be allowed to be part of it. Jacob can do most of the singing. So that will be seven of us.”
“I remember that song. It was in the charts when I was younger. Isn’t it a bit dark?”
“Not in context with the rest of the album, which ends with everyone on earth dead and an alien visitor singing that ‘nobody’s home’. It would be an interesting flip side to the smooth Carpenters. If Peter is able to get the masters of the Moodie’s and Purple concerts, it would show a huge range of material. Perhaps Peter will be able to sign the G-Force up and get them out there, digitally.”
“Wouldn’t that go against the Head?”
“She doesn’t want them touring, so a digital footprint will give them some exposure, maybe a bit of money, and a foundation to go on stage later. From what I’ve seen, the local pop shows are a thing of the past, with venue hire and insurance cutting into the profits.”
When they arrived home, Willow took the enhancers out of the bag.
“Here Mum, do you want to hide these away?”
“Did you get new ones when you were shopping.”
“No, Mum. The clinic didn’t put them back, and I wore them loose today. What you see is all me with a push-up bra. I bought several sets today.”
Wendy hugged her daughter.
“My, my. Whatever happened to my child who didn’t want to even go into a dress shop when they were young?”
“She grew up to be a teenager, Mum. The girl in the shop was very helpful and told me that she had served a lot of girls like me. You know, flat chested until puberty but ashamed of it.”
She went to her room and put everything away after snipping the tags. Her previous bras were put aside for when she had boobs big enough to fill them naturally. She spent the evening, after dinner, writing lyrics about a girl shopping for bras without her mother pointing to the wrong things.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 9
Wednesday was a clear day, so Willow went over to the vicarage to speak to Reverend Russell. She found him in the church, polishing the altar furnishings.
“Good morning, Willow. Another fine winter’s day out there. What can I do for you?”
“Yesterday, Gina and I were asked to fill in on alternate Sundays at the Cathedral. The organist has gone to Germany to see his son in hospital. It may be for a few weeks, starting this Sunday.”
“Well, well. That’s a feather in our cap! Both of our organists playing in the Cathedral. I’m sure that there are others he could have asked.”
“He said there was, but none that had the standing within the church community. I think he likes us.”
“So, when we have one, the other will be in the city.”
“There may be a period where I have to go into the clinic for a minor procedure. I’m told that I’ll be up and around inside a week, but there may be a Sunday when the organ sits quietly.”
“That’s not a problem. It sat quiet for a lot of years, so a day without it won’t kill us. Your ladies' choir can lead the singing. They’re really getting quite good. They will be in big demand come Christmas.”
When she left him, she went home and sat writing lyrics and thinking about tunes until lunch, ate a small meal, and continued at her desk until mid-afternoon. She then committed three new songs to the computer, all from the aspect of a teenage girl and becoming a woman. She was already thinking of it as an album called ‘Journey’.
After dinner, she walked with her father to the club, where he opened up and she got the Yamaha set up. When the ladies arrived, she handed out the lyric sheets.
“Now, ladies. Today we are going to do something different, and something a bit harder. This is the stepping stone towards true choir singing. If you look at the lyrics, you will see that I’ve highlighted your copy. Those are the words you will sing. There are eight of you, and I’ve split you into three groups, by voice type. There are three different colours used. I will play the piece a couple of times, and you can sing along using all the lines. Then we will start with you only singing your highlighted lines.”
She played the music of the first verse to give them a sense of the tune, then played as they sang. She ignored slip-ups on the first and second tries, then they did it the third time without a problem. She gave Ashley a nod and he gave her the thumbs-up.
“Ladies, so far, you’ve done well. We’ll have a short break to allow you to forget everything I’ve said and then will do things the hard way. By the way, on Sundays, for a few weeks, me and Gina will be playing the organ in the Cathedral. Evensong is between four and five and is a wonderful chance for you to use those beautiful voices of yours if you want.”
They stopped for a hot drink and some crisps. After a comfort stop, Willow arranged them in the three different groups. When they were ready, she played the piece, and they sang just the highlighted parts. When they finished, they all knew that they had turned the corner. She took them through it again, and then they sang the piece that they had sung the previous week. Then it was time to pack up and go home.
On the walk home, Ashley remarked that he was getting prouder of his daughter with every passing day.
“That was almost easy, Dad. Those ladies want to sing, and I’m just helping them along. It’s tomorrow that worries me. I’m being picked up first, and I’ve never seen inside a recording studio. What I’m worried about is that it won’t have any atmosphere and the operator will want us to do things his way.”
On Thursday morning, she was looking out of the front window when a car came into the street. She put her big coat on and went out, locking up behind her. The driver was Zac, and she got in the front seat.
“Good morning, young Willow. Ready for the start of your career?”
“I’m not sure, Zac. I’m worried about the studio.”
“Don’t worry. I’ve been there before. The operator is a nice guy, called Jock McBride. He’s very good at what he does and will listen to what you want.”
They stopped at Gina’s house, and she got in the back.
“Good morning, friend. Good morning, Zac. Will you be doing a lot of driving us around?”
“When you’re famous, there’ll be other drivers, but, for now, you’ll have to put up with me.”
They directed him to Jacob’s home, and Zac got out to put the guitar case in the back. They spoke about their week so far, with the girls surprising both the males with the news that they would be alternating at the Cathedral for a few weeks. Jacobs eyes lit up.
“When are you playing, Willow?”
“This Sunday. My Mum will be taking me in.”
“Can you pick me up, please. I’ve heard a lot about the place, and it will be awesome to hear you play.”
“It will be a long day, Jacob. I play for the morning service and then have to hang around in the city to go back to play the Evensong between four and five. You’ll have to get your parents approval to be out all day.”
“What’s this Evensong?”
“It’s an hour where the congregation sing hymns, carols, and choral pieces. There’s no praying or sermons, just everyone having a religious sing-along. The Cathedral Choir are there as well.”
They picked up Brent before going to the studio in Birmingham. When they were ushered in, they found a cosy rest area, a large room and the biggest mixing board that they had ever seen. There was a set of drums, two keyboards and an amp for Jacob. They were introduced to Jock. Marcus and Peter were already there, waiting for them. Marcus had done the introductions and got them ready to record, because, as he said, ‘time was money’.
Jock asked them how they wanted to work it and they told him that they wanted to sing the songs as if they were on stage. He got them seated so they could see each other, and then placed the microphones around them. There were a lot of microphones. When he was ready, he went to the mixing desk.
“Do you want to play something, while I set the desk. If it sounds odd, I can set you up with headphones, so all you hear is the final mix. Try it without, and then with, so you can decide.”
They started playing, while he slid things one way, and then the other. The other three sat behind him with headphones on. As he slowed down, they were all smiling. He waved for them to stop and then brought out four sets of headphones, plugging them into jacks by each one.
“Try these, now. If you like it, just keep playing. If not, we’ll start again without them. I’ll give you a wave if something’s wrong. I’ve been told that you’ve done all of this live. I’m really keen to hear the result. Watch me when I’m sat down, and I’ll give you the count-down from five as I start the recording going.”
The four of them looked at each other and grinned. Then they looked at the mixing desk and he held up five fingers, then curling one at a time until he dropped his hand. Willow started playing the piano intro and then they were into it, the sound that they were hearing was as if they were in the audience or listening to the finished album. They worked through the entire extended set, ending with ‘We’ve only Just Begun’. They sat in silence until the four men started applauding.
They were allowed a comfort break and then Jock broke out the coffee and biscuits as they sat and listened to themselves on playback. It had that live sound that Willow was afraid that they’d lose, and everyone had smiles when the last track finished. Jock looked stern.
“That was great as it stands. I can change the order of the tracks to make a more streamlined sound. If you’re making it a two-disc album, you’ll need to make the last track as the first of the second disc.”
Marcus smiled.
“What do you want to do, now?”
Brent spoke.
“We don’t have anything as polished as that, Marcus. We have a few songs that Willow sent us, that we haven’t played together. Has everyone put something on them?”
They all said that they had. Willow told Marcus that they were mainly her own writing, and the basis for an album that she called ‘Journey’, or ‘Journey of a Girl’.
They sat back at their instruments and put the headphones on. Willow was trembling, wondering if it was all rubbish. The hand went down, and Jacob started with the first song. Willow and Gina joined together as Brent played a gentle beat. Willow sang the song and the trembling stopped as she listened to herself and her band. The others had done everything asked of them. They continued with the song about finding a true friend, with Willow and Gina singing in harmony. The last song, about the first kiss, had the girls in harmony, with the boys singing the repeat in a harmony of their own.
When they finished, the others crowded in and congratulated them. Jock announced that the recordings were perfect and asked how they had achieved it. Gina explained that Willow had put down the vocal, piano and organ tracks, and that they had worked on them at home, adding their own input.
“We haven’t even got around to sending it back to Willow to see what she thinks.”
“And what do you think, Willow?”
“I think that these guys are the best band in town, Marcus. What we just played was as good as I hoped, and better than I had worried about.”
“Anything else while we’re here? Then I’ll take you for lunch.”
Willow thought a bit.
“Did anyone work on ‘Young Love’?”
The others said they had.
“Jacob, did you listen to the Moody’s DVD, especially ‘Driftwood’?”
“Many times, Willow, generally singing it to you in my mind.”
“All right. We’ll try ‘Young Love’ first, Gina singing, then you can lead us in on ‘Driftwood’. Jock, all of these are for personal use only. If we do make another album, we’ll do it properly.”
“Got it, Willow. I’ll add them to my private collection of out-takes.”
They all settled back in their places, headphones on, and waited for Jock’s signal. Gina was great with the song, as Willow, with her increasing knowledge of voices, thought she would be. The rest of them sang the backing vocals. After a pause, Jacob began with the guitar intro to ‘Driftwood’. On the DVD, it had been Herb on an electric, and the Fender acoustic was far better. When they had finished, they sat silently and then stood and stretched. It had been a long morning, but Willow thought that they had done well. Jock hadn’t asked for any retakes, and the other three were all smiles. There was shaking of hands, and a few hugs, before Zac put the guitar back in the car and drove them to an Italian restaurant for lunch. They were joined by Marcus and Peter and were seated on a big table, a little way from the other diners.
Peter ordered beers for the adults and lemonades for the children and suggested the dishes that the restaurant was well-known for. They had a good meal. When they had eaten their fill, Zac remarked that he had been told, on the way in, that Willow and Gina were playing the Cathedral organ on alternate Sundays for a few weeks. This made Peter perk up.
“It’s all right, Peter. I gave the Dean your contacts, and the bishop has agreed to pay us, seeing that we’re replacing the paid organist while he’s away.”
“I’m glad that you have a business head on your shoulders. Now, I believe that this album will be called ‘Coventry Carpentry’ – volume one and two. Any idea of a cover?”
Willow reached into her big shoulder bag and pulled out a folder. Taking the A4 sheets in it, she handed them out, one each.
“My mother is a graphic artist, and we put our heads together to come up with this.”
Peter started laughing and Willow wondered what was wrong. He managed to take a grip of himself.
“Willow Rose. This is perfect. I would have a consultant charge us a thousand pounds and they wouldn’t have come close. This is the album cover, and one of the posters. My office can produce a bigger version which you can all sign, and we will be able to sell it as is or laminated. I see that it’s signed ‘Wendy Rose’.”
“That’s my mother. She works in Coventry, usually creating those store brochures that clog up the middle of the newspaper. She has the same program that they use on her computer at home.”
She looked at her friends.
“You lot are quiet; did we do wrong?”
Gina stood up and pulled Willow into a hug.
“Nothing wrong, friend. Just stunned at how Wendy managed to capture the feel of the quartet.”
Jacob replaced her and held Willow close as they kissed. Brent just hugged, but kissed her cheek, whispering ‘thank you’.
Marcus was smiling.
“This can’t be everything. I see that look on Willows face that she had something else up her sleeve.”
“I have been thinking about a lot of things lately. I believe that Zac tried to poach us from the school when we had played the Deep Purple concert.”
Zac snorted.
“That was Artie. He was so over the top we almost got thrown out of the office.”
“Well, the band that I was on stage with are called ‘G-Force’ and are all good at what they do. They’ve been joined by Jim, the guy I stood in for, and they did the blues concert part at the school. The DVD shows Gina playing, but Jim is now the organist. I think that they would be a good fit with what we’re creating. They could have their own website, but with links to us, and vice versa. The same applies to them as it does to us, so no live shows, but creating a digital presence. They are, so I’m told, a good party band with a lot of material from the previous century. If you give me business cards, we can talk to them at school and let them decide if they want to contact you.”
“Sounds, doable. What else?”
“One other thing. Before we did the Blue concert for the school, Gina, Brent and I played in a group with three guitarists that Brent and Jacob know. We were called Blue Two and did the Moody Blues half.”
“And very impressive it was, too. I’d seen the original band and if I closed my eyes, I could imagine being there again. But that concert is property of the school.”
“Correct. However, in the week before the Blue concert became a priority, we rehearsed, and almost perfected, a cover of a concept album by Kansas. That has never seen light of day, so there are no restrictions in recording it as a Summer Rose album. All we need is your approval to go ahead and then the other guys to want to be in the limelight. It could go out as a digital download. One track from it, so I’m told, was in the charts a long time ago. That one was ‘Dust In The Wind’.”
“I remember that one. It really got into your headspace. I’ll be humming it for the rest of the day, now,”
“It’s one of my favourites too, Zac. It’s perfect for Jacob and his Fender. We could change the vibe by having me or Gina sing it. The original group only had men singing.”
“We’ll listen to that one on-line and get back to you. The rest of the album may not be to everyone’s taste. Is there a recording?”
“Herb made one of our last session on his phone. It won’t be great but will give you an idea if he’s still got it.”
Brent laughed.
“He still has it, Willow, I think he plays it back to himself every night. He calls it his missed opportunity. Those guys will bite your arm off to be in a proper studio with that album being laid down.”
“How many would there be?”
“Seven, Marcus. Plenty of space for that in the studio.”
“That is sounding interesting. Give this Herb my card and tell him to send me that sound file. It would be an interesting mix, on stage, with these G-men opening, and you four with the bigger band on second. You could do a mix of Moody’s, Kansas, Carpenters and your own songs. I can see a short season during summer, in the main local cities. Not enough to upset the Head, but enough to sell albums and merchandise. By that time, we would have enough feedback from the Carpentry album to estimate numbers and prices.”
“OK, Marcus. Just don’t forget that we have the big Saint-Saens concert in the Cathedral in May.”
“How much are you involved in that?”
“Gina and I are on keyboards for a fair bit of the first half. Brent is on percussion with Jacob on the triangle, unless he’s given something else. The second half is the ‘Organ Symphony’, that tune from ‘Babe’, with me on the Cathedral organ. I’m told that they’re going to use footage of me singing while I played at a rehearsal, before we played the last concert. That’s another link you can put on the website if you want. I know it’s mainly just me, but I did get named as the organist.”
She was given a bunch of cards from the three men, which she put in her bag. Then Marcus settled up and Zac took them home, Brent first, having to wait while Gina and Brent said cheerio, behind the front bushes. At Jacob’s house, she got out and they kissed next to the car while Zac opened the back and pulled out the guitar case.
Willow got out with Gina, and they sent Zac off. The girls went into the house, where Maisie was putting on the kettle.
“How did it go, girls?”
An hour later, Maisie had been brought up to date to her amazement at the number of tracks that the band had recorded. Willow then got hugs and went home, thinking about what had been achieved. If the final result was as good as she had heard in the headphones, she would be happy. She was truly in awe of the way the other three had interpreted her own songs. They would be added to within a few weeks. She smiled when she thought that there would be no shortage of Summer Rose material out there when it all took off. She had no fears that it wouldn’t. She had listened to, and watched, the audiences enjoying everything that had been played, so far.
At home, she worked on the songs that she hadn’t sent to the others yet. After all the playing this morning, it was nice to work a few new things out, especially that she could now utilise the second keyboard. She went downstairs and started preparing dinner for when her parents got home, something that would never have been on her radar a year ago.
That evening, she was able to give her parents a blow-by-blow account of the recordings.
“You’re saying that you recorded those three of your own songs? But you and the band have never rehearsed them!”
“It was as if we had spent hours on them, Mum. I recorded a piano and basic organ, with the vocals, and emailed it to the others. They listened to that and added what they thought would work. I was trembling when we were asked to play them, but it was fantastic. The others are on the same wavelength, so close it’s downright scary. I’m getting that from Gina; it’s as if we’re one mind in two bodies when we’re performing. They loved the cover art, and it will be used as a poster as well, after they’ve printed something that we can sign.”
“That will be neat, the products will then be reproduced with authentic signatures.”
On Friday, Willow continued to work on her own material until her phone pinged with a text message. That told her that there was an email coming her way with all the details for the Sunday services. When she opened her email page, she found a few others.
The Cathedral email was printed off to study and show to Wendy. One from Peter’s office was printed off and kept for her father to look at. It had the details of her new account and the date that the income from the Hikers had been moved to it. In the few days since the diversion, it had already amassed more than a thousand pounds.
There was another from Marcus to tell her that he was very happy with the recording session and that the quartet was more professional than any other groups that he had worked with. He asked about her own songs, and how long it would be before there was enough for an album. She replied to that one, thanking him for his comments and telling him that there should be enough in about a month.
She got back looking at her writing. After a light lunch, she worked on recording the three sections of four songs. Then she took the Kansas material that Herb had given her and made a copy for Jacob. She sat and listened to it again, realising just how much she had learned since she first heard it. Without having Alec to do the singing, she made a list of the tracks and put names of the best voices next to each track. With ‘Dust in the Wind’ she thought that she and Gina could alternate, one couplet at a time, with the boys doing the backing.
Later in the afternoon, she walked over to the church and sat at the organ after finding most of the Evensong music she didn’t already know, then played through what she had to set it in her mind. The Dean had penciled her in for two hours on Saturday for rehearsal. She knew that her father would be looking around to price garden sheds and garages, so she would
need to ask her mother to take her into Coventry.
While she was playing, Gina came in and climbed the steps to sit with her, watching and learning. When Willow had finished what she wanted to do, she sat back and turned off the fans.
“How are you, friend?”
“Oddly flat, Willow. The recording was such a concentrated session, I’m not sure what to do now.”
“Find the hymns for Sunday and run through them. Then we can go back to my place, and I’ll play you the material I’ve been working on. I haven’t emailed it to anyone yet. I had the thought that you would all be feeling a little flat today.”
Gina looked at the board for the hymns, with Willow confirming that they were new. She played the three hymns through and then played some Bach. That had been something she had picked up from Willow, playing gentle Bach that she didn’t have to think about. It settled her pulse rate and allowed her to breathe easier.
When they left the church, they did as suggested, with Gina adding a more interesting track to each of Willow’s recordings. They worked well together, being able to tell each other where they were going wrong and get things back on track.
When Wendy and Ashley came home, the girls hugged and wished each other luck for Sunday before Gina left to walk home. Willow stood by the door watching her go down the road. It was odd, as she was thinking about Gina as a sister, with their mental links making her almost a twin sister.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 10
Willow rested on Friday evening and Saturday morning. Ashley had gone out to look at garages and sheds. Wendy expected that he would end up with a shed to replace the ‘crate castle’ as the house already had a large garage, big enough for both cars. The crates had been delivered with the truck going alongside the house and craning the crate sides over the fence.
She sat with her mother having lunch, tidied up and went into the city. They parked at the Cathedral and went in. As far as it went, for Willow it was all too familiar. The hymns were as she had already been advised, and the Evensong content was as the list. She went up to the organ, turned it on and set it up, then warmed her fingers with some Bach before playing each hymn in full. It was gratifying to hear some singing. Then, she worked through the Evensong list in full, with a lot more singing of the popular songs, and the choir singing with the choral pieces.
It was all very straight-forward, and she had done all she wanted to do in under the two hours. She went back down and the two of them left the Cathedral to go into the shopping area, where they window-shopped but took nothing home.
“You seem a bit preoccupied.”
“I feel that I’ve been here and done that already. I don’t want to appear jaded, but after six months playing hymns, it’s become background to my other music. I’m not knocking it; it has become the pathway to my other things, but I’m feeling a bit tired and flat. Gina felt the same yesterday. I don’t think it’s the fault of the church music, just that we’re in bubble of inactivity until the album gets taken around.”
“You’re afraid that nobody will play it, aren’t you?”
“You’re right. I don’t know what I’ll do if it bombs. I may be the only one in the band that thinks that way. I have this feeling that there’s something coming.”
“Could it be fear of the operation?”
“Could be. I’ve never considered having my manhood removed, it was just a part of me that worked as needed. It has to happen, because it’s something that could kill me if I get blood poisoning.”
“We’ll be there for you, darling. You aren’t alone anymore.”
“I know, Mum. I also have a lot of friends. I just don’t know how I’ll explain this.”
“Just say that it’s a consequence of the earlier problem. That something came back. It is the truth, and that helps.”
They had dinner after Ashley came in from measuring the back garden. He had decided that a garage wasn’t feasible, seeing that he would have to use the neighbours land as access. It would take the ‘crate castle’ to be emptied and removed, then a concrete floor laid and allowed to set, They would lose what little of the vegetable patch that remained after the crates had arrived. As far as Willow was concerned, they could lose a lot of stuff that had ended up out there for the reason that it had reached its use-by date.
Wendy took Willow in on Sunday morning, as Ashley was going to be in the club. They picked up Jacob on the way. The Cathedral was almost full when they went in, and there were several pictures taken as they walked in. The reason became apparent when they passed a notice board with a sign stating that the organist that played on the smash hit, ‘Love and Marriage’ would supply the music today.
That had the effect of breaking Willow’s funk. Out of sight of the public, she had to start laughing and sit down, while Jacob went and got her some water.
“You really have to hand it to the Bishop! There’s me and Gina thinking that playing here is the pinnacle for any organist, and he uses a four-minute YouTube video to pull in the punters!”
The service was as expected, and Willow played as expected. After she had played the Bishop out of the church, she sneaked in a few bars of the ‘Wedding March’ with more than a few cheers. When she came down, she was inundated by autograph hunters and younger fans asking questions.
When she had signed everything and was able to escape to the Chapter House, the Bishop was there with a big smile and a huge hug.
“Willow, Willow, Willow. You just had to round out a perfect service with the perfect snippet of classics. I’m pretty sure that more than ten percent of the congregation have never been in a church before. Your friend Bruce suggested the advert. Being in the media, he knows how to press buttons. He’s over there if you want to slap anyone around.”
“It’s perfectly all right, sir. It took me out of a funk that I’ve been in since we recorded our album on Thursday. You won’t be able to pull the same trick with Gina.”
“That depends on how many radio stations are playing your album, doesn’t it?”
They were both laughing when Wendy and Jacob came in, having to negotiate the small crowd and the security man.
“You two look happy.”
“We are, Wendy. Good morning, Jacob. No lightning or lumps of stone today?”
Jacob had to grin.
“Just the mob outside, sir. I would have been worried if someone had supplied a pile of rocks.”
The Bishop laughed.
“You may not have the faith, young man, but the knowledge of the stories is inside you, waiting to sustain you in your hour of need. Now, Willow, you’ll be back at half past three, please. There is a reporter from the Church News who wants to talk to you and take a few pictures before you start playing. He will do the same with Gina, next week, and then write an article that will be in that esteemed publication before the May concert.”
“Aye, aye, sir.”
He hugged her and Wendy, shook Jacob’s hand and they left the Chapter House and headed into the city. Jacob took the role of the man in the group and opened doors, pulled out chairs, and was generally gentlemanly. They had a leisurely lunch, window-shopped and were back at the Cathedral at the time nominated. The reporter was very kind and only asked general questions about her school, her likes and dislikes. She had to describe how she ended up as the organist on a viral video and she dropped hints about Summer Rose and the May concert.
He took pictures of her in front of the altar, and one with Jacob standing beside her. The last was of her sitting at the organ. By that time, it was very close to Evensong, and she prepared herself to start playing as he went back down to ground level. There was a good crowd, and she started on the hour, with a lot of singing. To her, this was what she was here for, the entertainment. When the choir was singing, she heard about five times as many voices as she could see, their previous visit obviously being continued with the Cathedrals’ own multipliers.
When she had finished and tidied up, she met the Dean at the bottom of the stairs who told her that it had been a good day. She had to agree. Wendy took the teenagers to the Steakhouse, where Ashley had secured a table. They had a good dinner and then went to the farm, where they were required to have a cup of tea and explain what had happened during the day. When they left, Jacob gave Willow a hug and a kiss without any embarrassment.
That night, when Willow went to bed, she cuddled her plush friends and was smiling as she went to sleep. It had been a very good day, in the end.
Monday was back to school. Willow had her shoulder bag and the various business cards bundled with elastic bands. At the lunch break, she went over to the table where Herb, Roy and Victor were sitting.
“Hi, guys. I want to tell you a little story. Last Thursday, Gina, Jacob, Brent, and I spent some hours in a recording studio in Birmingham to record the entire set of Carpenters songs that we played at the dinner dance. We asked the guys there about adding others to the four of us to do other things. I spoke about our unfinished project.”
“You told them about the Kansas set?”
“I did, Herb. Now, they’re interested but not convinced. The thing is that if we record it, we will be acting outside the school. The result will be a digital offering on our Summer Rose website. If you guys want to take it further, I have some business cards that I can give you.”
“What does it cost us?”
“Nothing except your time and talent. Our manager charges five percent until we come of age, or when we will be able to tour, and his cut goes to fifteen percent. Our promoter will cover the cost of recording and only split with us once the costs are met.”
“The band will be Summer Rose?”
“That’s right. Gina and I picked the name when it was just the two of us.”
“If you give us the cards, it’s up to us to get in touch. They won’t hound us?”
“Correct. Now, do you want the cards and talk about it. No pressure on our side but we would be happy to have you all on stage when we go live.”
“If we aren’t performing on stage, how will we make any money?”
“Have you heard that single by Rick Sacks and the Hikers?”
“You bet, it’s great.”
“That single went on the website on a Saturday evening. By Sunday evening it had been viewed close to a million times, and a week ago it hit two million views.”
“Views don’t make money.”
“No, but there was a link to let you buy the six-track album for a pound a piece.”
“We all got that. So what?”
“So, seventy percent of people viewing bought the album. I’ll leave you to work out the maths.”
She pulled out the business cards and gave each one a set.
“Wait! How do you know all this detail?”
“Did you see who overdubbed the organ tracks?”
She stood and left them before they could pick their chins up from the tabletop. She went over to where the four Gees and Jim were sitting.
“Hello, Gee Men. How are you all.”
“Good, Willow. We were watching you talk to Blue Two. The way that they’re huddled, I guess that you lit a fire under them.”
“Exactly, Geoff. It’s like the fire I’ve come over to you to light. Are you guys still determined to finish school before you tour?”
“That was the plan. The Head isn’t keen to see us give away a good education.”
“How about getting your name out there without touring?”
“How do we do that?”
“By having a website and selling your music online. You can do what Rick Saxon has done with the Hikers. I’ve got some business cards for a manager and a promoter who will be willing to take you into a recording studio.”
“What’s in it for you?”
“Only that it would be nice if Blue One opened a show with Blue Two in the second half. Actually, not Blue Two, we’re Summer Rose and we’ve signed with these guys. We recorded our Carpenters tracks last week and the result should be on the web in a week or two.”
“If we take the cards, it’s up to us to make contact?”
“Correct. One of the guys that I have a card for was talking to the Head a week after our Purple show. She threw him out but never told us that there were people interested. The other promoter is a good guy and will be putting our orchestra into a studio to record a classics album. That will be a school project; if you make the move, it will be your own project.”
Geoff nodded and she handed each one a set of cards, including an extra set for Geoff.
“They’re for Zara if you want her out front.”
Garry stood and gave her a hug before she left them and went back to her table, sitting down to finish her drink.
“Lit a couple of fires, there?”
“I hope so, Jacob. We can only ask and let them decide. By the way, I’ve got a copy of the Kansas album that we spoke about. Alec was the main singer when we did it last, but I think we can spread that between us.”
She gave him the CD and the bit of paper with suggested singers. They looked into each other’s eyes and smiled.
“Have you got your spark back? You were a bit down on Sunday.”
“I think so, Jacob. It’s the waiting that gets to me. Not having any control of things. I suppose that happens a lot when you’re grown up. As a kid, your world is immediate, but I’m starting to realise that you need to plan ahead. Take the service yesterday. There was no way that I could have foreseen a crowd of autograph hunters when I played for Rick in the church. We’re all going to be in that boat when we get famous. I just don’t know if it will be good or bad.”
“If I’m with you, Willow, it can only be good.”
They were interrupted by Gina.
“Come on, you lovebirds, classes are awaiting our esteemed selves.”
On the way home, Wendy had the radio on, softly, as the teens talked among themselves about their day. Suddenly, she reached over and turned it up as the sound of the Carpenters filled the car. Only, it wasn’t the Carpenters, it was Summer Rose. At the end, the announcer came on.
“That, dear listeners, is the first of many songs from a new double CD, called ‘Coventry Carpentry’, that I’ll be playing. The band is Summer Rose, and they all come from Coventry, so we may have another Specials from this fine city.”
Wendy turned it back down as another song started, with the car filled with whoops. When they arrived at the farm, they all got out and the teens took the opportunity to hug, with Jacob kissing Willow and whispering that he loved her. She replied in the same fashion.
Jacob’s parents were advised that their son was now being heard on the radio, and he turned his laptop on as they were sitting around the kitchen table. He found their new website, that must have gone up over the weekend. There was a video, which showed them in the recording studio playing. There was a link to the digital double album at five pounds each disc.
The video had only been seen fifteen hundred times, but it was early days. He clicked on a merchandise button which brought up pictures of each of them and the poster that was the album cover. The teens gave Wendy a hug and told her she was wonderful. Rosalie and Wilhelm were amazed. They had gone along with it to see their son happy, never thinking that it would come to this.
When they dropped Gina off, they had to go in and show Maisie the website and have another cup of tea. When they arrived home, Wendy and Willow went in and shed their winter coats.
“What happens now, darling?”
“What happens is that I’m in the toilet after two cups of tea and a lot of excitement!”
Willow went up to the toilet. When she turned around to flush, she thought that she saw something black in the water and decided it may have been an insect that had drowned. The dinner was full of laughs and joy, and there was a phone call to her grandparents. When she went to bed, there were two things on her mind. One was the concept that she, and the band, had been on the radio, while the other one made her smile more. It was those three little words that every girl wants to hear. They were the words that Alec, in all his time with her, had never uttered.
……………………………………………..
That evening, the IT specialist in Peter’s office was hunched over a computer. He had been sent a large file which contained the video and audio of Summer Rose in concert. He was replacing the studio clip with the live clip of the same song, thinking that it was much better seeing the interaction of the band on stage. He added the album cover, with a LIVE overwrite and put a link to buy the DVD at fifteen pounds for the download, or twenty for the actual disc.
…………………………………………..
Bruce Miller, having been sent a copy of the concert, was busy writing up his article for the next issue of the Observer. He had known the Specials, had gone to school with some, but had never been this close to an upcoming band before. He was looking forward to the next few months.
…………………………………………..
In her easy chair, the Head was looking at the website, wondering if she had done the right thing by agreeing to the release of the concert video. Whatever happened, the school would gain from its share of the takings, no matter how small, and she still had the complete concert DVD to sell in the school before the term ended. It was a hard job to keep the income coming in to improve the facilities and the equipment. It was the talent of her students that set the Blue Coat apart from run-of-the-mill schools. Without them, she knew, her job wouldn’t be so fulfilling.
…………………………………………
Tuesday morning seemed almost normal. Gina was on the organ for chapel. None of the other students listened to the middle-of-the-road radio stations, so nothing was said. Some thought it odd that Brent had been seen hugging Gina, Willow and Jacob; especially Jacob, but most thought that it was something between the four of them.
At lunch, Brent went over to his friends and gave them a bit of paper with the band website written on it, and then did the same for Geoff and the Gees. The first odd thing happened during the Orchestra. They were back to working with ‘Bolero’ and the Grieg. When they had played the two pieces, Mister Bamborough called for quiet.
“Last night, I looked at a website that the Head had told me about. It had four of this orchestra with a double album for sale. Those four, Willow, Gina, Jacob and Brent, performed a set of Carpenters songs at our dinner dance a couple of weeks ago. I applaud you four and hope that you do well. The school has a part in this, as every download of the concert video will bring us a piece of the income. The full concert DVD will be available next week as a school offering. It will be two discs, discounted, so will be twenty-five pounds each. It does show the skills of the others from this orchestra and is well worth it, especially for those who didn’t attend the wonderful event. That dance band is back at the Stoneleigh Community Club on Saturday evening, and I can tell you that it’s a good place to take your parents, as well as having fun.”
The band were hugged and backslapped as the session ended. Some had been at the school dance, but, for many, it was all something new. On the way home, Jacob remarked that things will now be changing for them. The others were a little bit overwhelmed by the reaction from their school friends.
When Willow was dropped off, she went inside to find her mother on the computer.
“What are you working on, Mum?”
“It’s a part of the graphics program that I’ve never used before. While we were preparing our dinner, I said that it had been a bit haywire in the club for the sing-along. Your father told me that there was a module in the program that they use for the best use of a sheet of steel when cutting a number of shapes. He had the dimensions of the back room of the club. I’ve estimated the space needed for an eight-seat table and chairs and have been working on finding the best fit while leaving space for a dance floor.”
“That looks like a pattern, rather than a table lay-out.”
“Exactly. I’ve found a layout that adds two eight-seaters to the old maximum and still leaves a dance floor. If we get inundated on Saturday evening, we’ll be able to seat two hundred and fifty-six and still have room to dance. That will increase the number that can be catered for at receptions as well. It still leaves plenty of room for people to move around.”
“That’s fantastic, Mum! You and Dad can see how it works tomorrow evening while I work with the village choir. There’s nearly a dozen of them now, and they can tell you what they think before anyone else sees it. From the point of view of someone on the stage, it would be great to have the audience as more of a ‘U’ shape in front of us. The only thing that I can see, right now, is that we will have to re-site the PA speakers, or else the close tables will have one in their ear.”
She had her sandwich and then told her mother about the orchestra session, and the fact that Mister Bamborough had brought up the website. She went and got her laptop and set it up on the kitchen table. When she looked at the website and noted the changes. The picture of the single link was different, so she clicked on it. She called her parents in to have a look.
“That’s nice, dear. They’ve gone from that boring studio clip to the school dance. That’s much nicer.”
“They must have received the permission and the raw video from the school. We were told that the full double DVD will be out next week, at twenty-five pounds each. Just the quartet section on the website is half that price for a download.”
Ashley put his hand on her shoulder.
“That’s because the school doesn’t pay the film crew or the sound guys. The website has to price everything as if you’ve gone into a professional studio to record the video. This is the money that things will cost when you do other recordings.”
“Oh! The real world. Did you notice the viewing number on the video, am I reading it right? I see a hundred and forty thousand.”
“Early days, daughter. If Peter has been canny, he would have sent it out to the people on Rick’s list. It may be a couple of days before an influencer gets to see it. Even that’s a good number if twenty thousand have bought the download at that price. We’ll have to wait until Peter sends us a statement of your earnings before we know for sure.”
On Wednesday, the four of them were the centre of attention. Most of the school had now seen the website and looked at the video. Summer Rose was now a group to be friends with no matter what year you were in. The rest of Blue Two reported that they had been in touch with Peter, with progress to be reported on after the parents had met him and seen the paperwork. The Gees said the same and had spoken to Marcus about recording something. Grant had been writing but never thought that he would have a chance to have anything played.
That evening, Wendy and Ashley moved tables and chairs around while Willow was in the front room with the choir ladies. They repeated the first two songs that they had perfected and worked on another item that Willow had found for them. The choral items from the Evensong was providing good material for this size group. After the session, they all went to the back room to see what the new layout was like.
It was different, and they sat in chairs and walked between settings with the chairs pulled out. Malcolm was there, with a big smile on his face. Saturday would be the big test.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 11
When the Roses walked home, they all felt that they had done well. Willow was happy at how her singing group were improving, Wendy was happy at the result of her work with what Ashley called a ‘nesting’ program, and Ashley with the thought that they would be able to cater for more in the club.
That night, when Willow went to the toilet, she saw definite black spots in the bowl. She wasn’t going to tell her parents yet, but she was going to call the clinic. It took her a while to slide into dreamland and she was clutching Tiger and Shaun tightly.
She was her usual self in the morning, only stopping to check the viewing numbers which were now reaching the quarter of a million. At school, she was attentive and focused during the lessons. When it came to lunchtime, she told her friends that she needed to make a phone call and to start without her. She found a private spot and called the clinic, asking to speak to her doctor.
“Good afternoon, doctor. It’s Willow Rose.”
“Do you have a problem, Willow?”
“I’m seeing black spots in the toilet bowl after I’ve passed water.”
“Right! Go to the nurses room in the school. When you see them, ring me back.”
“OK, will do.”
She found her way to the nurses office and knocked. When she was called to go in, the nurse smiled brightly.
“Hello, Willow. What can I do for you?”
“I’ve just rung my doctor and she has told me to see you and ring her back.”
“All right, you had better make that call.”
Willow rang the clinic and was put through to the doctor, who asked to speak to the nurse. The nurse pulled out a notepad and started writing while Willow looked on. When she said cheerio, she ended the call and gave the phone back to Willow.
“I have some things we have to do, right now. I have some urine sample containers and I’ve been told to get you to pass some water for me, then we ring her back. Here it is, now, go into the ensuite and give me a sample.”
Willow went into the toilet and half-filled the container, screwing the lid on. She washed her hands and took it out to the nurse who held it up and looked at the contents. She picked up her desk phone and called the clinic.
“I have that sample, doctor. There are drops of blood and some other things that I can’t identify.”
She listened for a few minutes and made some more notes.
“Willow, I need to take a blood sample. Then I’ll package the two items and call the path lab to send a courier, with results to come to me and the clinic. I’ve been told that you had a couple of growths taken from your groin before the first term, and the doctor tells me that scans have shown that something is wrong. I have to give you another sample bottle. She wants you to give her a sample on Monday morning, before you eat, and have your father drop it off on his way to work. She’ll give you a call when she gets that result.”
“Thank you, Miss. I was due to go in after the end of term, but it looks like I’ll be there earlier.”
“If you do have to miss any time, I will back you up. I suggest that whatever you have there, it needs to be looked at as soon as you can. I would hate to see someone as talented as you be lost to us.”
Willow went to join her friends for lunch, a sample bottle in a plastic bag and a note for her parents in her bag. In the lunchroom, she found that the only seat vacant on her table, and for several tables around, was the one saved for her. By this time, almost everyone had seen the video clip, and many said that they had bought the download.
As she ate, there was constant chatter about Summer Rose going on around her, but she hardly noticed until Herb stood in front of her.
“Willow, me and the guys have all signed on with Peter. You’re having a dinner dance at Stoneleigh on Saturday, any chance we can get some time in on stage?”
“I think we can work that in, Herb. We can let the other band members have some time off and we can do some Moody’s. If you bring your guitars, we can set up another pair of Marshall fifties. I have another idea. Brush up on the Kansas stuff, say, ‘Dust in the Wind’ and ‘Nobody’s Home’. Jacob can add his Fender sound to those, I’m sure.”
Jacob, who was listening to every word, nodded his head.
“I’ll tell the guys. What time to arrive?”
“Make it between six and half past. We can do a sound check before we eat. We play after we’ve eaten and start off with the dance band. Then I’ll call you guys up and we do some electric for the teens. After that, we end up with the four of us playing songs from the Carpentry album. Does that sound good to you?”
“You bet. We’ll be there, raring to go. It’s been too long since that school concert.”
She watched him almost bounce back to his table. Jacob gave out a short laugh.
“That is going to be one hell of a show, sweetheart.”
The rest of the day went normally, and everyone was talkative as Wendy drove them home. Gina was brought up to speed on the plans for the dinner dance. She was going into the city in the afternoon to prepare for the Sunday organ playing. Willow advised her to just get her fingers warm, then do the service and the Evensong in full, as there would be Cathedral visitors wanting to sing and the choir will be on hand when she played the choral items.
When they entered their home, Wendy put her hand on Willow’s arm.
“You were good, darling, but not good enough for me. Now, spill!”
Willow dug the sample bottle out of her bag and the note, which she gave to her mother.
“We can talk about it when I get back, I’m going to change.”
When she came back down, Wendy was sitting at the kitchen table with the note in front of her.
“What happened?”
“I thought I saw something dark in the bowl a few days ago. I spotted more yesterday and rang the clinic at lunch time. The doctor ordered me to go to see the school nurse. She got me to give a sample, rang the doctor back and was told to draw blood and sent the two to a path lab. Then she gave me the second container and told me to pass a sample Monday morning for Dad to take in on his way to work.”
“He told me that they were organising an operation on the Monday of the holidays.”
“It looks like I’ll be convalescing by then. Nothing drastic, just me becoming Willow for good.”
She burst into tears and was still sobbing, in her mother’s loving arms, when Ashley walked in. Wendy pushed the note towards him and continued to comfort her distraught daughter. He read it through, nodded, and went to the phone to call the clinic.
When he came back, Willow was calmer. He sat down.
“I called the doctor. She had given me an after-hours number to call. She says that she will know more when she gets the path results, but she is organising the surgery for Monday week. She needs to get the right people in.”
Willow blew her nose and looked at her father.
“Thanks, Dad. She did say that I’ll be a week in the hospital and the stitches would come out at the end of the next week. I’ll be better, now. It was just that there was a big build-up of stuff waiting to come out as tears. The nurse said that she wouldn’t be happy to lose someone like me, and it’s made me realise that there are now a lot of people relying on me. We’re planning a very different dinner dance on Saturday. The band from the school will be there, and we’ll be doing some of the Moody’s set. They have all signed with Peter, so it will be the first showing of the Summer Rose Group.”
“You’ll be fine, I’m sure. Go up and wash your face, then have a lie down. We’ll give you a call when dinner is ready. Then I want you to relax when you can until Saturday evening.”
“Yes, Dad.”
She went upstairs and her parents clung to each other.
“Don’t worry, my love. The doctor warned me that this might happen, she said that it would accelerate our daughter becoming a strong woman that she’s going to grow into. If you get dinner ready, I’ll give Bruce a call to let him know. The old story will be old news in a few weeks.”
He came back to help with the dinner preparation.
“Bruce tells me that he’s been talking to his friend, Marcus. The last that he saw, there has been close to twenty-five thousand downloads of the Carpentry album.”
“That’s nowhere near what Rick’s album had.”
“Rick’s album was a pound, this one’s a tenner. So that’s a quarter of a million. Take away the costs, and the management fee, and those four teenagers have made over forty thousand, each.”
Wendy had to have some water before she could carry on with the cooking.
“We don’t say anything, right! We’ll wait for the official statement from Peter. If that’s just the album, there could be concert DVD sales added.”
“That’s right. Shall I set the table while you go and see how Willow is bearing up.”
When Wendy came back, she had Willow with her, already dressed for bed.
“I’ll go to bed as soon as we’ve eaten, Dad. For some reason I feel totally drained.”
That’s all right, love. It’s been a big day.”
They had their dinner, with Willow toying with hers until she had settled and then did it justice. After that, she went up to bed and laid there, clutching her furry friends. She started off being sorry for herself, and then started imagining the performance on Saturday, finally going to sleep with a smile on her face.
In the morning, she was her usual bright self. That afternoon, the music group had the lesson on drumming and drum programming. There were lesson sheets for them to read later.
“Now, class. Reasonable drum machines run from about one fifty to over to five hundred. These are Behringer RD6 units, which sell for about two-thirty. All we’ll do, today, is let you play around with them in groups. I’ll hand out a sheet with the sequence we want to end with, and how to do it. There’ll be one sheet each, and you should hold on to it for the exams, as there will be a question based on it.”
Each machine was plugged into a five-watt amp, big enough to sit on a desk. The room soon resounded with drum sounds and squeals of delight from the students. Everyone had a go, and the three machines gave out the same three sequences at the end of the lesson. It had certainly made Willow think, determined that she should have one. That made her wonder if she could have the end of the shed when it was erected. The idea of a small recording studio was a thought.
She followed orders and rested on Friday evening. Saturday, she and her father carried her two-tier organ to the club, keeping them set up. She went back with the stool and quietly pulled out the PA and amps from the storage. After that, she went over to the church to check the hymns for Sunday. She had finished playing, something that always settled her, and met the Reverend on the way out.
“So, Gina is playing in the Cathedral today, to prepare for Sunday. That is a really big thing for her, and something that you’ve helped her get to. Did the Bishop play any tricks last week?”
“Not with the hymns, but he had advertised that the organ player from the hit single would provide the music, and I had to sign a load of autographs when I had finished in the morning. The place was packed!”
“He can’t do that with Gina.”
“That’s what I said, and he replied that it depended on how much airplay our album is getting.”
“We listen to the local station, and I can tell you that they’re playing your songs a lot. They have even started with the actual Carpenters and then blended it to you. There’s very little difference, mainly the instrumentation.”
“I’ll have to wait until I get a statement before I know how it’s going. The website has added the video from the school performance.”
She went back home and had lunch, then sat in her room and wrote some lyrics. At little after four, the family went to the club with Willow carrying her seat. Ashley checked out the bar area with Malcolm, while Wendy started putting out water, glasses, and cutlery on the tables. Willow smiled when she saw every table set. She busied herself plugging everything in, setting up microphones and testing the sound. Then, she sat at her keyboard and played Bach to calm her and, hopefully, please her mother. Then, she set it to piano setting and played some easy-listening pop, singing along. Wendy stopped to watch and listen, wondering at how much talent she was hearing.
Slowly, others came in. The casuals to start the cooking, some band members to go up on stage with Willow to continue to jam. By six, the whole band was there, electric and the wind. Malcolm was given the job of setting the mix as they played a song that used all the members.
The band went to the front area to have their meal, as other diners found seats and ordered drinks. Gina told them that she had spent two hours at the Cathedral that afternoon, and that she saw a notice that said that Sunday’s music was being supplied by a member of Summer Rose, the band that was covering the airwaves with Carpenters songs. Willow laughed.
“Expect a crowd of autograph hunters tomorrow. Last week, he had a similar poster that said that the organist would be the one from the hit single, ‘Love and Marriage’. They needed a security man to get me into the Chapter House.”
They talked about how they would work the evening, and what songs they would play. The extra seats had been filled and there were people waiting for their table when the band went to go on the stage. As decided, the extra guitarists went to the bar and sat on stools for the first part, with Ashley keeping them hydrated with lemonade and cola. The doors to the front area had been left open, so the diners there could hear the music.
When Willow could see that most of the diners had finished their meals, she announced that they would take a break and come back with dancing music for the fit and healthy. The band left the stage, with the core four taking a comfort stop. When they went back, the wind players were at the bar or sitting in spaces that had been saved for them. The guitarists plugged in.
Willow announced that they were going to play some songs that they had played at the school, and that there was a DVD available on the school website. Then they played the full Moody Blues set, with Willow providing the flute part using her Casio on the upper tier. Jacob was great with ‘For My Lady’ and his Fender opening to ‘Driftwood’ was almost uncanny.
There was a ton of room for dancers, and the whole room was swaying and singing along when they got to ‘Nights in White Satin’. At the end of that, there was applause and cheering. Willow spoke.
“We are now going to play a couple of songs that we hope will be on a future album, which could be called ‘Can’t be Kansas’. Look out for it in a few weeks, we hope.”
They then played ‘Dust in the Wind’ and ‘Nobody’s Home.’ After that, the extra members unplugged and left the stage.
“We are now the Summer Rose Quartet. Some of you may have listened to us on the radio in the last week. We are proud to offer the complete ‘Coventry Carpentry’ set. Copies of the album and a performance we did a couple of weeks ago are available on our website.”
The four of them worked through the entire double album until after ten, and time to wind up the proceedings. Willow could see Malcolm giving the wind players envelopes. The rest of them would split whatever he paid Peter. The dance floor was crowded, and, if she looked to her side, she could see couples dancing in the corridor to the front bar.
When they finished ‘We’ve only just Begun’ they all stood, went to the front of the stage, and bowed to applause. The crowd started to thin out, with some that they knew remaining seated. There was a table with Bruce, Marcus, Peter, Zac, and their wives. As the four approached them, all eight stood to give them hugs, beckoning the three guitarists over to join in. Then, Peter went to the wind players about getting them signed on to be official band members. Taking names and addresses and handing out business cards to the parents who had brought them.
Gina said that she had to go, as she was to be in the Cathedral in the morning. Willow gave her a hug and wished her luck. Brent went out with her to say his own brand of goodnight, after Peter gave them an envelope. Malcolm came over and spoke to Peter about payment and was joined by someone that Willow had never seen before. The man was very well dressed, and his partner had jewellery that sparkled in the lights. She could see them in discussion, and Peter handed the guy a business card before they shook hands and the couple left. She grinned when she thought about having ‘my people to talk to your people’. Jacob took hold of her hand.
“You look amused, my love?”
“Just realising that we have others to do the deals, darling. We’re surrounded by people who are committed to helping us play.”
Peter came over to them and gave each of them an envelope.
“This, believe it or not, is your statement of income since you signed on. Willow, your income from the Hikers is listed separately, along with the payment from the Cathedral. If I were you, I’d be at home and sitting down when you open it.”
“I haven’t had time to see the viewing numbers, Peter. I have to tell you that there will be a period of about two weeks that I won’t be available. I had surgery last summer and need some follow-up. I think that I’ll be in hospital Monday week, for a week, then home until the stitches come out a week after that.”
“Thank you for letting me know, Willow. There’s nothing set up yet, and I’ll try to get you into a radio station next week. I’ll email everyone with the time, and Zac will pick you up.”
He walked away and Jacob looked worried.
“Don’t worry, love. It’s just something that has to be done. I’m told that everything will be better for me afterwards. I had a couple of growths in my groin, which had to be removed. This time there is more that needs sorting out. I’ll need to tell the school when I get the firm date, so that they can save some course notes for me. When I come back, it will be exam time, anyway, so I don’t think I’ll miss a lot. You may have to run as a trio for the next sing-along, but Gina can do that stuff in her sleep, these days.”
“Can I visit you?”
“You’ll be at school, Jacob. I’ll call you to tell you how I am, and when I’m home, Racheal can bring you around. She knows the way. Your parents are waiting for you, love. I’ll see you on Monday.”
They kissed and he left with his parents, the envelope clutched in one hand, his guitar case in the other. Willow put her envelope in her bag and went on stage to finish clearing it. Victor and Roy were still there and helped her put things away. They offered to carry her keyboard home, so she got the keys out and led them around the corner.
Once they were in the peace and quiet, Roy thanked her for what had happened tonight.
“You don’t have to thank me for anything, Roy. It’s your own talent, and the talent of the rest of you that put you on that stage. Like the orchestra, we are all part of a team with some appearing to be out front at times. The two of you sang well in the Moody’s segment.”
They got to her house, and she got them to leave the keyboard next to the upright. As they went back to the club, Victor wanted to know what happened now.
“That’s up to us and our team. We have the rest of the school year to get through, and a few more years after that. Peter and Marcus did float a thought bubble about us being the second half of a show with Geoff and the Gees opening. The main thing there is whether they can get something out there that the public likes. Summer Rose is being played, but only the quiet stuff. If we record Kansas, we can test the waters with that. I don’t see why it won’t work after how it went down tonight.”
Back at the club, Willow thanked them and then helped her parents tidy up the room. Malcolm and Ashley decided that it was time to leave the tables and chairs in position, now that they were being used every two weeks. When the family finally went home, they were all too tired to do anything but sleep.
Sunday morning, they were all slow off the mark, but arrived at the church as the bells started ringing. Willow went in and got the organ ready, then played Bach as the church filled. The music had its usual effect on her, and she was calm and settled when the Reverend appeared below her. The service went well, the hymns were ones she had played before, and the only odd thing was the sermon, which was about embracing life, because it’s the only one we have, but with the prospect of everlasting life beyond. The first bit resonated, but the second was way over the top as far as she was concerned.
As usual, on these cold days, when she emerged from the church there were only a few that were walking away. The rest, she surmised, were already with their hot drinks. As she closed the church door, she thought about that one little touch of kindness that her father had started, which had completely altered established customs.
In the club, it was warm, cosy and friendly. Some asked her how she thought Gina was getting on, and she replied that Gina was totally able to perform in the Cathedral. When she went to the toilet, she ended up in the back room thinking about what happened last night.
This reminded her about the envelope in her bag. She sat at a table and opened the envelope and looked at the contents. After a few minutes, she folded the paper and put it back in her bag, then just sat to think.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 12
That was where Wendy found her sitting, some ten minutes later.
“Getting some quiet time in, love?”
“That and some thinking, Mum. Are you ready to go yet?”
“Just about. Your Dad will be here a while until Malcolm takes over.”
She looked around the room.
“Malcolm was very happy about the crowd. The biggest one-day takings in history, except for a big reception. He was talking about making the future events a book-first affair, with an upper limit and a cut-off time to turn up. He was amazed at how many ate in the front room and went in for a dance.”
“I saw some dancing in the corridor.”
“He has offered us a free lunch when he arrives, so the two of us should go home, freshen up, and change into something casual.”
She held her hand out to Willow, who took it and stood, a smile appearing on her face. They strolled home in the wintery light and went into the house. When they were sitting at the kitchen table with a steaming mug in front of each of them, Willow put the sheet of paper on the table.
“Peter gave me this last night, Mum. It’s the statement of earnings in the twelve days since we signed the contract. He did suggest that I was sitting down when I looked at it.”
Wendy looked at the figures.
“OK. Income from twenty-seven thousand odd album downloads, was over two hundred and seventy thousand. Costs to produce album was six thousand, Marcus Waddington’s expenses for admin, studio hire, and transport was five thousand. I see a note that the DVD downloads are starting next week, with the actual discs available a few days later, cost of supply to be reported later. That leaves two-hundred and fifty-nine thousand with your share being sixty-four thousand seven fifty. That’s wonderful. Each of the others will be over the moon with that!”
“It doesn’t include poster sales, as I think that the poster is free to album buyers. When they have laminated posters there will be a charge. If you look lower, there is four thousand off the top for Peter’s costs, admin, and IT services, and six thousand to the school. Then he’s taken another three thousand as his five percent.”
“That still leaves you with sixty thousand in the first two weeks. That’s pretty good, and you haven’t even been interviewed yet. What about the Hikers and other stuff?”
“Turn over to the next page. The Cathedral paid me a hundred for my services last week, and the Hikers income has been another six thousand, less the five percent. I would be interested to see what the Uni Fund account stands at now that that income has been diverted.”
Wendy went to fetch the laptop from the office, called up the account and turned the screen so that Willow could see it.
“Wow! Over eighty-seven thousand after the things we bought. That’s awesome.”
“What’s awesome is you and the band. There wasn’t a person in the club who didn’t have a good time last night. It may lead to a few more sales in the next few days, but the main thing is that you’re here and we need to make sure that you’re totally healthy. I’ll ring the Head from work, tomorrow, to let her know that you’ll be away for a couple of weeks which can’t be avoided.”
“Tell her to check with the school nurse who took the urine sample. She spoke to the doctor in a foreign language which you learn in medical school. The only part that I caught was UTI.”
“That stands for Urinary Tract Infection, which is common among women who get a bug in the outlet. Some men can get it by sitting on a dirty toilet. I expect that the doctor will give your father a script to get filled on Monday if there’s traces of that. A week of anti-biotics before the operation can only help.”
They tidied up and walked back to the club, where Malcolm greeted Willow with a bear-hug.
“Willow and Wendy. Because of your talents, we had over two hundred and fifty in the back room, an all-time record, and served two-hundred and eighty meals. Now, what do you want to eat? I’ll get Ashley out from behind the bar to sit with you.”
“It seems busier than the usual Sunday.”
“You bet. Bringing them over from the church means that some stay to eat.”
They had a good meal, with some coming over to tell Willow how much they enjoyed the previous evening. They were eating dessert when her phone chirped. She took it to the back room to answer. It was Brent, to tell her that both he, and his parents, were shocked at what they had earned since they had signed.
“My Dad thought that it was all a joke until your dad offered to buy a drum kit. He thinks that he should be paying it back now.”
“Tell him to get you signed on with an accountant. There has to be more to come.”
“I’ll work on that. Dad’s going to take me into Birmingham next Saturday so I can get one of those drum machines that we played with at school. When I was looking at it, there’s so much more that you can do with it.”
“If you get one, get one for me, please. I’ll pay you for it.”
“No way I’m asking you for money, Willow, not after what you’ve done for me.”
“I may not be in school that week, so you can give it to Gina or Jacob to bring home. See you on Monday.”
She was heading back to her melting ice cream when the phone chirped again.
“Good morning, Jacob. How are you this lovely morning?”
“Stunned, Willow. I looked at that paper that we were given last night. I was staggered, and so was Dad when I showed him.”
“Yeah, Brent was just on the phone. I’ll say the same that I said to him. Get to see an accountant, I’m sure that your dad uses one for the farm accounts. You will be able to buy your own Martin now.”
“Later, maybe. First, I need a practise amp for home, so I can use my effects box. Have you heard from Gina?”
“No. She’ll be just finishing the stint in the Cathedral. If she didn’t take the envelope with her, she’ll probably look at it when she gets home. Look, my ice cream is becoming a flavoured puddle in the dish. Talk to you at tomorrow. Love you.”
“Love you, too. See you in the morning.”
She went back to finish her meal.
“What was that, sweetheart?”
“Just Brent, and then Jacob, ringing about our paperwork.”
Ashley looked up.
“What paperwork, sweetie?”
“Peter gave us all a statement of earnings last night. Mine is on the kitchen table for you to have a look at. I think that I need to be on an accountant’s books, and a lawyer so that I can have an official name change after the operation. There has to be tax problems coming our way, so I will need a bank account which can have a small regular deposit from Peter put in.”
“I’ll give Peter a call from work, tomorrow. We have a guy that does our tax, so I’ll call him. What sort of money are we talking about?”
Wendy smiled and put her hand on her husband’s arm.
“With the Uni Fund and what Peter is holding at the moment, about a hundred and fifty thousand.”
Ashley took a quick gulp of his drink.
“You’re dead right, Willow. I’ll make the calls tomorrow. If they need to see you, we can organise an evening appointment before you go to the clinic. This is all happening in a bit of a rush, isn’t it?”
“Can’t disagree with you there, Dad.”
Back at home, Ashley had a look at the paperwork and went to his office to photocopy it for the accountant. Then he called up the bank account and printed off the movements since the day that Willow recorded the overdub for Rick. Then, he found the contract with Peter and took a copy of that, before logging on to the band website and printing off the opening page. The accountant could look at it to see, for himself, the offerings, prices, and download numbers. He went back into the kitchen.
“What else will I need?”
“Probably the medical report from my original diagnosis, plus one after the operation to confirm that I’m female. We will need something like that for the name and gender change, not to mention a new passport application.”
“That will be a job for later. I have enough for now. I’ll ask around the office to see if there are good financial and legal guys locally. Several of guys in the office have had problems in the past. Anything else.”
“Only that when you order the shed, you make it big enough to fit a small recording studio in.”
Willow spent the afternoon at the keyboard, her notepad on the key cover of the upright, working on songs of her own. When she had a basic tune, she wrote the notation, something that she had always though was too much work. The family had a light tea, followed by the front doorbell ringing. Ashley opened it to find Maisie and Gina standing there.
Gina rushed past him to grab Willow in a hug that almost turned her blue.
“Hello, friend. How was the Cathedral?”
Gina giggled.
“You were right about the autograph hunters. I had to be rescued by security. The Bishop thought that it was a huge joke. I don’t know what he’s got up his sleeve next week. Anyway, I’m here to talk money, Willow. Enough money to take me to university.”
“Me too. As it says in the song, we’ve only just begun. Dad’s going to ring and get an appointment with an accountant. Seeing that we’re almost sisters, how about he takes Maisie along. Jacob’s dad will have one for the farm business, and Brent’s dad probably has one for his bricklaying business.”
“Accountants at our age. That’s weird. By the way, when is your birthday?”
“May twentieth.”
“No way! I’m the twenty-second! We can have a joint birthday party, I expect that by that time, we’ll have enough friends to fill the club. It’ll be a blast! Actually, it will be my very first party with invites. What about you, I bet that you’ve had a few parties, yourself.”
“Believe it or not, my friend, this will be my first as well. I was a bit of a loner before. It took coming here to bring me out of myself.”
“I find that hard to believe!”
“It’s true. I was always getting bullied. It was meeting you that helped me more than you can know. That and the school being so good for musicians. Look, I need to show you something before you invite me to a pool party.”
She took Gina’s hand and led her up to her room. She shut the door and loosened her skirt waist, then pulled her blouse out from the skirt. She stood with her back to Gina.
“Lift the blouse, friend.”
Gina lifted the blouse and gasped.
“You’re… you’ve got scars all over your back!”
“They go all the way round, friend. I had all-inclusive bullies at my last school.”
“Did you report them?”
“No. My parents didn’t even know until we got here, and Mum saw them. Nobody at the school knows, except you. They have started to fade, and my doctor told me that I’ll be able to wear a backless dress, sometime, as long as I have someone to apply concealer.”
“Some are more faded than others.”
“The last ones happened in the last week of the third term, last year.”
She tucked herself in and readjusted the waistband. The girls went back downstairs where the adults were discussing investments. They all sat in the kitchen for a while, talking about what was now happening. The girls were less worried about things than the parents. When the visitors were leaving, they both gave Willow hugs. Maisie just said, ‘Thank you for everything’ and Gina whispered, ‘See you tomorrow, true friend. We have a real party to plan.’
On Monday morning, Willow half-filled the container, sealed it and wrote her details in the sticker. She put in the zip-lock bag and gave it to her father. On the way to school, the teens were quiet, especially after hearing themselves on morning radio.
As they entered every class, they got a cheer, but treated the lessons with the attention they deserved, much to the relief of the teachers. In the lunchroom, they were joined by Roy and the others, to talk about the set that they had played. Herb was almost hyper and couldn’t wait to be in the recording studio.
“No rush, Herb. We have to allow the first album to have its time in the sun before we record again. I expect that we’ll be in the studio in the last week of the month, or the first weeks of next month. We have two weeks before the terms to get together and rehearse. We should keep it away from the school. I expect that we can use the club; it has everything we need. When I did the overdub for Rick, he had a recording unit that sat in the sweet spot in the church and only needed the one microphone. Jacob can see his sister and find out where we can get one for ourselves. We can club together to buy it.”
“That sounds good. I was thinking that we could use a rehearsal room, but I see your reasoning. I was wondering how Jacob would fit in with an acoustic, but he sounded great. My parents were there to see me, and they agree that I’m one of the lucky ones to be part of Summer Rose.”
“Thank you, Herb. You’re where you deserve to be. We’ll see what they think if we get on the box for interviews. I’m expecting that the four of us will be first, and then the rest of you when we have another song out. Do any of you write?”
“Victor had a few songs that we’ve played around with.”
“Look, bring them along, or better still email the rest of us with recordings, and well see if we can put together an album of our own material. That’s the sure sign of a mature band.”
“Will do, Willow.”
Things got back to normal in the afternoon. The band had their nine minutes of fame. Everyone had agreed that the dance on Saturday had been awesome, and all of the band members were awesome. There were even a few early bird CDs for them to sign, which allowed them to inspect the product for the first time.
When Ashley got home on Monday, he had some news and a small box with a pop-out tray of pills.
“Willow, the sample that the nurse took showed a bug in your water. These pills have to be taken, one a day after dinner. There are seven, the last taken on Sunday. After that one, you have to fast. Just water until you get out of the operating theatre. The blood didn’t show any abnormal signs except a raised level of white cells, which the doctor says is usual if you have an infection. I take you in on Monday morning, and she thinks I should be able to bring you home on Friday afternoon. I take you in on the following Friday for them to look you over and remove the stitches. They’ll send you home in a taxi.”
“Thanks, Dad. I’ll speak to the Head.”
“I rang her as well and explained the situation as we want her to hear it. She may talk to you this week, but she promised that she will email any course notes for you to keep up. She said that it will be mainly revision and you will be going back for exams.”
“I know. It doesn’t seem real that I’ve been going to that school for two terms. By the way, Gina has her birthday two days after mine, and we were wondering if we could have a big party at the club?”
“Will you want it on one of the days, the day in the middle, or wait to the Saturday?”
“We’ll discuss it and let you know. A weekday would be better, though, won’t it?”
“Certainly, if the Saturday is a sing-along or a dance. Were you thinking of playing?”
“Actually, I was thinking of getting the G-Force to play. Gina and I can ask Peter for a discount, I’m sure.”
On Tuesday, it was Willow’s turn to play for chapel. The orchestra session was more of ‘Bolero’ and the Grieg, with Mister Bamborough telling them that they were likely to be in a recording studio in the new term, and that they would bookend the two pieces with Willow and Gina playing one of the Beethoven ‘Organ Sonatas’ each. Before she left, she told him that she would be missing the next two sessions for medical reasons, so he could concentrate on Gina, as she already knew all four of the sonatas.
“I know, Reg told me. I would have you play both, but I hear that Gina is fast catching up. I heard her at Evensong on Sunday, and it could have been the regular organist up there.”
The rest of the week was fairly normal. Willow had a session with her Village Choir on Wednesday evening, telling them that she wouldn’t be able to look after them the following week. Ashley and Maisie went to see an accountant that had been recommended, coming home to say that things would be set up by the time Willow was home again.
At school, the lessons were starting to take on the revision feel. Thursday, she sought out Mister Jamieson and told him that she would miss the drumming class on the following Friday. He gave her the course notes in advance.
On the way home on the Friday, she and Gina sorted out the order of organ playing. Willow was in the Cathedral on Sunday, and Gina in the church. Gina was in the Cathedral the following Sunday, and Willow hoped that she would be good enough to play the church. Gina would play the chapel for two weeks, with Willow taking the last week of term. Willow said that she hoped she would be able to play for the sing-along on the Saturday after she got home but would let Gina know if she couldn’t. Wendy was going to continue the usual school run while Willow was in hospital.
With everything sorted out, Willow just had to get through Saturday and her turn at the Cathedral on Sunday. Her keyboard was back in her room, and she had spent a lot of her evenings writing and recording the tracks. She now had twelve songs, including the three that they had already played. Most of the later songs were from her imagination about things that an older girl may live through, taken from films or stories she had read.
On Saturday afternoon, she sent the files to each of the three others, as well as all twelve of the basic files to Herb, Victor and Roy. To those, she had a message that the others had already played the first three as a quartet, but to add their ideas to turn everything into an electric offering. Then, Wendy took her into Coventry to run through the content for the Sunday services.
Ashley was on duty in the club on Saturday, as Malcolm had the idea that there would be more than usual coming along. Wendy and Willow walked there to have dinner and found about fifty diners there already. More came in while they ate, with some having to sit in the back room. Malcolm offered her cash in hand if she would play something, so Willow finished her meal and went to the stage. She pulled out the Yamaha and set it up, adding one of the Marshalls.
The other diners were transferring their meals to other tables in the back room as she was doing this, so, when she sat at the keyboard, alone on the stage, there were about seventy people in front of her. She had plugged a microphone into one of the amp inputs.
“Good evening, folks. This isn’t one of our normal Saturday evening shows, so I’ll have to apologise if it isn’t up to the standard that you’ve come to expect from the Stoneleigh Club. I’m Willow Rose, part of Summer Rose. I’ll play you the songs you may have been hearing on the radio, then I have a few new ones that may become our next album. I hope that you enjoy them, and the dance floor is there to be used.”
She had set the Yamaha to the piano and started her first solo performance on stage. This was pure improvisation and bravado. She worked through all the Carpenters material and then took a break. She was a few songs in when Maisie and Gina came in and ordered dinners. Gina grinned and gave her a thumbs up as the performance continued.
In the break, she went over to them, and the girls hugged.
“That was awesome, friend. Even pared down to just the piano, you nail it! How come you’re up there?”
“Malcolm asked me. I think that some of the people here are on their first visit. He wanted them to have something to talk about when they leave. I’m going to do some of the easier dance tunes after, then I think I’ll do all of the ‘Journey’ set. Did you get the files?”
“I did. I haven’t had a chance to work with them yet, so it will be good to hear them live. Did you send them to the others?”
“Yes. I also sent the whole set to the electric section. If they come up with anything good, it may be a good second album for the band. Not as heavy as the ‘Kansas’ but all original material. That’s what sets a band up as a force to be reckoned with. The feedback, tonight, will be interesting. You’ll have a fortnight without me around to kick it around.”
After her comfort break and a glass of water, she told her father that if Malcolm put together an envelope, to take it for her. Back on stage, she set the Yamaha to organ and started playing some of the dance numbers that were easy enough to sing and play at the same time. She was gratified when some couples came out to dance. After an hour of these, she announced that she was ending the evening with a set of songs from a possible album called ‘Journey’ and comments would be appreciated.
“You, tonight, are the first to hear this set. I hope that the ladies among you can relate to the story of a child becoming a teenage girl and then growing to be a woman.”
She sang all twelve songs, live for the first time. There was some dancing, some smiling, some of the women going to their bags for tissues, including Wendy. The first five were all from Willow’s own experiences, shared by most of the females in the room. The rest were from her imagination, which seemed to resonate with the older women there. At the last song, she sat, head bowed, then stood and nodded her head to the audience, who were applauding her. She turned the keyboard and amp off, then left the stage to be hugged by Gina and Wendy, then by most of the women present, and some of the men.
She sat with her mother, Maisie and Gina, and had a lemonade. Gina told her that the album was going to be a hit, even if it was only bought by the female half of the population. She had recorded the performance on her phone and would play it to the others when they met. She said that she would organise an after-school session to show it to them.
That night, as the Rose family walked home, her father was quiet for a while.
“What’s up, Dad? It looked like a good night for the club.”
“That’s the thing, you clever girl. People will be coming along expecting to be entertained. You can’t carry it on your shoulders.”
“I don’t have to, Dad. You do have the phone number of a grateful manager, don’t you? I bet that he has a stable full of bands who would be happy to play here. It could become part of the live music scene. I don’t mean rock bands, but there would be a lot of older folks who appreciate a meal and a dance on Saturday evenings. If we have to move the sing-alongs to another night, then so be it. We could have a link to book for meals on the website. I’d be talking to Peter, if I were you.”
“I once thought that you were just a good musician, but you’ve become a good teacher, a good organiser, and a good businesswoman. That’s a great idea which I’ll discuss with Malcolm and the other board members. Tonight, we had enough paying customers to cover band hire, and a full house would turn a good profit, as last Saturday proved. While you’re in bed next week, things may be changing outside, as well as with you. That last set brought tears to my eyes; it was so sweet.”
“You and every woman in the room, my husband. That set tugged at the heartstrings like nothing I’ve heard lately.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 13
On Sunday morning, Wendy took her daughter into Coventry. As they walked into the Cathedral, there were more people wanting to take pictures and wanting selfies with Willow. They saw the poster that advertised the day’s music being played by ‘Willow Rose – not only the organist of the hit song ‘Love and Marriage’ but also the leader of the ‘Summer Rose Quartet.”
The Dean met them.
“I have to thank you and your friend Gina. You’ve lifted our attendance numbers with some that would have never set foot inside the Cathedral before. You’re doing, for us, what you did at St. Marys.”
They had a drink in the Chapter House before Willow went up to the organ to start the proceedings. The service was as she had played the day before, and she played some Bach afterwards for a few minutes.
Mother and daughter went into the city. Today, Wendy had decided that they were going to do some serious dress shopping, as Willow needed something suitable for the stage. They were sitting in the shopping centre café, bags beside them, when Wendy smiled.
“That was a good service, this morning. It takes some bravery to be up there, on your own, in charge of that instrument.”
“Church organ playing is a touch of skill, a lot of practise, and the chance that’s offered, Mum. Real bravery was what I needed last night. I looked out at those people and wondered if I would be able to entertain them on my own. Everything I played I was imagining that I was in my bedroom, alone.”
“If that was the case, my darling, you were totally successful in hiding it. You could have been any one of those solo artists up there. I was listening to some of the comments. One woman told her friends that she had been to Las Vegas, and you were as good as some of the stars she had seen there.”
“If we ever play Las Vegas, Mum, it will be me and my friends on stage. I couldn’t do anything without them behind me.”
“Exactly, Willow. They will be behind you as the girl leader. They all know that, already, and they will all follow you to the ends of the world. You may consider them your equals, but most of them think of you as the first among equals.”
“That’s almost scary, Mum. It’s after three, we had better get this shopping in the car and head back for Evensong.”
When they walked into the Cathedral, Willow glanced up at the organ to see a man up a ladder. The Dean saw them and hurried over.
“Follow me, the Bishop wants a word.”
They followed him to the Chapter House, where the Bishop was sitting on an easy chair. He gestured to others.
“Please sit. I have something important to ask.”
They sat and were offered refreshments.
“No thank you, we have just come from the café.”
The Bishop sat forward.
“Willow. Our regular organist has used up his available leave but cannot come back to us yet. His son will be able to be flown back in a couple of months to be in a spinal unit for rehabilitation. He asked for, and was given, three months of his long service. This will take him to the end of May. Will it be possible that we can continue with you and Gina playing for us?”
“I suppose it would be all right. Playing here is a wonderful experience. That would take us through Easter, though.”
“Ah! Yes. We will have to work something out with Reverend Russell for that. It does give us some time to sort out. Perhaps we can send a coach to Stoneleigh and bring everyone here.”
“That would be good, but when they find that out, you’ll need two coaches, or more.”
“I’ll keep that in mind when I talk to him. The other thing is that we will consider the two of you as semi-permanent employees. We’ll pay each of you five hundred on the week for your Saturday and Sunday time. Through your manager, of course.”
“That’s very generous, thank you.”
“One more thing is going to be different.”
“Will that be why there’s a man up a ladder over the organ?”
He grinned.
“Nothing gets by you, my girl. Yes. There is a man on a ladder. He is installing a camera which will show you playing. We have used it in the past but not recently. We usually live-stream the morning service, using a camera mounted on the wall that looks at the altar area as well as the one that takes in the full Cathedral. That one you have vision of by the organ. We want to start live-streaming the Evensong as well. Our organist will watch on his computer.”
“That sounds like a good move, Bishop. Would you mind if we have a link on the Summer Rose website so that some of our friends can watch?”
“I’ve already spoken to Peter about that, and he says that he’ll have something up for today. We have already added the link to our own website.”
Willow turned to her mother.
“What do you think, Mum?”
“I think that it will be wonderful for the two of you, as well as for the general public once the service becomes well-known. Bruce may be interested in writing about it in the Observer.”
“Talk to whoever you see fit, Mrs. Rose. I think that our man may have finished now, Willow. When you have the monitor on, you’ll see yourself so that you can smile or sing along. It will show you which of two cameras is being used today and the three for the morning service. Could you please advise Gina?”
“I will, sir. I’d better go and warm up my fingers.”
She left the Chapter House, had a comfort stop and went up to the organ, noting the camera position, slightly to one side so that she would be seen in semi-profile. She looked at her watch and set the timer, then started playing Bach until four.
As she worked through the Evensong, she would glance at the monitor and smile when she saw herself. The choir were in full voice and there were no reasons not to be happy as the Cathedral reverberated with the singing congregation. When she finished, she looked down and there seemed to be a lot more there than usual.
On the way home, she rang Gina, with her end on speaker.
“Hi, friend.”
“Hi, Willow. What’s up? Is the organist back?”
“Just the opposite. He’ll be away for another three months and we’re going to get five hundred each to play as semi-permanent employees.”
“That’s fantastic!”
“There’s also a camera over the organ to show you playing. They are live streaming both the morning service and the Evensong.”
“So, we can tell the school and they’ll let everyone know. That’s awesome.”
“There will be a link on their website and the Bishop has already spoken to Peter about one on ours.”
“OK, I’ll go on-line and have a look.”
“While I was playing, today, I had some thoughts. Are you up for a little job while I’m away?”
“Fire away.”
“Can you speak to the rest of the band, including the guitarists, and see if you can work on the ‘Journey’ set?”
“Already thinking about that.”
“Also, can you speak to the film guys and the sound man that the school use to record the concerts. What I’m thinking is that we can pay for them to record us in the club, one day during the holiday. I’ll see my Dad about having the back room. If we have a set that’s ready to record, we can offer it to Peter as a done deal. I have the idea that he won’t talk to Marcus about getting us back in the studio until the Carpentry album starts to flag.”
“I’m with you there. They won’t be able to use the school equipment, though.”
“If they’re willing to come along, tell them that they will get five hundred each for two day’s work. If they select what they need, they can order it and then email the account to me. I’ll get Dad to pay it with a transfer from my account, then they can pick it up. We get to keep the gear. I reckon they will need two cameras and an eight-track digital recorder, with six microphones and cables to the PA. It’s stuff that we can learn to use for ourselves later.”
“That sounds like a good plan, Willow. Are you sure that you want to fund this?”
“I already have a lot more than you guys from the Hikers sales, so I’m happy to do that. There’s something else.”
“What’s that.”
“Can you talk to Geoff and see if he’s interested in being recorded. I have been told that Grant is writing original songs. This would be a good time for them to show us what they can do, as well as giving them something to show Peter as well.”
“How will we get the discs?”
“I expect that the technical guys have a lot of gear at home. If they need the software to mix and process the audio and video, I’m happy to give that to them, as long as they get an extra package for us to use later.”
“This is starting to sound like a long-term project.”
“That’s because I’m starting to think long-term, friend. I hope that you all join me on the journey, because I need you all there with me, making music and entertaining the crowd.”
“I’m with you, all the way, friend. I’ve made notes and I’ll get on to it during the week. Be busy but don’t let the school know what we’re up to.”
“Right on. The tech guys are all seniors, perhaps Geoff and the G-Force already know them.”
“All right. I’ll ask your mother how you’re getting on and may be able to visit you.”
“It’s all right if you leave it until I’m home. If I’m up to it, I’ll go over to the church on Saturday to see if I’m good to play.”
“All right, friend. I’ll let your mother know how I’m moving with the plan. The more I think about it, the more I think that you are totally right. Catch you later, friend.”
“Keep well, friend. Thank you for listening.”
She turned the phone call off. Wendy glanced at her as they drove down the main road.
“You don’t do things by halves, my daughter. That was the slickest piece of organising I’ve seen from you. How much do you think the equipment will cost?”
“Not sure, Mum. Maybe five to ten thousand. Those guys will get the best they can that will do the job. It’s spending money to make money. If we get big, we can find a lock-up and create our own studio. If we don’t, I’ll get some of my money back if I sell it.”
“What brought all this on?”
“Last night in the club. I was up there, on my own, playing the keyboard and singing. It was like the feeling I got the first time I played the Purple, scared to be doing it but exhilarated at the same time. It was the feeling that I was one with the music and that it would be my future. I’m still going to work towards university, but there will always be time to entertain. I hope you and Dad are all right with that.”
“We’re right behind you, my daughter. I have such pride and joy in my heart when I see you performing. Your father is the same but has a problem telling you how much he loves and admires you. It will be your life, and only you can decide how you want to live it. When we get home, I’ll have to email your Gramma to tell her how to watch you on a Sunday. She has already been told about the band website and has told me that she’ll buy the CD and DVD when they are actual things that arrive in the post. She is a big fan.”
“If we produce our own DVD in the club, we can get the rest of the band to sign it and we can send her an exclusive first look at the next album.”
“She will love that. Now, let’s get home and get you fed. You need to take that last pill and get off to bed. I’m sure that it will take you a while to get to sleep tonight.”
After dinner, Willow got ready for bed and went up to her room to put her headphones on and play the keyboard, now back in its usual place. She was engrossed with sorting out the niggling tune based on MRI sounds when she felt her phone vibrate.
“Willow speaking.”
“Willow, it’s Racheal. I was talking to Jacob today and he told me that you were going into hospital tomorrow. I thought that I should call and give you my wish that everything is fixed.”
“I’ve been told that it will be, Rach. How are you?”
“It’s been crazy. We were in London yesterday, talking to some big promoter about a nationwide tour. The problem is that what he was offering was all good for him but not great for the band. Rick went there, ready to do whatever it takes but we came home without agreeing to anything.”
“Tell him to speak to Bruce Miller again. Did the band sign with Peter?”
“Not yet, they had thought that because they had done so well on their own, they could look after themselves. Nothing’s happened yet.”
“They need a good manager. We signed with Peter and had Marcus take us into a studio to record our album. Those guys are looking out for us and things are happening behind the scenes.”
“I’ll talk to him. Anyway, all the best for next week, I’ll try to get to the next dance. Mum told me that you have to book to get a seat.”
“Thanks, Rach, see you there.”
She switched everything off and got into bed. She hugged her two soft friends and thought about what she had just said. She decided that she would be more inclusive when it came to band decisions in future, if she could.
In the morning, she showered and dressed in loose clothes, expecting that they will be the best for after the operation. She had an overnight bag already packed, so just needed to add her phone and charging cable. She had her laptop in a bag with its own cable. She made her bed, and, on impulse, added Tiger to her bag. She stayed in her room until her parents had eaten, then went down to join Ashley for the drive to Gaydon.
Wendy gave her a hug and a kiss on the forehead, saying that Ashley will drop in to see her that afternoon, and she would be going to the clinic as soon as she left work on Tuesday, seeing that Maisie would be picking up the others. On the way in, Ashley broke the silence.
“Your mother told me about your plans that you put into place. Just tell me the day you want to use the back room and I’ll make sure that there’s a no entry sign. I’m behind you with what you have set in motion. It’s always good to be pro-active, and a complete recording of the new album will push Peter into moving ahead, as soon as he can see how good it is. What I saw on Saturday was enough for me to have total confidence in what you decide.”
“Thanks, Dad. I told Mum that it’s spending money to make money, and I hope I’m right. If I’m not, I’ll just have to roll with the punches. If I’m zonked when you come in, you don’t have to stop.”
“Yes, I do, my darling daughter. I have to make sure that you’re settled after the operation. I’ll get the spotlight and the third-degree interrogation when I get home.”
“Just put the Deep Purple DVD on, Dad. That will save you.”
“What do you know about that?”
“Only that when you hear it, the bedsprings squeak. You need to oil them or get a new mattress.”
He was still chuckling when they stopped at the clinic. Willow gave him a kiss on the cheek and grabbed both of her bags.
“Have a good day at work, Dad. I’ll be all right. I’m in good hands.”
She walked into the clinic as he drove away. The receptionist told her to sit down and made a phone call. Five minutes later, a nurse came to lead her into the vortex of medical intervention. She was shown a bed in a private room, asked to completely strip and then given a sample bottle for some urine to check to make sure the infection had been conquered. She laid on the bed as another nurse came in with a razor to shave her pubic area, then disinfected the area. Later, she was given an injection to make her drowsy and able to take things as they came.
About ten, she was taken on a trolley to the pre-op room and the anaesthetist put a needle into the back of her hand. After that, she stopped thinking and just let things happen. She woke up in the late afternoon in the bed, with pipes leading from her groin area and a drip in her arm. Something beeped and a nurse came in with some fluid for her to sip.
“Welcome back to the world, Willow. The doctor will be around soon, but I can tell you that everything is good.”
She laid there, quietly, and wondered how this was going to change things. Before, she was a pretend girl, but without too much of her old self to give her away. Now, there was nothing to give her away, she hoped, except the fact that children was not on the cards. About an hour later, her doctor came in and checked the clipboard at the end of the bed.
“Welcome to the world of womanhood. The operation was as perfect as it could be, considering what the surgeons had to work with. The nasty stuff that was growing has been taken away and is in the path lab to be checked. They inverted your willie and have given you a useable vagina and a new outlet for your urine, just the same configuration as every girl. There is only one problem that I can see.”
“What’s that, doctor?”
“Just about every nurse on this floor have the Summer Rose album. Your hand may be stiff after signing all the autographs. You are so much more than the lad that we operated on last time, and your fame needs us to make sure nobody sneaks in to take pictures.”
“I’m not famous, doctor. I’m just a musical schoolgirl.”
“Yeah! And I’m Florence Nightingale.”
“Hello, Flo. What do you know, you just got back from a theatre show.”
“You, my girl, are going to light up the clinic while you’re here.”
“Why, thank you, doctor. I’m no match against you.”
The doctor grinned and left her. When her father came in, she had gone to sleep naturally, so he was given the details and allowed to look at her clutching her Tiger. He smiled, thanked the nurses and went home. He told Wendy what their daughter had said that morning, so they snuggled on the sofa and took her advice. That evening, Purple worked its magic once more, or it could have been twice more. Ashley was now aware of the springs and told Wendy that they needed to shop for a new base and mattress.
Oddly, the days didn’t drag for Willow. The nurses were attentive, and she did have to sign a few CDs and posters. She had her notepad to write lyrics and came up with some that could fit the MRI sounds. She gave the song the working title of ‘Fractured’.
On Tuesday evening, she was bright and cheerful when Wendy came to see her.
“There’s a package in the house that Gina gave me last night. It’s a drum machine. I asked her who we should pay for it, and she told me that it was a gift from Brent.”
“That’s right. I asked him to get me one when he got one for himself. I offered to pay but he wouldn’t hear of it. He said it was the least he could do.”
“Gina told me that the plans were under way on the drive in this morning. She suggested that you have a look at the band website.”
“I’ll do that. I’ve been on my laptop for a little while today, and I have a lot of good wishes by email, even one from the Head. They tell me that the catheter comes out tomorrow, along with the drip. It appears that I’m a quick healer. Then, I’ll be able to have a shower and tell them what they can do with this hospital gown.”
“I hope that you’re not being a difficult patient.”
“Oddly, Mum, this time I’m much easier about being here. It gives me time to think and to get my thoughts into some sort of order. It will be interesting to see what I look like, down there. The doctor says that I’ll be just like all girls when the bruises fade. I’m not looking forward to the first pee.”
“You’ll be all right. You already sit as a matter of course and I’ve told you to wipe front to back. Your father has told me that we’ll be looking for a new bed this week.”
Willow giggled.
“Did you watch Purple last night?”
Wendy laughed.
“Are you sure that you’re still only thirteen?”
“You have to remember something, Mum. I did grow up among boys, even if they weren’t kind to me. There was a lot I knew about in primary that wasn’t on the curriculum. If I meet them again, I can now tell them that girls aren’t the ice maidens they thought they were.”
On Wednesday, Willow had the drip and catheter removed, and had the shower that she craved for. In one of her own nighties and her own gown, she was allowed to sit in an armchair while her bed was remade. When Ashley came in, she was able to give him a hug. He made sure that she was all right and kissed her forehead when he left.
By Thursday afternoon, she was walking to the nurses station and back. Thursday evening, Wendy was told that she could be picked up on Friday, by Ashley. She would have been checked over and given fresh covering that was waterproof and should stay on until she came back to have the stitches out.
Before she left the hospital, Willow was walking almost naturally and had spent some time in the café. She had also started a couple of songs based on young love, which could be added to the song of the same name. She had also made some decisions about the MRI song. She would start with a staccato drumbeat from the machine and add the jagged synthesiser sounds. If it ever got recorded, it would after she had broken up with Jacob. She hoped it would never be needed.
She had also studied a few of the websites. The Cathedral one had pictures of her and Gina with a link to the services and Evensongs that they would be playing for. The Summer Rose website now had a range of merchandise, including a charming pendant shaped like a red rose, on either a silver or golden chain. She emailed Peter to ask if he could send two dozen to her home for giving out to deserving relatives. The website also listed the physical CD and DVD set with an order form link. When she looked at the video, it now showed more than a million views.
Peter emailed her back to say the pendants would be sent to her home by courier next week, and that that she should expect a TV crew and reporter to visit her on the Wednesday evening. She emailed him back to tell them to find her at the club with her singing group practise.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 14
When Willow got home on Friday evening, she had a home-cooked dinner and went off to bed. Wendy had taken all her soiled nighties to the laundry, and her laptop and Tiger were already upstairs when she arrived in her bedroom. Her bed was luxurious after the hospital bed, and she was soon asleep with her hunger for her mother’s cooking satisfied.
On Saturday morning, she showered and dressed in a jersey knit that went below the knee and a sweater. She was getting herself some breakfast when her phone chirped.
“Hello, friend.”
“Hello, yourself, friend. Are you home?”
“Got back last night and just flaked out in my comfy bed.”
“Have you got plans for the day?”
“Only to see if I can toddle over to the church to see if I’m fit enough to play.”
“I’ll come over and help you and I can tell you what’s happening. Are your parent’s home?”
“No. They went into the city to get a new bed, this one’s run out of oil, or something.”
“See you in ten minutes.”
She was having something to eat when Gina arrived. They had a hug and Gina complimented her on her dress. Willow got something for her friend to drink as she finished her breakfast.
“While you were away, I had a talk to all of the ones on your list. The tech boys will be happy to do what we want, especially when I mentioned payment and the program. The Gee’s will be rehearsing their new material in a lock-up that they can use, and our guys have been working out soft-rock versions of your songs. Did you look at our website?”
“I did. I saw those pendants in the shape of a red rose with either gold or silver chains. I’ve asked for some gold ones that we can hand out to our closer friends. It’s a nice logo we can use on our covers.”
“If you’ve done there, I’ll tidy up while you go and get some boots and a winter coat on.”
“Thanks. I won’t be long.”
After Willow had locked the door, the two walked arm-in-arm to the church. Willow wasn’t the best on her feet after her long time in a hospital bed. The Reverend had selected some hymns, just in case, and Willow climbed the stairs to the organ and ran through them. The joy of playing did more to revive her spirits than a month in bed. When she made her way down, she sat in a pew with Gina and the Reverend.
“Gina tells me that the Cathedral is paying you more and streaming both services.”
“Yes. It started last week with Evensong. We’re playing there until after Easter. The Bishop said he might send a coach here to take everyone to the Cathedral.
“I’ll never give up rejoicing the glory of Easter in my own church!”
“You can tell him that when he talks to you. I’ll be here the weekend before, then in the Cathedral for the Easter weekend. I suppose that we could share the burden at the Cathedral and here, but it doesn’t leave much time for anything else. The other thing is the concert. If that’s a hit with the public, we will be there on Thursday to Saturday. I looked on the calendar and I’ll be on duty on the Sunday, so you’d better get the hymns sorted out for Gina earlier in the week.”
“Keep me posted of any changes. It looks like it will be a busy time for you girls.”
They strolled back to Willow’s home.
“By the way, Gina. With our birthdays, would you rather have the party on mine, yours, the day in between, or the Friday night?”
“Definitely the day in between or the Friday.”
“It’s the week before the half-term holidays, so might be better on the Friday, after we break up.”
“I’ll talk to Mum and see what she thinks. Friday after school’s out sounds good, though.”
“Thanks for dropping the drum machine off. Please pass my thanks to Brent. Actually, you can give him a kiss from me.”
“You wish! I’m starting to realise that boys aren’t all nasty little pests. I may be turning the corner. You’re still a boyfriend ahead of me.”
“It isn’t a competition, friend. Alec was nice, and he was a good kisser while it lasted, but the edict that his mother laid down was enough to stop it in its tracks. If he had loved me, he would have done everything to stay, but he just rolled over.”
“Jacob is head over heels in love, you know.”
“I think that I’m in love with him as well. The thing is that his family may want him to marry a nice Jewish girl, although I think that he’s been in an Anglican church more times now than his parents have been in a synagogue.”
“Who knows what will happen. We’re still young and silly.”
“Not too silly, friend. You just have to wait and see our next statement to see how silly we are.”
“Yes. Will you be ready for the sing-along tonight?”
“I’ll give it a try. If I have to leave early, you’ll have to carry on.”
When Gina had gone home to get ready to head for practise in the Cathedral, Willow went and had a lie down, only waking up when her parents came home. They told her how much fun it was trying beds out, bouncing to see if they squeaked. They all freshened up and went to the club, where they sat for a while.
Ashley then helped Willow pull the amps and PA out of the storage and set up the Yamaha. When he queried the lack of the second keyboard, Willow just said that she would sing until she was tired. One by one, the rest of the band turned up, followed by the three tech guys. They showed everyone the brochures for the equipment that they had ordered and gave Ashley the invoice to pay. Willow had a look, and it was, to her, quite reasonable at just over seven thousand. Ashley said that it would be paid by Tuesday, so they should be able to pick it up after then.
Willow went to see Malcolm about hiring the back room for one day the week after next. He told her that it was available to her, all she needed to do was hang the ‘No Entry’ sign on the corridor door. He told her that what she had already given the club had warranted use of the facilities whenever she needed it.
The band and tech guys were fed as the diners started arriving. Before they went on stage, over three quarters of the tables were being used, with more coming in as they were setting up. Willow had a dining chair, with a hand-held microphone and told them that Gina would be providing all the keyboard tonight. She knew that she was heaping a lot on her friend’s shoulders, but there was no way she could have played and sung tonight.
She needn’t have worried, as Gina took up the lead position with ease, leaving Willow to sit and sing for them. Tonight, being sing-along, there wasn’t a lot of dancing, instead, there was a lot of singing and laughter.
She did make it through to the end, but it took all her energy. At the finish, she said goodnight to her friends and Wendy half carried her home. She was almost catatonic when Wendy undressed her and got her into her bed. She was fast asleep when Wendy turned the light out and made sure that the house was locked when she went back to the club to help tidy up. That night, she and Ashley made the bedsprings sing.
On Sunday, it took an effort of will for Willow to be up and dressed and in the church. As usual, playing Bach calmed her down and the service was as good as it usually was. Afterwards, she spent a little while in the club, then went home with Wendy to relax in front of the TV. At four, she got her laptop, plugged it into the TV, and watched Gina at the Cathedral. For her, it could have been a different place completely, and the captions and running banner with important notes would have been off-putting if they had been on the in-house monitor. When it was over, she looked at the band website and saw that the views had surged past the one point four mark.
Her email alert came up on screen, so she opened it up. It was an urgent email from Peter to tell her that there would be a reporter and photographer from the number one teenage magazine arriving at her house on Monday evening. She texted Gina to join her for the interview. She answered Peter to say she would be ready and asked why there had been a surge in views. He replied that the album had been picked up by several national stations, as well as being reviewed on the Saturday evening BBC music show.
When he rang off, Willow had a light tea and went to bed early. The effort of the day had been hard on her post-hospital body.
Monday, she felt better and knew that she had to pace herself if she wanted to be bright for the teen magazine. She spent most of the day playing with the drum machine, building sequences that could be almost as real as having a drummer sitting next to you. By the time Wendy arrived home; she was quite proficient with the unit.
Together, the family made dinner and ate it, just finishing loading the dishwasher when Gina arrived. They hugged and compared outfits. Both had gone with denim skirts and colourful tops for the inside. When Wendy looked at them, she thought that they may be sisters. The reporter and photographer arrived, and they sat in the sitting room with the upright. The photographer was keen to get pictures of them with the piano.
The questions were mainly directed towards Willow, and she tried hard to get them to talk about Gina and the rest of the band.
“There are seven of us now, you know. We can work as a quartet, but we want future albums, and any live work, to be the complete band.”
It was like drawing blood from a stone, but Willow and Gina made the reporter take notes about the others and their connection at the Blue Coat. They were close to an hour before surprising the reporter with their involvement with the Cathedral and their appearances in the school orchestra. Gina laughed.
“You really didn’t do any research, did you? We’re not your run-of-the-mill vacuous teens. We are also serious students with a desire to attend university. The music is good, but we also need to be successful in our academic life. That’s why we won’t perform while we’re in school. There may be summer shows, but that’s all.”
Willow looked at her friend in wonder. She was now becoming her own woman. The reporter looked ashamed.
“I have to admit that when I saw that you were only second year in high school, I expected a couple of giggling teens, not the serious women I’m now talking to. I had heard about your other pursuits but wasn’t aware that they were so big in your lives. I also wondered if you were a manufactured band, like the Monkees, not the serious musicians that you are.”
“Before you finish your article, I think that you should see us play. In a few weeks, we’re going to film and record some material in the Stoneleigh Club. Please keep it to yourselves. Give me your email and I’ll send you the day and time when we’ve confirmed them. That way, you’ll see how serious we are – as a seven-piece band. You will also see the next album before anyone else.”
“Thank you, Willow. Can I bring along a film crew?”
“No. We will have our own crew there and I’ll send you whatever you need once we’ve edited the output. I hope that you’ll also see another local band who are at the school with us. The session may be a couple of hours or maybe most of the day, but we’ll be able to get drinks and food at the Club. It has become quite popular this year as a dance venue for young and old.”
“That might be an article I can write for one of our other adult magazines.”
“There is a dinner dance there, Saturday week, before our recording session. You will have to reserve a table, they seat eight, so take along your partners for some dancing. I believe that the band is pretty good, even good enough for a write-up in the adult magazine.”
After the journalists had left, saying that they’ll make a booking for the dinner dance, Willow and Gina hugged and giggled.
“Now that was wicked, Willow. When they turn up, expecting some bunch of bald guys, they’ll be seeing Summer Rose plus a wind section. I’m going to enjoy seeing the looks on their faces that night!”
They went through to the kitchen, where Ashley and Wendy were sitting, trying to keep a straight face.
“What’s the joke, Mum?”
“The way you two took that poor girl and wrapped her around your finger. We both stood outside the door and listened to every word. Not only did you upend her concept of what Summer Rose was about, you also offered her two exclusives. One being the first to hear the new album, and the second to be the first reporter to see the band playing dance music live. After she sees the two of you on stage for over three hours, she will shelve the ‘manufactured band’ concept for ever. On top of that, it will give the club free advertising. You two are brilliant.”
“We still have a TV interview to go. They’ll be at the club on Wednesday evening. I’m not going to miss my choir ladies for them. Mum, can you tell Jacob about that when you take him to school, tomorrow? He may want to pop in.”
“He won’t miss out on seeing you again, my girl! How are the Village ladies getting on?”
“Really good. I had them singing separate parts of a choral piece when I last had them.”
Ashley laughed.
“Really good, she says. That group is going to be ready to take on anyone in a few months. They’ll be wanting to find an outlet for their singing. That will be another challenge for you, my girl.”
On Tuesday, Willow went for a walk down to the river and around the church. She was feeling much better, with the fresh air helping. She wondered if what she was feeling was delayed shock from being operated on, or maybe she had overdone things on the weekend. She had plenty to do in the quiet house, with some course notes being emailed to her. The doorbell rang and she looked through the spyhole to see a courier. She opened and signed for a package from Peter’s office. It contained two dozen pendants on gold chains, all in separate boxes with ‘Bloom like a Summer Rose’ in gold lettering on them. She took one and put it on, where it nestled on her upper chest. She looked in the mirror and vowed that it was to be seen.
She filled her day on Wednesday with schoolwork, the only respite was the drumming notes she had, finding that a lot of it was what she had learned with her day of playing with the unit. On Wednesday evening, the family strolled to the club, Ashley to do his barkeeping, Willow to work with the choir, and Wendy to watch over her daughter, now wearing a pendant of her own.
The choir arrived first, all giving Willow careful hugs. The new additions turned up, along with a lady in a powered wheelchair.
“Hello, Willow. This is Margaret. She used to sing with me in the opera company.”
“Hello, Margaret, welcome to our little singing group.”
“Thank you, young lady. I’m not sure how I’ll fit in, but I was told that it’s all a lot of fun. I may look frail, and my legs don’t work, but my voice hasn’t changed much. It will be good to use it again.”
“Look, we’ll move to the back room, and I’ll set the Yamaha up. There’s a TV crew coming to interview me tonight, so we’ll need the space. Mum, can you help me there?”
They all went to the back room and Wendy helped Willow pull out the Yamaha and an amp, setting them up on the dance floor. Willow had the sheets that they had already used, handing them around.
“We’ll start with these, going through them to warm up your voices. Margaret, what are you?”
“I was soprano, but I think that I’m better as an alto, now.”
As she was lining them up, Gina and Maisie arrived.
Willow sat at the keyboard and played for them with the easy, full choir, piece. As she played, the joy on Margaret’s face was enough to make her tear up. The TV crew arrived as they were singing, and stood, unsure of what they should do. At the end of the piece, Willow excused herself and went to the reporter.
“Hello, I’m Willow Rose, and my friend, Gina Summer is here. Oh! That lad just coming in is Jacob Epstein, the guitarist and vocalist in the Summer Rose Quartet. I have a standing requirement to work with these ladies, the growing members of a village choir. Some were just helpers in the church, but a few are retired professionals who live here. We have just started, and you’re welcome to set up and film us. It may be something that will give you a hook for your story.”
She went back to the organ, after a hug with Jacob.
“Sorry about that, ladies, the appointment was made without my input, so they will just have to take it as it comes. Shall we do the easy one again, and then go on with the split-voice choral item. After that, I have another one that needs the same sort of finesse.”
They sang the straight-forward piece, with Gina grabbing the word sheet and joining in. The TV cameramen were using small handhelds that didn’t need extra lighting, so remained quite unobtrusive. The sound man had a hand-held boom mic and headphones, with just a digital recorder in a backpack. They moved on with the second item, which brought some polite applause from the others in the room when they finished.
“Right, ladies. This new piece is similar, but it’s one of the old ones where the voices sing in harmony but singing different words. Anyone who has listened to things like the Messiah will know the technique. Gina and Jacob, can you come and stand beside me as I play, which will give you the idea. This is a comparatively simple version, with just two sections of voices.”
She gave her friends the sheets, pointing out what she wanted each to be singing, as she had highlighted the two sections. She played and the others sung. It sounded complicated, but the trick was to sing what you had to sing without listening to the other half.
The choir ladies were smiling, especially Margaret and her two retired friends. Willow gave the sheets out, separating the two halves, and they tried it once, with obvious mistakes. Willow said words of encouragement and they sang it again; this time it was good. There was more polite applause.
“Ladies, thank you, that was fantastic. Next week we can start by doing all three items and then move on to something else. Perhaps you ladies who sang professionally may be able to suggest something.”
Margaret reached behind her to a bag on the back of her chair, pulling out a book.
“Willow. I brought this along in the hope that I might be able to sing with you. This is the words and music to Handel’s Messiah that you mentioned. Would it be possible for me to sing the Air that deals with the despised man? I know the words by heart.”
“I would love to play the music for you, Margaret. Let me find the page. Ah! Yes. I’ll have to just set the keyboard.”
She set the Yamaha so that she could play a violin section sound. When she was ready, Margaret nodded, and Willow started with the violins. Then Margaret started to sing, putting her heart and soul into it. It starts with ‘He was despised and rejected of men’ with that sentence alone being sung in sections and repeats. Willow was working the strings, and the others looked on in wonder. The cameramen had one on Willow, and the other on Margaret. The sound man had the boom mic set up over the two of them. For everyone in the room, it was as good as it gets.
When it ended, Margaret was in tears and Willow wasn’t far behind her. It had been the most stirring thing that she had ever played. She stood and went over to Margaret, bending down to give her a hug. They both said ‘You were wonderful’ in unison.
The reporter came over to them.
“Margaret, I saw you on stage when you were with Sadlers Wells. Then you disappeared. Willow, would you mind if I interview Margaret and her friends first, then we can do what I came for. What we have seen is something that our viewers will be asking us to repeat.”
“That’s all right. I’ll get a drink and we can put this kit away.”
Jacob, Gina, and Wendy told Willow not to touch anything and they put the keyboard and amp back into the storage. Willow went over to the bar, where her father gave her a drink.
“That was just amazing, my daughter. Margaret has a fantastic voice and she sung with such passion. I heard her say that it was her legs that forced her out of singing. Who knew that we have such talent in sleepy Stoneleigh. This choir of yours is getting better by the day. You’re playing with the Messiah was brilliant.”
“Well, Dad, I was trying to emulate a full orchestra. I had the thought, while I was playing, that the whole thing would sound good in the Cathedral. The thing is that it goes two and a half hours and needs a lot more singers in the chorus than we have. I think that the orchestra could muster most of the instruments, but it would take more work than the school is prepared to give for one performance. Unlike most orchestras, ours turns over every two or three years, so there isn’t a core set of players.”
The others came over and they sat while the TV reporter spoke to Margaret at one of the tables. Her two friends also sat at the table and were included in the discussion. The other choir ladies sat near the bar and watched the proceedings, speaking in whispers.
When the reporter shook hands with the three, he looked around. The choir ladies all stood.
“Willow. Tonight, has been a real eye-opener for us. We’ve done something far beyond what we were thinking of. We all thought that we would be able to sing carols by next Christmas, never realising that we could do such complex music. Thank you for tonight, and we’ll see you next week.”
Willow stood and got hugs from all of them, as the other three came over. Sandra, one of Margaret’s friends, gave Willow a long hug.
“Willow Rose. You have no idea what joy you brought tonight. Margaret has been moping about her house for years. Bringing her tonight took a lot of encouragement, but I think we’ll be bringing her every week from now on. She really missed having song in her life.”
The TV guys had a drink and then the reporter asked the three friends to join them at the other table. He sat them opposite him, and one cameraman set up with a tripod to film him, while the other was to one side to see the three of them, with Willow closest.
“I’m going to start by speaking to the audience first, then I’ll speak to each of you in turn. Thank you for providing the opportunity for the other interview, it will go to air after yours. There will be clips of what you did tonight that will be slipped into the interview we will now do, as well as clips from your wonderful video. Are you ready? Feel free to stop me if we go anywhere that you don’t want to go.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 15
The three sat quietly as he settled and nodded. The sound man counted down from five and the reporter smiled.
“Today, I’m sitting in the dining room of the Stoneleigh Community Club. With me are Willow Rose, Gina Summer, and Jacob Epstein, three members of the quartet, Summer Rose, who have that successful album, ‘Coventry Carpentry’. I came here thinking that it would be an easy job to interview teenagers who had managed to find a niche in the market and would be unlikely to maintain that level of success. What I found were three, very serious musicians who have more than that album up their sleeves.”
He looked across the table and smiled.
“I walked into this room to find Willow Rose teaching a group of elderly ladies how to sing as a choir. Not only were they singing the sort of things that you would expect carollers to sing, but they were learning complex choral techniques that you hear from professionals. A few of those singers were once professional, and my interview with them will leave you with tears in your eyes.”
He turned to Willow to start the interview. There was the usual questions that she had answered with the magazine writer, but he had done his research, so spoke to her and Gina about the work with the Cathedral, which led on to Willow playing the organ in the BBC show on Christmas Eve. The girls told him that it was all part of being at Blue Coat and that Jacob would be starring in a guitar concerto later in the year. That led to Jacob talking about growing up on the farm.
They shamelessly plugged the club and the dinner dances, the website for the Cathedral and the link to see the services, as well as the band website and the album. When asked about sales, they could say, in all honesty, that they didn’t know how it stood at the moment. They had over a half-an-hour talking, and Willow thought that it had been a good discussion, even if it would be edited for transmission.
As the sound and camera men were packing their equipment, Willow suggested that the reporter bring his partner to the dinner dance on the Saturday night.
“You’ll have to see my Dad behind the bar to book one of these tables. I expect that there will be a group from the magazines coming along. The band is pretty good. In the week after, we will be in this room with our own sound and video team to record quite a bit of new material. It could end up as our next albums. We will supply vision and sound later, after we have processed it, so no cameramen of yours. If you leave your card, I’ll email you with the day and time. Please keep this to yourself, as we can’t deal with any fans here.”
He grinned.
“I’ll do that. I might book a table and bring some friends along. Will you be here if they want a word?”
“You bet. I wouldn’t miss the event. I live around the corner and it’s just a short walk for a good meal and a good night.”
The reporter went to the bar, spoke to Ashley and the crew left. Gina started laughing.
“You really are wicked, Willow.”
Jacob looked bewildered.
“What did I miss?”
“We had an interview with a reporter and photographer from a teen magazine on Monday evening. They were clueless about who we are. Even suggested that we were a ‘manufactured group’. They might be here for the dinner dance as well. They don’t know that it will be us on stage. We’re going to have to decide what we’re going to play. We can’t do anything from Kansas or Journal, so it will have to be from that big repertoire of pop and folky stuff early on, then some dance music, ending with some of the album. We don’t have to do the lot anymore, so should pick the best.”
Wendy came over to them.
“It’s time you were asleep, my girl. Have you finished the plotting to take over the world?”
“Just sorting out what we’ll play at the dinner dance. I expect that both lots of reporters will come along when we record the next album, here. I think you’re right. Goodnight, friends. Thanks for helping out with the singing.”
She had a hug from Gina, and a hug and kiss from Jacob.
“How did you get here, darling?”
“Rach brought me. She’ll be back soon to take me home. She wanted to stay for the interview but had something she had to do with one of her friends in the village. I think that they may be planning a wedding.”
Willow walked home with her mother, arm in arm.
“You know, my darling daughter, my tear ducts have never worked so hard as they have these last few months. Tonight was so emotional when Margaret sang. I remember seeing her on the TV when she was a professional. A lovely voice then, and still as lovely without her old range. Have you any idea what you’re going to do with that group?”
“Don’t know, Mum. They need to learn a lot of material, with a few that should learn to read music if they want to do more. If we keep it local, they’re almost good enough now.”
It didn’t take her long to get to sleep but was sure that she was getting stronger by the day. The area around her groin was itching a bit, but there wasn’t any pain. Thursday, she devoted the whole day to reading up on old lessons and looking at the file that had been sent to her with a small amount of new work.
On Friday morning, she was back in the car with her father, heading for the clinic. He asked her how she could convince the two media teams to come to the next dinner dance.
“They both booked a full table, and there have been quite a few who have also booked to make sure they get a seat. What did you offer them, some sort of exclusive?”
“All we offered, Dad, is a good meal and a good night. They don’t even know who the band is, so it may be a surprise when we start playing. I’m not sure what they have in mind for me today, and they’ve told me that they’ll send me home by taxi. See you when you get home for dinner.”
“See you then, sweetie. You’ll have a quieter weekend.”
“Just the Cathedral on Sunday. You can take your laptop to the club and watch me playing on the big screen. The service there doesn’t start until the one in St. Marys is almost over.”
When he stopped outside the main doors, she gave him a kiss on the cheek and got out. She waved as he drove away, then turned and went into the clinic. Over the next hour, she was checked over and had the dressing removed. After the few stitches came out, she discovered the joy of her first time with her legs lifted in stirrups and having the doctor giving her a very detailed vaginal inspection.
That was followed by more than an hour of instruction of how to look after her new equipment and how to make sure it was clean. After that was something of a surprise, being something that she had never heard of. She learned how to dilate, when to dilate, and instructed to contact the doctor when she started to enjoy it, which would mean that the nerves were starting to work as they should.
Back in the outside, her new pack of different size dilators in her bag, she waited for the taxi to come for her. When she got home, she stripped and had a long shower, making sure that she soaped everywhere. She washed her hair and then dried off. With her hair in a towel turban, she stood and looked at her naked body in the big mirror.
Except for the continuing bruising, she looked like a girl. The marks around her torso were now fading and she felt really good about herself. So good that she laid on her bed with one of the dilators and tried it out while rubbing her budding breasts. The result was more than she expected and felt very good indeed. She decided that it was far too early to tell the doctor that there was a little more feeling than she had expected; a few more sessions like that were called for to make sure that the data was genuine.
For the rest of the day, she wrote a new song about a girl finding her sexuality for the first time, recorded the vocal and keyboard track, then filed it as something to save in the same file where ‘Fractured’ was. She dressed in the new underwear she had brought for herself and put on one of her better skirts and tops. When Wendy got home, Willow suggested that a meal at the steakhouse might be nice. Her treat as the celebration of a successful operation and aftermath.
“Oh! How successful was that?”
“Almost earthmoving. Mum.”
Wendy gave her a big hug.
“Congratulations, girl. We won’t tell your father that little detail.”
When Ashley got home, he only had time to change into casual clothes before they were on their way to the table that Wendy had booked. He wouldn’t hear of Willow paying for the meal, he was so happy that the women in his life were happy.
On Saturday afternoon, Wendy drove them to the Cathedral. Willow played through the hymns first, finding that she had much more freedom of leg movement without the covering. Then, she worked through the Evensong, with some singing along and the choir coming in when she got to their material.
Before they left, she went to speak to the choirmaster.
“Excuse me, sir, can I ask a question?”
“Certainly, Willow. What do you want to know?”
“I’ve been working with a group of church ladies in Stoneleigh. I had noticed that they stood together to sing the hymns and suggested that they may enjoy forming a group choir. It started with five, and now we have fourteen, including a few retired professionals who live in the village. I’ve taken them through straight out group singing, to alternating lines, and last week we worked on singing together but using different words. It worked out quite well.”
“Right. Who are these retired members?”
She named them and the choirmaster smiled.
“You have three of the best in their day. I haven’t heard of what came of Margaret. One season she was there and the next she was gone. I worked with her for a while.”
“She lost the use of her legs, and now uses a motorised wheelchair. She’s now an alto but has a wonderful voice. She sang us one of the Airs from Messiah. There was a TV crew there at the time, come to interview me as one of Summer Rose. Where I’m stuck is that they all show promise, but I have no idea where to take them from here. I’m in the orchestra but haven’t a clue of how you turn singers into a choir.”
“I would love to help you, especially seeing Margaret again. Where and when do you get together?”
“It’s Wednesday evenings, from about seven, at the Stoneleigh Community Club. If you come along, I can guarantee that you’ll be fed if you get there early. Those of us that work for club activities get a meal thrown in. My Dad is behind the bar and pulls a mean pint.”
“Thank you for asking your question. I’ll come along with a couple of dozen books for them. It outlines the home training and has about fifty choir songs to extend their skills, with the music for piano. I expect that your original ladies don’t read music, so there are phonetic notations that help them follow, over the music. I’ve found that most people can pick up the way the music goes by following that. When I see the Bishop, I’ll tell him what you’re doing. He was a great fan of Margaret when she was singing.”
“Thank you, sir. I look forward to hearing the choir tomorrow. I’ve told my father to take his laptop to the club and show the stream on the big screen.”
As they were driving home, Wendy asked what the discussion was about.
“I asked him about teaching singers to be a choir. He says that he’ll come along next week and bring some training manuals with him for the ladies. He worked with Margaret at one time and is keen to see her again.”
“Will he help you with the village ladies?”
“I don’t know. We’ll have to see what he thinks after hearing them sing.”
When they got home, Ashley had a big grin on his face.
“The old bed is in the Crate Castle, darling, and the new one has been set up. All it needs is making. As a mere male, that’s way above my pay grade.”
“We’ll do that, love. You’ll have to buy us dinner at the club, though.”
“You drive a hard bargain, but I agree.”
Wendy and Willow went up to the master bedroom and made up the bed with fresh sheets. Wendy had bought new ones when they were shopping for the bed. It looked very nice when it was finished.
“That looks good enough to sleep in, Mum.”
“Yes, my girl, and it won’t wake you up in the night, either. We made sure of that in the store.”
“You tried to make it squeak in the store and weren’t arrested!”
“We stayed fully dressed, my girl. The sales lady stood by us as we bounced on it.”
“That would have been a demonstration bed, Mum. It may have been desqueaked. If this is out of the box, who knows what sounds it makes.”
They went to the club, where there was a good crowd. Willow was asked, by some, if she was playing, and she told everyone to come back next Saturday for the dinner dance. She added that she was playing in the Cathedral in the morning and didn’t want to wear her fingers out.
That night, she didn’t hear a thing from her parents room, except for a muffled cry from her mother that she could now relate to, having had a similar feeling herself.
The Sunday went as usual. She played for the service, now seeing the three views on the monitor and singing along as she played. The Cathedral was packed, and the singing was strong. When her mother took them into the shopping centre, the dress shops had a lot of spring fashions in, and they came away with more additions for both their wardrobes for when the sun was out.
The Evensong was well attended, and the singing was good, led by the choir. Willow sat quietly as they went home, thinking about the week to come, then turned to Wendy.
“It’s exam week, Mum. I expect that the orchestra session may be postponed to next half-term. We’ll find out tomorrow and let you know if we’ll be early every day.”
“Thanks, darling one. How do you feel about the exams?”
“I’m pretty good with the subjects, as I didn’t miss a lot of new material while I was away. I’ll be having a good talk with the band members about the dinner dance on Saturday, and I’ll try and get our band to the club one day in the holidays to run through what we’ll record. We have yet to set a date for that, so that will be a priority. If we set up to practise, we can leave it up for the recording.”
When they arrived home, Ashley was there.
“Just getting some papers together for Malcolm. He wants me to think about throwing my hat in the ring for the next election. Are you coming to the club?”
“Yes dear, any day I don’t have to cook is another day in paradise. Come along Willow, let’s freshen up and go eat.”
They had a quiet meal and then left Ashley working the bar to go home. Willow put another few pendants in her bag to give to Gina and their close friends. It felt a bit odd to be going back to school but knew that exam week would be different.
Monday, on the way, Gina told them that she had gone to the club after church to find vision of the Cathedral service being shown on the big screen. She said that a lot of parishioners may be visiting the Cathedral to experience it in person.
“While we were in the city on Saturday, Mum took me to that music store where you got your Nord. I bought one of my own, as well as one of those drum machines. I’ll bring my Yamaha to the club to lend it alongside yours. That way we won’t have to carry one in every show. We also went to a store, and I brought Mum a new sewing machine with computerised embroidery and all the attachments to go with it.”
Willow waited until lunch to bring the boxes out of her bag. One, she gave to Gina.
“These are the new pendants. I had some sent to me and have one on now, under the blouse. I was thinking of giving one to Barbara and Diane, who were the first girls that I played with from the school.”
“Excellent thinking. Hey, Barb, grab your sister and see what we have for you.”
The squealing sisters brought other girls around. Gina told them that the pendants were now on the band website. Willow looked at her friend.
“You’re a fast learner, friend.”
“What can I say, I have the best teacher in front of me.”
Willow asked Gina what day, next week, she thought would be good for the recording, and they agreed on Wednesday, with setting up on Tuesday for practise. Before leaving for the next exam, Willow went to see the other band members to tell them of the arrangement, asking them to be at the club on Saturday afternoon so they could run through the first playing of Journey. Then she went to where the seniors were sitting to tell the tech guys that they could test the gear on Tuesday for recording Wednesday. Then she gave the Gees that information, telling them what equipment would already be on stage.
As they were heading back to the next exam, they saw a notice that the orchestra session was cancelled. The rest of the day went smoothly, and the three were quietly confident that they had done well. On Tuesday, it was Willow’s turn on the chapel organ, with Reverend Jack giving praise for another good half-term and hopes that they will all be back after the holidays, refreshed and ready to learn more.
That evening, Willow emailed the two media contacts to tell them to be at the club at ten, Wednesday morning. The TV reporter emailed back to tell her that their interview was going to air on Saturday, in the local news segment after the five ‘o’clock national news; and that he had received some good words from his superiors.
Wednesday evening, the choir meeting was full of joy. Gina and Maisie arrived, carrying the Yamaha, and set it up. Willow helped get an amp down. All of her ladies arrived, and Willow asked her mother if she could join in, having such a good voice. She said that she would if Maisie would, and Maisie laughed.
“Gina has already got me to try out with her, Wendy. So, line up.”
The choir master came in, followed by three members of his choir, all carrying boxes. He put his on a table and went to Margaret.
“Tom, what a lovely surprise. It’s been too long. Why are you here?”
“Willow asked for help, Margaret, and as soon as she said that you were in the choir, I just couldn’t stay away. I have three members of the Cathedral Choir here to help out. The boxes are full of the basic handbook on choir singing, from easy to hard, with the music. Willow has told me that there are some of you who don’t read music, so we’ll have one of ours stand beside each one of you to show you where you are on the page. Gina, can you help there as well. The first thing we have to do is find out just what your ranges are.”
Over the next half an hour, one of the visitors filled in each member of the choir’s details as Willow went through the scale for each one in turn, finding that Wendy was quite an effective mezzo-soprano. After that, Tom conducted them as they worked through the songs that Willow had already put them through, nodding as he heard them in full voice for the first time. After that, they worked on the first song in the book, with Willow playing, Tom conducting, and those who could read music helping those who couldn’t. They were passable on the second try, which brought a smile to Tom’s face.
“I think that this is enough for now. In the future, I’ll be here on Wednesday evenings to take you to the next level. There will be others in my choir who will come along to help out.”
Before he left, Gina told him that she would be coming to the Cathedral on Saturday morning, and not the usual afternoon.
The rest of the week was more of the exams, and they had finished by Friday lunchtime. The three friends went to one of the rehearsal rooms, where there was a piano. Willow played the piano, while they all sang quietly; songs from Journey and a few others that they could fit into the dinner dance set.
They were working on an old standard when Mister Bamborough walked in.
“I thought I’d find you here in the break after exams. How do you think you got on?”
They all said that they thought that they had done enough.
“More than enough, if your last results are anything to go by. I’ve been looking at that website of the band. We do have an interest with a share of some of the content that was originally school intellectual property. I believe that you’re all doing very well out of it. I’m starting to wonder if there are any thoughts of touring and destroying your schooling.”
“No thoughts of that, sir. We had a couple of interviews last week; one for a magazine and one for the TV. We told both that we were determined to go through to university. I believe that the TV one is going to air on the local news on Saturday, after the national bulletin. Hopefully, it will be in the early part so we can see it before heading for the dinner dance.”
“My wife and I plan to attend that. I have to say that the experience of performing live has increased the skills of the wind players, as well as the rest of you. It will be good to see you play, again. Do you have any new material?”
Gina laughed.
“We have a whole new album, sir, all written by Willow and expanded by the rest of the band. I’ve heard Willow play the whole thing, with just her and the piano. How about you let Mister Bamborough hear ‘Finding a Friend’.
Willow smiled at her friend and started playing the piano intro, then singing the song. It was enough to make the teacher inwardly draw breath. When she finished, he let it out.
“That was wonderful, Willow.”
“That’s what some of the other students used to call me, sir. Jacob told me that there was ‘Wonderful Willow’ going around behind my back. I nearly came to school in a mask and a cape.”
“Totally deserved. When will we be hearing the rest of the album?”
“If you’re free next Wednesday morning, sir. We have planned a recording session at the club. It will be the G-Force with some material that Grant has written, and also the seven-piece version of Summer Rose. There will be others there, a reporter from a teen magazine and the TV reporter. We know that both outlets have booked tables for Saturday evening but are in the dark about the band that’s providing the entertainment.”
“Who is doing the recording?”
“The tech guys who do the school concerts. Before you ask, we have bought all our own equipment.”
“That’s quite an outlay, Willow. How are you funding that?”
“From the money I have from the Hikers album sales. I have enough to do that sort of thing, and we get to keep the equipment afterwards.”
“Will I be able to have a copy of the event?”
“We plan to have a quantity of CDs and DVDs cut after the guys have edited it. It will be up to our management to mass produce. We can let you have a sample of our material, but you’ll have to ask the Gees if they will give you theirs.”
“Exactly as it should be. Look, congratulations on what you’ve done this year, so far. The school is getting good publicity from the various endeavours that you’re involved in. I’ll see you, on stage, Saturday evening.”
After he left, they collected their things and went to wait for Wendy. Jacob gave Willow a cuddle.
“Saturday morning, Rach is taking me to that music store in Birmingham. I’m going to buy myself two guitars with my earnings. One will be a Martin, like the one I play here, and the other will be something like my old Fender, but a properly made acoustic with a pick-up inside. I’ll bring it along on Saturday afternoon to see how it sounds with the band. If it doesn’t fit, I’ll use the Fender. I’ve also been playing around with that effects box; I’ll try that out on Saturday afternoon as well.”
As they were dropped off, they two said that they were looking forward to playing again on Saturday, all sensing that it would be yet another watershed in their lives.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 16
On Saturday morning, Willow was up and over at the church early. She got the service details from the Reverend and went up to the organ to work through the hymns. After that, she went to the club, where Malcolm was polishing glasses.
“Big night, tonight, Willow. Fully booked with a waiting list. Quite a few that have booked full tables.”
“That’s great, Malcolm. We love playing to a full house, especially when they dance. It’s as if we’re the puppet masters, and they’re on the end of our strings. Has Dad had a word to you about booking other bands?”
“He mentioned it, but a lot come to see you.”
“We won’t be around for ever, and the earliest you get them used to seeing other bands, the easier it will be for us. Over the summer, we may be off somewhere else on a Saturday night. Talk to Peter when he comes in and see if he has other dance bands. On Tuesday and Wednesday, we’ll be using the back room, and there’ll be another band from school. They have been playing for a while and do blues, sixties pop, and will be playing new material here.”
“I’ll pop in and see them. What time?”
“In the morning from ten. They get a couple of hours and then we take over for the rest of the day.”
She went home and rested until noon. Then, she set the video recorder, and the family went to the club for lunch and to set up for the afternoon practise. Gina arrived with Maisie, and then Jacob arrived with Racheal, carrying what looked like a new guitar case. The band members started pulling out the equipment and the others started setting up the tables for the evening. When the whole band was there, they had a snack that Malcolm had organised and went up on the stage to sort themselves out.
They worked as the full band, with the wind section, including the winds jamming with the Carpenters and the few Journey songs that were now being played by the full band. Willow told them that if they couldn’t follow, to just stand and sing, or, at least, sway with the beat. Jacob was playing a new guitar, a Guild Troubadour with pick-up as standard.
“What happened to the new Martin, Jacob?”
“I tried several, Willow, but this one sat so well on me and sounds great.”
They worked until nearly five, and then rested, eating the supplied dinner and then getting out of the way in the store area as the customers came in, talking about the past week and the exams.
When they heard the noise in the dining room quieten as the meals started coming out, they went up on the stage and started playing quiet ‘eating’ music. After about half an hour, they started to up the tempo and moved to dancing music. Willow had to smile as she saw the reporters and their companions look up from their plates and take in the band playing to them.
As she looked around the room, she saw one table with some of her choir, sitting with Tom and his partner. She was surprised to see tables with both the Hikers and the Gees, with Rick and Racheal sitting with the Epstein parents and another elderly couple.
She was also surprised to see Wendy and Maisie sitting with the Baron, Marie, Cassie and Terry, plus Rupert and a blonde who looked like a model. They got a cheer when they started with a small set of Carpenters numbers, then did some easy pop, and then ended the evening with a trio of new numbers from Journey, followed by some more slow dance songs. Close to eleven, Willow spoke.
“Thank you all for coming along tonight, I hope that you enjoyed your time in the Stoneleigh Community Club. We’re the Blue Coat School Dance Band, and any resemblance to Summer Rose is purely your imagination. And we’ve only just begun.”
They played that song, which Brent had told them was in the national top ten that day. When they finished, they all stood and bowed to the applause.
There were a lot of people wanting to talk to them after that, with Willow having to ask for a few minutes so they could have a comfort break. By the time they came back, there were a few empty tables, so the band commandeered a couple while Ashley organised soft drinks for them all. Most of the band were on one table, with Willow, Gina, Brent and Jacob on one to themselves, which gave those who wanted a chat to be able to sit with them.
The two reporters just wanted to tell them that the show had totally changed the way that future reporting would take. Although the TV show had been transmitted, the magazine article still had to be written, and would be revised. Willow said that she hadn’t seen the show because she had been in the club at the time but would look at it later.
The Baron and his party just stopped to say hello and congratulate the band before heading to the hotel in Coventry where they were staying. They said that they would be in the Cathedral on Sunday morning, so Willow told them that Gina would be on the organ.
Tom came over with his wife.
“I asked my daughter if she wanted to come with us, but she declared that she wouldn’t be seen dead in an old fogies dance. I took some pictures on my phone, and she’ll be livid when she sees them. She’s a big fan of Summer Rose.”
Willow delved into her bag.
“Here, give her this as a consolation. It’s one of our pendants.”
Tom got his wife to take the box, taking a picture of it being handed over. After that, there were a few of the normal diners who told them that they had just enjoyed a wonderful evening. The room cleared and Racheal came over with Rick and the rest of the Hikers.
“That was wonderful, I think that you’re going to be booked for our reception. It will be in one of the ballrooms in the city. Rick was suitably impressed with your total package.”
“Yes, I was. You have just shown me and my band what entertainment really is. We’ve been staying with what we like, but there must be a lot that we can do well but aren’t totally keen on. I’m told that you’re in here on Tuesday and Wednesday. Can we join in? There are a few new songs that we’ve written and would like to see what our peers think of them. I found out that G-Force will be here as well. It could be a fun day.”
“The object of the two days is to get some material recorded, Rick. We will have two cameramen and a sound guy with enough equipment to put together a DVD for you to show others. That’s what we will be doing. We have this room for all day, so you should arrive before ten. What’s set up on the stage now will be still there, so have a look and see if there’s anything else you want to bring. Tuesday will be try-out day, and Wednesday will be for making the recordings. You’re welcome to join in.”
After they had gone, taking Jacob with them, Geoff and the rest of the Gees sat down.
“Willow Rose. When you played the organ for us last summer, it was as if an angel had dropped out of the sky to save us. Here you are now, with a full band of second years, showing us that we’ve been knocking our heads against a wall since then. You’ve moved forward while we’ve remained, stubbornly static with our pop and blues. Grant has several new songs that we want to try that could pull us out of the rut. It would be really good with an audience of two bands with charting songs watching us.”
“We’re not going to be here to judge, Geoff. We’re here to do some work ourselves.”
“We know, but, after talking to Rick tonight, I know that he’s in the same boat as we are. Honestly, I’m not sure if you haven’t established your own rut with the easy-listening music.”
“You’ll see where we’re heading next week. What you see on the stage is what we will be using. We won’t have the wind section, so it will just be the seven of us that are signed with Peter. Bring along anything else that you want. The two Yamahas will be here for Jim to use. I will add one piece of advice. See if you can get Zara to sing in front of the band. That will put you behind her but could put you all in the charts.”
“She has sung with us when we had practise. I’ll try to get her to come along to see what being in a good band can be like. We’ll see you at ten on Tuesday.”
Finally, the room cleared, the wind section all collected their envelopes, joined their parents, who had been at a table together, and left. The rest of the band drifted off with their families. Willow and Gina sat with their drinks.
“That was interesting, friend.”
“It was, Gina. Our sessions here will be interesting. It will be good to see where the other groups are.”
“Two groups that you’ve played in, Willow. You’re the one who have brought them together with us. The day I saw you play the Purple with Geoff; I was in awe. Now I’m sitting beside you, my very best friend and mentor, hearing you offer advice to guys a lot older than us. It’s strange, but seems right, somehow.”
“What is right is that I’m ready for bed. We’ll make sure that everything on stage is turned off, and I’m heading home.”
They stood and hugged, then checked the stage before Gina went with Maisie and Willow went home with her mother.
Before she left, she asked Malcolm about getting into the club on Tuesday and Wednesday.
“I’ll be here, lass. It will be interesting to hear what sounds like a Battle of the Bands play-off. I’ve paid the extras, and will pay Peter fifteen hundred for your time, tonight. That was a cracking show. The TV reporter told me that I was a lucky man as he ordered a round of drinks for his table. One of his companions used to be on the screen but is now the head of the news at the station.”
Mother and daughter strolled home, with Willow starting to flake as they went. She cleansed and changed to her nightie, dived into bed and was asleep before saying goodnight to her furry friends.
Sunday morning, she was awake and dressed for breakfast and the church, feeling good. The family walked there as the bells started. The Reverend greeted them.
“Cracking show last night, Willow. You may not have noticed us in the crowd, but Mister Bamborough and his wife sat with us. He didn’t want to impose, but he was mightily impressed with the show. He said that he knew that the band was good after the dance at the school but had moved on since then. He had a laugh when you announced the name. He was, I think, considering that it would be nice to put a show on in one of the big halls in Coventry.”
“We’ll just have to wait and see. There’s a term and a half before we get to the summer holidays, and there still is the concert in the Cathedral to get through.”
She went to the organ, got ready, and started playing the welcoming music. As she played, she thought about how the week will pan out. She was getting excited about having the three bands in one place, swapping ideas and trying new things. She hoped that the recording of the news show was a good one and would look at it this afternoon.
The service went as usual, and she went over to join the others in the club. Although it was now the end of March, there was still a nip in the air and the hot drink was welcome. Ashley put the big screen on, and at ten-thirty, they watched it as Gina played the Cathedral. Willow was surprised when her mother put an arm around her shoulders and pulled her to snuggle.
“Your friend is there because of your faith in her. When I first met her, she was a timid little mouse. Now, there she is playing in the Cathedral. I don’t know how many will be watching the stream, but there will be followers anywhere in the world. It’s almost scary to think about.”
“It’s not scary, Mum. It’s wonderful. That sort of exposure will give her offers to play anywhere after school. It sets her up for life if she wants.”
“You too. I’m going to call that woman that my boss knows. It’s high time you were exposed to fashion and proper make-up in a photo shoot. With you and Gina having been on the TV, I’m sure that she’ll jump at the chance to give you both a screen test.”
“We can watch that interview this afternoon, as long as I set the recorder properly. Malcolm told me that the head of the news division was on a table with the reporter last night. And Brent told us that ‘Only Just Begun’ was in the national top ten, based on radio plays. Peter should be tearing his hair out thinking of ways to get us on to a stage.”
“Suggest what the Reverend told us. Get him to put on big dinner dances with the band as the evening’s entertainment. He could co-ordinate with the school to split the organisation and some of the profit.”
“You’re a genius, Mum. Can you start to think about a couple of album covers for us, please.”
“What are you thinking of?”
“One will be for the Kansas CD. I think that we should have me and Jacob, and Gina and Brent, out front on that yellow brick road, with the others clearly seen behind us. The title can be, ‘It’s not Kansas anymore, it’s the Other Side of Summer Rose’. What do you think?”
“Sounds good to me. I’ve taken pictures of all of you while you were playing, so I can get the faces right. What’s the other one?”
“That one will be ‘Journey into Womanhood’. You’ve heard me do the whole album when I was on the piano a couple of weeks ago. We’ll be playing it as a soft-rock set with the whole band. I haven’t got a picture in my mind yet. The whole set are my own compositions. We did play a few from the album last night, near the end.”
When the feed from the Cathedral finished, most of the crowd went home. Malcolm insisted that the Roses stayed for lunch. He sat with them at the table.
“That show, last night, was brilliant. As brilliant as our takings lately. This year, the club has pulled out of the COVID slump and is more popular than before, with a lot of diners who don’t live in the village. We’re nearly at the stage where we can do some renovations, especially in the conveniences area.”
Willow thought a bit and then looked at her father.
“Dad, we need to draw some money from my account to pay for the tech guys in the week. Can you please get me fifteen hundred, in cash, as we promised them five hundred each. While you’re about it, can you get another thousand so I can pay Malcolm for hire of the back room for the two days. I know it’s been offered free, and I appreciate that, but it’s turned into more than we had planned. We will have Rick and the Hikers with us, as well as the G-Force. Malcolm said that it will be like a Battle of the Bands last night, and that has made me realise that two of those bands are in the charts. We can afford to pay our way.”
“Did I just hear you right? You said two in the charts.”
“Rick has been to the top with ‘Love and Marriage’, and Brent told me that “Only Just Begun’ is in the top ten on radio exposure. It will be interesting to see my statement from Peter.”
“With you on both of them! That’s crazy! My daughter a pop star and just sitting here after playing organ for the church service.”
“I told Jacob that when you play with a group, like an orchestra, there are no stars, just some individuals doing a bit more at the time. That’s how I feel about Summer Rose. As you saw last night, almost everyone is out front with the vocals at some time or another. Anyway, the video didn’t have an organ in it, and they’ve got an extra member to play one.”
“But it was you on the audio, sweetheart, the sound that made it work. It was you that allowed the Hikers to earn more than a million pounds.”
“Don’t lay it on with a trowel, Dad. I’m still me, your child. Still a child, Dad, with some more years at school to get through. Anyway, thank you for the lunch, Malcolm. I think I need to have a look at that interview that aired last night while we were here.”
Wendy and Willow went home and changed into casual outfits. They sat in front of the TV and went to the start of the recording. It came on and showed the end of the national weather news, then the opening credits of the local news. There was an item about one of the aged care homes and poor nutrition. Then they saw the reporter, as he opened the item with, “Today, I’m sitting in the dining room of the Stoneleigh Community Club. With me are Willow Rose, Gina Summer, and Jacob Epstein, three members of the quartet, Summer Rose, who have that successful album, ‘Coventry Carpentry’.”
The interview gave them all equal time, with a fair bit of editing, and interrupted by snippets of the live performance at the school. Willow thought that it was as good as they could give time for. It was followed by the interview with Margaret and her friends after a short ad break. With this one the reporter had thought about the continuity with it being second.
“You have just seen an interview with the members of Summer Rose. When I arrived to interview them, I walked in on a choir session, with some ladies from the Stoneleigh village being taught by Willow Rose”. There was a short clip of Willow at the keyboard with the choir in front of her, singing. When it came back to him, he smiled.
“The opera lovers of you may have recognised three of the faces in that choir, all were at the top of their game before they retired, and all now rejoicing in the opportunity to sing again.”
He turned his eyes away from the camera and asked Margaret about her time since she last walked a stage. The interview followed her time in hospital and then drew in her friends, who were living in the village and were able to organise a cottage for her, getting it wheelchair friendly before she moved in. The three all said that finding out about the singing group was like a shining beacon in their lives, telling him that it was Margaret’s first time.
“I don’t have to ask you if you enjoyed it, Margaret. I thank you for talking to me and we will finish this segment of local news with your wonderful voice, accompanied by Willow Rose in a role that most would have never considered her in.”
They watched the entire performance of Margaret singing the Air from the Messiah, with cuts to Willow working hard on the keyboard. When the next show started, mother and daughter were still sitting on the couch, clinging to each other and bawling their eyes out.
When they had composed themselves, Wendy went to the recorder and ejected the disc.
“That one is for the collection. I wonder what others thought of it.”
Willow pulled her phone out of her bag and turned it on, her eyes widening as message after message scrolled on her screen. She went to the bottom of the list and started looking at them. Most were from schoolfriend fans of Summer Rose, most being supportive, and a few telling her that she had sold out to ‘the establishment’. She deleted as she went, stopping when she came to one from the Head, timed at seven the previous evening, telling her that she was a student from heaven, and that she was needed in her office first thing on the first day back.
There was one from Tom.
‘Good things come in threes. One was a great evening, two was the look on Sally’s face when we showed her the picture of you presenting the pendant. She only takes it off to shower. Three was looking at my recording of last night’s news service. Wish I had been there at the time but glad I’m part of taking those voices forward.’
She texted him back.
‘If you come early this week, we will be making a DVD. If Sally still at school, bring her along. G-Force and the Hikers from ten in the morning, SR in the afternoon, the choir in the evening. Will have the gear to film them if wanted.’
There were more from fans, then one from Peter.
‘Watched interviews last night, well done you. Latest statement sent to your emails today. Please organise an account that I can pay you regular amounts.’
She got the bank account number for the trust account and emailed him back with the number and the request for a thousand a week, based on her expectation that this would be a small amount of the income. She asked Wendy if it was all right before she sent it.
After several more fan messages, there was one from Marcus Waddington.
‘Just seen great interview. Album selling well and I need you somewhere on stage.’
She answered that one.
‘Been suggested that we do dinner dances as Blue Coat School Dance Band. Did four-hour show last night as eleven-piece. School will allow this if you talk to them and involve them. Mister Bamborough at show last night, so talk to him first.’
As she looked at, and deleted more messages, the times approached the actual time. The last one had come in at one, just before she had turned on her phone. She had to laugh when she read it. Wendy wanted to know what was funny, so she passed the phone over. Wendy read the message aloud.
“That man! Just called me at home. Now wants us to perform Messiah in Cathedral for Xmas.”
Willow was sitting on the couch, almost crying from laughing. When she was able to speak, she smiled.
“I wondered about hearing Margaret in the Cathedral when she sang for us but considered it to be too big for our orchestra. I wonder if the Head will take it on or reject it. If we do it, there will be a lot of kudos for the school, but it will take most of the full term to get it right.”
“When did you hear it?”
“I must have been nine or ten. It was on the TV one day during the Christmas holidays. Dad was at work, and you were off shopping or something. It went for nearly three hours, and I was captivated, only rushing off for a pee in the breaks. It isn’t an easy piece by any means. The violins were what pulled me in, it’s mesmerising and uplifting at the same time.”
“You’ll just have to see what others do. If it’s decided to be performed, I suppose that you’ll have intensive practise from the first week in September.”
“Not just me, Mum. To do it right, it needs about thirty in the choir. The school has ten or so, the Cathedral had ten or so, and we have Tom working with seventeen of you at the club.”
“You have to be joking! Me in a choir in the Cathedral! That’s ludicrous.”
“Wait and see, Mum, just wait and see.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 17
When she had finished with her phone, she went and got her laptop and clicked on the email program. There were less who had the address, but the inbox still had a lot of messages. She found the one from Peter, looked at the statement, then went into her father’s office and turned on the printer. She sent the statement to the printer, then sat and took it in.
The band had sold another forty-five thousand downloads, giving a total income of four hundred and fifty thousand pounds. The CD sales had made a hundred and eighty thousand pounds, and the DVD sales were split at twenty thousand downloads and fifteen thousand DVDs. That was another three hundred thousand, plus another three hundred and seventy-five thousand, giving a total of one point three zero five million. Pendants had brought in thirty thousand, and posters had added fifteen thousand.
That gave a total income from sales at one point three five million. Other income included twelve hundred from the Cathedral, and fifteen hundred from Malcolm. Costs were thirty-six thousand for the CDs, a hundred and eighty thousand for the DVDs. Posters were five thousand and the pendants were twelve thousand.
The admin expenses included eighty-four thousand in postage, and twelve thousand in office costs. Willow was aware that every CD and DVD needed to be packaged and addressed, even if they were using standard PO mailing boxes. The school had received twelve thousand.
That left over one point two million, now split seven ways, which gave Willow a total of just over a hundred and forty thousand. Over the page was just her income from the Hikers sales, which was another fourteen thousand less five percent. She had earned over a hundred and fifty thousand pounds in the month. There was an extra cost at the bottom; less two hundred and forty pounds for pendants, at cost.
She sat back, realising that every one of the seven had earned a hundred and forty thousand. She laughed.
“What’s that, darling?”
“The statement for the month, Mum. I should have asked for more in wages. Peter is now splitting the total income seven ways, taking care of all the band. He included the payments for the Cathedral into the total, in the sum of things, it’s a drop in the ocean.”
She showed the papers to Wendy, who had to sit down as she read it.
“So, you’ve asked him to pay a thousand a week into your Uni Fund account. That will be fifty-two thousand a year out and over a hundred and forty thousand going in, every month?’
“It will vary, Mum. When the sales drop off the expenses probably won’t. A lot of the expenses are manufacture of product, as well as packaging and postage. That stays as a fixed portion of the sales, so goes up and down with that.”
“I think that we need to get you to the accountant with this. It may change how he deals with your accounts. He may want you to draw down from what Peter is holding and invest it.”
“I also need to talk to the lawyer about getting my gender changed and having a new birth certificate issued in my current name. I hope the change can be done without shouting it to the hilltops.”
“I’ll talk to your father about this when he gets home. Hopefully, the doctor has enough of the paperwork completed to issue a certificate of sex change. Once we have that, we can start on the rest.”
“If I have my own bank account opened, we could transfer a smaller amount to that to tide me over for everyday expenses. Band related expenses can be covered with a transfer from the Uni Fund, unless it can be put on Peter to pay from our account.”
“Where did you get all this information at your age?”
“Maths questions and a course on ‘Everyday Living and Finances’ that we did in Clifton.”
She then looked at the other emails. There was one from Cassandra Leigh, which had three attachments. Willow went back to the printer and printed them off. She took them back to Wendy.
“OK, what else are you surprising me with?”
“One is an invitation to us all to the wedding of Cassie and Terry, two weeks from today, at our church. It’s taking place at four, on the Sunday, and it’s the day before the beginning of the next term. Gina will be in the Cathedral, so I’m good for the church.”
“That’s close, but we can do it. We can even afford a couple of very nice dresses. We will have to go shopping next weekend. You’ll be in the Cathedral, so that’s doable. What are the others?”
“One is the official request for my playing of the organ at the event. I’ll be here on that day, so it’s also good. She has given a list of the music and the hymns. I expect that the Reverend has a similar email.”
“The third one?”
“It’s a booking for the dance band to play at the reception, a copy of what has been sent to Peter, and there is a three-thousand-pound payment for our services. That’s twice what Malcolm pays us. Gina will be playing until five, so I expect that we’ll start the music a little after six when the speeches are over. We can do the bridal waltz without her. There is also another email from Peter advising us of the booking. The whole band will get that. There was another email, from Racheal and Rick, with an invitation to their wedding at the registry office, next Thursday. I thought she was a little flushed last night.”
“So, no church wedding, that’s sad. Did she mention a reception?”
“That’s when they push the boat out. It’s at the Britannia Hotel, that big white place next to the Cathedral. I expect that a place like that has several reception rooms, depending on the size of the guest list. The wedding is at two, with the reception starting at five. I suppose that means two dresses, Mum, with the events just a few days apart.”
Willow sat at her laptop and acknowledged the emails that needed it. Then they had a light tea, knowing that Ashley would have something in the club. They sat and watched TV until he came home. When he was told about the weddings, he agreed to go with them to Coventry the next Saturday to get a new suit. When he was shown the latest statement, he wrote notes for himself to ring the accountant and the doctor on Monday.
Monday morning, Willow had breakfast with her parents and waved them off as they took their separate ways to work. She locked up and went for a walk along the river, then back through the village. As she passed the church, she heard her name being called, turning to see Gina coming towards her.
“I was just coming to see you, friend. I looked at my emails and had the shock of my life when I saw how much we had earned in the last month!”
“It was rather a lot, wasn’t it? Have you any idea of what you’ll be doing with it? I emailed Peter to pay a thousand a week into my Uni Fund account, and Dad will be phoning the accountant today.”
“I really haven’t thought about it. I hate to think of Peter sitting on it and getting the interest.”
“What about buying a house? You could put a hundred thousand on it, in joint names with your mother, with your present home as collateral, I’m sure that there wouldn’t be a bank that would refuse to give you a mortgage, one you could pay off by summer. If you sell the present place, you may be able to pay it off sooner.”
“That would be good. Something with three bedrooms would give us both one and the third could be the work room. It would be nice to be out of that box room I’m in.”
They walked to Willow’s home, and she fired up the laptop. It didn’t take long to find a newish house on the Birmingham Road for just over four hundred thousand. They scrolled through the pictures and Gina got excited. She stood and they hugged.
“Thank you, friend. I’m going home to show this to Mum and see what she thinks. See you tomorrow.”
Willow watched her friend skip up the road to the junction. Then she went back on the laptop to look for somewhere in an industrial area for a recording studio, just for interest sake. It was Gina’s comment about Peter keeping the interest that was making her think of investing in property. She would be living here until she went to Cambridge, so didn’t need a house as much as Gina, and after that, who knows. She found one place that looked right but had a tenant. She realised that if the lease ran for five years, she would be nineteen when it ran out. She would still be at Cambridge, and another two years would allow her to spend the money to create a recording studio. All it needed was the band to keep selling albums.
Her phone rang and she saw that it was Jacob.
“Hello, you.”
“Hello yourself, sweetheart. I thought I’d call and talk about all this money I now have. Dad nearly fell out of his chair when I showed him the latest statement. Have you thought about what you’re doing with your money?”
“I was just looking at commercial property, wondering if I could buy a place now, and convert it to a recording studio later. That place where we made the album wasn’t much bigger than one of the school classrooms.”
“That sounds like a plan. Did you find somewhere?”
“There’s a unit on Hood Street, in the city. It looks good but has a tenant with a five-year lease. It’s just over four hundred and fifty but returns over thirty-one a year. We can’t open as a business at fourteen, so a few years won’t matter. Dad’s organising a visit to the accountant, so I’ll talk about it to him.”
“If you go with it, can I join you as co-owner?” I’ve spoken to my Dad, and he agrees that I’m not really farming stock. Racheal is studying agriculture, and Rick sounds like he’d be happy living on a farm, so they’ve been talking to my parents about taking over after they get married. You did get the invitation, I hope.”
“I did, and we’re going into the city to get some glad rags on Saturday. Did you get the notification of the big wedding in two weeks? We’re playing the reception.”
“I did. Peter forwarded the booking to me. We’re not playing at Racheal’s reception; the hotel organises a DJ. She’ll be with Rick tomorrow and could open up a bit more about their plans. Rick has made almost enough to buy the farmhouse outright, which would let my folks retire early. They’ve been looking at brochures, or else they may buy somewhere in Stoneleigh.”
“Ask Gina about that, tomorrow. We were looking at newer houses in the village and she seemed keen to drag her mother to look at one. If they buy, her home may be up for sale. It’s only a two-bed and a box room and is what they call ‘character’ but it’s been in her family for nearly a hundred years.”
“That might work. What time are you getting to the club?”
“Before ten. I want to be there to make sure the stage is ready to go before the others turn up. I really don’t know how it will work out. I’m hoping for a friendly swapping of information and advice.”
“We’ll just have to take it as it comes. See you in the morning. Love you.”
“Love you, too. Bye.”
While she had been talking, her phone had pinged a few times, so she scrolled through the messages. There was one each from Herb, Victor, Brent and Roy, all saying much the same thing about their sudden wealth. There was one from Bruce Miller, asking if there was any news. She rang him back.
“Hello, Bruce, it’s Willow.”
“Willow, I texted to see what was happening.”
“A couple of things. One is that I had an operation a few weeks ago that aligns my body with my school birth certificate, so that story now has an ending.”
“Just a beginning, my girl. Now is the time you really get going. What else?”
“The second are two weddings. The first is at the registry office between Rick Saxon and Racheal Epstein. That’s Thursday week at two. The next one is the society affair between Cassandra Leigh and Terry. According to my invitation, he is Viscount Terrance Appleby. That’s at Stoneleigh church, the following Sunday afternoon, with the reception in the club, with Summer Rose playing.”
“They both sound like events that a social pages reporter should be covering. What else?”
“Tomorrow, there will be a gathering of a few local bands at the club. It’s going to be the debut of some new songs. Wednesday, we’ll be back again to play proper sets, with video and audio recordings made.”
“What are the bands?”
“G-Force, which are a group of fourth-year students; Rick and the Hikers, who you know, and a seven-piece version of Summer Rose. We plan to record two complete albums; one a cover, and the other is all new material.”
“Now, that I can’t miss. Can I bring a photographer?”
“I’ve told a teen magazine that it won’t be allowed, but I expect that they’ll use their phone with zoom. Tell him to keep it unobtrusive. I think that the TV reporter that did the interview on Saturday will be there, I told him the same.”
“Ah! That interview. I was wondering if there’s a chance to talk to your choir ladies for the paper.”
“If you’re there Wednesday, they will be coming along for a practise in the evening. Tom, the choir master from the Cathedral, has said that he’ll help turn them into a semi-professional group. I was doing the teaching but had reached the end of my choral knowledge.”
“Thanks for the information. I’ll be along on both days, as I need to get out of the office to show my boss that I’m on top of things. See you then.”
There was another text, this one from her father.
‘Picking up letter from doc today. Have the cash asked for. Appt. tonight with accountant.’
She texted her thanks back, then went to see what she could find for a late lunch. In the afternoon, she did something that she had left for too long. She went to her room and played violin for three hours until her left hand was aching. Then she went down to the kitchen to see about preparing their dinner, so that they could have it as soon as her parents got home.
When Ashley gave her the money, she put five hundred in each of three envelopes, writing the names on the front. The two who would be filming were Frank and Dave, with the audio expert called Xavier. She had found out that all three were in the same year as the Gees. She put the thousand into another envelope and gave it back to her father.
“Can you put that in the till, Dad, as payment for the two days. I’m hoping that it will return a lot more than that.”
They ate the dinner and Wendy told them that she would tidy up. Ashley drove Willow into the city to see the accountant. When they arrived, the girl in reception wanted her to sign her copy of the album, and then they were sitting in front of the accountant. He looked at the latest account, adding it to her file.
“What do you want to do, Miss Rose?”
“I want to set up a limited liability company, called WR Holdings. I want to open a bank account in that name with me and my parents as co-directors. I want to look at commercial properties in the area, with regard to converting one into a recording studio inside five years, or so.”
“That’s a pretty concise list. What brought you to those conclusions?”
“One is that I’m underage and can’t purchase real estate in my own name, and the other is that we recorded our CD in one of the best places in the city with a studio hardly big enough to swing a guitar. I’m looking at somewhere in excess of twenty-five hundred square feet. There’s one, at the moment, on Hood Street at four-fifty with a sitting tenant that returns over thirty-one a year for five years. If they move out, then good. If they don’t, I’ll have an income producing property that’s fully paid for, which should make getting something else much easier. I’m not counting on my income being as good as this last month, but we’ll be working hard to keep it going. I still have school and uni to get through.”
He laughed.
“Then why do you need me?”
“Because I’m not an accountant. If you don’t want to deal with my affairs, we can always go somewhere else.”
His face tightened.
“You, young lady, are the brightest teenager I’ve ever met. I’m happy to look after you to the best of my abilities, seeing that you’re totally serious about investing. I’ve had clients in your position who only wanted to buy big houses and flash cars, mostly ending up having to sell them a few years later. You have a good head for business on top of your other talents. I saw the interview on Saturday and was mightily impressed by you and your friends but wondered if you’d been coached by the reporter to lift his ratings.”
“The reporter turned up thinking that he’ll be interviewing a few giggly children. Boy! Did he get a surprise when he walked in on our choir practise.”
“What is your expectations for your career?”
“I have another two months of playing the organ in the Cathedral, alternating with Gina Summer. Then we have a big school concert there in May, which could lead to an invitation to fill one evening at the Proms. I think that we may be performing at a few dinner dances during the year, as the Blue Coat School Dance Band, splitting the payments between us and the school. Our manager is talking about us having gigs during the summer, but nothing has been finalised. There has been a suggestion that the orchestra will be playing the Messiah in the Cathedral before Christmas, but the school has to sign off on that one. We will be recording two complete albums to show our manager and may have to go into a studio to record them properly. So, my expectations are that my income will remain close to last month for a good six months, or more.”
“That comes to over a million.”
“I know that but remember that I’m only getting one seventh of the take.”
“You’re telling me that this statement is for just one seventh of the profit?”
“That’s right.”
“Look, I like your idea of commercial property. They’re nowhere near the trouble that owning houses to rent gives you. I will look seriously at what you want and get back to you. If I think I’ve found something, I’ll be in touch. Anything else?”
“I’ve spoken to Jacob Epstein, the lad in the interview, and he has told me that he wants to join me in getting the property.”
“I do the Epstein farm books. I had the idea that he could take over the farm.”
“Not happening. It’s possible that his sister and her husband will take it over. Her husband is Rick Saxon, from the band, Rick Sacks and the Hikers. He’s made a few hundred thousand from his viral video, so can fund any improvements that they want to make.”
“Thank you for that. I have an appointment with his parents at the end of the week. I wondered why they wanted to see me outside the usual tax period. I will set up the company and the bank account. You’ll need to go to the bank, together, to sign the papers. It’s going to be a pleasure dealing with someone as level-headed as yourself.”
They stood and Ashley shook hands with the accountant. On the way to the car, he laughed.
“That was interesting, my girl. He ran into that brick wall you can erect instantly. Gina has told me that they used to call you ‘Wonderful Willow’ at school. You just showed me one of your superpowers.”
“I may be small and a teenager, Dad, but I didn’t come down with the last shower. Years of being bullied gave me that power, but it came at a price. I refuse to roll over for any man who thinks that he knows it all. Talking about men who know it all, when are we seeing the lawyer?”
“Either end of the week or the beginning of next. I have all the paperwork to get your name change started. If we start the company, we’ll need him as well to guide us through the regulations.”
“Thanks Dad. If we have you and Mum as directors, then I can legally share profits with you. If we do set up a recording studio, we will do it as up to date as possible. I’ll talk to our tech guys tomorrow and find out what their future plans are. They’re cluey guys, and it will be interesting to see what they’ve come up with for the recording.”
They went home and Willow took herself off to bed. Tomorrow was going to be an interesting day.
In the morning, Willow wore jeans and a sweater, with boots. Today was going to be for working and also networking. When she arrived at the club, there was a people mover outside. It had Frank, Dave and Xavier waiting for her. She was greeted by Xavier’s father.
“Hello. I’m pleased to meet you, Willow. Xavier has been telling me a lot about you and your band. I haven’t been able to be at any of your shows as I work nights. Once we unload, I’ll be off to get some sleep and Frank’s father will pick them up in the late afternoon.”
“We would have been on stage ourselves by then. We have the G-Force in the morning and Rick Sacks and the Hikers will be here as well, so it’s going to be an interesting day. These guys will set up and do their thing, but all we ask is for them to be ready to record sessions tomorrow.”
“I’m told that you’re paying them.”
“Yes, I offered them five hundred each for the two days’ work, plus the software for home if it’s needed. Did you get that, Xavier?”
“I did, Willow. It’s an updated suite from the one we use at the school. I got a package for you as well. Will you have time to see how it works today.”
“I’ll see what I can do as we get going. Jacob will need to learn it as well.”
His father coughed.
“Willow, I was asked by the other two fathers if I would make sure the boys are paid.”
“Certainly, sir, I have their envelopes here.”
She reached into her bag and pulled out the three envelopes and handed them to him.
“The guys will be fed while they’re here, on both days, so you don’t have to worry about that. If we unload, I’ll introduce you to Malcolm, who is the boss here, as well as the Village Manager.”
The guys opened up the back of the people mover and started hauling out rolls of cable and various boxes. Willow introduced Malcolm to Xavier’s father and then showed him the back room while the boys commandeered a table to put the recording unit on.
“Have you seen any of the shows that they’ve recorded?”
“I have, and I’ve been impressed, especially with that dinner dance that you played. Professional bands would line up to shake your hand.”
“It’s the last part of that that is on our website. We can’t give the boys any cut of those sales as it was a school production, but if any of what they record here goes onto the websites for distribution, I’ll organise a one-off payment as our technical team. It could help them to find jobs after they leave school.”
“That would be really good. None of them have any thoughts about doing anything but working in media.”
“The reporter from the local TV station will be here tomorrow, so they’ll have some experienced media people watching what they do. I don’t know who they’ll be bringing, but I expect there would be at least one professional cameraman.”
He smiled, shook her hand, and left to get some sleep. Willow started to help the boys set up, telling them which instrument used which amplifier. They loved the PA, as they could use the Wi-Fi facility to take a feed from it, as well as setting up individual microphones. The recording unit was plugged into a socket with an extension lead, and Xavier had his laptop plugged in as well. Willow took it all in, determined to be able to use the new software that was nestled in her bag.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 18
As they were getting things set up, Gina and Maisie arrived, followed, a few minutes later, by the G-Force, who had been driven there by Jim’s father. They had their guitars, and the drummer had brought his own cymbals. G-Force set up and Jim reset one of the Yamahas to suit his style. Willow was interested in hearing how much the band had moved on.
They played a song from the blues show, while Xavier moved sliders on the mixer, and motioned Frank and Dave to make subtle changes in microphone placement. Willow stood next to him with her headphones plugged in, hearing how the slight changes improved the sound.
When the band had finished that song, Xavier asked them how they wanted to work things, considering that the real recording would be tomorrow. Geoff looked at Willow.
“OK if we do some new stuff?”
“Certainly, you’re here to do whatever makes you happy, and allows you to put together a set for tomorrow morning.”
Xavier turned to her.
“Is it all right to record everything?”
“How much will this unit save?”
“About thirty hours’ worth.”
“Then record everything and fine tune as you go. Remember the settings for each band to save time tomorrow. I’ll stay out of your way, it’s your call with the bands, you’re running the show as far as recording goes. It might pay to make a note of any track that stands out, in case it gets fluffed in the morning.”
“Got you, Willow. Thank you for this opportunity and for having faith in us.”
He called out to the band and then to Frank.
“Geoff, after Frank uses the clapper, you’re free to go. Just let me know when you’re stopping, or else I end up with minutes of nothing. Frank, clapper time.”
Dave had one of the cameras ready, nodded to Frank who snapped the clapper board shut and walked out of shot. Willow noted that they had bought good cameras that recorded to memory cards. The band started to play some material that Willow had never heard before, she thought that it may be their own stuff, and she liked it.
As G-Force was playing, members of Summer Rose and the Hikers arrived, taking seats in the back of the room, alongside Willow, who was determined not to poke her nose into the session developing in front of her. Racheal came in with Rick and Jacob, sitting each side of her. Jacob gave her a hug and a kiss. They spoke softly, so not to be picked up by the microphones.
“How are you, Racheal?”
“Good, Willow, good. You got my invitation?”
“We did, we’re going into the city on the weekend to get all three of us outfitted.”
“Dad’s taking Jacob in on Saturday, he’s never had a proper suit before.”
“I’m sure that he will look like a million dollars.”
“He’d better. He’ll be standing beside Rick during the wedding.”
“Who do you have beside you?”
“I was hoping that you’d fill that space. After all, I do blame you for the rush.”
“How on earth did I bring your marriage on?”
“You remember overdubbing the hit song? Well, the week after it went viral, the band had a little celebration. Rick and I got a bit drunk, checked into the Britannia and went at it like rabbits. Up until then we had taken precautions, but that night of bliss had consequences. I don’t regret it for a moment, but it did torpedo the chance of a church wedding.”
“You could always have a second wedding in the church, if you want to.”
“Maybe later. Anyway, I’ll have an apricot dress, so you can have something similar. Knee length for a civic ceremony, and then I don’t have to change for the reception. We’re spending the night in the hotel again.”
“I’ll be happy to stand beside you, Racheal. That will make you due in the middle of October, then. It would be nice to have a christening in St. Marys.”
They all sat and listened as the G-Force played some of the old blues, some sixties pop and quite a few new songs. When they indicated that they had finished, Xavier and the others took a break while the bands changed over. He came over to Willow.
“Never in a million years did I think that I’d be recording a band with a world-wide viral hit.”
“It will be interesting to see what they do with that song, now that they have an organist.”
He went back to his mixing and Geoff came over to Willow.
“Zara couldn’t make it this morning. Would it be possible to let her do a few songs at the end?”
“Perfectly all right, Geoff. I liked your new stuff, and you mixed up the material nicely.”
“That’s from watching you play for hours, while keeping it interesting. The rest of us realised that if we do more than half an hour of what we like, the audience would be drowning us out with their snoring.”
Willow was watching the tech boys as the two cameramen took the memory cards out of the cameras, put them in plastic bags and wrote on the bag. She went over and had a look. Frank looked up from his writing.
“You’ve allowed us to do something new. We’re capturing a complete set and saving it separately. We have enough cards for ten sessions. That will allow us to work more easily with the post-production. Will we be allowed to stay a little later, and you will be able to see how that’s done.”
“We have all day, Frank. Tomorrow, I have to stay because I have my choir group coming in later.”
When Rick and the Hikers were ready to go, the crowd moved to the back of the room, joining Bruce, who had arrived. They stayed quiet as the clapper went down and the session started. They kicked off with the hit single, with Willow now hearing it as it would be performed on stage, then went on with another ten new songs, finishing with another from the video. As they played, Willow was watching how Frank and Dave were working, with Dave keeping his camera on the whole band, or sections of the band, while Frank moved around, concentrating on individuals, and taking close-ups of the guitarist’s hands as they played.
When the Hikers had finished, they all took a break and had the light lunch that Malcolm had prepared. In the quiet hubbub of eating, Willow and Gina sat together.
“I showed Mum that house on my computer and asked her if we could think about it. She phoned the agent and we looked at it yesterday, then went to her bank. They looked at my two statements, rang Peter to verify that he would release money, looked at the paid-up title, and offered us a short-term mortgage on the spot. Peter transferred a hundred thousand from my account and we went back to the agent to make an offer.”
“That was quick. Did they accept?”
“We offered them four hundred thousand, with immediate payment, and they agreed. It seems that they’re due to fly to Canada next week and asked us if we’d take the furnishings for ten thousand, which we were happy to. Everything in the old house only sits where it has been for fifty years or more, so wouldn’t be any good in the new place. We move in during the first week of term. I’ll be leaving one house in the morning and going home to another in the afternoon.”
Jacob leaned over from the other side of Willow.
“My folks may be looking for somewhere in the village. Can they come and look at where you are now?”
Gina spoke to Maisie, who wrote he number on a piece of paper, which Gina gave to Jacob.
“Here you are, Jacob. Get your folks to ring Mum and arrange a visit.”
She put her hand on Willow’s arm.
“Now, friend, have you decided what you want to do with your money?”
“I have my accountant looking at commercial property. Jacob and I will be going halves in buying something. It may be somewhere that we can convert to a recording studio, or else it may just be an investment. With our share of it, we will have an easy time getting banks to fund us with a property portfolio, maybe we can buy an existing studio, or even build one from scratch in a few years. If you and Brent are a couple, you will be able to start something like that once you have the house paid for.”
Gina smiled and went to sit next to Brent on a table with the rest of the band. Jacob smiled.
“That girl is great! She follows good advice. What are we buying?”
“Don’t know yet. The accountant is looking around for a starter for us. The one I saw has tenants, but he may come up with somewhere else. He’s also going to create a company with me and my parents as co-directors. He’s the guy your family see, so it might pay you to do the same. Kids like us can’t sign agreements for property, but we can do it with adults who are part of the company.”
“Now that’s good thinking, my love. I’m going to talk to Rach and Rick about that. My folks are too old-world to understand that sort of thing.”
He got up and went to sit next to Racheal. His seat was taken by Bruce.
“Good set-up you have here, Willow. I’ve spoken to Geoff while the others were playing and will talk to Rick and his guys while you’re up there. I have taken some pictures on my phone. Just today will give me at least three articles. I had a look in the church before I came in and took pictures of the plaques on the walls to give me some background for the society wedding. I’ll tell you, in advance, that one article will be about the four-times great niece of the third baroness, playing the organ for the daughter of the sixth baron. It’s too good to pass up.”
“I’ll forgive you, Bruce. I doubt that it will increase the number of people wanting selfies, though.”
“If nothing else, those wanting selfies may be from a higher strata. I can see you getting invitations to some classy shows. Now, you were obviously in the middle of some planning with your friends. Anything I should know?’
“Just that Gina and her mother are buying a newer house in the village, and that Jacob’s sister may be taking over the running of the farm, with Jacob’s parents likely to look at Gina’s old home to retire to. Nothing the world needs to know about, Bruce, Mister Reporter.”
“You, my girl, would make one hell of a member of parliament or diplomat. Your organising skills are too good to remain behind a keyboard and singing.”
“That may be so, but I just saw Zara come in, so we had better get this show back on the road, catch you later.”
She got up and went over to Zara, standing there with a lady who must be her mother.
“Zara, welcome to our little band session. Geoff told me that you were coming, how long have you got?”
“Less than an hour, I had to force Mum into bringing me, and we do have somewhere to go later.”
Willow took Zara to where Geoff was sitting.
“Zara doesn’t have long, so you’d better get the G-men back on stage and let her have her set. I’ll get everyone else on the move.”
She went to the tech guys and told them that G-Force will be starting soon, with Zara out front, so would go on before Summer Rose. They started getting ready as the band were setting up. She went back to Zara’s mother.
“I’ve got things going so that Zara can sing her songs, and then you’ll be able to leave. I suggest that you come over and sit with us. Malcolm can get you a drink if you want.”
“It looks like you’re the leader here. I expected one of the older ones to be in charge.”
“No, ma-am, my club, my rules.”
“Your club?”
Well, I’m a member and my Dad’s on the board. I paid for these two days so, I guess, the room is mine in that time. Will Zara be able to come back tomorrow for the actual recording session?”
“No, we have other arrangements.”
“OK. Now sit and enjoy.”
She went over to the tech crew.
“This may be the only chance we have to get Zara recorded. Make it as good as you can. You can talk to Geoff later about slipping the songs into their set if he wants.”
They nodded, and Willow went back to sit down next to Zara’s mother.
“Have you heard Zara with the band?”
“No. I was thinking that it was just a bit of fun. What you’re doing here is more than fun, though, isn’t it?’
“It’s us trying to get some new material recorded. Those other guys are Rick Sacks and the Hikers, and they have made close to two million pounds with their viral video and downloads. You may have seen me and my quartet at the school dinner dance. We are in the national top ten and will be trying out a new album when this session is over. It’s not just fun, but a serious step in our musical careers. Geoff and his friends may have only played in small local events, but the DVD that they’ll have after this will let them get as serious as the rest of us. Let’s listen to what Zara can do.”
Frank snapped the clapper shut and the talk died as the G-Force started the intro to the first of six songs with Zara out front. She was good, which Willow already knew from her school choir involvement. She was also an entertainer, once the fear of singing to an audience left her. The six songs were good enough to get some applause after a moment’s silence. Her mother laid her hand on Willow’s arm.
“I had no idea that she was so good. Will you be able to help her, and the band, if she wants to take it further?”
“Any way I can. Before you rush off, I see Bruce Miller, from the Observer, coming our way. I’ll leave you with him, it’s time I was up there.”
She, and Gina, gave Zara a hug as they passed. Geoff had a big grin on his face. They all went up on stage and Brent re-arranged his drums, while Gina and Willow reset the Yamaha’s.
“We’ll do ‘Journey’ first, OK?”
Jacob grinned.
“Can’t wait to hear this, love. Herb has bought himself a sustain unit that can be used at low power. It should make this sound really like top ten material.”
They waited while the tech guys made themselves ready. Willow looked over and saw Zara talking to Bruce while her mother was on her phone. Frank got ready with the clapper and the talk died. Once that snap occurred, Willow waited a few seconds and then started the intro to the first track of the new album. As they played, Herb’s new sound was different, but made the song sound more heartfelt. As they worked through the album tracks, she saw Zara and her mother clutching each other, tissues to their eyes. Racheal was being held by Rick and Maisie was sitting on her own, tears running down her face.
Zara and her mother were still there when they finished the set and went for a break. She hugged Willow.
“That was just beautiful. It tugged at my heart. If you play it live, you’ll have to have packs of tissues on every seat.”
“More like a concession selling tissue boxes.”
They had a comfort break and a drink before going back on stage. While the tech guys were getting ready and the band was making sure they were in tune, Willow spoke into her microphone.
“What we’re about to play is something we worked on, back before that double blue concert last year. This is the first time in public, so don’t expect us to sound like the last session. This is the Other Side of Summer Rose.”
After the clapper sounded, they got into the first track of Kansas, seeing some shock on several faces, including Malcolm, behind the bar. The band now sounded better, with Jacob and his effects box and Herb with his sustain. Willow had listened to the original album, and could imagine them on a big stage, in front of thousands, with a huge bank of big amps behind them. ‘Dust in the Wind’ was an oasis in the stadium rock, with Jacob’s guitar and singing making it his own, the others singing back-up in harmony. Then they were into the final few tracks, finishing on a power chord.
There was a few seconds of silence, and then the other two bands stood up, stamped their feet and whoo-whoo’ed. Summer Rose had a group hug and then went down off the stage to get more hugs all round.
Rick gave her a hug.
“Now, that was different! Where has the rock band been hiding all this time?”
“Behind the curtain, Rick, waiting to pounce. Like that new material of yours. If you don’t mind me saying, it made most of your old album sound insipid.”
“I don’t mind a bit. It wasn’t as good as we could do. We have had the time, and the money, to realise the things that we had held back by the need to be working instead of playing. We’ve been in our lock-up rehearsal room for weeks. We have more that we can round a show out with. All we need is somewhere to play.”
“Go and see Peter with the video and audio that we’ll give you. If it’s used, just list the audio and visual guys and give them a percentage. They leave school soon, and need all the help they get for their future.”
“I’ll do that. Where can we say it was recorded.”
“Just list it as recorded on site, by WR Holdings. This isn’t a proper studio, just a room rented to us.”
“Can we pay something towards the cost?”
“You already have by being here.”
They all confirmed that they would be back in the morning, including Zara, now with a mother who had realised that what her daughter was doing was important to her. Most of the others left, leaving Willow and Gina, Maisie, Jacob, Rick and Racheal, Bruce and the tech boys. They all pulled seats around Xavier. He pulled two of the bags with the memory cards and slipped the cards into adaptors that fitted into USB slots in his laptop.
“This is where we do something that took a lot of time for the school concerts. If you have a look at the screen, you’ll see that it’s split into three parts. One is the audio, and the others are the two cameras. It’s easier with a big monitor to look at, but this will show you how it works.”
He moved a bar on the audio until there was a big soundwave.
“That’s the clapper. I’ll synchronise Dave’s card with that.”
He advanced the vision until the shot showed the clapper just closing.
“Now, we start those two together. I’m using the set with Zara as it’s the shortest. Frank’s camera doesn’t need to be in sync, so I’ll just advance it to match the others, once he starts filming.”
They heard the sound coming from the speaker, with the vision matching it. Frank’s vision only showed the floor until he focussed on Zara. Xavier stopped the three screens and advanced Franks vision until Zara’s face and body exactly matched the wider view.
“The biggest thing with this system is that we can now play all three streams together. When I see something that Frank filmed, I can click on his stream and it replaces the other in the master, until I go back to Dave’s camera. This allows us to end up with a final product with multiple views without laborious cut and paste, in real time. When we’ve seen the set, I can cut an audio, or a video disc immediately.”
They watched as he swapped screens. When the track finished, he saved it to his hard drive as ‘Zara track one fin.’ He then called up the file and played them the track back on full screen. It looked as good as anything they had seen on TV music shows. Rick was agog.
“Xavier, if we choose one of our tracks as a single, you can separate that out and give us a track which we can put on the website, and an album, complete that we can sell as a download?”
“If you want, the resolution is good enough to send to someone to make DVDs. All you need, after that, is to add an intro and credits, cover art and a load of disc cases. It’s what we do with the school concerts, and nobody has complained about the quality of them. What this gives us is the chance to produce a final product in a tenth of the time that we’ve spent before.”
“What happens tomorrow?”
“We will do each band as a separate session, with Willow taking two sessions. Hopefully, you’ll all be a tight as you’ve been today. Then, we leave the microphones, cameras, and cables with Willow, as they’re her property. I’ll take this unit home and work on all the sessions there, with my big monitor. I should have an audio CD, and a showable DVD, for you by the weekend. I’ll also supply a memory stick with the digital version of the album, and another with the single. That should give you enough to stream. Then I give Willow this unit, she already has the software and enough other kit in her bag to work with it.”
“Look, if you do that for us, the Hikers will pay you a thousand on delivery. What about you, Willow?”
“Because we have two sessions, I’m prepared to pay the boys two thousand, as long as they supply whatever Geoff wants free of charge. When you stream, Rick, make sure you list the tech crew that made the video.”
“We certainly will. It took us a week to make the video of our album, and that was only a single view. This will knock that one for six.”
“Just make sure you charge the right amount. No more pound-a-pop, we’ve charged a fiver per disc, so the double is ten pounds.”
“How many have you sold?”
“At last count, about seventy thousand.”
“Wow! That’s almost as much as we’ve earned in several weeks. We undersold ourselves.”
Bruce put a hand on his arm.
“You didn’t undersell, Rick. What you put out was, as you’ve come to realise, a little less than perfect. I would think that ninety percent of the album buyers did so because of one very good song. It didn’t matter if the others didn’t do much for them, a pound to have the single would have been money well spent. With what I heard today, every song is worth a pound. I wouldn’t be putting more than one as free view.”
“I hear you, Bruce. I’ll have to talk to the others about this. I think that Willow has been right, we need a good manager working for us.”
“With Peter, you’ll also get Marcus Waddington to promote you. You can ask to do local area shows until the album takes off. By that time, who knows where you’ll be asked to play. Just give yourselves time and peace to write more songs like the ones you played today.”
“All right. Who did your cover art, Willow?”
“My Mum. She’s a graphic artist. If you want her to work on your album, talk to her at your reception with an idea of what you want it to look like. You don’t want it streamed until you finish your honeymoon.”
Jacob and Willow hugged and kissed, then Racheal and Rick left with him in tow. Gina and Maisie left, after both giving Willow a hug. She went up on stage to turn off all the equipment as Xavier put the recording unit and his laptop in bags to take with him.
“Frank’s father should be picking us up. Willow. We’ll go outside and wait for him. It’s been a very exciting day.”
She gave each of them hugs, and they left. Bruce had a wry smile.
“I’ll be waiting in my car when you get here in the morning. What I’ve seen has been brilliant. I can’t see how much better you all can get, after today.”
“There’ll be an audience, Bruce. A national teen magazine, with their sister adult magazine possible. Then there’s the TV people. All of them were here Saturday night and saw Summer Rose as an eleven-piece dance band, so that would be enough to get their juices going. Who knows who they’ll be bringing along. An audience always make a band work harder to please. It may not be a lot, but we will know that we’ve lifted.”
“All right, I’ll see you in the morning.”
After he had left, she went to the bar and asked Malcolm for a lemonade. When he put it in front of her, he leaned on the bar and looked her in the eyes.
“Willow Rose. I knew you were amazing, but today as shown you in a different light. You held that lot together and they all worked hard. I have to tell you that I will book G-Force for the dinner dance if that girl sings with them”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 19
Willow smiled at Malcolm’s statement.
“I told you that there were others who can take our place. Now, tomorrow, there will be at least twenty others. What’s the chance of putting on some food, even something light, between the end of the recording and the time that the choir get here.”
“It will be simple. I could do pie and chips, sausage and chips, egg and chips or chips on their own. With some bread and marge, you could always make chip butties.”
“That sounds good. If there’s any extra cost, let me know. I’m feeling really good about the recordings tomorrow. Offer them the food for free, I’m good for it.”
“I realise that, now. I just heard you telling that Rick how many albums you’ve sold at a tenner each. That’s serious money.”
“It’s serious enough for Maisie and Gina moving into a modern house on Birmingham Road in a couple of weeks. I’m looking for commercial property. It’s been brilliant, but who knows how long it will last.”
“After seeing those two sets of yours, I expect that it could be years.”
Willow laughed.
“I don’t know if I can last the pace. Anyway, I’m off now, see you in the morning.”
She walked out of the club, seeing that the boys must have been picked up. She walked home, thinking about the day. She had to grin when she thought about what her mother would say about Racheal’s admission. She wasn’t home long before Wendy arrived. Together, they worked to make dinner, with Wendy having to sit down when she was told about Racheal’s night of passion. When Ashley got home, they had dinner and Willow had to tell them about the three bands and waxed lyrical amount the new equipment.
She needed to go to bed early and was asleep quickly.
On Wednesday morning, she was up early and ready to go, even before her parents left for work. She was at the club at nine-thirty and had to wait five minutes for Malcolm to turn up. He opened up, and she went through and turned on the lights in the back room. She was up on the stage, switching on the equipment, when Bruce walked in.
“I see that I didn’t beat you as I thought I would. You must be excited about today.”
“I am, Bruce. I just hope it all goes to plan. Can you help by tidying a few tables that we used yesterday, we normally have casuals in after the weekend, but will have to make-do now.”
He collected up the empty glasses and bottles, putting them on the bar, while she made sure that all was ready. Xavier and the others came in with the equipment. He pulled two DVDs out of his pocket.
“A little something, just for you. It’s the two sessions that the band did, just the vision that Dave took with the sound. It will be interesting to see if you do better. Everything from yesterday was as good as it could be. I’ve transferred all of the raw material to a remote drive, including the memory cards, so we’re clear to start fresh.”
She left him to set up, as the magazine reporter had walked in. Willow went over to greet her, and the others that were with her.
“Hello, Willow. You’ve met my photographer, he doesn’t have his usual camera, as requested. This lady is the editor of our main office, and the other lady is a reporter from our adult magazine. I believe that the choir that you’re training will be in later. Will it be all right if we stay for that?”
“Not a problem. Malcolm is putting on some basic food today. We don’t usually serve food on weekdays, but he has pies, sausages, eggs and enough chips to feed the five thousand. Find yourselves somewhere to sit, Malcolm can get you drinks and crisps.”
The bands started turning up and the noise in the room rose. The TV crew came in and Willow welcomed them, telling them to find seats near the back. Mister Bamborough arrived with the Head and Miss Russell. Willow acted like a hostess, told them about the food situation and to sit at the back. She went up on the stage as Zara came in with her mother, followed by Tom and a teenage girl. She looked around and saw that everyone was here and stood in front of the stage.
“Ladies and Gentlemen, welcome to the Stoneleigh Club. This morning, I ask you to remain silent while we record our three bands. Each one will be playing a set of around a dozen songs, and our tech crew of Dave and Frank on cameras, and Xavier on the recording desk, will make sure that the sets are good to create audio CDs and video DVDs afterwards. Those in the media will be able to receive a DVD each, but please talk to me before using any video or stills from the raw material. The results will form the basis of new albums, so consider that you have an advance screening and should hold back until the albums are up on the websites. Each band will let you know where to look. The first band are all fourth formers at the Blue Coat School. They will do one song for a sound check and then we’ll record. A clapper board is used to synchronise the audio and visuals, so no talking until the set is finished. Welcome our first band, G-Force and Zara.”
Geoff and the others gave her a smile as they went on stage, made the changes that they wanted, and looked towards Xavier, who nodded. They played a Fleetwood Mac number that Willow had heard them play in the school rehearsal room. When Xavier nodded to Frank, the clapper came down and they started with Zara singing, then alternated between her on vocals and the others with their other new material. At the end of fourteen songs, they relaxed, and the spectators gave them some applause. Willow went up to stand next to Zara.
“I’m sure that the media will have some questions. We do have time for you to ask whatever has come into your heads.”
She arbitrated as the magazine, the TV, and Bruce asked questions. When that had run out of steam, the band left the stage. Willow went back to the microphone.
“There are some of you that have heard of our next band. They had a runaway success with a video that went viral two months ago. Since then, they have been laying low and writing original material. Please welcome Rick Sacks and the Hikers.”
As she left the stage, she could see the magazine editor on her phone. She sat with her band and watched as the Hikers got themselves ready. Rick walked up to the microphone.
“Before we play anything, I would like to thank Willow Rose for allowing us this opportunity to play this morning. Willow supplied the overdub of the church organ for our first, and only, hit so far. The organ on the audio is across the road in the church, and it turned an ordinary song into a world-wide hit. We will give you an up-to-date version this morning, but everything else is new material. Thank you for listening.”
They played the second-best song from the original album as their sound check. Then they went through the process up to the clapper board, starting the set with the stage version of ‘Love and Marriage’, followed by a dozen new tracks. When they relaxed, there was applause as Willow went on stage for question time. This time there were a lot more questions, understandable with the amount of fame that the band had garnered in the two months.
When that had run its course, Willow announced that there would be a break, with a light lunch served from platters that Malcolm was putting out on the bar. As they ate, the two media outlets were organising further interviews with both bands. Willow walked over to the teacher’s table.
“Good to see you this morning, Headmistress.”
“It’s good to be here Willow. I must say that you certainly have some interesting friends. I have heard that viral song but had no idea that it was you that played the organ on it. Funny that the first time you played the organ was with the Gees.”
“I know. Life does throw up mysterious links, doesn’t it?”
Mister Bamborough motioned towards the table where the tech boys were sitting.
“I see that you have the school techs with you. What did they get?”
“It’s pretty much the same kit that the school has, but the latest version. Have a chat with him, after, it takes hours off the post processing.”
“I will, what are Summer Rose going to play? More Carpenters?”
“No, sir. It’s going to be two separate sessions. One is a complete album of new material that I’ve called ‘Journey into Womanhood’. The other is a cover of an American band called Kansas. It’s something that we worked on as Blue Two before the school concert but had to shelve to do the Moody Blues set.”
“Is it loud and proud?”
“In the original, yes. But we keep the sound down to being bearable in a room this size, using some technical aids that they didn’t have in the eighties. In the day, they got the same effect with a bank of two-hundred-watt amps at number ten. We do it with the four small amps on the stage. If you saw the interview with the opera ladies last week, you’re welcome to stay, as they’ll be coming in around six-thirty.”
She left them and went back to her table. Gina grinned.
“So, we have the three most important people from the school here to listen, a TV reporter and a magazine editor. What else can happen?”
“Look towards the door, friend. The man we wanted to surprise has just walked in.”
Peter came over to their table, found a chair and sat beside the girls.
“I came into the village to have a talk with you about your house purchase, Gina. I was told that you were here. What’s going on?”
“We’re here to make some recordings, Peter. You’ve missed the G-Force with some new material that will be well worth your involvement. You’ve only just missed Rick Sacks and the Hikers play a completely new range of songs which is also worth latching on to. Rick is over there, next to his fiancée, and Geoff is there with that blonde girl and her mother. If you ask nicely, I’m sure that they’ll let you have a copy of the audio and video that we’ve already captured. We’ve told them, repeatedly, that you’re the man to make them famous. Don’t let us down. This afternoon, we’ll be playing a new album of Summer Rose material, written by Willow, and after that, we will play something totally different, which we’re calling the ‘Other side of Summer Rose’.”
He looked around.
“There are two other bands here?”
“Yep, and my Mum is over there if you want to talk about the house. I know nothing, I’m just a little girl.”
“When are you going to be on stage?”
“About another fifteen minutes, when we’ve finished lunch.”
He stood and pulled out his phone, hitting a speed dial. Then moved away.
“What’s the betting that Marcus will be coming in while we’re playing.”
“We could just mingle a bit to slow us down. That will let everyone digest.”
The two of them got up and went over to talk to the magazine people, and then the TV people. Both sets wanted to know when they were playing next. Willow pointed Peter out.
“Unless our manager has something up his sleeve, our next performance is here, Saturday week, where we play honky-tonk piano for a lot of inebriated locals to sing bawdy songs. The next will be two weeks later, at the end of the month, when we’ll also be here, but playing for a dinner dance.”
The door opened and Marcus rushed in.
“Time to get moving, friend.”
They rounded up the rest of the band and went up on the stage. As the others were tuning the guitars, Willow and Gina stood together.
“That was an interesting take-down of Peter, back there, friend.”
“I know, Willow. He just got under my skin, wanting to know the ins and outs of what is my business.”
The rest were ready to play, so they did a Carpenters number as the sound check. Willow spoke into her microphone.
“Please be extra careful to stay silent while we play this set. It will, hopefully, be our next album. Ladies, if you look at the other women who were here yesterday, you will see that they have brought boxes of tissues today. Be warned.”
The clapper came down and they played the album through. Willow winked at Gina when she saw the Head with a tissue to her eyes. It wasn’t every day that you can make the headmistress cry without getting into trouble. The women on the magazine table weren’t far behind in the tissue stakes. Willow thought she saw the photographer use his phone to take a sneak picture of the editor.
When they finished, there was some applause. Willow announced that there would be a Q and A after, but now they would take a comfort break and come back in a few minutes. The band left the stage to get a drink and a pee, with some questions about the set being asked. They all said ‘Later’.
When they were back on stage, Willow made the announcement that the next set was different and was ‘The Other Side of Summer Rose.’
While they played, Willow could see the other band members grooving along, and the Head with a big smile. When they finished, on a high, there was a short break before everyone started talking at once. Willow saw Peter and Marcus in a deep discussion. She announce the Q and A, and they spent a half an hour taking questions and trying to answer them truthfully. At the end, the band left the stage to be approached individually for discussion.
Mister Bamborough went over to Xavier to see what this new equipment did that the school kit didn’t. Peter and Marcus came up to Willow.
“What is all this, Willow? We manage your careers.”
“That’s correct, Peter, but all you’ve done in the last six weeks is manage our money and post stuff. There hasn’t been a whiff of interest in what we wanted to do next. What we set up for today was to give us some material that we can offer to you, without having to go into another city to sit in a pokey studio without any feeling. We will have a digital download of both the audio and the video of both those sets, along with a file that has enough resolution to make a DVD. Our tech guys will post-produce and the finished product will be ours, and nothing to do with the school.”
“So, how come there are these other bands?”
“I did the overdub for Ricks viral hit, and I played with Geoff on the Purple DVD. They’re friends, and they are both bands that need a good manager and a good promoter. I suggested you two, and I know Rick is already thinking of signing, so don’t prove me wrong. I didn’t see any clause in my contract that forced us to stay with you.”
“Haven’t we looked after you? There is the little request that there’s no performances while school’s on.”
“Here I am, with another week and a half of holidays to go. There’s enough time to have put something on, even if it’s just a TV spot. The local station is all sitting on that table, coming along to see this. That reporter from the teen magazine is there with her editor. She turned up at my house thinking that Gina and I were giggling teenies in a ‘manufactured band’. You haven’t covered yourself in glory, you know.”
“I’m not used to be talked to like this by a thirteen-year-old.”
“Then do something, for goodness sake. I’m starting to lose my patience with you, and my patience has a long fuse. Did what we play this afternoon sound like a hit album?”
“Well, yes.”
“Then pull your finger out. It has been suggested that we play as a dance band and the school would be happy to go along with that. Book a function room with a stage and we’ll be there. Make it Easter Saturday and I’m your girl. Other Saturdays until June are pretty much taken up, mainly playing here. From the end of July, we’re on holiday. I was hoping that you had something in mind. A suggested itinerary would be nice. There are two bands in this room who could round out the bill. You don’t even have to look any further than your nose. I won’t say anything to the others about this conversation if I start seeing emails telling us of suggested plans. Right?”
Marcus laughed.
“She has you there, Pete. I’ve been asking about booking something, but you’ve been dragging your feet. Why?”
“It’s working with someone so young, that’s the problem. We’ll have everyone looking over our shoulders.”
“You’ve just been totally ambushed by that ‘young girl’ Pete. I can see her tearing a new anus in anyone who suggested that she’s being mistreated. Take her advice. Let’s get both these bands on the books and send them out to the world this summer. I can think of a dozen places where they’ll be welcomed.”
Peter put his hand out to Willow.
“Pax, Willow. I’ve been scared of upsetting the school and the do-gooders. I see the Head over there. I’ll start by talking to them. Marcus, can you round up the leaders of the other bands and see what they intend to do. I’ll catch up with you.”
Willow took his hand.
“I’ll introduce Marcus around, Peter. He’ll be safe with me.”
“I’m glad someone is.”
As Peter walked away, Marcus looked down at Willow and grinned.
“That was what he needed. Sometimes he has about as much imagination as this table. Introduce me to your gig buddies.”
She took him to Rick first, introduced them and told Rick that Marcus professed to be able to arrange shows but that the only thing he had arranged, so far, was a recording studio. Marcus laughed.
“I deserved that one. Peter isn’t the only one who needs to get his finger out.”
He gave Rick his card, and they agreed on a time and place for a meeting with the whole band to talk about how they wanted to move further. Then, Willow took him to speak to Geoff and Zara.
“Geoff is someone I’ve seen on the school video, but Zara, you are new to me. Can I see anything that you’ve done.”
“If you saw Geoff in the concert, I played cello with Willow in the first act. For what we did today, you’ll have to wait until we get the recording.”
Willow got up and went over to Xavier, who was showing a very interested teacher the glories of the new software.
“Excuse me, sir. Xavier, do you still have that file with Zara that you did for us yesterday?”
“Yes, it doesn’t take up enough room to delete.”
“Can you please bring your laptop over to where she’s sitting and show it to her and the older guy she’s talking to, sorry sir, this won’t take long.”
“Not a problem, Willow. I would like to see what this new program can put out.”
They went back to the other table.
“Marcus, I believe that you may have met Mister Bamborough before. This young man is Xavier, who does the sound and post-production for the school concerts. Yesterday, as a demonstration, he did a quick job on one of Zara’s songs to show us how easy the system is. You can see how good Zara is from that.”
Xavier found the file and played the song on full screen. When Marcus watched it, her singing reminded him of Adele, and the band behind her was a tight as any he had heard. When the clip finished, Geoff was the first to speak.
“If that was a quick demo job, I’m looking forward to seeing what a DVD is going to look like.”
Marcus nodded.
“Just on that clip alone, I’m prepared to have you on stage. If I can organise a hall, would you and Summer Rose be prepared to perform in the next few weeks. I’ll work with Willow to get a date that works for her. It will be in Coventry, and I’ll try to get Rick and his band on board. Three good local bands with tracks in the charts will be guaranteed to fill the seats. What do you think, Willow?”
“I’ll have a look at the calendar and email you with some clear days, Marcus. We would have to fit a Saturday date between the times we play here and can do a Sunday evening because either Gina or I am playing organ in the Cathedral until five, for another two months.”
Marcus gave both Zara and Geoff his card.
“Give me a call next week before you go back to school. I would like to have a meeting with the whole band to listen to what you want to do. Hopefully, I would have a copy of your set to look at by then.”
Willow left them to it and went over to where Tom and his daughter sat.
“Hello, Tom, and – Sally, I believe.”
Sally jumped up and hugged her.
“OMG! Willow Rose even knows my name! Thank you so much for the pendant. I only take it off to shower. I could have kicked myself for missing seeing you the other night, but what I saw today was literally awesome! That set you played had me crying in the beginning but was so positive in the end. When will I be able to buy it?”
“That depends on our manager, who is over there talking to two of the teachers at school. He will organise to put it on the website after he has made the first batch of CDs and DVDs. Could be a couple of weeks. Are you staying for the choir?”
Tom answered for them.
“We’re staying, if only to let Sally see what her father does for a living in the Cathedral. You’re on again this Sunday, aren’t you?”
“Yes, I’m in at the usual time on Saturday. I have to go into the city with my parents for us to all get something for two weddings. I’ll be standing next to Racheal when she marries Rick, and Jacob will be the Best Man.”
“Two weddings?”
“The Sunday after, I play the church organ for Cassie and Terry, over at the church, and then we’re playing here for the reception.”
“Anyone I should know?”
“They don’t live around here anymore. Cassie’s ancestors used to own the Stoneleigh Abbey, and Terry is a viscount. Bruce Miller will be writing about them in the Observer. Now, if you’re staying, Malcolm will be putting on simple meals, mainly chips with something else. We don’t cook on weekdays, usually, but there are others who want to hang around to speak to the choir, mainly the editor of a woman’s magazine, and Bruce Miller.’
“I’ll go and talk to Bruce. I’ll leave Sally in your hands.”
“OK. Sally, how about I introduce you to the others.”
She took Sally’s hand and took her around the room, introducing her to the rest of Summer Rose, as well as what members of the other two bands had remained. When they got to Geoff and Zara, Willow introduced them.
“Sally, if you saw the concert from the Cathedral on the TV on Christmas Eve, Zara was in the choir that night.”
“And you were standing beside me after you came down from the organ. That was a real experience.”
Sally put her hand to her mouth.
“I wasn’t at home, but round a friend’s house. Her parents had the show on, and it sucked us in. Are you telling me that you played that fantastic organ piece. Willow, and then joined the choir for the last part. It was so uplifting, we all cried. Not as much as I did today, though.”
Zara laughed.
“Willow made Miss Russell and the Headmistress cry today. Those two may never have cried in their lives before. I’ll carry the vision with me for a long time but will never bring it up. The Head can wield a lot of power. Have you heard anything about the May concert, Willow?”
“Just that the date is locked in. I expect that we’ll be told in the orchestra session.”
“Just so, my friend. We’re the workers, we’re always the last to know.”
“Well, Zara. Here’s a little snippet for you to think about, so that you’re not surprised when it’s mentioned. The Bishop has floated the idea of the school doing The Messiah at Christmas. I don’t know if the Head will agree, but, if she does, it’s going to be a hell of a lot of work in our first term.”
“Amen to that, Willow.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 20
The other bands were drifting off, and all came to say their thanks. Willow had Sally shadowing her as she was hugged. Sally, being quite a striking looking girl, had her share of hugs as well. When Rick, Racheal, and Jacob were leaving, Willow got a hug and a kiss. She told Rick that she would get in touch as soon as she was given the finished discs.
There was a repeat when Geoff, Zara and her mother left. Sally snorted.
“That girl is going to have a problem with her mother. It looks as if she wants her daughter to be a star.”
“Yesterday, that woman came here fully intending to be away as soon as they could. She heard Zara sing, then I saw her on the phone, no doubt cancelling the other arrangements. She stayed until we packed up. I rather think that she saw her daughter as an independent person and is coming to grips with it. Zara has been going out with Geoff for a good eight months and the appear to be very comfortable together. How about you help me to get some food organised.”
They went into the kitchen where Maisie was helping get some chips cooking.
“What do want us to do, Maisie?”
“We do need numbers, so we can get things going without too much waste.”
“Sally, grab that order pad and pen. Let’s go and get the rabble organised.”
They went out and up onto the stage. Willow asked for quiet and then told them that she wanted numbers for the meal.
“We have pie and chips, egg and chips, sausage and chips, or chips and chips. Those that are staying to see our village choir, hands up those who want pie.”
They counted the hands and then got a count for sausages. Nobody wanted the egg option, and two were happy with just chips.
“That leaves just us, Sally. I’m for the sausages.”
She rang her mother.
“Mum, we’re having some tea at the club. There’s pie and chips or sausage and chips.”
“Make mine sausages, love. Your father will be eating fast food, as he’s visiting the accountant again to look over some papers he’s drawn up. I’ll join you at the club.”
Willow put her phone away.
“That’s another sausage serve, Sally. My mother will join us. She has started singing with the choir.”
“Can anyone join?”
“As long as you have a decent voice. Your father said that he would help out, so you could come along with him.”
They went back to give the numbers. Sally said that she would help with the cooking, so Willow went back into the room, seeing Gina speaking to the magazine people. Tom was sitting with the teachers, and the Head beckoned her to join them.
“We’re discussing the proposal for The Messiah, have you any thoughts?”
“In terms of the orchestra, I think that we have enough with the combined groups to make it, even oversubscribed in the strings. The Messiah can be done with six firsts, six seconds, six viola, four cello and two double bass to make it work. There’s an organ and piano. On the wind side, you can get by with a contra-bassoon and a couple of French Horns. The extras come in at the end and are two trumpets and the timpani player. I think that we’re good with that. The brass and winds that aren’t playing could fill out the male section of the choir.”
The others sat and looked at her. Finally, Mister Bamborough found his voice.
“We’ve just come to that conclusion ourselves. Have you played the piece?”
“No sir, but I have heard it, and was interested enough to research the orchestra make-up.”
“So, who do you think should play what?”
“Not for me to say, sir. You’re the conductor and I’m just a player.”
“If the Bishop pushes this, he’ll want you and Gina to be somewhere prominent.”
“Gina can play the organ, and the senior pianist is good enough for that part. There’s no clarinet.”
“But there are a lot of strings, and the ideal place for you would be sitting next to the conductor as the orchestra leader.”
“What about the other firsts, sir. Surely, they would want that to be one of their own.”
“You are one of their own, Willow, and no-one can doubt your organisational skills. The fact that you stepped back to allow Gina to blossom has given you a lot of leeway with the orchestra. All we need to sort out is a big choir.”
Tom leaned forward.
“We have most of that sorted. There is the Cathedral choir and the reserves, you have the school choir, and there are some that you’ll hear tonight who would be worthy of a place. All that leaves are the soloists.”
Willow spoke.
“What’s Sally?”
“She’s a soprano that needs training, but I can’t get her interested.”
“She asked me if she could join our choir tonight.”
“All right, we’ll see if she is committed. She does love opera, and the chance to meet Margaret, tonight, was an added bonus.”
“You’ve just mentioned the most suitable alto around. Just think of the publicity. I’m sure that there are plenty of tenor and bass voices in the city.”
“What about the wheelchair?”
“What about it. You heard her on the TV. She can sing sitting down. In fact, the four soloists could sit in a line and just stand in place to sing. Then it wouldn’t look out of place if Margaret moves her wheelchair forward a few feet, then reverses after she’s sung.”
The Head tapped the table.
“That does it. If we decide that we go ahead, Willow, you will need to be in on any meetings as orchestra leader, and Tom, you’re welcome to bring your choir along to the school if we get to full-force rehearsals. We’ll listen to what your choir sounds like, tonight, and factor that into the mix.”
Tom and Willow stood.
“Where’s Sally?”
“Helping out in the kitchen.”
“That, I have to see.”
They went to the kitchen and helped by spreading out plates on the big plate warmer, which allowed food to be taken out to diners without cooling too much. Willow grabbed a bucket of knives, and another of forks, taking them out and giving each diner a set, then getting a pile of napkins and taking them around. Tom came out of the kitchen bearing a tray with salt and pepper, putting them out.
Then, Willow showed him where the choir books were kept, and they put them out on a table near the stage, and he helped her carry one of the Yamahas down to floor level, followed by an amp. Gina came over, and, together, they cleared the stage. The techs were still there, with Xavier working on the post-production while they waited for their pick-up. The extra microphones, mixer, and cables were collected together in a box.
Xavier looked up.
“I’ve done the preliminary work, Willow. I’ll have the final items finished tomorrow. Can you organise someone to pick them up? I’ll give you the address.”
“Gina. Can your Mum take us into the city on Friday? It’s just to pick up the discs.”
“I’m certain that she’ll be happy to, friend.”
Willow took the address and thanked him for the work.
“Hell, Willow, with the bands you had here, I would have done it for nothing.”
“Now he tells me!”
“I’ll give you ten CDs and ten DVDs of the other two bands. I’ll burn twenty each of the two sessions of yours. There will be USB drives with all the raw material on them so you can play around with them for training. I get a bonus, as I won’t have to buy from the website. The unit will be in its box with all the paperwork for it. Bambi said that he might get a new set of kit for the school, seeing how easy today worked.”
Willow and Gina went and started carrying out the meals, getting their own as Wendy came in. She sat with the girls as Tom came out with his and Sally’s meal. They sat at the table, and Willow stood to go and get her mother’s plate, finding Maisie carrying two plates out.
“Mum’s arrived, Maisie. Thanks for getting on with the food.”
“It’s all right, it gave me something to do while you two implemented your plans of world domination.”
There was quiet in the room as the meals were devoured. Willow went to the bar and got a jug of soft drink and two white wines, something she knew both their mothers liked. They sat, quietly until Tom opened the conversation.
“Wendy, I haven’t introduced you to Sally, my daughter. I brought her along because she wanted to see Summer Rose and got infected by that strange effect that Willow spreads. When we arrived, Sally wouldn’t do anything in our kitchen or consider singing. Now, she helped produce all these meals and is thinking of joining your choir.”
Willow looked at Sally starting to blush.
“Who does the cooking at home, Tom?”
“My wife. She’s very good, almost restaurant style, we eat well.”
“What’s the difference between her kitchen output and what was produced today?”
“It’s chalk and cheese.”
“So, do you think that Sally would help more if the food was simpler, or if she was allowed to do simple tasks. Not everyone is cordon bleu. Did you have fun in the kitchen, Sally?”
“I did. There wasn’t anybody telling me I couldn’t boil water.”
“With the choir, have you wanted to sing but thought that you would be laughed at?”
Sally put her head down and nodded.
“Tom, someone has told me that I see talent and help it grow. What I do see are people who are scared to show their true colours. It is something I learned because I was also shy child who wanted to hide in the background. I don’t know how I detect it, but I see a yearning in Sally to be able to do something that is hers, and hers alone.”
“You know, Willow Rose, you may be young, but when you get older, you will be formidable.”
“You’re telling me that she isn’t that now! She told me off something proper earlier in the day, and my so-called friend, Marcus, rubbed it in by telling me I deserved it!”
“Hello, Peter, why don’t you join us when you’ve bought your drink.”
Peter went to the bar. When he came back, he sat at the table.
“I want to bring you up to date with my discussion with the Head. She has told me that it appears that the more time you’re all on the stage, the better your grades are. She has a theory about learning music and raising the work ethic. Anyway, she’s happy for us to start organising the odd show. Marcus wants to put together one in the city with all three of the bands. He has pointed out that you were right, Willow, and a steady injection of new Summer Rose into the mix would help put bums on seats.”
“What about dinner dances?”
“She’s keen on those. Something about looking after big donors and the church hierarchy. If you can email your suggested dates to both Marcus and me. I’ll follow your sage advice and de-finger. Note any dates that are a definite no-no.”
“Thank you, Peter, I’ll send something to your office tomorrow. I’ve been told that the product from today can be picked up on Friday. Can we drop by your office to leave you some samples.”
“OK. How are you getting in?”
Maisie raised a hand.
“I’m driving them. I need to go in and get some material. One of my clients has an invitation to a society wedding in a week and a half. I didn’t know she even knew the Baron or his family. She may be a friend of a friend of the Earl.”
They had a laugh, and Willow put her hand on her mother’s arm.
“Bit of a change on Saturday, Mum. Racheal is going to wear apricot and has asked me to be the Maid of Honour. What I get for the Registry has to be suitable for the reception. Cassie hasn’t told us any limits, and we will be playing at the reception, so something that looks good but is also easy to play in without getting overheated will work.”
“Ah! Yes. That reception. It’s a very interesting show that you’ve been booked for, paid twice what you usually get here, money up front.”
“Thanks for reminding me, Peter. We’ll need to have our four wind players for that. Do you think that you could go to the Head and ask for contact details of them. When they play here, Malcolm had been giving them cash in hand. If you sign them up as casuals, they can get a portion of our payment. When you get the details and speak to them, can you tell them to contact me, so I can give them details of the gig.”
He stood, laughed and saluted her.
“Aye, aye, my captain.”
They watched him go to speak to the teachers again. They were clearing the tables and loading the industrial dishwasher as the choir started to arrive. They all got themselves drinks while waiting, and Tom introduced Sally.
“We will test her range first, just as we did with you last week. Then we’ll know where she stands. Bruce Miller from the Observer is here tonight, and he wants to talk to you all for an article. He’s a good guy and will write it in a nice way. There is also some people from a woman’s magazine. Here come our three retirees, let’s get ourselves ready. Willow, do you want to run the scales for Sally?”
“Gina, do you think you can handle the organ tonight. There’s a pile of stuff I need to carry home.”
“OK friend. The music is in the book, so it shouldn’t be a problem. You have a lot of tidying up to do.”
Gina sat at the keyboard and worked through the scales for Sally, who Willow could hear had a good soprano, but needed some breath training. Picking up bundles of cables, and her bag, she left the club and walked home with her burden. She stacked the cables in the spare room and went back to the club to collect the box with the microphones and the mixer. As far as she was concerned, it had been a good day, even with Peter barging in. That may have been a blessing in disguise, as everyone that he needed to talk to were already in the room.
When she got back to the club, she sat on a stool by the bar and had a lemonade. Malcolm came and leaned on his side of the counter.
“Stepping back to give Gina more responsibility?”
“You see through me like a window. I might have a lot more responsibility with the school orchestra heading towards the end of the year. Gina has come along and is gaining her own ways of doing things.”
“I’ve known her and Maisie for years. Gina has grown a year in the last six months. You, young lady, started out as a feisty young girl, but you’re acting like an adult, so take my advice, take some time out for yourself and enjoy your teenage years.”
“The problem is, Malcolm, that I have become an entertainer. I’ve gone from a shy kid who hid away, to someone who isn’t afraid of standing up in front of people. I’ve sung in front of two hundred and fifty here, performed for fifteen hundred in the school, and played the organ for over two thousand in the Cathedral. Christmas Eve, I was playing the organ on the TV, to who knows how many millions, but all I saw in front of me was a set of keyboards. People tell me that I have a knack of finding talent and promoting them. Do you hear that soprano? That’s a girl who was afraid of singing in case she would be laughed at. If everything happens as expected, she may be a soloist in the Cathedral before Christmas.”
“I won’t try to figure out how you do it, Willow, but don’t stop.”
“I’ll try not to, Malcolm, I’m having too much fun. Thank you for your support these two days, I’m sorry that I kept you from your other work.”
“I’ve been able to do some things that I’ve been putting off. I’ve also listened to four very good bands.”
“Four?”
“Summer Rose and the Other side are two different bands. Both worthy of being in the charts.”
“The Other Side was just a cover band today. We are going to have to work up some original material before we take it to the stage. That’s something that I’ll have to coax our guitarists to come up with. So far, my output has been soft-rock ballads.”
“You’ll find your voice with stronger tunes as you age. Once the others start coming to you with new songs, you’ll start to think of ways to improve them. That will lead you writing your own.”
“How did you get to be so erudite?”
“Standing behind a bar and listening to drinkers telling you how they can save the world.”
They stayed where they were and listened to the choir, with Tom taking them through some exercises and a few songs before he called it a night. Willow stayed where she was as she saw Margaret talk to Sally, who had a wonderful smile on her face. Gina turned off the keyboard and amp, and Tom helped her put them away in the storeroom.
Wendy came over to the bar.
“That was fun. It was interesting to see Sally blossom. You were exactly right, and I think that her father may make some changes in their household in future. Are you ready to go home?”
“Yes, Mum. It’s been a long day. I’ll just say goodnight to the others, and I’ll walk home if you want to leave now.”
“I’ll get ready for bed and make a hot chocolate. Your father should be home soon.”
She left and Willow watched as the magazine people were talking to Margaret and her friend, and also including Sally in the conversation, with the teen magazine reporter concentrating on her. Gina came over.
“You look like you need your bed, friend. That was interesting to play for a choir. I think that I learned a few things. We’ll pick you up on Friday morning. Have a day off tomorrow, this is supposed to be a holiday.”
“I’ll do that. See you Friday.”
They hugged and Willow picked up her bag. Malcolm gave her a wink as he bade her goodnight. When she got home, she sat with her parents with the mugs of hot chocolate. Ashley told her that the accountant’s paperwork looked good and that they had an appointment on Monday evening to sign. Then, he asked her how things went, and she gave him a potted history of the day, asking him if he could draw two thousand in cash from her account to pay for the post-production.
“I thought that you had already paid for those three guys?”
“That was for the recordings. Rick offered Xavier a thousand to pay for the post-production of his band, so I felt that I should match that for the two sessions we did. I’m going to pick up the product on Friday. If Peter works things as he should, just one of those sessions will return over a million, so it’s money well spent.”
“What about the other session?”
“That will have to be on the back burner until summer, and our possible live shows. When you see the DVD, you’ll understand why.”
She went off to bed, cleansing and brushing her teeth. Tonight, she had time to tell Tiger and Shaun about her day before drifting off to sleep.
On Thursday, she dressed casually, loaded the new software onto her laptop, and played around with it before calling up the on-line training and following the lessons. After that, she made sure that one of the cameras had the battery charged, and a memory card in, then went to the church to make a film about it, trying out the zoom from the organ loft, and doing close-ups of the plaques and other signs. Then she walked home along the river, stopping to film her surroundings. By the time she got home, she was happy with what she had learned. She put the memory stick into one of the adaptors she found, and played her film back, seeing where she had been unsteady, or too fast with the panning that made her dizzy.
After that, she took the two discs that Xavier had given her and watched them from start to finish. By that time, it was late enough to go into the kitchen and start preparing dinner. As she chopped and diced, she thought about her day and what she had learned. What with the drum machine and the new software, she was becoming far more used to the technology, and she had been quite good at it before.
After dinner, Ashley gave her the two thousand in a brown bank envelope which she put in her bag. Wendy gave her a wad of CD album covers that she had designed and printed off. Willow put the Journey disc into the player, and they sat and watched it, her parents seeing it complete with the full band for the first time. As it finished, Ashley gave her a hug while Wendy was drying her eyes.
“If that’s what gets released, it’s going to get crazy around here,”
“That was just from Tuesday, Dad. Tomorrow evening I’ll have what should be the saleable show, using the new software.”
She had an early night, needing to catch up on her sleep, the efforts of the last few days bringing back some of the fatigue that she had felt after the operation. She was mindful of that sage advice to take time out for herself.
In the morning, she waited for Maisie to pick her up, checking that she had everything in a big shoulder bag. When they went towards Coventry, Maisie took the road towards the farm. Gina turned around in the front seat.
“We went to the farm yesterday to talk about them buying our place. I told Jacob that we were going to pick up the discs, and he wanted to come along.”
Jacob got in the back seat with Willow, and they kissed before he buckled up. They held hands during the trip. Maisie had put the address into the GPS, and they pulled up outside Xavier’s house. When they knocked on the door, Xavier opened it and beckoned them in. His father was there and welcomed them. Xavier had three boxes of discs as promised, with the USB and all the memory sticks. Willow handed him the brown envelope.
“That’s the payment we agreed. Jacob will make sure Rick pays for his set when he’s at the farm. I’ll give our manager two CDs and two DVDs, and the USB to put up on the website. How did you go with the TV guys yesterday?”
Xavier gave his father the envelope as he replied.
“It was really good. They were very interested in what we did on the fly, and I was told a name of a guy to get in touch with. The guy that spoke to me suggested that I could work at the station, part-time, until I finished school. The cameraman had a long talk with Dave and Frank. Do I have your permission to send a few tracks to the station, so that they can gauge our work?”
“Not a problem. Just make sure that they know that they need to get in touch with me before putting anything from any of the bands to air. By rights, because I funded the day, the finished product is my property.”
His father looked up from checking the contents of the envelope.
“This is a lot of money for a day’s work.”
“Not when you’re paying for expert attention. We’ll be dropping some of these to our manager, today. When they go on-line, Xavier will have a bargaining tool when he talks to the TV station.”
“Thank you for all that you’ve done for him, Miss Rose. He showed me a few clips from your show last night. It was certainly better than the ones he had done for the school.”
Xavier and his father helped to take the boxes out to the car, including the recording unit in its box. Willow and Gina gave Xavier a hug and said that they would see him in school. On the way to Peter’s office, Willow asked Maisie to pull over. She got the album cover art out of the bag and added it to some of their own disc cases. Jacob and Gina kept one of each for themselves.
At Peter’s office they gave him two CDs and two DVDs.
“These will allow you to see what it turned out like. One set for you, and one set for Marcus. I’ll give you the digital version on a USB when you’re ready to go on-line. We have the discs for the other bands but think that it’s up to them to give you copies when they’ve been signed on. Jacob will give the Hiker’s set to Racheal to give to Rick, as they’re at the farm a lot, these days. I’ll phone Geoff to send Jim over to pick up theirs.”
He gave them a signed receipt for the discs and then they went to look for fabric, with Willow and Jacob having a cuddle behind the rolls of material.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 21
When they had dropped Jacob off, with the box for Rick, Maisie told Willow that they would be getting the keys to the new home at the end of the next week and thanked her for suggesting it. There would be a housewarming on Easter Saturday afternoon. When they stopped at Willow’s they helped carry the last boxes in.
When she was alone, Willow phoned the rest of the band to let them know that there were discs to pick up. Then she called Geoff to let him know. He asked for the address and told her that Jim would come and pick them up in a couple of hours.
She left his box on the kitchen table but kept the bag containing the memory cards and the USB with the original audio, adding them to the ones that she had taken from the Hiker’s box. That left the other band with the discs and a USB holding the digital version of the DVD. Her Shaun had a zipped compartment for girly trinkets, and she put these, and the ones from the Summer Rose sessions, in there for safety.
She added the recording unit to the growing collection in the spare room, along with the remaining items in her band’s box, just leaving two DVDs out to look at when her parents came home. A pair of the CDs was put in with her collection in her bedroom, to join the Carpenters one that she had to pay for.
She was preparing the dinner when Jim and Geoff arrived, driven by Jim’s mother. She gave them a drink and showed them their box.
“This has the ten audio CDs, the ten DVDs, and two USB sticks. One for the audio and the other with the show, as post-produced by Xavier. They are yours to do what you want with. We have already given Peter a set of ours, along with another set for Marcus. If you sign with them, I suggest that you do the same. These discs are not protected, so make sure that you don’t hand them around. Wait for the purchased ones to go on sale. The other thing is the DVD does not have any titles or credits. It will be up to whoever is adding them to your website to add those. Our last album was done by Peter’s office.”
“What do we owe you, Willow. This must have been an expensive operation.”
“Nothing, Geoff. Xavier and the others have been fully paid, and will get some more from Rick, who can afford it. I’m doing this as thanks for letting me play with you at that first concert. You may have thought that I saved the day, but that one performance saved my life and allowed me to go to a new school with many showing acceptance of the new girl. Without that show, I wouldn’t be where I am today.”
“It will be interesting to see if we do get a show together, the school has been the biggest audience that we’ve played to.”
“The quicker you get these properly on-line, the quicker you’ll start earning money, and the more audience you’ll attract. Watch the show and pick out the one you want as a single. Rick will be doing the same. If all of us are in the charts, the show will be another awesome experience.”
They took the box and left. Willow went back to the kitchen to prepare the dinner. She was still slicing and dicing when the front doorbell chimed, and she found Brent and Herb, with Herb’s father, at the front door. She let them in, sat them at the table with drinks and went upstairs to get four sets of discs. They chatted about the sessions and what may come of them, and the boys both gave her a hug, before leaving with their discs in plastic bags that Willow took from a drawer.
When her parents arrived, she had nearly got the dinner ready to go, just needing to start cooking. After dinner, they tidied up and sat in front of the TV to watch both finished shows for the first time.
Wendy had a box of tissues beside her, fully prepared for what she had been told would need them. She had seen Willow sing these songs solo, but it didn’t prepare her for the extra emotion that Herb’s guitar playing added. There was a pile of soggy tissues beside her when the DVD ended. Willow had been amazed at how it had been produced, with overall band shots and close-ups that made it look very professional. Her father said nothing, trying to look manly and blowing his nose to wipe his eyes.
The Other Side show brought a different response, with him putting his arm around his wife and pulling her to him. When Willow ejected the disc, he stood and hugged her.
“When you were spending close to five thousand to set up those sessions, on top of the seven and a half that the equipment cost, I had the feeling that you might be going over the top. What I’ve just see has shown me that it was worth every penny. The other two bands are getting copies of their shows as well?”
“Yes Dad. All delivered. It’s up to them to do what they want with them. I haven’t even looked at their discs, it’s not my place.”
She grinned.
“But I do have the original memory sticks of the videos and a USB with the original audio put aside. I paid for the sessions, so I thought that I should be the custodian of the raw material. I do have a copy of the production software, so could, if I wanted, put together a DVD myself.”
He laughed and hugged her again.
“What about your sessions?”
“Same thing, I retained the raw material and Peter has a copy of the CD and one of the DVD. I’ve held back the USB with the digital file for when he says that he’s putting it on-line.”
He laughed and said that he was getting ready for bed. Wendy told Willow not to stay up too late and that she would see her for breakfast.
“So, Mum. Kansas may be the new Purple?”
“I think so, dear. I’ll let you know if the American version is any different to the British one, tomorrow.”
Willow put the DVDs in with the family collection and went to cleanse and get ready for bed. There were no creaking springs, but she thought that there may have been some low moaning from the master bedroom.
………………………………………………………..
At about the same time, Peter was sitting in his own lounge with his wife, having just watched both shows.
“What did you think, darling?”
“No thought needed, my husband. That band is gold, and that girl is the diamond. The Journey one will go world-wide, treated properly. I suggest that you bypass the local stations and take the CD and DVD directly to the national broadcasters and one of the major distributors. The other one is chalk and cheese. I would hold that back for a while until the time is right. Didn’t you say something about a show that one of your contacts is putting together with a heavy-metal band? Blastmasters or some such name. That set would open the show nicely.”
“You always say the right thing, my love. You should be in the office with me.”
“I couldn’t put up with sweaty rockers. Love. This band is something a lot different. This band has class which can develop into lasting success. I know that this was, as you said, a recording made in a pub, but it just doesn’t look like that. It looks like it was made in a studio by professionals. You’re not pulling my leg when you told me that the band are all thirteen and the techs fifteen, are you?”
“Honest God’s truth, darling. I’ve even had several discussions with their teachers. I’m waiting to talk to the other two bands. One is mainly in the same year as the techs, and the other already had a viral on-line hit but I’m told it has improved out of sight since then. They have signed with us, but we haven’t organised anything yet. When I get some likely dates, I’ll start working with Marcus to put some performances together.”
He went to his home office to send an email to Marcus, who had some more contacts in London than he had.
…………………………………………………….
On Saturday morning, the Rose family went into Birmingham to look at outfits. Willow told them that she would fund the make-over, which allowed them to look in better places than they had been able to shop in before. Ashley came away with two suits, one a charcoal grey, and the other a dark three-piece that would look good on a prime minister. Wendy and Willow tried on many dresses while Ashley went off to put his bags in the car and then sit in the nearby café to wait for them.
Wendy ended up with an emerald-green cocktail dress for Thursday, and a light pink one with frills and ruffles for the following Sunday. Willow needed one in apricot, or similar, for Thursday and ended up with a knee-length dress with big sleeves and decorative stitching. For the Sunday, she bought one similar to her mother’s, but slightly darker. It gave her freedom of movement for playing but was distinctive enough to be a stage outfit. They met up with Ashley and went for lunch, then drove into Coventry for her practise session in the Cathedral.
When they had parked and walked into the Cathedral, Tom saw them and came over. He was introduced to Ashley.
“Welcome to the Cathedral, Ashley. What you find, today, is a place of joy for me. My daughter has agreed to join the choir. I’ll be training her, and she will be going to see a breathing specialist. It’s all because she came along to see your daughter on Wednesday.”
“So, the spell of the rose has worked again! I’m losing count of the number of teenagers that my daughter has lifted out of their depths of darkness into the spotlight of entertaining.”
“Sit yourself down somewhere. I’m acting Dean this weekend, so I’ll take Willow up to the organ and show her the music we’ll be listening to on Sunday.”
As he led Willow to the stairs, he spoke to her.
“I had a long talk with my wife on Wednesday evening. It wasn’t heated, but it was serious. I told her that she had to allow Sally some leeway in the kitchen and not criticize her. She didn’t know that she was doing wrong but has followed my advice since. Sally is helping her more and taking on a lot of the simpler tasks. She’ll be singing with the others today. It’s the first time that she’s been here in the choir and is quite excited. I deliberately chose hymns and songs that would allow her some opportunity to impress, but not taxing her lungs until she gets extra training.”
“I’m happy for the two of you. I think that she’ll surprise both you and your wife.”
“My wife will be here tomorrow to hear for herself. It may prove that Sally can be someone outstanding.”
Willow went up to the organ and looked at the music. She saw that they were all easier pieces and decided that Tom was a thoughtful and loving father. She turned on and got comfortable, then started with the Bach to warm up her fingers. When she started on the hymns, there was some singing. When she got into the Evensong set, there was more singing, and she could pick out a new voice that soared above the others. At times, she could hear her mother, now happy to use more of her voice.
Back in the car and going home, Wendy turned to her.
“I can’t believe that Sally had never sung in a choir before. She was good on Wednesday, but her voice was something else today.”
“So was yours, Mum. I could pick you out from where I was sitting.”
“Your father nudged me to quieten down, but I ignored him.”
“Quite right. You have a voice that deserves to be heard,”
“I thought that she was being a bit loud, Willow. There was a guy a little way away from us that kept looking at her.”
“I saw him as I was leaving you. He happens to be Tom’s assistant choir master. Maybe he thinks that Mum should join the Cathedral choir.”
Wendy winked at her as Ashley had the politeness to blush. To round the day out, they stopped at the steakhouse for dinner.
At home, they relaxed. Tonight, they were a family that had things to be thankful for, and things to look forward to. Willow almost dozed off in front of the TV, feeling more rested than she had in days. The die had been cast with the band, and all she could do now was to wait. That woke her up, and she went to her room, looked at a calendar, opened her laptop to email Peter with some preferred dates. The first was the weekend five weeks on, in the first week of May.
She noted that the middle of May was out due to the concert in the Cathedral. The last weekend in May was another possible as it was in the half-year holidays. The last Saturday in June and the second one in July was marked as good. The end of the month was the start of the summer holidays, which lasted through to the second week of September. She sent it to Peter with a ‘cc’ to Marcus. She went down to say goodnight to her parents, who were cuddled on the couch, then went to cleanse and get into bed, wondering if Kansas was twice as potent as Purple. What she didn’t know was that Wendy had put a kitchen towel on the couch, and they were doing something that they hadn’t done since their younger days in Cambridge.
On Sunday, the three of them drove to the Cathedral. Being a lot later than St. Marys, it was an easier morning. At the Cathedral, Willow left her parents and went up to the organ to start playing the Bach as the building filled. She glanced down and saw her parents sitting, with Tom’s assistant next to Wendy and looking like they were discussing something.
She concentrated as she saw the Bishop come in, with Tom, as acting Dean, in full regalia and carrying the cross. From there, the service went as usual, with some very strong singing that still had Sally managing to stand out. When she turned the organ off and went down, Sally was there to give her a hug.
“Thank you, Willow. My life has spun around and I’m helping Mum cook and now I’ve sung with the best choir in the city.”
“Totally deserved, Sally. I could hear you clearly. You have a wonderful voice. Are you coming to the village with your father?”
“You bet! Singing alongside a few of the women that I used to listen to on the cassettes I had was fantastic! It was Margaret telling me how good my soprano was, for an untrained voice, that made me realise that I had been listening to music that was part of what I was. I just put it away in my heart for a few years. I feel liberated!”
The Rose family went into the city for a leisurely lunch. Ashley complained that they could have done their shopping in this break, instead of spending so long in Birmingham. He was told, in no uncertain terms, that three hours in Coventry was nowhere near long enough to choose two outfits.
Back in the Cathedral, the Evensong was full again, and the singing was great. When they were home again, Willow checked her phone, seeing a lot of texts from the other members of the other two bands. All were thanks for the quality of the recordings and the promise to see Peter next week to move forward. There was one from Marcus, thanking her for the dates and the discs. It also asked her if she would be happy to play the Belgrade Theatre on the first date that she had nominated, with extra dates to be added if the interest was there.
She replied that she would be happy with three nights if there was enough ticket sales.
She checked the size of the theatre and noticed that it was only able to seat eight hundred and fifty, so would be less than they had played for at the school. She decided that Marcus could have something up his sleeve.
……………………………………………..
Marcus, at that time, was packing a small case with enough clothes for three days. He had made copies of the audio and show discs and had made a few appointments with friends in London. He had some good contacts who would be interested in having new bands on stage. Peter had called him and spoken about the heavy metal show, and Marcus knew the promoter. He would be leaving early Monday morning, certain that he would return with good news.
……………………………………..
On Monday morning, after her parents had gone to work, Willow went for a walk. She went further into the village than normal, happy to be stretching her legs and thinking about things. She cast her mind back to the same time, last year, when she was still William, and wondered about the total changes in her life. Not only the gender thing, but also the personality changes that allowed her to be more proactive. In her mind, she said goodbye to William John, and welcomed Willow Jean as who she was.
Coming back by the church, she noticed a few nice cars parked outside. Intrigued, she peeked into the church to see Cassie and Marie, with Terry and another couple. Chris was talking to the Reverend. Cassie noticed her and came to the door.
“Just the person we need, Willow. We were about to run through a practise of the wedding, seeing where we stand and when we move and all that. You don’t realise just how choreographed a wedding is until you get to do it yourself. Come and meet Terry’s parents, Earl Appleby, and his wife.”
She led Willow into the church, with Marie stopping them for a hug. Willow was introduced as the organist for the wedding. The Earl looked surprised.
“A teenager, playing the organ for a wedding of this stature! What were you thinking, son?”
Terry looked at his mother.
“You know that CD I got for you that you like. The one with all the Carpenters songs on it?”
She nodded.
“Well, meet Willow Rose. One part of Summer Rose, and the leader of that band. They’re playing the reception for us. It was Gina Summer that played organ yesterday, she’s the same age as Willow and I didn’t hear you complaining about her playing, Dad.”
“I didn’t take much notice of the organist.”
Chris came over and gave Willow a hug.
“I see you’ve been introduced, Willow. Don’t mind the Earl. He’s has a stick up his bum when he meets new people but will have enough to drink at the reception to be friendly.”
The Earl harrumphed, then smiled.
“I’m sorry, Miss Rose. It’s just that I didn’t know who would be playing the organ. What I heard yesterday sounded like a much older person. How much experience have you had with the church organ?”
The Reverend had come over and replied for her.
“Willow was the one who woke this organ up after five years of sleeping. She brought the life back into this church and helped Gina start playing it. They alternate on Sundays, one playing here, and the other playing in the Cathedral. If you were watching the TV on Christmas Eve, you may have seen that big concert at the Cathedral. That was Willow playing the Bach at the beginning. There isn’t anyone else that I’d trust more with a wedding than her.”
“I stand corrected. I’m sorry I doubted you, Willow. Why don’t we get on with this practise?”
Reverend Russell had the pile of music for Willow, with a note telling her what was played and when. She went up to the organ and got it ready, then warmed her fingers with the Bach. In the mirror, she saw Terry and his father stand by the far altar, with the Reverend facing her, Terry’s mother sat in a pew one side, with Marie in a pew on the other. The Reverend gave a nod, and Willow changed to the Bridal March as the Baron walked Cassie up the aisle to join Terry at the altar. Willow faded the music off as the Reverend started the wedding.
He welcomed the congregation in the usual ‘we come together’ way, then stopped for a prayer, followed by a hymn, which they sang in full. Then there was the actual wedding ceremony, with Terry and Cassie reading from cards. After the husband and wife were announced. The couple were led back up the aisle as organ played the usual music. When they disappeared under her, she started the intro to another hymn that had been chosen. The two mothers stood after that, and she played the triumphal music that has the bride and groom, signatures on the paperwork, walk back along the aisle and out to be greeted by confetti. She played the Bach for a short while and went down to where they were standing near the door. The Earl reached out his hand and she shook it.
“Sorry about the start, Willow. Chris has often called me out as a pompous ass, but it’s something that my father pounded into me, with the promise of the birch cane. He was a real stickler for protocol. Even I had to call him sir in private. There was nothing amiss with your playing, and I look forward to Sunday when the church is full.”
“That’s all right, sir. I get the ‘she’s only a little girl’ a lot. Last week I was called ‘formidable’ by our band manager, so it isn’t all bad vibes.”
“So, you are on that album that my wife likes, what’s next for you?”
“We recorded our next album in the club across the road last week. There’s a suggestion that we’ll play the Belgrade in Coventry in a few weeks. In the middle of next month our school orchestra will be back in the Cathedral to play a Saint-Saens concert which will be filmed by the BBC. After that, I need to finish second year at school.”
“Impressive! So how do you know the Leighs?”
“Have you had a look at the plaques and the memorials in the church, sir? Take a few minutes and then ask Chris the same question. I’ve got to go home now. It’s been a pleasure meeting you, and I’ll see you all on Sunday.”
With that, she had some more hugs and walked home, smiling as she went. She sat on the couch and turned her laptop on, seeing some more emails. There was one from Peter, cc’ed to the rest of the band, with a picture of a finger at the top, which made her laugh. It told her that he had booked the Belgrade for Friday, Saturday, and Sunday night of the first weekend in May, and that he would be adding the Gees and Hikers on her recommendation. Advertising to happen before Easter, with the headliner based on their Carpenters album success and the Hikers video. He told her that Marcus was in London to sort out TV coverage for one of the commercial channels that had a ‘Band Spot’ show. Then, he had booked the Coventry City Premier Lounge for a dinner dance on the last Saturday night in May, with the full dance band to play. At the end, he said that the ‘Journey’ album would be up on the website on the following week and asked for the digital version. She replied that she was at home and that he could send a courier to pick it up and gave the address.
There was another email from the Head, telling her that the school would be responsible for the bookings for the dinner dance, with invitation going to all of the old scholars and the church hierarchy, at a hundred pounds a seat, meals and drinks included, with the room to be set for two thousand and a good dance floor. It would be on the school website at the beginning of term. At the end was ‘Remember, first thing next Monday!’
There were others from the band, commenting on the sudden rush of bookings and asking about the finger picture. She did a group answer to let them know what she now knew, and that the finger was something between her and the manager, but that they should be able to deduce the reference.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 22
Willow spent a little while looking at her course notes and the subjects that would round out the year in Music Studies. The first half was called Remix, and the second half was Gamelan, with a group performance listed. She looked up the instruments in a Gamelan band, finding that most of them were percussion, and generally hit with a hammer. That, she thought, may be a hilarious way to end second year.
She was reading an incoming email when the doorbell rang. It was a courier to pick up the USB. She had put it into an envelope, addressed to Peter, which she gave to the courier, who gave her a signed receipt and left. She went back to the email.
It was from Racheal, asking her to be at the farm on Thursday morning, to help her get ready for the wedding. They were booked at a salon in Coventry and then for lunch and dressing at the Britannia. A car would drive them from the farm and to the registry for the ceremony, and then Willow could join her parents to go to the reception. She would be able to retrieve her normal outfit to wear home from the hotel, as the room was booked to the following morning and would be hers to use if she wanted to.
There was also an email from Wendy, sent from work. It told her that the fashion label was sending a photographer to Racheal’s wedding to get some preliminary shots to show the owner.
Willow printed off Racheal’s email to show her mother. Both of her parents would be taking the day off on Thursday for the wedding, so her mother would be able to drive her to the farm. The new dress was in a garment bag, with another bag with shoes, a clutch, and jewellery in. She had even bought a fascinator in the same colour to wear, although she thought she may look a bit silly with it.
In the afternoon, she suddenly felt very tired, and went up to her room to lie down. Waking up a little over three hours later, she felt refreshed. It had been a very stressful week, and she still had some effects of her operation to overcome. A lot had happened in a very short time, and she had been at the pointy end of most of it. She recalled Malcolm telling her to slow down, realising that her body had just told her the same thing.
She went down and started preparing for dinner, leaving her phone and computer alone. As she worked, she invariably started thinking about things. Her laptop was one that she had from the previous school and was sounding a bit loud when the drive was operating. Tonight, she decided, she would transfer everything important to the SSD memory and research something modern with an internal SSD.
That evening, after they had tidied up the dinner things, she went up to her room and transferred all the music and other memory to the remote SSD, amazed at how little space it had taken up. She ran through all her emails, cutting and pasting the most important to a word document to save on the SSD. That done, she went downstairs to see her father.
“Dad, can you transfer a thousand from my account to the debit card account. I want to go into the city, tomorrow, and get myself a new laptop. I’ll get a taxi in and out.”
“What about Maisie taking you?”
“She’s very busy with a special gown for Cassie’s wedding and sorting out house stuff. I’ll be all right. I have the card that the taxi driver that brought me home from the hospital gave me.”
He went into his office and called up the account.
“Peter put a thousand in this morning, so that’s your laptop paid for. Have you heard from him?”
“He emailed today. I’ll get my laptop so we can print it out.”
When she came back, he had transferred the money. She plugged in the printer and printed out today’s emails for him to look at.
“I think that I’ll get a printer at the same time, Dad. Then I can print stuff in my room.”
“That will be good. Look, these events that he’s putting together; they’re both a big step forward. The Belgrade isn’t a huge arena, but a TV show filmed there of the three bands is a huge exposure. The dinner dance will be great, we’ll have to get tickets. Perhaps we can get your grandies over from Cambridge for that.”
“I’ll have to clear the spare room if that happens, Dad, I’m slowly filling it with stuff.”
“How would you like it for me to go by the hardware store and get a couple of lockable metal cupboards that can go in the garage? That way, you can store all the extra stuff out of the way. It’s not as if you’ll be using it every week. I can get myself a workbench and get them all delivered together.”
“Sounds good, Dad. There’s an email here from Racheal. She wants me over at the farm in the morning and I won’t be back with you until after the ceremony. She’s booked a room for us to dress in and has told me that we can use it for the night, as it’s paid for until morning.”
“If we do stay overnight, you and I will have to taxi home so I can go to work on Friday. If we take your mother’s car, she can take a workday outfit and go to work from there. I can tell work that I’ll be a little late and work the extra time in the afternoon.”
She said goodnight to her parents, took the laptop back and went through the nightly rituals before getting into bed. Even with the afternoon sleep, she dropped off quickly and slept deeply.
In the morning, after her parents had left, she called the number on the card. The driver asked her where she wanted to go to, and she told him that she needed a good electrical store in Coventry where she could find a laptop. He took note of her address and told her that he would pick her up in about thirty minutes.
When he arrived, she locked up and with her big bag got in the back of the taxi. He was the same driver that she had been with before, and he asked her how she was. When they got into the city, he pulled up outside a big store and asked her how she was getting home. She told him that she would be a while and he told her that he would work in the city until she called him. She paid the fare and thanked him, then walked into the store.
Inside, she was looking at computers when a girl came up to her.
“Can I help you, Miss?”
“I’m looking for a laptop with a fast chip, plenty of working memory and the biggest SSD I can get. I also want a small printer that will go in a bedroom and a monitor that’s bigger than twenty-four inches.”
“That’s a lot of firepower for home and homework use.”
“I have a new professional mixing software which can take up to six feeds and produce good visuals sync ’ed to an audio track. We used it last week recording a couple of bands.”
“Oh. Which bands?”
“G-Force, Rick and the Hikers and Summer Rose.”
“That’s quite a line up. Do you have a relative in any of those?”
“I play keyboard in Summer Rose.”
“You’re Willow. Wow! My folks love the Carpenters stuff. You’re all over the airwaves at the moment. I guess that you need something that will endure the rough and tumble. An SSD is the only way to go. The thing with the latest units is that they’ve dropped having an inbuilt disc drive, so you’ll need a remote drive to play and record to. They don’t cost a lot, though.”
An hour later, Willow was the owner of a new laptop with more internal memory than she had ever had before, a remote disc drive, a printer that used ink tanks that she was assured lasted a very long time, and a thirty-inch curved monitor that she just had to have after seeing the clarity of the screen. She had also been supplied with the way to subscribe to the new MS suite, rather than having it on a disc, as well as a good virus protection starter. When it was all totalled up, she had enough to get herself a new music player with a link to Google and Spotify. All her boxes were taken near the door that she had come in, and she rang the taxi driver. He told her that he was ten minutes away and she waited for him. One of the assistants helped carry her things to the taxi and she was home, her boxes piled in the hallway, before lunch.
After she ate, she took the items up, one by one, and spent a few hours setting up. The monitor was fantastic, and the printer was Wi-Fi, so didn’t have to be anywhere near the desk. She nipped down to her dads office and took a bundle of printer paper back up. She found out that she needed a bank account to set up ongoing use of the MS suite and the virus protection, so she left those for a moment and loaded up the post-production software using the remote disc player. Xavier had been right; it was so much easier on a big screen.
When her father arrived home, she asked him about setting up her own account.
“Funny you should ask, sweetheart. The accountant rang me at work and we’re seeing him tonight. When we come home, everything will be running. How was your quest?’
She took him up to her room and showed him what she had bought. He loved the new screen and said that he needed to get one for himself.
After a quick dinner, the three of them went to see the accountant, with all three needing to sign the paperwork for the new company. The accountant gave her the new account details, set up with a seed from her uni account, and a credit card in the company name. She gave him the account for the computer equipment, the first purchase of the company. He gave her the details of her first personal account, also set up with a seed from the uni account. She got a debit card for that one. He also gave her details of three commercial properties to look at. He told her that if she wanted to see any, to ring the agent for a viewing. Before they left, she asked him if he could register the trading name ‘Summer Rose Band’ and the variations as a trademark in her name.
On Wednesday, she activated the MS suite and filled in the account details. When she tried Word, she found it to be chalk and cheese from what she had been used to, then realised that she had moved from Windows ten to eleven, and that everything was bright, shiny, and new. She loaded up and activated the virus protection. All of this was done as WR Holdings, with the company credit card to pay the subscriptions. She logged on to Outlook and set up her old email account, with all of the history empty. For the last thing, she created a Gmail address under the company, wrholdings. This would be her private account, only made known to those with a valid reason to know. She emailed Jacob to let him know to use it for private messages. Ten minutes later, she got her first message, which just read ‘Willow, I love you, JE’.
That evening, she went to the club and again let Gina play the organ for the choir. She sat at a table and wrote lyrics in her notebook, based on a busy life. She saw Tom looking across at her as he worked the choir with professionalism. Even Malcolm gave her a smile when she went for a drink. She was there, if needed, but was staying out of the way.
By the time she got home, the usual inbox had messages from various friends. There was one from Peter with a mock-up of the upgraded website to look at, as well as a similar one for each of the other two bands. He also told her that he would see her at the reception, now invited as Rick’s manager.
On Thursday morning, Willow had breakfast and then showered and dressed in one of her nicer skirt and top outfits. Ashley dropped her off at the farm and then left to look for the items for the garage. They weren’t at the farm long; just long enough for Willow and Jacob to have a cuddle, and then a car arrived to take the two girls on an adventure. Neither had been for a salon experience, having not been able to pay for one before.
At the salon, they were preened and pampered, had their hair washed and worked on, while other attendants looked after their fingers and toes. They both had their dresses with them, and the make-up was applied to suit the dress colours as well as their own colouring. When they left, they both had bags with the products that had been used on them.
At the Britannia, they were given the room card, and a lad carried their things up to what turned out to be a suite. With the dresses, a suitcase and the cosmetics bags, it was almost as much as you would have for a long stay. When the things were stored with the dresses hanging in the wardrobe, they went down to the dining room for an early lunch.
They spoke about the next events of the day, and then Willow asked about where Jacob would be living when Racheal and Rick moved in.
“The thing is, Willow, that we are just buying the farmhouse and the right to farm the land. My parents will retain ownership of the acreage and will receive a part of the profit as an annual payment. Dad has done some work on one of the old barns; making it watertight and internally insulated. He had started it so I could come back and help him. It has some internal walls and has been plumbed for water and a septic tank. All we need to do is finish the fit-out, and Jacob can move in. There will be enough room for him to set up a large music room, which Rick will use as well to store his stuff. I’ll feed Jacob, but he will essentially be living in a bachelor pad.”
“Will you be moving in soon?”
“About two months for our lease to run out on the flat. Enough time to throw some money at the barn and the parents to shift to Stoneleigh. There are things that they want to do with that house before they move in. Nothing will change until summer. And we need to go and change for the big event.”
Back in the room, the two girls made ready for the ceremony, putting on luxurious underwear and stockings. It was the first time that Willow had worn stockings and a garter belt, and she felt very lady-like. Willow helped Racheal get into a tight-fitting dress, then put on hers. They both stepped into shoes that neither would enjoy but made them both look fabulous.
They had rechecked their make-up when there was a knock on the door. The car driver was ready to take them. Racheal followed him, with Willow behind and carrying both of their clutches. There were some looks as they walked through the reception to the car, and then they were off to the registry.
When they arrived, Wilhelm was there to escort his daughter with Willow in attendance. In the office, Rick was waiting, Jacob in a very smart suit standing beside him. There wasn’t a lot of room, but enough for the parents. Once the paperwork had been signed, they went outside, where there was a small crowd of well-wishers. Maisie and Gina stood with Wendy and Ashley; the Hikers were all there with their partners. The bride and groom were showered with rice, as the local council didn’t allow confetti, but allowed rice as the pigeons would have it all gone within five minutes. Willow gave Racheal her clutch, and then went to stand with Gina, who had a stunning dark red outfit on. There was two or three photographers, one of them made sure to take several pictures of Willow and Gina.
Willow was taken back to the hotel by her parents, where she used the card to open the door to the room. She took her bag and garment bag through to the smaller room, leaving her parents the big bed. She changed into a skirt and top for the reception, changing her shoes for her more comfortable ones.
They went down to the hotel bar, where most of the wedding guests were having a drink and sat with Maisie and Gina. Jacob joined them. Rosalie and Wilhelm were sitting with a couple who she knew were the new in-laws, and the Hikers were enjoying drinks at the bar. As it got towards five, they all gravitated towards the function room, which was set out with a lot of table settings, with some guests already seated. At one end, Willow noticed a grand piano, next to where a DJ was setting up. They found their places, near the DJ, and sat down. The bridal party were on a table next to them, arriving just on five and joining both sets of parents. Racheal had changed from the wedding dress into something a lot more comfortable, no doubt assisted by Rick, Willow surmised.
The meal was good, and the room was filled. There were a lot of family, old school friends, and friends of the two families. Willow noticed Peter and Marcus with their partners, as well as Geoff and Zara. There were no set speeches, but Rick’s father stood to make one. The DJ stopped the quiet music. When he had waffled on about his layabout son and the angel he had married, he said that the happy couple would now have the first dance.
Racheal came over to Willow.
“Willow, friend. Could you please do that last song of the new album for me to dance to?”
“Certainly, Rach. Would you like me to add a few on, so that we get more dancing?”
“That would be lovely.”
Racheal went back to her table and Willow went to the piano, quickly opening and propping the top. She uncovered the keys and started playing ‘Her Day’. As she played and sung, Racheal and Rick were dancing. Racheal beckoned others to join them, and the floor slowly filled. When the song from the album ended, she segued into ‘Close to you’ and ‘Only Just Begun’. As she was nearing the end, she nodded to the DJ who was ready to carry on the music when she finished. She quietly put the cover on the keyboard as Jacob closed the piano top, then they joined the other dancers.
“That was nicely done, darling. Rach has been playing my CD of the album all week, with that song on rotation. After all the angst of the earlier numbers, that one is the most uplifting. It was good of you to play it for her.”
“It’s the least I could do, sweetheart. That was a nice piano. One day, we may have a house big enough to have one.”
“There’s another old barn at the farm that has a lot of room.”
“Surely the new farmers might have a use for it. If they embrace modern methods, they may need more plant and equipment.”
“You could be right. What are you doing tonight?”
“We’re staying in the room that we changed in. Mum will go to work from here and I’ll be going home with Dad in a taxi. I’ve got the other wedding on Sunday, and then we do that reception at the club. I’m amazed at what we fitted into this holiday.”
“It would never have happened without you wielding the shoehorn.”
They danced and sat, sat and danced. Over the course of the evening, several of Racheal’s old friends came over to say hello to Willow, Gina and Jacob, taking selfies. It encouraged the three to get up and move away from the bridal table, heading to where their manager was sitting.
“Hello, Peter, nice to see you and your good wife.”
“Hello, Willow. That was an interesting take on your songs back there.”
“The first time I did the new set was at the club when we had an impromptu Saturday night. Just me and the keyboard. I think it has more depth of emotion with the full band.”
“It certainly has, from the number of crying women in the club on Wednesday.”
“Someone suggested that we put a packet of tissues on every seat, but I reckon a concession stand selling them might be more lucrative. Nice work on the bookings.”
“When I de-finger, Willow, I go all out. Marcus has been to London and has some news for the band. I would like to set up a meeting before you go back to school.”
“I’ll be home, alone, tomorrow, then Saturday I need to be over the church to run through the wedding music again. We’ll all be at the club for the reception on Sunday. Maybe you can email the others to arrive early. Remember the wind players.”
“That wedding is at four, with the reception starting about six-thirty for the eating, right?”
“There will be a period between five and six while the bride and groom go and change in the vicarage. Maybe we could meet then, in the club.”
His wife sat forward.
“Who is it getting married, dear.”
“It’s Cassandra, the daughter of Baron Leigh, and Terry, son of the Earl Appleby. I’ll be playing the church organ for them.”
“A real society wedding. Didn’t I read something about that in the Observer this week. The story was about a many great niece of the third Baron playing the organ. Is that really you?”
“It is. My four times great grandfather was the brother of the third Baroness. We only found out about it by a twist of fate. It doesn’t make me family to the current Baron, though.”
“Still, it’s an interesting thing to tell your children.”
They moved on to talk to Geoff and Zara, and then the other members of the Hikers. As the evening wore on, the happy couple made their escape under a cloud of confetti, and the guests started to leave. The three friends went back to their tables. When it was quiet, Gina turned to Willow.
“I was going to bring this up before. At the registry, there was one photographer that seemed more interested in us than the happy couple.”
“That’s because we were why he was there. The boss where Mum works has a friend who runs a fashion business. They print the quarterly brochures for them. It appears that the friend is keen to have us model teen outfits. I’ve already put her off for the spring collection, but she sent him to take a few of us dolled up to see what we look like. I expect that Mum will hear what she thinks in the next week or two.”
“So, we may finish the term as rock stars and models. That’s wild!”
“Hey, it’s only a clothing brochure in the paper, it’s not Vogue.”
“It’s the first step on the ladder of super modelling. Catwalk by day, rock gods by night!”
“You’ve had too much raspberry cordial, friend. I think it’s time I hit the sack. My folks need their beauty sleep, Dad’s either nodding off or all that beer is getting to him. Goodnight, friends. I’ll see you Saturday for the sing-along.”
They hugged and Jacob kissed Willow before she rounded up her parents and went to the room. She cleansed in the bathroom and wondered what the meeting would deliver. It had to be something big if Peter wanted a full-band meeting. She decided not to worry herself and dived into a strange bed without her furry friends to talk to. As she went to put out the bedside light, she saw her shiny red fingernails and smiled.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 23
It was early in the morning when Willow’s phone alarm woke her. She was slightly disorientated to wake up in a strange room. She looked around and remembered that she was going home in a taxi with her father today. She went to the bathroom and prepared for the day. When she came out, wearing one of the hotel dressing gowns, her father was waiting to go in.
She redressed in the skirt and top she had started off with the day before and spent a little time on her hair, now fallen out of its wedding look. She had the good dress, the reception outfit, and accessories in the garment bag, and her shoulder bag with everything else ready to go, along with the dress and other things that Racheal had left in the room, when a knock on her door told her it was time for breakfast. She followed Ashley down to the hotel dining room, where they grazed at the bain-marie and found a table. They had eaten their breakfast and were finishing some of the best coffee Willow had tasted, when Wendy joined them, dressed for work.
Father and daughter went back to the room and collected the baggage. Willow gave her mother the room card, had a morning hug, and went to the reception area to wait for Ashley. When he had wished Wendy a good day at work, he joined Willow, and they went outside where a line of taxis were waiting for custom. They put their bags in the first one, got in the back seat and were off to Stoneleigh at around the time they would normally be making breakfast.
On the way, the talk was about the wedding and the reception. When they were dropped off at home, Ashley went and changed into his working suit and gave Willow a hug on his way to his car. Willow stood for a while in the empty house, feeling a bit lonely after the events of the day before. She shook herself and took her bags up to her bedroom, stripping off and redressing in a new outfit, then putting all her soiled clothes into her hamper, and hanging Racheal’s garment bag in her wardrobe for later pick-up.
She made herself a cup of tea and some toast, and sat at the kitchen table with it, her new laptop open in front of her. There were a few new emails. One was from Marcus.
‘Willow, this is for your information, prior to a meeting Peter is going to call. The show at the Belgrade will be the three bands and filmed for the Band Spot program with the compere of that show compering on the three nights. The SRDB dinner dance at the football club will be a charity event with the money, after all the expenses, going to an outreach program that the Bishop supports, so there should be a big contingent of dignitaries and celebrities. I have provisional agreement with another promoter to have SRDB playing at the Winter Gardens in Blackpool for the last week of July. The Other Side will be opening for Blastmasters for two weeks at the end of August. That will be something that will knock your socks off. Sixteen shows in sixteen days in sixteen cities. Details later. See you at the reception.’
She looked at the header and saw that he had sent it to her yesterday morning. She was glad she hadn’t read it then, as it was a lot to take in. If they were to be on stage as the Other Side in August, the album would have to be out there before that. Then the Winter Gardens. That was surely a dance place, and the band would need more than internet sales to attract the general public. She drank her tea and wondered what else will be revealed on Sunday.
There was another one from the Head that had come in later yesterday.
‘BBC keen to have orchestra on the Monday of the last week of the Proms. See me Monday!’
She looked in her diary and noted that the Proms Monday was the Monday of the first day of the new term.
She made herself lunch and went for a good walk. She stopped at the church and worked through the music for the normal service, and then the wedding music to make sure she had it right. When she switched off and came down, the Reverend was in the altar area, and she helped him take away the usual altar and reset the main one.
“Thank you for helping, Willow. It’s good to see you making sure that you have the music right. Gina is very good at that as well. It does show a sense of detail that is sadly lacking in a lot of young people, I’m afraid.”
“Talking about detail, Reverend, I have advance notice of a couple of times over the summer when both Gina and I will be performing in another town, so there may be a few Sundays when neither of us will be able to play.”
“That’s all right. We can live with that. If you get famous, I expect that we may lose your services for good.”
“You never know, Reverend. There may be other budding organists out there who will want to play this organ that had been played by the now famous duo. Some would love to sit up there and pretend that they’re us, at first. Then they will realise that they aren’t us and will grow into being themselves.”
“You almost have the mind of a preacher, young lady. You think in parables, sometimes. I might use that insight in a sermon. ‘Do not emulate your idols, become an idol yourself’ sounds like a good topic.”
“I tell you what. When it gets closer, and I know the dates we’ll miss. If I’m being interviewed, I’ll lament that I can’t play here on that Sunday, and we’ll see how many give you a call to fill in.”
They laughed and Willow felt that the Reverend Russell was one of the kindest human beings she had ever met. She surprised him with a kiss on the cheek and left, leaving the Reverend heading for his notebook as the words of a sermon came into his head.
She went over to the club and Malcolm helped her to pull the two keyboards to the middle of the stage for the sing-along on Saturday evening. They also pulled out the amplifiers, but only plugged two in that had the cables from the keyboards. They set up the PA system and then Willow helped him tidy up the room and get the tables and chairs set. They talked as they worked, and Willow told him about the wedding, the day before.
“I suppose they got you to sing, then.”
“They did. There was a nice grand piano and I did three songs for the bridal dance.”
“The wedding day one from the album was one, I expect.”
“How did you guess?”
“I’ve been humming it since I heard it. The topic is so uplifting. Don’t be surprised if that becomes one of the most requested songs for wedding receptions this summer.”
“That will mean that there will be lots of downloads. I’ll ask Peter not to make it a free view. I think that he’s adding ‘Finding a Friend’ as the main vision.”
“That one’s nice as well. The rest are, quite frankly, beyond me, but seem to hit a nerve with all the women in the room.”
“Women are half the population, and if they all buy the album, we’ll throw a party. Talking about parties, both me and Gina have our birthday next month. We will talk about it, but I’m all for throwing a dinner dance, similar to a reception. I’ve never had an actual birthday party, so I’m keen to make this one pop. We haven’t decided, but are thinking about the Friday night, and there’s a dinner dance on the Saturday. We might get the Hikers to play if they’ve got enough material by then. I expect that there’ll be us and the Gees there as well, so we may just get up and jam rock and roll.”
“That’s something I’d pay to see. Be sure that you order the cakes early. One big enough to feed a hundred will take several days to make.”
With the room ready to go, Willow went home to slice and dice for dinner. When her mother got home, she came into the kitchen.
“Willow, great news! The fashion house owner has seen the pictures from yesterday and she wants both you and Gina to model the best items from her summer range. They guy took pictures of others there, and she asked me about the young lad, so I told her that it was Jacob, also in the band. We will all go to a studio next Thursday after I pick you up from school. She’ll lay on some food and you three will have a photo shoot. She hopes to complete the range that night, so the brochure can be designed. She has been in touch with Peter and discussed your fee.”
“That’s wicked, Mum. Gina will be beside herself. I have some news for you. We will be busy next month. We play at the Belgrade Theatre on the first weekend, have the concert in the Cathedral in the middle, then there’s that big dinner dance in the football stadium function room. That one, I’ve been told, will be our full dance band and a charity function involving the school.”
“Any word on what’s happening during summer?”
“All I know is that we could be having a week in the Winter Gardens in Blackpool at the end of July, and sixteen days touring with a rock band called Blastmasters at the end of August. Oh! And a possible performance in the Proms on the Monday of the first day of term. Only I have been given that information, so far. We’re having a big meeting with Peter and Marcus between the wedding and the reception on Sunday, where all will be revealed.”
“Why only you?’
“Because I was the one to get Peter moving on our recording day. He was dragging his heels and walked in demanding to know what we were doing without his permission.”
When Ashley arrived, they had dinner and Willow sat with them to watch TV, dozing off on the couch. She was woken with a nudge from her mother and went up to cleanse and get into bed. Despite her snooze, she slept well.
Saturday morning, the new cabinets and work bench arrived. Willow helped her father position them in the garage, with one cabinet near the work bench and the other some way away. Ashley started to collect his tools from where they were strewn over the floor and put them into one cabinet, while Willow made several trips to transfer the recording equipment, mixer, cables, microphones and her old laptop to her cupboard. She added the drum machine for safe keeping. The cabinet had a lock, so she locked it and put the key in her sock drawer. The spare room now was clear and ready for visitors, and her own room had more space. She flattened all the boxes and bundled them up with string to go out on the next rubbish pick-up day.
Later that afternoon, the family walked to the club, where Gina and Jacob joined them, along with Maisie and Jacob’s parents. They commented on how well the wedding had gone and how beautiful the bride and maid of honour were. Gina told her friends about the following Thursday evening, and complained that they would all be wearing the uniform. Wendy assured her that they would be given outfits to wear, possibly given something to come home in. They had their early dinner and then went up on the stage for the sing-along, surprised to see an audience that was close to capacity. They played and sung until after ten, finishing with ‘Now is the Hour’. They switched everything off and Jacob left his guitar in the storage room for the next night. The three of them pulled the drum kit out and roughly set it up. They all had a hug and Willow and Jacob shared a kiss or three, then he left with his parents. Gina told Willow that Sally sounded even better during the practise that afternoon, and they spoke about the meeting.
“I’ll record the meeting for you until you get back from Evensong. I think I know what it will be about. We’ll start playing after you arrive, OK?”
“OK, Willow. You know me. I’ll go along with whatever the band agrees to, as long as it keeps the money coming in.”
Willow left her parents to it and walked home, going off to bed as soon as she arrived. She thought back to some advice from ages ago. She should see about a personal trainer to get her into shape. She was able to go longer than before, but still needed plenty of sleep.
Sunday morning, Willow dressed in one of her fuller skirts and a top, and then the family walked to the church. She switched on and started playing the Bach as the bells rang. The church filled up, several new faces in the congregation. She wondered if some may be very early for the wedding. The service went the usual way, with her ending the music as the bells finished. When she came down, two gentlemen in suits were waiting for her.
“Miss Rose. I hope that we are not upsetting you, but we are both A and R executives with a record distributor based in London. My name is Clive. Mister Waddington came to see us last week and showed us a DVD which we loved, but we frankly found hard to believe was work of teenagers.”
“Every member of Summer Rose, sir, is starting the third term of second year tomorrow. We all go to Blue Coat in Coventry. How did you know where to find me?”
“Mister Waddington mentioned that you played organ here. Is the other girl around? Gina Summer, isn’t it?”
“Gina is in Coventry Cathedral, getting ready to play the organ there for the service. We alternate, and you will be able to see her in a live feed if you go across to the club. It’s where we recorded the shows last Wednesday week.”
“When are you playing again?”
“If you hang about, I’m playing organ for a wedding at four, Gina will be playing Evensong in Coventry until five, and then Peter, our manager, has called a meeting in the club between five and six, then we play for the reception from half-past six and late.”
“Is there anywhere we can stand where we can see the show?”
“Follow me. I’ll show you the layout. I don’t see any problem if you sat at the bar and looked like late-coming guests. The room sits over two-hundred and fifty, and I believe that it’s fully booked. If you eat a good lunch, you can get dinner in the front area before you go in.”
She led them across to the club, where she introduced them to her parents and the two men gave all three of them their business cards. She showed them the back room, the stools where they would be unobtrusive, the stage and the equipment.
“That looks exactly how it looked in the video. I’m becoming a convert, Miss Rose.”
“Please call me Willow, everyone else does.”
“All right, Willow. Mister Waddington said something about other bands but didn’t have anything to show us.”
“That would be G-Force and Rick Sacks and the Hikers. When Marcus went to London, they hadn’t given him their discs because they only got them Friday.”
“Is that the Hikers who had their album go viral some weeks back?”
“It is. We did a recording session here with all three bands. The Hikers played a lot of new material. G-Force are fourth years from our school. They have both signed with Peter and Marcus should have their shows now. You can ask Peter and Marcus when they come here this afternoon.”
“Are they on the guest list?”
“I doubt that either of them would know an Earl and a Baron, gentlemen.”
They laughed.
“No, so if we stay out of sight, we can come in when they leave.”
“Don’t you want them to see you?”
“Well, we don’t want them to think we have doubts. We’re committed to giving them our answer tomorrow.”
“What sort of answer would that be?”
“Whether we commit to manufacturing your CD and DVD to distribute world-wide. It was good enough for that, but we’ve been had before.”
“What show did he give you?”
“One called ‘Journey into Womanhood’. He said that there’s another but will show us that in some months’ time.”
“Get yourselves a drink and watch Gina on the big screen. I’ll go and get you a set of the other discs so you can see what he held back.”
She went home and came back with a CD and DVD of ‘The Other Side’ and a note with her phone number and email address. Giving them to the men, she went to sit with her parents, and they followed, sitting at the table and making conversation. They were very friendly, but Willow could see that their conversation was designed to draw out any chinks in the story. They were praising Wendy when she said that she had done the cover art, and surprised when she said that she had also done the ‘Coventry Carpentry’ album.
“You recorded that album as well?”
“Yes. It’s only been available on the website, But I believe that it’s been getting a lot of airplay. We’ll do some tracks off of it tonight, along with the two, more uplifting tracks off ‘Journey’. One thing about tonight. We will have a wind section for the dance band, on top of the seven of us.”
They all had lunch, after watching Gina on the big screen. Willow excused herself and went home to get herself ready for the wedding. As she showered, she thought long and hard about what had been said. World-wide distribution! That would be brilliant. She was ready to go at just after three and went to the church, her new dress wafting in the slight breeze.
Since she had left it, that morning, workmen had been inside, setting up a number of cameras, and there was a big screen set up outside, with each camera vision shown in one of the segments. She went and spoke to the Reverend, commenting on how many flowers now decorated the place. At half-past three, she went up to the organ, turned on the fans and got comfortable.
She was playing Bach as people started to come in. They were definitely a different crowd from the usual congregation. The wedding went as well as the practise, but with more robes, better dresses, jewels, and more pomp. When the happy couple left the church, she continued to play until the church was empty. Then, she went outside, where there was quite a crowd and several photographers making things difficult. She endured a quarter of an hour being positioned in group photos, and then was able to make her escape, going over to the club. Wendy told her that the others were in the back room, so she made sure her phone was on record, in her bag, and went in.
The rest of the band were sitting at a table, close to the stage and with their backs to it. Peter and Marcus were facing them, their backs to the bar where the two men sat quietly. When Willow joined them, Peter asked where Gina was.
“On her way from Coventry. I’ll record this for her.”
She took the phone out and put it on the table.
Peter and Marcus outlined what she had already read. Jacob was holding her hand at it tightened as the shows were spoken about. She whispered to him.
“Ease off on the grip or else I won’t be able to play tonight.”
The grip eased, and they sat while Marcus told them a bit more detail about the Winter Gardens show. They would be the house band for a week, as Summer Rose, and staying in a hotel nearby. As far as the Blastmasters shows went, all he could tell them that the tour would start in Liverpool and end in London, with the sixteen shows spaced to be easily moved from place to place, with two sets of equipment leapfrogging the venues. Both bands would be using the one set of amps, which would be bigger than anything they had played before. There were questions about accommodation and security, which they were told would be suitable for their age. They would not be travelling with the other band, who already had a reputation as hard drinkers.
Gina came in as they were finishing, and Willow linked to her phone and transferred the recording. Peter and Marcus were asked to leave the room as the guests started arriving. Willow looked across to the bar and Clive winked at her. The band went up on stage so that the diners could take their seats, and switched on, tuned up, and started playing what Willow had once heard called ‘Elevator Music’.
They played the background music until the main course had been consumed and stopped when Chris stood. He made a gentle sort of speech, followed by the best man, who Willow considered to be an upper-class chinless twit. Toasts were made to just about everyone, and then Terry led Cassie onto the dancefloor. Rather than a traditional waltz, which she doubted they could dance anyway, she played the intro to ‘Her Day’ and the band followed her, with it being such a simple tune that the winds could fill in. They moved on to the two that she had played on Thursday, because they had worked there. They continued playing dance music until the floor was only filled with younger dancers and then they upped the tempo, getting into some Moody’s, more Carpenters, other sixties tunes that always got the floor heaving. They played, until nine, when the happy couple left, then non-stop until ten-thirty when Willow announced that they would be playing the last tune.
As they were switching off and getting the instruments in the cases, Clive came over to speak to Willow.
“Willow, my hearty congratulations. You and your band are the real thing. I will be contacting Marcus tomorrow to tell him that we’ll throw our weight behind you and put the album out. I expect that he will organise an immediate tour.”
“Not on, sir. We’re all at school, you would have heard that we will play Blackpool in the holidays and that he’s also set up a tour with Blastmasters in the holidays.”
“Yes, that one is very odd.”
“Not when you’ve seen the other DVD.”
He smiled, gave her a nod and joined his companion to leave the room. Gina asked who he was, so Willow just said that he was someone who had enjoyed the show. That night as she lay in bed, she wondered how the record company would deal with them now, seeing that there was no way they could tour to promote the record.
On Monday morning, they were in the car and heading for school. Wendy could tell that Willow was stressed but wasn’t able to find out why. When they left the car and walked into the school, Miss Russell was at the door. She pointed at Willow.
“You have your orders Miss Rose, go and wait with the others. Miss Summer, you’re on the organ this morning. Go to the stage and check the music. It’s just a standard hymn today.”
Willow went to the Head’s office, where she found Abbie, the orchestra leader of the junior group, and Moyra, the leader of the senior group.
When they were called into the office, the Head got them to sit down.
“I’ve called you three in because we have an odd situation which needs the three of you in agreement. The Bishop has suggested that we perform The Messiah at Christmas, in the Cathedral. He will expect Willow, who has been playing their organ for a couple of months, to be prominent because of her high profile with her band. We have decided that the best place for Willow is right out in front as the orchestra leader for this one project only. What do you say?”
Abbie spoke first.
“I’m happy with that if I can sit beside her. She has acted more like a leader in the orchestra than anyone else I’ve seen.”
Moyra just said that she agreed. The Head smiled.
“I will announce her as leader for the project. It will be hard work to get it right and the three of you will have to work together. Now, let’s get to the theatre and start the last term.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
End of book two.
Ending of Book 2
Abbie spoke first.
“I’m happy with that if I can sit beside her. She has acted more like a leader in the orchestra than anyone else I’ve seen.”
Moyra just said that she agreed. The Head smiled.
“I will announce her as leader for the project. It will be hard work to get it right and the three of you will have to work together. Now, let’s get to the theatre and start the last term.”
Chapter 1
The three girls followed the Head to the theatre, where they stood with her out of sight. Gina was playing Bach and stopped when Reverend Jack walked out on stage. He gave a blessing for success in the new term, led the prayer, and then nodded to Gina to start the hymn. He went and stood beside the organ. As the hymn finished, the Head looked at the girls.
“Follow me and stand in a line beside me. When I nod, go and stand with the choir.”
She strode out to the microphone, with three girls behind her. For Willow, it was one thing performing to a crowd, but another to be on stage in front of the whole school. They took up their places to one side. The Head welcomed the school to the new term and the last one of a very successful and tumultuous school year.
“The year will not be any less exciting as it ends. In the middle of next month our combined orchestra will be performing the Saint-Saens concert in the Cathedral. This will be filmed by the BBC for later viewing and a DVD. At the end of the month, we are involved in a big charity dinner dance at the Football Stadium. It will feature the Blue Coat School Dance Band, led by Willow Rose and Gina Summer. It will, like the Cathedral concert, be advertised through the school website.”
She paused as there was some murmuring.
“During the summer holidays, the optional project will only be open to the drama students. This is because the Music School will be preparing for one of the days of the Proms in Albert Hall. It will be the Monday of the last week, actually the first day of the new term, and we have yet to agree on the content. I’m certain that whatever is chosen will be excellent. These girls beside me – Moyra, Abbie, and Willow, will be crucial to this, with Willow playing the organ, and the others leading the orchestra. When we start the first term of the new school year, we will continue to have a combined orchestra as we have agreed to perform Handel’s Messiah in the Cathedral on the first weekend of December. This is a huge undertaking and will require a lot of rehearsals to get right. We will be joined by the Cathedral Choir and some soloists. Orchestra leader for that performance will be Willow Rose, aided by Moyra and Abbie.”
She nodded to them, and they went to stand with a group of animated singers.
“I don’t usually comment on activities outside the school, but as this involves school students, I will tell you that the first weekend of next month will see a pop concert in the Belgrade Theatre. It will include G-Force, mostly fourth formers, and Summer Rose, all second formers. It will also have another Coventry band, Rick Sacks and the Hikers. This will be filmed for one of the commercial TV stations. I applaud our scholars for presenting quality music to the public. Links to their websites will be on our own site. Now to other things….”
When she finished and dismissed the assembly, Willow walked off with the others, many hurling questions to which she had no answer, yet. Gina joined her and they went to the first lesson.
“Thrown in at the deep end, friend.”
“Without a costume. I’ll need all the help I can get. We’ll need to start planning the rehearsals for the Messiah before term starts, so we can structure them. The orchestra first, I think, before adding the soloists and choir. If we get Tom in, can you play scales to get the voices graded?”
“Happy to, my leader. Just appointed and already ahead of everyone else! Who are the soloists?”
“Margaret for alto, and Sally for soprano, as long as she’s up to scratch with her breathing. The others will have to be found. There may be a celebrity tenor or bass out there that the Head knows, or else we could put up a notice in the school advertising auditions. There must be guys in the senior years with good voices.”
“I like that idea. If we do it towards the end of this term, they could be in place at the beginning of next.”
They went into the first lesson. Lunch was hectic, with many coming up to their table with questions about the pop concert or the orchestra. Geoff came over with Zara to thank Willow for the chance to get on the stage at the Belgrade. He told her that the discs were with Peter, but nothing has been said yet. After that, things calmed down. On the way home, Wendy looked at Willow.
“You’re calmer now. Why the stress this morning?”
“I’ve been getting emails from the Head, telling me to see her first thing. Then, when I got there, the two leaders of the two orchestras were there. We were tasked with making sure the Cathedral concert and the Proms performance go well, and I was nominated as the leader for the Messiah. What was scary was that she had us stand beside her on the stage during her address to the school.”
“That shouldn’t bother you, with your experience.”
“But I didn’t have a keyboard to hide behind!”
The others laughed. They spoke about the modelling session on Thursday after school. When Jacob was dropped off Willow opened her door to let him give her a quick kiss. When they got to Gina’s house, they all went in. Wendy and Maisie had spoken about the big move, and Maisie had been collecting her things up. The first things to go over to the new house would be her sewing room. Both Wendy and Ashley were going to come with their cars to help transport everything, with Willow staying at the old house and Gina at the new, so that they didn’t have to lock up all the time.
Wendy and Willow went home and prepared a light meal for when Ashley arrived. Afterwards, with them all in working gear, Willow wearing jeans, they went back to the removal evening in the two cars. Because they had three cars, the removals went surprisingly well, with the sewing things taken in one big push, then most of Maisie and Gina’s clothes, and then the kitchen equipment in the third, only leaving a toaster and some stuff for the morning. It would be as Gina had foretold. On Tuesday, she would be picked up from the old house and taken home to the new.
Tuesday morning was chapel, with Willow on the organ. Reg spoke to her as she sat down.
“So, you’ll have the experience of playing the ‘Voice of Jupiter’ this summer.”
“What’s that, sir?”
“The organ in the Albert Hall. It was the biggest in the world when it was built and takes up about as much space as your average terrace house. It has four keyboards and a hundred and eleven stops. It will be a privilege just to be beside it to help you understand enough to play what you need to.”
“Thanks for giving something else to worry about, sir.”
The day went as normal and then there was the orchestra session after school. Mister Bamborough spent most of it going through what was coming up and making plans. They were told that they would be taken to the Cathedral by coach from the school and brought back on the three days of the concert, now set at Friday, Saturday and Sunday evenings. They would be taken there on Thursday afternoon to set up and rehearse with a sound check for the BBC. He had a Q and A session and brushed over the Proms event as there was not enough information on that yet.
Then, he started talking about the Messiah and the make-up of the orchestra. He had decided that the strings would be enlarged to nine firsts, nine seconds, and six violas. There would be six cellos and three double bass.
“We will have a grand piano, with Stella from the seniors playing it, and an organ with Gina playing. The leader will be, as you’ve been told, Willow. This is because of two things. One is that she is good enough as a violinist to sit in that seat, the second is that the Bishop wants her somewhere prominent to base some advertising on, seeing that she’s played organ for him as well as being part of Summer Rose. Willow, would you like to say a few words?”
She put her clarinet down and went to stand beside him.
“It is truly an honour to be leading you for this project. As the Head told you, Abbie and Moyra have a big part of making this work. I won’t try to fool you; this is a huge piece of work. It goes for two and a half hours, and we’ll take it as three parts with two intervals. We have the players, and we have some of the choir. We’ll be needing about thirty voices, so there’s a chance for anyone who doesn’t have a playing part to have a singing part. Gina and I will be conducting auditions for the extra places before summer to see how many we can add. We’ll also be looking for a good tenor and a good bass soloist. There will be a notice on the board, and I’ll see if we can add it to the website to find any celebrity who doesn’t mind working hard. And I do mean hard. It will take every session of next term to perfect the fifty separate movements. Most are short, but very demanding. When we present this, I know that I will come away with relief that we got it right, and pride that I had been part of it. I suggest that if you haven’t heard it, get yourself a copy of it and listen carefully.”
She went and sat down. Mister Bamborough told them that the school had a few CDs and that he would get Xavier to make some copies. Then they finished off the session with ‘Danse Macabre’.
When she got home, after seeing Gina’s new home now that Maisie had been sorting things out, the family had dinner and she went to her room to check her emails. There was one from the Cathedral, giving her the schedule for the Easter services. It was cc’ed to both Gina and Reverend Russell. She emailed a reply with the others cc’ed.
‘I’ll take Thursday evening after appointment in city. Gina, can you do Friday morning while I do St. Marys. I’ll do the two Sunday sessions as normal.’
She sent another to Gina.
‘Friend, can you get your mother to pick you and Jacob up at the Cathedral on Thursday. My Mum will have to stay to bring me home.’
Then she rang Jacob to tell him of the plans. He told her that he would talk to his parents but already knew that they wouldn’t mind him getting in late after experiencing the service. He said that he would let her know in the morning.
Five minutes later, an email came in from Gina telling her that she would be staying in the Cathedral as well. Willow went downstairs to tell her mother of the change in plans. Then she went to look at the others. There was one with the record label as the header.
‘Willow, thank you for the second discs. I’ll let Marcus give me them in his own time but will push him for them. The Other Side is so different, it could be a different band. It is very marketable, and we will make plans for when we’re allowed to run with it. We will be launching ‘Journey into Womanhood’ in the week after Easter. Full saturation of the radio stations and clips to the TV. We will expand to Europe after a month and see where else interest comes from. Expect some requests for personal appearances, stores and music shops, and some expectation for TV appearances, either as a band or as yourself and Gina. We notified Peter and Marcus on Monday afternoon and requested the digital material of ‘Coventry Carpentry’ to add as a bonus album for a short period before selling it separately.’
It was signed, Clive Battersby, A&R Executive.
She saw an email from Peter that had come in while she was at school, and cc’ed to all the others.
‘Great News! ‘Journey’ has been taken up for national distribution by a major label. This will mean national exposure and some need in the future for personal appearances. They have agreed that you will not be able to tour before you finish school, but I will work with them for performances during your holidays. They will cover all the manufacture and packaging, with the band getting four pounds per album clear. It will be less per item than selling through the website, but a wider exposure. Marcus will be going to see them after Easter with the discs for the other two bands. If they take them as well, they may have early copies of the albums for sale at concert. More news as it comes.’
She printed both emails and took them downstairs. Wendy read them both and looked up.
“How much of what you did on Sunday lead to this?”
“All I did was to allow them to see the band perform live. They were worried that someone was pulling the wool over their eyes and showing a bunch of kids miming to an established band. One of the guys told me that it was a done deal on Sunday night. I sat on it until that was verified.”
“What difference will it make to your share?’
“Depends on sales, Mum. We’ve sold about seventy thousand double disc album downloads so far, at ten pounds apiece. Gross is seven hundred thousand less deductions. We can still sell the new album through the website as a download but would have to have a link to the new distributors to buy the physical products. As actual sales go up, download sales go down, so it probably evens out. If the CD goes Golden, then that’s a half a million sales, so we would share two million, and that’s before the DVD sales. It really all depends on how it’s received.”
“If the last track becomes wanted as something to play at a wedding, that song alone could give you a steady income.”
Before she went to bed, her laptop had received gleeful emails from all the other band members. She wrote an email to them all, after creating a team, congratulating them for all that they had put into Summer Rose with their talent.
Wednesday morning, the trip to school was full of joyful banter, the thought of being distributed nationally being a big lift in their spirits. At lunch, the other members of the band came over and there was much hugging and back-slapping. Zara asked what was going on and was told that they had been picked up in a record deal. None of the band was very attentive in lessons that day, and before they were picked up, Miss Russell sought Willow out and asked her what was going on.
“We were notified, yesterday, that Summer Rose and our new album will be available in the shops and would have a marketing campaign to launch it in the week after Easter.”
“Well, that’s something to be happy about. Just make sure that you all get back to studying as soon as possible.”
That afternoon, before dinner, Willow emailed the manager of the music store that had offered help, telling him of what was happening and the known dates of performances, with Peter’s contacts if he wanted to extend his generosity. Before going to the club, she also looked at the information that the accountant had given her on properties.
She took those with her and looked at them while Gina played for the choir. He had included the one she had seen before and marked it as a solid investment property. The others were more expensive, but she could see why he had included them as both were vacant possession but run down enough to be cheaper than they should be. Malcolm sat down beside her.
“I see that you’ve started to learn how to delegate. It will give you time to make plans. Edie popped in before you came in. She told me that your album, that I watched being recorded, will be in the shops next week. It’s sad that they don’t do vinyl these days. The old records looked so much better on the wall when they’re gold. The CDs are just too small.”
“I bet that you’ll find space behind the bar if I let you hang mine up. You can put a notice ‘Recorded here in the Stoneleigh Studio’.”
She spoke to the choir and Tom after they had finished their session. She spoke about The Messiah and the possible involvement of some of them, if not all. Most of the village ladies ruled themselves out of the project immediately. Margaret queried her place and was told that they would have the soloists sitting in a line and would just stand where they were instead of going up next to the conductor, so she wouldn’t have to move. Sally appeared to have grown up since they had first met. She was more serious and confident. Willow gave her a hug and told her that she was happy for her.
Before she went to bed, she emailed the agent for the property, asking if it was possible to inspect it on the Tuesday after Easter, after six-thirty as she and her business partner had other commitments before that. She sent it through the Google account and signed as WJ Rose.
Thursday was back to normal at school. They had the lessons and had lunch, but with some extra visits to their table as news of a record deal spread through the school. When Wendy picked them up, they went around a couple of corners to a building in the Bilton Industrial Estate. There, they went in and met Madame Francesca, of Francesca Fashion House, who was told that Willow needed to be in the Cathedral before seven-thirty to play the organ.
That created a whirlwind of activity, with the three friends quickly made-up to highlight their youthful features and change into the first outfits. They were changed and photographed for two hours and were finally told that it was finished. Jacob was allowed to wash his face, but not before Willow gave him a kiss and told him he looked better with some rouge. They were allowed to pick one outfit each, which they all changed into, with their school clothes in bags. Before they left, they were shown some rushes from the session and asked if they minded being in the brochure. They all agreed that the pictures did them justice and signed a form with Wendy as the responsible adult.
They stopped for fast food on the way to the Cathedral, with them all getting some admiring glances. At the Cathedral, Willow went up to the organ and sorted the music, today playing without a practise. The service finished at nine, and by a quarter past, they were on their way home.
As they were going down the expressway, Jacob remarked that he had been ogled in the fast-food joint for the first time in his life. Willow laughed.
“Don’t you see the girls gazing at you while you’re on stage?”
“But that’s usual for an entertainer. This was in normal life.”
“Better get used to it, Jacob, it will only increase when you’re a Rock God.”
As they were leaving the farm, Wendy smiled.
“I suppose that you two didn’t notice some of the boys undressing you with their eyes.”
“But we’re girls, Mum. We get that all the time. It must have been these clothes, though, as that was far more intense. I want to order more when the line is for sale.”
“I’ll talk to Madame Francesca and see if she would outfit you for your performances, I think she would like a couple of teen star ambassadors.”
When they arrived at Gina’s home, Maisie called them in to see how the two girls looked.
“My, my! You two look a couple of years older in those outfits. It must be a good fashion house.”
“It’s Madame Francesca Fashions. She gave me a few cards, here’s one for you, Maisie.”
“I’ve heard of that line, it’s quite expensive. That’s why the girls look so good.”
“She said that some of her clients have told her about your creations and had shown her pictures. She was quite impressed and hoped that you worked for her. She also said that she thought that Gina looked a lot like a girl she went to school with. She asked me to ask you if you ever met a Francis Hamilton.”
“Frankie the Ham. Yes, I do remember her. We were the best students in dressmaking. Well, well, well. She has done well for herself.”
“She said that if you were that girl, to give her a call and get together.”
They left and went home.
“That was an interesting day, Willow.”
“It was, Mum. It’s also going to be a busy weekend. At least I get one of the days off. Next week is going to be interesting as well. The launch of the album. I’m a bit worried that we have no say in things. At least it’s not Peter running the show.”
That night, as Willow added the new outfit to her growing wardrobe, she contemplated on being able to buy really good clothes. She had never been a fashionista before coming to Stoneleigh, but was developing a taste for looking good, rather than just dressing to cover up one’s body.
On Friday, Willow walked over to the church, finding what hymns were to be sung, and went up to turn on the organ. She played the Bach, something she could now do with her eyes shut, until the church filled. It was an uplifting service, about a new beginning after a great deal of pain. For some reason, she listened to the Reverend and the words resonated with her. It was too near to her own pain and the rebirth with that girls school outfit.
When she walked home, she wondered about the future. She was going to be busy, that was a certainty. She would have responsibility, another certainty. What wasn’t certain was whether things would work out. A lot depended on hard work and the application, as well as having her friends around her. She was determined to look after her friends as well as she could.
At home, she sat with her parents for lunch. They decided to go for a drive and look at the outside of the three properties. The one that she first thought of looked the best, so she was looking forward to seeing the inside.
Saturday, it was the housewarming with Maisie and Gina. When they arrived, there were a lot of people there already. Old neighbours, new neighbours, friends from the club and the church, the Epstein’s. It was a fun afternoon, with a lot of laughter. Most of the guests left in the late afternoon and the Roses and the Epstein’s stayed on, grazing on the food that had been brought and talking about the future.
Rosalie said that they would pay Maisie for her old house the following week, and move their things in after that, with Racheal slowly taking over the farmhouse. Wilhelm said that he was getting contractors in to finish the barn for Jacob. Jacob joked that Willow could visit him and both sets of parents said, “No way!” in unison.
Maisie said that she had spoken to her old friend, Frankie, and that they were going to meet next week. Gina grinned.
“How did she get the name, Frankie the Ham?”
“She was an excellent actress. She was always acting as if she had come from a royal family from Italy, putting on an accent. She, like me, was from Stoneleigh.”
“She has perfected the act. We had no idea she was anything but an Italian Countess.”
Gina took Willow and Jacob to explore the house and the surroundings. It was close to the Stoneleigh Village Hall. Willow and Jacob took the time away from their parents for only a short kissing session, as Gina was with them.
“You looked good in those clothes, Jacob. Good enough to eat.”
“You girls looked amazing! It will be interesting to see how we look when we get prepared for the big shows. They do have dressers and make-up artists for TV shows. We may look like clowns on the Belgrade stage but good on TV.”
“Come on, young Mister Epstein. Girls in make-up look nothing like clowns. Queens, Princesses, femme fatales, but never clowns.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 2
The three friends went back to the house and helped tidy up and put leftovers in the fridge. Jacob said that Racheal was back from the honeymoon and was going to bring him to the morning service at St. Marys. The Roses went home to have a quiet cup of hot chocolate before bed, Willow still wondering what the week ahead will bring.
The family had a slow morning start, with the service not starting until ten-thirty. The club wasn’t opening today, so Ashley had a clear time. They walked to the church and Willow checked over the hymns. Being Easter, there were five today, all that she had played before. She went up to the organ to play the welcoming music.
As she played, she saw her parents talking to others as they came in and was in wonderment at their integration as church attendees. Then she thought about how her parents had become a part of the Village community. Her father was now an integral part of the club, her mother singing in the Village Choir. Who knows what would happen in time to come? Would they want to move to a more affluent suburb if she became moderately rich? She was happy here, with her own affiliation with the club and the church. She couldn’t see anywhere she would rather be at the moment.
She got her mind back to the job at hand as the congregation stood. The sermon was all about a new, and better, life, and there were the five hymns, all uplifting in their way, if one listened to the words and discounted the magic trick. As she played, she realised that the magic trick may be a bit too far, but that an element of magic was needed. The band produced magic beyond their years, so creating the illusion of professionalism. She had been magically transformed into a girl and that created her new persona. Kissing Jacob was a magical moment in itself.
The service finished just before noon, and the family went home to a midday dinner; roast beef and vegetables, served up just after one, with most of the preparation done before they left. They lazed around for some of the afternoon. Willow was constantly checking her emails, but there was nothing new. Then, they went back to the church for Evensong at four, Gina would be starting to play in the Cathedral at the same time.
St. Marys didn’t often have Evensong, as the numbers hadn’t made it viable before the old organist had passed away. This was something new, and the village turned out, with the Village Choir determined to make their voices heard. In its way, Willow thought that it was as good as the Cathedral singing. When the church was empty again, she went down and outside. Reverend Russell was still talking to some of the villagers, and Edie was there with a tray. It had three small easter eggs, wrapped in silver paper.
“Take them all, Willow. A growing girl needs her strength. They’re caramello inside, so don’t eat them all at once.”
“Thank you, Edie. I’ll share with my parents.”
Edie giggled and leant close to whisper.
“They already took two each, so have your own. You really deserve them. The parish is as good as it ever has been, and the Reverend is out most days, seeing those who can’t attend.”
Willow put the eggs in her bag and went to speak to Jacob and his sister. Racheal gave her a hug.
“Willow, I have to thank you for playing my favourite song at the reception. I’m sorry that my old friends bothered you. Most of the girls at school thought that I was destined to work on the land; piss-poor, and lonely. It was a shock to them that I was marrying a band member of a successful group and had other bands as friends. I doubt that I’ll see any of them again, unless I visit the dress shop, salon, or supermarket they work in.”
“That’s all right. It was a good evening and I have to thank you for the use of the room.”
“The least I could do for my Maid of Honour.”
“I still have your pre-wedding outfit at home.”
They walked to her house and Racheal was given the garment bag. Back at the church, Jacob gave her a hug and a kiss, and then Willow joined her parents to go home to a quiet evening in front of the TV. The inane comedy about an Easter Bunny in a store had no interest for her, so she kissed her parents and went up for an early night. Before she went to the bathroom, she remembered the chocolate eggs, taking them out of her bag and finding that they were very soft. Each one didn’t take long to melt in her mouth, which made toothbrushing imperative. She cleansed and put on her good nightie and got into bed. As she lay there, she giggled quietly, realising that it wasn’t good to put all your eggs in one bag.
Her phone was on charge overnight, and it pinged with an incoming message about half-past eight. The message was from Clive Battersby and asked her to ring him at her earliest convenience. She rang the number he had called from.
“Good morning, it’s Willow Rose calling.”
“Good morning, Miss Rose. Sorry to bother you in the Easter break but my boss has been on my back.”
“That’s all right, sir. I have a free day. What can I help you with?”
“We want to see you in the school environment and take some pictures. Is there any time that you would be able to fit that in?”
“If it’s urgent, we have orchestra practise on Tuesdays after school hours until about six or six-thirty. The four of us that recorded the Carpenters album are all in the orchestra. Will that be suitable?”
“That would be perfect. The launch is around the original four and we can pick up with the others if you go well. How good is the orchestra?”
“We have a concert in a month’s time at Coventry Cathedral, playing a Saint-Saens night. We should be doing final rehearsals for that. We have been asked to play on the Monday of the last week of the Proms.”
“How old are the players?”
“We’re operating as a combined orchestra at the moment, using players from both the junior and senior school, so between thirteen and sixteen.”
“How can I organise to come and see you?”
“If you ring the school tomorrow and ask to speak to the Head, she should be able to let you come in after hours. If she’s not available, Miss Russell is part of the Music School.”
“Thank you for your help, Willow. I’ve shown your other DVD to our manager that deals with metal bands. He has already heard, on the grapevine, that you’ll be opening for Blastmasters at the end of August and is keen to have The Other Side in the shops before that. Any idea how I can do that?”
“Contact Peter, our manager, and tell him that I gave you the disc. Tell him that I said that he isn’t the only one that needs to de-finger. The thing is that he doesn’t have the digital version of that concert. I have kept it back.”
“Will do. I think that it’s going to be fun working with you. See you Tuesday.”
When she went downstairs for breakfast, Wendy looked at her.
“I heard you talking on the phone earlier. Something I should know?”
“It was one of the guys who you met at the church that Sunday. He wanted to know if he could get some pictures in the school. I suppose that they want to push the fact that we’re all teeny boppers. I told him to come Tuesday while we’re at orchestra practise. Maisie doesn’t know yet, but I’ve organised with the estate agent to have a look at the industrial site on Tuesday at six-thirty. I had better email Gina and ask her to ask her mother.”
“You do realise that before you make any decision on that, you’ll have a record out and there’ll be another statement from Peter.”
“I had better ask him to transfer some of my account over, then, so I can organise a deposit.”
She went and turned on her laptop, and sent an email to Peter, asking him to deposit a hundred and fifty thousand from her account to the bank account for WR Holdings, giving him the account details. This was sent from the WR Holdings Google address. She added a postscript that he will have Clive Battersby getting in touch during the week and that she had specifically told him to say that Peter wasn’t the only one who needed to de-finger.
Then she emailed Gina to ask her mother if she didn’t mind a detour to Hood Street on the way home to look at and investment property. While she had the computer on, she found a site that gave a lot of information on The Messiah, including the lyrics and music. She printed off several sheets of paper and spent most of the day working through the music on her keyboard and singing the words. Before she went to help with the dinner, she put her notes in a file and put it in her school bag.
On Tuesday morning, Gina told her that it was all right with her mother, and Willow told the two of them that they may get a visit from the record executive during orchestra practise. It was Gina who asked how she knew this.
“I have to come clean, friends. He was one of the guys watching us play at the reception. He was one of the people that Marcus had seen, but the thinking in the record company was that the DVD was a bunch of kids miming to a proper band. They had come to speak to me, that morning, because Marcus had dropped the fact that I played organ in the church.”
“Why did you keep it to yourself?”
“Because it was all maybe and could be. I didn’t want to raise your hopes if it turned out as a bummer. The email from Peter confirmed that they were going ahead but doesn’t know how close it was to being rejected. At the reception, I gave them my contact details and the guy who spoke to me as we were clearing the stage, rang me yesterday. He wants a chance to see and photograph us in the school and I told him to talk to the Head.”
Placated, the other two got out of the car, with Wendy giving her daughter a nod as she picked her bag out of the footwell. It was Gina’s turn on the chapel organ that morning, and the day was as good as days at school could be. When they arrived at the rehearsal room, it was set with the two keyboards, so Willow thought that they may do ‘Carnival of The Animals’ today. That was confirmed by Mister Bamborough.
“We have three sessions after this to be perfect with the concert. We have looked at the timescale and have decided that Willow should only play the ‘Allegro’ movement of the ‘Seven Improvisations’, then the ‘Carnival’ before ‘Danse Macabre’. There will be an interval before the ‘Organ Symphony’. I want to nail the first two today, the second two next week, and then we will have two extended sessions to do the complete performance with our techs recording and filming, for our school use.”
As he was finishing, the door opened, and the Head came in with Clive Battersby and two other men, one with a camera. The Head asked Mister Bamborough if she could say a few words. She looked over the orchestra.
“Today, we have some visitors to this session. One is Clive Battersby, an A&R Executive with the record company that Summer Rose will be on, with product in the shops on Friday. There is also, as you can see by his camera, a photographer. They are here to take pictures of the four members of Summer Rose that are in the orchestra and were the four playing on their first album. Two will sit by the wall, while the other one circulates taking pictures. I’ve been told that he is experienced at photographing orchestras, so try to ignore him. Brent and Jacob, can you put your hands up, so he knows where you are.”
The two raised their hands.
“Gina and Willow will be on the two keyboards. Is there anything else?”
“Yes. When I saw the band play at a reception, there were wind players. We would like some preliminary shots of those.”
“All right, those who were at that reception last week, put your hands up.”
When the photographer had picked out all the ones he wanted. The Head told Mister Bamborough that the floor was his.
“Thank you, Head. We will open the concert with Willow and the ‘Allegro’ from the ‘Seven Variations by Saint-Saens.”
He nodded to Willow, and she started the movement. The photographer took several pictures of her from different angles, and then went around the rest of the orchestra, taking pictures of them all listening to the music. When Willow finished, she saw the third, so far un-named man, with a big smile. Then they were into the ‘Carnival’. At one point she looked up and saw the man writing something in a notebook and show it to Clive, who nodded and smiled. When they had finished the fourteen movements. Mister Bamborough called that they had done very well and that they would rehearse the second half of the concert next week. The four band members were lined up for pictures, with the school uniform on, with some including the Head. Clive was talking to a few of the other orchestra members, and the third man was in deep conversation with Mister Bamborough.
The three made their exit as soon as they could, after Gina had a quick hug with Brent, who was somewhat bemused by all the interest. They got outside and found Maisie waiting for them. As she drove them to the industrial area, she saw how excited her passengers were and asked why.
Gina gave her the news about the session and the photographer.
“There was another guy there, an older one, and he seemed very interested in what we were playing.”
“Perhaps he’s a classic music buff, friend.”
“There has to be a reason why he was there. Perhaps you will find out and can let us know.”
“OK. If I get an email, I’ll forward it on.”
They arrived at the building, met the agent, and he unlocked and showed them around. As it was, it was unsuitable for a studio, with a lot of smaller rooms with various pieces of equipment in. Jacob knocked on the walls and pronounced that a lot of them were only stud walls and could be removed in a couple of days. Willow told the agent, who had originally thought that Maisie was the customer, that she was prepared to put fifty thousand down as a deposit, providing that he organised an independent building inspection, with an offer of four hundred thousand to take to the vendor. If the offer wasn’t accepted, to send her the inspection account anyway and she would pay it. She gave him the WR Holdings email address and asked him if he could keep her in mind if similar sized properties came up that were well built.
On the way home, Maisie wanted to know about the building.
“It’s all brick, Maisie, with a five-year tenancy at over thirty-one thousand a year. If we buy it, we’ll get nearly half of what we paid in rent. It will have to be worth what we paid in five years, if not more. If all those stud walls come out, we could convert it to a recording studio if the tenants leave. I don’t intend to allow Peter to sit on my money and keep the bank interest. If we pay it off, then we can look for other places.”
They dropped Jacob off, and then Willow.
“See you tomorrow, friend.”
“See you tomorrow, Willow.”
She had a sandwich and turned her laptop on. There was an email from Clive on the company letterhead.
‘Thank you for the opportunity to see you in a different light today. I didn’t introduce our companion as he wanted to hear for himself. He was mightily impressed that you and Gina played the whole session without the score in front of you. He is a contractor with our company, working with the classical catalogue, and has a full-time job as a producer at Abbey Road, which was built to record orchestras before the Beatles. He wants to get the orchestra into his studio and asked your conductor to send him a list of pieces that you can play. We got a lot of good pictures and a hook to hang some advertising material on. I believe that you’re in the Cathedral next Sunday. We will come along to that as well and will be at the school next Tuesday to hear the other half of your concert.
Clive’
She forwarded the email to the team, as it did no harm to let all of them know.
Wednesday evening, she played the keyboard for the choir while Gina sang a bit. Tom was getting excited about the prospect of presenting the Messiah, and Sally was sounding better every time she sung. Before they left, Willow asked Tom if he would like to add the Cathedral Choir to the school one when they had the concert, just for the last part of the ‘Organ Symphony’. He thought it was a nice idea and would talk to the Head. He was told that it would be rehearsed after school the following Tuesday.
On Thursday, on the way to school, they heard ‘Finding a Friend’ on the radio for the first time, with the announcer telling his audience that this was from a new album by local band, Summer Rose, and would be available to buy the next day. Before they got out of the car, he had played ‘Her Day’ as well.
The day went well, and lunch was busy with orchestra members that had received the email on Tuesday spreading the word about a possible recording at Abbey Road. Several wondered if the album could have a picture of them all on the zebra crossing, as a panorama wrapped around the CD. The Head intercepted the three friends as they waited for Wendy.
“I have to hand it to you three. If you didn’t so much good, you’d be dangerous. That Marcus thought he was offering us the world when he said he would get the orchestra on a cut-price classic label. Now, I’m told you may all be taken to Abbey Road and issued on one of the best labels around. I had my radio on quietly at times today, and it seemed as they were playing your new album on rotation. Congratulations on a beautiful body of work. They did mention that every song is an original. Well done!”
Willow blushed, and Gina spoke.
“They are all Willow’s originals, ma’am. She sent the rest of us the vocal and a basic tune and we all added our own parts. When we played it for the first time, we all had the same ideas and what you have been hearing was settled inside a day. I’m now waiting for the next album to work on.”
Willow laughed.
“I’ve been far too busy to even think about new lyrics. I reckon summer may be a good time. I wouldn’t want to take time out of my studies, now, would I?”
The Head laughed with them as Wendy pulled up. When the three were in the car she turned to them.
“What was the joke with the Head? She seemed very happy.”
“Just Willow being playful. The Head told us that she had heard a lot of our album on her radio today.”
“So, have I. We have one on at work, louder in the warehouse, and I’m almost over Summer Rose already!!”
On the way home, Willow’s phone pinged. She looked at the message and passed her phone to the back seat passengers. Gina squealed.
“What’s that message?”
“It’s from Clive, Mum. He said ‘Album on Nat, a/play. Preorders over fifty K. Clive.’”
“Interpretation, please?”
“A lot of people have been hearing the songs, and fifty thousand have placed orders for their copy when it’s released tomorrow.”
“That’s good, right?”
“Better than we expected, Mum. It’s brilliant!”
“When will you start seeing some return?”
“It depends on the payment schedule with the label. It may be weekly, or at the end of each month. Perhaps it’s some chosen day of the month, say, the twenty-seventh, which may have some in our next statement.”
Gina handed her phone back.
“Willow. Can I join in with your property portfolio?”
“If you want. See your mother’s accountant and get him to create a company with you and her as directors. I did that with WR Holdings. That will give you a bank account and credit card in the company name that you can use. It also will include your mother in any profits if we sell. Then, any one of you can come to the other two with a project or likely property. We can enter joint agreements to cover each case.”
“It would be great if you join us, Gina. We can make sure our earnings don’t get frittered away. With the three of us examining each case, we can pick it apart and not get hoodwinked. Dad’s seeing the farm accountant next week about one for me, with him as co-director. He has already spoken to the guy and has created one in Racheal’s and Rick’s names, which has stopped him buying a Ferrari.”
They all laughed, and it was a happy carload that arrived at the farm. Rosalie came out and invited them in, having been listening to her radio.
“When you told me that Jacob would be on the TV this year, Willow, I thought that you were joking. Now they’re playing your songs, and he will be on TV in a few weeks, if only playing the triangle.”
“I expect that there will be segments of our DVD on some of the news channels if our album is a hit. We’re a novelty by all being thirteen. We had pictures taken of us in school uniform the other day, I’m almost afraid at what we will look like. Anyway, if the school pick the guitar concerto by Rodrigo, he may fill the screen at the Proms concert.”
They had a cup of tea and carried on, and when they stopped at Gina’s, Maisie came out to beckon them in. Over another cup of tea, she told them her news.
“I went into the city today and saw Frankie. We had lunch together and had a long talk. The upshot is that I will work for her as a consultant on bridalwear that I’m known for. I’ll be designing and doing the fittings, but her workshop will make the garments. I’ll be paid a retainer and a slice of the profit. It will be enough for us to live quietly, even without what Gina earns.”
Gina went to her mother and gave her a long hug.
“That’s great news, Mum. You can use that new sewing machine to create stage outfits for me and Willow, which we can pay you for. We were also talking about creating a group to buy commercial property. Can we see our accountant and set up a company with us as co-directors. Jacob is setting one up with his father, and Willow already has one with her parents.”
“That sounds good, my darling. I already have one for my dressmaking.”
When Wendy and Willow arrived home, Willow was in the toilet while Wendy was putting the car away.
“No more tea, Mum.”
“I agree, daughter. Now, stand aside while I get to the ensuite.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 3
On Friday morning, there were quite a few of the students wanting to congratulate them on the album. Miss Russell steered them into her office before the first lesson.
“There have been calls to the school to allow reporters to come and talk to you. We expect that they’ll try and ambush you when you leave. Is Wendy picking you up?”
“She is, Miss Russell.”
“Give her a call today and tell her not to come in the main gate. There is an alleyway between the houses from the car park to Terry Road. It’s for the children who come by bus and the stop is there. You three should take that way out and look as if you’re waiting for the bus.”
“Got it, Miss Russell. We’re sorry to cause so many problems.”
“It’s putting the school firmly in the minds of the public, which will help all the Blue Coat Schools in the country, so it’s not a problem we can’t handle. Now, get along to class.”
The half-day of lessons went by in slow-motion, as usual. Lunch was almost a party. Xavier came over to talk.
“My Dad just called me. He was in the line at the record store after finishing his shift and got the CD and DVD. He says that me and the others are clearly listed as the recording engineer and the camera operators, and that the pictures in the lift-out are taken from the video. Thank you for making that happen. We shared out the money after Rick paid us, so each of us got fifteen hundred from that project. That has helped all our families. Are there any other projects coming up?”
“Nothing as big as that one, Xavier. All the bands are playing at the Belgrade at the end of next week. If I bring the cameras in next week, could the others film us backstage? There will be a full set of cameras recording the show, but something for our own collection would be nice. If you want to take pictures yourself, get a camera and I’ll pay.”
“I’m not a movie guy, but I have a good camera that I take still shots with. If you get us backstage passes it would be awesome.”
“We will be at the theatre on Thursday evening for a rehearsal and soundcheck, and there won’t be any TV there, I think. You might get some bloopers.”
They laughed and he went off to tell Frank and Dave. Willow sent Peter a text asking for ten passes to be couriered to her, expecting that some of the families may want to be there. She rang her mother to tell her of the change of pick-up point.
Friday afternoon was Music Study, and the subject was Remix. They found that it was aimed at the more technical side. In the classroom was six mixing boards, each with a digital player and a recording unit. Mister Jamieson split them into groups of three.
“Each team has a mixing unit. I expect that none of you will have any trouble pressing the ‘play’ button on the digital storage, or the ’record’ button on the one marked ‘record unit’. The digital unit all have the same recording, an adagio that lasts for six minutes. One at a time, I want you to listen to the recording and mix the sound to your taste, note all the settings to the nearest marker on a notepad and then zero the slides to allow the next to step in. You only have the one set of headphones, so the others can talk among themselves. When all three have noted their settings, we’ll put all eighteen up on the board and discuss the results, then recording the most popular setting to listen to before we go home.”
The next hour was some silence, some chat, and some who only wanted to talk about the new album, including Mister Jamieson, who told the friends that the school had been promised a box of a hundred CDs and a hundred DVDs to sell through the website or give out among the teachers.
“I don’t think that there’ll be many left for the website. The whole faculty is buzzing with having a group of second years in the charts. The website stuff was below the radar, but this is well in your face.”
“When you see the covers, sir, you’ll see Xavier, Frank, and Dave as the tech team, and a lot is down to their expertise at recording us. The record company will only be adding credits and titles to the DVD, but I doubt that they would need to remix the audio much.”
“I have them listening to film music next week. I’ll be sure to praise them in the class.”
When all the mix numbers were on the board, fifteen were identical, and three were only marginally different. Mister Jamieson put a CD into a player on his desk and played the adagio.
“This, boys and girls, is the actual commercial version of the piece. It has the same mix settings that the majority have noted. Well done, all of you. From my reading of the three of you who had slight changes, I would guess that all three come from large families or live under a flightpath, as some of your higher tones have been lost. That’s all, see you next time.”
They all had smiles as they left the classroom. The three friends gathered up their bags and left the school from the theatre entrance, joining a throng of others heading for the bus stop. Being identically dressed was a bonus. As they reached the alley, Willow looked to the main entrance to see a throng of people and a police car with the lights flashing. They came out on Terry Road and stood to one side as the bus came in. They weren’t alone, as others were coming out of the alley for the next bus. When Wendy pulled up, they got in and Jacob laughed.
“Quick driver, the cops are back there!”
As she drove along Terry Street, Wendy grinned.
“Pull the other one.”
“True Mum, there’s a police car with the lights flashing at the main entrance and a crowd outside. Miss Russell got it right, and I expect that the Head is addressing the crowd to tell them that the school looks after their students and that there’s no way there would be undisciplined access to reporters.”
“Why all the kerfuffle?”
“I expect that our being second year is a major thrust of the advertising. It wasn’t a problem with the website stuff, but it’s very relevant with national exposure. I reckon that Peter will be inundated with requests for interviews. He can do his manager thing and sort out the ones most beneficial for the band. I wonder if tomorrow’s dinner dance will be booked out. Whatever happens, I think that we’ll enjoy it.”
When they arrived home, there was a package on the front doorstep addressed to Willow. It contained ten copies of the CD’s and ten of the DVD. Wendy went to find a padded envelope to put a set in and send to her parents.
“I’ll post this on Monday. Sign them for Mum, she’ll be happy to see them, but I expect that she already has a set.”
They went to change for the evening, Willow putting on a denim skirt and a top, then turning her computer on. There were emails from the other band members and friends and one from Peter.
‘Have acted on your advice and news. Please give digital version of Other Side to record company. It will give them time to formulate a different focus for advertising. Have been told that launch will be last week of June. I am organising security for you until the interest drops. A security team will pick you three up Monday for school and bring you home. Another will be picking up the others in the city. Cost to come out of the earnings but only expected to be ten thousand a month. Will get payments for sales on twenty-seventh, so first weekend will be in next statement. Your money has been transferred and regular payments made as requested. Your account is just under ninety thousand as of today. Information about security sent to rest of band. Will arrange the security to take you to theatre next week. Passes with you tomorrow. Expect requests for radio and TV spots, will sort the best.’
Willow got the USB stick of the album out of the hiding place and put it in an envelope addressed to Clive. She put it in her bag for Sunday when he said he would be at the Cathedral. She printed off the email and took it down to show her mother.
“That’s nice. I’ll be able to have the radio on my favourite station on the way to work and back.”
“But you’ll miss out on all our childish banter, Mum. Just think of all that mother and daughter time we’ll lose!”
“Don’t worry, darling. I won’t love you any less.”
Ashley came home and changed out of his work suit, then was shown the email.
“Ten thousand a month for security! That’s a bit steep.”
“It will be two vehicles and four men on school days, and probably escorts to interviews and back. Clive said that there was over fifty thousand advance orders for the album on Thursday, so that’s two hundred thousand that the band has earned already.”
“I suppose you’re right. It’s just that the numbers are so huge, and I’m just a simple design engineer.”
“Not so simple, Dad. Woolly, sometimes, but never simple.”
They had dinner and relaxed. For Willow, it had been an interesting week. She had been one of the ones who hadn’t got the mix setting right, and wondered if it was from four years of playing in an orchestra, inside the sound.
On Saturday morning, the courier arrived with the passes, and in the afternoon, Wendy took her to the Cathedral. It was almost like a normal day. She worked through the service and Evensong music, spoke to Tom, who said that he would be at the school with his choir on Tuesday, and came home to get ready for the dinner dance that night.
The rest of the dance band were almost out of their skins as they arrived, even the wind players who had not been on the album. Now, playing with Summer Rose was a thing to be cherished and remembered. As her parents had already bought tickets for the Belgrade, and the rest of the band had received extra passes with theirs, Willow gave the four of the passes for the four nights to the wind players.
“Look, we will need to play the hits. You guys have backed us here, so you may as well back us at the show. You’ve all signed with Peter, so it’s only right that you get paid. I know that you all get cash in hand here, but a share of our payment will go a long way, as well as appearing in the TV show that will be transmitted in Band Spot. Let’s surprise the audience with the full eleven of us.”
They all had dinner in the front section as the other diners came in. They were as far from the passage to the back room as they could be, so had little problem with people wanting to talk. Willow’s phone pinged as she took it out of her bag to turn off. It was a text from Clive.
‘Natsales 2days two-fifty K. See you tomorrow’
She passed the phone around the table to squeals of delight. Malcolm called from the bar if anything was wrong. Willow stood and took the phone over.
“Quarter of a million sales in the first two days, Malcolm. You have a week to make space for that gold disc.”
They talked about what they would play, and Gina suggested that they give the others a break, now and then, with some of the folk music that the three sometimes played for the sing-alongs.
When they went through to the back room, there was applause as they went up on stage and plugged in. Willow could see a lot of new faces in the crowd and spoke into her microphone.
“Welcome to the Stoneleigh Community Club tonight. We are the Blue Coat School Dance Band, and any similarity with Summer Rose is in your imagination. We welcome the new faces in the audience and hope that the evening is up to expectations. We will start out with easy-listening band standards while you eat, and then move on to dance music.”
They started in the usual fashion as the dinners were being served and drinks quaffed. For the band, this was now almost automatic and flawless from repetition. As the empty plates were being taken away, they moved into the dance music, the folk songs, and gentle ballads. At eight, Willow announced a fifteen-minute comfort break.
“When we return, we’ll play some songs that you might have heard on the radio this week.”
There were some cheers as they left the stage. While they were off-stage, Willow asked everyone if they could wait a while after the show, as they needed to sort out the list for the Belgrade performance.
“If you could tell those taking you home to be a little patient, we’ll try to be quick. Everyone has a say in what we play.”
Back on stage, they opened with ‘Close to You’, then worked through a mixture from the first and second album, a little Moody Blues, ‘Dust in the Wind,’ and ending the night with ‘Finding a Friend’, ‘Only Just Begun’, and ‘Her Day’. They hadn’t left the stage when Herb announced that this should be the set on the weekend, which everyone agreed was good. Jacob asked that, if they needed an encore, they should do ‘Sparks of the Tempest’ from the Other Side and leave the introduction to him. The others grinned and nodded. It would be a hell of a way to end the gentleness of the concert. Willow told the extra four that she would bring copies of the DVD into school on Monday.
They stored all the equipment in double quick time and left the club, with all the band having a hug-fest. Jacob and Willow, and Brent with Gina having more than a hug. Willow did note that Herb and Roy spent extra time with Vivienne and Nancy, the two girl wind players. Jacob’s father had come to take him home, and then Willow walked home, leaving the table cleaning and tidy up to her parents. She put the four DVDs aside for school and then stripped to have a shower.
She was really happy with the way the evening had gone. They had mixed it up a bit but covered the main ground, and had now played everything so many times, it had almost become second nature. As she showered, she wondered if there would be anything that she ended up refusing to play one more time.
She got into bed with her laptop on her lap and checked the emails. Most didn’t need a reply, but one stood out. It was a group broadcast from Marcus, telling them that he would not continue being their promoter as they went behind his back, so the Belgrade would be the last thing he would be involved with. He ended with a vicious swipe, telling them that he had cancelled the week at the Winter Gardens.
Willow wrote a reply, thanking him for his work and acknowledging the cancelled arrangement. She sent the reply with Peter, Clive, and the team cc’ed into the message. She turned the laptop off and put it on the floor beside the bed. Laying back, she realised that she wasn’t unhappy about losing that week in Blackpool. It was the sort of show that a fading band will happily fill. The Other Side album would have been launched by then, and a genteel ‘lavender and lace’ venue was no place for a rock band. It would also give them time to work on new material to follow the Kansas cover. They would need it when they toured with Blastmasters.
Sunday was her turn in the Cathedral. After this one, there was just another four weeks to go. She had come to enjoy playing their organ and was slowly trying new things with the stops when she practised. It must be working, as nobody had asked her what she was playing at. Ashley took her in, and she saw Tom, giving him the last two passes to the shows. After the service, father and daughter went into the city, browsing the stores, having lunch and looking at something both had been interested in back in Bristol, but had never been able to indulge in. Radio controlled cars.
They bought one each. Both needed to be built from parts and used electric motors with a bank of batteries to drive them. They both knew that it would take some months before they could get the cars going, but it was a project for both of them, outside of work or school. On the way back to the Cathedral, Willow remarked that Ashley now had a reason to get the shed up, to give them a proper workshop.
“Not building a studio, then?”
“Not now, Dad. The record company has access to good studios in London. Marcus has spat the dummy and I think we’ll be looked after better with Clive and his friends. He’s setting up with a friend of his to take the school orchestra to Abbey Road to record a classic album. That’s something so far over Marcus’ head it’s not funny. Anyway, there’s an album out there that was recorded in the Community Club. I’ve promised Malcolm the loan of our first Gold Record for the bar.”
“How long will that take to happen?”
“Halfway there as of last night.”
Ashley had to pull over to get his breath back.
“Just how many gets gold?”
“Half a million.”
“So, you’ve sold a quarter of a million in two days!”
“Yes. That’s a million pounds that will be paid to Peter for us tomorrow. It should be an interesting statement when we get it.”
They got to the Cathedral and Ashley found himself a seat as Willow went up to the organ. Clive sat on one side and the photographer sat the other, taking zoom pictures of Willow with the organ.
“Interesting daughter you have there, Ashley.”
“Oh! Hello Clive. She has certainly made this an interesting year for us since I got the job at Aston Martin. She just told me that you’ve sold a quarter of a million albums.”
“And counting, with a lot of shops open for Sunday trading. At this rate, it could be gold by the end of the month. I can tell you that my boss is very happy.”
“I bet. We would be hard pressed to make that many cars a year, let alone sell them.”
“All a matter of being with the right product at the right time. She’s a remarkable musician. I had a producer with me from the Abbey Road studio when we visited the school as they were practising. He was gobsmacked when she and Gina played the entire ‘Carnival of the Animals’ on piano without having the score in front of them.”
“You need to have a word with the Bishop. She outsmarted him at his own game with hymns. She can play pretty well every hymn she’s played without the music and only needing the hymn number. He used to play a trick by calling out a number that wasn’t on the board. He tried that at St. Marys. He called four hymn numbers that are his favourites, and she was only a second or two before she was playing the intro.”
“And an ‘A’ student, along with most of the band. When I spoke to the Head, she said that Willow brought the best out of those around her.”
They stopped speaking as Willow started to play. Clive sat, in wonderment, at how she made that huge organ sing, and how that made all around him sing, as the voices swelled in the Cathedral. For the whole hour, he was transported to a happy place, and when the choir came in, felt his heart beating in his chest.
When the last note faded among the columns, Ashley stood and led the two over to meet Tom and Sally.
“Tom, meet Clive, the executive with Willow’s record company. This is his photographer. Clive, Tom is the choirmaster here and is helping Willow and Gina train the village choir in the club. It’s coming along nicely, so my wife tells me.”
“It is, Ashley. Having three ex-professional singers is a real help. Margaret is brilliant, despite her problems, and her alto props up the rest.”
“I caught the end of an interview a couple of weeks ago. Was that done in the club?”
“It was, right after the interview with Willow, Gina and Jacob. You should contact the local station if you want a copy.”
Willow joined them.
“Hello Clive.”
“Hello, Willow. I got your email. That Marcus turned out to be a fine piece of work. Cancelling a week-long gig wasn’t nice.”
“But better for us, I think. A week at the Winter Gardens, Blackpool is something we can play when we’re getting about on walkers and needing diapers.”
“Ever the pragmatist, but you’re right. What do you plan to spend that time doing?”
“Writing and recording original material for The Other Side. If we’re going to open for Blastmasters, we’ll need more than a cover of a concept album, even if it was recorded thirty-five years before I was born.”
“Any ideas on that score?”
“One that I only have the title of. It came to me last night and will be called ‘Dummy Spitter’.”
They laughed, and the men shook hands and Willow gave Clive the USB. Tom said he would see them on Wednesday and Willow followed her father to the car. When they got home, he took their boxed projects out of the back and put them up on the top of the new storage cabinets. The Aston Martin DB3 on his, and the pink Lady Penelope Rolls Royce on Willow’s.
Monday morning was different, to say the least. A people mover with dark windows arrived before her parents left for work. Two guys got out, one watching the street as the other rang the bell. Willow was ready to go, the two cameras and empty memory cards in a bag and got in as her parents went to their own cars. She asked the two men their names and was told that they were Max and Sebastian, and that they would be her regular drivers, as it was easy to see any problems if you’ve travelled the same way a lot of times.
They picked up Gina and then Jacob. Arriving at the school and driving past a line of cameramen at the front gate, pulling up next to the theatre and out of the line of sight of the cameras. They were told that they would be picked up when school was out, and they told the guys that Tuesday would be about half-past six. The other people mover came in and the band entered the school as a group.
Miss Russell intercepted them and took them all to see the Head.
“I just wanted to talk to you about Friday. You were all very good in getting away. The reporters got a little heated, but the police made sure that nothing happened. I told them that they were banned from the school grounds unless invited. I hope that they give up and allow you to live a normal life. I think you’ll find that the rest of the school is better behaved, so have a good week and I hope that the only time I see you will be when you’re on-stage Friday night.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 4
After seeing the Head, they went to their first lessons. The day was as normal as it could be, with a lot of the students looking at them and giving them shy waves. Lunch was, once again, like a party, with Zara and the Gees coming to have a chat. They were looking forward to seeing the theatre on Thursday evening and finally playing to paying customers.
In the afternoon, the two people movers were waiting for them. Sebastian behind the wheel as they were helped in. It was a strange sight to the students who went that way to the bus stop. Tuesday was more of the same, with Willow playing in the chapel. They were joined by the three record company men when they went to the rehearsal room. The organ was in the middle of the orchestra, and Willow walked by it with her clarinet. Gina joined Jacob next to the percussion, triangles in hand, with Gina briefly touching Brent’s hand.
The choir came in and sat, as the Cathedral choir joined them. The record guys looked at this, wondering what they would hear.
When the orchestra were settled and two of the visitors seated, Mister Bamborough tapped his baton for silence.
“Today, we will play the second part of the performance. We will start with ‘Danse Macabre’ and then I want you to sit for a few minutes while Willow settles at the organ. In the Cathedral, she will have to leave her place and go up a flight of stairs to the Cathedral organ. We will, at those performances, play the three items before an intermission before finishing with the ‘Organ Symphony’.
He tapped the baton again and raised it. Then they were playing. The quality of the violins made the producer gulp. He had heard this music played dozens of times, but not with such playful feeling. When the piece ended, they sat while Willow walked to the organ and sat down, checking the settings. She nodded at the conductor and the first strains of the concerto filled the room. The producer could hardly contain himself as they played the concerto. Willow’s organ work, once again without a score in front of her, was magnificent, and she made the small organ sound like a pipe organ when she started the final movement. When the choirs came in with the words, he had tears in his eyes. He had to have the orchestra in his studio. As the movement thundered to the end, he just had to stand and applaud, with the conductor getting the orchestra to stand and bow, with a lot of giggling.
Mister Bamborough told them that they had done very well, and to make sure that any pick-up knew that next week would be a longer session. Then he spoke to the producer and Clive as the students left. Brent’s ride had already gone with the other three, so they were given a ride around Coventry to drop Brent off, allowing him and Gina some cuddle time.
On the way, Jacob was serious.
“Do you really think that we’ll get to record in London?”
“You were too far back to see, but that producer was almost crying by the time we finished, and it wasn’t from pain. We’ll be in Abbey Road during the holidays, if not before. He’s already asked for a list of items, so you may get to play the guitar in the same studio as the Beatles.”
On Wednesday, there were no reporters when the van drove in, so they were let off at the main entrance. The whole day seemed as if nothing had happened. The security men didn’t listen to the radio while they were in the van, so the friends had been without any idea of what the album was doing. That changed in the evening when Willow walked into the club, where Bruce, a photographer and another man were sitting in the front part. Bruce took her hand.
“I’m sorry about this, Willow, but my editor is an old friend of the editor of a national paper. He threatened me with the sack if I didn’t bring this other gentleman with me, to talk to you in your secret hide-away. Henry, meet Willow Rose. Willow, this is Henry Talbot. You’ve met my photographer before. Henry has agreed to keep this place secret. I don’t know why, but it appears that the two hundred and fifty people who come to your dances aren’t aware of what they could get by leading the hordes here.”
“Henry. I’ll answer your questions as long as you keep it friendly. Will you want to speak to Gina Summer as well?”
“That will be good. Is she here?”
“She should be in the back with the choir by now. I’ll let her know I’m here, and when you’ve finished with me, I go and replace her at the organ.”
She went through to the back room where the choir was about to begin the practise.
“Gina, I’ve got a reporter from a national paper in the front. When he’s run out of questions for me, I’ll come back here, and you can go and talk to him.”
“OK, friend, I’ll man the ivories for a while.”
Willow went back, got a drink from Malcolm, and sat down. Henry wanted to start with her younger days, but Willow told him that she had been a normal child, up until she had come to Stoneleigh. He wanted to know the steps that had brought her to be sitting here, so she laid out each turning point from last summer and G-Force on. Bruce was able to confirm a lot of the detail, having been to most of the events. They talked about pop music, honky-tonk piano, playing the organ in churches, and being in an orchestra.
He wanted to know about her plans; if she would be touring, if she was considering going solo. All she could tell him that she would take each day as it came and decide on a course of action when needed. He thanked her for being frank and promised that the article would be factual. She went through to the back and took over from Gina when there was a break.
“How is he?”
“All right. Says the right things but keep it factual. I started with the Purple concert so that might be a good starting place for you as well.”
When the choir finished the session, Willow went back to the front room. Henry was just finishing with Gina when Margaret came through. She stopped the wheelchair and laughed.
“Well, the people you run into when there’s no gun handy. Henry Talbot, are you still writing for that London rag?”
“Margaret. It’s good to see you. Someone had told me that you’d been ill, but I didn’t expect a wheelchair.”
“Nor did I, but my legs decided they weren’t part of my nervous system anymore. Girls, Henry used to haunt the theatres for stories when I was singing. Here’s Sandra. Sandy, guess what the village cat dragged in.”
Sandra came over to Henry, who had stood, and gave him a hug.
“Henry, the only reporter that never asked me when I was born, but often pinched dates from other reporters who I’d told lies to. Are you here to write the definitive story of Summer Rose, or will you serve up the fabricated crap that your sleazebag editor wants.”
Henry laughed.
“I was sent here to get the gossip on a bunch of teenagers who struck lucky but found two serious musicians instead. I’ll get an appointment with the school, as it’s obviously a breeding ground for musical talent. Then I plan to write something uplifting and erudite.”
“Erudite, coming from you, that’s priceless. I’ll allow you that you never told lies about us when we were still singing. I hope you keep it that way. We might send you a couple of tickets when we’re singing The Messiah in the Cathedral.”
“You, back on stage?”
“Yes, near Christmas. Willow will be concert master and first violin. Didn’t she tell you?”
“He didn’t ask about that. Sandra. It’s still only in the planning stage. Look, Henry, why don’t you have a bonus talk to these fine ladies. I need to get home and get my beauty sleep. I’ll see you ladies next week, see you, Bruce.”
Gina walked outside with her.
“What’s the rush, friend?”
“My phone pinged earlier. I had a look at the text in the toilet. It was from Peter, telling me that our latest statement has been emailed.”
“Right. I’ll be off home as well. If your phone rings and you hear shrieking, it’ll be me.”
Willow walked home and turned on her laptop. What she saw made here gasp and sit down. She printed off the statement and took it down to her parents, who were watching some mindless game show which was compered by a comedian, with all the contestants being other comedians without any meaningful work to go to.
“Got the latest statement. It’s difficult to get my head around. The website seems to be running as usual, but the new entry is a little more than we expected.”
Her mother took the paper and read the entries out.
“Coventry Carpentry downloads. Forty-eight thousand, giving income of four hundred and eighty thousand pounds. That’s a bit up from last time. Sales of CDs, fifteen thousand, giving income of a hundred and fifty thousand. DVD sales twenty thousand giving income of five hundred thousand. That’s well up on the last month. There’s a small amount for playing at the club and at the Cathedral. Costs were a hundred and eight thousand for post and packaging. That will be all those extra DVDs.”
“That’s right, Mum.”
“OK. So, total income one million, one hundred and thirty thousand. Expenditure was a hundred and eight thousand, plus six thousand admin, plus fifteen thousand to the school, which leaves a million. The bottom line is your share less the five percent. That gives you just under a hundred and thirty-eight thousand. That’s a bit down from last month. The post office has dragged it down. What about the Hikers?”
“Second page, Mum.”
“Right. Income four thousand three hundred less the five percent. That’s lower but steady. What’s this other amount. Payment by the record company for sales of ‘Journey’ from Thursday to Saturday evening. Two hundred and forty-four thousand albums at four pounds an album. That comes to nine hundred and seventy-six thousand, less five percent. Then there’s the new DVD sales; two hundred and one thousand at five pounds each. That’s over another million. Your share of the CD is hundred and thirty-two thousand and a bit. The share of the DVD is another hundred and thirty-five thousand and a bit. There’s another line where you’ve had three thousand into your personal account and you withdrew a hundred and fifty thousand. That makes your current account at just over four hundred and ninety thousand. What’s not to understand.”
As she said that, Wendy couldn’t keep a straight face any longer. She let out a whoop and stood to hug Willow with all her might. Both of them crying tears of joy. Ashley finally closed his mouth, then took the papers from his wife and read the numbers for himself. Just then, Willow’s phone rang. She answered and put it on speaker, hearing shrieking from the other end.
“I think that might be Gina.”
She waited until the sound died off.
“It’s crazy, isn’t it, friend.”
“That’s not even close, Willow. That pays off the house with some left over for investment with you and Jacob. I’ll see you when the armed guard brings you past my place in the morning. The others are going to be beside themselves.”
“And you aren’t, friend?”
“If you think I’ve turned into a red-eyed monster tomorrow, it’s because I couldn’t sleep. I’ll see you tomorrow, true friend.”
Gina ended the call at that. Ashley held the paper out for Willow to take.
“Have you heard back from the agent about that property?”
“Not yet, Dad. I did offer less than the asking and requested a building survey. I expect that the vendor is making up their mind. With Jacob and Gina joining in, we can buy that one outright. It doesn’t matter if we use it or not, it will still be solid collateral when we go to the bank. How are we getting on with my gender change?”
“He told me that it may take weeks to get through the official channels. Everything was good, but red tape has slowed it down.”
“That’s all right. I had a reporter in the club tonight to talk to Gina and me. It turns out that he’s an old friend of Margaret and Sandra from their singing days. I hope that it will produce a reasoned article. I managed to deflect his questions about my days before coming here, and Bruce was there to back me up.”
“Try and get some sleep, sweetie. You’ll be able to make decisions in the light of day.”
She went upstairs and prepared for bed. Tomorrow evening, they would be in the theatre for a sound check. She thought of Jacob’s request for the encore and realised that it would be a good way to end the show with a bang and promote the Other Side very early. She wondered if the theatre had thunderclap cannons or flame guns. She worried, for a few minutes, what he was going to say and fell asleep after making the decision to let him say what he wanted. After all, he was the man in their partnership.
On the way into the city on Thursday morning, Jacob suggested that they should create a separate company, as a syndicate with each of their companies as partners. He said that his accountant had suggested it, and it would only need the three company certificates to set up. That one could have a bank account to buy and receive rents and would streamline the whole process.
“You heard me make the offer last week, and also say I’ll pay for the inspection. If we can set it up quickly, we can transfer the money into that account to pay for the building outright, adding to the account on a regular basis for other purchases.”
“I agree with you on that, Willow. We can put in the same amount, each month, to keep it equalised, and hold back what we’re using for ourselves. If we develop, a company like that would be the overseeing body. What will we call it?”
“That’s the question, Gina. It will have to be something that says us, but not using our names.”
Jacob grinned,
“Already thought of. I’m suggesting ‘Summer Love Properties’. It doesn’t draw you to the Summer part, as Summer Love is a normal phrase, but it is relatable to us, as a group. If one of the others wants to come in, they would need to deposit an equal amount of what each of us has in the account, then get added to the partnership to being able to get the benefits from then on.”
Willow gave him a hug.
“Good thinking, love. When we get our official documents, we can set it up. Are you good with that, Gina?”
“With you all the way, friend. Now that’s sorted, here we are at school.”
The Thursday lessons were, again, as normal as they could be. The only odd thing, for Willow, was that the netballers were told that they were being entered in the inter-school competition, to be held in Birmingham during the week of the half-term holidays. As they were so close, they would be taken in, by coach, on the first three days, and again on the Friday, should they get to the play-offs. Between now, and then, they should do their best to make the team.
After school, they were taken home to have something to eat, and get ready to be picked up at seven for the trip to the Belgrade. Willow made herself a sandwich with some salad, and then went to shower and get dressed in something comfortable. When Wendy got home, she said that Madame Francesca had called her that day.
“She said that she’ll be at the show on Friday night. If you wear the outfits from the photo shoot, she will courier two sets of outfits to the three of you for Saturday and Sunday.”
“That will solve a problem, Mum. I’ll tell Gina and Jacob tonight.”
Her parents were eating their dinner when the people mover arrived. She gave them each a hug and a kiss on the cheek, and then was off. On the way, she told the others about the offer of free outfits, so they decided that they would wear what they had been given.
At the theatre, they went in the back way to join the rest of Summer Rose and the other two bands. The three techs were there with the cameras. They met the TV personality who would be the compere. He told them that the aim of the show was to create a ‘Coventry Sound’ catchphrase. The stage was already kitted out with four, two-hundred-watt Marshalls, a drum kit and two Nord Electro 6D keyboards. Gina and Willow, already having Nord’s, helped the other two keyboard players with the settings and short-cuts.
Then, it was G-Force to open the show. They played their set as the sound engineers adjusted the mix, and the three techs took pictures and film. The TV crew were also finding the right sightlines without getting in the way of the audience. Willow sought out the stage manager and asked if he had flame or thunderclap units. He said that he did but had been told that the show was a gentler affair.
“We want to end the show with a bang. We’ll be playing something a bit louder than the rest, and would like it to have a flash, or a bang, as the lights go out when we end it. Then the lights come back, and we’re all lined up across the stage.”
“Sounds like a real rock concert. I’ll get some set up before you play, four all right?”
“Should be enough. We don’t want to frighten the kiddies, do we. Watch me, I’ll nod to tell you to set them off. After tonight, you’ll know when. Make it five seconds for the lights to come back tonight. If we’re not in place, we can vary it tomorrow.”
She got the other ten together and told them the plan, stressing that they were going for the final line placement inside five seconds, but not to fall over anything by rushing.
Peter was there and came over to them.
“What are you lot planning now? Every time I see you, you seem to grow. How many more do you plan to add?”
“We’re at the maximum, for the moment, Peter. We’re just discussing the final moment of our set. We’re setting up to end with a bang.”
“As long as the set doesn’t sound like a school concert. I would have liked to see the sets before this, but things got out of hand. You do realise that your shares will be reduced from this month with the extra four getting one share between them, so you had better make sure you use the extra players whenever you can. The income from this show will be part of that. Without Marcus to set up future shows, I hope that you have someone else to work with.”
“We’ll look into it, Peter. We have something for most weekends, and I think that the record company would like to have a say in what we do. I have a feeling that they may want us to re-record the Other Side album with all of us. It would fill out the sound.”
“You do what you want, Willow. You usually do and haven’t had a misstep yet. Even at the low commission, you’re still making me richer, so I’m happy to join the ride.”
She saw Clive and a couple of others, so went over to him.
“Hello Clive, come to see the others?”
“Yes, and to introduce my boss to the Coventry Sound. Are you ready to knock our socks off? This group are very good as well.”
“I think we’ll give you enough to make some plans. We’ll be finishing with a track from the Other Side, going out with a bang. Please be free to tell us, tonight, if it works. We were just talking to Peter, and he was wondering who we’ll get to organise performances now that Marcus spat the dummy.”
“We can allocate one of our girls to work with you while you’re the favourite of the day. We can co-ordinate a show with local sales campaigns and work with the big stores. You won’t be able to do anything while at school, though, would you?”
“We could do lightning visits, say a Friday night show, followed by Saturday morning in the store. That will allow us to play our normal shows in the evening. Actually, the club manager is considering hiring this band, which will give us some free Saturdays.”
“Sounds good. I’ll get her to contact you. Her name is Jill and has a good handle on the main outlets and markets. I think these have finished. I’ll have a word with them. I’m keen to hear what the Hikers sound like now. The big hit was only saved by the novelty of the organ track.”
Willow was smiling when she went back to the others.
“What are you so happy about, friend?”
“We’re getting a company assistant to set up shows and shop visits. We may have a quick flight to play Friday night, then be in a store on Saturday. I’m not sure how well it would pay but will push the album sales.”
“You never stop organising, do you? As Peter so aptly said, I’m happy to be on the ride.”
They relaxed as the Hikers played. Racheal came and sat with them.
“Rick is almost hard to live with at the moment. He’s worried that this show will either launch the band’s new direction or sink it.”
“There’s a group from the record company here tonight. They seem happy to be here and Clive told me that he’ll have a word with the G-Force after their set, so, if Rick gets spoken to, you can take it that it’s a launch.”
“How’s your album going?”
“A quarter of a million by Sunday night. I don’t know how many during the week. The hype may have come and gone.”
They looked on as Rick and the Hikers lifted a notch or two. When they finished their set and came off stage, Clive and his companions were talking to them. Summer Rose went up on stage, and waited while the stage manager had a crew setting up canisters on spigots on the edge of the stage. When it was clear, they started their set, revelling in having more volume with a more powerful PA system and the bigger amps. They repeated the set that they had played in the second half of Saturday night. Then let loose with ‘Sparks of the Tempest’ making all those gathered in the stalls look up. When they reached the last part, they ended with a bang, quite literally as Willow violently nodded her head. And then the lights went out. Five seconds later, they came back and all eleven were across the front of the stage.
When they were back in the stalls, Clive came over to shake some hands.
“Now, that woke some up. I hope that you’ll give some warning for the actual shows. My companions are doubly sure that they want to get behind ‘The Other Side’. Do you think that you may have enough material for an original album after the first one?”
Herb was smiling broadly.
“I have some songs in the same vein, but I was unsure if they would be suitable for Summer Rose.”
“This will be ‘The Other Side of Summer Rose’ and will attract a whole different market. When you have enough for an album, tell Jill and we’ll set up a recording session.”
Willow went to see the stage manager, who said that the effect was as good as he’d seen, and that it would be set up for the other nights, perhaps adding a couple of extra canisters. Peter caught up with her.
“That was as good as it gets, Willow. You have that band ready to take on the world. I hadn’t been sure about the Other Side until I just heard it filled out. The extra instruments really add something. Just keep on doing what you do best, I’ll be less dismissive in future. The band will be famous, mark my words.”
Just then Clive clapped his hands.
“Gather round, good people. There are a couple of people from the record company who want to say something.”
Two of the men who had been watching everything closely stood in front of the stage and the others sat in the stalls or stood. Clive had been away while they gathered, and came back with a suitcase, which he put on the floor in front of them. One of the men spoke.
“Good evening, I am the Chief Finance Officer of the label, and this gentleman is the Chief Executive Officer. Before we get on with what we came for, I have to say that we have been totally smitten with the new Coventry Sound. All bands performed brilliantly. G-Force and the Hikers are certain to have album launches before the end of the month. Well done, and well deserved.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 5
There was applause, and Willow glanced to Peter to see him smiling broadly.
“Now, to what we actually came to do. We are pleased to announce that the Summer Rose album, ‘Journey into Womanhood’, as well as the DVD, both achieved Gold Record status yesterday. Not only that, but, because we bundled the first album, ‘Coventry Carpentry’ in the initial sales, it has also achieved the Gold Record status as well. It’s been a rush, especially after I was told that the band is an eleven piece now, but we would like to hand out these Gold CDs, mounted with the details on a brass plaque. Please come forward. Willow.”
There was applause as Willow received three awards, followed by Gina and the five others. The four wind players got two each for the ‘Journey’ album. Xavier was busy taking pictures, while Dave and Frank filmed it. Then the CFO smiled.
“We have a few awards left. It’s very strange to be giving these out tonight. Normally, awards like this go to established professionals. Tonight, though, we have two awards for each of the three, highly skilled, schoolboys who recorded and filmed the album and DVD. Come forward, Xavier, Frank and David.”
Geoff grabbed Xavier’s camera and recorded his friends as they received the Gold CDs for the technical input to the album and DVD. They were all blushing but also glowing with pride as they were hugged by all the bands. All those who attended the school knew how deserved this was. After that, the theatre crew took over, to clean up and prepare for the opening night. Summer Rose went out to their people movers, with smiling security men. Sebastian commented that he knew that the album had been successful but hadn’t appreciated the band for what it was until tonight.
Willow sat in the vehicle, stunned as she looked at the three awards in her lap. So much, and so quickly. It was like a dream come true. Jacob leaned over and gave her a kiss.
“This is just the beginning, love. There’s more to come for us and the band. And I think it will be just the beginning for the other two bands as well. The next three nights will be amazing, just wait and see. I guess that pictures of us getting Gold records will be published. It doesn’t matter to me that it was all done tonight, it was good without a lot of pomp. Mum’s going to be shocked.”
“So is mine. I was joking when I promised Malcolm one for behind the bar, so I guess I’ll have to give him one on Saturday. I’ll give him the one for the DVD, because he can add a notice that it was filmed in the club. I have a copy with Mum’s original artwork to put up beside it.”
“School’s going to be pumped. I’ll donate one of mine for the Head to put on her wall.”
“Oh, yes. That’s going to get you a better grade?”
“Busted!”
Gina sat with hers, totally overcome with pride and appreciation. She put hers in her bag and turned to Willow.
“This has been the greatest moment of my life, friend. It would never have happened if we hadn’t met.”
“Nor for me, friend. Individually, we’re good, together we’re amazing, and with the rest of the band, we’re almost too brilliant to see without sunglasses.”
“Onward and upward?”
“You bet. Your mother’s going to be as shocked as ours.”
“You had better come in. I know it’s late, but I doubt that I’ll sleep tonight.”
At Jacob’s house, they went in, and he showed his parents his awards. All three were hugged by his mother and father. His father, ever practical, asked if this meant that the next statement might be bigger than the latest.
“Downloads and web activity will go down, but sales income will go up. It should equal out, but we’ll just have to wait and see.”
At Gina’s house, they were both hugged by Maisie, with Willow finding it hard to get away. But get away she did, for the trip around the corner to her home, where the lights were still on.
“See you in the morning, Miss. It’s been a real pleasure tonight.”
“Thanks Sebastian. You may have to guide me to the vehicle in the morning.”
She got out and the front door opened.
“You’re a bit late, darling. Did something happen.”
“You could say that, Mum.”
The door closed, but Sebastian didn’t leave, just sitting with the window open until he heard a shriek from inside. The two security men high-fived and he drove away.
Friday morning saw the three friends red-eyed from lack of sleep. Willow had put the ‘Carpenters’ Gold CD on her desk, to hang on the wall later. It was the album that was the launch vehicle. The award for the ‘Journey’ CD was destined for the china cabinet in the sitting room, with the one destined for the club in her mother’s car, on the way to show at her work.
True to his word, Jacob had the award for the first album in his bag. He didn’t feel that he had deserved it. Also, he considered that as it was part of a school concert, the school was the best place for it to be displayed.
All three were quiet on the way in, and when they arrived at school, they went through to see if they could have a word with the Head. She saw, immediately, the drawn faces of the three.
“Is anything wrong, children? You all look like you haven’t slept.”
Jacob took a step forward, in front of the girls.
“We all had bad nights, ma-am. I expect that the others in the band are the same as us. It was a long evening, made longer by record company leaders who wanted to give us things. I’ve brought this one in for you to hang with your diplomas.”
He pulled out the award and gave it to her.
‘This is the Gold Record for the original ‘Coventry Carpenters’ album, re-recorded after the show here in the school. We were also given awards for the second album and the DVD.”
“This is very generous, Jacob. Are you sure that you want to do this?”
“I’m sure. I have two for the band now. As a matter of interest, Xavier and his friends got similar awards for the sound and vision of the DVD.”
“This is amazing. I don’t know what to say. It will make my night out at the Belgrade on Saturday more meaningful. How many sales does it take to get one of these?”
“Half a million. It took a week. We are all finding it a bit overwhelming.”
“I bet. Look, get along to classes. I’ll put the word out to the teachers to go easy on you today, and make sure that you sleep in tomorrow if you can.”
The three friends went off to the first lesson and did find that they weren’t called out if their attention waned. Lunch was another party, with some of the others bringing in their Gold Records to show their friends. During lunch, a lot of phones pinged. When opened, the messages were photos from the rehearsal and the award ceremony. By the afternoon, the whole school knew about it.
The band were hustled out to their transport and driven home. Willow had a sleep on the way. When she was dropped off, she stripped down to her bra and panties and got into bed for a couple of hours sleep. Wendy woke her in time to have a shower, dress and eat a sandwich before the transport was at the door again.
She had her new outfit on, and Wendy had given her extra work on her make-up. Sebastian told her she looked good and then they went to pick up Gina, who was also looking a couple of years older. Jacob was very smart in his outfit. When they arrived at the theatre, there was quite a crowd outside. The vehicles went around the back and parked with others. The three went in to join a large, and very excited, group of band members. The more they met, the more the three bands were becoming friends.
G-Force were up first, and the others had quick looks through the curtains to see the audience. To Willow’s eye, it appeared to be a mix of about half and half adult and teenager. The stage manager got the extra bodies off the stage, the band made sure they were plugged in, and they waited for the compere. He came out in front of the curtains.
“Good evening, Coventry! Tonight, you will be hearing, for the first time in public, three local bands with stella futures. Together, they are creating a new Coventry Sound. First up, I give you G-Force and the lovely Zara!”
The curtains opened and the show was under way. Summer Rose left the wings and went back to the dressing rooms, where they could hear the show from a speaker.
Herb grinned.
“You do look fine, Jacob. Where did you get the fancy gear. Gina and Willow, I can understand, but you?”
“The three of us did a fashion shoot and were given these. The shop has offered to send us things to wear at the other shows if we wore them tonight. I like it.”
“Well, it will make you stand out.”
“I think that we’re working on a plan for them to outfit everyone in the band, but there wasn’t time to get you all measured. I expect that when we play the charity dinner dance, we’ll all look a million dollars.”
They relaxed and listened as Zara and the Gees got the audience going. They wished the Hikers good luck as they went up to get ready for their part. Racheal joined them to listen to the performance. There was tremendous applause for the Gees, and the compere came out again.
“Our second band has already had a world-wide internet hit with their debut single, ‘Love and Marriage’, which attracted over two and a half million views inside a month. They have been a true ‘garage band’ up to now. Please give a big welcome to another Coventry band, Rick Sacks and the Hikers!’
He left the stage as the curtains opened and Rick and the boys hit their stride with the second-best song on the album, a string of catchy new songs, and finished with the hit single. There was applause, and shouts for more, but had another new song for an encore, the best of the new bunch.
The curtain closed and the compere was back again.
“This is the end of the first half of the show. We’ll be back in twenty minutes. The new albums by G-Force and the Hikers will be in the shops soon. Albums by our next band are available in the foyer. If you like the show, don’t forget to watch it on Band Spot next week.”
Racheal turned to Jacob.
“We’ll be off. Last night and tonight has been tiring, and the band need a rest before the show tomorrow. Best of luck with your set.”
She went to join Rick and the Hikers as they secured their instruments. By the time Summer Rose were ready to be on stage, G-Force had left as well, but not before Garry gave Willow a hug and thanked her for everything.
Jacob picked up his guitar and turned to the others.
“Looks like we’re the last line, guys and gals. Let’s get up there and show the crowd what entertainment is all about.”
They made sure that they were all ready and waited for the compere. As the noise of the audience abated, he came on to some cheers.
“This is what we’ve been waiting for. This band released an album and a DVD just over a week ago. Last night, they were presented with Gold Records for half a million sales nationally. They have played regularly at small dances for some months. Please give a big welcome to Coventry’s latest chart busters – Summer Rose!”
They had talked about the list as they waited and opened with ‘Finding a Friend’. Then followed what they had played the night before. They had been playing this music for a while, and it showed in the presentation. Willow made a few descriptive announcements as they went along. They ended with ‘Her Day’ and ‘Only Just Begun’. The applause was tremendous, and many were standing. The curtains closed and the applause continued. When the curtains reopened, Jacob stepped up to his microphone and the theatre went quiet.
“Ladies and gentlemen, boys and girls, friends. We thank you for your appreciation of our music tonight. We will play an encore song. You’ve heard our sound tonight; it’s what we’ve done for a while. We do have another sound, and it encouraged our management to book us for a sixteen-show national tour this summer. We’ll be opening for Blastmasters.”
There were murmurs and laughter.
“I know. Sounds crazy. Before I joined Summer Rose, the band had worked on a cover of a concept album that had been released in nineteen seventy-seven. It was the end of the cold war period, and the album is about the advent of nuclear war wiping out humanity after the moderate and brainy leader dies, to be replaced by a bunch of power-hungry, land-grabbing dictators. It resonates with the world we now live in, and will be a future album, called ‘The Other Side of Summer Rose!”
He stepped back as the band ripped into several minutes of stadium rock. It was a full-on display of skills that had been absent for the rest of the set; wild guitar, manic keyboards, blasting wind. All eleven laid it on the line. The end went as planned, the canisters blasting on the final chord and the stage lights going out. When the audience got their vision back and the spots came on, the band was lined up across the stage, and bowing. The audience erupted with whistles, cheers and foot stamping.
They stepped back as the curtains closed, secured their instruments and left the theatre to go home and get a good night of restful sleep. In the vehicle heading towards Stoneleigh, Willow hugged Jacob and gave him a passionate kiss.
“I’m really proud of you, love. Today, you made the Head very happy, and you just gave a very adult and fitting introduction to ‘Sparks’. Will you do it Saturday and Sunday?”
“I will. Playing the album has made me think about the tightrope the world is on at the moment. It worries me, but our album may get discussion if the label treats it seriously.”
The three had a group hug as Jacob was dropped off, then Gina and Willow hugged and cheek kissed at Gina’s, before arriving at Willow’s home. The security men said ‘goodnight, see you tomorrow evening’ as Willow got out. Sebastian, for once, had nothing else that he could say. He had stood at the doors, with the rest of the security detail, and had witnessed one of the best shows he had ever seen. Tomorrow, he would see it again. He whispered “Love this job” as he drove back to the city.
Willow went inside, said a bleary goodnight to her parents, and went off to get ready for bed. She was asleep as soon as her head hit the pillow, and didn’t wake until after nine the next morning, in need of the bathroom. She showered and dressed before going downstairs, where she was hugged by her mother.
“You look better after some sleep, honey. Your father had to work today and took the CD award to show his office.”
“How did your work take it, Mum?”
“It was great. There were a lot of selfies taken with it and the boss took me and his daughter to lunch. They will be at the show tonight. I think that a lot of the faces you’ll see tonight are people you know, including us and Maisie. How was last night?”
“It was like living in a dream. The other bands were better than ever, and we stayed in the dressing rooms and talked. Herb has been writing songs in the rock vein but has been afraid to bring them to us, but we’ll be starting to move that way. We did one track off the Other Side as an encore and brought the house down. Jacob made a very adult introduction to it that you’ll see for yourselves tonight. I think that nobody left thinking that they didn’t get what they paid for.”
“What’s on the cards for today?”
“I need to go to the church to check tomorrow’s hymns, and then I have to see Malcolm in the club. Fancy a short stroll?”
“That would be nice. I’ll freshen up while you finish breakfast.”
A half an hour later, they walked, arm-in-arm, towards the church.
“Remember that morning when we heard the bells and came here, Mum. It seems so long ago.”
“Less than a year, darling. So much has happened. That morning started a journey, with all of us becoming integral in the village life. It’s changed the lives of more people than us.”
They went into the church to find Edie and her husband making sure that everything was good for the next day. Wendy stayed to speak to them, and Willow went up to the organ. She warmed up with some Bach, which had its usual effect of settling her. There were three hymns, which she heard the two women sing as she played. When she had shut down and went down to the others, Edie said that they were looking forward to the evening, as the Bishop had block booked seats.
“I hope that you all enjoy the show, Edie. Last night was good. The band is getting better every time we play, and the extra four wind players have brought an extra dimension. Eleven in the band will make it difficult with the logistics if we tour, but that’s what we are now.”
They walked over to the club. Malcolm was rearranging the bottles and restocking.
“Good morning, ladies. Lovely morning.”
“Good morning to you, Malcolm. You haven’t made room for the Gold Record yet.”
“I will when you give me one, young lady.”
“OK, how about this.”
She pulled the award out of her bag and put it on the bar.
“This is for the DVD, so I’ve added a raw copy of that here, with the original artwork on the cover, created by my dear, talented, mother.”
He looked at the items, reading the plaque.
“This is real. Not some joke?”
“Pinch yourself and check, Malcolm. We were given these on Thursday evening by the record bosses. There was one for the CD as well as for the first CD that was bundled in the first sales. Are you going to find room to display them?”
“You bet. They will be in pride of place by tonight. I’ll be at the Sunday show as Ashley will be filling in. It will be really special, considering that I watched the three bands on our stage. Sit down and have a drink, I’ll organise your lunches in a while. No doubt there’ll be some regulars in who will want to talk. What time are you going to the theatre tonight?”
“I’ll be picked up by our security detail about six, Mum and Dad will make their own way, picking up Maisie, I think.”
“And the Epstein’s, darling. We’re making a night of it, with a meal at the steakhouse on the way, so we’re leaving home about five.”
They sat and relaxed with their drinks and talked to the regulars as they came in. For Willow, it was a return to the real world and recharged her batteries for the evening. After the lunch, they walked home to find a box on the porch with a Francesca Fashions logo on. Picking it up, they went inside.
It contained two outfits, with a note pinned to each. One to wear Saturday, one for Sunday.
“I bet Gina and I co-ordinate.”
“There’s another note. It says that she enjoyed the show Friday night and wants the three of you as models for the summer and autumn ranges, including Brent and the two girls in the wind section. You had better go and try these on. Come down so I can take a picture of them and send to her.”
Willow went upstairs and put the first one on. It was certainly Saturday night in a nightclub, if you were there to find a man to take home. She came down to show Wendy.
“That makes you look like a model, the kind that appears in naughty films. However, as it will give you tremendous stage presence, whenever you stand up, it could work.”
Willow went and changed into the other outfit. It, too, was best described as sultry. The blouse was thin enough to show her bra, and the skirt, while a reasonable length, had a slit up one side to the thigh. After showing her mother, she changed into something comfortable and stretched out on her bed. She laid quiet, headphones on, working through the Moody Blues CDs. Last time they worked on them, they were looking for music that was more melodic than in your face. By the time she needed to get something to eat and change, she had some that were more rock and hadn’t been learned.
When she was picked up, nothing was said about her look, but both guys could hardly take their eyes off her as she went from the front door to the vehicle. At Gina’s home, she came out, trying to walk normally but restricted by her tight skirt. Jacob looked like a pimp.
Willow had Francesca’s phone number and called her.
“Madame, we’re on the way into the show and look like a pimp with his tarts. Can we come by your shop and get something else to wear. We’re thirteen years old, not twenty something and on the game.”
When she finished the conversation, she gave Sebastian the new address.
“Don’t break any road rules, we’re not on until after eight, but you’d better call the others to let them know we may be a bit late.”
When they arrived at the shop, Madame opened the door to let them in.
“I’m so sorry! I gave my assistant your sizes and told her to choose something that fitted rock stars. Come on in, we’ll get you something better.”
A half an hour later, they got back in the vehicle, with more normal, but still nice, outfits on, plus another for Sunday in a garment bag. As they left the shop, the Madame called out.
“Keep those and the other set we sent. You may need something sexy for a hot date.”
They arrived at the theatre while the G-Force were into their set. Brent gave Gina a hug and a kiss.
“I was getting worried. What happened?”
“You should have seen the outfits we were sent. It would have looked like a hooker’s convention. Willow phoned the supplier, and she opened up to give us a different look.”
“Did you get to keep the outfits?”
“Not the ones we were wearing, but we have another outfit that she sent for Sunday. If you’re a good boy, and it still fits, I’ll wear my original Sunday one for our first real date.”
The evening was better than Friday, with a noisy audience. The Gees and Hikers stayed for the second half, hearing The Other Side with eight hundred watts of amplification for the first time. Like the audience, the difference was something to shake your belief that Summer Rose was a soft-rock dance band. The bands, having their transport close by, were on the road before the audience, and the friends all walked into empty houses.
Willow spent her alone time stripping off and showering, then making a hot chocolate and sitting in the kitchen, quietly thinking about the time after Sunday night’s show. Would they be more popular, sell more merchandise, write more songs. More importantly, would the Other Side become the real band on stage, while maintaining the softer stuff for the dances.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 6
Willow was still sitting at the kitchen table when her parents arrived home. She was swept up in hugs and kisses from both of them.
“Fantastic show, darling. It was a real treat. I saw the Bishop with the Russell’s and the Head, and they all had big smiles. The comments that I heard from others was all positive. A lot were shocked but excited by the last song. Did everything go all right with you? What did Gina think of her outfit?”
“We both looked like ladies of the night, Mum, and Jacob looked like our minder. I called Frankie the Ham, and she changed our outfits for what you saw tonight. If we had been on stage wearing what her assistant had supplied, there may have been a riot and letters to the paper about young girls looking like prostitutes.”
“I did notice that your outfit wasn’t the one you modelled this afternoon. I thought that the original one was a bit flirty, but what do I know about young girl’s fashions. You were right to complain, the Bishop would have been horrified to see his organists looking like that. You get yourself to bed now. I’ll give you a call for breakfast and then the church.”
Willow went up and got ready for bed. As she looked in the mirror to remove her make-up, she giggled at the thought of turning up at the Cathedral in the original outfit to play the organ. She laughed as she thought about it. ‘Hi, Bishop, I’m dressed like a tramp and I’m here to play your organ!’ She was smiling as she told her furry friends the joke and went to sleep.
Sunday morning was like so many Sundays recently. She went to the bathroom to do her business, shower and dry, then dust with sweet smelling powder and dress. They had breakfast and walked to the church, bells chiming as they arrived. The Reverend gave her a hug and told her how good the show was, with all three bands being great entertainment. Willow went up to the organ and played welcoming music. She relaxed as the church filled. She had to smile, as today’s sermon was about not honouring false icons, but to honour the one who stood above them. Reverend Russell finished by surprising her.
“In a conversation, the other day, I was advised that it is no good to make yourself an icon, but to help others to be icons themselves. To be seen as a person who helps others achieve their own level, without appearing to be one who thinks themselves as above them. I hope that you all look to me as just your spiritual guidance to the one that I follow. The one that we consider to be the icon above all.”
They sang the last hymn, and he came down to lead the short period of silent prayer. He looked up at Willow and gave her a wink as he turned to leave the church. As was becoming usual, by the time that Willow had turned off, tidied up, and left the church, most were over at the club. She walked in and there was a big cheer and applause. There, behind the bar, was the Gold Record, and in a frame beside it, the DVD with its distinctive cover. Under both was a properly printed sign that declared that the DVD had been filmed here, at the Stoneleigh Community Club.
She was hugged and kissed by a lot of smiling villagers. Make that smiling friends. Some had seen the show on Friday or Saturday, and there were many compliments for Summer Rose and the other bands. They ate lunch and sang songs with Willow on the old piano. This was the centre of her world. When she walked home with Wendy, there were tears in her eyes.
“They really like us, Mum. Not because I’m in the band, but because they just like us.”
“They do, love. If we had kept ourselves to ourselves, we may have been accepted in twenty years, or so. It’s been you able to play the church organ that brought this about so quickly. They know you, not the talented girl on stage. I suppose that they’re supporters, rather than fans.”
Willow relaxed for a while, and then went to get ready for the Sunday show. The outfit that she had been given was a simple sheath, adorned with small crystals that would sparkle in the spotlights. It was a deep blue, while Gina had a similar one in a very dark red. When she came downstairs, Wendy gasped.
“Darling, you look beautiful. Not only that, but it also makes you look older. Talk about being older, in three weeks you’ll be fourteen. Where do you want to go for a meal?”
“Gina has her birthday two days after mine. We were thinking of a joint party. Either the day in between or the Friday. We have a dinner dance in the club on the Saturday, so I was wondering if we could club together and take over the club, paying for it as a reception. We can get the Gees to entertain us and just have some fun. It might be hard to think of a list of two hundred and fifty guests, though.”
“Come on, my darling daughter! I’m certain that between you, you know at least that number. There’s the school friends, the orchestra, the choir. That’s not even taking in the ones outside school. The Village choir, Tom and Sally and her mother, the Bishop.”
“Hold it right there, Mum. What teenager who doesn’t have a father who preaches would invite a Bishop to a teenage party!”
“You could invite him, dear. He may think it too young for him, but, there again, he might be fun. He is a bit quirky. I’ll have a chat with Maisie and see what she thinks.”
Willow was picked up just after five. They went to the farm, Gina already being in the city and just finishing Evensong. Being alone in the vehicle, Willow and Jacob could cuddle on the way.
At the Belgrade, they had a lot of time before the others arrived and talked about the future direction of the band. Herb was all for moving into the rock scene, with occasional forays into softer music, and suggested that Willow should make the next Summer Rose easy-listening album as a Willow Rose (with Summer Rose) one, when she had enough material for one. Xavier came in and took some pictures while they were talking.
“Xavier. We haven’t seen much of you since the rehearsal.”
“We’ve concentrated on getting the audiences on film. It’s been great to take candid pictures and listen to the comments. It’s the pass around my neck that makes me invisible. We also took a lot of film of the concert, from the spectator point of view. Tonight, we’re getting back-stage shots now that you’re all relaxed about it. I’m hoping that you’ll let us into future performances. My Dad told me I should write a book about my experiences. He called it ‘The Sap Inside the Rose’. I’ve got all the raw material from your school concerts.”
“As long as you let us look at it first. If you hold off a while, you can add the shows with Blastmasters, that’ll be a bit different.”
“I’ll wait a few years until you’re international stars by that time. Although you would have probably forgotten me by then.”
Willow got up and went to hug him and kiss him on the cheek.
“Get it into your head, Xavier. I never forget friends, ever. There will always be a place for you, Frank and Dave. If we lose touch, never be afraid to call if you need anything.”
“Thank you for that, Willow. What are the plans for the rest of term?”
“There’s a sing-along at the club next Saturday, the concert in the Cathedral the weekend after, a dinner dance at the club and then the big charity do at the football club to finish the month. June has yet to fill up, but we’ll be having an assistant from the label to help us stay in the public eye.”
As the rest of the band arrived, the conversation turned to the money that they had earned. Jacob explained about the property syndicate and that it would be for commercial property only, with purchases being in full there would be no mortgage payments. By the time that the other two bands had finished their sets, Brent, Roy, Victor, and Herb had agreed to put in three hundred thousand each, with regular payments of a hundred thousand as they continued to be earning. All agreed that they needed to set up their own companies with their parents as co-directors.
Gina had changed into her stage outfit and the two girls looked like stars when they went on stage. The two girls in the wind section had also taken a lot of care with co-ordinated outfits. The compere did his last introduction and told the crowd that it had been a privilege to be here in Coventry. The show was good, the crowd were appreciative, and the encore produced its shock and awe. The other bands had stayed, so once the Summer Rose had bowed, they came out from either side of the stage and the whole show were applauded.
Gina picked up her bag with her Cathedral outfit and went home with Maisie after a group hug. Willow and Jacob went to their vehicle and went home. Ashley and Wendy were waiting for Willow when she arrived, and they sat with a hot chocolate before she went to bed.
“What now, my darling daughter?”
“The concert in two weeks. The fallout from these shows. It will be interesting to find out how much we ended up with. We didn’t go to the foyer so didn’t see what they had on sale.”
“There was a stand from the music store, one with pendants and posters, and one with your CD and DVD, now without the other CD packaged. There was another one taking advance orders for the G-Force and Hikers releases which had a line waiting when we looked.”
“That’s good, it’s well deserved. Before we went on stage, the other guys agreed to set up companies and put three hundred into the property syndicate. That will give us an immediate two point one to get it going. That should leave me with enough to help pay this house off.”
“Are you sure?”
“It’s my home, Mum. It’s part of the property idea. I know that I’m not old enough to go on the deeds. It does give me somewhere that will be my rock. I’ll need a rock if this life gets any crazier.”
Next morning, she was picked up by the security men, hopeful that the week was going to be as normal as possible. Of course, all those students who had been to the show wanted to meet and greet, as well as the teachers. Normal lessons weren’t totally disrupted, but lunch was like another party. A lot of the girls throughout the school were wearing the rose pendants.
Back at home, with a whole evening ahead of her without anywhere to go, Willow caught up with her emails. There was one from Peter to all the bands, complimenting them on a great show. There was another from the estate agent with a copy of the building report and their invoice. Willow read the report, which only had minor items to be improved, mainly to bring the property up to current safety standards. She went into her own company account and paid the bill, seeing that she had been the one to ask for it. The agent had told her that the vendors were happy to sell if she upped the offer to four hundred and twenty, as long as the payment was in the next two weeks. She answered him to tell him that the payment would be made before the end of the week and to let the tenants know that the upgrades would be made, and to book contractors in when the property had changed hands. She asked him to now look around for larger premises, with a limit of one and a half million. The reply was sent, with the seven band members cc’ed to show the others that things were happening.
She emailed Peter to transfer three hundred thousand to the WR Holdings account, with Jacob and Gina cc’ed to let them know that the process was being started.
Next morning, Gina told her that she had asked Peter to transfer three hundred and fifty thousand to the business account that her mother already had. Jacob said that he had asked for the same amount to his new company account, and that Summer Love would be in existence by Thursday. They told Sebastian that the pickup would be later as they would be playing the entire concert for the performance in two weeks. At school, it was Gina playing the organ for chapel, then the day was a lot quieter.
At lunch, the other band members told them that the company paperwork was being created. Geoff came over and told them that they were on track to have the CD and DVD from Stoneleigh on the market in week, at the same time as the Hikers. He had been told that it would be a joint release, along with promotional displays with the Summer Rose albums, as a ‘Coventry Sound’ in conjunction with the Band Spot show.
That afternoon, the orchestra and combined choirs played the entire Cathedral show. Mister Bamborough told them that the Cathedral Concert will be on the Friday, Saturday, and Sunday evenings, with all three performances close to sold out. They would be taken to the venue on Friday afternoon, for setting up and a complete performance, with the BBC getting set up and the sight lines. Because of that, the orchestra session for the next week would be cancelled.
Brent was taken home first, and then the three went to Stoneleigh. At Jacob’s home, Wilhelm came out and gave Gina and Willow copies of the paperwork that had been set up for the syndicate holding company, along with details of a bank account that he had seeded with some of Jacob’s money. Jacob said that he would forward the details to the other four. Wilhelm, now semi-retired, told them that he would be available to transport them if needed. He said that he might buy a minibus and bill the company for it.
That evening, Willow emailed her accountant’s details, the real estate agent’s details, and transferred three hundred thousand to the new syndicate account. She knew that she was putting the accounting into Wilhelm’s hands, but, as an adult with some time on his hands, she thought that he would be very committed to his son’s welfare, and, by association, the band.
On Thursday morning, Jacob reported that his father had checked the account, seeing that Gina had put her share in as well, so paid the four hundred and twenty thousand to the agent’s trust account, getting a receipt in return. They would need to meet at the property, to talk to the tenants, which was set up for Friday afternoon after school. They would meet his father and the agent there, and his father would bring them home. They told Sebastian where they needed to be and that they would be taken home on Friday. She told her parents that she would be late on Friday and would take them to the steakhouse after she got home.
On Friday morning, Jacob reported that he had negotiated with his parents to buy the barn where he would live and would be paying a peppercorn lease for the right to reside. He would also own the second unused barn, which he planned to make weatherproof and concreted as a garage for the minibus and any other vehicles that Rick and Racheal would need.
The music lesson that afternoon was another session with the mixing desks. This time, they had to remix an acapella vocal piece with six voices. Again, the majority were right, with just two who were slightly out. At the end of the lesson, Mister Jamieson told them that this had just been an introduction to mixing. If they wanted to take it further, the entire sixth year music studies were mixing and recording techniques. As the class were leaving, Willow went to see him.
“Excuse me, sir. I got both mixes wrong. I was wondering why?”
“It could be a lot of things, Willow. You have been involved with an orchestra for a long time. You may listen to headphones loudly, or it just may be blockage in the aural canal. I suggest that you get an appointment with a hearing specialist. Your settings were inside a couple of percent of the normal, so it can’t be anything serious. Good show on the weekend. If you play at the level of the last number, you will have to go and see the music store to get proper stage buds, which deaden the real sound but gives you the final mix in your ears.”
She caught up with the others and they were taken to the property, joined by the others in the band. Wilhelm was already there, talking to the agent and the owner of the tenant’s business. When the two people movers arrived and seven teenagers got out, the manager had an odd look on his face until Gina and Willow stepped down. Sebastian gave them a wave and drove off.
“Are you guys telling me that my new landlord is Summer Rose? We went to see you all on Sunday night!”
Willow went over and shook his hand.
“I’m Willow Rose, that’s Gina Summer, and the guys are Jacob, Roy, Herb. Brent and Victor. We’re pooling our earnings to buy property and ensure that we don’t end up on the street after the hype dies. This property is our first, and I looked at it before the release of our second album. Have you looked at the building report?”
“Yes, it was interesting.”
“If you engage a contractor to make the changes, we will pay the bill through the estate agent. Any problems, let us know. Lease payments remain as usual through the agent. We’ll stay out of your way.”
“All very good, Willow. I’m gratified that our new landlord is more prepared to handle the upgrades that I put to them a couple of years ago. Have you looked around?”
“A couple of us had a look before we made the offer, but it would be nice if the rest of the band could see what they’ve got involved with.”
Willow and Gina stood outside with the agent as the manager took the others on a guided tour. The agent put his hand in his briefcase and pulled out some papers.
“These are the papers for this property. When Mister Epstein comes out, he can sign as a director of Summer Love. I’ll get it all through the usual process and send a copy to him at the farm. When he signs, he will get a set of keys and security codes, in case of an emergency. Now, you asked about other properties. There is one in the range that you specified, but it’s in Leicester.”
“That would be all right. What’s it like?”
“It’s three separate buildings around a parking area. Two are warehouses and the third is a two-storey office block. Total site is nearly sixteen thousand square feet, or about eight times the footprint of this place. The asking price is one and a quarter million and there is a tenant at that one with two years into a five plus five lease. They are a distributor for one of the on-line sales companies, working twenty-four seven. It’s another agency that is handling the sale, but I would be happy to handle the tenancy details if you buy.”
“When can we see it?”
“Let me check.”
He pulled out his phone and rang the other agent, putting it on speaker. There was a conversation with the other agent asking when the customer wanted to see the property. Willow said, quietly, ‘Tomorrow morning’.
The appointment was made for ten the next morning. When the others came out, the manager locked up. The four guys left in the other people mover and the manager waited while Wilhelm signed the papers and received the bag with keys and codes. The four of them shook hands with the smiling manager and left in Wilhelm’s car.
On the way, Willow asked him if he was doing anything on Saturday morning.
“Not especially, Willow. Have you got something in mind?”
“We were just given details of a bigger property in Leicester. We have an appointment for ten tomorrow.”
“How big and how much?”
“Sixteen thousand and one point two-five.”
“Just the four of us?”
“For a first look, yes. I have to go to the Cathedral in the afternoon so it will be a preliminary visit. I have a picture and an address in The Saffron Way Industrial Estate. It’s currently a distribution centre and the rent is a hundred thousand a year.”
“That would be an impressive addition to your portfolio. I’ll pick up Gina at eight-thirty and you after. Leicester isn’t that far away, so we should be there in plenty of time.”
“I’ll send you an email with a scan of the paper tonight. Our agent said that he would be happy to handle the tenancy details.”
“Of course he would, adding his cut of the take without doing any work.”
“We all have to make a living, Mister Epstein.”
He dropped Willow at home, and she went inside.
“How was it, dear?”
“The group now own an industrial building and made the tenant happy that we’re prepared to do the upgrades required by law. Mister Epstein is picking me up tomorrow morning to look at a place in Leicester. It’s over a million but we’ll have enough in the syndicate to pay for it by the end of the week.”
“You have no idea how strange that sounds.”
“I know, but it will give the band some income and collateral later on.”
She went upstairs to change, scan the paper and attach it to an email to Jacob to give to his father. Then, nicely dressed, she joined her parents, and they went to the steakhouse where they were becoming favoured regulars. They were given a good table, and in view of most of the restaurant. Wendy mentioned that this was different.
“Look around, Mum. You’re sitting with someone who’s been in the papers. Over two and a half thousand people were at the Belgrade last weekend. What’s the odds that there are some here who saw the show. I have a pen and a texta in my bag in case anyone wants me to sign something.”
She was right, as a few teenagers came over to ask for an autograph. One girl had a nice top she wanted signed, so Willow picked up her texta and went over to her table, asking her parents if it was all right to sign the top. Her mother said that she would happily buy another one, so Willow signed the top and gave the girl a hug, before coming back to her own table. Before they left, the manager asked if she would stand for a picture that she could sign the next time she came.
The next morning, she had breakfast and dressed in a casual top and denim skirt, waiting outside to be picked up. The trip to Leicester didn’t take long, and they arrived at the site with fifteen minutes to spare. Wilhelm drove around the industrial estate so they could see what else was happening. When they got back, there was another car with a man standing next to it. Wilhelm parked beside it and they got out. The agent looked at them.
“Brought your family for a drive out, I see.”
“These are your clients, sir. I’m just the driver at the moment. Do you want to show us the property?”
“I’m sorry, sir. I’ll introduce you to the duty manager, Mervyn Halcroft, and he can show you around.”
They went into the office and met the manager, who got them to wear hi-vis tops as the site was a working one, with electric fork-lifts operating. The agent went to sit in his car to wait. First, they were quickly shown the office building, where only the ground floor offices were used.
“We’re distributors. We get bulk deliveries, usually on pallets, and store them in the building across the other side. In the building at the back, we assemble shipments, and we have small trucks coming to take those away.”
“What about upstairs?”
“Mainly unused, young lady. Don’t I know you?”
“If you went to the Belgrade last weekend or have a record-buying child. We’re Summer Rose, or some of it.”
“We went as a family on Sunday night. Great show. What would you use the upstairs for?”
“I was thinking as a home base if we go further with the band. Somewhere where we could keep records, make plans. The label is sending us a liaison girl, and it may be a good place for her to set up.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 7
He took them upstairs and showed them the large office that overlooked the car park and the road, with toilets, a storage room and lunchroom. It was all dusty from lack of use.
“If you want to use this and we have closed the office downstairs, we can give you a key and code. The other buildings are open all the time except public holidays.”
Then, they went outside to the back building, where they were told to stand to the edge of the open area in case a forklift came in. It was a large open space with plenty of light.
“This is where store the fast-moving items and assemble the outgoing shipments.”
They looked around, noting the lunch area and toilets to their left. He then took them to a longer shed, with a lot of racking for pallets of goods.
Willow gazed around and then looked at him.
“It’s longer outside than inside.”
“Well spotted. This site was originally built as a fruit and vegetable distribution centre. I’ll show you the space that you can’t see.”
They walked to the far end of the racking, where there was a corrugated iron wall and a set of double doors. He opened one and they went into the next space. There was a workshop and a number of charging stations for the forklifts. Beyond it was a solid wall, with a high-speed roller door. He hit the button and the door shot up. Inside was a long, dark space. He put the lights on.
“This was originally the cool store. The current owners won’t remove the wall or the cooling unit. We just use this front part for the forklifts. It goes all the way to the back of the building, with a roller door and another door to the back lane. The space is about forty wide and a hundred odd feet long. All the walls have the original insulation. The current owner used to keep caravans in there. That was another one of his businesses.”
“You don’t use, or need that space?”
“No. We can easily cope with the current space because our turn-over of product is so quick. Do you need to use it?”
Willow looked at her two grinning friends.
“Rehearsal space and recording studio. We just need to build a soundproof entry with a door big enough to take amps and take away the lift-up door. Can we go right through?”
He flicked a switch under the light switch.
“That locks the lift-up door.”
They walked down the room, noting the mess, a couple of older forklifts, and some old caravan chassis parts. At the other end was another lift-up door. He hit a red button and the door shot up, to reveal a room big enough to take a couple of cars, and the outside wall with a barred window and a set of double doors on one side, with a similar space the other side that had been boarded up, leaving a single door.
“That is the way to the lane down the back. It’s just wide enough to swing a small caravan on the jockey wheel. He couldn’t get in from the other end because of the racking. I never had the keys to this entry. If you’re coming in this way, you have some parking, but it isn’t huge. If you shortened the cool store, you could create more parking. You could put a soundproof wall inside the cool store and create a rest room and then a control room with the recording and mixing. There’s a hundred feet of space, so you could close off the wall at the other end, lose fifty feet and still end up with a decent recording studio.”
The three friends and Wilhelm smiled.
“What do you think, Mister Epstein?”
“I love it. You get an investment property and a secret rehearsal space, already insulated. OK, there’s work to be done. If the cooling is on a platform on the roof, we could replace it with a reverse-cycle system to keep you hot or cool. It would need to have a baffled set of airways to allow you to be in it for some time. We would need to install some chemical toilets as I didn’t notice any water taps. Is it possible to link with your water lines, sir?”
“Yes, not a problem. The toilets in the other shed back on to this one. We could put a tee in and pipe water into here, with another pipe to the sewer. I doubt that you would use much water. The cooling unit has a big capacity power supply that you could tap off of and run the power to points inside using plastic tubing.”
“Sir. If we make an offer and it’s accepted, we will use another agent to take care of the tenancy, probably on new terms. We will need to discuss this further, but I expect that we will offer you a reduction if you allow us access to the upper offices and this space at the back. We will remove the cooling system and create a separation between your workshop and our part of the space. We will be able to work from this end, so we don’t mess with your operation. Now, don’t say anything to that agent in his car. As far as he’s concerned, we looked and will be in touch.”
“Not having to deal with that guy would be a bonus.”
“We may be in touch to let the rest of the band have a look. They’ll be part owners if we buy.”
“Anytime. I’ll have a list of needed repairs for you to look at, with estimated costs. If you ask me, the current owners are on the shady side, and haven’t kept up with my requests.”
They backtracked and turned the lights off, closing the door. Back in the open air, they shook hands with the manager, took his business card, and went towards their car. The agent was reading a saucy novel in his car. Wilhelm tapped on his window, and he got out.
“See what you came to see?”
“We did, thank you. The buyers need to talk to their partners before they decide. We will contact you in a week or so if they want to make an offer.”
“The price is set.”
“There is a very large amount of unusable space in that shed, which will take a couple of hundred thousand to turn into usable space. It wasn’t noted in the paper we were given. The offer will be for the whole building, and the current owners will lose the use of that space, if they did expect to have access without permission. Talk to them and expect an offer of something less than one and a quarter.”
“What about settlement period?”
“If they accept the offer, settlement will be inside a week.”
They got into the car and Wilhelm drove back towards Stoneleigh.
“Even without the prospect of a studio, that’s quite a good investment property. The tenant is riding the wave of on-line sales, which is unlikely to drop off for years. If he does need to shrink, you could still let him use the one big shed and clear the long one for car parking. That way, you could brick up the back entry with just a fire escape door and use the back area as a storeroom. If you get dropped off at the front, you could walk into the place from that end.”
“We need to get quotes on the building changes and the installation of the studio.”
“You will, Willow. If I were you, I’d replace the roller door to that workshop with a wall, an entry, and put the restroom and toilets at that end, then the control room, with the playing space at the far end. That way, you can replace the roller at the far end with soundproof double doors, so you don’t have far to carry heavy amplifiers. That way, you won’t have to demolish any walls. I expect that there might be a lot of asbestos in them, considering the age of the building.”
“We’ll need to talk to a specialist door company to replace the doors to the lane with something secure.”
They thanked Wilhelm for taking them, when they arrived at Willow’s house.
“Look, you three. You’ve given me something to think about other than farming. It’ll be something to think about when Rick and Rach take over. I’ll be happy to be your unpaid assistant with the properties. It will get me out of the house. Rosalie may even get involved. We’re too young to be relegated to bingo and card afternoons.”
“You’re on, Mister Epstein. We’ll just have to see how it pans out. If we go back with the band, we’ll arrange it for our security team take us there in the people movers, straight after school. We should be able to show them what we need to in almost the same time as a long orchestra session.”
Jacob said that he would ring Herb to see if he would be able to talk to the others.
She went in to have lunch with her parents.
“How was it, honey?”
“Good, Mum. The investment is sound, but there was a surprise.”
“Oh? Something bad?”
“No. Good. There’s one of the buildings that’s very long, and the tenant doesn’t use half of it because it’s built as a cold store. He doesn’t mind us using it, as it has access to a rear lane. We were discussing the ways we can turn it into a permanent rehearsal room and recording studio, so we don’t need to use the school, or the club all the time. It already has insulated walls, so would just need acoustic tiles to make it soundproof. It looks, at the moment, like the answer to our prayers. We’ll have to organise for the others to look at it after school. Possibly next Tuesday if Sebastian and his mates will drive us.”
“Well, it will be a band need, so should come under their contract.”
In the afternoon they went into the city to check the organ music. The Dean was back and greeted them.
“Good afternoon, ladies. I have some good news for you. Our usual organist is back in the country with his son transferred to a specialist unit in Birmingham. If my maths is correct, we have Gina next week and you will finish the contract the week after. We’re all grateful for your help and for improving the size of the congregation. He will take the next couple of weeks to see a few of his family and friends but will be here in two weeks to thank you, himself. Do you think that Gina will be able to join you on the Saturday?”
“I’m sure she’ll be happy to come in. We start the school holidays that week. Will he be coming to the concert next weekend?”
“I don’t know. It would be good if he can. I’ll have to check and get him a couple of seats.”
Willow went up and got settled, warmed up with the Bach and played all the hymns and songs for Sunday. When she came down, the Dean came over.
“I called him, and he didn’t know about the concert, so I’ve organised tickets for him on the Sunday evening. Good job you reminded me.”
Wendy drove them home, where they changed to go to the club. Ashley had gone earlier, and they joined him there. They had dinner and people were going through to the back room as they ate.
“Aren’t these people a bit early, Dad.”
“It’s seems the normal thing, lately. Malcolm is back there with the booking list to make sure that there’s nobody who hasn’t booked.”
They were joined by Gina and Maisie, Jacob and Racheal, and sat while everyone had their dinner. Ashley was told about the property and their thoughts for it.
“I wondered what you would get up to with that money. If you get seven properties, each one of you will get a steady return.”
“So will the tax office, Dad.”
Still chuckling, they went through to the back room and the three went up on the stage to conduct the sing-along. They weren’t allowed to leave before they had sung some of the hits. Most of the crowd sang along with the Carpenters, and most of the women sang along with ‘Her Day’.
On Sunday, Willow and Wendy were at the Cathedral for the morning service. They went to the music store in Birmingham to see the manager and ask about the purchase of their own set of amplifiers, suitable for a rehearsal room, and came away with prices. They had a quick lunch at the Bullring and were back at the Cathedral for Evensong.
They stopped at the club for dinner, and then went home. Willow got on to the rest of the band and proposed a visit to view the property on Tuesday after school, asking them all to tell their parents that they would be late home but with the usual security detail. That evening, she sat with her mother to watch Band Spot, which featured the first two bands. The compere announced that the two albums would be in the shops on Wednesday, and that the next week’s show would be Summer Rose.
On Monday morning, she asked Sebastian if he would drive them to Leicester after school on the next day to look at an interesting property, and if the other crew would be happy to bring the rest of the band. He said that it would be a pleasure and called the other vehicle on the radio, to find out that they were happy, and had already been asked by Herb, the first pick-up. At lunch, Willow asked Xavier if he wanted to come along and cast his eye on a project, telling him that he would be taken, and brought home, by their security. He said that he would let them know in the morning.
She also spoke to Geoff and Zara, in a large group of students who had seen the program, to congratulate them on the record deal, and then went to the members of the wind section to get their email details, now that they were going to be part of the band.
She went to the afternoon lessons, thinking about the size of Summer Rose now. It started at two, went to three, then four, then seven, and now eleven. The newer members were Bryan, who played both tenor and alto saxophone; Edward, who played French Horn and tuba; Vivienne with flute and pan pipes, and Nancy with trumpet and trombone.
After school, she rang Mervyn at the property, telling him that the whole band would be with him about five the next day. He told her to expect a lot of his staff to want photos with them. That evening, she added the wind section to the team and sent them a welcoming message as now being officially members of the band. She knew that they would get a real shock in a few weeks when they got their first statement, having just being paid by the club.
Tuesday, on the way in, Willow and Gina agreed on making the last Friday of the term as the night of their birthday party. They agreed that Willow would send out an email to the whole band inviting them and their parents. If they all came, that would be more than thirty there without other friends. They would talk about it on Wednesday at the choir practise.
Xavier said that he was able to join them, and the afternoon dragged. Finally, the school finished and both vehicles were on the way to Leicester. When they arrived, there was a good half an hour of selfies before they were able to show the others the real reason for the visit. Xavier wondered why he was along for the ride until Mervyn put the first roller door up and put the lights on. They all went inside, and Willow asked them to stop and listen.
“This was built as a cool store, so is fully insulated, with a cooling unit on the roof that we think can be replaced by a reverse-cycle system. At the moment, we’re not thinking of removing any walls. The door we just came through will be removed with the space bricked up and insulated, with just a single air lock door which we would use if we warned the tenant we’re coming. Where we’re standing will be fitted out as a rest room, kitchen and toilet block, piggybacking on the water and sewerage from the next-door building. Power will be brought in from the cooling section, if we can. Further on will be a control room with the mixing board and recording equipment. There will be a stud wall between the two. There will be a door to the studio section, which will go to the far wall, with a soundproofed door to the room beyond. That has an area behind it big enough to park a couple of cars. There is access to the lane outside, but we’ll need to fit secure doors instead of the old wooden ones there.”
The rest of the band explored the space, with Mervyn going to the other end to put the roller door up. Willow stood with the four security men and wondered what her friends would think of the plan. Sebastian cleared his throat.
“May I say something, Willow?”
“Of course, Sebastian.”
“We have a contact who makes specialised security doors. What do you want down the other end?”
“When we get ownership, we need to break the outer doors down. We don’t have a key and the doors are only wood. I’d like some input, but something steel, with locking pins, that opens inwards. There’s not enough space in the lane to get enough speed to ram raid them, and we want to retain the unobtrusive look. Perhaps one side which can be extra secure, and an opening side that has a few pins that engage. I’m thinking of fire escape doors with a ‘No Parking’ sign on the outside.”
Max grinned.
“That’s well thought out. I used to be a builder. What are the walls?”
“I expect that they are an outer brick, with wood or steel frame, heavy insulation filling, and a heavy board inside. I’m worried that the filling may have asbestos. This was a cool room, not a refrigerator. We’ll put a stud wall between the rest room and control room. The wall from the control room to the studio will be a lot of soundproof triple glazed glass and a soundproof wall. That’s readily available from the installer of the equipment. Where the roller doors are, we’ll copy the original wall. We’ll add a layer of soundproof tile to the studio section, with the electrics and other cabling in channels.”
“That has had a lot of thought. You would have been in a recording studio, so you know a lot more about it than I do. You will need an architect to draw it all up and submit for building approval. I expect that the main thing that you’ll have to prove is the lack of escaping sound.”
“Yes, we’ll need to consult with a sound specialist to design the air inlets to minimise that. I’m worried that it may be a bit airless when we play, so that might need some extra input.”
“You sound like you’ve made your mind up.”
“I did when I first saw it. There’s the whole upper floor of the office that we can use. It can be the base for the designers.”
The roller door at the far end went down and the others came back. Willow thanked Mervyn for his help and told him that he would be contacted later. He gave her the list of problems that needed to be addressed, and she passed that to Jacob to show his father. The group went out and stood in the carpark.
“Hands up all those who think we should buy the property and turn this into a recording studio?”
Every hand went up.
“Thank you, friends. I’ll send out team emails to keep you up to date. We will be using Jacob’s father as our point man. He is a director of the syndicate and has offered to help us in his retirement. Time to go home, see you tomorrow.”
They got in the vehicles and drove back towards Coventry. Xavier sat next to Willow.
“Thank you for bringing me today. It’s been great. I’ll investigate the mixing and recording units and get back to you. I expect that it will be a couple of months before that’s installed. Will you be advertising for an operator?”
“We’re not doing this as a place where we record others, Xavier. There’s not enough space around here for more than a couple of cars. No, it will purely be a Summer Rose and friends rehearsal and recording studio. Will you be happy to run the board when we get serious? We will also need Frank and Dave and will pay by the hour, along with listing on everything we issue.”
“Are you kidding. A chance to run something as up to date as you can get. I’d ride my bike from home to get here! What will you put into the studio?”
“I thought four or five, hundred-watt Marshalls, a grand piano, a proper organ rather than a keyboard, drums, and whatever else we think of at the time. I liked the sound that we get from the glass harp, and Brent will have a load of different percussion which he’ll want.”
It was a very happy Xavier who got out at home, and Sebastian drove the others back to Stoneleigh. When Jacob got out, he said that he would tell his father of the decision.
The next day, Sebastian had a card from the door specialist, and Max had a card for a builder who specialised in renovations. The lunch was more subdued, with nothing spoken about the visit to other students. The trip home was quiet as well. It was if the property and the project had made the whole band realise that this was getting serious.
That evening, Gina and Willow planned more of the party. Gina was going to email Peter to book G-Force to play for them, Malcolm was told that they would book the back room as if it was a reception, and to organise enough birthday cake for two hundred and fifty. Willow mentioned that they should invite the Russells and the Bishop. The choir was invited, that evening, along with Tom and his family. Willow had some of the friends she had made at school, like Dianne and Barbara. Gina knew a lot more. The ended up with a likely list of just over two hundred.
Back home, Willow related what they had decided to her mother, who told her that she would organise invitations to be printed for delivering next week. In all the excitement, Willow had almost forgotten what would be happening from the next day, the concert in the Cathedral had arrived.
Thursday, school threw up one surprise. Willow was named as Goal Defence on the netball team and given a note for her mother. The school had arranged for the sports supplier to organise two sets of netball outfits for each member of the team and the reserves. The coach would take them from the school on the Tuesday and Wednesday and drop them back there at around normal school times. They were asked to make sure that the first set they wore had been cleaned, in case they were in the semi-finals on Thursday.
Later that afternoon, the orchestra were taken out to two coaches and followed the truck with all the instruments to the Cathedral. When they arrived, there was a couple of OB trucks and a load of cables snaking into the Cathedral. They all helped place the chairs and the music stands on a raised platform, then placed the instruments in next to the chairs. The two Yamahas were brought in and connected to the power and linked to the PA system, with only the speakers at their end of the building used. Willow looked around and then went to Miss Russell.
“Miss Russell, a moment, please.”
“Yes, Willow, what is it?”
“At school, I practised the first item on the Yamaha, then stayed on it for ‘Carnival’. Here, I expect that they’ll want me to play the organ.”
“Ah! I think you might be right. If you start up there, solo, you’ll have to keep out of sight until we’re ready for ‘Carnival’. I suppose that you could take your place during the applause. Let’s talk to Howard about this.”
They went over to where Mister Bamborough was organising the cello pads.
“Excuse me, Howard. Willow has just brought an oversight to my attention. If she’s up with the organ for the first item, she’ll need to be able to join the others for ‘Carnival’. She’ll need to stay out of the way if we do ‘Danse Macabre’ first. If you point to first violin for special applause, she can slide in to sit at the keyboard.”
“That will mean that you’ll be playing solo in the standard black dress, Willow.”
“I don’t mind, sir. I keep telling others that we’re all part of the orchestra, just doing something special. I can spend the whole evening in the black dress. I know that the Bishop would probably want me to stand out, but if I stand out, then Gina should as well. It would look funny with the two of us in gold dresses in the middle of all that black.”
“All right. Hilda, let Gina know what we’re doing, and why. Then call the Head to let her know.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 8
The orchestra started to sort themselves out, get comfortable and tune up. The school choir came in, having stayed to the end of the day and being brought by the two people movers. When Yvonne was heading for her place, she stopped by Willow.
“I just met your driver, Sebastian. He’s quite a hunk, you lucky girl.”
“I’ve never noticed, Yvonne. He is very helpful and could be described as good looking.”
“Says the girl who he takes home at night.”
“But, Miss Yvonne, he has a chaperone in Max. We’re never alone!”
Giggling, Yvonne joined the school and the Cathedral choirs and sort out the spacing of the chairs. The sound man from the BBC went up and spoke to Mister Bamborough, who stepped onto his rostrum and called for silence.
“Listen up, everyone. When the BBC have set out their microphones, they want us to do a sound check. They’re using the camera positions from last time and just need to settle on an initial mix. When they’re ready, Willow will play the first item, then remain at the organ to play the last movement of the symphony. Then we can go home if it’s considered good. Tomorrow, all the girls have the long black dresses, and all the boys with blue shirts and black slacks, with no sports shoes, please. There will be a tea in the lunchroom and then you can change on Friday. There will be a pick-up by two coaches starting from five on the other two days.”
Willow went towards the stairs, passing Jacob helping the double basses set up. Now he was in the orchestra, he was roped in to help out, and would be in orchestra uniform on performance days to help with ushering duty. He stopped what he was doing to give Willow a quick kiss. She went up to get the organ ready and played Bach for a few minutes until she saw the technicians walk away from the orchestra. She looked down at Mister Bamborough, who was standing with a man with headphones. The man nodded and she got a wave to start playing.
She did the movement of the ‘Seven Variations’ that she had played three times before on this organ. It struck her that she may be asked to do another encore. When she finished, she looked down as the man with the headphones listened, and then gave a thumbs up. Mister Bamborough stood on the rostrum, tapped his baton and pointed to Abbie, who stood and took the others through the tuning regime. When she sat, he raised his baton and Willow concentrated on the reflection of him in her mirror.
As the baton came down, she launched into the last movement, with a blast of sound that was very satisfying. As they played, she could hear the orchestra doing what they did best. At the choir part, the twenty voices were magnified twice, and the words echoed through the Cathedral. When they finished, she sat as the technicians agreed that they had got it right. Then she turned off and went down. The orchestra and choir were going back in the coach, while the four friends were taken to one of the people movers to be taken home.
On the way to Brent’s house, Sebastian called out.
“I’ve been told that we’re bringing you home on the next three nights, so that you’re not wandering the countryside in a nearly empty coach. They’ve given us tickets to the show, so all of us will be hearing you. What I heard tonight was impressive.”
After Gina was dropped at home, Max turned to Willow.
“We’ve seen you play pop, stadium rock and now the classics. At all of them, you’re at the top of the rankings. It started as just a job, taking teenagers around. You’ve all made it the best job we ever had. Your manager has contracted us to the end of term, so we’ll be seeing you all until the end of July.”
“Thank you, Max and Sebastian. How would you like to bring your partners to our birthday party, in the Community Club tomorrow week? It’s just around the corner, opposite the church. It starts about six-thirty.”
“We would love to. They’ve been getting on our backs to get autographs.”
She went into her house and had a bite to eat after changing. In her room, she hung away the gold dress that Wendy had pulled out to relax and pulled out the black dress that she had bought to take part in orchestral events. She told her mother of the change, as well as the fact that the usual vehicle would be bringing them home, so would be earlier than wandering around the countryside in a coach. Her parents had tickets for the Saturday evening, along with Maisie and the Epstein’s.
Friday, school dragged. Lunch was a bunch of excited orchestra players, and after the lessons, they all went to the lunchroom to have an evening meal. Afterwards, they all went to their lockers to change. They assembled at the school entrance and were ticked off a list. It wasn’t far to the cathedral, and they all went in. The four friends took their bags with them, leaving them in the Chapter House. Jacob was excited to be part of it all, even if he wasn’t playing. He went off to report for duty with ushering.
Willow, Gina, and Brent went out to make sure that their positions were right. Gina and Willow made sure that both Yamahas were set to grand piano, and then Willow went up to make sure that the organ was ready to play. The leader stood and took them through a tune-up, then they all went into the Chapter House to wait to be led out again. They tried to relax, but it seemed as if it was forever before the door opened. The leader led them out to take their places with polite applause. Willow went to stand at the stairs. After the choir had taken their places, there was another tuning session. Mister Bamborough came out, to applause, gave her a tap on the arm, and she went up to the organ to settle down. She looked in her mirror until there was quiet and the conductor nodded. After the Allegro movement, there was applause and she stood to look down and bow. Then the conductor turned to the orchestra and tapped his baton. The noise died and then they played the ‘Danse Macabre’ as Willow came down the stairs and stood out of sight.
When that ended, she walked quickly to the keyboard as the leader was stood to be acknowledged. Gina held out her fist and they had a quick fist-pump. Then the baton was tapped once more, and they were into the ‘Carnival’.
The two Yamahas, through the PA, was easily the dominant sound when they were playing. Zara was magnificent with the Swan, and the whole item was as mocking, and as playful, as the composer had wanted. When they finished, there was good applause and some cheering. The orchestra had to bow three times, with Gina, Willow, and Zara picked out for their own input. When they left the floor, they all went to the Chapter house, where there was a line-up for the women’s toilets until the gents were finally empty, which made things move quicker.
All too soon, they were getting ready to return. Mister Bamborough held Willow back until the leader had finished the tuning and sat down. He took Willow’s hand and led her out, as the orchestra rose, and the audience applauded. She left him at the stairs and took her place at the organ. He tapped his baton for quiet, then led the orchestra into the first movement. All Willow had to do was wait until her input was needed, a gentle intrusion in one of the movements. Her time came in the last movement with that blast of sound. When the choir sang, she looked at the camera and sang along.
When they reached the finale, there was a few moments of silence until the conductor turned to the audience, then there was cheering and applause. He motioned for Willow to come down and stand with him. The orchestra was standing as she walked towards the podium, and it seemed as if the entire room was applauding her. She bowed with Mister Bamborough, as the orchestra bowed again. Then he led her towards the Chapter house with Abbie leading the others behind them. Jacob and the rest of the school helpers were already there, and he gave both Willow and Gina hugs.
Miss Russell called out to remember to be at the school at five on Saturday to be on the coach. Jacob rounded up Brent and the girls.
“I saw our transport park before the show. I’ll take you out if you grab your bags.”
The girls had their school outfits in the garment bags, while Brent had his in a cymbal bag. Jacob picked up his backpack and they waved to Miss Russell on the way out. The public wasn’t using the door that the players were, so they were able to get outside easily. At the transport, a suited Max was there with a woman about the same age.
“Hello, you lot. Ready to go home?”
“You bet, Max. It’s been a long day. Is this Mrs. Max, then?”
“Willow, meet my wife, Jasmin. Jasmin, this is Willow Rose, the organist, Gina Summer, one of the pianists, Brent was on percussion, and Jacob plays guitar, so wasn’t playing tonight.”
They got into the vehicle and Jasmin turned to speak to them.
“So, you four are the Summer Rose Quartet that made the Carpenters album?”
“We are. The band is now eleven of us. Four of our wind players are also in the orchestra but don’t get the sort of service that we enjoy, yet.”
At Brent’s house, Gina got out with him, and they shared a kiss before she got back in. At Jacob’s house, Willow got out and they did something similar. On the way to Gina’s home, Jasmin asked if they did that every night, to be told that it was only for special events and was likely to happen again over the weekend. At Gina’s house, both girls stood and hugged.
“See you at the Cathedral tomorrow, friend. Mum’s taking me in for the practise, so we’ll be in town.”
On the way to Willow’s home, Jasmin asked why Gina was going to be already at the Cathedral.
“She is taking her turn on the organ Sunday, for the service and Evensong. Saturdays, we go and run through the entire list, with the choir there to sing. Often, there’s quite a crowd of sightseers that sing along. It’s quite a happy occasion. I’ll be doing it for the last time on the next weekend, and then their usual organist is back in the seat after that. We’ve been alternating for about fourteen weeks.”
At her home, she bade them goodnight and unlocked her front door, going in and getting undressed. She hung the black dress and went to cleanse, before putting on a nightie and gown, going to the kitchen join her parents with a nightcap before falling into bed.
She was allowed to sleep late on Saturday and woke refreshed. She dressed casually and went to the church to check out the hymns. Reverend Russell greeted her.
“Good morning, Willow. My sister rang this morning to pass on her appreciation of your performance last night. She told me that the TV crew were happy with the result, and that they will still be there tonight for the live performance. She asked me to tell you to have an encore handy, and that they would like you to do the national anthem at the very end, then get straight down to stand beside Howard.”
“All right. I’ll see what I can find. Something simple for tomorrow, I hope.”
“On the keyboard.”
She went up, fired up ‘Old Betsy’ and played through the hymns, all something she had played before. She went home and turned her laptop on to look at something by Saint-Saens that would be good for an encore. She found a piece called ‘Elevation ou Communion in E Major’, written in eighteen sixty-five, which she found fascinatingly simple. There was also ‘Benediction Nuptiale in F Major’, written in eighteen fifty-nine. Both were simple keyboard pieces that ran about six minutes.
She downloaded both sets of music and played them on her Nord. By the third time, she could play them without needing the music. She went back out and to the church. On the way in the reverend popped his head out of the tearoom.
“Back again?”
“I’ve found two early works by Saint-Saens which I want to try on the organ. They’re both good to play before or after a service as they were both written for a church organ. Tell me what you think?”
She went up and turned the fans on again. He went and sat in the pew nearest the sweet spot and waited. What he heard was his organ playing something so sweet, it brought tears to his eyes. Both pieces were, to him, wonderful. With one, he could hardly breathe. When Willow turned off and came down, he hugged her and the tears in his eyes told her everything that she wanted to know.
“Will either one be good after the symphony and before the King?”
“They will be good at any time, Willow. If the Bishop isn’t crying, then I’m buying you lunch tomorrow.”
She left him and walked over to the club, to join her parents for a lunch. In the afternoon, she played the two pieces again a couple of times and the anthem to make sure she had it right. Then she got ready for the performance, starting with a shower. Sebastian picked her up, wearing a suit, with his wife, Andrea, next to him. She was a hugger and already had a CD for Willow to sign. At Jacob’s house, he got the same treatment, as did Brent.
At the Cathedral, Gina was already there and got the hug and signing treatment, looking at Willow, who just shrugged. They said hello to Maisie and then went to the Chapter House to wait for the others. Miss Russell was there already.
“Do you have an encore, Willow?”
“I have, Miss Russell. It’s a very early church piece by Saint-Saens, gentle and a good intro to the anthem.”
“All right. As long as it fits. I had thought that you may do one of the other movements from the ‘Seven Variations’.”
They relaxed as the rest of the orchestra arrived and checked their instruments that had been stored there overnight. Jacob went off to do his duties. Gina leaned close to Willow.
“At the beginning of term, I never knew that Jacob played the guitar, never thought that he would have the nerve to play publicly, let alone tell important people where to go, even it is showing them where to sit. He has constantly surprised me.”
“He has only found that he can do these things by trying, Gina. I could say the same thing about you last year. You found the bravery to try things, and then found the inner woman.”
“All thanks to you, my friend. Without your own abilities to lean on, I would still be nothing.”
“You would never have been nothing, Gina. You would have broken free of the chains sooner or later. I just helped it be sooner. I’ve invited our security guys to our party, by the way. They’ve become friends with seeing them so often. Sebastian impressed Yvonne as a hunk, but I can take his wife or leave her.”
“She is a bit full-on, isn’t she?”
“I doubt that she’s met girls with a gold record before. It’s just being a fan. When we go out for signings, we’ll meet a lot more like her. Being huggable is something we’ll just have to accept.”
Mister Bamborough came over to them.
“Willow, I’m told that you have an encore that fits the occasion.”
“Yes sir. It’s a very early opus written for use in a church.”
“I’ve brought in the scores for the anthem. When the audience is applauding you after you play the encore, I want you to stand and bow. When you sit, Brent will give a roll on the timpani’s and the whole orchestra will be playing along with you. As soon as it finishes, come on down to be with everyone for a final bow.”
“Understood, sir. We just need to get enough applause to warrant an encore.”
“We live in hope, Willow, but we’re increasing the number of voices for the choir so give that last movement everything you’ve got. This is going out live, tonight, and the BBC will be gone tomorrow.”
The orchestra settled down, had comfort stops, and then lined up to go on stage. Willow, at the end of the line, spoke to Yvonne.
“The hunk has brought his wife, tonight. She’s a celebrity hugger but seems nice enough.”
“I guess that’s the price of fame, fortune, and adorability, Willow.”
The doors opened and everyone except Willow and the conductor walked out, with applause greeting them. They settled and went through the tuning.
“Good crowd tonight, Willow. Lots of important people.”
“That’s good for the school, isn’t it, sir?”
“Very good. Now, let’s go and entertain them.”
He took her hand, and they walked out to applause. He paused for a moment before letting go of her hand. He went to the rostrum, and she went up to the organ, making sure that it was all set. The audience settled and the baton was tapped. He nodded to Willow, and they were off on the wild ride that is performance.
The first half went as expected, with more appreciation than the previous night. After the break, they repeated the process to be in place. The orchestra started playing before Willow needed to add her input. With the last movement, she hit the keys rather than pressing them, and the orchestra played with added energy. When the choir came in sounding like sixty voices, the movement ended with a rush of energy that seemed to leave a vacuum as it ended. The applause was deafening, and the conductor picked out the stand-out players before pointing up at the organ.
There were calls for ‘More!’ and Willow turned to sit. The audience sat and quietened. Mister Bamborough was waiting to be surprised by what Willow had chosen, expecting something intricate and flamboyant. What he heard was a gentle wave of sustained notes that fitted the surroundings perfectly. He looked at the audience, many with their eyes closed, and a few crying quietly. When Willow finished, there was silence for several seconds, then the audience were on their feet. Willow stood and bowed, Mister Bamborough turned to the orchestra, baton raised. When Willow sat, he brought the baton down to start the anthem.
Those who hadn’t stood, now did, and they sang with gusto. At the end, there was cheering, and Willow walked from the stairs to join the conductor, with Abbie, the leader, on his other side. A grinning Jacob came out of the Chapter House with two sheaves of flowers, giving one to Willow and one to Abbie. Then, with Howard leading, they all left the stage to go to the Chapter House.
Tonight was different. Everyone was extra excited by what they had achieved. The teachers knew that they had produced a memorable evening of TV viewing, confirmed by the Head when she joined them to hug everyone in sight. She was followed by the Bishop, several local politicians, members of the local council and a few celebrities.
The Head, mindful that there was a room full of young teens, made sure that they were allowed to leave to get on the coach and get some sleep. The four friends left, with Willow carrying her flowers. They saw Sebastian and the three went to him after the girls had a hug, Gina going off to find her mother. In the vehicle, Willow gave Andrea the flowers as a short-lived keepsake, which brought on a long hug. Then they were taken home. When Willow got out, she told the couple not to forget the party on Friday night, then unlocked the door and went in.
She was home before her parents, so went up to her room to undress first, giving the black dress a sniff. She hung it on a hook and pulled out a similar one to wear on Sunday, then stripped off to have a shower before dressing for bed. Her parents had arrived, and she was hugged and kissed when they saw her, then they all sat in the kitchen with hot drinks while they raved about the performance, with Ashley checking the recorder to see that he had captured it on disc.
Sunday morning, the church was filled with villagers who had watched the show, and Willow was hugged, almost to death. At the club, it was a jolly group that watched Gina perform at the Cathedral for the last time. Willow hoped that it wouldn’t be the last time for either of them. They had lunch in the club and Willow and her mother walked home.
“That encore, love. I’ve never heard it before. It was so sweet and seemed to surround us all with love.”
“It’s his Opus Nine, Mum. I came across it yesterday. It’s called the ‘Nuptial Benediction’, so I expect that it had been written for some special marriage at the time. It’ll be handy if I do more weddings.”
She pottered about, asking Wendy if she could take the dress to the dry cleaners on Monday. Then she showered and dressed to be picked up for the final performance. She felt proud at what the orchestra had achieved. When it had been announced that they would do the concert, it had seemed like a giant hill to climb. Now, they had reached the top of that hill, with a bigger one beyond it in the form of the Messiah.
Jack, one of the other team, picked her up today. His was a bit older than the usual team and called her ‘Miss Rose’. His wife was called Emerline and a bit shy. Willow tried to thaw them out with chat, and, by the time they picked up Jacob, they had broken the ice. He knew where to go to get Brent. Emerline wanted to know where Gina was, and was told that, about this time, she would be on the Cathedral organ playing for Evensong.
When they walked in, the first person to come over was Sally.
“Hello! Hasn’t this been great! I never thought that I would sing in here, but Dad told me that it would be good for my development. Mum’s here tonight, to hear me and enjoy the concert. Last night was a real blast! Dad told me that we’re invited to your party next Friday. What should I bring?”
“Just yourself, Sally. I don’t need anyone to give me things except love and their presence. Do you know if Chris, the usual organist is here?”
“He was here last night with a few of his friends. He said that there were a few other organists that he knew and has been getting in touch with them. Dad had to pull a few strings to get them seats.”
“The Dean told me that he would be here next Saturday when I come for the practise session. He told me to make sure I bring Gina as well. I expect that he wants to thank us for holding the fort while he’s been away.”
They moved towards the Chapter House to wait for the start of the show. They found Gina, having just changed into her black dress.
“How was it today, friend?”
“Really good. Several people wanted to tell me how good the concert was. Mum went home as I started Evensong. Are we doing the ultra-ending again?”
“We’ll need to ask that, but it did work well. Dad recorded it but we haven’t watched it. One thing that Sally reminded me of. The usual organist is back and was here last night. I’ve been asked to bring you with me when I come next Saturday. You’ll need to check in the church in the morning, then come to mine. I’ll get Mum to drive us in so we can get some lunch and look in the shops before we come here.”
“All right. I’ll tell my Mum. Do you think that the others have invited their drivers to Friday night?”
“I doubt it. They are all boys, after all. I’ll talk to Jack on the way home. Thinking about the party, I wonder if we could give all the women who don’t have a pendant one as a keepsake. I like the idea of handing out gifts, rather than receiving.”
“That would be nice. If we go halves on a hundred and fifty, we’ll have plenty to hand around later on. I’ll get Peter to courier them to my place, seeing Mum is usually home. What did the gold chain ones cost?”
“I think that it was ten pounds each. I still have a few. You’ll find out on the next statement.”
They saw Mister Bamborough come in and went over to ask if they were doing the mega-finish again. He grinned.
“That’s something that everyone will be upset about if we leave it out. I’ll set the rest up for that before we go out. That was one of the most amazing encores I’ve ever heard. It should never have worked after such a loud symphony, but it did. What was it?”
“It was a Saint-Saens piece, his Opus Nine, and called the ‘Nuptial Benediction’. I found it when I was looking for something of his to play. There was another, about the same length, but that was even more sleep-inducing.”
“I wondered if it may be a good opening item at the Proms, so that it settles everyone down. It sounded simple enough for you to play on their organ.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 9
When Willow and the conductor followed the orchestra after the tuning, she saw that the place was as packed as it had been on the two previous nights. For her, it was sit and repeat; for the audience it was all new and wonderful. There was good applause with each item, and her passage back to the Yamaha was much easier without all the cables.
The symphony was as good as before, with the last movement as strong as the Saturday night. The encore and the anthem did what it needed to do. When the four friends got in the transport, Willow gave her flowers to Emerline, who had softened enough to give her a hug. Gina asked Jack if they had been invited to the party on Friday, and he said that he hadn’t.
“Willow and I both turn fourteen this coming week and have decided to have a joint party at the Community Club on Friday evening. There will be G-Force entertaining us, but we can’t promise not to want to be on stage. No presents needed. Let your partner in the other people mover know that he’s invited as well.”
After Gina had been dropped off, Willow pointed out the club as they passed. Saying goodnight to the couple, she got out and went inside. He parents were still up, and she stripped and got ready for sleep, then joined them for a hot drink before going off to bed.
Monday morning, she found it hard to wake up, but was ready to go when Sebastian arrived. He was almost too chipper but made her smile when he told her that she had sounded like the thunder god on the organ. Gina was also bleary-eyed, but Jacob was as bright as a button. Gina asked Willow what she was doing on her actual birthday. Willow told her that they would probably go to the steakhouse for dinner.
At school, Miss Russell told them to go to the theatre and wait with the others there. They found several of the orchestra sitting in the seats. There was some hi-fiving and they waited until the rest of the orchestra and the choir joined them, joined by the teachers and the Head, who stood in front of them.
“There were some representatives from the Proms concerts there on Saturday evening, and they were very impressed. We will be working on a number of popular classics for our spot, all of which you already know. The feature piece will be the ‘Organ Symphony’ you did last week, and I know that the Grieg, the Rodrigo, and possibly one other will be the first half. It starts at seven-thirty. It will show the school in a good light and will also give us time to start on the Messiah, which will be filmed and shown on Christmas Eve. There will be a rehearsal in the Albert Hall one day before the end of this term. Keep up the good work and you’ll all be getting solid marks for your music speciality. Now, your first lesson is waiting for you. Good work on the weekend and thank you for your dedication, all of you.”
They all went off to their first lessons, where there was a smattering of applause in several classrooms. Lunch was another party, with a lot talking and smiling. The afternoon was as normal as usual. On the way home, Wilhelm came out of the farmhouse when they arrived. He put his head into the vehicle.
“I’ve made an offer on that property. I offered one point one, based on the cost of remediating the cool store. I’ve also been onto my farm insurance agent, and he has quoted me for the landlord insurance on the first property, which was good, and I paid. I showed him the papers for the one in Leicester and he’ll get back to me.”
“All good Mister Epstein. Just email a note to the syndicate and add it to the balance sheet.”
When she got home, she asked her parents what they had planned for the next day.
“But you’re having your party Friday, darling. We haven’t planned anything.”
“Not even dinner out at the steakhouse?”
“Well, I suppose we could do that, couldn’t we, honey bunch.”
“Didn’t you ring them on Saturday when I mentioned it?”
“Oh! Yes, I did. I forgot all about it. Sorry, love. We do have a reservation there.”
“Oh! You teasers! You had me going then.”
That evening, before dinner, they watched the TV show that had been recorded. Willow had to laugh at some of the comments from the compere during the breaks. What was interesting was that during the break, they replayed some of the Christmas show, the last movement of the Choral. She was named, on air, as the organist, as well as being a stand-in at the Cathedral. No mention was made of Summer Rose. After dinner, they sat to watch Band Spot, which was all Summer Rose and a lot of well-known stars talking about the wonderful new sound out of Coventry.
Tuesday was Gina’s turn in chapel, with Reg telling Willow how proud he was of her performance at the concert, especially the encore, which he said was played with a delicate touch that would attract a lot of attention from other organists.
At the orchestra session, they were told that the Proms evening, being restricted to three and a half hours, would just be opening with the Rodrigo and then the Grieg that they had already practised. The second half would be the Saint-Saens, as it’s uplifting finale fitted what the Proms was all about. They played the Rodrigo and were given an early finish.
The four of them sat in the reception area to wait for Sebastian. Jacob was excited.
“I can’t believe that we’re doing the Rodrigo on TV this summer. It’s a dream come true.”
“Have you noticed that three of us have leading spots? Jacob up first, Gina with the Greig, and me on the organ in the second half.”
Miss Russell joined them.
“I overheard you realising our master plan. You’re right, Willow. Of all the Proms that I’ve seen, very few have a soloist from within the orchestra. We plan to have three. Each of you have just the one job on the night, and that’s to do your part as best as you can. We will expect you to be wearing something to make you stand out from the orchestra, who will be in blue for this.”
“What about the choir, Miss?”
“After you have rehearsed the three items, I believe that you’ll be auditioning for additions to the choir for the Messiah. We’ll see if we can boost the choir for both events, seeing that we have a lot of current first-years who haven’t put their names forward to join. The Head has sent out a message to the best of previous choirs, asking for volunteers for the tenor and bass soloists. This year has been one of the very few that we’ve had without male voices. And there’ll be a new crop of firsts next term, a lot of young ladies with pure voices. The applications to study here have been the most we’ve had, mainly due to the exposure that you and the band has given us.”
The people mover pulled up, and the friends went and got in. On the way to Brent’s house, Jacob joked that it was unfortunate that the great masters never composed anything with a drum solo. Brent laughed.
“That may be so, but while you only get one spot each, I’ll be there in all three. However, I will miss my friend beside me on the triangle.”
On the way south, Max asked what spots they were talking about.
“We’ve just been given the plan for our performance at the Albert Hall. It’s the Monday evening of the last week of the Proms in September. Jacob is playing a guitar concerto, Gina is on the grand piano playing Grieg, and I’m on the big organ with the Saint-Saens.”
That evening, Willow and her parents had a nice meal at the steakhouse. They gave her a necklace and earring set with emeralds. The post had brought a card from her grandparents with a loving message, but nothing, as usual, from Oxford. When their waiter found out that it was her birthday, he gathered the other serving staff around their table and sang ‘Happy Birthday’ to her, much to her embarrassment and the resulting queue of other diners coming up to wish her a happy birthday as well as getting selfies.
Wednesday was a normal day, with the choir in the club that evening. Tom was getting them singing more complicated items, with a lot of hilarity and satisfaction when they got it right. Gina and Willow shared the organ duties.
Thursday, Willow was given a sheet of instructions for the netball carnival during the holidays. It would be held at the Mosely Tennis Club in Birmingham, with the four grass courts covered with a temporary wooden floor. The clay courts will be covered in a tarpaulin and marquees erected for changing rooms and eating areas. They were warned that the shower facilities were not large, so expect to end the day being smelly.
The team would be playing four games a day, in a round-robin format with a point for a draw and two points for a win. There were thirty-two schools entered, so they would have played half the number. The top four from each half would be playing off in the finals. As there were five classes by school year, that would be a lot of games being played at once. Willow was in the second-year team. They would leave the school by coach at eight-thirty, so Wendy would have to start work a little early for a couple of days.
That evening, Gina was going to Birmingham for dinner with her grandparents from her father’s side, who she really only met on her birthdays. She confided to Willow that they would find a very different fourteen-year-old this visit. She also confirmed that a hundred and fifty pendants had been delivered.
Friday was the music class, and the first time with the Gamelan instruments. There were a lot of percussion choices, and they spent most of the time trying out different drums and bells. Mister Jamieson explained the differences with Gamelan structure and normal orchestra structure, and they all had a session in playing a four-four beat, led by Brent. At the end of the session, it was explained that they would play a simple piece based on the basic rhythm, but then would overlay it with their own input.
“Most of you are musicians, so I expect that by the time we end this segment, at the beginning of July, you will be able to play an original piece to the Head and other teachers. Every piece that has been produced by these classes has been original, so I expect that you’ll add things that only you can create. Now, have a good week and wish our netball teams every success in Birmingham.”
That afternoon, the three friends were dropped off, all saying “See you tonight” as they arrived home. Willow went in and went upstairs to strip and shower. Tonight was going to be a big event for her. It was her first proper birthday party and having over two hundred invited guests made it very special. She had put on her underwear when her parents arrived home and dressed in the white dress with blue edging that she had worn before, last year. It made her feel special. After she had brushed her now full hair, applied make-up and put on the new necklace and earrings, she went to see how her parents were in getting ready. When Wendy saw her, she smiled.
“You look more like sixteen than fourteen, love. Just try and make sure that you don’t spill drink or ice cream on that dress. Are you excited?”
“I am, Mum. It’s a big event for me, my first real birthday party. I hope that it will be a lot of fun.”
The family walked to the club. Malcolm was setting up.
“Fabulous show on Sunday, Willow. We were absolutely blown away by the second half. I’ve heard you play here on a Sunday, but that organ was something else again. It made my insides shake. It must be satisfying to play.”
“It is, Malcolm. The sound isn’t so bad at the keyboard, as the pipes are directed outwards, but I have to admit that I’ll miss playing it after next Sunday.”
She walked through to the back room and stopped in her tracks. There were streamers all over, the tables all had a big candle in the middle, surrounded by covered plates, except for a few near the stage. She walked over to look. On one, were three boxes with fifty pendants each that Maisie must have brought over today. On another was big stacks of plates and eating utensils. But, between them were two tables that had full-size copies of the two Yamahas, even down to the white and black keys. Malcolm came up behind her.
“What do you think? One of our helpers has a daughter in the city who specialises in custom cakes. The base is a straight sponge and cream layer cake, and the icing is dyed to suit, with one set of keys made from white chocolate and the other with dark.”
Willow turned and gave him a hug and kissed his cheek.
“I love it! As well as the rest of the room. I think that we’ll have some fun tonight. I see that you pulled out both organs. Do you expect some of us may want to have a play?”
“I know you, young lady. Any chance you get to play never passes you by. We’re having a little party here on Sunday morning, straight after church, to watch the stream of your last turn in the Cathedral.”
“Never say ‘last’, Malcolm. Who knows what’s around the corner. I know that I’ll be playing violin the next time we have a concert there, but the original organist is back, and he doesn’t have any holidays left. When we get to cut the cake, we’ll be handing out pendants to all the ladies in the room, so make sure that all those in the kitchen come out to get one.”
Gina and Maisie came in, with Gina in a stunning black dress with sparkles. Maisie commented that when they stood together, they looked like a black and white keys on the piano. Slowly, people started to arrive, and the room filled with talk and laughter. Brent and Gina stood and kissed, followed, not long after, by Willow and Jacob when he arrived with his parents.
Zara and G-Force arrived and went onto the stage to set up. The Hikers all arrived after Rick and Racheal. All four of the security detail came with their wives, followed by the school group; the Head, all three Russells, Mister Bamborough and Mister Jamieson with their wives, with the Bishop with Tom, his wife, and Sally. All of the band arrived, in dribs and drabs, with their parents, as well as a large contingent of schoolfriends with their parents. The last to come in were the Village Choir, Margaret and her two friends, and, finally, Peter and his wife. Ten minutes later, three men walked in who Willow didn’t know had been invited. She wasn’t about to ask Clive, the CFO and the CEO of the record label to leave.
When she did get to talk to them, they all congratulated her and the school on one of the best concerts that they had been to, especially the drama of the last movement, followed by the quiet air of love that followed it.
The covers on all the plates were taken off, to reveal nibbles, crisps, small cakes. The girls from the kitchen brought out hot pies, pasties, and sausage rolls for everyone to grab. The bar was handing over free drinks and the party was a lot of eating, talking and laughing. Eventually, Malcolm, acting as the emcee, stood by the cakes and called for silence.
“Thank you for coming tonight. On behalf of Willow and Gina I must say that it’s a good turn-out. I call for the birthday girls to come forward and each cut one of these cakes.”
The two came forward and picked up two knives. Xavier, who had been snapping photos most of the night, took up pride of place in the midst of a lot of phone wielding friends. They cut through the center of both cakes and the crowd sang ‘Happy Birthday’ including both names. There was a line-up to be served a portion of cake.
When everyone was quiet, Clive walked out to the front of the stage and put a suitcase where one cake used to be.
“I think that there are some in this room who know what’s coming. On the soundcheck evening before the three great shows, we had the great pleasure in giving all of Summer Rose and the three from the technical team Gold Records, one of which I saw nicely displayed behind the bar. I would like to take a few minutes of your time. We have the Chief Financial Officer and the Chief Executive Officer to make an announcement or two. Those with cameras should be ready.”
He stepped aside as the other two came and stood beside him. One opened the suitcase and the other spoke.
“Good evening, I’m the CEO from the record label that all three of the bands in this room are contracted to. Last time I was in their presence, I gave out gold records to Summer Rose. Since then, G-Force and Rick Sacks and the Hikers have released albums, with a very good showing on Band Spot a few weeks ago. I’m happy to announce that G-Force now have their album passing the number of sales to give them a Gold Record. Please come forward and receive them.”
There was applause as the four Gees, Jim and Zara went to the front to get their awards, with Clive taking pictures. Willow was standing behind Zara’s mother, who turned to her.
“This is good, isn’t it?”
“Very good. Just make sure that you and Zara are sitting down when Peter emails you her first statement.”
When the band had received their awards and sat down, the CEO smiled.
“We have another set of Gold Records to hand out tonight, the album from Rick Sacks and the Hikers achieved Gold status during this week. Come on and get them, lads.”
When Rick was handed his, he turned to the room.
“I have to thank Willow who turned an ordinary song into a world-wide hit with her organ overdub. That allowed us to clean up our act and write the new songs that featured on this album.”
When the cheering died, and the Hikers had all sat down, the three men all had broad smiles.
“The last set of awards are for the headline act at the Belgrade. We gave them Gold Records then, and last week ‘Journey into Womanhood’ album achieved Platinum status for selling a million CDs. It has been one of the fastest to reach that point since the sixties.”
There was a lot of cheering as Willow, Gina, and the rest of the band went to collect their awards. All eleven were individually given them, with Clive taking pictures. Afterwards, Xavier received a Platinum Record for his recording work. As he was walking away, the CEO, smiled again.
“These were for sales of the CD. The DVD is selling steadily, and we expect that we will need to hand out Platinum Records to the band and all three technicians for that then. Thank you for your time, and we will stay on, if you don’t mind, to hear the bands tonight.”
Clive took the empty case out to their car, Malcolm and Ashley moved the cake tables away, and Willow led Gina to the other table.
“Tonight, has been the best birthday party in my whole life. Gina and I decided that this would be a birthday where we give back. We have these pendants that are available through the website, and we would like to give one to every female in the room. If you have one already, pass one on to another daughter or friend. Come on, girls, let’s see you all wearing one.”
As the queue formed, G-Force went up on the stage and started playing an old song from the sixties, about the girl who wears his ring around her neck. When the line had ended, Gina put the remaining box, with some pendants in, on the floor next to the stage, as Malcolm and Ashley removed the last table. Jacob and Brent came over to the girls and they started dancing as Zara began singing a love song. Before long, the dance floor was crowded.
In the course of the night, the Hikers took over, and then Summer Rose did some numbers. G-Force played out the evening with old-time twelve-bar and it was a tired, but happy, party who started to leave, thanking the girls for a great party.
Willow sat with her parents, Gina and Maisie, Brent and his parents, and Jacob, Rick and Racheal, as the casuals started to tidy up. Malcolm sat down with them.
“Are you going to let me have the next award for the DVD for the wall?”
“Of course, Malcolm. You have the Gold, it’s only right that the Platinum goes alongside. I’m hanging on to this one, though. Thank you for all the work you put into tonight, I can’t thank you enough.”
“Yes, you can. I’ll tell you how much tomorrow when you come in.”
Maisie looked at him.
“Split the cost with Gina. It’s been a fabulous night, and we’ll pay our way. If the CD has gone Platinum, I expect that the next statement is going to be interesting. It will be your first from Peter, won’t it, Rick?”
“It will. My mind may be playing tricks with me, but gold is a quarter of a million sales, right?”
Willow laughed.
“Not a quarter of a million, it’s a half a million. If you’re on four pounds a sale, the Hikers have just earned two million pounds. You’ve already been through that, but this will be the first time Zara and the Gees have seen this kind of money. I hope that they don’t let it go to their heads. Remember, your DVD must have been selling, but hasn’t reached the threshold yet, so there’ll be more on top.”
They finished their drinks and Malcolm told Ashley to go home. There was a general hugging session, and Gina, Brent, Willow and Jacob went outside for the goodnight kisses. Wendy and Ashley came out and collected Willow to go home, with Wendy clutching the award and Ashley carrying the box of remaining pendants.
“That was a lovely gesture with the pendants, love. All the girls will be wearing them now.”
“We just thought that it would be a nice highlight of the evening, Mum. I never thought that we would all get awards. I’m sure that the Head will have something to say about it when we get back in school. I saw the Bishop enjoying himself. Miss Russell picked up two and gave him one.”
“Well, he does wear a dress for his work.”
The girls were still giggling as they went into the house and got ready for bed.
On Saturday morning, Gina knocked on the door a little after eleven. She sat with Willow in the kitchen with lemonades.
“That, friend, was the best party I’ve ever had. I wonder if there’s any left-over cake. The black keys were so rich.”
“We’ll find out tonight at the dinner dance. It was great going Platinum, wasn’t it?”
“Yes. I’m happy for the wind section. This will be their first statement as band members. They will get a minimum of sixty thousand, each. Zara will be happy if she gets a sixth of two million. She’s a lovely girl who now has managed to drag herself out from under her mother’s thumb.”
“I told her mother to be sitting down when she reads the statement.”
“I think that we’ll need to do the same. You do realise that the syndicate will have another seven hundred thousand in it next month. If we get that property, we’ll still have enough to look for more, or just do the conversion and hold off for a month.”
“I’d like to get moving on the conversion. New doors first, air conditioning and a professional inspection of the walls. Then we can bring in the interior experts. Xavier is keen to run the board for us. I think that we’d better get Mum and head for the city. Time for shopping, lunch, and seeing what we’re told at the Cathedral. I’m going to be sad at not going there to play.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 10
As they were driving to Birmingham, where the girls wanted to visit the Bullring, Wendy asked them if they had enjoyed the party.
“It was fabulous, Mum. So many friends and so much cake. I don’t think I could face another slice.”
“Well, there is some left over, which Malcolm will probably have out as dessert tonight. Did you know that the label was going to be there?”
“No idea that they had planned that. What was really good was that the others got Gold Records. The Gees and Zara will be waking up this morning and pinching themselves. Grant wrote a lot of that album, so will be getting noted for that. Rick’s share, this month, will allow him to finalise the payment for the farmhouse and get a bit of new equipment. It was all good.”
“What about your income, this month, going to Platinum?”
“We’ll just have to wait to see the statement. The CD would have sold at least five hundred thousand to pass the next hurdle. There will be some income from the DVD, and some from the Belgrade shows, but it depends on costs. I expect that the first album downloads will be well down. One thing I do know, and that’s that Gina and I will have seven hundred and fifty debited for the pendants. I picked up the last box, by the way.”
“That’s all right, friend. I took a few out when they were delivered to give to my father’s family on Thursday.”
“How did that go?”
“It was funny. They hardly knew me, and it was mainly Mum and them talking about Dad before. This time, there was I, their granddaughter in the charts, and they didn’t know how to treat me. Giving out pendants broke the ice, and it turned out quite well. I have three cousins who are fans already, and they spent a lot of time with me, so the pendants were happily received.”
“That’s good. The Bishop took one. I wonder what he will do with it.”
“If he could even get it round his neck, it would clash with the big cross.”
When they had parked at the Bullring, they went shopping, with Willow looking for something to match her emerald necklace, and Gina looking for nice things to fill up her new wardrobe, having sent a lot of her old clothes to charity when she moved house. They had lunch, then went back to the Cathedral.
When they arrived, Tom came over.
“What a great party! We had a wonderful time, ate too much cake, and watched Sally dancing with one of those Hikers.”
“She has certainly become a girl who knows her own mind, now that she has a place in the choir.”
“When you’ve finished with the rehearsal, can the three of you go in the Chapter House before you leave? Chris wants to thank you for taking on the job for him, and he has a couple of his friends with him.”
Willow went up and started playing Bach to warm up. Wendy and Gina found seats, and Chris, the usual organist, sat next to Gina, with a couple of other men beside him. They sat and listened as Willow moved into the hymns for the next day, with the usual sound of singing as the choir led the sightseers and usual attendees. The Evensong items were mainly ones that a lot of people could remember, and the singing continued. The more choral pieces had the choir in full voice with Sally lifting the sound with her clear voice.
After Willow had closed down the organ, the six joined her to go into the Chapter House where there were drinks and biscuits laid out. The first thing that Chris did was to hug both Gina and Willow for the job that they had done while he was away. Then he introduced his companions.
“These two, fine upstanding gentlemen, are Evan, the organist and choirmaster of Kings College, Cambridge, and Trevor, the organist at York Minster. Gentlemen, may I present Willow Rose and Gina Summer, who have not only sat in my seat for three months, but have also increased the size of the congregation. First with their fame, and then with their playing.”
Evan took Willows hand.
“We came along last weekend to hear a school orchestra, invited by Chris. What we heard was a professional ensemble, capped with a wonderful second half. That encore piece was sublime, Miss Rose.”
“Thank you, Evan. Call me Willow, please, Miss Rose sounds like I’m in school again.”
“We were also in the Cathedral as you played on Sunday, Miss Summer. If Chris hadn’t been sitting next to us, we would have thought it was him at the keyboard.”
“I’m Gina, sir. Thank you for the praise. It has been a privilege and a pleasure for both of us over the last few months. How is your son, Chris?”
“Improving, I’m happy to say. They wouldn’t let him leave Germany until he was able to be in a wheelchair. I expect that he’ll use one for a while but is in a clinic where they are teaching him to walk again. I’ll be bringing him to the service tomorrow. He’s jumping out of his skin to hear you play, Willow. He’s a big fan of the band.”
“Why don’t you bring him to our dinner dance, tonight. In fact, why don’t you all come along. We pretend to be the Blue Coat Dance Band, but, in reality, we’re the full Summer Rose line-up. The Stoneleigh Community Club is wheelchair accessible; Margaret has a powered one and she has no problems. Your only cost will be what you eat or drink. Mum can check with Malcolm about spaces, while we’re here. What do you say?”
“That would be wonderful!”
Wendy rang the club as they all sat. When she ended the call, she said that Malcolm will set up a table for eight, so spouses were catered for. Then Evan looked at the girls.
“Look, Gina and Willow. You have done wonders here with your fame and playing. I have a similar organ in the Kings College Chapel, made by the same company. We are in negotiation with the record label that we had issued some CDs on. They are not overly interested, as our material is not a big seller on the open market. I was wondering if the two of you could come to Cambridge in the first week of your summer holidays. We want to record our choir with you. One disc with you, Gina, and another with you, Willow. All we need is the label to be interested.”
“That sounds like a lovely idea, Evan. We are both thinking to go to Cambridge when we finish school, and my grandparents live near Cambridge. Do you think that Gramps would put the two of us up, Mum?”
“They do have a bed-settee that I’ve slept on in the past. They have separate bedrooms now, because your grandfathers snoring keeps your grandmother awake. If you do arrange to go, I’ll talk to them. I expect that the College would arrange a car to transport the girls?”
“It will Mrs. Rose.”
“Mrs. Rose is my mother-in-law, please call me Wendy.”
Willow reached into her bag and pulled out a couple of business cards.
“One of these is for our manager, Peter, who handles our finances. The other is for Clive, the executive of our label, who may be interested in the CD. He does have a colleague who is a producer at Abbey Road, and they want to get the school orchestra in there to record a classical CD.”
Trevor, who had been sitting with a smile fixed on his face, leant forward.
“Can I have those as well, Willow. I’m also keen to see you on the organ at the Minster. It has been revamped recently, and we have yet to issue a new album. I would also like to do a double CD, with each of you on one, to launch the new sound. I have played it, and it has a more modern tonal range, but with a lot of the older features. It has been worked on several times since it was built in the late eighteen hundreds. We can put you up in a nearby hotel.”
“Our only arrangements, so far, are our dates with a tour on the last two weeks of August.”
“Who else is on the bill?”
“We’re opening for Blastmasters.”
All three of the men looked incredulous.
“Blastmasters! But they’re a heavy metal band. How is Summer Rose going to fit in with their audience?”
“By that time, there will be an album out called ‘The Other Side of Summer Rose’ with a lot of stadium rock. We’ve already recorded a DVD in the school covering the Moody Blues. My first concert at the school was on an organ with G-Force, playing Deep Purple. We have already given our label an album and DVD with us playing a concept album, covering Kansas. I think that it will be the only way we can move forward if we want to play larger venues as a serious rock band. So, if you want to tap into our sweet side, early summer could be the best window of opportunity. Being on our label will allow them to space the issues out for maximum effect.”
All three men sat back and laughed. Chris was the first to recover.
“This is precious. You’re willing to go outside of a proven hit sound to play bigger audiences?”
“Well, the biggest venue we’ve played, so far, is the school theatre. If we want to go big, we will have to play what the people want. Ask yourselves this. Can you see a full crowd in Wembley Stadium singing along to Carpenters songs, unless it was the Carpenters on stage?”
Chris shook his head.
“I guess that you’re right. Will there be any of this new sound tonight?”
“We’ll see what we can fit in. Anyway, we must be getting along. We have a show to get ready for tonight. It’s been a real pleasure meeting you, and I hope that you can arrange suitable dates when we can play for you. We go back to school on Monday week, and it’s full on until the middle of July.”
“No chance for next week?”
“No. Gina’s good, but I’m playing Goal Defence in a netball competition. I tell you, without us playing here, we alternate at St. Marys, so one of us will be available on weekends unless we have another booking. The club is going to start using other bands, so we’ll be a lot freer. I’ll put together a list of known engagements and give it to you tonight. Given time to practise the items you want to record at home, I’m sure that we can get your CDs in the can in a weekend or two.”
On the way home, Wendy commented on her daughters negotiating style. Gina laughed.
“I leave it all to my friend. She may go around in circles, but I think that we could have both of those CDs on the market before the end of term. They have all the pointers towards how they should work it. Even I didn’t see that last suggestion coming.”
At home, Willow checked her diary and wrote out a list of known dates when they wouldn’t be playing. She saw that, with the Winter Gardens now cancelled, they had a huge space between school and Blastmasters. She also saw that the Proms Concert was the first day back at school, and wondered, again, how that would be handled.
That Saturday evening, the club was at capacity. Chris and his friends had brought their wives, and Willow was introduced to Drew, his son. Margaret was there as well, so they set up the odd table with the wheelchairs at each end and the three couples along the side. Drew was happy to meet another person in the same situation as him, and Margaret told him a few tricks that would make his use of the wheelchair better. When the three organists realised who she was, the talk at the table was quite animated. Margaret’s friend Sandra sat with others from the village choir, happy that her friend was having a good time.
The band had their meal in the front room, and then went on the stage to play the eating music as the meals were brought out. For Drew, after his long time in hospital, it was like being born again into the real world. The band moved to dance songs and then had a short break. When they came back, Willow spoke into her microphone.
“Ladies and Gentlemen. There are a few new faces here tonight, so the rest of you will have to put up with hearing some of our songs again. My Mum said she was over Summer Rose before we had our first big show at the Belgrade! Tonight, we’ll be playing some tunes that you haven’t heard, later. They are from an album that’s likely to be in the shops before the end of summer. But first, we want to play one of the slower songs that many have heard before. I want to dedicate this one to Drew, sitting there, in his wheelchair. He is lucky to be alive, and luckier still, will walk again with exercise. I’m sure that he thought the things that I did as I lay in my own hospital bed a couple of months ago. This is ‘Dust in the Wind’.
Jacob played the guitar intro and Willow sang the words, with the first line being ‘I close my eyes, only for a moment and the moment’s gone’. The whole band in harmony as backing. At the end of it, Chris and his wife had tears streaming down their faces and Drew called out in the silence.
“You’re a mind reader, Willow, thank you.”
They carried on with the Carpenters, the ‘Journey’ album, Moody’s, some sixties love songs and there was dancing. As it was near the end of the night, Willow spoke again.
“Now something from the band ‘Kansas’ who had that hit with ‘Dust in the Wind’ in the late seventies. It was from a concept album about the end of the human race after the last moderate leader disappeared, to be replaced by ego-driven dictators. As Jacob said at the Belgrade shows, it has a lot of resonance with today’s world. If you don’t like loud music, cover your ears, you’re in for a wild ride. These are the last three tracks from the album.”
They ripped into ‘Sparks of the Tempest’, ‘Nobody’s Home’, and ‘Hopelessly Human’. At the end, they all bowed and left the stage to some applause. At the table, Willow asked if they fitted a Blastmasters concert and the guys all laughed. Trevor stood and went to give her a hug.
“Willow, I’ve been to a Blastmasters show. It’s chalk and cheese. They’re simple three chord rock using the big amps to make their point, and here you were, using tiny amps in a small room and sounding far better than them. I can see them wanting to toss you off the tour for making them look bad. I’ve got to get tickets to hear the whole album with a wall of speakers behind you.”
“Thank you, Trevor. Now you know why we should be moving down that road. Big places, big crowds, and a big sound go together.”
She went to her bag and pulled out a DVD.
“Here’s the whole show, as recorded here a few weeks ago. We may re-record it for general release, and we’ll be working on our own material to go with it.”
“Thank you, Willow. I’ll pass it on to the others when I’ve watched it. Do you mind if it stays with Drew after?”
“That would be nice. I’ll bring in a CD and DVD of the recent album for him tomorrow.”
After some circulating and more than a few hugs, Willow walked home with her mother.
“That was a lovely gesture tonight, love. Drew will remember tonight.”
“I hope that the realisation that he has to work to walk again will let him improve. I did think about that song after the operation. It’s about how fleeting life is, and to make sure you enjoy the time you have, because there’s no second time around.”
On Sunday, Gina was in the church and Willow was being driven to Coventry. She was wearing the outfit that she had worn for Cassie’s wedding, and felt very adult, now that she was fourteen. The service went as usual, and they left the Cathedral to go to have lunch.
“It’s the big charity dinner dance at the end of the week, isn’t it?”
“It is, Mum. I suppose that I should send out an email to the others in the band to remind them. I expect that the Head will expect us to be wearing school blue. I’d better tell the girls to be in the blue dresses and the boys to have blue shirts and black trousers. And everyone should see a hairdresser. It’s a big event for the school, so we had better look good.”
“And a sing-along the weekend after.”
“That will be a nice break.”
“Not a ‘stay at home’ break, but a working one.”
“I know, Mum. I just love playing. More than that, I love entertaining people. During Evensong, just look around and see the smiles on the faces as they sing along. There must be at least three different singing groups there, besides the actual choir. I can even pick out individual voices from the keyboard. It makes me happy, and it energises me.”
That afternoon, the voices sounded as good, if not better than usual. Willow had tears in her eyes as she played the last item. As she stepped from the stairs, Tom called out in his strong voice.
“Ladies and Gentlemen, just a moment of your time.”
He waited until there was quiet.
“We have just heard Willow Rose playing the organ. She, and Gina Summer have played for us for the last three months. Chris, our usual organist, is back from extended leave due to family matters, and will be playing next week. In the meantime, please give Willow a hand for her skill and dedication.”
There was applause and she had hugs from the three organists. She gave the two plastic disc cases to Chris, for Drew. He took them and thanked her.
“Since last night, Drew has been a lot more positive. He was getting depressed by being in the wheelchair, but talking to Margaret he realised that if he worked at it, he could be walking again. He was taken out before the rush. I hope to see you again, perhaps when he has a party to celebrate his first steps.”
“I’d like that, Chris.”
She was spoken to by many of the parishioners as she left the building with Wendy. In the car, she sat and buckled up.
“Dab your eyes, love. You don’t want to look like a panda when we get to the club.”
Wendy kept quiet, knowing that Willow needed to process this change in the normal way of things. At home, they changed, and Willow repaired her face before they walked to the club. The main crowd was in the back room and the equipment from the dinner dance was still on stage. Brent was there, with his mother, and Jacob was there with Racheal. They all had dinner, and there was, indeed, cake to go around as a free extra, with custard or ice cream.
Gina told her that her performance had been flawless. The feed had finished with the last item, so they hadn’t seen the short speech, and Willow didn’t enlighten her. They played a sing-along as the quartet, with a lot of their own songs added in, which still had a lot singing along. At the end of the evening, Willow had reached the end of her emotional tether, and wasn’t long before she had hugged the others, kissed Jacob, and walked home with her mother. She hugged Wendy and went up to undress and cleanse, headed for sleep as soon as her head hit the pillow.
Monday was the first day of the holiday and Willow stayed in bed until her parents were nearly ready to go to work. She made an easy breakfast and then tidied everything up. Then, she took a long shower, washed her hair and spent a fair chunk of the morning drying it and brushing it. When she had dressed, she took her phone from the charger and turned it on. There were some messages that didn’t need an answer. She turned on her laptop and checked her emails.
There was one from Peter, congratulating the band for the Platinum Record, sent to everyone, and it went on to say that he had been told that the dress code for Saturday evening was school blue. He also told them that some of the band would be required for personal visits to record stores and for interviews, and that he would be working with the label on these.
There was another with the label logo on it, from Jill, the person who would be working with them for future shows and presentations. She asked Willow if they could meet, mid-week, to discuss things. Willow replied to that to say that she was going to be playing netball for the school on Tuesday and Wednesday, gave the location and said that there would be lots of time between the games.
There was one message on the WR Holdings account, from the Summer Love account. It was a message from Wilhelm, telling her that the vendors had countered with a new asking price of one point one two five, with settlement inside fourteen days. Willow answered to ask the rest of the syndicate first, but that she thought it would be a good deal, as long as the title clearly showed that they were buying the total footprint of the property. When she sent it, she smiled at the thought that Wilhelm was finding this enjoyable, even though he was working for his own thirteen-year-old son.
There was an email from the Bishop, thanking her for the invitation to the party, and telling her that he had enjoyed the evening, especially because he could be just another person in the room. He said that they all deserved the awards, because every member of the three bands were talented. He had given the pendant to his secretary, who had been thrilled to put it on.
She sat at her desk and took her notepad, writing the lyrics of a song about a girl who had become so impatient with her boyfriend that she told him that she had booked a church for their marriage. The boyfriend then told her that he had never intended to get married and walks out. It had a chorus line that said, ‘You told me you loved me, baby, that you’re a straight hitter. But you’re just a baby, baby; a real dummy spitter’.
She worked out a rock style tune, recorded it to her computer with her singing the lyrics. She then sent it to Herb, with a message that he should record the basics of his own songs and then all new songs should go to the rest of the band for discussion. She added a footnote. ‘I’m thinking that we need more songs in the stadium rock vein if we want to be serious about the Blastmasters tour. I would like our Other Side issue to be a double album. One disc the Kansas set, and the other about a dozen originals, to be called ‘Homegrown Summer Rose’.’
She had some lunch, and then took time to re-sort her wardrobe and drawers, putting both sets of netball outfits in a sports bag, along with spare underwear, sports shoes and socks. She found a simple shift dress to wear in the coach, that would be loose enough to be able to be worn home again. She saw that her parents would be getting ready to leave work, so went to the kitchen to prepare dinner. Concentrating on peeling and slicing vegetables was almost as good as playing Bach to calm her down, and she was starting to appreciate the work that went into making a good meal.
After dinner and the tidying up was done, she went off to bed. There had been a lot of energy spent over the last week, and she needed to catch up. She had her phone alarm in for the morning and was up, dressed and getting breakfast ready when her parents came down. The mother and daughter left the dishes for Ashley and headed for the school.
The coaches were waiting at the main entrance, and there were some girls standing around, so Wendy dropped Willow off and went on to work. Her office would be open as the warehouse worked around the clock on weekdays.
Willow joined her team of second years and they got on one coach with the firsts and thirds, plus some teachers. The second coach had the fourths and fifths with some volunteers and all their lunches. The drive to Birmingham was quiet, with the girls talking among themselves. At the venue, they were sent to their space in one of the marquees. It was obvious that there wasn’t enough room for all the teams from all the schools, so those teams that were playing later were sent back to the coaches to wait.
The procedure was simple. With four courts, the teams played their four games with a game break in between. The court time had been shortened in the round robins to get everything in and the pace was hectic until they found their rhythm. The first years games were a bit scrappy, and their team ended up with six points for the day.
The seconds did well, with Willow stopping several goal attempts, and ended their sessions with seven points. The thirds played two games before lunch, after which, they played the other two and the rest of the teams played.
Jill arrived before lunch, and Willow was pointed out to her, being very much part of a mass of girls, rather than a pop star. Willow had played all her games, so they went and sat in Jill’s car. They talked about general things, at first, getting to know each other. To Jill, in her twenties, it was like talking to an older girl than a fourteen-year-old. Willow had brought her diary, and they spoke about dates that would be available.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 11
Jill was not a promoter, more of an arranger, and she talked Willow through the process of store appearances and the like. She explained that some events would not be able to have all eleven band members, due to logistics, so any performances would have to be tailored to the size of the band, with, at the moment, the quartet being the easiest to move around.
Anywhere within a three-hour drive could be done by coach, with Friday night in a hotel, Saturday in a store, with an afternoon matinee performance and home again Saturday evening. Because of their central location, there were a lot of stores in the Midlands that could be visited. Further afield, though, it would be the quartet flown to the venue with a similar process on the Saturday.
They agreed on a tour, in the first few weeks of the summer holidays, with all eleven playing. Jill would work with promoters to create a loop that wasn’t too strenuous and would be the band likely playing the soft-rock and smooth music. Then, the label would issue the Other Side album, and Willow told her that they would be working to make it a double.
“A comment was made on the weekend about that tour. Have you seen the Other Side disc?”
“Not yet.”
“You need to. It’s very different to what we’re doing now. The comment was odd. I was told that Blastmasters are just a three-chord rock band relying on the big sound to get the message across. We had just played three tracks off the album and told that it was complicated enough to make Blastmasters sound less than us. Do you think that you could look into that. I would hate to have us kicked off the tour because we make them sound bad. I’d rather not be on it in the first place if that’s the case. Our promoter, at the time, was, I think, clutching at any straw he could find. He’d even booked us for a week in the Winter Gardens at Blackpool!”
“All right. I’ll go back to town, talk to Clive and watch the DVD with the sound up. Then I’ll take it around to the promoter of the tour and see if he realised the implications. When he pencilled you in, you were just unknowns, but now have two hit albums and Platinum awards. Where are you the rest of the week?”
“Tomorrow we’re here to finish the round robin. I have the Village Choir practise at the Community Club in the evening. Thursday depends on how we go, and Friday we’ll be getting ready for Saturday evening, when the band are playing a big charity event at the football stadium, and Sunday morning I play the church organ at St. Marys. We normally have lunch in the club.”
“Some school holiday!”
“Busy, but not at school!”
Willow went back to cheer on the other teams and Jill drove back to London, trying to match the netball playing schoolgirl with the star with a Platinum record.
Wendy was waiting at the school when the coach arrived and took Willow home. After dinner, Willow had a relaxing bath with salts in to ease the muscles and went off to bed. Next morning she was ready with breakfast for her parents and Wendy took her into the school. At work, Wendy called the doctor at the clinic to ask about Willow and her sleeping.
That day, the first years were beaten in three of their games, and the second year won three. At the end of all the playing, the second, third, and fifth year were all through to the next round, where eight teams would each be playing two games, in a knock-out semi-final in the morning, and would play the final in the afternoon. That afternoon, Willow emailed Gina to ask if she could take over the keyboard that evening, as she was too stiff and needed another relaxing bath.
On Thursday, the coach was leaving later, so Willow was dropped off at the normal school time, with her uniform from Tuesday washed and ironed. It felt a lot softer now. The team had to wait while the first-year teams played their knock-out semis. Then they were on for their first game. It was a cut and thrust affair, which had her team winning by one point, with Willow needing some dressing on a graze when she had been steamrolled by an opponent.
A drink and a pep-talk later, they were back on the court, against a highly fancied team. They had learned their lesson from the first game, and showed no quarter, knocking out the favourites by two points. The third-year team also made it through to the finals by the barest margin. Because there were another two years to get through, both teams were sent back to the coach and taken to a local café for lunch. While they were away, the fifth-year team lost their semi.
Back at the tennis club, they waited for the first final to be completed, now lasting the normal time period. Then Willow joined her friends on the court. Over the course of the game, she was knocked on her back a few times, but managed to stop a lot of shots at their net. The game was even, with a minute to go, and Willow was able to harass the attacker enough to make her miss. Willow grabbed the ball and threw it over half the length of the court to her Centre, who passed it to the Goal Attack, who had been left in open air. From there, it went to the Shooter, who scored. They were in the lead and didn’t allow the other team any space until the final whistle.
They all jumped up and down and hugged. Next, the third-year team went out, and buoyed by the success, played with a lot of energy, winning by three points. They had to wait until the other two teams played off. With the facilities now much clearer, both teams had showers and changed into going home clothes but were all asked to put their uniform tops on, over the top, for the presentations.
After the last game, all ten teams were gathered in the large marquee, with the losing team given runner-up medals, and the winning team getting medals and a cup to hold until next year. With every presentation, the teams were posed for the official pictures, as well as the teachers taking their own pictures. The coach going back to Blue Coat was full of joy. They had two teams into the finals, and both were going back with cups. Someone must have phoned the Head, as she was there to welcome them and take possession of the cups to display in the school for Monday.
They were still milling around when Wendy arrived. Willow put her sports bag in the back and got in the front.
“How did it go, sweetie?”
“We won, Mum. And so did the thirds. It got a bit brutal at times and I need a bath and some disinfectant on a few scrapes. I’m bushed!”
At home, Wendy put the uniform in the wash while Willow was soaking. Then she went to have a look at the scrapes for herself. She dabbed them with disinfectant and rubbed them with cream to help them scab over. Willow dressed for bed and went off as soon as she had eaten.
Friday morning, Wendy woke her up.
“Time to get up, love. I called the doctor about your tiredness, and she organised a visit to a specialist today. She’s an endocrinologist and will take your blood and the pathology lab will test it. The doctor said that it’s usual for transitioned girls to have the odd problem and that a test is normal. Your father will be taking you in and you can get a taxi home.”
They had breakfast and put the dishes in the washer. Willow went and got ready to go out, gave her mother a hug and a peck on the cheek, and was then driven to the clinic. When she got out, she remembered the other times she had stood there as her father carried on towards work. She just hoped that this time wouldn’t be as drastic as before.
The appointment wasn’t long to wait for. The specialist reviewed the records and took blood.
“Pop down to the café for a while, Willow. I’ll put this through the pathologist with an urgent note. There are several reasons why you need to sleep, but I’m not going to talk about any until we see the results. I’m only asking for a few tests so if you come back in an hour, I’ll be able to tell you what we can do.”
She went to the café and sat with a coffee and raisin toast. She looked at her phone for the first time in days. There were a few messages of congratulations on the team win yesterday, and one from Gina.
‘Went to your place this morning and you weren’t home. Give me a call.’
She rang Gina.
“Hi, friend. I’m in the clinic waiting for the results of tests. Mum booked me in because I seem to be tired a lot.”
“I can believe it, friend, with all the things that you’ve been doing. I heard that your quick thinking in the last minute put the team in front. You’ll be the girl of the day on Monday.”
“I just did what I had to do. It was full-on; seven games in three days. The third year won as well, so it won’t just be us being spoken to at lunch.”
“Have you checked your emails lately?”
“Not since Monday. I’ve been at the carnival, in the bath, or sleeping since then.”
“Ring me when you leave, and I’ll be on your doorstep.”
Wondering what was so momentous that Gina needed to see her, she finished her coffee and toast, then scrolled through the other messages, deleting all those that were just taking up space. She got herself another drink, finished it, and went to the toilet before heading back to the specialist’s office. The receptionist noted her return, and she read an old fashion magazine while she waited. The first time that she had been at the clinic, she would have only looked at the pictures to check out the women, now she only saw the clothes.
When she was ushered in, the specialist smiled as she sat down.
“Willow, I have the results back and I can tell you that your problem is that you have an onset of anaemia, from a lack of iron and vitamin B-twelve. If it was left to go further, you would be starting to have problems, and your blood would be in a far worse state, possibly leading to Chronic Fatigue Syndrome. What we can do is very easy. I need you to see your doctor who will give you vitamin B-twelve injections. Weekly for a month, and then get blood taken for a path test. You can have the injections and blood taken at your school, with the resident nurse. I will email her a pathology request form. I’ll call your doctor to expect you and give you a script for the first six injections. Her nurse will give you the first one and you should take this note and the rest of the ampules to the school nurse. The other thing is to try and eat more meat or take iron tablets.”
Willow took the script and went to the pharmacy to get it filled. Then she reported to her own doctor’s office, where she was given the first injection. As she was waiting for the taxi, she rang Gina to say she was on her way home, and then rang Wendy to tell her the result of her clinic visit.
When the taxi dropped her off, Gina was waiting and gave her a long hug.
“Did they find something?”
“Iron and B-twelve deficiency. I was given an injection before I left. Come on in and tell me what’s up.”
They went in and Willow put the kettle on. Then went upstairs to get her laptop. She turned it on and there were several emails about the win yesterday, including one with a photo of the team with the cup, and another one showing her, hair flying, as she reached up to block a pass from an attacker. Gina waited patiently, until she reached the one from Peter, with her statement attached.
“Stay calm, friend. It was quite a shock to me.”
Willow looked at the statement, then sat back.
“I see what you mean.”
She read it again, slowly. The statement showed that the original album downloads had dropped to fifteen thousand, the original CDs had only sold two thousand, and the DVD download had dropped to eight thousand.
“That’s understandable, with the actual album being bundled with the second album.”
The Belgrade shows had earned a hundred and twenty-seven thousand, plus merchandise sales of twenty-two thousand. Hire of the hall was five thousand for each of the four days, and other expenses was another five thousand. The other bands had been paid five thousand each.
“That shows you why there’s so little live music these days. We were in the biggest available theatre and the seats weren’t cheap, yet the return, for three days, is less than a bad month of downloads.”
There were small amounts for playing in the club and at the cathedral, and forty-two thousand in costs, twelve thousand for security and another six thousand for admin. The amount for the school had dropped to three thousand.
“That fits. When we sold a lot of mailable items, it cost a lot in post and packaging.”
The next page had her money from the Hikers sales, which was also going down at two thousand five hundred. It was the next entry that had revved Gina up. The ‘Journey’ CD had sold seven hundred and sixty thousand to give a total of forty thousand over three million.
“Wow! I thought that it would be big, friend, but that blows me away!”
The final income line was the sale of the DVD, which had sold four hundred and fifty thousand. That had earned another two and a quarter million. The bottom line was that all seven members of the band had earned over six hundred and fifty thousand that month, after the commission had been taken. The wind players had each earned around a hundred and sixty-five thousand.
“This is great Gina, but it doesn’t last forever. You can see how quickly the website business has dropped, although a lot of that was our fault by putting out an actual disc. We can all put the hundred thousand into the property syndicate, with enough left over to do some serious damage to mortgages. I expect that Jacob may pay for the work being done on the barn, or even get a house of his own later on. Rick is in line for around four hundred thousand as his share of the Hikers album sales alone.”
“The numbers are so huge, Willow. This has to be the best birthday month ever!”
Willow looked at earlier emails, seven of the band has sent back a music track to her songs and four of Herb’s songs. She took her laptop upstairs and printed off the statement and the carnival photos. Then she set up with the computer, the screen, and the songs, showing Gina how to use the editing software to record a track and overlay others. By the time that Wendy got home, they had combined all the input to the songs, ending up with something they could listen to.
Gina went home with a disc they had burned, and Wendy started preparing dinner, helped by her daughter.
“You said that they gave you an injection today?”
“Yes, Mum. B-Twelve. I have more that I have to give the nurse at school on Monday. She will be giving me another three, one each Friday, and then will be taking a blood sample to send to pathology. After that, it will be once a month until the blood is more normal, followed by the injection every three months. Hopefully, I’ll get the advantage of not getting so sleepy.”
Ashley arrived home and was brought up to date on Willow’s health. They sat and had dinner. When they had cleared the table, and were sitting with hot drinks, Willow looked at her father.
“Dad. How big is the mortgage on this house?”
“Why do you ask?”
“Humour me, please.”
“About five fifty, I think. Why?”
She pulled the statement out of her bag and passed it to him. She watched as he read it and when she saw his eyes go wide with the second page, she grinned.
“Can we pull the balance of the mortgage out of that account and have our own home, please?”
He passed the papers to Wendy.
“Are you sure?”
“Yes, Dad, I’m sure. Whatever happens next, we’ll have our home, free and clear. If the music business rejects our change of sound, then what I’ve done will ensure our future. You’ll both be able to enjoy your salary, with just the usual payments to make. I’ll have more than enough to take me to university and beyond, as well as getting a share in the returns on one, or maybe two by now, commercial properties. The syndicate will have enough to create a recording studio in Leicester, which we could always hire out to others as a secluded hideaway to practise and record. It will make me feel safe to have a home that I can totally rely on.”
Her parents both stood and Willow stood to be enveloped in the loving arms of her mother and father, with more than a few tears. Ashley went to check the mortgage balance, and Willow sent a message to Peter to transfer that amount to her father’s account on Monday. It would still leave over three hundred thousand in her account. She sent another to Peter, asking him to transfer two hundred thousand to her WR Holdings account. After that, she spent an hour with her violin before going to bed. It had been a very big day.
Saturday morning, she woke feeling more refreshed than usual, but thought that it might be mainly in her own mind, seeing that the injection was only the day before. She took her time dressing casually, and had a breakfast with her parents, all thinking about the ramifications of what they had done the previous evening.
She checked her phone, to find that she would be picked up at five-thirty, by the security detail, to go to the venue. There were also more texts about the win. She went up to her room and brought down the two pictures that she had printed off. She gave them to her mother, who gave her a long hug when she looked at them.
“Send me the email, love, and I’ll print these on photo paper at work, and get a pair of frames for them. They mean as much to me as your news last night. Having my girl in a winning netball team is almost a rite of passage. The school will be interesting for you on Monday.”
Willow went to the church that morning and worked through the hymns for Sunday and met her parents in the club for lunch.
After lunch, Willow listened to the songs that they had worked on and saw that more of the band had sent their added tracks, which she overdubbed to the tracks she already had. They were sounding good, in a ‘big arena rock’ way. ‘Dummy Spitter’ had been given quite a good treatment and would only need some work to be recordable.
She stripped, showered, and made ready for the dinner dance tonight. Her parents had tickets, on a table with Maisie and a few other parents of band members. She dressed in her good underwear, tan tights and the blue dress, with the blue shoes. Wendy did her hair and helped her with her make-up suitable for a performer. Near the pick-up time, she checked that she had everything she needed in her bag and put her school jacket on.
When the people mover came down the road, she hugged her parents.
“See you tonight and have fun. This is the most prestigious event that we’ve played at and should be interesting.”
When she got in the vehicle, she noticed that Sebastian and Max were both in suits.
“Going somewhere tonight, lads?”
“The four of us are doubling as security for you tonight. There’s been a lot of talk in the newspapers and on social media about tonight. Peter and the school are worried that there may be some who want to gatecrash. It’s a good gig, and we get to hear you lot again.”
They picked up Gina, who had her own blue dress and school jacket. Jacob was in a blue shirt, black trousers and his school jacket, and carrying his guitar case.
“Hello, girls. Big do tonight. I would hate to have to wear this as stage costume.”
“We will look good tonight, and that’s what matters.”
“Dad got a phone call today. The vendors at Leicester have agreed with the sale, and it will be finalised next week. Then we can get quotes for the extra work. Dad’s really fired up about this. It’s so different from driving a tractor up and down all day. I helped my parents move into the other house during the week. A week where you covered yourself in glory, my love.”
“Not only glory, but a few cuts and scrapes in the process. What do you think of the new songs?”
“Really good, a step in the new direction, but not over the top, with loud heavy metal. We only need a few more and we’ll be heading for the second disc. I liked the idea of calling it ‘Homegrown’. Hopefully, it can be our first recording in our own studio.”
When they arrived at the football stadium, the vehicle went down a slope and to a parking area. There was spaces next to the lifts and they all went up to the function room. When they walked in, they stopped to look. It was a huge space, with the stage way at the far end. Between them and the stage was a sea of tables and chairs, with silver cutlery and fancy napkins, all with a vase with red roses at the centre of the tables.
“Wow, this must be costing a lot to set up. I hope that the diners are generous with their donations.”
The walked to the stage area, taking off their jackets and putting them out of sight behind the amps. The two girls from the wind section were already there and they hugged the three friends. Nancy was almost beside herself.
“Thank you, thank you. We got our first statements yesterday and my parents had to sit down while I made them a cup of tea. They couldn’t believe what we had been paid. That, alone, has paved my way to university or a music school.”
Willow gave her a hug again.
“It was the same for us, the first payday was like a bolt from the blue, but you get used to it. The seven of us have formed a syndicate to buy leased commercial property, as you now know. Perhaps you four could club together for something. You just need to form a holding company and not go off buying flash cars or holidays. We all have a few more years in school to get through, and I hope that there’ll be a lot more for you. With you on the next album, you should all go for an equal share.”
The other band members started arriving, all in school colours with their jackets on. As they began to set up, they saw that the equipment wasn’t the school amps and keyboards. The four guitar amps were all fifty-watt Vox amps, and the two keyboards were Nord Stage Three with eighty-eight keys and Peavy sixty-watt amps. They all had microphones, including the wind players.
They had time for a sound check before the doors opened, so Willow and Gina tried the new keyboards out, able to master the extra features. The boys tested out the Vox amps, with Jacob and Herb seeing if the sounds through their pedals were any different. Brent moved the cymbals and snare drum to suit his usual placements. A man came in and told them that he was the sound mixer and to play something loud. They played a Moody’s number which used all of them, and he stood in the middle of the room with a tablet in his hand, moving digital sliders.
“I have that setting. When you play background music, I have a master volume which I’ll turn down. I saw you at the Belgrade, so I have a good idea of your range. I sit by the kitchen door and will be there all night. If you want me to boost you, look over and make the ‘higher’ gesture.”
The boys put the guitars on stands and they had a meeting on the stage. Willow took the lead.
“If you look at the room, although it was touted as a dinner dance, there is very little space for dancing. We will need to treat tonight as if we’re in a night club, or on a stage like the Belgrade. We’ll take two breaks, about an hour apart. First section all background and smooth dance tunes, as usual. Second section will be things from the albums, and the third section will include Moody’s and other oddments that we do. When we come back for the second session, I’ll go up first and play three songs solo, with just the piano. We can repeat them later as a group. There will be people that we want to show how versatile we are, so bring your best tonight. We have nothing big booked next month, just a dinner dance at the club in the middle of the month. Now, let’s go and eat.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 12
There was a table set up for them in an adjoining room, and they went and sat for a meal.
“What do you think of those keyboards, Willow?”
“They’re great! I think that we could do with a pair of those in the studio. I did see them when I bought my Nord. They were close to five thousand, but I guess I can afford one now.”
“What do you guys want for the studio, Herb?”
“Something small, like the Marshalls we use at the club, and something we can get used to, like two hundred watts, Gina.”
“What about you, Brent.”
“A good kit would be all right, but I want to try an electronic set to see how they go. They’re able to be carried around in a small case, and all you need is an amp. There’s a lot of odd percussion instruments that would be fun to experiment with.”
Willow looked down the table.
“When we get closer to filling the space at Leicester, we’ll have to revisit this discussion. You’ll have to decide if you want to have personal property, or if we buy everything static from the syndicate. The desk will have to be part of the building, but the other things will be able to be taken out. A lot depends on how well our shows go over the summer, whether we need to supply our own gear at a venue. With the new songs, can we please aim at trying them out in the next couple of weeks? I can get Xavier to record us, we already own the portable equipment for that, and I can get us time in the club. If we are going to re-record the Other Side. It would be good it we have the second disc ready to go.”
“Why the tight timing, Willow?”
“I was talking to Jill, our girl with the label, at the netball carnival. She thinks that the label will want the launch at the end of June, so that they can organise a tour in the summer. She is going to talk to the Blastmasters promoter to see if we’re still up for opening, now we’re in the charts. When he agreed, we were nobodies without an album.”
As they finished the meal, they went to the adjacent toilets to freshen up, with the four girls checking their make-up. They had a group hug before going out to be ready to play. The room had filled up, with well-dressed men and even better dressed women. There was a smattering of applause as they went to their places. The entrées were being served, so the band started their usual mix of songs and tunes as the people ate. They continued as the mains came out, and then the desserts.
As the dessert plates were being removed, Willow turned her head an called ‘Dance’, and they moved into more dance music. A few did dance, but these were captains of industry, unable to loosen up enough to have fun. After about twenty minutes, Willow called out that the band will be taking a short break but would be back with some songs that they may have heard on the radio, lately.
They left the stage and went into the other room, where there were hot or cold drinks and some nibbles. They recharged, had a comfort stop, and the Willow left them to walk to the keyboard. There was some chatter, as most expected the whole band to come out. She set the Nord to grand piano and started singing ‘We’ve only just Begun’, which quietened the room. They may have heard the song, but never this way. She went on with ‘Finding a Friend’, and then ‘Her Day’. As she was nearing the end of that, the others in the band joined her on stage and they followed with ‘Close to you’. When Willow eventually called that there would be another break, the Head came to one of the microphones to conduct an auction of vouchers and holidays. The band sat in the other room, listening to the bidding, which got quite high. The last item that was auctioned was Summer Rose playing at your venue, offered by Peter. The winning bid was twenty-five thousand. The Head asked what the occasion would be, and the answer was that it would be here, at the football ground, during the summer break.
Willow turned to her friends.
“When we go out, I’ll ask the question whether the venue is in here or out in the stadium. If they want us to play in the stadium, we should give them a hint of what we can do.”
As the band went back on stage, Willow sat at the keyboard and asked if the winner of the band performance wanted them for a private show in the function room, or somewhere else. The man who made the winning bid stood.
“Miss Rose. We are planning to hold a fundraising show outside, on the pitch, with a stage set-up at one end. I went to the Belgrade, and I intended to book all three bands for it. This was an opportunity to get you booked early. I’ll be talking to your manager about the others. This will be a Coventry event, held at the Coventry City Club, to aid the homeless and disadvantaged of Coventry. I hope we should get around forty thousand to come along.”
“Thank you, sir. If you were at the Belgrade, you would have heard the sort of music that we can play at an event like that. I can tell you, right now, that there should be a double album of stadium rock on the market by then. Does anyone want to hear some of it now?”
There was a shout of ‘yes’. Willow looked at the sound man and lifted her upturned hand. She turned to the band.
“Change of plans. We do the Moody’s show and follow with Kansas. That should see us out the night. Winds, follow us if you’re able, Vivienne, do you know the flute parts of the Moody’s?”
“Sure do, Willow. Let’s show them something they weren’t expecting tonight.”
They all grinned and then Willow played the intro to ‘Dawn’ and they were into it. As they played, she could see a lot of interested faces as, for the first time that night, those who had their backs to the stage turned their seats around. By the time they had arrived at ‘Nights in White Satin’ the room was swaying with the beat. Vivienne and Victor nailed the bass and flute part and there was applause when they finished. When it died down, Jacob went to his microphone.
“The next segment will be our last for the night. It’s a set of songs about the world going to hell with ego-driven dictators, and ends with the human race wiped out. It was written in the late seventies, when the world teetered on the brink. We just hope that it doesn’t happen fifty years later.”
He stepped back and Willow called out, ‘three, two, one’ and they were into the album. Ten songs later, they were finishing ‘Hopelessly Human’, and nobody had left. The band stood and bowed, with a lot of applause, and they left the stage to go to the side room. The applause didn’t abate. Herb smiled.
“How about we try them with something new. Let’s encore with Willow’s ‘Dummy Spitter’? I think that we can do what we did before, and nail it.”
They walked back out on stage and the applause died. Willow spoke.
“Thank you for that great reception. We have been planning that sort of show for a tour, later in the summer, opening for Blastmasters. We have a little thing that we do, being modern children and living so far apart. If one of us has an idea for a song, they record their part and email it to the others to add to the basic song. This is what we did for ‘Journey’, and the first time we played it live was the first time we’d played it together. I sent out a song in the last few days, and most of the band sent back their additions. We will now play, for the first time, a little number that I called ‘Dummy Spitter’. Peter, you will know the reason that the name came to me. One thing that I will say, right here and now, is that we can do this because of our time at the Blue Coat School and its excellent music studies. If you haven’t thought about sending your little primary school child there, this is a good reason to do so.”
As the others had followed her thread, she played the intro and then they played the song as if they had practised it for days. At the end of it, there were smiles from the ladies in the room, with a few giving out a whistle. The band bowed again and went back to the side room. They sat around the table and rehydrated. Herb, grinned.
“Good one, Willow. We made the punters happy, and you put in a plug for the school. The Head is going to love you on Monday, especially after that match-winning pass in the netball. Dianne texted me and told me about that. By the sound of that auction, I expect that the Bishop will be happy with tonight.”
As they were resting, they were visited by the Head and the Bishop. He told them that it was a fabulous evening that had done all that was expected. He went off to touch hands, and the Head sat at the table and grabbed a drink.
“What can I say? You lot are a one-band advertising campaign. There were some in the room who would never stoop so low to send their precious baby to us. Who knows, perhaps they’ll now consider it. I agree with the Bishop, the evening was fabulous, and it was a pleasure to see you all adapt to the changing situation. Willow, I won’t drag you into the office Monday morning, but I will say that the second-year netball team are very happy that you’re on the team. Consider yourself the Goal Defence in third year.”
“Thank you, Miss. I’ll have to get more liniment and bandages then. Those are bigger girls in that bracket.”
The Head smiled and stood.
“Once again, well done all of you. I believe that the orchestra session next week will be a full run-through of the Proms performance. Then we’ll get a notice on the boards and the website to start auditions for the choir. Goodnight, see you at school.”
She left, and Herb looked at Willow.
“What’s this about auditions?”
“We need to boost the choir for the Proms concert, with male voices and more female ones. We will be doing the Saint-Saens again at the Proms, and the Messiah in the Cathedral before Christmas. We need a big choir for both events and just don’t have them yet. Tom, the choirmaster from the Cathedral, will be coming in to evaluate the voices. You should try out, Herb, you do have a good singing voice.”
“Does it pay as well as these gigs?”
“What it does is get you noticed by the powers-that-be. Jacob will be playing a guitar concerto to open the Proms, and Gina will be doing a piano concerto. I’ll be on their organ for the symphony, and our great wind section will be at their usual places in the body of the orchestra, along with Brent on percussion. There’s no room for electric guitars, but there’s plenty of room for good singers.”
“Who is in charge of the auditions, one of the teachers?”
“No. Gina and I will be playing the scales and Tom will note the range of the voice. It doesn’t take long, and then you get to line up with the other girls in the choir to work through some simple exercises. We will get serious next term. If you think playing three hours here is easy enough, the Messiah has around fifty movements and you’re on stage over three sessions for two and a half hours. At least you have seats for when you’re not singing.”
“When the notice comes out, I’ll put my name down. It sounds like a challenge, and being in the orchestra hasn’t done you guys any harm. What about it, Roy, Victor?”
“If you’re in, Herb, I guess that we have to continue to be your other two musketeers.”
Willow grinned.
“I’m sure that you’ll all do well. Now, I’ll see about getting the club one evening, the week after next. Please do as well with the other songs as you did with ‘Spitter’. Anyone who have any ideas for another five or six songs, please send your ideas to everyone. Even you wind section. You’re becoming part of the band, so none of us will laugh at your ideas, who can tell how a good song gets started. ‘Spitter’ came about because our previous promoter didn’t like us going behind his back. We all thought that he was a nice guy until I gave our label a copy of the Kansas session. I’ll send out an email to tell you the day. Good job tonight, now, let’s all go home.”
They went back to the stage, and the girls picked up their coats and bags. Jacob and the boys picked up their guitar cases and effects boxes. Willow gave the big Nord a gentle tap, and the seven went to meet the security detail, while the wind players found their parents. The drive back to Stoneleigh was a happy one, with Sebastian telling them that it was a great show and saying that he’ll be in line for the tickets to the big show, no matter how much it will cost.
Her parents were already home when Willow arrived. They both gave her a hug and she went upstairs to strip and get ready for bed. She sat with them in the kitchen for a while with a hot chocolate and talked about the show and the money-raising. Wendy was curious about the big show.
“Had you been told about that offer?”
“No. That was a surprise for us. If Peter had any idea that the other bands would be booked, I guess that he will put their booking fee up a bit. I don’t mind not getting paid, as it will be great experience for us. Who knows, we may get to play at other football grounds and any practise is good.”
“How can he charge extra for a charity event?”
“Do the numbers, Mum. If they charge twenty pounds and get fifty thousand in, that’s a million at the gate. Spending a hundred thousand on staging and the bands is only a drop in the ocean. Then there’s food and drink sales, merchandise, perhaps a payment from a TV station for the rights to broadcast it. If it’s filmed, there could be a DVD after. The income just adds up. It’s their own venue, so no hiring fee.”
“Just listen to my daughter, the accountant in waiting. It’s about time you went to bed, you’re in the church tomorrow.”
That night, Willow cuddled her furry friends and thought about the evening. She was certain, with the attention of the diners to their last songs, that the stadium rock sound would have a wider audience than she first thought. She was thinking about being on a stage that towered over her head, a wall of speakers behind her, and big screens on either side showing the band as she dozed off to sleep.
Sunday morning, she walked to the church with her parents. The service was all about giving, and the hymns were easy. Afterwards, she pulled the church door shut and walked over to the club. The big screen was showing Chris playing organ for the service, and she sat with Gina to watch.
“Can’t say I see much difference in how we played, Willow.”
“How do you make it sound different, friend. Play one huge organ, played them all.”
The girls giggled. Malcolm sat down with them.
“Ashley told me that the show last night was a great success and that you’re slated to play at the football club in a big show.”
“It seems that way, Malcolm. We will need to have some time to put together some songs that fit that sort of show. Can we have use of the back room on a weeknight to practise?”
“Not a problem. Ashley can open up for you and you know where everything is. I have to tell you that next week I intend to talk to your manager and book that G-Force for a few dance nights. That will give you a bit of extra time to do what you have to do.”
“That’s perfectly all right. We need to put together a bunch of original songs for another album, and our contact with the label is trying to put together lightning visits to shops, with matinee performances, between now and the end of term.”
“Sounds like you’ll be busy over the summer.”
“That will be our window of opportunity, where we earn what we can. The next term will have us in the Albert Hall at the beginning, and back in the Cathedral at the end. Oh! And sometime this term we’ll be with the orchestra recording an album at Abbey Road.”
They had lunch at the club and went home. Willow checked her phone and emails. There were two new song suggestions. Vivienne had sent a five-minute song, loosely based on plot of the Magic Flute. It had at least three voices, all telling of getting through great trials and tribulations, with a fourth that spoke of being a total failure. It was quirky, to say the least, but workable. She went to her room and added an organ track and sent it out to the team.
After that, she had a change and played the opening movement of the Messiah on her violin. Firstly, from the music sheet, and then listening to the piece through her headphones and playing along with it. With daylight saving now in place, she went for a walk after dinner, meeting some of the villagers along the way and having some short conversations. Back at home, she had a leisurely shower and went to bed, wondering what the second half of the last term would bring. It would certainly be different than last year.
Monday morning, she woke, refreshed, and got ready for school. The clothes, the uniform, the expectations, were all becoming second nature. This week would be momentous in a few ways. Hopefully, her home will be paid for, the distribution centre will be finalised, and they would be able to start on the redevelopments.
Every class that she walked into, that had netball players in it, was started with a cheer and some hugs, with all the teachers smiling. Lunch was more hugs, from Zara and the Gees this time. They had received their first statements and had shared over two million between the six of them. As they were hugging, Zara whispered that her mother had fainted when she was told. The atmosphere quietened down by the end of the day, and things were close to normal on the trip home. In the vehicle, she raised her voice.
“Sebastian, I didn’t hear any noise from gate crashers on Saturday evening.”
“That’s because getting to that function room is like finding a needle in a haystack if you’re not going the proper route. Our guys caught about a dozen, trying to bluff their way in.”
She worked on the emailed songs that evening, after a walk. On Tuesday, Willow played the chapel organ, and the orchestra session was the full proms set, with the friends getting home later than usual. That evening, there were some interesting emails on her laptop.
One was a group email from Peter, with the date of the football club event set on the first Saturday in August. He confirmed that it would be the three bands and that the equipment will be loaned by the Birmingham music store. More details to follow.
One was also a group email, from Wilhelm. The Leicester property had been purchased and the paperwork may be about a week to finalise. The sticking point was that the tenant had been paying for the whole site, and that there would have to be alterations to the lease agreement to reflect the area that the band would be using. He expected that the lease payments would need to be twenty thousand a year lower if they take over the use of the upstairs offices as well. Their agent had been notified and would be talking to the tenant. He said that he would let everyone know when they could invite an architect to oversee the changes and start to get quotes. He added a statement of accounts and asked that anyone who hadn’t transferred this cycle, should see to it.
There was one from Jill to Willow. She read it and forwarded it to the rest of the band.
‘Willow, I took your advice and looked at the Other Side DVD with the sound up. It blew me away with the power that the band put out, so different from the other albums. I went to see the promoter of the Blastmasters tour. He and I sat with the DVD and watched it right through. It appears that he was played a couple of tracks off a CD by The Other Side and never told the ages of the bandmembers. He has never linked Summer Rose with the band he heard and would never have considered you if he had been told the truth. He admitted that a bunch of teens, playing like that, would make the headline act look stupid. He has time to replace you and has offered twenty thousand as compensation.
Peter has advised me of your show in August, and I’m working with our people to make it a stop in your summer tour. We have negotiated a group booking of the three bands and are working on a tour, with it starting in Nottingham the Saturday after the term ends, with a Sunday show if the bookings require it. The middle of the week will be in Derby, and the following Saturday will be in Leicester. You get a week off to recharge and make any changes needed. The next will be the Coventry one, with us working with the club to advertise it. After that will be Liverpool (Saturday), Leeds (Midweek), and Sheffield (Saturday). After that will be Southampton (Midweek), with the final venue at London, with three or four dates being thought about. The show will be billed as ‘The Coventry Sound on Tour’ and Band spot will be helping with TV advertising. It will give you a bit of down-time at home, and two full weeks to enjoy your holiday before you go back to work.
We will get you into Abbey Road to re-record the Kansas cover, and another album which we hope that you’ll have ready by then. The date pencilled in is the weekend after the school orchestra is there, with launch in the first week of July, two weeks before the first show of the tour.
Your product is selling well in Europe, especially Denmark, so will see if we can have you playing there as well, probably in the half-term holiday in October
Hope you find this suitable. Jill.’
Willow printed this to show her parents and the Reverend. There was likely to be some Sundays that they would be away from Stoneleigh over summer. Then she had an idea. She emailed Jill and asked her if there were any budding organist that she knew, or, maybe, any retired ones who would like to play at St. Marys when they were on tour.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 13
The next morning, all the talk was about the possible tour, with a few moments when the subject was Marcus and his patina of respectability and expertise. Willow had shown her parents the email from Jill that morning, and they had been happy to see that she would be home quite a lot between shows. Lunch was a lot of discussion with the rest of the band, and the Gees, about having a multi-city tour, especially one that ended in London for one, or more, nights.
When they got to the farm, Racheal and Rick were there to give them hugs before the girls carried on. On the way, Sebastian asked why there was so much excitement about.
“We’re going on tour in the summer. It’s staggered so we get a lot of time at home, unless the bookings demand extra shows. The Coventry City show has been blended in with some before and some after, ending in London. Before that, we’re all going to Abbey Road to properly record our Other Side albums. It’s going to be busy, we know, but will be something exciting.”
“That’s good. I’ll talk to our boss about talking to your manager so that we can continue to support you. If it’s all eleven, plus your kit, we would need three vehicles. How far away are the venues?”
“All Midlands as far as Liverpool until we go south, then just Southampton and London, with plenty of time to go by road.”
School was normal as could be, except for a pair of big photos of the two winning teams in the main entry, with the cups on stands in front of them. There were lists beside the pictures, with the teams and the coaches named. Every member of the two teams were tempted to stand in front and get their friends to take a picture, Jacob took several of Willow as she smiled for the camera.
Lunch was a bit quieter, but still very happy. The afternoon dragged and then it was time to go home. Sebastian told them that his boss was negotiating with Peter about being their transport for the tour. That evening, Willow took her laptop into the club, let Gina handle the keyboard duties, and started making lists of things involving the Leicester property.
She looked at the area on Google Maps and saw that there was a supermarket just around the corner. Not only would it be good to get supplies, but also good as a parking spot if you were only a few of you in a single people mover. She sent Wilhelm an email asking him if he had bought a minibus yet, and, if not, get a seven-seater people mover instead, telling him about the parking area. She also found a fish and chop / pizza place down the road, with a chicken place a couple of doors further on. The websites both showed that they took on-line orders.
When she was back at home, she found the cards that have been given her, and sent the door specialist an email to ask if they would like to quote for a pair of high-security double doors and specialist doors to a recording studio, designed to minimise sound escape.
She also sent one to the specialist builder and invited him to talk about a project to convert a cool store into a recording studio. With both emails, she noted that it was Sebastian and his fellow workers from the security company who had given her their details, and cc’ed Wilhelm.
On Thursday, she told Sebastian that she had made the enquiries, and the three talked about the project. Lunch was a lot quieter, everyone seemingly now used to having gold record holders in the room. Willow asked Xavier if he knew of good builders of recording studios, and he told her he would give her a name on Friday. PE was very different, as the coach allowed them an easy session, with just a friendly game of netball, where the winning team were allowed to just watch and make notes for her afterwards. She, like the other coaches, were now looking at the following year with anticipation of more cups.
On Friday, Xavier gave her a piece of paper with the name of a company that specialised in recording and TV studios, who were also sound baffling specialists. At lunch, she went to see the nurse first with the packet of injections. The nurse gave her the shot and put the packet away. After lunch, they had a lot of fun in the music session, starting to get the hang of what you can do with gamelan. Mister Jamieson told them that they had another session before needing to play something for the marking. After that, several of the class looked at Willow and Gina for inspiration. Dianne suggested that they try to incorporate ‘Her Day’ into the beat, with it a little slower being a bonus. They worked on that, with Willow singing the words, and the drummers and bellringers following the notes.
That evening, she emailed the studio specialists, telling them that the site was in Leicester, and that she would like to talk to them about a complete set-up, sound studio, comprehensive recording suite, rest room and post-production facility.
Saturday morning, she received a phone call from the studio builders. The man said that he would like to visit the site to see if it was possible before he would commit to a quote. She said that she would ring back. She rang Mervyn to see if it was possible to come to have a look with a specialist, and then, after being told ‘anytime’, rang Xavier.
“Xavier, Willow here. The guy from that studio specialist wants to have a look at the site. Is it possible for you to organise someone to take us there, this afternoon?”
“Sure thing, Willow. I’ll get Frank’s dad to bring us. We can pick you up about one. You have a sing-along tonight, don’t you?”
“We do. I’ll give him a call and tell him the address, with a two ‘o’clock meeting. I’ll ring you back if it’s anything different.”
She rang the man and he confirmed that he would meet her there at two, leaving Manchester soon. She got herself some lunch and told Wendy that she was being taken to Leicester for a meeting that afternoon and should be home in time to be ready for the club that evening.
Just before one, Frank’s father stopped outside and she went out to sit in the back, next to Xavier. Frank was excited, as he hadn’t seen the site yet. They talked about the sort of equipment that they would need on the way. At the site, they parked and waited for the specialist. Willow went to see Mervyn and got five hi-vis vests. He was smiling and told her that he had been advised of the lower lease costs and said that it would make a big difference to his bottom line.
When the specialist arrived, they all stood in the carpark and Willow made the introductions as she gave out the hi-vis.
“You’re Willow Rose. I’m so pleased to meet you. We don’t often get asked to create recording spaces for established stars, usually commercial sites. Where’s the studio going to be?”
“Follow me and watch out for fork-lifts. They’re electric and very quiet.”
She led them into the storage area, and then into the workshop. Xavier grinned as he hit the button to lift the roller door. Willow went inside, switched the door-lock on and then turned on the lights. Frank said something that his father frowned at him for, and then laughed.
“I totally agree with you, son. This is amazing.”
The specialist pulled out a small voice recorder.
“Tell me what you want as we walk down to the other end. First, tell me what we’re standing in.”
“OK. This was a cool room, and there is a cooling system on the roof. I would think that the main walls are all brick outer, insulating inside a frame, and heavy board on the inside. Where we’re now standing, we’ll copy the wall construction to leave a single wide door, with a labyrinth entry to minimise external noise. This will be a rest room, with toilets that will be piped into the factory next door. As you can see the roof is presently flat for the middle section, where I guess the cooling ducts come in. There are no power outlets that I’ve seen. If we move forward, we come to the recording and post-production area. The outside is forty feet wide, and we just need to keep enough space for the studio itself. I guess that it’s about a hundred feet long.”
He turned off the recorder and pulled a big tape measure out of his bag. They measured the space, with the internal width actually thirty-seven feet and the length a hundred and ten. He noted the sizes in a notebook and then held the tape up to the wall to record the minimum height, which turned out to be just over thirteen feet. At the other end, Xavier opened the other roller door. Willow explained that this would be the access point for the equipment and any building supplies.
“The outer door will be changed to a more secure design before you start. This wall will be a good one to test for the amount of baffling needed to ensure no sound loss. The roller door will need the same work as the one at the other end. We have a contact with a specialist builder for that, leaving a double door with a sliding soundproofing door when everything is in. We will be only using the outer room for storage, the lane at the back isn’t big enough for parking, so everything will have to be unloaded inside the building.”
“How much do you have in the budget?”
“How much do you think your part in it will cost?”
He grinned.
“I expect that it could be between six and nine hundred thousand, depending on what you want installed.”
“We’re planning on recording a group of up to twenty strong, at the very top, with it usually being around a dozen. If you’ve heard us, you’ll know the sort of stuff we play, but will be moving towards stadium rock with bigger amps. I expect that we’ll bring in some hundred, or two hundred, watt amps, but you can get all the sounds you need from fifty watts with some of the effects boxes these days. That figure is well within what we have on hand, if we wait a while to buy anywhere else.”
“You own this?”
“The whole site, with the distribution company as our tenants.”
“Anything else to show me?”
“We do have use of the upper level of the office block, if you want to use it as a design office or a clean room.”
“When are you thinking of starting?”
“As soon as the building work is finished. If you test the walls for asbestos and the amount of baffling needed, you can start your part as soon as we agree on a price. It will, of course, include the windowed wall between the studio and the rest, with a soundproof access door.”
“How big do you want the studio to be?”
“I’ll let you advise on that; you know how much space the recording and rest space usually takes up.”
“We could possibly put the post-production on a mezzanine floor to save space. Same thing with your rest area, a place for your file storage upstairs is always handy.”
“Sounds good. Xavier was the sound man on our DVD, with Frank as one of the cameramen. If you share contact numbers, they are both more with the details than I am. Can you please keep the location within your company. It’s not going to be a studio for hire, just a hidey hole for us and some friends.”
They shut the end roller and walked back to the entry point, with the man taking pictures on his phone. Back outside, Willow collected the vests, and they all went to see Mervyn to give them back and have a look upstairs. There were some handshakes, and then they went back home.
Frank was a chatterbox on the way back, keen to help. Xavier told him that he could help when they looked at the mixing board and the recording units. They decided that, although the old tapes had a better sound, it was mainly because of the ‘noise’ that was generated, and that it was possible to add that noise digitally if needed.
When they dropped Willow off, she offered to pay for the fuel and told not to even think of it. She went into her home with a feeling that something had been achieved. She sent a group email, reporting on what had occurred that afternoon. She worked for a while on the emailed songs and then got herself ready to go to the club.
The sing-along was just the three of them, with Willow letting Jacob have a big share of the show, which pleased him. After he had left, with his parents, Gina was sitting beside her.
“Something different tonight, friend. You seem withdrawn.”
“I’m having a small problem, Gina. It’s that I’m starting to think that Jacob is the man in my life, and that he should be the leader.”
“So, what’s the problem. He’s the top dog except when we’re on stage with the band. You’re the one with the good ideas, the quick thinker who steers the ship. You’re the one who writes most of our songs.”
“With the move to stadium rock, that will change. What did you think of Viv’s idea around the Magic Flute?”
“One word – quirky, but we can work on it. It does tell a story, but the original lyrics don’t resolve it. Also, it will need to be sung by more lead singers than we usually use.”
“What if we work it like a choral piece? It doesn’t have to be one song. We could break it up into the different stories and get several songs out of it, a bit like telling a story. That way, we could expand each character. If we do that, it could end up as a complete concept album.”
“That might work. We can talk to Viv at school about that. She might go for the idea. How did you feel about what you did this afternoon?”
“It was positive. Xavier acted as if it was going to be his kingdom and Frank was bouncing around like a puppy. We were taken seriously. I looked at the company’s website and they do very good work, probably more luxurious than we were thinking, but it’s all created to suit the site. We took measurements, and the interior walls are eighteen inches thick. That’s some serious insulation, even if you take off the width of the brick. Mervyn’s happy about the situation, and that’s going to be helpful in future.”
“Getting the lease dropped by twenty percent would make anyone happy. Have you thought about what you’re doing with all that extra money this month?”
“We paid off the mortgage on the house. It makes me feel better grounded. What about you?”
“I’ve drawn most of it and started an interest-bearing account. You know, one where you put money in and get a bonus but lose the bonus if you take some out. I’m thinking about a nice house of my own in the future. With Brent as a boyfriend, I’m starting to consider life beyond school. After our birthday party, it was if a switch turned on my thoughts about growing up. Maybe that’s what is happening to you.”
“I can honestly say that I had never had thoughts about what I was going to be doing as a woman before. Besides playing music. The thing is that now there are things that need organising in the real world and I’m beginning to enjoy that side of it.”
“When you organise, my friend, everyone benefits. Please don’t stop.”
Sunday was Gina’s turn in the church. Willow sat with her parents and listened to the voices. There was a new one, that was quite good, that she hadn’t heard before. When she looked around, she noted that it came from the producer that had been with Clive at the school. After the Reverend had left the building, she followed him out.
“Excuse me sir, but you’re the producer with Abbey Road, aren’t you?”
“I am. Willow. I came along to hear for myself the organ that launched a pop group, to hear someone else playing.”
“That’s Gina Summer, she’ll be out soon when the bells finish. I believe we’ll be seeing you on the weekend.”
“You will. I’ve spoken to your teachers, and we’ve decided to record you playing the ‘Seven Variations’, the Grieg Piano Concerto, and the ‘Danse Macabre’. Then the Rodrigo guitar concerto and the ‘Bolero’. It will be the Blue Coat Orchestra playing classical favourites. That’s what I love doing. The week after, I’m scheduled to record some big rock group that I’ve never heard of. I can’t say that I’m looking forward to that.”
“Here comes Gina, you may remember her on the piano playing the Grieg. Gina, you remember our anonymous Abbey Road producer. He’s just told me that he’s not looking forward to recording The Other Side in a couple of weeks.”
“I’m sorry that I haven’t introduced myself, I’m so used to being in the background. I’m Harold Withers. How did you know the name of the band? I’ve been told that they haven’t had anything on the market.”
Gina laughed.
“It’s good to meet you outside of school, Mister Withers. I’m Gina Summer and this is Willow Rose. We’re the original members of Summer Rose, which you may have heard of. The band that you’ll be recording is The Other Side of Summer Rose. Which is the two of us, six other members of the school orchestra, and three others from the school.”
“I had no idea. I have the DVD for the ‘Journey’ album at home. My daughter is a fan.”
“Would you like to see where it was filmed? It’s just across the road, where everyone else are going. You’ll get a free hot drink, if nothing else.”
They took him into the club. Jacob was there with Racheal and Rick. Gina took over the introductions.
“Friends, this is Harold Withers, who will be the producer at Abbey Road next weekend. Mister Withers, this is Jacob Epstein, who will be the soloist on guitar with the Rodrigo. The lady is his sister, Racheal, and the guy is Rick Saxon, who, in another life, is Rick Sacks with the Hikers.”
“My word! This is amazing. That’s two-thirds of this new Coventry Sound. What else do you have to surprise me with?”
“Come on through to the back.”
They led him to the back room.
“This is where that ‘Journey’ album and DVD was recorded. We’ve never been into a studio to re-record it. It was all done on a limited budget with a portable digital unit.”
“I can see it. That’s the stage in the video. How on earth did you get the sound so good?”
“Our sound and camera guys are old hands from recording school concerts, and Willow paid for the best equipment to do the job. The sound man has a Platinum Record for his work.”
Harold got them to stand with him by the stage for a selfie.
“My daughter will tear her hair out when I show her this. At the school, you were all gifted musicians. I never realised how gifted some of you are. It will be interesting to have you in the studio. I’m told that you’ll be recording two entire albums in a day. That’s unheard of! I know some bands who would spend a month doing one, let alone two.”
Willow grinned.
“The day we recorded ‘Journey’, we also recorded one of the albums that we’re re-recording. I’ll pop home and get you a copy. You can show it to your daughter as a hint of where we’re moving.”
He got a drink and looked at the Gold Record behind the bar, while she popped home and got one of the DVDs and a pendant on a chain. When she got back, she gave them to him.
“Look, Mister Withers, we’re all looking forward to recording in your studio. If you treat the orchestra as reasonable adults, we’ll be able to nail the lot in a day. I believe that we’re leaving here very early on the Saturday, and have a night in a hotel, with another session Sunday. If we have time to spare, there are others that we’ve worked on for our concerts in the Cathedral, so we might be able to lay down a couple more before we come home.”
She was sitting with the others when the Reverend came in, followed by Jim, from G-Force. They came over to the table.
“I think you all know Jim. He came along to hear the service today and has volunteered to play the organ at odd times. I know that you girls will be busy some Sundays. I showed him the organ. Can you pop back into the church and show him where things are?”
“Welcome to the League of Stoneleigh Organists, Jim. We’ll both be in London for the next two weekends recording, so we’d better show you the tricks. Church organ is very contained, so no embellishments are allowed. Come with us for a few minutes. We’ll be back soon.”
They took him back to the church and up to sit at the organ. The music for that day was still on the stand.
“Did the Reverend describe what the procedure was?”
“He did. The only thing I haven’t done is play.”
“Right! First thing is to have something that you can play at the start and at the finish. You would have heard us play Bach at the school assemblies. It just needs to be something that you can fade out without it being noticeable. When the Reverend leaves and you’re playing him out, there will be the electronic bells. You can stop playing when the church is empty, but if some are hanging around, we generally stop with the bells. You’ll find it easy after you’ve heard them a couple of times.”
“OK, It sounds good. What about the hymns?”
“We come in on a Friday evening or a Saturday to see what’s on the board. We both usually play the full set all the way through. The Reverend will often put the music up here for you. Now, during summer, you’ll be with us on tour, so we may have to find another organist.”
“A tour! I haven’t been told about that one.”
“Write your email on the notepad, there, and I’ll send you the information. It’s still early days. Now, this is how Old Betsy’s gets turned on.”
They coached him through the procedure, and he played one of that days hymns to get the feel of the instrument.
“This is really different. You feel as if you’re part of a living beast. I love it!”
“If you like it so much, you’re welcome to the next two weekends. We’ll be in London with the orchestra and then with the band.”
Back at the club, they stayed for lunch and the talk was happy and wondering about good things to come. Rick had been contacted about the likely tour, so was able to fill Jim in on what little he knew. Harold stayed and talked about the studio set-up where they would be on the weekend and was able to give them some pointers on what to do, or not to do, inside a studio. When he left, he was more of a friend, and not someone to be afraid of.
Back at home, Willow emailed Jim with Jill’s message and a note that the Gees may have not yet been contacted. She wrote out the existing lyrics of Vivienne’s song and split the verses into four sections, then seeing what she could do to expand the story for each section. She thought hard about what the resolution was, as it had been left up in the air. If the one who professed to be a loser ended up on top, there had to be a satisfactory reason. In the opera, the clown wins the hand of the fair maiden.
She saved her notes in a word document and composed an email to Vivienne. She said that she had been thinking about the song suggestion and the attachment was her notes. She said that it would make a great concept album if it was expanded to about ten songs, in whatever form decided on, whether original Summer Rose or the Other Side. She noted that great works come from humble beginnings and if Vivienne needed others to help her work on it, she need only ask.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 14
At Monday lunch, the first person that Willow saw was Vivienne, who came over and hugged her.
“Thank you so much for your comments and ideas, Willow. You’re right, as usual. I’d been scared at putting myself forward and kept the song simple. I see why you thought it unresolved. I’ll work on it between now and the practise at the club. I’m honoured that you think it worthy of an album.”
“But it is, Vivienne. Most concept albums have a simple premise and describe the journey from one place to another. Your story just has a lot more points of view, so the song that you sent could be the penultimate track, with the previous ones setting the five individual scenes, if you include the fair maiden. The final track could be the lovers finding that they are just that. All you need to do is to think that you’re each character and write a song to fit. The first track could be the setting of the trials, with the maiden as the prize. It could be set in any era, not the magical royal one from Mozart, but something up to date, like having a love child of Elon Musk being the one on the auction block.”
The next to talk to her was Geoff and Zara, who still hadn’t been officially advised that they would be on the tour. Willow wondered if Peter was having to negotiate with the school because of the important exams. Miss Russell sent the orchestra a note to say that the Tuesday session would be a bit longer, as they were going to play everything that they had mastered in case it was required when they were at Abbey Road.
When they were going home, Sebastian was told about that arrangement. That evening, Willow did some exercises on her clarinet and made sure that it was ready to be taken in the morning.
On Tuesday, on the way to school, Gina told Willow that she was going with her mother to visit Madame Francesca on Wednesday evening, so wouldn’t be at the choir practise. At lunch, they confirmed that all the band, and Xavier, were going to be at the club on Thursday, and that their parents were happy to just sit and watch the music being created. The orchestra session was as long as expected, with them doing everything they had learned except the Beethoven ‘Choral’ and the ‘Organ Symphony’. Willow was asked to practise the ‘Seven Variations’ at home, as well as the ‘Toccata and Fugue’ she had played at the first Cathedral Concert. Before they were sent home, Miss Russell came in.
“Boys and girls, there is a slight change of plans for the weekend. Because of the number of items you will be recording, we will be arriving at the studio first thing after breakfast. The hotel booking has been extended to Friday and Saturday and you will be picked up at the school at seven, Friday evening. Saturday night, you’re all going to the theatre to see ‘Wicked’.”
There were cheers and a lot of chatter as the room emptied. As Willow and Gina were heading for the door, Miss Russell beckoned them over.
“I will tell you that it has been the income from your school concerts that have allowed this to happen. The money from your website sales have been a great addition to the bottom line. Thank you and the band.”
The vehicle was waiting at the door when they got out. They took Brent home first and then headed for Stoneleigh. Jacob gave Willow a kiss when he arrived at the farm, and Rick came out to the vehicle door.
“Good news. We have paid the in-laws the whole amount for the farmhouse and a sum that will cover two years of land rent while we learn how to farm. We’ll have a bit of a party soon, but I believe that you’re in London for the next two weekends so it will be after that.”
When Willow arrived home, her parents were already there. They prepared dinner and Willow went to the locker in the garage to get the recording equipment ready for Thursday evening. She checked her emails and saw that there were several replies with extra tracks of her new songs, so she worked her magic with the laptop and mixing program to come up with a composite of each one.
Wednesday was a lot quieter. Gina didn’t know what they were going to see Madame Francesca about, and Vivienne said that she was still looking at the new songs. That evening, Willow played the organ for the choir and was getting more impressed with how they were coming on. Tom’s book had been the difference, so she asked him she could have one and carried it home afterwards for future reading.
On Thursday morning, Gina had a big smile on her face.
“Found out what the secrecy was about. Mum had been taking pictures of the band, and checking labels when she could. Tomorrow evening, Frankie the Ham will be at the club with her two assistants. With Mum, they’ll be measuring all of us for stage outfits. They’ll be ready before we go on tour, four different sets, so we can always have a clean outfit. Frankie has done a deal with Peter to be paid a set amount each show we use them, as well as having our photos in her shop.”
“That’s great! I only hope that they’re a bit more modest than the ones her assistant gave us before.”
“I saw some of the designs. She’ll bring a dozen copies of the sketches to look at before they make them. She wants us to tick the ones we like, and she’ll put together the collection then.”
At lunch, there was a lot of chatter among the orchestra members about the recording session. It was all new to everyone, even the band, as they considered that the session they had done in Birmingham was a bit like playing in a soundproof loungeroom. PE saw them doing exercises and working on parallel bars to get some upper body training.
That evening, Ashley helped his daughter carry the recording equipment to the club, where she sat it on a table. When the others arrived, they pulled out all the amps, drums, and keyboards, and set up microphones and the PA. Xavier arrived with Frank, and they set up the recording equipment.
They all had a simple meal, seeing that it was a weekday, with Wendy and some of the other mothers doing the heating of the pies and cooking the chips. They had just finished when Madame Francesca arrived with her assistants and tape measures. As each band member was measured, they went through to the back room. Willow and Gina were the last, and Frankie gave them a big wad of sketches for later on. The three stayed for a while, joining the mothers and fathers to see the process happen before their eyes.
They played ‘Hopelessly Human’ as a warmup and to get the mix right. Then they nodded to Xavier that this was to be a recording and played ‘Dummy Splitter’ for the second time. After that, it took three tries each for the other songs that they had returned the extra tracks for.
After that, Vivienne said that she now had different words for the song that she had sent through, but the tune remained the same. She explained that it was now to be part of a larger work, and that this particular song was to link the five characters towards the beginning of the set. She had written out the full lyrics, with music, and gave one each to Willow and Gina, one to Jacob and one each to Roy, Bryan, and Edward.
“The basis of the set is that a social media baron has a beautiful daughter. That’s you, Willow. Your lines are marked ‘Titania’. The media baron is fed up of men trying to woo her and announces a trial on his site. She would take the hand of the winner of a set of trials. No slaying of dragons here. The first trial is to amass five million followers on his site, and the second is to turn that into hard cash. Five take up the challenge, four men and a woman, who knows, firsthand, that Titania swings both ways.”
Willow played the basic tune on the piano setting. The core group had worked on the original tune, so they played the song, taking care to get the words in the right place. There was a bit of giggling as they worked through it, as the lyrics were a curious mix of Shakespeare and street jargon. It started with Willow singing about how terrible it was for her father to do such a thing, and then each of the entrants sang about how wonderful they were and how happy Titania would be when they are wed, or before, in a couple of cases. Three men were all man, tough and confident. The other man is diffident, and shy. The girl is as hard as nails, and was confident that Titania would submit to her, again.
With the third playing, Xavier recorded it, and there was a lot of smiling faces in the audience, as parents had seen a top band nail a new, and difficult song. After the recorded track, they played it again without the words in front of them, with a bit more freedom to improvise the music.
They stopped there, with Vivienne saying that she would be supplying further songs in the set as they got together again. The band turned everything off and put the equipment away. Xavier downloaded the recordings to his laptop.
Willow asked the parents if they were fully aware of the next two weekends. Those that were in the orchestra would be picked up at the school and driven to London, to be back at the school after five on Sunday afternoon. The band will be leaving Coventry with the security in a coach, and driven to London the following Friday, and likely to be getting back about teatime on the Sunday. They would all be picked up at home and would just need their instruments. Drums, keyboards, and amps would be in the studio. Before she had come to the club, she had read an email from Jill, so passed on the information that had been sent.
“I have been advised that Saturday evening, the band will be guests on the BBC talk show. Not to play, they will show something from our DVD, but we will all need to dress nicely. Madame Francesca, would it be possible to have a set of outfits for us by that Thursday evening? We can have another session like this to try things on.”
“Certainly, Willow. If you all pick an item from the sketches we brought, it’s easy to get one set together.”
They all took a set of sketches and ticked four styles, each, for the fashion house to put together a collection that would work on TV. Xavier took Willow aside as they collected up the cables and told her that he was going be included in with the orchestra trip, as a helper, as well as an opportunity from the school to study a professional recording studio. Willow told him that she would see if he could be added to the band trip as well.
Ashley and Wendy helped carry the recording equipment home. Her parents were quiet, after seeing how the band created music. They had heard ‘Spitter’ before, but what they had heard tonight was a lot more effective. At home, they packed the stuff in the cupboard and had a hot drink before bed. Willow packed a small case before she went to bed, putting in some casual items and a nice dress for the theatre. She also had her clarinet and a cosmetic case which would have her teeth cleaning items added tomorrow.
On Friday, there was more excitement among the orchestra, and Willow went to see the nurse at lunch for her third injection. She was asked if she had noticed any changes and could only say that she wasn’t feeling as tired as she used to be. That afternoon, they were let out a little earlier, and the security detail was outside to take them home. At home, she stripped off and had a shower, then dressed in her better underwear, vowing to go shopping for more when she could. In a soft skirt and a good blouse, with just a cardigan if it got cool, she loaded her bag in Ashley’s car, and they went off to pick up Gina and Jacob, and then went to the school.
The trip to London was boisterous, with Willow and Gina asked to sing some of their songs and the rest joining in. Seeing that eight of the Summer Rose were on the coach, it sounded pretty good. They all fitted into the one coach, just. A truck had gone ahead with the larger instruments, such as cellos and double bass’s, as well as the pair of Yamahas and the Martin guitars. Reg was following, with Miss Russell and Mister Bamborough.
At the hotel, it was too late to do anything but go to the rooms that they had been allocated. Gina, Willow, Vivienne and Nancy were in a two-room suite, and the four other band members shared a similar room further along the corridor. Jacob and Brent suggested that they swap rooms, but the other girls weren’t agreeing. Nancy said that if the other two guys had been Herb and Roy, they may have thought about it.
The next morning, they all gathered in the dining room for breakfast, then freshened up to get on the bus to head for the studio. It took about twenty minutes and Sebastian pulled into a driveway with a security guard at the double gate. The truck was already in the carpark area. They all got out with their bags and smaller instruments. They were gathered by the front door of what looked like a large house. They were told to stay quiet as the security man opened the gates again to let the coach back out, with Reg and Howard stopping the traffic to give him room.
The other instruments had already been taken out of the truck and it left with the coach. Miss Russell announced that their things would be safe in the studio overnight, and they would load up before they go home. Jill came out with a big bunch of lanyards, which she handed out by name. When she got to Willow and Gina, she smiled and told them that she was looking forward to next week, and for the band members to bring theirs the next week. After many selfies in front of the building, with the iconic name over the main door, they were led through the house, past offices and small studios, until they arrived at the main studio, where Harold Withers was waiting for them.
When they walked in, there was a short period where the door was blocked, as the first ones through it had to stop and take in the sight before them. The place was huge! It must be at least two floors high, with almost more floor space than the school hall. There were some seats in front of a rostrum, with music stands. They explored the rest of the studio as the cellos, double base’s and the Yamahas were set up. The studio already had a grand piano, an old church organ, a two-tier organ and a keyboard. Mister Withers called out for everyone to come and take their seats for the ‘Carnival of the Animals’. They were more widely spaced than usual, with a microphone each and a set of headphones for every player. It took a while for each player to play something to have the microphones adjusted and the mix set. Finally, they were ready. Mister Bamborough took to the podium, putting on his headphones. Mister Withers left the studio floor with Xavier following him. The space went quiet, and a voice came through the headphones.
“Please ensure that nobody has their mobile phone on, even set to silent, then play the first movement through so we can adjust the mix. There will be a red light come on when we’re actually recording, so no talking while it’s on”
They played the first movement and Willow could hear the sound as if she was listening to a CD, with slight variations in the mix as they moved along. At the end, the voice came back.
“Now recording, please play the entire piece. If there are any problems, we can repeat it as many times as it takes. Light coming on, now!”
Mister Bamborough raised his baton, and they were recording the ‘Carnival of The Animals’ in the main studio at Abbey Road! There was no need for a second take, and they moved around to play ‘Bolero’ with Willow taking her place with her clarinet, next to Vivienne on the flute, Alec not permitted the trip by his mother.
They then completed the trio of short pieces with ‘Danse Macabre’. They had a lunch break with small groups given a tour through the rest of the complex. Xavier came over to Willow while she was eating a sandwich and was almost beside himself.
“Behind that big window is heaven on earth. One bank of sliders is forty-eight wide, and there’s a second set. Harold told me that the second set is used when they have vocalists. I watched them as they set the mix, and I learned a lot.”
When it was time for Willow to go for a tour, her group was the eight band members plus Xavier and Reg. Jill was the guide for them. She took them through to other studios, pointing out a smaller one that they would use the following week, as well as some time in a post-production suite which almost had Xavier drooling. The tour finished at the shop, where they had a few minutes to look around before going back for the afternoon session.
That started with Jacob playing the Rodrigo concerto. To Willow, it sounded perfect through the headphones, but the operator wanted it played again. Jacob made the Martin sing and Willow’s heart swelled with pride for him.
After that there was a bit of a break while the grand piano was positioned, and Gina was tested for the mix. Gina was in her element, the months of playing the organ and entertaining made for a lively and spirited performance.
Harold Withers came over the headphones.
“You’ve all done well today. The repeat of the Rodrigo was due to a technical fault in here. We have time for Willow to record one of her pieces, so, if the rest of you want to have a wander around and check out the shop, your performers lanyard will get you discount. Headphones off, please. You can leave everything as it is.”
Most of the orchestra went off to explore, and Willow was taken to where the keyboards were. Close up, the organ looked like something out of a church. She sat at it and warmed up with some Bach as they technicians set the microphone and mix. She was asked to play the ‘Seven Variations’ when the red light came on. The others in the studio were asked to stay quiet, and the light came on. She played the first movement and then took her hands from the keyboard. The light went out and the voice in the headphones asked her what the matter was.
“It’s crap. I can get a better sound out of the Yamaha or my Nord. This organ sounds like it spent twenty years in a Wesleyan Chapel, being played by miners with big hands.”
There was silence, then Harold Withers laughed.
“I told you guys that she’s a perfectionist. Looks like Plan B is in order. Take the headphones off, Willow, we’ll continue your part of this tomorrow. We have an authentic instrument to play then. You were wrong, that one spent fifty years at a mining village.”
Willow stepped away from the organ. It wasn’t that bad, and had been looked after, but it wasn’t right. Reg came over to her.
“I knew that you wouldn’t be happy with that one. A lot of good musicians would have recorded on that without complaint, but they never had the exposure to proper pipe organs that you have. You go and see if there’s anything in the shop you like. When the coach comes back, we’ll be clearing our things. The studio is happy, the label is happy, and the school will be happy when the album comes out. Plan B is for us all to go to another venue while you do your part, and then you’ll be off home.”
Willow went off to find the others. They were, as expected, browsing in the shop. There was so much to look at. Brent had brought three Pink Floyd tee shirts for the other band members, and a lot of the orchestra had Abbey Road Tee’s. Willow bought a sign which read ‘Abbey Road Studio Two. Do not enter when red light is on’ which she thought she may glue on her bedroom door. Then there was the ‘Inside Abbey Road’ book with lots of photos. There was a Deep Purple ‘Made in Japan’ Abbey Road remix vinyl album which she got for her parents. She wondered if it may lead to having a brother or sister before she left Blue Coat. She finished off with a set of six Abbey Road mugs, just in case they made triplets.
Jill came along and started herding everyone back to the main studio. When they were all accounted for, Mister Bamborough spoke to them.
“The day has been a success and we have finished here, so collect all your bags and small instruments. The truck is coming back and will be going back to the school with all the large things tonight. We are going back to the hotel for dinner, and then we’ll be off to see ‘Wicked’. Tomorrow, after breakfast, take all your things from your rooms as we’ll be checking out when we leave. We will be going to another venue with a better organ for Willow to play, and then will return to Coventry. When we get an approximate arrival, you can call your rides to be ready to pick you up.”
They gathered all their things and took another good look around as they left. It had been a great day and an experience to cherish. Jill told Willow that she would see her in the morning, and was looking forward to the next weekend, when they would be in one of the smaller studios.
“You won’t be bringing the two Yamahas next week. Is there a particular keyboard that you want us to have for you?”
“We played Nord Stage Three’s at a do the other week and they were great. If you get a pair, I’ll pay for them if you send me the invoice, as we may have somewhere to use them in a couple of months. If you get two-tier stands, we both have Nord Electro’s that we can mount on them.’
“OK, I’ll see what I can do. Clive will meet us tomorrow, to talk about the tour. Were you happy with the schedule?”
“It looked good. Enough time to have off unless the shows are sell-outs.”
Sebastian had parked at the kerb, and they all piled on board. As they were leaving, the truck was turning up to collect the bigger things. Miss Russell was staying behind to oversee the loading.
At the hotel, they all freshened up and went to dinner. There was a lot of positive energy in the room. After dinner, they had time to get changed. In their room, the four girls helped each other get dressed. With the money they had been earning, they had all bought good outfits, and looked good when they went down to the reception.
The coach took them to the theatre, and they all had a wonderful evening seeing ‘Wicked’. Willow noticed Mister Bamborough buying a DVD of the show, as well as a very expensive book with all the script, lyrics and music in. She wondered if that would be the next musical that the school would put on. After today, she thought, nothing was impossible.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 15
In the morning, the four girls got ready for the day, with Willow wondering what Plan B entailed. The went down for breakfast and then back to their rooms to make sure that they had everything packed, with Nancy walking through the suite to see if anything had been left.
The coach was outside, and Sebastian helped them store their cases and souvenirs in the baggage area. Willow made sure that the record was laid flat, so it didn’t buckle. When they were all seated. Mister Bamborough stood up at the front.
“Now, listen to me carefully. Today, we are going to a place where Mister Withers and the record label have negotiated that we have some time in. We have to be out of it by two, so will have lunch on the way home. You may have thought that you saw it all yesterday but be prepared to be amazed. The studio has set up a simple recording system as there is only the one instrument to record, so there’s no red light. All mobile phones off when we get there. No taking pictures inside, but there are postcards to buy.”
Sebastian drove them into the centre of London and pulled up in the carpark of the Albert Hall. Mister Bamborough stood again.
“As you can see, we’re at the Albert Hall. This is where you will be playing on the Monday evening during the Proms final week. We are trying to get a time to run through a complete practise before that time. It may be the early part of the summer holidays, or late in the term. Now, off the coach and follow me.”
They were quiet as they walked towards the imposing building. Inside, it took their breath away. Reg Edwards took Willow up to the organ, with Gina following. They were met by one of the organists that had played it often, and he described the settings that would work for the ‘Toccata’ and for the ‘Seven Variations’.
Harold Withers joined them with a set of headphones and a receiver unit.
“These will help you and hear when instructions are given. We’ve recorded here before, so the microphone settings were easy. Now, I want the ‘Toccata’ first. Are you ready, Willow?”
“No sir, I am not ready. My friend, here, is able to play that as well as I can. If we have a CD of just organ music, why not let her do this one. At least, let her play this organ to get the experience. If the recording isn’t up to scratch, then I’ll have a go.”
He looked at her, then smiled.
“All right. Gina, put the headphones on and warm your fingers. You’ll hear when we’re ready.”
He went back down, and Gina hugged Willow before putting the headphones on and started to play some Bach. The other three put ear defenders on that the organist had brought up with him and stood to one side. Reg gave Willow a grin as they waited. Gina stopped playing and looked at them, then hit the keys with some force. At that moment, Willow realised why they were wearing ear defenders where they were standing.
From her standpoint, Willow couldn’t fault Gina’s rendition and there was silence as the last notes died away. She could see Mister Bamborough down below, with a finger to his lips. The sound man, with Xavier beside him, headphones on, relaxed and there was a cheer from the assembled orchestra, seated in the first rows of the stalls. Gina took the headphones off, tears in her eyes.
“He said it was all right and it’s your turn, friend. This one is the best of the best. Thank you for giving me the opportunity to play. I know that you’ll rock the house with the symphony.”
Willow took the headphones and put them on, handing her defenders to Gina. She sat at the keyboard and played Bach until a voice came through, asking if she was ready. She stopped playing and waited until they were happy with the silence.
“All right, Willow. The ‘Seven Variations’ please. I’ll tell you if I want to restart at any time. Usually, the only thing to upset a recording is an emergency vehicle going by. Ready when you are, recording on.”
She played the ‘Seven Variations’ from memory, finding all the things that made this organ the best in the world. When she finished, there was silence until she could hear cheering from below. The voice came back.
“Willow, it seems that there’s a bit of room in the timing. Do you have something less than ten minutes to fill up the CD?”
She lifted her arm with her thumb up.
“All right, we’ll get this lot quiet again and then I’ll give you the go.”
She turned to the other three next to her and gave them a wink, then turned back to the keyboard to make a couple of adjustments as she waited. Finally, the voice told her that recording was on, and she played the Saint-Saens Opus Nine, the Nuptial Benediction, stretching it out slightly. The orchestra had heard it before, in the Cathedral, but this organ seemed to spread the love over the whole space.
When the last notes died, there was more silence and then a burst of cheering. She took the headphones off and stood, to be hugged by Gina, Reg and the organist, who asked her what that piece was. Willow asked Reg how much time they had left, and he told her that there was plenty.
“Can you pop down and tell the techs that I want to do the last part of the Organ Symphony, seeing that I’m going to do it for the Proms.”
He nodded and went down to the mixing board and spoke to Harold Withers. She put the headphones on again and waited.
“Willow, we have clearance for you to play. We won’t be recording and will be gathering up our equipment while you play. Whenever you’re ready.”
She sat and played a little Bach again and made more adjustments. The other two donned the ear defenders and waited. She stopped playing, winked at Gina and the hit the notes with the same force that Gina had used. Down below, everyone stopped in their tracks as the sound rolled down towards them like a pyroclastic cloud. She played the last movement through, in the version that they would be using, hearing the orchestra singing the words.
When she finished and Jupiter’s Voice was silenced, the organist told her that she would have a standing ovation if they were ending their evening with that. Gina gave him her defenders, and the girls left the organ to join their friends and give the headphones and receiver back. The organist went to pick up the music and then realised that it was untouched, with everything he had just heard played from memory. He looked down at them being hugged by the others and knew that he had just experienced a once-in-a-lifetime event.
He went down and spoke to Harold Withers.
“Those girls just did the whole session without even touching the music I’d put out.”
“I expected that. They were in the studio yesterday and did the ‘Carnival of the Animals’ from memory on two keyboards, and Gina played the Grieg Piano Concerto from memory. I’m told that when they’re with their band, they can play four hours straight, without repeating anything.”
“What’s the band?”
“They’re Summer Rose, and we have eight members of that band in this orchestra. The only ones missing are three guitarists, although one of them recorded a sublime Rodrigo yesterday. We have them in the studio next week.”
The orchestra were shown where they would be seated when they played here, to give them an idea of the tiers of seats that they would be looking out at. Then, via a visit to the shop for postcards, they all got back in the coach to head back towards Coventry. They stopped at Luton for lunch, and all called their pick-up that they would be at the school in a few hours. Reg sat with the girls and told both of them how proud he was with their playing today, especially Gina, who he had never heard play something so powerful before, especially from memory.
“It was one of the first things Willow got me to do while I was learning the Grieg. She sat me at the organ at St. Marys and told me to listen to the music in my head. That wasn’t the most successful playing, but it was better the second time. I’ve been practising that, and others, at home on my keyboard, and playing the Cathedral has been a real help. This was, by far, the most amazing experience of my life.”
“I gather that you’ll be doing the Grieg after Jacob plays the Rodrigo. Before yesterday, I knew that the orchestra was good, but you lot blew my mind with what you recorded. When it’s released, it will get rave reviews from the critics, I’m sure, and having eight members of Summer Rose in the line-up may even get some non-classical attention.”
Vivienne grinned.
“Not as much as what we’re recording next week, sir,”
………………………………………………
Back in London, Harold Withers, Jill, Clive and the technicians were listening to the playback of the recordings. Clive took control.
“Harold, treat this one with kid gloves. No stupid enhancements, please. Jill, you have all the details to get a cover design and inner notes. Make sure that they include details of the eight members of Summer Rose for the first CD and emphasise that it’s Gina Summer and Willow Rose on the organ for the second one. Also, make a special note with ‘The Swan’, as the cellist is Zara, the singer with G-Force. I want this project to be a priority and on the market in two weeks,”
…………………………………………………..
When the coach arrived at the school, there was a fleet of cars waiting for them. There was a prolonged period of hugs and kisses as they pulled their things from the lower compartment. Maisie was there to take Jacob and Gina home, while both Wendy and Ashley were there to take Willow, via the club. When they arrived, Willow asked her father to open the back of the car so she could get something out.
She had decided that the Abbey Road Studio Two sign would be better here than on her bedroom door. In the club, she presented the paper bag to Malcolm.
“I picked this up yesterday. I thought it might look good on the door to the back room.”
He opened it up and laughed.
“Thank you, Willow. I’ll put it up during the week. Then, when I advertise events, I can say that they’re being held in Studio Two. I love it!”
He came out from behind the bar and gave her a hug.
“How did the recording go?”
“It was really good. The orchestral items were in the can on Saturday, and the producer was very happy. You should see that recording studio! It’s big enough to fit this building inside and still have enough room for a good garden. Sunday, we went to the Albert Hall to record Gina and me on the big organ. We both had a ball!”
They had a relaxing time with some drinks and then had dinner, after which Willow was starting to flag. They went home and told her parents not to peek at the shopping bag as she went up to change for bed. They sat in the kitchen with a hot drink, and she pulled out the six mugs that they could use in future. Then she pulled out the book and they looked at the pictures, with a couple showing just how vast the studio was.
“I brought back something for you two. It was sitting there, just shouting at me that it could make you both very happy.”
She pulled out the Deep Purple album and her parents started laughing.
“Thank you, sweet child. Just propped up on the vanity is going to improve my sleep.”
“I thought that might be the case, Mum.”
“We don’t have a record player, Willow.”
“Dad, they’re all the rage these days. Vinyl is back and you can pick them up at any electrical store. You might want to look in record shops to see all the old greats back on disc. I could have come home with a case full of records from the Abbey Road shop. They have quite a lot of Pink Floyd albums and tee shirts. Do they do something to you like Purple does?”
“Are you looking for a brother or sister?”
“Why do you think I brought home six mugs.”
She had a long day, and went off to bed early, leaving Ashley to ponder on what their child was thinking about when she picked up the record.
“What a lot of young women think about, darling, and quite a lot of men as well. I’m not sure that I would want another child so late in life, but it’s fun trying, isn’t it. We can prop it on the vanity and imagine that night we saw them. I think she was right about one thing, Pink Floyd might have the same effect, seeing that Kansas worked.”
Monday morning was almost back to normal. When Willow was having breakfast, she assumed, from the smiles, that the record had worked. Sebastian and Max picked her up, as usual, and Sebastian told her that if he died tomorrow, he would have a smile on his face at the memory of the two girls playing that organ.
Everyone was smiling that day. Her friends, her school chums, the teachers. Lunch was fun, with some of the orchestra having brought in their purchases from the Abbey Road shop. There were several who wanted to congratulate Gina and Willow on the session in Albert Hall. It had made the entire orchestra keen to be there when they were playing the Proms. Zara came over to tell them that the ‘Swan’ had made her think about going further with her classical career if the singing faded.
“You’ll be at the club next week, so you’ll start to realise the joy of entertaining. The money isn’t bad, either.”
“You sound like my mother, I had to work hard to stop her trying to transfer my money to her account. I’ve spoken to Peter, and we have a code word that only we know if I want to transfer money. I’m going to see an accountant on my own, to set up an interest-bearing account and keep it secret.”
“We have a syndicate account which is buying property, and I have my own company account. It takes a bit to get going and may need an adult to be a director.”
“I have an older brother who works in the real estate business. I’ll talk to him.”
Monday night, when Willow checked her laptop, there were three songs that Herb and Roy had submitted, and another that Victor had sent. Willow worked with them and sent back the tracks with her extra workings. She went to bed, early, and read the book on Abbey Road.
Tuesday morning, it was her turn to play in the chapel. Reg had a grin when he said that it was a big come down from Sunday. There was a lot of notices about the vocal auditions around the school, instead of orchestra practise. During lunch, Jim came over and told the girls how much he enjoyed playing in the church.
“I see why you two love it so much. It has a stronger voice than a keyboard, and you feel as if the music is part of you that’s emerging through your fingers.”
“We’re going to be away again next week, so the seat’s yours as long as you want it. We’ll have to find someone else during summer when we’re all away playing.”
“Yes. We had an email last night, confirming that we’re part of the tour with you and the Hikers. Just playing at the local football stadium will be massive! It will be interesting to find out where the other venues are.”
“I’ll see if Jill knows more when we see her on the weekend. Hopefully, we’ll have enough for a second album by then. Your album would be heading for Platinum by now.”
“I believe that it’s getting close. I think the Hikers album may be the same. It’s crazy to have so much money. I know that Gerry is starting to think about leaving school as soon as he can, but it would need the band to keep going, or him being invited to join another band. That’s too scary for me. I’m a good enough student to go to university, and my folks have made it clear that they want that to be in my future.”
“We’ll all have to make our own decisions. It’ll be hard for a lot of us, especially when you get pressured by others. Stick with what you want to do, Jim.”
That afternoon, the auditions were set up, with so many wanting to be listened to that they had to set up a second Yamaha in another room. Willow, Tom, and one of the school choir worked in one room, working with the line of girls, while Gina worked with Mister Bamborough and another choir member with the line of boys. Jacob was sent out to the main entrance to ask Sebastian to wait until they were finished.
When the line of boys were evaluated, Gina had girls diverted to her room. They finished the auditions after just over two hours. The two choir members had three or four notebooks full of details. They must have auditioned at least a hundred students.
On the way home, they discussed the auditions, noting how many of the girls were from the first year, and how many had good high voices. Most of the boys were classed as ‘normal’, with Gina saying that Herb, Roy, and Victor would be coming back for further testing. The next week would have some brought back to sing parts of the ‘Messiah’.
“I think that Victor may be a candidate for our tenor, and there was a fourth-year lad, built like the proverbial brick outhouse, who will be a good bass, if he can actually sing.”
“We had about twenty girls who can be part of the big choir. There are some parts of the piece where the voices get to the limit. Most of those boys can fill the centre of the choir, if needed.”
That evening, Willow checked her emails and worked on a few of the new songs. If they all worked, there was enough for the ‘Homegrown’ album. Wednesday was almost normal, except for a notice around the school that selected applicants from the auditions would be contacted for further testing, and that there would be another room set aside for any who had missed out on being auditioned. It went on to say that successful singers would be expected to join the orchestra on Tuesday evenings until the end of term, so a choir could be selected for the performance at the Proms, in the Albert Hall. For many, that was the first that they’d heard that their first step was to be a gigantic leap.
Wednesday evening was the choir practise in the club, with those wanting to be part of ‘Messiah’ being picked out. None of these would be part of the Proms concert, as that was purely a Blue Coat affair, but the ‘Messiah’ was expected to have outsiders in key positions, being almost impossible to stage without them.
Thursday evening, Willow and her parents went into the club. Ashley to unlock and look after the bar, and Wendy to start the pie heaters and get the deep fryer up to temperature. The rest of the band came in, with a parent or sibling, and they pulled everything out of the storage. Xavier and Frank arrived, so Willow went back to the house with them to bring the recording equipment. The crowd all had the light meal, and some drinks, and then went through to the back room, now designated as ‘Studio Two’.
They had an audience as they worked on the new songs, before getting them recorded. They stopped for a drink and then went back on the stage to record them. They had discussed them and had written out the order on big bits of paper, which were on music stands. Xavier nodded that recording was on and they played ‘Homegrown – the album’ for the first time.
When they finished, Rick came over and gave everyone a hug. He was full of praise for what he thought might be a Platinum album. Xavier downloaded the recording to his laptop and burned a dozen CDs with a portable CD unit. One was given to each of the band members as a memento of the event. This was to be their second album to be recorded on Saturday.
They were all looking forward to the visit to Abbey Road. This was to be a private visit, so Clive had booked them to the same hotel, and Max and Sebastian would be picking them all up on Friday evening. They would be staying Saturday night, in case another recording session was needed, and would be appearing on the talk show with the BBC.
Xavier and Frank helped carry the equipment back to the house while Gina and the others cleared the stage. Willow went back to the club to say goodnight to everyone. Some parents of the wind section were trying hard to match their schoolchild with the rock band they had just seen.
When the club had been closed up and they were back home, Willow used her CD unit to transfer the CD to her laptop. She added the file to an email to Jill, telling her that this would be the second album to be recorded, and that the cover art should be a single red rose, with sharp thorns on the stem. It was to be called ‘Homegrown – Summer Rose.’ She went to sleep easily, satisfied that they had enough for a good show.
Friday morning, she had a small case packed, with something classy for the TV show. She made her bed and laid out something to the trip, and then went to get breakfast. When they arrived at Gina’s home, she came out with some garment bags.
“These arrived yesterday evening. I have yours to pick up on the way home. We can drop Jacob’s on the way in and give the others out at school.”
Willow found Jacob’s, and when they got to the farm, she got out with it to give him. He took it into the barn and came out to give her a hug before they got into the vehicle. At lunch, she went to the nurse who gave her the injection and took a blood sample for the pathology. When she got to the lunchroom. Gina had handed out the other outfits, telling them that they were for the studio and the TV show, with Vivienne and Nancy both opening the bags to have a look. As Willow ate, her phone pinged. It was a text from Jill.
‘CD Gr8. Rose now blue, red done before. SeeU2nite.’
The Music Studies session was a lot of fun, with them finally nailing a longer version of ‘Her Day’ as an instrumental. They were told that the next lesson was the last for the year, and that they would be allowed out once they had performed for the Head, while being recorded and filmed. The vehicles were waiting for them when they walked out, and they were taken home. Sebastian said that he was picking the others up first, so was likely to be at Stoneleigh about six-thirty.
Willow got herself a sandwich, expecting that they would stop along the way for a comfort stop. She showered and dressed in the outfit she had laid out, then sat with her parents for a drink as they had dinner. There was a beep outside and she kissed her parents to go out and join the band. In the bus, she was surprised to see Xavier, Frank, and Dave, but just said ‘hello’ as she went to find the seat beside Jacob, passing another surprise in Mister Jamieson.
“I’ve volunteered to be the responsible adult, seeing that you’re all students.”
He grinned.
“Besides, Reg told me that the recording studio is an experience not to be missed!”
Sebastian had the radio on, and they sang along as their own songs were played. They stopped at Luton for a comfort visit, with everyone getting fast food from the counter. When they arrived at the hotel, Jill was waiting for them with lanyards for those who didn’t already have them. Xavier had a new one with ‘Recording Engineer’ on it, while Frank and Dave both had ‘Video Cameraman’ on theirs.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 16
The four girls had the same room as before, so settled down easily. For Willow, it was like having a slumber party without late night movies, her second in a week. In the morning, they had breakfast in the dining room and then went to get ready. Back in the reception, the band looked as if they were about to perform. The outfits were great, fitted well, and made them stand out from the crowd. Jim Jamieson was non-plussed. He hadn’t been to their shows and had never seen Summer Rose play except for the school concerts.
The instruments had all stayed in the coach overnight, so they all boarded for the trip to Abbey Road. Jill had stayed at the hotel overnight and went with them. On the way, she got the microphone from Sebastian and stood up at the front.
“Today, we have been told that the big studio is available, due to a cancellation, so we’ll be using that. We’ve put six amps in place, so each electric instrument gets one each, which makes it easier in post-production. All of you get microphones and headphones during the sessions. During the day, there will be a backdrop set up, so that we can get photos of you, both individually and as a group. Before you leave, I’ll be handing out the running sheet for the tour. All outdoor venues are at football clubs, and the tour will be part of the Coventry City fundraising, with a portion of every profit going to charity. All three bands will be paid twenty-five thousand at each show, with you missing out the one in Coventry. We have contracted a video company to record every show, with the best bits used in the final product.”
That started some discussion which lasted until they arrived at the gate. Sebastian pulled into the carpark and stopped. Jill led the way out. They waited with their guitar cases while the coach was backed out and the gates shut.
“All right. Selfie time for those who haven’t been here before, and then all phones turned off, please. There’s a lot of electrical equipment in here that doesn’t like radio waves. The main studio is a dead zone anyway. Follow me.”
They followed her through the maze of offices and studios, until they arrived at the main studio. Mister Jamieson had been told about it, during the week, but the sheer size of the space was impossible to describe accurately. The band went to where the amps were set up, with the bags and cases left on seats. Willow and Gina went to the pair of Nord Stage Three’s. Jill followed them.
“As requested, these have been paid for from this month’s income, so have the amps. We can use them for the shows and the deliver them to a designated place after the tour. The amps are all two hundred watt but will have mics at the shows and routed through the PA as well, so they’ll be plenty loud enough. We’ve had forms at all the shops where you’re playing, with space for people to put in contact details to get reserved tickets. The interest is enough for two nights in most venues. We’ll give you some time to warm up and get ready, and then we’ll record the Kansas set first.”
Mister Jamieson and the other three boys were taken up to the main mixing room, where Xavier was greeted warmly by the technicians and the others left to gape at the complexity of the set-up. The band were all given headphones and could hear themselves as they tuned up. Willow looked across to the others and realised that they looked like professional band. Before, they had been good players, now they looked like good players as well. One by one, they were called on for a sound check of instruments and microphones.
When that was finished, Willow said to play ‘Veteran Cosmic Rocker’ which used everyone. The voice said that they were clear to go, and they played the song, feeling the air pressure from the amps behind them. When they finished, the voice told them to wait a while as they consolidated the settings, then told them that they were to play the Kansas set right through, leaving a five second spacing, or more, between tracks. When they were finished, there would be a break before they record the second album. When they were cleared to play, they were back in Kansas, and Willow could hear, through the headphones, that it was considerably better than their original recording. Up in the control room, Mister Jamieson looked down at a group of his students, who had been in class playing Gamelan less than twenty-four hours before, ripping through an album that had been in his own collection when it was released, and sounding twice as good as the original. He now knew why the other music teachers had been so enamoured with these young people with so much talent.
When the last notes faded, nearly an hour later, they waited until the voice told them to take off the headphones and take a break. The band relaxed and Jacob gave Willow a hug, while Brent gave Gina a hug. Willow looked around and Herb was hugging Nancy while Roy was hugging Vivienne. Victor, Bryan, and Edward were having man-hugs. They were all smiling, with all of them certain that they had done better than ever before with that material.
The guitarists left the guitars in stands and they all went to Jill, who had a big tray of drinks. The others came down from the control room. If Frank had been like a puppy when he saw the empty space in Leicester, he was trembling now.
“Willow, up there, Xavier told me was heaven on earth, and now I believe him. Do you plan something like that?”
“I don’t know, Frank.”
Jill was listening and gathered the band to go up and inspect what had affected Frank so hard. When they looked, it was mind-boggling. Willow tried to count the mixer sliders and gave up after forty. The technician asked them which track they wanted to hear, and they agreed on ‘Dust in the Wind’. He located it and played it through big speakers. By the time it finished, Willow was held by Jacob, tears falling on his shoulder. The technician told them that he had recorded many bands, but none had recorded a full album in a single session before.
Willow dried her eyes, and they went back down. There was a photographer with a load of good cameras. The blue screen was erected, and they had pictures taken, with and without instruments, individually and as small groups. Finally, there were pictures taken the full group, and then the other three lads were gathered for pictures. Then there was a voice behind them.
“Hello, you lot. This is getting to be monotonous, thank goodness. The DVD of ‘Journey’ has made it to platinum status. The bosses couldn’t make it today, so you’ll have to make do with me and Harold to make the presentations.”
The presentations were made in front of the blue screen, with each individual getting a Platinum award, including the three technical lads. Then, Clive told them that they would be having lunch in the studio dining room, with extra time for those wanting to visit the shop. He laughed.
“I know that you could have recorded the second album this morning, but we want to leave that record to be broken at a later date.”
They left their awards with their bags, Xavier loathe to leave his, and they followed Jill to the dining room, where they had a good meal. At the shop, Willow bought a set of Pink Floyd mugs and a pair of tee shirts for her parents. They had an album of ‘Dark Side of the Moon’ which she also took.
Back at the studio, she went to Harold Withers.
“Excuse me, sir, but you recorded Pink Floyd here. Do you have ‘Money’ that you can play for us. I would like to run a little experiment this afternoon.”
“I can get the tape out of the vaults, yes. What do you plan to do?”
“That band hasn’t come up in our talk before, but I would like to test this band with you playing it to us a couple of times, and then to see what we can do with it. We have been working on the next album by email, adding our ideas as we go along. We played the entire album for the first time on Thursday evening. I think that we can nail the Floyd sound. If I’m wrong, so sue me!”
He grinned.
“I’ll go and find it while you’re setting up.”
They got themselves back on track and into place. With the headphones back on, they were asked if they wanted to play a warm-up. Willow spoke.
“We’ll play a track called ‘Dummy Spitter’. It has been played at a big event a few weeks ago and the response made us think that it could be a feature single on the website. We’ll play it again within the album, but this will give you something to mess around with.”
“All right. When you’re ready, you’re clear to play.”
They played ‘Dummy Spitter’, the sound being so much better with the big amps and expert mixing. When they finished, they were told that they were clear to play the album. When they finished, they waited a few seconds before relaxing. Before they had a chance to move, Harold came over the headphones.
“I have been asked to conduct a little experiment. How many of you have heard the Pink Floyd song ‘Money’?”
All of the band put a hand up.
“This will be easy for you, then. I’m going to play you the original mix, as recorded here. I’ll play it twice, and then we’ll record you playing it for us. We won’t need the cash register sounds, just the song itself. Are you ready?”
There were laughs and a chorus of yes’s. They heard the original through the headphones. After the first playing, Willow asked Roy if he was happy to be the lead singer, and if Bryan was good with the saxophone part. They both said they were happy, and then Harold played it again. After that, they waited for clearance. When that was given, Victor started with the bass intro, followed by the rest and then Roy singing. The rest of the band sung back-up and Bryan blasted them with the saxophone part. The original was faded on the album, so, when the song neared the end, Willow moved in front of them to signal an abrupt stop.
They all grinned when they removed the headphones and took off the instruments. Harold Withers came down from above and hugged the whole band, one by one, saying that they were freaks.
“When we recorded Pink Floyd, they took two months to record the Dark Side album, less than a dozen songs. They were either high or arguing for a lot of the time. I was just a junior tech at the time, and I was in heaven just to be in the same room. Today, I’m more than proud to be here with you. What you’ve just done was magnificent. Are you sure that it wasn’t a set-up?”
Herb laughed.
“We had no idea that this was going to happen. Did Willow put you up to it?”
“She did, and it has given me some ideas for the future. We’ve recorded some bands here that have never made it to the charts, I’ll find one that you would have never heard before and run this again, the next time you’re here. This does mean that Clive can get songs written for the band that will take only hours to record. Expect to have some good writers busy once you get these albums out.”
“You say ‘next time’ as if it’s expected?”
“I certainly expect to see you back here, Willow. You have just recorded a hit rock album, which I suggest should be the lead one, with the Kansas marketed as a limited edition special. What do you think, Clive?”
“I have to agree. With that ‘Homegrown’ being so good, we could put that out on its own. Nothing wrong with Kansas, but you really aren’t a cover band anymore. Sorry if that upsets anyone.”
Willow looked at Herb.
“This was your baby, Herb. Xavier said that you referred to the original school recording as your lost opportunity. What do you want to do?”
“Look, I’m standing here in Abbey Road, having just recorded an album that a respected producer calls a hit. We did all that we could do with Kansas, and I’m sure that we’ll fit a few songs into future shows. How many would the limited edition be, Clive?”
“If we release ‘Homegrown’ and it takes off like ‘Journey’, we could wait two or three weeks to release the Kansas. Say five hundred and ten thousand copies to give it a chance of going gold. That will give you a window of opportunity to come up with another album for Christmas.”
“All right, the opportunity hasn’t been lost. Is everyone all right with that?”
The rest of the band agreed, and Jill made a note.
“Now, we need you all to stay looking so neat, because we’re taking you out to dinner before we go to the BBC TV studio. Clive and I will stay with you through that. If you’re asked about other projects, you can tell them about the orchestral album that will be released in a little over a week. It does have liner notes that highlight those of you in the orchestra, and more than half of the album has either Willow, Gina, or Jacob as the soloist. We’ll send some to the school to sell and put on their website with a link to our ordering page. A payment will be made to the school with every order that comes through that way.”
They packed up their guitars and other things, and left the studio to go to the coach, which was backed up in the driveway. Everything was packed in the spaces under the coach, and they went on a short sightseeing drive around London, then going up Regent Street to stop outside The Langham, just a walk across the road to Broadcasting House, where the interview was to be recorded.
They all got out, and Sebastian drove off to get his dinner somewhere else. They all went into the Hotel, where they were shown into the dining room. There was a big table set up for eighteen, and the adults had wine while the band all had lemonade or a cola. The meal was good, with the adults all going for an entrée and main course, while the students all went for a main course and dessert. Mindful of the need to eat more meat to lift her iron, Willow had the lamb dish, followed by the speciality Seaside Sundae, which was big enough to share with Jacob.
After the meal, they had a comfort stop and walked over the road. They were directed to the correct studio, where a couple of presenters of a music show were waiting for them. Over the course of an hour, they answered questions about their lives, the school, the way that they became a successful band, and plans for the future. Every member had their say, but Willow and Gina were the main focus. They plugged the new album, the tour, and the fact that all of them would be part of the school orchestra in the last week of the proms.
One of the presenters reached down and lifted up two DVDs.
“One of these has been on the market for a few months. It was filmed in Coventry Cathedral last year and marketed as an interesting classical performance. Since the rise of Summer Rose, it has been rebranded as ‘Coventry Classics volume one’, with new liner notes to reflect the band members that feature in that performance. You were also featured in another performance in the Cathedral recently, and that one will go on the market in a few weeks as ‘Coventry Classics volume two’. How do you feel about the two opposite sides of your music?”
Willow answered that.
“We all go to a school with a strong music stream. We could be in the orchestra, choir, folk group, rock band, or several other pastimes. If we wanted to be actors, we could be on the stage in plays. We played in the Cathedral, but, if we had gone into drama, we could have been on the stage at Stratford. Gina and I have alternated playing organ in the Cathedral for three months. The school is one where talent is nurtured and rewarded with performance opportunities. The technical guys who recorded our DVD are students, and their training is superb.”
At the end, a grand piano was pointed out and the question asked if she could play them out with ‘Her Day’, which had just been voted the most popular wedding song. Willow sat at the piano and gave a heartfelt rendition of the song.
When they were back outside, the coach was waiting for them. The band started to yawn, as it had been a long and exciting day. Clive stood up with the microphone as they were going back to the hotel.
“Thank you, on behalf of the label, with what you’ve all achieved today. Not only did you record your next hit album, but you got through that interview like professionals. With their two DVDs, and our CD, the orchestra will be saturating the market, and the launch of the new album will top that off. One thing that you weren’t told while you were in the studio, is the fact that we have a number of cameras mounted above the control room. Your performance has been recorded, and we’ll show you the product before it’s marketed. Now, get a good sleep and Jill and I will be with you at breakfast to see you off.”
When the coach pulled up at the hotel, they all left the instruments in storage and only took personal bags in, heading for their rooms and a deserved sleep. As they got ready for bed, the four girls had a hug session, then were asleep as soon as the last light was turned off.
In the morning, Willow put the dress on that she had brought for last night. She felt particularly feminine and elegant today. It may have been that she had been treated so well on Saturday, with the interview being more about the band than about her history. All the other girls had brought something nice, so they all looked good when they went down for breakfast.
Jill met them.
“My word, you four look good enough to eat! The lads have brushed up well. The outfits you all had on yesterday, were they specially made?”
“They were made by Madame Francesca of Coventry, an old schoolfriend of my mother. She also supplied the outfits we wore at the Belgrade concerts but hadn’t supplied the guy’s outfits until this weekend. We only got them on Thursday. We looked like a proper band, didn’t we?”
“You sure did! The photos are going to be very handy with the advertising. The individual ones will be used to create life-size pictures of you all, to be used in promotions. Is she doing any more for you?”
“We all have another three outfits to come. They will be ready before the tour.”
“I’m glad that you look nice, Willow. One of the managers at the BBC latched on to your comment that the two of you had been playing the organ for services in Coventry, and we have had a request for you to play the organ this morning. It will be a recording of ‘Songs of Praise’ for transmission later. They have offered a fee, but we will donate that to the charity that the tour will support. Can you play?”
“If the others are happy to go to church on a Sunday, and if both Gina and I share the playing, then I can do it.”
They had breakfast, and then went off to freshen up. They checked out of the hotel and loaded the coach with their bags. Sebastian took them to Trafalgar Square and stopped outside the St. Martin-in-the-Fields church, where a normal service had just finished. A jovial man got on the coach and addressed them.
“Thank you all for coming along. The other service has just finished, and we have time to record two programs of ‘Songs of Praise’. The cameras are being set up as we speak, and the crew have done this many times, so won’t be long. If you just follow me, I’ll take you in. The usual choir are here and fully robed. They will lead the singing, but we allow the congregation to join in.”
He led them into the church and showed the others where to sit before taking Willow and Gina to the keyboard.
“If you want to warm up, please do so. We will record two, one-hour, programs in real time, as if it’s a live performance. I’ve been told by the Bishop of Coventry how good you are, so just be yourselves. We don’t do extra make-up as it’s all friendly and homely. The music for both shows are here, decide which ones that you’re doing and wait for my call. The first tune is an intro to the program which will have the credits added later. It isn’t sung.”
The two friends looked through the music. Both had played everything before. They played paper, scissors, rock to determine who went first. Gina won, so Willow went back to the pews to join the others. An hour later, Gina was playing the last hymn and the church had been filled with singing. She stepped down from the keyboard and asked where the toilets were. Willow went up and warmed her fingers with Bach. There was a small plaque that gave the age of the organ as being installed in nineteen-ninety. For a relatively new instrument, she was impressed with its tonal qualities.
When cleared to start, she played the intro and then started on the list in front of her. An hour later, she was playing the last hymn. The choirmaster congratulated both girls and thanked them for coming. They both told him that it was good to play another organ, adding to their tally. As the band were getting back in the coach, Clive and Jill were standing together.
“You know, I went to Coventry and heard those girls in the Cathedral. It’s hard to reconcile such sweet playing with what they produced yesterday.”
“Don’t worry, Clive. I’m still trying to get my head around seeing Willow playing netball in the schools competition, which her team won, I might add.”
“Have you got the venue list with you?”
“I’ll hand it out now, before they leave for home. Are you calling an Uber?”
“Yes. I’ll drop you off at home. You’ve done well this weekend. We have the orchestra CD launch in two weeks. We might be able to get the girls and the conductor in for that. We definitely need as many of the band as we can get for their album launch. I’m thinking that we can get them to play some Kansas at the first show and have it available as being limited to the show crowd. For the ‘Homegrown’ launch, see if you can get us into Rough Trade. We could use the stage there. If you can get a keyboard set up, we might get Willow to play tracks from ‘Journey’ to get the crowd interested.”
“Will do. I’ll just go and give them the venue list before they leave. Be back in a minute.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 17
Jill went to the coach to collect her bag, taking out a dozen and a half copies of the venue list.
“These are the venues for the tour. The days noted are the first shows, and any that need adding will be the next evening. Xavier, you and your friends are included, as assistants to the sound and visuals. You’ve filmed the bands before, so you have more experience with them than anyone else. We’re setting up a launch of the orchestra CD on the first Saturday of next month, at the Les Aldrich store. We will appreciate it if the conductor and a few of the players can attend. I’ll send an email to the school. The week after that, I hope to have us launching your ‘Homegrown’ CD and DVD at Rough Trade. They have a stage, so we may be able to set up one of the keyboards to set some atmosphere before we start selling the album. I’ll email the band as usual. Have a good trip home and thank you all for coming.”
She picked up her bag and they all called out to her as she left. Sebastian tapped on the door closer and pulled out before the warden that he could see in his mirror got close. As they watched the coach move away, Clive suggested that the two of them go and get some lunch and they walked towards the Admiralty.
In the coach, everyone was looking at the venue list. All the sites were football grounds, and Jill had added the normal seating numbers, which could be added to with seating on the pitch as well. The smallest capacity was the first show in Nottingham, which had a game capacity of thirty thousand. The biggest was Liverpool, with sixty thousand. They hadn’t been booked into Wembley Stadium, but were to play at Emirates, the home ground of Arsenal.
Mister Jamieson looked at Dave’s sheet and marvelled at the numbers. He thought that the school hall was big, but the smallest venue seated at least twenty times the size, with the biggest forty times the size. After seeing the band play yesterday, he had no qualms that they could fill the places with sound, it was whether they could fill the places with customers that was another matter.
Once they were getting out of the city, Jacob stood up.
“We were talking about the fantastic birthday party that Willow and Gina put on in the club, and realised that me, Herb, Victor and Roy all have our birthdays in a two-week period. We decided on a joint party as well. Now, Rick has a contractor in this week to concrete the empty barn. It was made weatherproof when the one I’m living in was. Rick and I are going to club together to buy a giant barbeque, so I suggested that we hold the party there. I’ll organise hire of tables and chairs and see Malcolm about a few cakes shaped like guitars. It will happen on the first Friday of next month, so less than two weeks away. Are you all coming?”
There was a cheer. Vivienne called out.
“Mine is two weeks after that, the last day of the term. Anybody else around that time?”
It worked out that all of the others were in the following two weeks, while they were on tour. After discussion, they would all talk to their families, but they set a date on Viv’s birthday for a joint party. Brent joked that he would organise a big cake in the shape of a drum kit, with each drum a different cake.
All the talk about food made them hungry, so they stopped at Hemel Hempstead for lunch. Willow rang home to tell her parents that she would be home around five, so would walk to the club if they weren’t home.
She and Gina talked about the organ they had just played, and agreed the new church ones were as good as the old, if properly built. Willow said that the one in Stoneleigh Abbey must have been bought on a budget, because it was lacking in character. They agreed that the one in St. Marys needed a bit of tender loving care, possibly a rebuild. They started talking about the set that they would need with the big shows.
“If they launch the Kansas as a limited edition at the shows, we need to fit a few numbers into the set. We could open with a couple from ‘Journey’ and get louder.”
“You could call out a welcome to wherever we are and ask if we have any friends out there, then do ‘Finding a Friend’. If ‘Dummy Spitter’ takes off on the radio, we should have that as the last song.”
“We have a few weeks to sort it out, then have a session in the club to get it set. Hopefully, later on we can use Leicester and have the gear we used in Abbey Road to play with.”
“That’s ours?”
“That’s what Jill told me. I suggested that if she’s getting keyboards, she should get the Stage Three’s, and she also got the amps. I expect that we’ll see the cost in the next statement.”
At the next comfort stop, Willow asked Jacob if he could find out how the work at Leicester was going, as they hadn’t seen any quotes yet. She was the first to be let off, and Max helped her get her bags from the luggage compartment and to the front door. She thanked her friends for a wonderful weekend and watched as the coach went back to the junction.
She went into the house, putting her shopping on the kitchen table and taking her case upstairs to be sorted out. She stripped off and had a refreshing shower, then redressed with a skirt and top, suitable for the club. She picked up the Platinum Record and strolled to the club.
When she arrived, there were several of the regulars there. Her parents hugged her and so did a few of the others.
“Welcome back, love. How was the weekend?”
“A bit busy, Mum. We had all of Saturday in the studio, then had dinner close to Broadcasting House. Then we had a long interview for BBC One. Sunday morning, Gina and I recorded two shows playing the organ in St. Martins-in-the-Fields for the BBC ‘Songs of Praise’. Then we came home. We have a running sheet for the tour, now. Every venue is a soccer ground, and every show will be mainly for charity.”
“What, no money for playing?”
“We get twenty-five thousand a show, except for one show at Coventry, and Jill is already talking about two shows at each venue. Talking about shows, how did the Gees do last night?”
“They were good. They did some of their old numbers without Zara, but she makes them better. Jim has been all right in the church as well. When are you back in London?”
“There’s a launch of the orchestra CD in a couple of weeks, then the new one of ours the week after. The Kansas will be issued before the first show, as a limited edition. It’s funny. Mister Jamieson was with us as our ‘responsible adult’ and hardly said much all the time. I think that he was a bit shocked by what we’re doing. He didn’t say anything about our earlier shows, so it’s possible he didn’t know what to expect. I see Malcolm, I have something for him.”
She went to the bar.
“Hello, Willow. How was your trip?”
“Interesting and a little surprising. I’ve brought you something for your wall, to go beside the Gold Record.”
She put the Platinum Record on the bar.
“Wow! This is what, a million sales?”
“That’s right. I doubt that we’ll sell enough to get to double platinum. It’s only right that you have this here. Maybe, in the future, Studio Two will be the hottest spot in Stoneleigh.”
“Thanks to you girls, it already is.”
“Well, you’ll have to get other bands in over the summer. The Gees, Hikers, and us will be playing big shows for a month or more. I’m afraid the church organ might be quiet for a while, as well.”
“It was quiet for over five years, so a few weeks won’t harm. I believe that the Reverend is planning the roof restoration around that time, so will use the back room to hold the service while that’s happening.”
Willow went back to her parents, and they had dinner. Ashley was needed to help out, so Wendy and Willow went home together. They changed for bed and sat in the kitchen with hot chocolate as Wendy was shown the new purchases. Wendy grinned at the Floyd tee-shirts and put the new mugs in the cupboard. When Willow pulled out the ‘Dark Side’ album, her mother took her into the sitting room, where a new addition was a music centre, with turntable, CD, cassette, and USB. It had a storage drawer, with last week’s album sitting in it.
“Put that album there, dear. We’ll test it out when you’re next away. Your father doesn’t want to give you strange ideas.”
That night, Willow hugged her two furry friends and told them about her weekend, until she went to sleep.
On Monday morning, it was back to school uniform and a bit of normality again. Jacob reported that his father had shown the builder and door specialist the site, and that he expected quotes this week. Miss Russell came to their table at lunch and gave Willow a note. It said that she, and Gina, were chosen to join Mister Bamborough and Jacob to go to London on Friday week, for the classical CD launch on the Saturday. They would be travelling in one of the people movers with the security. Friday night in the hotel, and Saturday for the launch, coming home Saturday evening. Jacob went around to all the others to tell them that the birthday party would now be on the Sunday evening, rather than the Friday.
That evening, Willow had a few emails. One was from Wilhelm, telling everyone that the quotes had been received and he had confirmed the work. Willow sent Mervyn an email, asking him if he could organise someone local to clean the cool room and dispose of all the rubbish, and to tell them that he was going to use it for storage. Invoice to be sent through the rental agent. She gave him advance notice of the builders and the door specialist. She sent it with a ‘cc’ to Wilhelm.
Another email was from Peter, telling them of extra merchandise he was putting on the website. He noted that the downloads had dropped, but that it didn’t matter as long as the CD sales continued. He also gave them advance notice, that he would be taking fifteen percent in July and August, seeing that they would be touring as a proper band. He also confirmed that each band would be paid twenty-five thousand per show and would each get a five percent cut of the profit, with each club getting ten percent, and seventy-five percent going to their charity.
Another email was from Jill, telling them that they had another venue added to the tour. They would now be playing in Manchester, after Coventry and before Liverpool. The venue was Etihad Stadium, with seating of over sixty thousand. She also said that she would be couriering a package to Willow, to hand out. It would contain their lanyards for the tour, as well as USB sticks, which will contain the video of the new album and the single version of ‘Dummy Spitter’, along with their version of ‘Money’ with the additional effects. The launch had been confirmed for the weekend after the orchestral launch, and they would be picked up by coach on the Friday evening and returned on Sunday evening. Sunday afternoon they would be taken to the Jeff Lynne and ELO concert in Hyde Park, which starts at two.
Tuesday morning, the talk was all about seeing ELO live, rather than launching their own CD. Willow played the organ for chapel, with Reg telling everyone about Willow and Gina recording two shows of ‘Songs of Praise’. He mentioned to Willow that Mister Jamieson had come into the staff room on Monday full of his weekend.
The orchestra session was a few more applicants, and those who had made the cut having to sing one of the arias, to see if they were likely tenors or basses. Otherwise, they were assembled in a bigger rehearsal studio and given the choir sheets of the ‘Hallelujah Chorus’. It was thought that if they could nail that, the rest would be easy. Gina played for the auditions, and Willow played for the choir, with Tom there to listen and arrange the voices. The school and the Cathedral choirs were also on hand. By the time they went home, they thought that things had gone well. They had their tenor and bass, and only six of the choir applicants had said they weren’t coming back.
On Tuesday evening, Willow tidied her room and took her CDs downstairs to store with her parents’ ones in the new music centre. It did look like it was being used after that. She sent an email to the school, for Mister Bamborough’s attention, saying that, as the next Tuesday was the last one before revision and exams, she would like to have just the orchestra to rehearse the ‘Sinfonia’, and ‘Pifa’ movements of ‘Messiah’, as these were the only ones where there is no singing. After that, she played her violin for a while.
Wednesday, after school, she went to the club, where she played for the choir, and discussed the order of practise with Tom. Next term, they would have ten sessions for practise. They would need a full session with the tenor, another with the bass, one with the soprano and one with the alto. After that, they would need three sessions, one for each part, with the choir. After that, they could either repeat the last three before the final week, or schedule longer sessions and do the whole thing three times. After that, they were due to play it in the school on the first Tuesday in December, followed by Thursday, Friday, and Saturday in the Cathedral, with Friday being the one recorded for transmission on Christmas Eve and a subsequent DVD of ‘Coventry Classics’.
They would be able to practise with Margaret and Sally at the club, with just the organ. They would try and get the tenor and bass there as well, to get used to the words and phrasing. On Thursday and Friday evening, Willow played her violin, working through the various movements, so that she could lead with knowledge when they started to practise.
On Saturday, she went over to the church to find Jim there, working through the Sunday hymns. She went to find Reverend Russell and sat down with him, with the sound of the organ in the background.
“How are you, young Willow. You’ve been very busy, I hear. A little bird told me that we’ll see you two girls on ‘Songs of Praise’.”
“That’s right, sir. I’m here to ask you about your plans for the summer. I believe that you’ll be shutting the church while the roof restoration happens.”
“We will. I’ll conduct the services in Studio Two. We have enough in the bank to pay for the roof and some other things, like better kitchen facilities and heating. Last winter was a terrible battle with the cold.”
“So, it will be shut for a few weeks?”
“From early July to the end of August, if things go well. Why do you ask?”
“I was thinking of getting ‘Old Betsy’ overhauled. I can afford to donate that, but Gina may want to share in it. That instrument has been a stepping stone in our development, and I, for one, will be happy to get it up to standard. Playing others, I’ve realised that it has an authentic, if wheezy sound. If you can organise that while the church is closed, we can rejoice in the reopening with a good instrument. Please keep the donation a secret. We have enough spotlights on us already.”
“That is very generous, child. I’ll contact the Bishop and find out who does that sort of work locally, and let you know the quote before you fully commit. We’ll see you tomorrow morning.”
That evening, Willow told Gina about her plans with the organ, and Gina was very happy to share the cost. There was a full house, so the girls set up two keyboards and played a couple of sets of Summer Rose songs and some general folk and drinking songs. After the previous Saturday, it was almost a rest.
Sunday, they sat in the pew with their families and sang to Jim’s playing of the hymns. It allowed them to be critical of the sound, which was starting to deteriorate. The years of being silent were now showing. Jacob wasn’t seen over the weekend, and Willow wondered if he was ill. She would find out on Monday morning.
On Monday morning, when they picked Jacob up, Gina asked him where he had been over the weekend. He was a bit snippy, but told them that he had been taken, by Racheal and Rick, to a party. He emphasised that it was a party for one of his cousins, on the Epstein tree, in Birmingham.
Willow wondered why he didn’t sit in the seat next to her but decided that things would become clear. At lunch, he went to sit with the other guys, causing Gina and Dianne to wonder if he had found another love. He was no better on the way home, just saying ‘see you tomorrow’ when he got out at the farm. That evening, Willow looked at her ‘Fractured’ song, and worked some extra sounds into it.
Tuesday, he was a bit more forthcoming, admitting that he had got drunk at the party, and didn’t remember a lot of it after that. He had the excuse that everyone was drinking, and he had tried more than a few vodka and orange drinks. He still didn’t sit with them at lunch, and the laughter coming from the boys at the other table was eerily reminiscent of the older boys table at Clifton. Because he wasn’t needed in the orchestra that afternoon, he had organised for Racheal to take him home.
With the orchestra, Willow, as the leader, explained what they were going to play that day. It was a first time for everyone, and it took an hour before they got the ‘Sinfonia’ right. Now they had the idea of the cadence, they got the ‘Pifa’ right in a half an hour. They finished the session, the last for the term, by playing both pieces, with a smile from Mister Bamborough.
When she got home, Willow changed and started preparing the dinner. As before, peeling and chopping calmed her, and allowed her to think. She decided that more had happened on the weekend. From the sound from the boy’s table, she wondered if Jacob had been taken advantage of while he was drunk. There would be plenty of girls out there who would be happy to have a boyfriend with as much money as he now had.
After dinner, she looked on her laptop and found a couple of emails. One was the statement from Peter. The sales of downloads and Carpenters albums through the website was well less than two hundred thousand, while the merchandise was up at thirty thousand. Costs, admin and security was over forty-five thousand, and the Hikers income was down to a thousand. That ship had certainly sailed.
The label was better news, with the DVD going Platinum, it had earned over two million. “Journey’ and the old ‘Carpentry’ albums had earned just on two million between them. She saw that the new equipment had cost them twenty thousand, and the session in Abbey Road was six thousand. Jill cost them five thousand and there was more expenses of twelve thousand. That left a total of well over four million between them, with her one-eleventh share ending up at just under three hundred and seventy-five thousand after the commission.
She replied to Peter to transfer two hundred thousand to her WR Holdings account. Then she looked at the other email. It was from Racheal.
‘Darling Willow. You may be worried about Jacob at the moment. He has been morose since the weekend. I took him to a party with a number of cousins and their friends. A lot of them were my age, and they all drink. My brother was introduced to spirits, and, unfortunately, had too many. When it was time to leave, he was nowhere to be seen. I looked through the house and found him on a bed, on his back, pants down and with lipstick lips on his face and chest. I have no idea if he had been taken advantage of, but from the way he’s been acting, that was entirely possible. Even if he hadn’t, the picture that I’ve received from one of my cousins does not bode well for him. It looks as if at least two of my cousin’s friends were responsible for his position. Nothing has been said, but I’m waiting for the other shoe to drop.
Regards, Rach.’
Willow replied.
‘Contact Peter and send him the pictures and names of those at the party. He is a minor at fourteen, and being urged to drink and be taken advantage of is close to rape if the girl is legally an adult. Any requests for money or other things will be met with the utmost resistance. Tell him to never bow to extorsion. Tell him that I don’t care how he got into this position, I’m behind him all the way if he wants me there.
Love, Willow.’
She copied and pasted both emails into one that she sent to Jill, as a ‘for your eyes only’. At the moment, she wasn’t acting as a girlfriend whose boy had been playing away, but as the leader of a band on the edge of greatness. Jacob was a friend, and a good member of the band, but he wasn’t irreplaceable, like any one of them. Many bands went through a revolving door when it came to members, and Summer Rose had been lucky, so far. That didn’t stop her having a little weep as she cuddled her furry friends.
She was awake early and did some research on her laptop. When Jacob was picked up and sat down, she went and sat next to him.
“When were you going to tell me?”
“Tell you what?”
“About what happened on the weekend. Racheal emailed me last night.”
“I was so ashamed, Willow. I don’t know what happened, all I know was from the picture that was sent.”
“You, my lad, must have been targeted. How many drinks did you have?”
“Only a few. I thought that they were only orange juice. I was all right, and then wasn’t.”
“When we get to school, we’re going to see the nurse, and she will need a urine sample. If you were given a roofie, it is possible to detect a residual in urine for up to seventy-two hours. It’s a long shot, but we have to try. If it was intentional, it wasn’t meant as a bit of fun. Either there will be blackmail messages, you know, the ‘give me money or the pictures go to the papers’, or else there may be another agenda. The main thing is that you have to stop being ashamed and start acting like the victim.”
“That’s easy to say. My sister thinks that I got blind drunk and took some girl to bed.”
“Take the test and prove her wrong. Now, tell me about the party and the girls there.”
“It was a birthday of one of my cousins, daughter of one of my father’s brothers who left home rather than take up farming. She was nineteen, and there were several of her schoolfriends there. It was all very friendly, at first. A few of them knew about me and the band, and a couple got close until I told them that I was going steady. That’s about the time I started to get the orange juice drinks.”
They arrived at the school. When they got out, Willow took Jacob’s hand.
“We’ll see you later, friend.”
She took him to the nurse’s room and went in.
“Hello, Willow. Can I help you?”
“Jacob was at a party on Saturday night and was quietly drinking orange juice, which we now think had vodka in it. Next thing he knows, he was in a bed, being shaken by his sister. He was, shall I say, dishevelled.”
“Ah! It may be too late, but we can only try. Go behind the screen and pee into this container, Jacob. It’s good that you came to me with this. Having a top student being dragged through the papers is bad for the school. As you’re a minor, whoever did this will be liable to be arrested. It’s immediately rape, even if it was a girl that did it.”
She also took a single vial of blood. When she had sealed the samples, added a code to identify the donor without giving a name, she rang the pathology lab to despatch a courier to pick them up and asked for an urgent drug test.
“That is standard practise for a school to get a test. Now, you two run along. I may have the result before you leave today.”
As they walked towards the class, Jacob took Willow’s hand.
“You’re not mad at me?”
“No, Jacob. What I am is sorry that you felt that you couldn’t confide in me. I know that you were ashamed, but they say that a problem shared is a problem halved. If they do find a residue of Rohypnol, then we go to the next step and get a private investigator to look into it. Perhaps we can cut the head off before it tries to bite you.”
“Why? It may just go away.”
“Jacob, love. You are a rich member of a band. Something like this will never just ‘go away’. We need to take the offensive and find out who did this to you, and why. If you get a blackmail note, then you copy it and print it for the police. You did nothing wrong, and saying nothing will not help you. I sent Jill a copy of Racheal’s email to me and my reply. I’m sure that the label has had this kind of problem before and know the right people to help.”
“Thank you for believing in me.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 18
They stopped for a quick kiss before going into class, with Jacob giving the teacher a note from the nurse. Towards the end of lunch, Miss Russell came in and asked the two of them to go with her to the nurse’s room. When they got there, the nurse showed them the pathology result.
“The test has shown a very slight trace of Rohypnol, consistent with it being administered over seventy-two hours before. It must have been a big dose, Jacob. Whoever did it meant business. There was no signs of an STD in either the urine or the blood. Was this with other school friends?”
“No, it was at a family party in Birmingham. It doesn’t involve the school. Can I have a copy of the results, please. I want to show my sister that I wasn’t just drunk. I don’t think that she would consider that something like this would happen at a family birthday party. Can we have another copy for our label? They may be bringing in an investigator.”
On the way home, Willow got out with Jacob.
“I’ll only be a minute or two.”
She went into the farmhouse with Jacob, coming out a few minutes later.
Back in the vehicle, Gina could hold back no longer.
“All right! What’s going on? First, we have ice-cold Jacob and now he’s thawed out. Is it because of this party he went to?’
“It is. He was given Rohypnol and photographed semi-naked on a bed. He doesn’t remember a thing. It’s possible that he had sex but who knows? We got his blood and pee tested this morning by the school nurse and there was a big enough dose to still show in the testing. I’ve just been with him to convince Racheal that he didn’t get drunk and have it away with one of the guests.”
“That would raise a storm if it hit the papers.”
“That’s why I took charge, to get him out of his funk and see if we could get some proof.”
Max had been listening and turned in his seat.
“Willow, in the last couple of months, you’ve grown to be more like the band leader. What you’ve done is exactly what you should have done. Now, tell me that you’ve advised Jill about this.”
“I did, and I expect that a case like this isn’t new. I’m going to scan the report and send it to her tonight. I’ve asked Racheal to write down the names of all those at the party, and to be prepared to pass it on to an investigator. There hasn’t been a blackmail note, yet, but I wonder if blackmail is the reason. The people who did this are too easily identified.”
“Have you thought that it may have been to trap him into marriage?”
“How would that work?”
“If the girl is already pregnant, proof that she had sex with Jacob may allow her to force him to marry her. By the time the baby’s born, and he does the maths, he’s already hooked.”
“That would mean that there are more pictures of him, with her straddling him. That would mean that she’s identifiable.”
“Exactly.”
They dropped Gina off and then Willow was outside her house. Sebastian turned to her.
“We did some courses when we took on this job. I think that your take on the situation was the best way you could have taken it. This does mean that we’ll have to report that an ‘incident’ has occurred, and that closer protection may be needed. I’ve been told that we will take the four of you to London on Friday evening. Like the other times, we’ll pick up Mister Bamborough first and then come south. I expect that Jill may have someone for you to talk to while you’re there.”
Willow went inside, saw a parcel on the kitchen table and went up to her room. She changed and then composed an email to Jill, telling her about the news and adding the scan of the pathology report. She went downstairs to peel and dice with her mother. When the preparation was done, she opened the parcel.
“What do you have there, dear, presents?”
“These are the lanyards for the tour. They are ‘Access All Areas’ and each one has a USB drive for the band members. I’m told that it has a track that we played as a fun experiment, a version of one of our songs enhanced to be a single for the web site, and a DVD of our new album, filmed at Abbey Road.”
“We can play that tonight.”
After they had tidied up the dinner things, the family changed for bed and sat on the couch in front of the TV. Willow plugged the USB into the side of the TV and sat with the controller. The first item was ‘Money’, with vision from the cameras mounted in the studio. Ashley was reminded of some of the footage of the Beatles when they recorded. Willow was blown away with how good it was.
The second item was when they played ‘Dummy Spitter’. Again, the vision was like a professional video, with the cameras obviously controlled, as there were close-ups of them. She could hear enhancements in the audio. A touch of reverb, a smidgin of echo. It sounded like something playable on radio but didn’t overpower the band’s sound.
The third item was the album. It had all the opening logos, credits, and copyright warnings. There was half a minute of them talking before the take, with the title ‘Homegrown Summer Rose’, and then the album, performed in its entirety. Ashley took the controller and turned the sound up as the first track opened, and cuddled Wendy as the vision continued. It was obviously a single take, and the sound and vision as good as anything they had seen. When the last song ended, the credits ran with the band having a group hug, and then there was a short section where each of them were pictured on stills taken during the playing, giving their names, with a quiet audio of ‘Dummy Spitter’ in the background. It had been shortened so that the screen went blank with the last notes.
“What did you think of that?”
“Can you leave the USB in the music centre while you’re off on tour. We would like to look at it in private.”
“That good?”
“That was several times more powerful than I thought it would be. It puts the Kansas show that you recorded to shame.”
Just then, the logos came up on the screen again. This time, the vision was similar, but the title was ‘This isn’t Kansas. It’s the Other Side of Summer Rose – a limited-edition DVD’ over Wendy’s drawing of her album cover. This one started with the blast of the opening track. Willow now realised why they had asked for five seconds between tracks, as the show was a single take. The whole album had been worked on, with the subtle enhancements. She had thought that they sounded better with the big amps, but this was something else again. The end was similar, with stills of them all, only this time, the best pictures of the award presentations, with ‘Dust in the Wind’ as the background music. Then, there was a group picture, with a listing of the tour venues where they could be seen that summer.
When she went to unplug the USB, Ashley reached out for it as he stood. She gave it to him, and he held her close, telling her that he loved her and her talent.
Willow went into the kitchen where the package was and pulled out the other lanyards. She laid them out on the table and checked them off. There was one each for the rest of the band, three for Xavier and his assistants, all with a second ID on a lanyard. That left one each for the Head, Mister Bamborough, Miss Russell, Reg Edwards, and Mister Jamieson, all with a second ID for their partner. There was also a similar pair for all four of the security detail, as well as two blank sets with a note that said that this was for the extra security for the wind section. At the bottom of the bag was one each for her parents. Every lanyard had a USB stick.
She took the last two back into the sitting room, where her parents were cuddling.
“You can give me back that USB, Dad. You both have your own lanyards for the tour, along with your very own sticks. You can now go to any of the shows you want.”
That got her more hugs from both of them. She went back into the kitchen and sorted out the lanyards into three sets. One for the band and techs, one for the teachers, and one for their drivers. Each set went into plastic bags from a kitchen drawer and was put into her shoulder bag for the next day. That night, she was asleep before her mother gave a cry of happiness.
In the morning, she gave Sebastian the bag for the security.
“These are your IDs for the tour, with a USB showing what we recorded at Abbey Road. There’s an extra pair for those who will be taking the rest of the band.”
“Yes, we were only told about that this week. From Monday, you all will get picked up. The three vehicles won’t stand out too much when we take you to the venues. I was told that the other bands will also have a similar set-up. You, and G-Force, will have transport until the end of the school year. Zara will be taken home with Herb and his friends if she has to stay for your orchestra practise. We will also be taking the orchestra to the Proms sessions.”
“That takes a load off my mind, for a start.”
When Gina got on, Willow gave her the lanyard.
“Have a look at the USB tonight, friend. It’s difficult to believe that it was us.”
The same happened when Jacob got on, now a much happier person.
“Rick got a package delivered at the farm yesterday, with a bunch for the Hikers.”
At the school, Willow excused herself and went to the Head’s office. When she was told to go in, the Head gave her a smile.
“I heard about the problem with Jacob. I hope it all works out.”
“I’m sure it will, ma-am. I have this for you to pass on to the teachers. These are lanyards for each of the names on them and a partner, they will get you into every show that we’ll be playing over the holiday. The Coventry City show has been expanded. There is a listing of the venues at the end of the last item on the USB stick.”
The Head looked at the names.
“This is very generous. The second one is only marked as ‘partner’, so I can take each of my children to one. My youngest has been on at me about meeting you all once she found out that you’re all students.”
“Well, she will be able to come backstage with that lanyard.”
Willow went to join her friends for the first class. During lunch, she went around giving the others out to the band and the techs, telling them to take good care of them and not lose them. When she gave Xavier, Frank and Dave theirs, she asked them if they had operated the cameras in the studio while the band was playing. Xavier said that they had helped a small team that was recording the vision.
“When you see the two albums, have a look at the credits for camera work. You did very well, I was impressed. The teachers also have a USB to look at, so you may be spoken to next week.”
She went over to talk to Geoff and Zara. Geoff told her that he had received the package of lanyards yesterday, and that they had their big statement earlier in the week. She went back to her table and sat next to Gina and Dianne. She pulled her own USB out of her bag and passed it to Dianne.
“This is mine, Dianne, and I want it back next week. Have a look at it and show it to the others in the orchestra, if you see them over the weekend. Gina and I are being picked up on Friday to go to London for the launch of the classic CD we recorded. I expect that we’ll have a box of them to bring into the school on Monday. It will just be the two of us, Jacob, and Mister Bamborough, as I was told that the venue is quite small.”
That evening. the family had dinner and then went to the club. Ashley opened up and pottered around behind the bar, mainly moving things to put the new award up. Wendy and Willow got one of the keyboards out, along with the small amp that they had used in the front bar. When the choir came in, they worked through some quite complicated items with Tom. After the session, they sat with drinks and Willow explained how she expected the rehearsals for the Messiah would go.
“We have a few weeks before the end of the term to work with Sally and Margaret with the solo items. Some have the choir behind them, so the rest of you will get some practise. The orchestra has started working on its side of things but will not gather again until the start of the new term, unless we get a chance to rehearse our concert at the Albert Hall. Gina and I will be spending the first few weeks of summer on tour, so won’t be available. That means that you can have a little holiday. I think that you’ve all done magnificently, far better than I could have brought you. I have to thank Tom for helping out.”
Thursday afternoon, in PE, she played two games of netball. One against the usual second years, and the other in her team, against the third years that had played at the tournament. They were told that this was the last PE of the term, as the next weeks to the end of term were set aside for revision and exam time. She showered at the gym and redressed in the uniform to join the others for the trip home.
That evening, she had another email from Wilhelm, with a forwarded email from the studio builders. There were pictures of the likely set-up and a plan of the whole site, showing the positions of the doors, the positions of the control desks and post-production desks. They had even laid out the rest area with the toilets under a mezzanine which was designated as storage. The studio area had markers for power outlets and air conditioning vents, which would be in different places than the cooling vents, with them closed off. There was a note to say that they had drilled into the wall and found the expected hardboard and expanded foam rather than fibre insolation. They had also tested the sound loss and had calculated the amount of soundproofing needed to keep the sound in. Their quote was just over six hundred and fifty thousand, with a build time of four weeks.
She looked at the pictures and the desk specifications. It would be about half the size of Abbey Road, with twenty-four mix sliders, digital recording as well as back-up reel to reel with twenty-four tracks. She counted the power outlets and headphone jacks, finding that they had enough for thirty amps with thirty guitarists. There was a power board with switch fuses on the wall in the back area. There was a note to say that power to the studio and the air conditioning would be routed from a separate board next to the factory one with a separate billing. She replied that she was happy with the quote and transferred the monthly hundred thousand to the Summer Love account.
There was another email from Jill, thanking her for all the information about Jacob. She said that she had spoken to Racheal and had received a list of the partygoers from her. She also said that there would be an investigator from a firm they have used at the CD launch on Saturday, to speak to Jacob and record his version of the event. As a footnote, she noted that the BBC had been in touch, and had asked if they could relaunch the two DVDs alongside theirs, which she thought was a good idea, because it was likely that there would be a film crew recording the event.
Before she went to bed, she put together an overnight case, something that was almost becoming second nature, and went downstairs to let her parents know that she would get dropped off at home, then go to the club for dinner and the sing-along.
On Friday morning, Jacob confirmed that his father would see the studio builders and the builders early in the week to co-ordinate the project and work to the same plan, once planning permission had been granted. At lunch, Xavier was excited with what he had seen of the studio and was keen to try it out. Willow told him that she hadn’t seen any microphones or stands in the quote and asked him if he could look into that side of it. Also, being part of the sound, if he could look into the supply of headphones. Dianne told Willow that she had watched the shows on the USB and was organising a party with the others in the orchestra to show it to them over the weekend.
That afternoon, Xavier, Dave and Frank set up the recording equipment in the rehearsal room. The Music class were taken there and saw all the Gamelan instruments. They sorted out what they were playing and arranged themselves in similar sounding groups. Xavier set up a number of microphones through a mixer box and they had a sound check. The Head and Miss Russell came in and sat by the door. Mister Jamieson dropped his hand, and the class were playing. They had worked out an intro which sounded like waves, and then the tune for ‘Her Day’ was introduced, with those with the bells leading the way and the other beat continuing in the background.
When they finished, and Xavier announced that recording was off, the Head stood and congratulated them.
“What part did you play in organising the tune, Willow?”
Dianne spoke up.
“We decided on the tune, ma-am. All Willow had to do was sing it so we could get the notes.”
“Well. I must say that it was a very credible performance and unlike any others that I’ve heard from this part of the curriculum before. Well done.”
She left the room with Miss Russell, and Mister Jamieson also congratulated them.
They were at the door and waiting when the vehicles arrived. On the way back to Stoneleigh, the three discussed the weekend. None of them were sure of what a CD launch would be like. When they got to the farm, Gina advised Jacob to pack a blue shirt and black trousers in case they were needed to look like they did in the BBC vision. The girls would add their blue dresses as well as something more casual.
Willow was dressed in a skirt and top, with a garment bag with two dresses and her small roller case when the vehicle arrived. She locked up as Max put her things in the back, and then joined the others. Jacob was sitting with Mister Bamborough, so Willow got in next to Gina. As they were heading south, Mister Bamborough turned to speak to the girls.
“I looked at the USB on my computer last night. It was a complete surprise to see something so good, and something so professionally produced. The vision reminded me of some of the old archive footage of when the Beatles were there, but the music was, I have to say, exciting. When you do the big shows, you’re going to have a whole lot of new fans.”
“Have you decided which shows you’re coming to, sir?”
“As many as I can. I have a quite large family, so will have a different one with me every time. I expect to be spending a lot in merchandise over the few weeks. The other teachers will be there as well, so we may organise a minibus. Then, after that, we have just the one night in the Albert Hall. I believe that you’re coming this way again next week, to launch the album.”
“We are. It’s not the same record store, and we’re not sure if the Kansas album will be mentioned. We’re all going to see ELO in Hyde Park on the Sunday, before we come home again.”
Sebastian laughed.
“I went to see them back in the day. They had this big flying saucer thing that opened up. It was wild. I looked at your two albums last night as well. They are as good as anything I’ve ever seen. A lot of those shows use clips from various live shows and fade from one to another, but you did both sets as single takes. That was really impressive. The old Floyd number was great!”
Jacob chuckled.
“That was an experiment. Willow wanted to test us out, so the producer played us the original tape of that session, then repeated it before we played it ourselves. Some of what we played wasn’t true to the original, but I think we got the bulk of it right. They did make some changes to it for the recording. We didn’t have the cash register sound when we did it, and they added effects to it, as well as the Kansas set. If we play live, I don’t think it will notice, but the additions do make the songs sound better.”
They talked as they went to London. The three older men spoke about concerts and shows that they had been to in the past. Max had seen the Rolling Stones several times, and Mister Bamborough surprised by having seen Oasis more times than a normal person should have. Sebastian turned out to be a keen Who fan and bemoaned the fact that he had never seen them with Keith Moon on the drums.
They pulled up at the hotel and checked in. The two girls were in a twin room, while the guys had a single each. The dining room was still serving, so they sat and ate dinner before going up to their rooms. As the girls were cleansing and changing for bed, Gina stopped and sat on her bed.
“Is it just me or is Mister Bamborough being extra nice to us. We’re just second years, but he’s talking to us as if we’re adults.”
“I think that he’s treating us like adults because we act like adults, friend. We’ve achieved more, this year, than many do in a lifetime. We’ll be going back as third year students, so will be halfway through the system. It will be interesting to see if we stay with the orchestra or get bumped up to replace the leavers in the senior one. These combined projects have thrown the whole school system into chaos. Next year, without the Messiah hanging over our heads, will be a whole new adventure.”
Next morning, nothing had been said about wearing the school blue, so the three of them just looked good in casual wear. The teacher had opted for slacks and a sports coat. After breakfast, the vehicle pulled up outside. They checked out, signing the account for the label to pay, and they were taken to the record store, finding a small crowd outside.
Inside, it was difficult to get through the mass of bodies, but Max had seen the problem and went in front of them, with his commanding voice asking for space. They arrived near the back of the store, where there was some space and a dais. Clive was there and welcomed them to the launch. Max said he would see them later and went back out to the vehicle.
Clive was acting emcee, and welcomed all the classical music buffs, and the media, to the event. He outlined the content of the double CD. Looking at the cameras as he did so.
“Today, we have Mister Howard Bamborough, the music teacher in the Blue Coat School in Coventry, as well as the conductor for the orchestra. Then we have Mister Jacob Epstein, the soloist in the fabulous Rodrigo concerto. These two young ladies almost need no introduction. We have Miss Gina Summer and Miss Willow Rose. They are the founding members of the successful band, Summer Rose. Gina is the soloist in the Grieg Piano Concerto, as well as playing the organ on disc two. Willow played the ‘Seven Variations’ on the second album. These three are just fourteen and are prodigious talents. They will be happy to answer questions, asked in an orderly manner, and sign copies of our album ‘Popular Classics by the Blue Coat School’. Before that, we need to get the other formalities out of the way.”
A man stepped forward from beside one of the cameras, and Clive continued.
“May I present a representative of the BBC, who is sharing this great day with us.”
The man stepped up to the microphone.
“Last year, we filmed a concert in the Coventry Cathedral. It featured the Beethoven ‘Choral’. It was broadcast on Christmas Eve. We originally released it as the Beethoven Ninth and other classics, and it has sold quite a few copies. When we realised that some of the players were these two young ladies, we withdrew it from the market and have repackaged it. Today, we launch the new look DVD, now called ‘Coventry Classics, volume One’. With a proper appreciation of the wonderful orchestra. Earlier, this year, we also recorded another concert in the Cathedral with this orchestra. It featured the Saint-Seans Organ Symphony with Willow Rose playing the organ. We have pre-production copies of that DVD, which will be ‘Coventry Classics, volume Two’. That will be in the shops in two weeks. Both concerts were conducted by Mister Bamborough, here. I repeat what my friend just said. The guests will answer questions and sign your purchases. Thank you.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 19
After the announcements, the four of them sat at a table with marker pens. At their right was the store manager to ensure that all products being signed had a correct sales receipt. The line moved slowly, with them learning to answer the questions with enough information but not so much as to slow down the line. They sat and signed and talked until lunch, when the manager asked that the guests be given some time to get refreshments.
They were taken to the store out the back, with a table set up with sandwiches and nibbles. The four took turns in the store toilet, washed their hands and stood while grazing on the food. The manager thanked them for attending and being so friendly to the customers. It wasn’t long before they were back at the table, signing and talking until about three when the line had petered out. The camera crew took that opportunity to film an interview with them, the man from the BBC asking the questions, mentioning the upcoming Messiah and the likely broadcast next Christmas season.
When the store closed, Clive took Jacob out of the store, followed by a middle-aged lady. The others had a look at the shop products, with Willow buying a copy of a Chopin set of etudes that she wanted to learn. They were given the left-over CDs and DVDs to take back to the school for sale through the website. Howard Bamborough laughed when they were given the box.
“I doubt that these will even reach the school office. I can see most of them being bought by the teachers or the others in the orchestra. I’m sure that we will be able to order more or have links to the label and the BBC on the site. We do get a small fee for every time those sites are accessed through our website, whether anything is bought or not.”
The girls took one of each for themselves, and a set for Jacob. The vehicle arrived and Clive came back with Jacob and the lady, who gave Jacob a hug and the girls a smile as she left. Clive thanked them for coming and was pleasantly surprised at how few discs were left. They all got into the vehicle, giving Jacob his set of discs. Clive put his head in and wished them a good trip home, and that the launch next week may not be so civil and orderly as this one.
They made good time home, and Willow was dropped off at home with her case and bag. She said that she would see the others later and went in as the vehicle went up the road. Wendy was home.
“How did it go, darling?”
“It was good. I almost got cramp from signing so many times. I have a copy of our latest CD, and one each of the BBC films of our last two Coventry concerts. I believe that the school will be paid a cut of every CD, and a percentage of the BBC sales. I’m having a shower, then we can head to the club for the sing-along.”
Later, they walked, arm in arm, to the club. Gina and Maisie arrived, followed by Jacob with Racheal. Brent came in with his mother a few minutes later. They had an early dinner as patrons came in and went through to Studio Two. When the four friends went through, the drum kit was out, the two keyboards were up, along with three of the amps and the PA. What was different was a big TV screen that was on a frame at the back of the stage. They made sure that everything was good and started playing the tunes and songs that helped the food go down. They played some Carpenters and some ‘Journey’ and then took a break.
Malcolm went up on stage as they left, turning the TV on.
“Ladies and gentlemen. You are about to see something very special. These four talented musicians are part of the Summer Rose band, as you know. A couple of weeks ago, they were in the main studio at Abbey Road, recording their new album. Tonight, we’re giving them a rest and showing you two single tracks and two album DVDs that they recorded. Hit it, Ashley.”
He stepped down from the stage as the screen lit up, showing the band in the studio. A lot of the diners sang along with ‘Money’, and then sat, enthralled as the rest of the music continued. The four of them sat with their families as the two live concerts played through. This was Summer Rose that most had never heard before. There was applause when the last credits of the Kansas finished. Willow got up and went up on the stage.
“Ladies and Gentlemen. You have just seen two albums. The ‘Homegrown’ one will be launched in London next weekend. The Kansas set will be on sale from then until sold out. We expect that most will sell at our concerts, which begin in two weeks from tonight, at the Nottingham Forest football ground. As you could see from the list at the end of that DVD, we’re at Derby midweek, Leicester the following weekend. We get a week at home and then play at the Coventry City ground the following weekend, Manchester City mid-week, Liverpool on the weekend, Leeds mid-week, Sheffield the next weekend. We then go south for shows in Southampton mid-week and wind up the tour at the Arsenal ground the following weekend. The shows will have G-Force, who many have seen here, and Rick Sacks and the Hikers. Both bands have already received Gold Records for their new albums. It will be a good show, and every performance will have a huge amount donated to a charity in each city. I hope to see you there.”
Malcolm told them that he would put the equipment away. Racheal had a few words with Willow, thanking her for taking the party thing to the likely solution. Willow said goodnight to her and her friends, telling them that she would see them Sunday evening at the birthday party, and walked home with her mother.
On Sunday morning, they joined the other villagers in the church and listened to Jim playing. Willow and Gina spoke to him afterwards.
“How are you enjoying playing the hymns, Jim?”
“It’s good. I like it playing the intro and outro set, it’s soothing.”
“We feel the same. Playing rock music is exciting, but doodling Bach can settle the nerves. Are you looking forward to the shows?”
“Hell, yes! We’ve been getting together in the evenings, writing more that Zara can sing. She makes us sound better. Are you going to the party tonight?”
“We are. It will be interesting to see what they’ve done with the barns. I believe that you’re playing a dinner dance next week?”
“We are. I know that the Belgrade shows were a big thing then, but these upcoming shows are going to be make or break. A couple of the guys want to drop out and chase the money, and the rest of us want to finish our education. Zara and Geoff just want to get married and have kids, although her mother has other ideas.”
They went into the club, but Willow didn’t stay long. She and Wendy had lunch at home and enjoyed some bonding time, catching up on each other’s activities, considering that Willow had been away so much lately.
They started getting ready for the birthday party about four and were close to ready when Ashley got home. They had a light tea, knowing that tonight would be mainly cake and barbeque. They took Wendy’s car up to the farm, parking alongside others.
They followed the noise to the other barn, to find that the party was in full swing. Willow found Jacob, gave him a kiss and a birthday card.
“Thank you, my love. No gift?”
“What do you get a man who has everything? Besides, you have me by your side, what more do you want? In reality, I haven’t had time to go to a shop in weeks.”
“That’s all right, just joking. Come and dance, we have a DJ tonight. Rick is ritually burning good meat out back, so there should be charred protein ready later.”
They danced and ate, danced some more and talked to friends. Around nine, Willow told him that she needed some fresh air, and they went outside. It was still light, and they walked away from the barn.
“You still haven’t shown me your living quarters.”
Jacob looked around. Seeing nobody watching, he took her to the front of the modified barn, and opened the door to let them in. He turned on a light switch and the room was bathed in a soft orange light.
“There are no windows, so I leave this on during the night, so I don’t bump into things if I need to move around.”
“I like it. It has a seductive atmosphere to it.”
“Do you feel seduced?”
She put her arms around his neck and kissed him more passionately than ever before.
“You know. When I heard that you may have lost your virginity and never remembered a thing, I was sad for you. I wondered what I could do to make it better, and I could only think of one thing. Can you guess what that one thing could be, my love?”
He grinned and led her into another room, where a big bed waited for them. She had a zip-fronted dress, so it only took a moment before it was on the floor, followed in double quick time by his trousers. Willow knelt and pulled his underpants down, releasing his stiffening member. She gave it a kiss and a lick and stood up again as he peeled her panties down. With her on her back, on the bed, he pulled her bra straps aside to nuzzle her breasts and then she guided him to where she wanted him to be.
All the times that she had dilated was nothing compared to what she felt now. When he entered her, she was glad that she had lubed before coming out. They made love with no sign that it was the first time for both of them, reaching the peak of ecstasy together. When they had calmed down, they kissed gently.
“Happy birthday, darling Jacob. That’s something we can both remember. I’d better use your toilet and we should get back to the party before they send out a search party.”
They cleaned up and redressed, then went back to the party, in time to join the queue for more sausages and chops. There were four cakes, all shaped like guitars, and all different flavours. They guzzled with the rest of the crowd, sang ‘Happy Birthday’ four times, and then the DJ started playing slow songs. As they danced, just swaying to the music, Jacob whispered in her ear.
“I love you, Willow Rose. I had a crush on you in school, well before that New Years Eve. When we kissed, I thought I had gone to heaven, but it was just the lower level. Tonight, has been heaven.”
“I love you, Jacob Epstein. I’ve grown to love you over the last six months. Tonight, you made me a complete woman, your woman. There is only one problem that I can see.”
“What’s that, my love?”
“Just that it may be a while before we can make love again. This has been wonderful, but I don’t think that you could have a birthday party every week.”
“We’ll just have to remember tonight until then.”
‘Oh, I will, my love, I will.”
When the party wound up, they kissed before Willow left with her parents. On the short drive home, she could see her mother glancing at her in the rear-vision mirror. At home, she hugged her parents and went upstairs to cleanse and use the bathroom. She looked at herself in the mirror and then sat on the toilet to use a squeeze bottle to wash her vagina, as instructed by the doctor. She really should report that she had full sensitivity down there, just to make her doctor happy.
In the morning, she was having an early breakfast when her mother asked her if she had a good time at the party.
“I had a lovely time, Mum. I must have hogged Jacob, but it was a good chance to be together for the evening, seeing that we can’t go on dates.”
“Is he a good kisser?”
“You know a girl doesn’t kiss and tell, Mum.”
“There was a period that I didn’t see you.”
“We went outside for a private cuddle and talked about the future.”
“When you came back, you looked like a girl who had been given a present, rather than a future. Take it carefully, my darling, you’re still only young, even if you are so adult.”
“I will, Mum. Thank you for being so understanding. I feel much more certain that we have a future together. The tour will be the thing that will show us if we can withstand a lot of tension.”
“That tour worries me. I just hope that the crowds turn up. It seems such a big gamble. It’s all been good so far but attracting so many people seems impossible.”
“I know, Mum. All we can do is do enough that those who are there have a good time. It’s the organisers who are taking the gamble. They’re the ones with the experience and access to the buying trends. ‘Homegrown’ will be on the market for a week before we’re on stage. Sales will show us if it’s all worth it.”
On Monday, they started the revision week. There was a pile of DVDs in the lunchroom for sale. They were all Volume One from the BBC. Dianne gave Willow the USB.
“That just blew our minds, Willow. It was hard to think that there was this fabulous band and they’re all school friends.”
Willow turned to Gina.
“I’ve just had a thought, friend.”
“Just the one?”
“I have a partner lanyard, and so do you. Both our actual partners are in the band, so I wondered if we could set up an arrangement where we each take one of the orchestra with us to a concert. We’re at ten places, so can take twenty of them. If we get a second show anywhere, we can take more. What do you think?”
“I’ll have my Mum at the Coventry show, but otherwise, why waste good tickets. Dianne, can you put together a roster. You’ll need to be picked up by mid-morning to get on the vehicle with us. They’re seven seaters, so we’ll be all right if Jacob doesn’t bring anyone.”
Jacob leaned over.
“Racheal is going with Rick, so there’s nobody I’ll be taking. I suppose that I could have asked my cousins, but that’s not possible now.”
“We could always ask Sebastian to get a minibus, then we can take more. We can ask him this afternoon and get back to you tomorrow. It will be nice to have some extra friendly faces with us.”
On the way home, they asked Sebastian about the plan, and he laughed.
“Already ahead of you there. The company has acquired three twenty-seaters for us to use. We’re taking partners too, some of our fellow workers and office staff have been spoken to. We’ll have plenty of room for an extra three on our bus. If I have an address in Coventry to pick up, we can do that on the way to the northern venues.”
Tuesday, Gina played in the chapel. Reg thanked the girls for the passes. At lunch, they told Dianne about the bigger bus, and that their driver was prepared to pick up at a site in Coventry. Willow went over to the other band members and told them about what they were planning, and that there would be minibuses used. By Wednesday afternoon, the pick-up venue had been decided as the car park of the Cathedral, as it was central, and parents could park there into the early hours. Willow told her parents about the plan, and they decided that they would make up a party as well. One show they would pick up two from Wendy’s work, the next show two from Ashley’s work would come to the house to join them.
Wednesday evening, the choir worked with Sally with the seven Soprano airs, plus one duet with Margaret. It would make things much easier when they had the full orchestra. By Thursday, they had a full list of partners for all the northern shows, with another list if there were second shows. Dianne had asked around the second year, her sister had canvassed the third year, and Zara had spoken to the fourth years to go with members of G-Force.
Friday was the last day of revision and seemed to drag. The band was getting excited about the launch on the weekend. Willow was getting worried that the next week would be an anticlimax. She checked her laptop when she got home and saw that Wilhelm had sent a spreadsheet of Summer Love accounts. With last month’s input, and this month’s input, they had over a million and a quarter in the account, with expected outlays for the building renovation expected to be somewhat close to a million. There had been some outlays, mainly the work needed on both properties to bring them up to modern standards.
Jill had sent an email to tell them that the Coventry show was now starting to fill a second night. That was a welcome shock, seeing that the first show was three weeks away. There was a second email from Jill to Jacob, with Willow cc’ed. It told them that the investigator had been to Birmingham and, given the likely girl and her address, had spoken to pharmacists in the local area with a picture, confirming that the girl had bought a pregnancy test kit some six weeks earlier, and a month before the party. The investigator had also spoken to the school, who had to report the administration of a date rape drug to the local police station.
The local police hadn’t done anything yet, as no official complaint had been made. They did give her the details of the station closest to where the girl lived, and the investigator had spoken to their Chief Superintendent. That station was going to arrest the girl on suspicion of extorsion and seize her phone to check if there were any pictures, and if any of them had been sent somewhere else. If nothing else, it would frighten her off and tell her parents that their daughter was pregnant. The raid was this weekend, so there should be some news next week.
Willow had her roller case ready, with enough for two nights away and an afternoon in Hyde Park. She had packed the outfit that she had worn in the video. When the coach arrived, she allowed Max to store her case and climbed on board to join a very boisterous group. She went and sat next to Jacob, noting that Brent had his arm around Gina a couple of seats in front. On the way, they sang some of their own songs, sometimes with different words, and were very happy. They were happier when Sebastian turned the radio up to hear ‘Dummy Spitter’ loud and clear, with the announcer telling the world that this was the first single of a much rockier ‘Summer Rose’ and from an album to be launched at the Rough Trade record store the next day. The all had a cheer.
At the hotel, they were treated like royalty, having now stayed there for a few times. They took their cases to the rooms and then went down to the dining room for a late dinner. Gina and Willow were sharing again and hung their outfits and cleansed for bed. They laid in bed, with the light out, and talked quietly. Gina said that she was seriously thinking about having sex with Brent, so Willow just told her to make sure he had a condom to use.
“You’re not shocked?”
“Why should I be, friend? Girls and boys are having sex at a much younger age these days. As long as you take precautions, and don’t flaunt it, I see no harm in it.”
The next morning, they discovered that Brent and Jacob were sharing a room. Willow looked at Gina and winked. Gina blushed, and then smiled. After they had eaten, Jill joined them and told them that there was already a queue at Rough Trade, so they would start a bit earlier. They went to freshen up and the boarded the coach, with Jill showing Sebastian the way.
When they arrived at the shop in Dray Walk, there was quite a crowd, as well as two police cars, the four policemen standing by the door. Sebastian pulled up with the coach door and the shop door directly opposite. Jill got out and spoke to the policemen. Max got out to guard the coach door. The police sergeant called out.
“Now, listen up. The band will leave the coach and enter the store. Give them a few minutes and the store will open for you. We’ll be here for a while to make sure that you’re orderly. Hear that – orderly! I’ve been told that the band is staying until there’s none of you left, or the CDs have all gone.”
There was some laughter and then the shop door opened, and Jill beckoned for them to leave the coach. There was noise as each of them left the coach, with their names being called to look to the camera, with a few calls from girls saying that they loved the guys, and a couple of guys telling the girls that they were adored.
Max had a huge grin on his face as he helped them to step down to the pavement. When they were all inside, he got back into the coach and sat in front. Sebastian looked at him.
“Why the big smile, Max.”
“Well, there were pictures taken of every member of the band as they were getting out. Guess what? Every picture will have me holding their hands! Unless I get airbrushed out, that is.”
Laughing, Sebastian gave the policeman a wave, and backed up to leave the way he had come, to spend a lazy day in London, on full pay. Not for the first time, he whispered ‘I love this job’. The policeman made sure he had enough room to manoeuvre and waved them off.
Inside the store, the band were taken through to the back, where there was a small stage with a microphone and a keyboard. Clive was there already.
“Good morning. The keyboard is there to give some ambience, unless someone wants to play it. We have a table either side, one will have five of the band and the other six. Sort yourselves out as who sits where. Once you’ve done that, we have these life-size pictures to go behind you, so that everyone knows which one they’re speaking to, although, from what I just heard, that’s not a problem.”
They conferred, and Gina sat in the middle of the five seats, with Brent beside her, and Roy, Edward and Nancy. Willow and Jacob sat in the middle of the other table, Herb and Victor beside her side, and Bryan and Vivienne beside Jacob.
When Willow had a chance to look around, she saw that the access to the tables was from a single aisle, where a shop assistant stood with a register and a three big piles of disc cases. The exit was from the other end of the tables, with another assistant standing to make sure nobody tried to come in that way.
The first people in the line were the four policemen, with a set of discs each. When they had all been signed, the four put their booty behind their stab-vests and went to the door to make sure the entry of the customers was orderly, as ordered. Clive watched and laughed.
“This is going down much better than I expected. It’s human nature, but once that lot outside have formed a line, anyone else will just join it. Pens at the ready, here comes the first customers.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 20
It was a constant stream of customers for the next two hours. Many had brought all three items and wanted all three signed. It did give the band time to answer questions while they were signing. They all signed with only their birth name, to allow enough space for all eleven on the plastic case. After the first few had bypassed the two at the end of her table, Willow got up and got Vivienne to sit in her seat. Being one of those that everyone wanted the signature of, she created a slowing of the line so that everyone had product presented to them.
What did slow them down was the number of ‘Coventry Carpentry’ and ‘Journey’ cases that were presented for signatures. At the end of two hours, Clive stood at the head of the line and called out that the band was going to take a short break. That allowed them to ease their flat bottoms and get a drink and comfort stop. Willow was out first and went up on the stage to play a few songs from the first album until the others were back. As the line restarted, she went back to her seat at the end, with some generous applause in her ears. They sat and signed for another two hours, with Clive calling for a thirty-minute break.
There was a table set up in the storeroom, set out with sandwiches and finger food, plus water and cola in bottles. This time, Gina came back with her and played the keyboard while Willow sang songs from ‘Journey’ until everyone was seated again. The mood in the store never got rowdy, and all the customers realised that they would get their product signed, and entertained while they stood in line. Willow noted that some, who had only bought the CD, rejoined the line with one, or both, DVDs.
They had another break at half-past two, and yet another at half-past four. At five-thirty, Clive spoke to the manager, and they went to the door. The manager called out to the line, still outside, that he would open the shop early on Sunday morning if the people wanted to come back, but the band had signed for over eight hours and needed a break. He handed out business cards, with Clive writing numbers on them as they walked up the line.
“These will get you in on Sunday morning, starting from nine. No numbered card, no entry. Thank you for coming and we look forward to seeing you tomorrow.”
Coming back in, the main door was closed and only opened to let a customer out. The line dwindled until there were no more customers in the shop. The manager came and shook hands with the band.
“Thank you for today. You’re the best band to launch here, by far. I’ll open at nine and I think that we’ll see the rest leaving with their purchases by eleven, when it’s our normal Sunday opening. Then, it’s lunch on me. I think that this may have been the best Saturday for a very long time.”
The coach arrived and turned around at the corner. The line had dispersed, and the band left the shop, all with their own set of discs. Willow had to smile, as the cover of the Kansas set was the one her mother had drawn, a long time ago, while the cover of ‘Homegrown’ was a single blue rose, on a thorny stem.
They didn’t go far for a meal. Sebastian turned onto Hanbury Street, crossed Commercial Street and parked where Jill had put out orange cones on Lamb Street. They all left the coach, which Sebastian locked after putting a ‘Parking allowed by Spitalfields’ sign in the front window, and they were led to the Brother Marcus Restaurant, where they had a long table and were served seven share plates with a range of different foods. They all had their fill, with those underage on soft drinks. Willow, Jacob, Gina and Brent had quiet conversation which left all four smiling.
Back at the hotel, they all had group hugs and said goodnight. Sometime later, Gina, in her nightie and gown, and carrying a towel that she had brought in her case, walked to the other room and knocked on the door. Jacob opened it, gave her a hug, and went to where she had left her door ajar. He walked in, closed the door, and looked at Willow on the bed, looking beautiful in a black nightie. As he went to her, his dressing gown landed on the floor.
Two hours later, there was a knock on the door and Jacob, now redressed, opened it to let Gina in. She gave him a hug and a surprising kiss, said thank you as he left. Willow, still on the bed and well satisfied, spoke quietly.
“A good result, friend?”
Gina held the bloodstained towel up and grinned.
“The best thing to happen to me since dinner, friend. Odd feeling at first, and then it was as if I had shooting stars behind my eyes and a volcano erupting in my groin. I’m a woman!”
Willow stood and they hugged, then Gina put the towel in a plastic bag for disposal tomorrow. They hugged again and Gina went into the bathroom to clean up. Then, they shared her bed, cuddling together, both women and friends for life.
In the morning, they checked out of the hotel and the coach took them to Dray Walk. They got out after Sebastian had turned it around. There weren’t many there and they were allowed to enter the shop unmolested. Seeing it was Sunday, Willow turned on the keyboard and doodled Bach while everyone else got themselves settled and the line was allowed in. More arrived with the numbered cards and the signing continued unabated until nearly eleven. The tables were cleared away and the life-sized pictures gathered up.
Jill rang Sebastian to pick them up in an hour and a half and to park on Brick Lane, next to the entrance to Dray Walk. The manager made sure his staff were good for the normal trading and then led them the few yards to Café Thousand and One, where they had a leisurely time to relax and eat. Most of them went for one of the all-day breakfasts. When the coach arrived, they all got in and it took them to Hyde Park. They were dropped off at the north-east corner and walked to the big, grassed area where the show was. Jill pulled a load of lanyards out of her bag and gave one to each of them, with their name on the pass. They went through a special gate which led to a VIP viewing area. The stage was strangely normal, no flying saucers or other props, just the usual amps and instruments.
They settled in comfy seats to wait for the show to start, with waitresses bringing out soft drinks for the band and wine for Jill and Clive. The band came out and the crowd roared, the Jeff Lynne walked on the stage, and they started with ‘Can’t Get it Out of My Head’, followed by ‘Livin’ Thing’. As the show progressed, Willow realised that it may have been a nice, but expensive gesture by the label, but was also a practical lesson in working a big crowd.
When they had finished their set, Jeff Lynne said that this had been their last ever big show. He then told that crowd that they had, in the audience, a band that would be playing their first ever big show in two weeks and asked Summer Rose to stand and give the crowd a wave. Willow didn’t expect the roar as they waved. The band, on the stage, went into their encore number.
While the audience was grooving to the sound, Clive and Jill quietly took the band out to the waiting coach before the gates were opened at the end of the show. The coach went a little way north and stopped to let Clive and Jill out in Maida Vale, then Sebastian found the start of the M1 heading north.
On the way, the band discussed what they had just seen, and how they could fit it into their own act. They realised that, up to now, they had been performing for friends and locals from Coventry. In two weeks, they would be in front of thousands of total strangers. The turn-out at the signing was indicative of support, but the roar that they got in Hyde Park was a sure sign that a lot of fans were out there.
They planned a meeting, after school, in the usual orchestra room on Tuesday to hash out a playlist and likely ways that they could interact with the audience. Sebastian told them that they would be picked up later and that the other drivers would be told.
When they arrived at Willow’s home, there were a lot of hugs and a nice kiss from Jacob. She wished everyone luck in exam week and got out to collect her case from Max, who also gave her a hug before he got back in the coach. The house was empty when she went in, so she took her case up to her room, hung the unworn items and put the soiled ones in her hamper, including the black nightie, which she held to her nose and smelt the residue of sex.
She had a quick shower and put on a simple shift, then picked up her bag and walked to the club. Her parents were there, with Maisie, so she sat with them and related some her weekend. Eventually, Gina walked in having showered and changed as well. They had dinner and talked. Maisie looked at the two of them.
“There’s something different with you two tonight. You aren’t the young girls who left on Friday.”
Willow was first to speak.
“On Saturday and Sunday, we both grew up. I think the rest of the band did as well. We sat and signed albums and DVDs for over ten hours in the two days, meeting strangers who were keen to spend their money and talk to us. We signed the two earlier albums, the new one, the DVDs, and I even had to sign a couple of the BBC DVDs. Then on Sunday, we sat in Hyde Park and watched a lesson in entertaining the crowd by interacting with them. It brought it home to us how big next weekend will be, and how hard we’re going to have to work. Yes, we’re different; we’re more aware of what we’re letting ourselves in for and the responsibility we have to the paying customers. Jill told me that our shows are seventy pounds a ticket. If we fill the smallest stadium, that’s two million a show. Liverpool will be four million a show. There are homeless and disadvantaged people out there who will get a huge boost if we do our job. Yes, Maisie, we’re different.”
A little later, in the toilets, Gina put her hand on Willow’s arm as they were checking their lipstick.
“Thanks for that, back there. I was frozen, wondering if I smelt of sex, even though I’d showered. I was almost about to let the world know that I’d lost my virginity. Once again, Wonderful Willow saves the day.”
“Call me that again and I’ll glue the keys on your keyboard.”
They laughed and hugged and then went back to the table.
Monday was the first day of exams. They sat for one and had time to relax before the next, then had lunch. Everyone was being serious, as this was the week which sealed their futures. There was a table with the double album of the orchestra, with a notice that it was now available for order through the website or could be purchased at reception.
Jacob told them that he, Herb, Roy, and Victor were being taken to the music store in Birmingham, from school, to get extra guitars. Doing big shows can be hard on them, so they needed spares. That afternoon, when they left, they had Brent in the vehicle with them to take him home first.
When she arrived home, there was a big parcel from Madame Francesca on the doorstep. It was her other three outfits for the shows. Monday evening, Willow looked at their songs and tried to visualise their show in her mind. They needed a little bit of the ‘Journey’ album but could skip the Carpenters. All of ‘Homegrown’ was a must, with ‘Spitter’ as the encore. There had to be some Kansas to promote the DVD, and she thought that the last four tracks from ‘Dust in the Wind’ on would be good. In fact, she thought that they would be best as the last four songs.
There was an email from Wilhelm, saying that the architect had drawn up plans that both the builder and the studio people were happy with, and that they had been sent to the council, with a note to say that the studio was designed as a personal space, and not a commercial venture, because of the lack of parking.
There was an email from Jill, telling them that the label had been happy with the launch, and that advertising for the shows was bringing a lot of interest. Most of the first shows were close to fully booked, and the second shows had been announced. Because of this, there would be two stages and pitch coverings, with the first venue taken to the third, and so on.
There was a second one from Jill, as an attachment from one to Jacob. It said that the police had visited the girl who had set up the pictures at the party, and had looked at her phone, finding the pictures had been sent from another phone, which turned out to be one of her friends. The other girl was apprehended on Saturday afternoon and her phone confiscated. The only transmission of the pictures had been to the first girl and to Jacob’s cousin. A search of the three houses discovered the Rohypnol at the cousin’s house, and her brother had been arrested on suspicion of three reported rapes that had not been solved, with his DNA being taken so see if there was a match with the evidence. The only other person to see the picture had been Racheal. The pictures had been deleted, the three girls cautioned, with the pregnant girl taken to the hospital, under guard, and given an ultrasound, which showed a close to two-month foetus. Jill noted that the parents were angrier about the baby than the attempted extorsion.
Tuesday morning, Jacob told them that each of the guitarists had chosen three extra guitars, which would be transported to the first venue and taken, with their normal instruments, to each of the others. The day was the same as exam days before it, and probably similar to all future ones. After school, the band gathered in the rehearsal room and it didn’t take long to agree on the song order, some announcements to include the crowd, and Willow didn’t have to pull the bit of paper that she had which was almost exactly what they had just decided.
She, like all the others, had a quiet evening looking at the material for the next day. Wednesday was a carbon copy, and then, as it was choir evening, it was over to the club. They worked on the seven items that Margaret and the chorus had, being happy with what had been achieved. Willow wished them all a good break and that the next session would be the last week of August.
Thursday, it was exams again, and they told the security that Friday would be an early day, with just an exam or two in the morning, so they would have lunch and be out to go home after that. The only other thing was to pick up her remaining B-twelve ampoules. That’s how it played out, and they were on their way home in the afternoon. They all hugged and said that they would meet again at the party.
When she went into her home, she went upstairs to shower, putting all of her school uniform in the hamper. Some would be washed, others would need dry cleaning, but she couldn’t have cared less about that at the moment. Tonight, the birthday party was in the function room of one of the Coventry hotels. Wendy had been able to get a nice card for each of the celebrants. Willow sat at the kitchen table and wrote in them, then relaxed, listening to the radio with her eyes shut, hearing the band being played five times before her mother arrived home.
While they waited for Ashley to get home, they got themselves pretty. Willow had a head start, so turned on her laptop while she waited for her mother. There were a couple of emails.
One was from Wilhelm, to tell them that planning permission would be granted, with the paperwork coming next week. The other was from Jill to all the band, with more details. The shows will start at seven-thirty, with G-Force opening. At eight-thirty, the Hikers will take over. With Summer Rose playing from nine-thirty to the end. There would be no breaks, as it was usual for stadium shows to have people wandering around, with the facilities and vendors all in the surrounding concourse. There will be a second show in Nottingham, Derby, and Leicester. Coventry will have a show on the Friday, Saturday and Sunday. Other venues looking good for second shows. Willow printed that email to give to Dianne and Barbara the next day, as they were the first of the ‘partners’. It looked as if they would be able to take a lot more of their friends to experience the show, from the inside.
The family went to the party, with the adults all off to one side while the teenagers danced to the DJ and grazed on the table of goodies. For all of them, it was a celebration of birthdays, of the last day of the school year, the end of the exams and the beginning of the glorious holidays. For the band, it was their last break before the work started next day. Most of the band members left earlier than others, mindful of a need to be ready for the show,
On Saturday morning, Willow woke with a feeling of optimism. They knew what they had to do, and already were playing better than when they were at the Belgrade. The show, tonight, was booked out, and, as far as she knew, Sunday was filling. Today, they would discover what had been set up, and see, for the first time, the stage they would be on.
She showered and made sure that everything was right as she dressed for the day. She had a shift dress for travelling and her outfit for playing was in a garment bag. At breakfast, her parents were quietly supportive and told her that they would be there to see the show. Mid-morning, the minibus arrived, and she kissed her parents and went out to get in. Max helped her up and then got in and closed the door.
“Big day, today, Willow. This is the one that you’ve worked so hard for.”
“It is, Max. Thank you two for being such good protectors and friends. Things could have been much worse without your professional service.”
She said hello to the partners, who had both met her before, and they travelled north, picking up Gina and Jacob. His trusty guitar was stored in the locker. When he got in, he told them that it would be shipped to the other venues with the gear, so he was stuck with his Fender at home. They picked up Xavier, Frank, and Dave, with their parent partners, and then stopped at the Cathedral to collect Dianne and Barbara, plus the Junior leader, Abbie. Then they were off to Nottingham. It was just under an hour and a half later when they arrived in a secured car park at the City Stadium, where there were already lines of fans waiting to get in.
They were escorted to the VIP dining room, where they had lunch with the other bands and their partners, then, they all went to look at the stage. It was set up at one end of the ground, with a sea of seats in front, and the seating behind roped off. This allowed them to be able to leave from under the stands and walk into a large marquee behind the stage.
The marquee was their dressing and relaxing room, with drinks and snacks. The bands all had their stage outfits with them, so were shown their screened off, reserved sections and hung them on racks. Then they climbed the stairs to the stage.
The stairs came up to a space behind a wall of amps. As they passed them, Willow noted that six were marked as SR, and the three others were marked HIKERS. Jill was waiting for them.
“The amps are for general use. They’re all the same. Come and look at the view from up here.”
She led them around the speaker wall and the sight took their breath away. Stretching out before them was a vista of seats, with a low tent close to the centre spot.
“What we have is this stage, which is slightly sloping. The drum kit and the keyboards are on raised platforms, so that everyone can see you. Guitar players, you will need to make sure that you stand towards the front so that you can be seen by the first twenty rows. Your effects boxes are clearly marked with your names and all the cables are routed around to the amps and plugged in. That allows us to have a clear stage. The tent is the audio and visual control centre. Xavier, that’s where you and your friends will be. You have a full mixing board for sound, and there are banks of screens to see the vision from all the cameras. It’s the job of the visual technicians to make sure that the pictures on the big screens fit the music. There are two big screens on each side of the stage, pointing slightly to the side, so people in the closest stands get the full view. There are also screens and speakers around the concourse so that nobody misses out.”
She pointed out the camera positions in the stands, with one each side of the tent.
“Dave and Frank, you will assist a pair of experienced directors. They will be in radio contact with all the cameramen. Xavier, it will just be you and a professional sound man. You will be in contact with whatever band is on stage. You will have a screen to one side, with scrolling messages from the security and ground owners, so that if there’s an emergency, you can alert the band. We will have a number of ambulances and paramedics, and the club clinic will be manned. There are always some who want to faint at a show like this.”
Willow took in the sight, noting that there was a blanked off area behind the low tent so that nobody had their view restricted. Jacob was holding her hand, and Brent had his arm over Gina’s shoulders. The most affected seemed to be their partners for the day. Dianna was literally shaking with excitement, and Barbara was having a problem keeping her mouth from dropping open. Jill continued.
“Partners, there is another exit from the dressing rooms. It goes under the stage and the first ten rows are reserved. There is a rope between you and the paying customers, and it will be monitored by security. If you want to wander the concourse and get keepsakes, there is a way there from where we came out of the stand behind us. Make sure that you have your lanyards in view. Later in the day, there will be someone back there to help other VIPs with directions. All VIPs have to come through the marquee to get to their seats. There are toilets back there for your use.”
Rick called out.
“What are the numbers, Jill?”
“With the stands behind us sealed off, and the pitch seating added, you’re looking at forty thousand tonight, and tomorrow night is already at thirty-eight thousand, so may be full by the time that you take to the stage. We’ll let you have a wander around, but we need sound checks starting at five. There will be a light meal in the dining room at six.”
They went back down and then through the passage to the seating area, looking back at the towering stage, with the four big screens, the staggering number of PA speakers, and the lighting along the upper cross-piece. Jill saw them looking up.
“The lights will only have a marginal effect until it gets darker, so Summer Rose will be the band to benefit most. There are pyrotechnics, so don’t get frightened if you see flames.”
Back into the stands, they found the exit to the concourse and did a full walk of the perimeter, finding food outlets setting up, merchandise vendors for each of the bands, a few stands with amps and instruments on, and a lot of stands with stocks of the band’s albums and DVDs, manned by staff from the label. Clive was overseeing the preparations.
“Hi, there, you lovely people. This is one of the biggest operations we’ve had since before COVID, and it’s great to be here. If Jill hasn’t mentioned it yet, all of your partners get a free product from us, and our merchandise vendors. It will lower your income, slightly, but it will be a drop in the ocean from what this tour has become.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 22
The Saturday and Sunday shows were equally as exciting. Jill told them, on Sunday afternoon, that the sales of the Kansas DVD had picked up, and the ‘Homegrown’ CD had already reached Gold status, but the presentations would be postponed until they reached London.
“Another thing. I’ll send out an email to all the bands that is an alteration in the plans. In the week you have a show in Manchester is now two shows. You have three shows in Liverpool, then two shows in Leeds and two shows in Sheffield. These are too far away to have you travelling up and back. You’ll never get any rest. When the tour was planned, it was thought to only be a show in each place. We’ve booked everyone into hotels in each of those cities. You’ll need to pack for two weeks away. You’ll be back on the Monday after the Sheffield show, and then off to Southampton on the Wednesday morning. You’ll be away six nights there and London. After that, you can sit and relax for a couple of weeks.”
Back home, on the Sunday night, Willow told her parents of the new plan. On Monday morning the email came through to all the band members. It outlined the new plan, and also said that any guests who had been scheduled to go to the four northern shows would have their own transport service. Those going to Manchester for the first show would be going north with the bands, but will be brought back in one, or more of the busses. Those listed for the following shows would be picked up and brought back on the day of the show. Jill wanted a list of those going. Willow forwarded the list to Dianne to sort out. They had not listed any extras for the trip south.
…………………………………………….
In Coventry, that morning, Bruce sat at his computer in the newspaper office to compose his article for the next edition.
On the weekend, I saw the ‘Coventry Sound’ show twice. The first was as a VIP, guest of Willow Rose, and the next was as a paying customer, accompanied by my wife. Both were exceptionally uplifting experiences. Those who follow the local scene would already know the three bands. G-Force, Rick Sacks and the Hikers, and Summer Rose have been in the charts for some time now. All have Gold or Platinum Records. I have seen them from their infancy, and have been amazed at their progress, but nothing could have prepared me for what I saw and heard. These three bands are not just the new Coventry Sound. What I heard was the advance guard of what may be known as the New British Invasion when the history books are written. They are playing another four venues before taking the show south, with the last show in London. Whatever you do, give yourself a treat and go along to see the show. You’ll also be helping the disadvantaged, as the bulk of every show profit is going to charity.
He added some photos that he had taken and submitted it to his editor. Then, as an afterthought, he sent the complete article to the reporter who had been sent up to Stoneleigh to ‘get a story’ but ended up getting more than one.
………………………………………………
Willow, like the rest of the band, relaxed on the Monday and Tuesday. She rang the doctor and explained that she was due for a B-twelve injection at the end of the following week but would be away that day. She made an appointment for the Monday after. The doctor asked her how her operation was, and she admitted that the feelings were real and amazing. The doctor said that she would give her a booster of the hormones when she came in. When the call was ended, Willow wondered if more hormones would send her boy crazy.
On Wednesday morning, just after her parents went to work, she was picked up to go to Manchester, her bigger case and her roller put into the bus storage. They picked up Gina and Jacob, both with a lot more luggage, then stopped at the Cathedral to collect the guests, followed by getting Xavier, Frank, and Dave with their luggage. Sebastian told them that they could have gone a quick way, which would be on a toll road, but were looping around by taking the M1. Driving time, he said, would be a minimum of three hours, so the guests who were coming home after the show should call their parents to let them know that they would need picking up in the early hours.
They arrived in Manchester at about one, that afternoon. The procedure varied from the previous shows because of the changes. They stopped first at the hotel, where those staying checked in, joining the rest of the band. The other bands were in another hotel. When Gina saw that she was sharing with Willow and Jacob was sharing with Brent, she smiled. They all had lunch in the hotel before going to the stadium. The Manchester City ground was in a precinct named the Etihad Campus, and on property owned by the city council. It was a whole area of sporting complexes.
The situation inside was much the same as before. They had a function room for dinner before the show, the usual vendors in the stadium concourse, and the stage that they had used last in Leicester. Xavier and his friends went to check out the control tent, while all the others wandered the concourse. The stalls with the Club Merchandise all wanted pictures, and several of them ended up with club shirts.
Later, they were asked to do sound checks, so did so before dinner. When they saw Xavier, Willow asked him why the sound checks were needed this time.
“It’s because of the streaming, Willow. It adds a whole new level to what we’re doing.”
“Streaming?”
“Yes. This club is owned by a very wealthy company. They have strong connections with other clubs all over the world. We had to allow the studio here to fine tune the sound and vision that we will feed them before you go on stage.”
“How many ‘other clubs’?”
“About a dozen. They will live stream the show to all of them. Of course, for some of them it will be the middle of the night or the early hours of the morning. In fact, in Melbourne it will be the early hours of tomorrow morning.”
“Melbourne, Australia?”
“Yes. I saw the list. The show will be going there, Japan, China, New York, Uruguay, India, Spain, Italy, France, Belgium, and Brazil. It will be in real time, and they told me that there are usually big crowds at the clubs, no matter what time the shows are on.”
“Come with me, young man. Our label needs to know this, if they don’t already.”
She led him to where Clive was sitting and got him to repeat his story. Clive stood.
“That’s interesting. I’ll go and see what it’s all about. If nothing else, we need to know about any feedback from the other countries, and if they will record the show for transmission later. With China, who knows what they’ll do with it!”
He went off to speak to the club management. Willow sat with Xavier to talk.
“This feeding to another studio, does that make things harder?”
“A little. We will have to direct the signal to them as final. It’s lucky that we’ve had the experience with that new software that you got for us. Frank and Dave will be in charge of the vision, while all I have to do is make sure the audio is unbroken. We’ll have headsets like the ones they use in rally cars and will be talking to each other constantly. The other two guys are old hands, but not with the software that we’ll be using here.”
“Make sure you tell this to Clive when he gets back. You three deserve to be on the credits for the technical input. I wonder if this will accelerate the label’s expansion of our market. If so, the sky’s the limit.”
Later on, she saw Xavier and the others talking to Clive and another man. When she saw Clive, she grinned.
“Did that put the cat among the pigeons?”
“Yes and no. They thought that all of the show was theirs to do with as they want. I have pointed out that all three bands are contracted to the label and any vision and audio used is the property of the label, if it’s used for commercial use. I’ll be seeing their legal people tomorrow, to draw up an agreement for them to market the show in the countries that will be taking the stream. I’ve told them that an official show has been properly filmed and that we will be happy to supply that at a discount, allowing them to add a sticker to the case. It could get you all out there in the other countries over our winter, when you’re back at school. Each band will only get a couple of pounds for each of these sent out, but you never know where it will lead. We’ll keep you all, and Peter, posted.”
After the dinner, the bands went down to get ready. After that, it was a repeat of the previous shows. At the end of the night, the band said ‘cheerio’ to their guests and took the lanyards as they left for the long drive home. When they had all changed, Max came to take them to the bus.
“The guests all fitted in one vehicle, so you’re in with us and the others are in another bus.”
Back in the hotel, the girls got ready for bed. There was a knock on their door and both Brent and Jacob were there. They had a group hug and Brent stayed as Willow was taken back to the other room with Jacob.
In the morning, the girls had showers and got ready to face the day.
“How are you after last night, friend?”
“It just keeps getting better, Willow. He now knows where my sweet spot is, and he drives me mad. He’s going to have to get more condoms today. I wonder if we’ll have time to visit the shops.”
“We can ask at reception.”
They went down to the dining room, sitting with Vivienne and Nancy for breakfast. It was a nicer start to the day, nothing to do until they were back at the stadium. Until Jill came in.
“Listen up, gang. We have an interview at the radio station at eleven, and an appointment for the girls in a salon at two. When you’re ready, the bus will take you to the Arndale Centre for a wander in the shops for an hour or so. Please get back to it by twenty to eleven. The radio station is giving you lunch. The boys will be taken to the stadium and the girls will join them after they’ve been prettied up.”
They finished eating, grumbled a bit, but went to freshen up and then met in reception. Gina grinned.
“Looks like we won’t have to ask where the shops are, now.”
When they arrived at the shops, they were all given a map of the centre. Some of the boys went off to see if they could get new shoes, Jacob and Brent headed to the chemist to get condoms, and the girls went directly to Victorias Secret. They dutifully returned to the vehicle and were taken to the radio station. Willow had decided that, somewhere, there was a printed list of all the questions they were likely to be asked, and the station didn’t disappoint.
After lunch, Jill and the four girls were dropped off at a salon, where they had a check-over, a new hairstyle, and a mani-ped before the new make-up. They all looked good when the vehicle came back for them.
At the stadium, they met their new crop of guests who had arrived a little while earlier. They all escorted the excited visitors around the venue, adding to the number of pictures taken of them. When they were back in the function room, Willow went looking for Clive.
“Did you sort things out?”
“We did. The legal department is going to have to organise the paperwork, but the situation is that the club owners have a worldwide web of companies, other football clubs, and links. We have agreed on a figure for them to use the show that was streamed last night. I was told, this morning, that close to eighty thousand were at the various clubrooms around the world to watch. They are going to set up distribution of our label in places we don’t have a market. It's an interesting turn of events, with both sides not knowing each other before last night. The feed, by the way, was commented on as being very professional, those lads have a fine future ahead of them.”
They had dinner, then went to do the show, while their guests had a front row view. They may not have had a getting to know you ride there and back, but none of the guests were complaining.
That night, both the girls wore new nightie and gowns that had come from their shopping trip, with Willow entertaining Jacob while Gina went to the other room. In the morning, they checked out and went into Liverpool. They checked into the Kop View hotel, a stone’s throw from the Anfield Stadium. The four girls shared a room, so fun at night was out for a while.
After checking in, they were taken to see the city, along with G-Force. They went to the riverside area, to see the Beatles statue, the Liver Bird monument, and a visit to the British Music Experience, where there were a lot of fans wanting selfies with history in the making. When they stood beside the ferry headquarters, looking over the Mersey, Willow spoke to Zara, who smiled and nodded. She then went to speak to Herb, who gave her a hug. After that, she had a long talk with Xavier and Frank.
Later, they were taken to the stadium, where they met up with a smaller group of guests. Most parents didn’t want their children driving four hours in a bus to get home just before dawn. These were the last group. They had, between them, given almost all the second and third years the chance of a free show.
They explored the concourse together, had a few laughs, spoke to a lot of vendors and their guests loaded up with goodies. Then it was dinner and the usual preparation for the show. Tonight was the biggest crowd of the tour. With the seating on the covered pitch, they were playing to sixty thousand. G-Force got a great reception, their music reminiscent of the sort of stuff that Liverpool was known for. The Hikers were cheered after every song, and when Summer Rose walked out, the noise was like standing next to a jet engine.
Their set went down very well, with a lot of singing to the songs that more people now knew. At the finale, after ‘Spitter’, all the bands were lined up across the stage. In the control room, the director was ready to call them to leave, but Xavier put one hand over the microphone and the other over the master slider. The director wondered what was going on as Willow stepped up to a microphone and gestured for a bit of quiet. When the sound had abated, she spoke.
“Liverpool, you have been a wonderful audience, and we love you all. We were having a look around the riverside today and realised that we couldn’t end the night without another song. This one is the one you love.”
Zara started singing, with her lovely voice.
“When you walk through the storm, hold your head up high.”
Those who were dashing for the exits stopped in their tracks, the crowd, who had sung this countless times, joined in, and there was sixty thousand singing the iconic song. The director smiled at Xavier and sat back. Herb was playing like Brian May, and the moment became one that no-one would forget.
Clive and Jill, who were standing behind the amps to congratulate the bands, stepped out to look at the scene. There was hardly a dry eye in the stadium when the song ended, and the crowd erupted in a louder cheer than before. The director called for the stage to be cleared, and he brought up the stadium lights as Xavier zeroed the master slider. The stage lights went off and the audience continued their exit. The director told Xavier to never pull a stunt like that again, then smiled and added, “without telling me first.”
Clive and Jill hugged everyone, right there on stage, as they moved to go down. When he hugged Willow, Clive laughed.
“I’m not going to tell you that you’re wicked, but that was the riskiest thing you’ve done so far. It was audacious and shouldn’t have worked, but you may have provided the newspapers with a front-page headline in the morning.”
That night, they waved off their last set of guests and changed while waiting for the crowd to disperse, then walked the hundred or so yards to the hotel and a good night’s sleep.
The Saturday newspapers that were in the dining room didn’t have them on the front page, but on page three. The headline was ‘The Last Song’, and the article went on to say that the show on Friday night was magnificent, but the singing of ‘You’ll Never Walk Alone’ at the very end had turned it into a monumental success. It spoke about every part of the show and ended with a statement that made them all draw breath as Jill read the article out to them.
“This is interesting. It reads, ‘The show may have arrived as the Coventry Sound but will leave as the new sound of British music. The whole show was interesting, the new songs are so catchy that there was strong singing along, especially since the Summer Rose album has only been on the market a few weeks. In all, the next two shows here are not to be missed. If you haven’t got your tickets, see if you can get to Leeds or Sheffield, before they take this spectacular south.”
……………………………………………………….
In Coventry, Bruce was looking at his laptop, reading the article. He subscribed to an information service and had requested everything on Summer Rose and the Coventry Sound tour. He laughed out loud at the sheer audacity of the moment, knowing that it must have been something that Willow had dreamed up.
………………………………………
In London, Henry Talbot, who had submitted the same request since Bruce had sent him that article from the Coventry Observer, read this article twice, then looked at the calendar to double check the dates that the show was in Southampton, then sent a request to his editor to reserve space in the paper that would be on the streets the day before the London shows, and then made an on-line booking for a single seat at the Wednesday Southampton show.
……………………………………………
It was now considered too risky for the bands to walk the streets, so the bus was parked by the side entrance of the hotel, and they boarded it unseen. With the two bands on board, Jill announced that she had made a booking for them all for lunch at the Old Victoria, the dining room at the Winter Gardens in Blackpool.
When they arrived at the seaside mecca, they started at a shop selling beachwear, and all changed into summer outfits, putting what they had worn in the shop bags in the bus. Then, looking like a school outing, they went up to tower, and then to the Winter Gardens for lunch. The venue was nice and modern, the food was good, and they were entertained by a piano trio on a stage that would have been hard to fit the four of the sing-along group onto. Willow and Gina laughed when they realised what a big favour Marcus had done for them with his dummy spit.
After lunch, they walked the new promenade, in small groups, and then went to the Pleasure Beach to enjoy what remained of the rides, including the huge roller coaster. Without the stage dress and looking like a bunch of kids on a day out, they never had any problems, getting back to the hotel about four-thirty. The freshened up and walked to the stadium, as the crowds hadn’t started gathering in big numbers. They went, five minutes apart, in small groups, so to not stand out.
When they were all in the function room, Clive was there and got all the bands together.
“All right, listen up. What you did last night was in the papers this morning, and it’s set off a flurry of activity. Tonight, the club wants you to repeat the last song, just as you did before. The difference will be that tonight you’ll be joined, on stage, by the first team and the subs, in their team shirts. The other thing, and this affects you, Xavier and your two henchmen, is that you will be sending the feed to the in-house TV studio. They will stream it on LFCTV, which is available to fans anywhere in the world. They have already advertised the show, as we came to an agreement this morning. The feed will continue as last night, until the stage lights go out, which should happen about five minutes later than usual.”
Herb wanted to know if he could play his guitar in the style he had done and was told that it was all right. Willow wanted to know if they would do this on Sunday as well and was told that the fans were certainly going to expect it.
“Now, one other thing is that the Dean of the Liverpool Cathedral has asked us if Gina could play their organ tomorrow morning for the service that goes from eight-thirty to nine-thirty, and for Willow to play the Evensong between five-thirty to a bit after six. As you aren’t on stage until nine-thirty, I think that it’s possible. Are you two happy to oblige? The Dean did tell me that the Cathedral organ is the biggest in the country and has eleven thousand pipes.”
“Count us in, Clive. With the morning service, can we have a bus if there are others who want to attend?”
Clive took a show of hands and declared that a bus would be outside the hotel at eight.
“It’s too dangerous to have a lot of you off-site in the evening. The Cathedral will send a car for you and bring you back, Willow. Now, some more news. For those of you running short on knickers and socks, our next hotel, in Leeds, is one of the Ibis chain and has laundry service, so sort out your smelly stuff when you arrive on Monday, and you’ll have it cleaned by Tuesday. Now, have a wander and be back here for dinner at a quarter to six.”
As they were heading for the concourse to see the vendors, Ashley and Wendy arrived with an older man and woman.
“Willow, darling, how have you been?”
“Busy, Mum. But it’s been great. It’s lovely to see you.”
“Sweetheart, this gentleman is your father’s section manager and his wife. They have family here and it was an opportunity to come and see them. We’re staying for two nights in the city and will be bringing their two granddaughters with us tomorrow and heading home on Monday.”
“That’s great, Mum. You both got a day off?”
“It’s wonderful what bringing your workmates to the shows has done for our standings at both workplaces, love. What are you doing tomorrow?”
“Gina’s playing at the Cathedral in the morning, but we can get together during the day. I’m set to play Evensong until just after six, and then I’ll be brought back here to get ready for the show.”
“What did you do today, you all look like a school outing in those summer outfits.”
“We’ve been to Blackpool for a look and a ride on the really big dipper.”
She walked around the vendors with her parents and their guests, then they all went for dinner. Ashley was amazed that he was in the room with the whole Liverpool team.
“Why are they here?”
“We sang the club song last night after the show and it raised the roof. They’re all joining us on stage after our encore and we’re doing it again. It will be going world-wide on the club TV show. In the week, our Manchester show also was live streamed to a dozen countries, including Australia.”
After dinner, the guests went off to mingle with the paying customers in the concourse until it was time for the show. The players went off to the corporate boxes to mingle with the supporters until it was time to come back, and the bands all went down to the marquee to get themselves ready for the show.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 23
That evening, the show was extra special. The full house had heard what had happened on Friday night and was keen to experience the same thing again. Singing the iconic club song was one thing when the stands were two-thirds filled with supporters, but a full house singing was something not to miss.
It made them more appreciative of every song from every band. When Willow led Summer Rose out, the reception was tremendous. Wendy could feel the waves of sound deep inside her body. The set was the same as she had heard before, but the amount of singing that was coming from behind and around her was something new.
At the end of the set, the roar before and after the encore number was the loudest that Wendy had ever heard, followed by that being surpassed as Willow spoke about needing to sing the one song that they all knew, and the team players came out on stage in their home shirts and lined up with the bands. Zara started singing and Herb started playing and the swell of sixty thousand voices was going to stay in her memory until she died. When the pitch lights came on, she had tears in her eyes as she clung to Ashley.
Ashley’s manager could hardly contain himself as he supported his weeping wife. She was born and bred a Liverpool girl and team supporter. They made their way, with the other VIPs, through the tunnel and into the marquee, where both Willow and Gina gave them hugs before they went to change.
In the morning, the bus was waiting after they had eaten an early breakfast. The four girls, Zara, Brent, and Jim were joined by Jill, Xavier, and Frank for the trip to the Cathedral. There, they were greeted by the Dean and Gina was led up to the huge keyboard under the pipes in the North Choir. The usual organist quickly showed her which of the two hundred stops she would need this morning and she started to play the Bach as the Cathedral filled.
Willow was joined by her parents. She asked Jill if it was all right to spend a day away from the rest, as long as she was here to play the Evensong. Jill agreed, saying that there was nothing special planned for the day. When the service was over, Gina came down and gushed at how wonderful the organ was, they hugged, and Willow left to spend the day with her parents. She directed them north, to Blackpool, where they had a relaxing time enjoying the sights, having lunch at the Winter Gardens, eating ice cream and talking about what they had been doing while apart.
Ashley said that the new shed was in place, the concrete floor having been poured in the first week that she had been away. This was news to her, as the times she had been home, she hadn’t looked out in the back garden. She was able to spend the day without being bothered, although a few did look at her twice. A teenage girl, out with her parents, was a good disguise. They took her back to the Cathedral, after a light tea, where she played the organ for Evensong. Afterwards, she was thanked by the Dean, hugged by her parents, and taken to the stadium by car for the show.
She was changed in the marquee when her parents came through with the two granddaughters, who hugged her and took selfies before heading out to the seats. The show was as charged as the Saturday night, with lots of noise from the crowd, a lot of singing along, and a huge roar as the bands were joined by the women’s team for the big finale. Willow gave her parents a special wave from the stage before the stadium lights came on, knowing that there wouldn’t be a chance to talk to them again until she was home.
The next morning, they had breakfast, happy that this venue had been so good. They all checked out and boarded the bus to take them to Leeds, via a stop at the TV station for an interview with a morning show. When they arrived in Leeds and checked into the Ibis Styles, the first thing was to put their laundry in hotel bags, add their names, and leave them in the corridor to be picked up. Next was to have a late lunch, followed by a relaxing time, with many phoning home for a chat. All the bands were staying here, with the Hikers taking up residence in the hotel bar to play billiards.
Willow and Gina sat in the lounge with soft drinks, talking about playing the largest organ in the country. Willow had her phone on charge. She had hardly looked at it in days, and when she turned it on there were dozens of messages showing before it ran out of power. She hadn’t brought her laptop, so there would be a load of messages on that when she got home. But, today, she didn’t care. They were a popular band, on tour, and that’s all that mattered at the moment.
They were joined by Jacob and Brent, and sat, talking about how things were going. They were here for four nights, but the boys were on a different floor, making it more difficult to swap rooms. Brent pointed to a dark glass dome in the ceiling.
“Those CCTVs are right through the hotel, in every corridor, so any walking about will be monitored. They probably have that happen a lot of the time, but a bunch of fourteen-year-olds in nightwear, creeping about in the early hours, is likely to lead to questions.”
They all relaxed, knowing that there was no show until Wednesday. Tuesday, they were all taken to Temple Newsam, for a visit to the huge Tudor manor and Capability Brown grounds. Wednesday morning, they were taken to Elland Road and looked at the stage and the vendor area. They had lunch back at the hotel, in Arnold’s, and relaxed until it was time to go back to the stadium. Willow had her notebook out and was jotting ideas for future songs.
The dinner was full of dignitaries of the city, the board of the team, and many players. For the band, it was another dinner where they were treated like adults and acted to suit. Willow thought back to the last day of term and realised how much they had all changed in the last few weeks. The show, now a polished performance, went well, and the following night it was repeated, all to forty thousand singing fans. Friday, they checked out, with bags now brimming with clean clothes, and went a little way south to Sheffield.
They went past the stadium on the way to the Hampton by Hilton in the city. The two couples were happy to find that their twin rooms were in the same corridor. They were in the hotel for three nights of bliss, two after working hard at the Hillsborough Stadium in front of nearly forty thousand fans.
A little before eleven on Monday morning, Willow was dropped off at her house, ready to relax for a couple of days. The tour, so far, had been hard work at times, exciting and invigorating at other times, but a lot of fun all the time. She had been to places that she had never seen, seen new people and slept in a lot of strange beds, sometimes two different ones in the same night. Today was all about sorting her bags and putting her laundry in the hamper, and starting to think about what she was taking south.
After a sandwich made from fresh bread and ham that Wendy had brought home after shopping on Saturday, Willow rang the taxi to take her to the clinic, putting her remaining ampoules in her bag. When she got there, she asked the driver to wait while she went in and had her injections, one in an arm and two in her buttocks. They did take a blood sample before they allowed her to leave, after having her sign a stack of CD’s and DVDs for the nurses. When she arrived home, she didn’t have enough cash to pay the fare, so had to use her company debit card.
While she waited for her parents to come home, she looked to see what was for dinner and started preparing the vegetables. After that, she turned on her laptop to see if anything important had come through.
There was an email from Wilhelm, with a report on the progress in Leicester that had been sent to all of them, with a reminder to transfer the August payment if they hadn’t already done so. There was one from the studio designer to say that the whole company had seen the shows while they were local, and that everyone was proud to be working with them.
There was another from Evan and Trevor, asking if she and Gina could come to Cambridge and York in the period after the tour. They would arrange transport for the two of them on the last Thursday of the month, take them to Cambridge and hoped to record the two albums over the next four days. After that, they would be taken to York on the Tuesday to record there over three days, seeing that there was no choir involved. They would be put up in hotels and looked after. That would get that job done and they would be home for a day, or two, before school started again. Willow rang Gina and they discussed it. She then answered that email to tell them that they would be happy to play for them.
There was another from Mister Bamborough to all the orchestra. The security detail would pick everyone up on Wednesday of next week to take them to the Albert Hall to work through the music for the Proms night, which would be the Monday, two weeks after. It also told them that they would be taken to London from the school on that Monday afternoon, straight after lunch, and to make sure that all of them had the black outfits, except for the soloists.
She was happy to be sleeping in her own bed that night. Her father had shown her the new shed, with lights and power for heaters. He had transferred the two cabinets from the garage and installed two new workbenches with overhead lights. Her model was still boxed, but he had started on his. She had also seen the new collection of vinyl in the music centre and told her parents that she, and Gina, would be away again to record organ music in Cambridge and York. Wendy was not happy.
“You’ve hardly been home! This hasn’t been much of a holiday!”
“But Mum, I’ve been all over, stayed in swanky hotels, seen sights and been well looked after. Gran can come into Kings while we’re in Cambridge, and we can sit together while Gina plays. This was discussed weeks ago and both sets will be issued by the label.”
“Oh! All right, but make sure that you knuckle down when you’re back at school.”
On Tuesday, she met Gina by the church, now with the scaffolding removed. They went in to see the new facilities, all done without changing the looks inside the church itself. What was different was the look of the organ, with the pipes replaced and polished. The Reverend came out from the office.
“Hello, girls, long time since we’ve seen the two of you together, unless it was on a stage or in a newspaper. The organ is ready to go. I heard the specialist play it and it doesn’t sound any different, although I’m just the one running the services.”
They went up to the keyboard to see what had changed. The twin keyboards were new, with much easier feel to the keys, and the air pumps were silent and immediate. Gina played some Bach and then Willow played a new hymn that she had played in Liverpool. They agreed that the sound was still authentic and went back down.
“It’s great, Reverend. We won’t be able to play for the services for another couple of weeks. We’ll be in London next weekend, and then we’ll be in Cambridge the weekend after to record with the Kings College Choir. We’ll be clear on the first Sunday in September.”
“That’s all right, then. I’ll get Jim in for the last Sunday of the month. I’ve got the invoice here for the restoration. It came to a hundred and twenty thousand. Thanks to that recording with the Hikers, the roof is restored. It doesn’t leak any more, and, more importantly, with the new heating we don’t lose the heat out of the holes. This winter is going to be something to be truly thankful for. I also have a little bit of news for the two of you, to be kept between us. When Paul was ready to go on his mission again, it didn’t take long for him to start preaching about the devils’ work being promoted by one of the tribal healers. When they found a body, staked out over an ants nest, it was only the cross around the neck was what could be used to identify him. The ants and the birds had picked him clean.”
The girls looked ashen and nodded. They hugged and the Reverend hugged them both.
“That chapter is over, girls. He wasn’t cut out to be a man of our God.”
They took the invoice and went to Willow’s house where she turned on her laptop and paid the sixty thousand, with Gina putting the invoice in her bag to pay the rest when she got home.
They were sitting and talking when the laptop gave out a ping that indicated an incoming email. Willow opened her email page and there was a new email, marked ‘Important message regarding Southampton and London shows’.
It outlined the procedure for the next morning. The bands will be picked up after lunch on Wednesday, with the trip taking about two and a half hours. They would go straight to the hotel, the Premier Inn, which wasn’t far from the ground. After checking in, they would be taken to the ground for the usual meeting with the guests and dignitaries. The time of the start had been brought forward to seven on both nights, to comply with local noise restrictions, so the show would end at around ten. On Thursday, they would all be taken to visit the Mary Rose Museum and the Naval Dockyards to see the Victory. This news put the recent news into the past. This was their world now.
On Friday, they would be taken to London and the hotel was the Holiday Inn at Camden Lock, about twenty minutes from the Emirates Stadium. Here, they had filled four nights, the Friday, Saturday, Sunday, and Monday. Clive said that he was very sorry about the lack of warning, but the organisers had charged a hundred pounds a ticket, and had requested that the show started at seven, and finished at eleven, with Summer Rose on stage for the last two hours.
Willow and Gina got a piece of paper and worked out what could be a good two-hour show. They composed an email to all the band, with cc’s to Clive, Jill and Xavier. The suggested show was to open with ‘We’ve only Just Begun’, then do the two from ‘Journey’ as usual. Then, instead of going straight into ‘Homegrown’, Willow would talk about them starting out as a cover band, playing a few of the Moody’s set. Another announcement about the charity, and then for them to play ‘Money’, followed by the entire Kansas set and then ‘Homegrown’, with ‘Spitter’ as the encore. They asked the band if there was any of it that needed practise, which they expected to be able to do on Friday morning, as soon as they arrived at the stadium. They warned Clive that any other functions should be kept to the bare minimum. When it was sent, they hugged, and Gina went home, with them both back into band mode.
Over the rest of the day, the replies came in. One by one, the rest of the band said that it looked good, with just ‘Money’ and the Moody’s needing to be practised. Clive thanked them for the prompt response and their work ethic. There was one email from the real estate agent, saying that he was still looking around for property that might suit her.
That evening, the Rose family enjoyed dinner and spoke about the next few weeks. Her parents had already booked a room at a bed and breakfast place within walking distance of the Etihad Stadium. They were keen to see the show one more time, and in the capital. They were also looking forward to seeing the orchestra in the Albert Hall and had organised that Monday off. They would drive home from the venue, but Willow would be staying overnight in a hotel and would be dropped off at home on the Tuesday after school.
That night, Willow packed her larger case again for the trip south. As she did so, she quietly spoke the words that she would use during the London show. She just hoped that there would be enough quiet that the audience could understand her.
In the morning, they all had breakfast, and she was hugged and kissed by her parents as they left for work. She double checked that she had enough clothes for the time away, and that her make-up case was good. She listened to the radio and made herself some lunch. She had finished tidying up when the vehicle arrived. Max loaded her cases and she got into the bus and found a seat next to Jacob. They sang the extra songs on the way, just to get them into their brains.
In Southampton, the procedure was as outlined. Hotel, stadium, dinner, show, and back to the hotel. On Thursday, they all had an interesting visit to the dockyard, saw the Victory and other ships, saw the Mary Rose and then had a cruise on the river, going past a lot of naval vessels on the way. The show was – well, the show – and they had a good night of sleep to be ready for London and the longer show.
On Friday, they checked out and were in London and at the hotel in time for lunch. In the afternoon, they went to the stadium and went up on the stage to run through the extra numbers. There were a lot more dignitaries at the function room that day. There were representatives of the charities, club management, some players and a number of people from the label. The dinner was from five to allow for the earlier start, so the bands were down in the dressing area a little after six.
The crowd were tremendous, cheering the G-Force when they went on stage, singing along with Zara, and generally having a good time. The Hikers were well received as well. At eight, when Willow led the band to the front of the stage, there was a roar, which quietened when she sat at the keyboard to start playing a piano intro as the band found their places. She started with the Carpenters number, which many sang along to, then did the spiel to set up ‘Finding a Friend’ and ‘Her Day’. When that had ended, she waited for quiet and then spoke.
“When we first started, we were like almost every band that ever was. We played covers. My first ever pop show was at the school we all go to, and I played keyboard with the band that you heard first tonight. We did a set of Deep Purple numbers and called ourselves ‘Shallow Blue’. The DVD of that show is still available through the Blue Coat Coventry website. The next show that we put on, G-Force did a blues set, and we did a set of Moody Blues. Here are a few from that set.”
Gina started with the intro to ‘Dawn’, which led to ‘Gemini Dream’ and ‘Nights in White Satin’. When the applause had died down, she spoke again.
“This tour has been all about making lives better for the disadvantaged. The bulk of what you paid to be here is going to the charities. There are people that you’ll see, as you leave tonight, with buckets. Haul out your loose change and drop it in. Every bit helps. It’s all about the money.”
Victor started the bass intro to the song, and they sang ‘Money’ for the first time in public. When that ended, Willow spoke about the one set that they had perfected but never played in full for an audience.
“This is the Kansas set that is the limited-edition DVD, available from the vendor stalls. It won’t be repeated so get it while you can.”
They played the whole set through, then went into the ‘Homegrown’ album, finishing with the encore and the full line-up before the stage lights went dark and the stadium lights came on. They had played a two-hour set and had turned it into a positively different show.
They had Saturday to relax, then did the same show that night, with Wendy and Ashley surprised at how assured their daughter was on stage, even though they knew that the show had been lengthened. Wendy had a new promotional item in her big bag, one that she hadn’t seen before. From now on, they would be drinking their tea from ‘Summer Rose’ mugs. Sunday was a repeat, and then it was the last show of the tour on Monday night.
That day, they were all taken to the Broadcasting House to record a long interview which would be cut into pieces to be broadcast over several days, with all the bands asked about outstanding times during the tour, and what lay in the future for them. At the final dinner, Summer Rose were all given Gold Records for ‘Homegrown’ CD, and the ‘Other Side’ DVD, which had sold out and was now changing hands on eBay for much more than the ticket price. They were also given Platinum Records for the ‘Carpenters’ CD and the ‘Homegrown’ DVD. The final show seemed to be louder and prouder that all the others, and when they left the stage for the final time, all the bands were ready for a break.
On Tuesday, when Willow was dropped off at home, she hugged and kissed everyone in the bus, telling them that they were the best. She put her new awards next to the others in the sitting room, and then had a very long shower, redressed in jeans, and went for a couple of laps of the riverbank and past the church. Over that day, she relaxed and thought about where she was in life. The laptop was full of messages of congratulation and praise for how she had led the band through the experience. Some, she answered, others she deleted. There was one from Wilhelm to tell them that the work on the studio was close to completion, and another from the real estate agent with a list of businesses that she could buy or prop up.
On Wednesday, she was picked up and joined a coach full of the orchestra members, heading for the Albert Hall. A second coach with the others was already on its way, and a truck had left in the early hours with the instruments. At the Albert Hall, Willow watched as her lover played the guitar concerto, and her best friend played the Grieg. Then she was up in front of Jupiter’s Voice again, with the Saint-Saens. The choir had been bolstered with some of the new members and sounded magnificent. They were given dinner on the way home and arrived in the early evening.
On Thursday, a car arrived to take her and Gina to Cambridge. They spent the next few days playing the organ for the Kings College Choir, with portable recording equipment and a small group of technicians from the label. Willow was happy to see her grandmother, who came to see her and listen to what they were doing every day. Then they were off to York to play there, mainly classical pieces written for the church, again recorded by the label.
They were brought home again on the next Thursday evening. With just the weekend between then and the start of the new term. On Friday, she caught up with the statement from Peter, that had been sent while they were in Cambridge.
The Carpenters downloads had earned them thirty-five thousand. Sales of merchandise was forty-eight thousand. The payments for the eight last shows came to four hundred thousand. The Carpentry CD had sold two hundred and forty thousand, the ‘Journey’ CD two hundred and fifty thousand, the ‘Journey’ DVD three hundred and fifty thousand. ‘Homegrown’ was off the wall with six hundred and twenty thousand CDs and four hundred thousand DVDs, and the Kansas DVD had sold the final four hundred and forty thousand and was now unavailable. The CD and DVD sales had created ten point one-nine million pounds.
The tour had taken eighty-two million, two hundred and forty thousand pounds, with a total amount given to charities at just under forty-two million. The band’s share for the month was a total of just on three million, two hundred and sixty thousand.
Costs for Peters services were almost static at twelve thousand for expenses and ten thousand for admin. Costs of merchandise was thirty-two thousand. Francesca had been paid seventeen thousand, security was up at forty thousand, the label’s expenses were up at a hundred and eighty thousand, and Jill had cost them eight thousand. There was a note for her regarding the Hikers sales. The band had removed the download for the original album, leaving the download link for the single and adding the link to the album being sold by the label.
The bottom line was that the band had earned a bit over fourteen million in the month, with each share, less the fifteen percent commission, worth one million and eighty-seven thousand pounds. Willow sent an email to Peter to ask him to transfer a million to her WR Holdings account, and then transferred her hundred thousand to the Summer Love account with a note to Wilhelm to say that she had done so.
She joined her family to eat at the club on Saturday and joined Gina to play some sing-along music on Saturday night.
On Sunday, she played the refurbished organ for the service, had lunch in the club and spent the rest of the day sorting out her school uniform for the next morning, along with an overnight case and a garment bag with her soloists outfit for Monday evening in the Albert Hall. The first term of her third year was certainly going to start in a different way to any other term she had known. She wondered if this school year was going to be as momentous as the last one. She knew, in her heart, that she would enjoy it.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
End of Book 3
Ending of Book 3
On Sunday, she played the refurbished organ for the service, had lunch in the club and spent the rest of the day sorting out her school uniform for the next morning, along with an overnight case and a garment bag with her soloists outfit for Monday evening in the Albert Hall. The first term of her third year was certainly going to start in a different way to any other term she had known. She wondered if this school year was going to be as momentous as the last one. She knew, in her heart, that she would enjoy it.
Chapter 1
Monday morning was clear and sunny, like Willow’s mindset for the first day as a third-year student. Today was going to be stranger than fiction. Today would be the morning assembly and she hadn’t been given a message to tell her to bring her blue dress. After lunch, there would be a convoy heading for London. The truck with the instruments and two coaches with the orchestra and choir.
She had her overnight case and the good dress in a garment bag when Sebastian picked her up. She said cheerio to her parents, who would be heading to London later in the day. Max helped her in, and Sebastian looked around.
“A bit like another world, after the summer you had.”
“You’re not wrong, Sebastian. Thank you for looking after us so well.”
“I wouldn’t have missed it for the world. That last show in London was something to remember all my life, along with the singing in Liverpool.”
They picked up Gina, also with her overnight bag and a garment bag, followed by Jacob with his two items as well. They talked about the tour, without mentioning that each of them were now considered millionaires. At the school, they put their things in their lockers and went to join the throng waiting to get into the hall for assembly.
There was a large group of new first-years, and Willow heard her name being mentioned, along with the names of others in both bands. The doors opened and they filed in, to take up their places by year, with the first year at the front. For Willow, this was odd, as she had always been up on the stage at the keyboard, a place where Reg now sat, doodling Bach. She followed Dianne, with Gina behind her, to find their seats.
When the hall was filled, the teachers present and the doors closed, Reg stopped the Bach as the Reverend Jack Heinrich walked to the microphone and blessed the school and the new school year. He gave a short sermon about hard work bringing the best results, led them in the Lord’s Prayer, and then they sang the hymn. Willow could see the screen above the stage for the first time and mouthed the words, along with many around her.
Then, the Head came onto the stage and walked to the microphone.
“Good morning, students, welcome to the first term of the new school year. A special welcome to the new intake of first years. Many of you are here because you talked your parents into sending you here, rather than attending a public school. I would guess that the reason that you wanted to be here is because of the popularity of the two bands, made up of our students, and wanted to emulate their success.”
She took a break to look at the front rows.
“The sermon was about hard work, and I will tell you that every member of those two bands are ‘A’ grade students, who have no fear of hard work. I have a theory, that learning music to play without looking at the score is one thing that sets all these students apart. There is no magic wand that gives you talent and success. You need to have some talent to start with and success comes with hard work.”
She took another look at the newcomers.
“There is part of our rules that comes from the Bible. It is that you should not venerate false idols. The members of those bands are here, today, and look just like you. G-Force and Summer Rose, could you please stand.”
All the band members stood.
“First years, please look behind you. These students, through hard work and talent, raised over forty million pounds for the disadvantaged over the summer break. They could have just played their tour for the money but took the hard road to help others. Their generosity allowed all of our teaching staff and over a hundred of the other students the opportunity to see their show from VIP seats and be fed before the show. Take a good look. They will be around the school as ordinary students wanting to get their marks high enough to go to university. They will be gracious enough to talk to you about their success and your dreams, as long as you follow the school rules to treat everyone as you wish to be treated yourself.”
She waved for the bands to sit, and the front rows faced the stage once more.
“You first years are lucky to be here at this particular time. The orchestra is currently a combined one and will stay that way until next term. You will all be able to nominate for the Junior Orchestra, while the current one will be the official Senior orchestra after Christmas. The reason is that they will be putting Handel’s Messiah on in the Coventry Cathedral which will be filmed by the BBC. They already have two BBC filmed DVDs on the market. If you get to see them, you’ll realise the standard we expect. Today, that orchestra is travelling to London to present a performance in Albert Hall as part of the last week of the Proms. This isn’t because they wanted a school orchestra, but because we showed them a professional group of talented musicians.”
She looked over them again.
“You young ones will have an opportunity to prove yourselves this year. You will be presenting a musical in this theatre before Christmas. You will be giving us a performance of ‘Wicked’ and providing both the actors and the music.”
She smiled.
“I have taken up too much of your time. You have a lot to do, and I wish all of you good and successful term.”
She walked off and Reg doodled while the hall emptied.
The morning lessons were mostly about looking over the various answers to the previous term’s exams and discussing why some students went wrong. At lunch, it was quite normal until a couple of girls came to their table. What was odd was that these were identical twins. One took a deep breath.
“Excuse me, can we have a word with you, Miss Rose?”
“You can, girls, but here I’m just Willow, only the teachers call me Miss Rose, and that’s usually when I’ve done something I shouldn’t. What do I call you.?”
“I’m Petunia and this is my sister, Ivy. I wanted to ask how you get into the orchestra, and how can we start our own band practise?”
“The first is easy. There are many rehearsal rooms behind the theatre stage, where the orchestra rehearse. You can nominate to join the Junior one by talking to the teachers. Miss Russell, Mister Jamieson, and Mister Bamborough. Have you played much?”
“We have been playing for the last two years. There are three others here with us that were part of our band. We did birthday parties and such. We called ourselves the Vines, as that’s our surname. Please don’t comment on that, our parents were children of hippies.”
“Petunia, we don’t laugh at people’s names here in this school. I got a lot of problems in my previous school because mine is Rose. Look, the school has a great program of putting on shows for the other students and parents. That’s how I had my first taste of playing rock music. You can see one of the three teachers to reserve a rehearsal room and ask for the equipment. If you need keyboards, amps, drums or anything else, the school has a huge store of things. I don’t think that there will be any orchestra sessions this week, except a possible session with the Messiah. Do you have the paperwork that tells you the session days?”
“I do. It told me that Junior orchestra is on Tuesday, after school.”
“I haven’t seen mine, yet, in the rush to go to London. What say I show you the rehearsal rooms and see if Mister Bamborough is in his office.”
“Will you do that for us?”
“Certainly, come along and follow me.”
She led them out of that part of the school and over to the music area, where instruments were being loaded on the truck. She pointed out where the rehearsal rooms were and took them to the offices, knocking on Mister Bamborough’s door. When he called to enter, she went in with two very surprised girls behind her.
“Good afternoon, sir. These two girls are Petunia and Ivy Vines. They’ve been playing in a small band for a couple of years, and there are three of their other bandmembers in first year. I was asked about joining the orchestra and organising a room so they can rehearse their own music.”
“Well. Hello Petunia and Ivy. I have to tell you that so far, every student that Willow has brought to me have turned out to be exceptional musicians. She seems to have second sight when it comes to spotting talent. What do you play?”
“We both play guitar, sir, and our friends play drums, bass, and one plays keyboard and sings.”
“Right. Willow, you will be doing the orchestra on Wednesdays. You’ll be back from London tomorrow. Why don’t we set up room three, where you put together the Kansas album, and we get these girls in then so that we can hear them play. How will that work for you, girls?”
“It will be brilliant, sir. We all live near each other, and our driver can take us all home. What time would we finish?”
“The orchestra sessions go for two hours, so we can say that will be how long we can take to properly hear what you can do. Willow, if you tell your driver to pick you up late, see if Gina and Jacob can stay late as well.”
“We’ll do that sir, thank you.”
“Yes sir. Thank you for listening to us and being so understanding. The staff at our last school considered that what we do was not the correct thing for young ladies of breeding.”
“A tough place, was it?”
“Yes. All study and female deportment. No thought for what we wanted out of life.”
He chuckled.
“If you have Willow and the others on your side, you’ll have no troubles like that here. We develop talent. In the past it has been mainly classical, but the last year has shown us the power of more popular music. You had better let Willow head to her locker, the coach to London leaves soon.”
They left the office and walked back to the lunchroom.
“So, ladies of breeding, eh?”
“Our parents run a big mechanical workshop. Dad was originally a mechanic for a race team. They wanted us to go to a posh school where ladies are taught to be good wives and breed like rabbits.”
Willow had to laugh.
“But you ended up here?”
“It took a lot of tears and tantrums; I can tell you. It took us ages to talk Mum into taking us to your show at the football club. We pointed out that the first band and your band were all students here and dangled the possibility of us becoming rich.”
“Well, there is a lot of money to be made, but, as the Head said this morning, it takes a lot of hard work.”
“The teacher said that you worked out the Kansas album here?”
“That’s right. We were going to present it as a school act, but it got postponed. Remember, asking questions gets you answers, and being as brave as you were today will find those who can help you. Now, go and tell your friends that you’ve set up a session to show three of Summer Rose how good they are.”
The sisters giggled and went off. Jacob looked at Willow.
“Found another massive talent, then?”
“Don’t know, love. We’ll hear what they can do on Tuesday, after school.”
Willow went to where Herb was sitting.
“When you get taken home today, can you tell your drivers that the Stoneleigh group will be later leaving tomorrow, say about two hours.”
The orchestra and choir all started to leave the lunchroom, with a lot of shouts of encouragement and many hugs. There was a lot of wonder among the new students at this display of group affection that had not been part of their previous schooling. Petunia turned to her friends.
“See. That shows that we were right to come here. This is our chance to be our own women.”
The trip down to London was quiet in both coaches, with the orchestra all hoping that nothing will go wrong. The school had them staying in a fairly good hotel, and that’s where they went first to check in. For those in the two bands, this was a normal procedure, so they helped out the other players who weren’t so well travelled. Gina, Willow, Nancy, and Vivienne were sharing a room and were unpacked and ready to go quickly.
They found themselves in reception, helping the rest of the orchestra as they came down. Gina and Willow were resplendent in long gowns, Gina in a vibrant blue, and Willow in yellow. Jacob joined them in a very smart ruffled shirt, shiny black trousers, heeled boots and a Bolero styled jacket, every inch a Spanish guitarist. The rest of the orchestra collected, and the three friends and Zara circulated and helped them overcome their sudden fears of playing such an important performance.
When Mister Bamborough finally joined them, he had been watching for a few minutes, in awe of how good these teenagers were. He clapped his hands and told them to board the coaches and make sure they all stayed clean and tidy. The trip to the Albert Hall didn’t take long, and they all went inside.
It was different to when they were there before. Now, there was bunting and flags, and several TV cameras set up. The orchestra area was already set up with chairs and music stands and a host of carefully placed microphones. The instrument cases were beside each place.
“Listen up, students! You will play something now to set the audio levels, then we all go to a side area to relax for an hour or so, taking the cases with us. There will be food and drink, but make sure that you’ve all been to the toilet before you start to play. No putting your hand up and leaving the room tonight!”
That caused a wave of giggles which helped to lower the tension. The players all went to their usual seats to find their instruments and get ready for a tune-up. The three soloists felt a strangeness to be standing to one side as their friends prepared to play. Moyra stood and led the tuning, then they waited for Mister Bamborough to lead them. They had decided on Bolero as a warm-up and sound check. Mister Bamborough had a bud in one ear, listening to the director. When he got the word to go, he tapped his baton, and they were ready. He launched them into the music and the cameramen and sound men got the sight lines or moved microphones slightly. When the Bolero finished, it didn’t take along to roll the Grand piano into place. They got Gina to play something to test the sound, with the sound man adjusting the microphone until it was just right.
The piano was wheeled away, and Jacob was sat in front of the orchestra, and they played the first few minutes of the concerto, as the sound man moved the microphone. When he was happy, he put a texta mark on the floor for the mic and the front legs of the chair. After that, Willow was asked to go to the organ to play something, playing her favourite movement of the ‘Seven Variations’. When they were happy with that, the choir was lined up to sing something at full voice.
They sang ‘In Dolce Jubilo’ that Willow had sung with them, over a year ago, and the memory brought tears to her eyes. So much had happened since then, and so much that had been planned that night had fallen by the wayside. She was supposed to have sung with the choir after that, but had only done so, officially, the once.
When everyone was happily on the same wavelength, the orchestra left for the side room, carrying their instrument cases and the violins and violas. Food and drink was waiting for them, and they all relaxed and tried to eat without spilling anything. Jacob sat to one side, playing the Martin to warm his fingers. There was a screen in the room that showed the auditorium, so they could see when people started coming in. As it got closer to the time, Mister Bamborough stood.
“Now, students. You have all played this before. We all know how to play these pieces. You are here to represent the Blue Coat School, we know. But, most of all, you are here to represent yourselves; the talented and proud girls and boys that you all are. When we go out there, you’re to look positive and walk with pride to your places. Tonight is being broadcast live on BBC Three radio and will be transmitted later in the year on TV. Good luck, everyone, let’s go and show them what Blue Coat can do!”
………………………………………
As they lined up to go to their places, the radio commentator was speaking to the country.
“Good evening, listeners. Tonight, to start the last week of the Proms, we will be treated to a sublime concert of popular classics. We start with the Rodrigo ‘Concerto De Aranjuez’. The soloist guitar player is a third-year student named Jacob Epstein. Jacob is also one of the members of the successful pop group ‘Summer Rose’, and finished a summer tour, here in London, just a couple of weeks ago.”
He allowed the noise of the audience to signal that the orchestra was walking out. They found their places and tuned up, then sat. When they stood and the audience clapped, he continued.
“Now we see Jacob coming out, a Martin guitar in hand, followed by tonight’s conductor, Mister Howard Bamborough, one of the music teachers from the Blue Coat School in Coventry.”
…………………………………………………
The audience went quiet as Jacob sat and got comfortable, then nodded to the conductor and starting to strum the opening to the piece. When they finished, the audience went wild, and he stood to bow and gestured for the orchestra to stand. The commentator was praising the performance as something that could have been played by a professional orchestra. He continued as Jacob and Howard left the stage and the orchestra sat. The grand piano was rolled into position. The commentator looked at his notes.
…………………………………………..
“The second item, tonight, is the Grieg ‘Piano Concerto in A Minor’. This is an iconic piece of music, loved by every classical pianist. Tonight’s soloist is another student, also a member of Summer Rose. Here she comes now, followed by our conductor. The audience is giving her a welcome that is more suited to a pop star. Miss Gina Summer is waving to the crowd and about to sit at the piano. Last time I saw her at a keyboard she was playing the band’s number one hit, and tonight we will hear her show us yet another side.”
………………………………………..
The baton was raised, the timpani roll launched them into the opening of the first of three movements. Gina, after a long hug from Willow before she walked out, was not only ready, but was revelling in the moment. When the last notes died, Howard stood for some seconds before he lowered the baton and stepped down to congratulate Gina, then they bowed and gestured for the orchestra to stand, then they acknowledged the audience and he ushered her off, with the orchestra standing to follow. The commentator was almost speechless.
………………………………………….
“Tonight, has been a revelation. Usually, you get a soloist with an orchestra. Tonight, we have had two, both very different, but both world-class players. What you would not have picked up on the radio, is that both soloists performed without any music in front of them. Amazing. There is a short break before the second half, and we have some of an interview that Summer Rose gave to our friends in one of our TV studios, I’ll be back later.”
As the break came to an end, the orchestra walked out to applause. They took their seats and tuned up. As that was happening, the commentator came back on as the interview clips finished.
“Welcome back to the Albert Hall and the beginning of the last week of the Proms. We have already heard Jacob Epstein on classical guitar and Gina Summer on the grand piano. The second half is one huge piece of music, the Saint-Saens ‘Organ Symphony’. The organ will be played by Willow Rose, another member of the popular band. There are no less than eight members of Summer Rose in this orchestra, as well as the vocalist from G-Force playing the cello. Here comes Willow Rose, with Howard Bamborough. She acknowledges the applause and makes her way to the massive organ, which almost dwarfs her. As she reaches the keyboard, she turns to look out at the audience, a tiny figure in yellow. The conductor is ready on his rostrum, the choir are in place, the crowd is now quiet, and we are about to hear the ’Organ Symphony’ in all its majesty.”
………………………………………………….
The audience, which had been bolstered by a lot of parents and other schoolteachers from Coventry, listened in admiration for their children and charges as they showed how good the orchestra could get. With the last movement, a lot were smiling as Willow opened it with the blast from ‘Jupiter’s Voice’, and many sang along with the choir. The piece came to the triumphant end and there was silence until the conductor relaxed and turned. Then there was tremendous applause and many standing. Willow came down from the organ to stand next to Gina and Jacob, in a line next to Howard Bamborough, bowing and waving at the crowd. A trio of girls came out with flowers for each of them before they were allowed to walk off, with the orchestra following. The applause continued as they came on and then left once more.
There were calls for more, which died down when Zara walked out, alone, and went to her cello, to give a heartrending version of ‘The Swan”, after which the other three came out, with Jacob holding his flowers, which he gave her as they stood in line. When they walked off again, the applause petered out and the Albert Hall started to empty. The Head was grinning. Not three soloists, but four.
The commentator could only say his goodnights from the Albert Hall. Even he couldn’t believe what he had just seen and heard. The radio program reverted to the studio and the whole orchestra were wiped out with the release of pressure. The coaches took them back to the hotel where they were all in bed and asleep inside of thirty minutes.
In the Albert Hall, the contractors used by the school started collecting the instruments to load into the truck. They would be driving back to Coventry in the night, with the truck spending a few hours in the depot, before being taken to the school that afternoon.
On Tuesday morning, many slept late. No set time had been given and there was a buffet breakfast. Willow and the other three had showered, dressed in the school uniform, packed, and were in the dining room about eight. Some were already there, and others trickled in after. They were all hungry as they raided the offered food. Mister Bamborough stood and tapped a spoon on his glass.
“Good morning, students. You were all stars last night and made me very proud to be your conductor. I apologise to you, Zara, for sending you out like that at the end, but you were wonderful, and it certainly pleased the audience. Mister Jamieson rang me this morning to tell me that he had listened to the radio broadcast, and it was all first class. Today, we take it easy, and will be going back to the school in time for the usual lunch, followed by the usual Tuesday afternoon. We don’t have a lot of time to sightsee but will stop near the Houses of Parliament for a short while, so those who want can visit the Abbey, then it’s back to Coventry.”
They all went back to their rooms to brush their teeth and collect their bags. They were at the Abbey by half past nine, with the warning to return to the coaches when they heard Big Ben strike ten. They all had a look at the plaques for the famous people and then went back to the coaches as the hour was chiming.
Back at the school, bags were stowed in lockers, and they were the first in the lunchroom. The bells went and the other students streamed in. The orchestra were the centre of attention for a while. Xavier and his friends came over to where the band was sitting to offer their congratulations, followed by Petunia, who said that she had listened to the performance with her mother, who was amazed that the pop stars were all soloists that night.
That afternoon, the teachers were all easy on them and there was only a small amount of new work. After the final bell, the three friends went to the music area, where the orchestra were busy picking up their instrument cases to take home, with the bigger ones checked before being stored at the school. They were talking to Dianne and Barbara when Petunia and her sister arrived with their three friends.
“Hello, Willow. We listened to the concert on the radio last night. It was awesome. You guys are so good. My Mum said that she had never thought that a bunch of schoolkids could make that beautiful music.”
“As the Head told you yesterday, it all takes hard work. Do you play anything else besides guitar?”
“Ivy and I both had piano lessons from an early age. Guitar was easier because you can carry one around.”
“All right. Let’s see what has been put into the rehearsal room for you.”
They all went to the rehearsal room to find three amps, a drum kit, the two Yamaha keyboards and several guitar cases. Petunia stood in the doorway, dumbstruck.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 2
Petunia started breathing again.
“This is just for us?”
“This is something for you girls to understand. The school looks after talent. There is a lot of equipment that can come out when you need it. Last term we played a concert where we needed a glass harmonica, and one was available. Now, introduce us to your friends and let’s see what you can do.”
“OK. Girls, this is Willow Rose, Gina Summer and Jacob Epstein. May I introduce Ivy Vines, my sister; Susan Winter, our drummer, Geraldine Hogarth, our bass player; and Brenda Zachary, our singer.”
“Pleased to meet you all. Now, there are a number of guitar cases here. I’m no guitarist, so you’ll have to look through them to see if there’s anything that suits you. Susan, have a look at the drum kit. If there’s anything else that you use, make a list and we can add it next time.”
“Thank you, Willow. I can’t believe that we’ve been made so welcome. We had to hide away in Deen’s garage before. This is awesome.”
She adjusted the seat to suit and moved the drums around to suit her reach, then started playing a quiet syncopated beat that seemed incongruous for the pretty little pre-teen to be playing. The others had sorted through the cases and found guitars that seemed like Christmas presents to them. Petunia and Ivy had a pair of telecaster-style ones, while Geraldine – Deen – had discovered a genuine Fender bass. As they were getting plugged in, Mister Bamborough came in and was introduced to the whole group.
He sat, with the others by the door as the girls had a huddle and Brenda stood at a microphone.
“We sincerely thank you for giving us this opportunity. In the past, we have only played at friends parties, and that was all acoustic. We’re not used to these electric guitars, so please bear with us until we find out what we can do.”
“You have over an hour and a half, girls. We’re here to be amazed, so take your time and be happy with what you find.”
“Thank you, sir. You have no idea how different this is to the attitude of our last school.”
They started out by playing an instrumental, something that may have sounded better as an acoustic piece, then, as the guitarists became more comfortable with their instruments, they started to sound better. Susan started to play the beat that she had intrigued Willow with, and they played a sort of middle eastern tune with Brenda singing a song about girls without hope in a far-off land.
Howard Bamborough looked at Willow and raised an eyebrow, a sure sign that he was excited. Gina and Willow, however, were not just impressed by the original song, but were thinking of piano and organ riffs for it.
After that, the girls went on to play for nearly an hour of what one might call ‘nightclub jazz’, with the teacher hearing shades of Billie Holiday to Brenda Lee. When they finally stopped, the four applauded them. Willow stood and went over.
“That song about girl’s without rights. Do you mind if Gina and I play along with you? We both have ideas about keyboard sounds that go with it.”
The group all grinned. Jamming with the core of Summer Rose was a dream come true. Gina and Willow turned the Yamahas on. Willow tested the organ, and Gina tested the piano. Susan started the drumming and they all got into the groove, with the two extras adding little bits to the mix. Howard was filming this on his phone to show the Head later. When they had finished, there were smiles all round. Willow looked at Petunia.
“Petunia, you said that you and Ivy played piano. If Jacob takes one of the guitar spots, would one of you like to take over here?”
Ivy took over from Gina, giving her a hug. Jacob took her guitar and stood beside her sister, and then they played it again. Willow deliberately refrained from much organ additions, allowing Ivy to sparkle on the piano parts, adding a lot more, showing that she had thought about this in the past.
They were nearly out of time, and Mister Bamborough asked them about the other songs.
“That jazzy set, are they covers or new?”
“They’re mainly new, sir. Ivy and I have a grandfather with a big collection of older records. He’s a fan of the old jazz singers, and it just sort of rubbed off on us. We have a lot of lyrics that we’ve written, between us all, but have never had the chance to develop them.”
“Well, young ladies, you have the chance now. We can set up a smaller rehearsal room for you with what you’ve chosen here, and you can use it whenever you want until we start workshopping ‘Wicked’. Willow, I think that you’ve done it again.”
They moved the desired equipment to a smaller room, and Susan gave the teacher the list of the other items she would like. Leaving the unwanted guitars and one keyboard, they locked both rooms, with the teacher giving Petunia the key to their one.
“Remember, girls. With opportunity comes responsibility. Use the room wisely and you’ll be able to spread your wings. Never forget that there are others who can help you. I’m sure that Willow and her band can help you with creating tunes. You, Susan, can teach Brent a thing or two. Geraldine, can you bow?”
“I have played a bit of cello, for fun, but have never done so seriously.”
“All right. Next week will be the first tryouts for the new orchestra. I want you all to come along. We will just see if we have instruments for you and test your abilities. It doesn’t matter if you don’t play anything. We have plenty of triangles.”
They walked out, via the music student’s lockers where the three friends loaded up with their cases and garment bags. Brenda smiled.
“Are those what you wore at the concert? Can I see?”
Willow unzipped her bag to show the yellow dress and Brenda felt the material.
“That is so lovely. I wish that I had a chance to wear something like that.”
“Keep up with what you’re doing now, and I predict that you’ll be wearing something similar on our stage before the end of the year.”
They got to the main door where Sebastian was waiting, talking to the driver of another people-mover. The three went to get in theirs, and the smiling girls got in the other one. On the way south, Willow chuckled.
“So, Sebastian, what can you tell us about those girls?”
“Their driver is Bernie, and he used to be with us until he started to drive for the Vines. We had a chat at the dinner dance you did at the football stadium. The Vines are seriously loaded. He has a large machine shop where he manufactures very expensive small parts for car racing, including Formula One. He used to have his own Touring Car team but sold the licence to another company. He also has another company that produces carbon-fibre bodies and other parts for racing and the military. The twins are his youngest, and Bernie said that up until mid-summer, they were destined to go to a very posh college for ladies.”
“That’s what they said. They wanted to come here to be allowed to play music.”
“Can they play?”
“You bet. When it comes to pop, they’re streets ahead of where we were at their age. They just treated us to an hour of original material. All of it was sort of forties and fifties sounding, with hints of early sixties. The drummer will be the backbone of the percussion section of the next orchestra.”
“So, serious competition, then?”
“Not competition, but the next wave. I expected to hear some covers, but everything was new and different. Now, tomorrow is the new day for us to be staying behind for the orchestra. We’ll be starting to work on our project. Next week, we will need our Stoneleigh choir to be brought to the school to join us. Can you ask your boss to see if he can organise transport which is wheelchair friendly for a motorised one? It will continue until December. The first Tuesday we’ll be performing it at the school, and the following weekend we have three performances in the Cathedral.”
“I’ll talk to him. I think that we do have a minibus with a rear-mounted wheelchair lift. Anything else?”
“Not at the moment, but I believe that the work on our studio project is getting close to finish. We’ll need transport to take everyone there to have a look, including the techs. That will be a minimum of fourteen of us.’
They dropped Jacob off, after he and Willow had a kiss, and then went to Gina’s house.
“It’s odd, friend. We’re back in the old ways, but, even now, they’re new ways. It will be nice to know that I’ll be sleeping in my own bed for a while.”
“I know exactly how you feel, sister. All those hotel breakfasts and restaurant dinners have gone to my hips.”
“And very nice they look too.”
They both laughed as Gina left the vehicle. When Willow had been dropped off, she went in with her luggage to find her mother preparing dinner.
“Hello. Who are you?”
“I’m you’re daughter, Mum. I know that I haven’t been home a lot for a while, but I’m back now because I’ve missed your cooking.”
“What, not dashing off again?”
“Not that I know of, Mum, but who knows what the label is planning for us. I’m hoping that they’ll let us have some time to develop some new songs. I’ve found out that our new orchestra sessions are on Wednesdays, now that most of us are in the combined orchestra for the project. The ones not needed will be the core of the new junior orchestra until we’ve performed in the Cathedral, then we’ll revert to a junior and senior orchestra next year,”
“There was a package for you from the school last week, which is in your father’s office. You had better have a look, as it’s your new schedules for the specialists subjects.”
Willow went into the office and brought the package back to the kitchen table, where she had a look at it.
“It says here that I’m now concert master in the senior orchestra until Christmas. I knew that, as I’m sort of in charge of rehearsing the Messiah. Oh! I’ll be continuing as concert master for the rest of the school year as well. I suppose that they have decided, with the other leaders, to keep me up front where they can keep an eye on me. It does relieve me of playing big organs.”
“What does my daughter know about big organs, dear?”
“I played what was the biggest in its day last night, and I played the biggest one in the country in Liverpool. Other than that, dear mother, my lips are sealed.”
Ashley came home and walked into the kitchen.
“Who’s this then?”
“Already done that one, Dad. Tell me, have you ever heard of a guy in motorsport called Vines?”
“We do deal with Vines Precision Engineering. They provide some parts for our competition cars and special orders. Why?”
“Because his twin daughters are at our school. They started Monday. From what they said, they should have been sent to a posh girl’s school but insisted that they wanted to come to Blue Coat because of the band. In fact, the Head did speak about a lot of new students joining us because of the bands.”
“I gather that you met them?”
“They came to talk on Monday at lunch. I organised them in a visit to Mister Bamborough to try out today. They had three of their friends with them and they blew us away. They played a bunch of original material and have found themselves in the new orchestra as well as getting their own room to develop material that they were unable to work on.”
He laughed.
“Competition to Summer Rose?”
“Everybody thinks that! No, I think that they’re the next generation. Their music is based more on nightclubs at two in the morning. They’re really good. Anyway, the orchestra for me is now Wednesday, so we’ll have to see about the Stoneleigh choir. We’ll need them at the school to rehearse soon. I’m organising transport for them.”
She looked at the paperwork again.
“I now have gym on Fridays and the Music Studies has been shifted to Thursday afternoon. Oh! I’ve been designated as the artistic director of the school musical. We’re going to put ‘Wicked’ on the stage over three nights in the middle of November. That’s a surprise. I think that the Head is determined to work me to death. That will be Friday after gym.”
“I think the Head knows how good you are at managing. You can compartmentalise the two responsibilities regarding rehearsal, but I’m pretty sure that you’ll be acting as the leader with the two orchestral groups. If the first years don’t have a leader yet, who best to keep them in line?”
“Maybe you’re right, Dad. We get that one out of the way with two weeks to finalise the Messiah.”
“Before we have dinner, will you stand so that I can give my talented daughter a big hug. Last night was magnificent! All three of you were great, and Zara playing the ‘Swan’ was a beautiful ending.”
“That was a surprise to her as well. We needed an encore, and it was too far for me to walk back to the organ.”
They had dinner and she went up to her room to unload her bags and mark up her diary with the new appointments. She emailed Jill to tell her that she would be late at school on Fridays.
There was an email from Wilhelm, asking if she would be free to have a look at the Leicester project on Saturday. He would pick Jacob, Gina, and her at about ten. He noted that Jacob had told him that they had a sing-along on Saturday evening. She replied that she would be ready. She then sent an email to the real estate agent, after looking on the web, asking him to look into a large food store property for sale in Leicestershire, with a price over three point eight million pounds. She wondered if the others would be interested in a property like this. It would be an investment of around three hundred and fifty thousand if all eleven join in. It would have to be a new holding company. When she prepared for bed, she was looking in the mirror cleaning her face when she started thinking about the auditions for ‘Wicked’.
On Wednesday, they had chapel for the first time as third years. Ivy spoke to her at lunch.
“Willow, we spoke to my parents last night and they want to come to the school on Friday to see for themselves what we’re doing.”
“That will be OK. Ask Mister Bamborough to stop a bit later on the day and he’ll show them around. Tell your sister and your friends that I want you in the rehearsal room we used last night, on Friday after school, for a while. I want to start with the auditions for the first-years musical. There will be a notice for all first years to attend. We’ll be doing ‘Wicked’, and I’m sure that Brenda could be a shoo-in for one of the lead roles. That might be a good time for your folks to come.”
“OK, thanks Willow. You’re the best.”
After school, she went to the rehearsal area with her friends. The orchestra were there, along with the tenor and bass singers. Willow got them to quieten.
“Good afternoon. As you know, I’ve been given the mountain that is this project. The orchestra have already mastered the two movements where there is no singing. Today, we will start on those parts which feature the male soloists. Early in the Messiah there are two airs sung by the tenor, and two by the bass. We will all try to have these sorted before we go home. Orchestra, you will see that the first item is an Accompagnato. Please be ready to go. We will master the music before adding the vocals. The lyrics start with ‘Comfort ye, my people’.
Mister Bamborough gave her a smile after she led the tune-up, then she sat in the leader’s seat with her violin. Because they had mastered the cadence of the music before the holiday, it only needed two run-throughs before the tenor stood to sing, having followed the music. He was good on the second try, so they allowed him to sit so that they could work on the next movement, an Air, with the opening words of ‘Ev’ry valley shall be exalted.’
It went so well that Willow asked for them to work the next movement as well, which uses the choir, and has the words of ‘And the glory of the lord shall be revealed.’
After that, they mastered the music of the Accompagnato for the bass, with the words ‘Thus Saith the Lord’, followed by a later movement with him, which had the opening ‘For behold, darkness shall cover the earth’. That was followed by his next item, an Air, with the words, ‘The people that walked in darkness.’
They had used their two hours, and everyone was happy with how they had gone. Mister Bamborough suggested that they get Margaret in next week. They all packed up to go home. In the vehicle, Willow asked if Sebastian could organise the transport with the wheelchair lift for next Wednesday to pick up the choir and take them back to the club after.
When she arrived home, they had dinner and walked to the club where the choir was working with Tom. Willow played the keyboard for them and told them to be at the club around three the next week, to be taken to the school for a rehearsal with the orchestra. She assured Margaret that the proper transport will be available and that they all will be brought back to the club afterwards.
On Thursday, they had the Music Studies in the afternoon. It was a lesson in developing keyboard skills, with one of the Yamahas in the classroom. Not all of the class were pianists, so it didn’t take long for those that were to follow the hints and tips that they were given. They had a short test on notations and both Gina and Willow were given a free pass on the performance part. Some of the others played, with Mister Jamieson telling them that it would be finalised in the next session. The non-keyboard players just needed to know the technical side.
On Friday, after gym, which had the girls playing netball, Willow showered and dressed to go back to the rehearsal room to start the auditions for ‘Wicked’. There were three distinct areas. One was the make-up of the orchestra, which isn’t huge. The second was the choice of the named roles, of which there was four female and four male. Then it was volunteers for the non-speaking parts but were mostly chorus singing parts. The other thing was to get volunteers to paint the sets and man the lighting, as well as stagehands.
She found that all of the first year were keen to be part of the project, especially if it meant to be in the same room with the three members of their favourite group. Gina would be playing keyboard in rehearsals, and Jacob was now the stage manager. They had a couple of volunteers for each of the singing parts, with Willow emphasising that the two main characters carry eighty percent of the musical. She was happy that Brenda had nominated to play Glinda.
The students decided that they wanted it to be an electric presentation, so the Vines were an immediate choice for the band. With one of the first-year students an organ player, they were already on a roll. That gave Jacob some ideas for the stage set-up and backdrops, seeing that it would be the cast supplying the colour and movement. During the session, Mister Bamborough brought in a man and woman, obviously the twin’s parents. They stood for a while, as the group were in lively discussion about the look they wanted to portray. They were adamant that they couldn’t carry the flamboyant production of the stage show, and finally decided that it should be set in modern times, with OZ becoming a seedy ghetto, with the wizard now a sort of Fagin character. Glinda was a girl who had left the area and did well for herself, with Elphaba a former friend who had slipped into bad ways. Willow told them to see if they could refine the story to fit the stage show premise for next week, and the adults left the room.
The volunteers were given the lyrics for the characters and a DVD of the show, which the school had acquired, and told to come back next week with the expectation of singing their parts, with the actual performances mixing the cast so that everyone had their time on the stage.
That evening, the family sat in the sitting room and watched the DVD, with Willow taking notes. Wendy was taken with the whole show, especially the costumes. She asked Willow who was going to make the costumes and was told that it was going to be presented in modern dress.
“That will be interesting to see”.
On Saturday morning, she was by the front door when Wilhelm arrived in the new company people mover. Ashley asked if he could come along, not having seen inside the property. They went to Leicester and parked in front of the offices. Wilhelm led them into the office first, going up the stairs and showing them a totally refurbished space, with a clean open-plan and now a good kitchen and new toilet. There were two big desks, with computer screens and ergonomic chairs. There were filing cabinets, marked with the different properties. He said that he had relocated all the records here, where he could work in the quiet. One end of the floor had a huge table, with twelve chairs.
They all picked up hi-vis vests before they went out. The big roller door was gone, replaced by a wide single door that opened inwards, set in a plain wall. Wilhelm unlocked it and took one key off a ring of keys, giving it to Willow, then giving one each to Gina and Jacob. They went into a short corridor that went to the right, with the walls covered in sound absorbing tiles. Wilhelm showed them the panel of switches and turned them all on. The corridor turned left, then left again, and there was another heavy door. On the wall was a sign. It read, ‘No Smoking, no alcohol, no food or drink beyond the rest area.’
When he opened the door, the lights were on, and the space was bathed in a slightly orange glow from hidden LEDs. When they walked in and looked around, they saw comfortable chairs, coffee tables, and a kitchenette along the opposite wall with a couple of refrigerators, electric kettles and microwaves. To their left were steps leading up to a mezzanine that was over the corridor they had come through. Next to the entrance door were two other doors, with the universal silhouettes for a man and woman.
“Both are big enough to double as handicapped toilets and are plumbed to the ones in the next-door building. If you look at the two end walls, they are softwood, so you can put up your awards. The mezzanine has storage space for recordings and all the other bits needed. It doesn’t have much head height but is a useful additional space.”
There was another door on the next wall, near the kitchenette. He led them through and into the control room. It took their breath away, with the big mixing desk, secondary mixing desk, and two, big, reel to reel tapes and a bank of computers and screens, all bathed in the low light.
“The twenty-four track tapes were added as back-up. They did the business for well over fifty years, and I was told that they had got more than one studio out of a fix. The post-production is on the back wall and can take feed from the computers or the tape. All the computers are connected to a very large server for storage of work in progress. The desk at the end is to monitor the vision and there are twelve camera mounts. I’m not an expert; I was just told all this several times.”
He went to the control desk and pointed to a bank of switches and a large red one.
“This lights up the working area.”
He switched the red one and they could see the studio itself through the big window. It seemed to stretch away for ever. The walls were acoustic tile, the floor looked like a blue industrial carpet and the lights showed that the room was empty.
“Come on through. You can’t hear anything, but I turned on the air conditioning when we came in.”
There was another door to the right of the desk, which turned out to be an airlock passage with a door at both ends. In the studio they noticed a wealth of power outlets and jack plugs. He walked them through to the other end, where he slid a sound deadening door to one side to reveal heavy double doors. He used the key to unlock the deadlock holding the doors shut and swung them open.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 3
What was the parking space had been cleaned and painted. There was a girder frame around the walls, supported by uprights on each corner, and across the back wall it supported a pair of steel doors that totally hid the doors to the lane. The single door at the other side had been bricked up. There was an industrial rack to the left, the same as used in the distribution area and big enough to take pallets.
“The steel doors are electric and alarmed. The blue switch on the board when we came in is the one to activate or deactivate the alarms, which are also linked to movement sensors throughout the studio. If you open the second door without deactivating them, there will be a noise like you’ve never heard. We can now just pull these doors open, but they are electronically secure when the switch is thrown or if the power goes down.”
He opened one to reveal the doors to the lane, now a lot thicker with a steel sheet on the inside. The key opened it, and they stepped out into the lane to see that the outer wall looked very much the same as it had been when they first saw it. They then backtracked, closing doors as they went. Jacob hugged his father.
“Dad, it’s fantastic. Thank you for overseeing the building work.”
“It was fun. I learned a lot from the specialists as they worked. They were all keen to give you the best.”
As they walked back, he pointed out mounting points on the walls.
“These are for cameras when you’re recording. There’s five each side and two over the control room window. They’re all swivel and tilt, controlled from the desk in the control room. The screens are set to each show four views. The leads all go through to one of the computers with editing software. I was told that there are ways to synchronise the sound and vision. I know that you need to get equipment and microphones, and a lot of other stuff, but I have loaded the kitchenette with tea, coffee, biscuits, sugar and milk, so we can relax for a few minutes while you young ones try to make sense out of this.”
They went through the control room and back to the rest area, where they found about thirty mugs and all the necessary for a drink. No-one had said very much during the walk-through, the idea that it was finished and theirs was a lot to take in. Willow looked at Wilhelm.
“What was the bottom line for the lot?”
“The studio guys went a little over. They said that a lot was made easier because of the existing wall. That ended up at six-seventy. The building work and all the doors came in at three-fifty, the air-conditioning at sixty, and the toilets were forty. So, bottom line was one point one-two. Everything is paid for. The work in the office was only twenty for the painter and decorator, and another forty for the new furnishings.”
“Thank you, Wilhelm, that was very good of you. I hope that things will be a bit easier for a while.”
“Don’t you worry your sweet brain, Willow. It’s been fun. The is one fly in the ointment, though.”
“There has to be one. Come on, spill!”
“I was talking to Mervyn last week. He told me that he needs to find bigger premises over the next few months. The delivery levels are rising, and he needs somewhere that he can have through unloading and loading, which is impossible here.”
“Did he tell you how big his wish was?”
“Yes, he did.”
“Well, we can always talk to our friendly agent to see if there’s anything available. Did he say if he had a particular area or site in mind?”
“No, but we can have a talk next week. We’ve got pretty friendly. Why?”
“Wilhelm. Each one-eleventh share of our income last month was just over a million. I’m sure that the syndicate could stump up a half a million each for a decent site with a happy tenant. If we include all eleven of us, we can drop the input level. If he moves out of here, we can just take over the empty space for parking. We could get a truck for transporting equipment and a coach to transport the band, rather than relying on our security detail. Part time drivers are available, I’m sure.”
“That’s a big investment, Willow.”
Ashley, who had just taken everything in without saying much, now spoke.
“It’s all an investment, Wilhelm. The seven of them now own this site and the other one in Coventry. As my daughter said, a tailor-made site for a happy tenant is likely to be good for years. They could get one with room to grow. If the current tenant moves from here, there’s the big shed for a small business, and the space in the long shed for car parking if they get other bands in to record. That galvanised shed out front could go to increase outside parking. The ground floor of the offices could be leased separately to something like an accountant, physiotherapist, or the like. I saw the big table upstairs, big enough for the whole band to meet in comfort. The band could actually pay the syndicate a regular lease arrangement. They have the time to continue their school and their careers, so there will be income, maybe not as much as last month, but still pretty tidy.”
“You’re right, Ashley. I’m still thinking like a farmer with one source of income.”
“Are they paying you?”
“Not as such. I do take out expenses.”
“Well, I think that you should look into what you can earn and give yourself a wage. If you haven’t done so already, appoint a separate accountant for the syndicate and any future syndicate should the whole band want to be part of it. They can be based here, in Leicester to make it easier if the control of the business is here.”
“If you all agree, I’ll get that moving.”
The three friends all agreed, and they washed their mugs and left them on the big draining board. One last look at the control room, now noting the vision control desk, and they made sure the doors were shut before going back out into the fork-lift workshop, with Wilhelm turning off all the switches and relocking the door. He gave Willow the ring with the remaining keys so she could give one each to the others. They put the hi-vis back where they found it and got into the vehicle to go back to Stoneleigh. Wilhelm drove around the corner, pointing out the nearby supermarket and two fast food outlets, which he said did on-line orders and delivered.
Back at home, Willow and Ashley were dropped off with ‘see you tonight’s’ and went in. Wendy was interested in what they had seen, so Willow left her father to describe the place, going up to her room. She added the studio key to the ring with her house key and school locker key. She emailed Jill to deliver their equipment, and to contact Wilhelm to arrange the time and location. She knew that they had the six amps. These were in three sections, two big speaker boxes and the amplifier head that went in between. There were the two keyboards, but she was unsure of what else was in storage. She remembered that on the first stage, there were three amps with ‘Hikers’ on the back, and on the second stage there was another three ‘Hikers’ and six marked ‘Force’.
She went down for lunch and then spent the afternoon working through the parts of the Messiah that they would be rehearsing with Margaret and Sally next week. Later, that afternoon, she got ready and joined her parents to go to the club for dinner and set up for the sing-along. They were warmly welcomed. Malcolm asked if they would be available for the dinner dances for a few weeks. She told him that, as far as she knew, they didn’t have anything on until the half-year holiday at the end of October.
They were joined by Gina with Maisie, and Jacob with Rick and Racheal, his old Fender in its case. Brent and his mother were a few minutes behind. After the meal, the four went to set up the stage, pausing in the store for a cuddle and kiss. They set up two amps, the two Yamahas, the drum kit and the PA. Before they started playing, Willow gave Brent one of the keys, and Gina told him about the studio.
There was a full house, and they played quieter songs for a change, moving into the usual singing numbers. Most of the audience were locals tonight, along to see their local stars and happy that they were back and seemingly unchanged. They stored all the equipment again, pleased that they had done a good job after so many weeks.
Sunday morning, Gina played the church organ and Willow sat with her parents. They went to the club and the two friends sat to talk about the studio. Now they had it, they needed to get all the other equipment. After lunch, Willow collected the awards that she had amassed, and the family went to the hardware store to get a small stepladder, hanging hooks, thin chain and tacks. They drove to Leicester and went into the studio.
Willow switched on all the lights and showed her mother around, then Ashley opened his toolbox, and they ran string across one wall of the rest area, making sure it was level. Willow added the chain to the back of the awards while her father hammered in the nails holding the hanging hooks. When they finished, there was a neat row of awards. Before they left, Ashley had added a second row of hooks. Now it was beginning to feel like home.
Wendy had taken stock of what was in the cupboards and the fridges, and had walked to the supermarket, coming back with long-life milk, dry biscuits, chocolate bars, tea towels and sponges for the kitchenette, as well as a block of toilet paper, soap and towels for the two toilets, as well as a half a dozen cans of air freshener. They closed up and went back to the club for dinner, as Ashley was on duty that evening.
On Monday, lessons began to follow the normal route of new material. At lunch, Willow went around the others in the band, giving everyone a key and telling them that, if they go to have a look, to make sure that they turn on all the switches just inside the door, or else they may have to call Wilhelm to find out how to turn the noise off.
She gave a key to Xavier, telling him the same thing.
“If you do go, see about the microphones and stands, please. When you go in, the board is powered up if you’ve turned all the switches on, and the air-conditioning would have kicked in. There is a twenty-four-slide mixing desk and a secondary mixer, which looks like it can be fed to number twenty-four. There are also twelve camera mounts which tilt and swivel. I’m hoping that we’ll have our stage gear delivered this week, so we can set things out. Whatever you buy, send the invoice to Wilhelm to pay.”
“Is it worth the money?”
“It’s your wet dream, Xavier.”
He grinned.
“I’ll get Franks’ dad to take us there tonight.”
As she left him, she saw Petunia gesturing for her to come over, so she went and sat in a spare chair at their table.
“How are you girls, today? I gather it was your parents who visited us on Friday.”
“It was, Willow, and they were impressed with what we were doing. Mum said that she had seen ‘Wicked’ and wondered how we could present it here, but seeing the theatre and hearing what we were planning, she thought that it would be an interesting variation. Mister Bamborough opened up our rehearsal room and showed them the equipment we had to use, and Dad told me that we’d better be good or else we’re headed for the other school.”
“You’d better show him how good you really are. Did you sort out any new material over the weekend?”
“We sure did! We have told our driver to be an hour later tonight and also Wednesday and Thursday, so we can get in there and work on the songs. Tuesday and Friday are orchestra and the musical. We never thought that we would have the opportunity to have so much music as well as a good education. The normal lessons are so much more structured than what the posh school had offered.”
On the way home, that afternoon, Gina remarked that they seem to have added the group of first years to the circle of friends.
“No bad thing, Gina. It will keep us grounded if we mentor another group. They may end up playing dinner dances in the club during the year. Who knows, by next summer, they may be opening for us on stage. If there’s one thing I’ve learned this last year, is that nothing is impossible.”
On Tuesday, at lunch, Xavier came over with a big smile on his face.
“You weren’t wrong. Willow. That set-up is absolutely fantastic. We did everything as you said and took a camera that I had bought, with remote control. It fitted beautifully and we tested the screens and the control stick. I’ll get more during the week, and get the other stuff delivered to my home. Brent said that he’ll get his dad to pick it up and take the lot there on Saturday with his van. All we need then is something to record.”
“Hopefully, the stage gear will be there by then. I’ll get Sebastian to organise a coach to take all of us there. Only the three of us and you have seen inside, and I’m keen to walk everyone through.”
“It needs a name, with that on the wall separating the rest area from the control room. Any idea what you’re calling it?”
“Well, the syndicate name is Summer Love Properties, so ‘Summer Love Studio’ will be all right. It’s not as if we’ll be advertising it for general usage.”
Wednesday was another session for the Messiah. The Stoneleigh group had been brought to the school and Sally had come with Tom for the session. Willow waited until everyone was settled.
“All right. Today, we are going to work on the alto and soprano movements. In the first part, the alto has four, plus a duet with the soprano. The soprano has two others. If we can crack these, we’ll be really ahead of the game, so let’s buckle up and make these fly! The first item is an Air, which has the words ‘But who may abide the day of his coming’. Are you ready, Margaret? If the orchestra nails it first time, feel free to sing.”
The orchestra were now more confident with the way the music should be played, and Margaret sang with the first playing. They moved on to the next movement, which was with the choir, and had the words ‘And he shall purify the sons of Levi’.
This was followed by a Recitative with Margaret, one of the key ones of the first third. It had the words, ‘Behold, a virgin shall conceive and bear a son’. Then came the first of the movements where the chorus worked with a soloist. It was for the alto, again, and was another key movement with the words, ‘O thou that tellest good tidings to Zion.’
Willow could see Mister Bamborough with a big smile as they worked. This was the orchestra that had played the Prom, the best school orchestra in the country. The more they had played Handel, the easier it became.
Willow asked if they could run through the four movements in a single go, so they went back to the first Air. When they ended, Margaret was sipping water and could hardly wipe the smile off her face, her friend Sandra, in the chorus, having the time of her life as well.
They had a short break and then it was the turn of the choir, with one of the most memorable items from the opus, with ‘Unto us, a child is born’. Then it was the turn of Sally as the soprano, with the movement about shepherds abiding in the field, a short chorus item singing the ‘Glory to God’.
Sally was up again with the next piece, an Air with the words, ‘Rejoice greatly, O daughter of Zion’. They were on a roll, so Willow got them to carry on with another Recitative for Margaret – ‘Then shall the eyes of the blind be opened’, followed by the duet with Margaret and Sally with ‘He shall feed his flock’, followed by the final part of the first third, a chorus item with, ‘His yoke is easy.’
What had been evident was the work that everyone had put in prior to this session. The orchestra really had the style nicely, Margaret and Sally showed the work they had done with just the organ in the club. Willow stood, looked at Mister Bamborough, who just nodded.
“Thank you for that, everyone. This has been a great session. Next week, I want us to work through the complete first third of the concert, including the bass and tenor movements. If that works out, we’ll move on to the next third, which ends with the blockbuster movement of the Hallelujah Chorus. Those who may not know, this is traditional for the audience to stand, as if they’re in church, which guarantees a standing ovation. We can do what we’ve done today, by working each movement in order. See you all next week.”
The orchestra and other filed out with big smiles. Mister Bamborough stood next to Willow as the others left.
“That, young lady, was a very professional session on your part. I think that you could be a good conductor, it you wanted to.”
“Thank you, sir. Now that they have reached this point with the interpretation, I’m starting to think that we may be able to have two sessions where we do the full opus, before we put it on for the school.”
Margaret and her friend were leaving to go to the coach, and Margaret asked Willow if they would see her tonight, to which told her they would. Mister Bamborough waited until they had gone.
“Are you working with those out of hours?”
“I’ve been working with the choir in Stoneleigh for over six months, sir. Tom came and started to help when I had reached the limit of my knowledge. We’ve been working on her parts of this for a couple of weeks, with either me or Gina on the keyboard.”
“That does explain a lot. I was sceptical about having Margaret making a mini comeback, but today has shown me what an asset she’ll be. Sally has a great voice as well.”
“If we work the full third, next week, can we get Xavier in to record it, please. If we do that with each third, he could put together a CD of the whole thing for sale on the night we perform it here. The Cathedral concert will be a BBC DVD later, but it would be awesome if we had something for the school website.”
That evening, there was an email from Wilhelm, saying that a load of stuff had been delivered and stacked in the studio for them to sort out. She answered with her thanks and told him that she was organising a coach to take all of the band there on Saturday. She composed an email, and sent it to all of the band, as well as the three techs, to see if they could all be available on Saturday to see the new studio, with her being picked up first at ten.
When that had been sent, she did a little research on the web, finding a couple of larger warehouse properties for sale, both in Birmingham. She emailed Mervyn with the details and asked him if he could have a quick look to see if either would be suitable for his expansion. She told him that all the band should be looking at the studio on Saturday. After that had been sent, she went and asked her mother if she could organise a box of notepads and another of pencils, so that the band could take notes.
“Are you having a meeting?”
“I hope so, Mum. I’m trying to get us all at the studio on Saturday.”
“Can I come?”
“Of course. I’m organising a coach to take us. There may be other parents who want to have a look.”
Later, she was at the club with the choir. Margaret was glowing, happy in being able to sing again, the one talent that her disability hadn’t been taken from her. They did a few more of her parts with just the organ. Tom and Sally hadn’t come, so the others in the choir sang a few of the songs that they had been learning, just happy to be out with friends.
Thursday morning, she asked Sebastian if he could organise a full-sized coach on Saturday morning, to pick her up at ten, then go through Coventry before heading for Leicester.
“Are we looking at the finished studio?”
“We sure are. I think that you’ll be impressed. I’ve been told that the tenant is looking for a bigger building to cover his expansion. If he goes, we can use the large shed for parking, which might be helpful.”
“I’m sure you have some ideas to retain some income if that happens.”
“There are some things being thought about.”
They picked up Gina and Jacob and arrived at the school, with the day being fairly normal. At lunch, all the band confirmed that they would be waiting on Saturday, all keen to see the studio, especially the four wind players, who had never seen the site.
After dinner, she sat and looked at a DVD of the Messiah, to gauge the timing. If they worked the first third, they would be able to start with the second third, which could get them ahead.
On Friday afternoon, Willow was put through a whole series of gym exercises to test her stamina. This was related to the harder games that she was expected to play in the next netball season. The three friends went to the rehearsal room with the first-year musical group. They had the band equipment set up, so they started working through the songs, all the singers having a turn, as well as the chorus, or Ozians. It was a good session, with Gina playing a keyboard and Jacob working with the set volunteers, drawing out simple designs that could hint at what the story intended to convey. The singers were keen to make it work, and their enthusiasm was contagious.
That evening, there was an email from Mervyn, to tell her that a site at Small Heath was perfect, but twice the size needed. She answered that it looked like the building could be split in half and another tenant accommodated. She said that, if he was around on Saturday, she wanted to have a meeting with all the band, to see if they were interested in buying a property that size.
On Saturday morning, Ashley was out in the shed working on his model car, while Wendy and Willow waited for the coach. They had a big bag with notepads and pencils, another bag with new hi-vis, as well as a folder of photos that Willow had downloaded from the internet. When the coach arrived, they boarded and set off to pick up the others.
Gina was with Maisie, Jacob had Rick, and the coach filled with band members and parents. The last pick up was Xavier, Frank, and Dave. Sebastian knew the way to the factory site and made good time. He went into the car park and pulled up close to the galvanised shed, keeping as far out of the way as he could. There were four band members who were surprised at where they were but trusted the others not to be playing games.
Willow handed out the hi-vis that she had brought, then went to the office to get some more, coming back with Mervyn.
They got on the coach.
“Can I have your attention, please. This is Mervyn, the manager of this site, and he wants to give those who haven’t been here before a quick safety lecture.”
Mervyn explained about what went on, and to stay to one side if there was a forklift near them.
“Please be careful. Willow will lead you in, and I’ll see you all later.”
Before Willow stepped out, she asked Max if he could stay outside until a van arrived with equipment for the studio, then come in to grab a few helpers to carry it in.
Mervyn stepped out and helped the older passengers down as they got out and followed Willow into the long shed. A few of the parents were really not sure of what they were here for. Willow stopped at the door of the studio and waited for them all to gather round.
“This is the way into the ‘Summer Love Studio’. The first room isn’t big, and there are rather a lot of you, but it does open out further on. Welcome to our home away from home.”
She unlocked the door, went in and flicked on all the switches before leading them through the short corridor.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 4
Actually, twenty-five or so people in the rest area wasn’t as crowded as she thought it would be. Some of the parents were looking at the display of awards, and others looking around at what looked to them like a big lounge/diner. Willow went up a few of the steps to the mezzanine.
“Can I have your attention, please. We are now in the rest area of the Summer Love Studio. There is a kitchenette with tea, coffee, and plenty of mugs when you want a drink. There’s more than one electric jug and also microwaves if you heat your water that way. Xavier will now open the door to the control room. I ask you please not to fiddle with anything in there. Frank, could you please go first and switch on the studio lights and open the doors. The rest of you; it is not a big space, but the studio is, so, when you’ve seen the mixers and other things, please go through. There will be time for the tech-savvy to be told what you’re looking at. If anyone needs a toilet stop, there are both male and female ones under the mezzanine with the usual signs.”
As the other door was opened, Frank went through and Xavier followed, with a line forming to inspect the new equipment. Max popped his head in.
“Willow, the van’s arrived.”
Willow saw that the guitarists were still waiting, along with Rick.
“Lads, the microphones and other things have arrived. Can you help Max bring them in?”
She watched as they brought in boxes of microphones, stands, booms, and then boxes of cameras, stacking then by the wall to the control room. With the last item carried in by Brent’s father, Willow asked him if he was parked out of the way of moving forklifts. When he said he was, she closed the outer door, cutting off the sounds from the outer world. With the inner door shut, they were in a world of their own.
They followed the rest into the control room, where Xavier telling Rick what was here. Rick wanted to know when the Hikers could record. Willow laughed.
“We haven’t even tried it ourselves. You carried in the microphones and stands just now. We’ll need to set things out and test drive it ourselves first.”
She looked through the big window and saw the band and the parents wandering around in the studio.
“Oh, good. The stage gear has arrived. I need to see what we ended up buying.”
She walked into the studio, noting that there were twelve speaker boxes and the six heads lining one wall, with the two keyboards in their boxes with the frames and seats next to them. The rest of the band were sorting through guitar cases and other cases. Vivienne came over.
“It looks as if we had back-ups for the back-ups. I knew that the guitarists had spares, but we now have another two of our instruments, which can stay here. Brent’s happy; there’s a second set of drums for him as well.”
Willow grinned as she looked at the surfeit of gear. Then she caught sight of an aluminium case. She went over to open it up, to find boxes of the pink earbuds they had used, and a sender unit which could be jacked into a mixing board. She picked up the case and carried it to the control room.
“Xavier. Is there a jacking point for the buds?”
“There is. Let me jack it in and we can test it if you put a pair in.”
She did as told and went back into the studio, with his voice in her ears. When she had been to the end and back, she told him that the sound was clear as a bell, and put the buds back, after wiping them with a wet wipe from a box in the case.
Frank and Dave were at the vision consol, with just the single camera view, practising tilting and swivelling it and zooming in on various people in the studio.
“The other cameras have arrived, with the microphones, if you want to get them inside.”
They jumped up and went to get them, coming back with boxes. The step ladder had been left under the first camera position, and it didn’t take long before they had all twelve installed and plugged in.
In the studio, the amps had been reassembled and plugged into the power sockets. The wind section had found all their spares and were trying them out. The guitarists had found the effects boxes, still with their names on, had plugged in and were playing some bits and pieces with the guitars that they hadn’t had a chance to use before. Gina and Maisie had taken one of the Nord keyboards out of its box, assembled it and was pulling the second one out. There was more than enough rolled up leads to get everything working. Willow had an idea.
“Xavier, tell me that we have speakers as well as the buds.”
He pulled the sender jack out.
“We have now.”
She leaned toward the microphone.
“Give me some sound, please.”
He moved a slider, set to one side of all the others.
“Can I have your attention, please. If we want to have a bit of a play, there are a big bunch of microphones and stands still in the rest room. Can some of the band go and get them in so we can set them out. Jacob, can you open the slider and unlock the back door so we can get all these cartons out into storage, please. Parents, if you can help, then please do so. When we play, we need you all back here in the control room if you value your hearing.”
Rick helped sort things out once the back door to the storage had been opened. The movers had left the pallets on the rack, so there were places to put the Nord cartons, the boxes for all the cameras, and the boxes for the microphones and such. The guitarists put the cases and extra guitars behind the amps. Brent set up one set of drums and got some parents to put the other set in the storage room. When there was order, the back door was closed and locked, and the slider pulled back into place. Xavier readied the board for recording, using all the skills he had learned during the tour, and Willow joined the band with the case of buds as the parents and others drifted to the control room, to stand at the back.
She handed them out and put a set in her own ears, then took the case to the control room where Frank put it next to his consol. She saw the twelve pictures on the three screens as she gave him a wink and went back into the studio, closing both doors as she went.
She sat at her keyboard and played a few notes, hearing them in her ears, along with the guitars tuning. They had set out microphones in front of the amps, around the drums, and four in front of the wind section. All four guitarists, and both keyboard players, had them, with the keyboard ones on booms so they didn’t have to lean to sing. It was what they had used when they played on tour. The voice in her ears was the same that they had heard in the latter stages of the tour. Xavier was now in charge.
“Can I have individual sound checks for amp and microphone, please.”
One at a time, they played or sang until he was set. Then, for the first time, the big tape reels started turning and he told them that they were clear to go. Of course, there was only one song they could play for the first time in their own studio.
Standing behind Xavier and hearing her daughter’s voice from the speakers, Wendy had tears in her eyes as ‘We’ve only Just Begun’ became their first home recording. It was followed by ‘Dust in the Wind’, ‘Nights in White Satin’ and ‘Dummy Spitter’. When that one ended, Willow called out.
“I think that’s enough to try the system. Time for lunch.”
She could see a line of smiling faces in the control room and looked around to see the smiling faces of the band. They left the guitars on stands, turned off the amps, and went back to the control room. They each took out their buds, gave them a wipe, and put them in the boxes as they were all hugged.
They all went back to the rest room and Willow asked if everyone was happy with pizza. She rang the pizza shop and asked for twenty assorted to be delivered to them on the second floor of the offices, paying with her debit card. Then she called out.
“We’ll eat in the office. Follow Gina and she’ll show you the way. There’s a box for your hi-vis when you get over there. The pizzas will be delivered. There’s a kitchenette over there as well. The big table is for the band.”
She turned to Xavier.
“All right if I leave you to switch off and close up?”
“No problems, Willow. This has been a wonderful day, so far. I can hardly wait to be back again to record your next album.”
Before she could leave, Mervyn came in.
“A good day?”
“A very good day, Mervyn. If you would like to join us in the upstairs office, we’ll have a meeting and give you some direction before we go home. What do you think of the place, now?”
He looked through the window into the studio.
“It looks a lot different now to when you first saw it. Are you going to play anything today?”
“We’ve just played four songs, including quite a loud one.”
“Wow! I didn’t hear a thing.”
Xavier cut the power to the studio and turned out the lights. He had a disc which he slid into a plastic holder.
“The first recording. I’ll copy it tomorrow and give you all one at school.”
He followed them out, made sure there was no one in a toilet, and closed the door to the rest room before switching everything off and locking up, smiling as he walked over to the office, his key to heaven on earth in his pocket.
Willow stood with Mervyn in the car park, waiting for the pizza delivery.
“Did you get a chance to look at the properties?”
“I did, thank you for sending the details. That one in Small Heath is perfect, but far too big for me.”
“Can it support a second tenant?”
“Yes, if you separate some areas to give two offices and workspaces.”
“Would you be happy sharing?”
“Not a problem. They’re asking five million, though.”
“So, the likely return on the whole site should be around three-fifty a year. Would you be happy with a five-year lease, starting at one-fifty and rising by five a year?”
“We could live with that. I’m sure my company would be agreeable. Do you think that you can push this through?”
“I don’t push. I lead.”
The pizza delivery arrived, and they helped the lad take them upstairs. Willow gave him a tip and told him that there may be more orders to come in coming months. The band were all sat at the table, and Mervyn and Willow took up the two remaining seats while the others spread themselves around the office. They all took slices of pizza and there wasn’t much talk for a while. When they were finished, Willow stood.
“Thank you all for being here today. This has been the beginning of a great future in the studio. Xavier has been our sound man today, just as he was during our tour. I’m sure that we can all agree that he should be designated the manager of the studio and the one to talk to about using it.”
There was agreement and a short round of applause.
“We don’t have employees, so will pay him, and his helpers, by the hour when we record. Rick, that will go for you and the Hikers as well. You don’t need to talk to us if you want to go in there to record. We bought a system that can record in twenty-four track, with video, and has all the post-production software to produce an audio album and a DVD for sending to the production company.”
“Got that, Willow. That’s great, especially dealing with friends.”
“Now. We have more serious business to discuss. Firstly, for those who aren’t aware, back when we were starting out, the seven of us formed a property syndicate. We have been putting a hundred thousand a month in. That has bought us a property in Coventry with a good tenant, and it brought us this property, with the surprise that was the old cold store, now the studio. Everything is paid for, and we don’t owe anybody anything, except our heartfelt thanks for jobs well done.”
There was murmuring and smiles.
“We are coming to another fork in the road, as our tenant here has a need to expand. Mervyn is the manager of this site and has been told to find somewhere else. He has looked at a site in Small Heath that is big enough for his needs as well as being big enough for a second tenant. I know this news may be a shock to some of you, but I’m proposing that we create another syndicate. Our wind section are now full members of the band and I’m offering them an opportunity to invest some of their last month’s earnings into property. I won’t go any further until the four of you confer with your parents. I’ll pop over the other side and bring back some mugs.”
She found a tray in the kitchenette and Jacob went with her into the studio, where they loaded it with mugs and had a kiss or two.
“You have a plan, my love?”
“Not a plan, darling, a proposal.”
“You want me to marry you?”
“Maybe, my darling, but not today!”
They carried the mugs up to the office, where the two girls and two boys were in a huddle with their parents. Willow and Jacob started making teas from the supply of bags and opened a carton of milk. They were handed out. Sebastian took his with a smile.
“Up to your tricks, Willow? This is turning out to be a real day of learning. That studio is going to be very popular if you want it to be.”
“Our approval from the council is on the basis that it’s not a commercial business. If some of our friends want to make a record and pay the technicians, that’s their business. If we get control of the whole site, then we can think about taking it further.”
Nancy came over.
“We’ve talked it over and want to be a part of this. Do you want to tell us what you have in mind?”
“Right, we can talk business.”
Willow went back to the table and pulled the file out of her bag.
“I want to let Mervyn tell you what happens here and what his orders are, then we talk money.”
He stood and explained that they were a distribution centre for a mail-order company.
“We get bulk deliveries, sometimes a container from the docks or by airfreight from Manchester. We break it down into the required orders. Some get picked up by couriers, some get taken to the mail centre for posting, and some larger orders within fifty miles get delivered by our own truck. This site is now too restricted for us, even with the use that the studio might have given us. I have looked at a site in Small Heath which will give us drive-through supply and delivery, with space to off load a container inside. It’s close to major highways. I see Willow has some pictures to pass around.”
The pictures went around the table, and everyone had a good look. Nancy’s father asked the obvious question.
“This looks almost new. It’s huge so must be several million?”
“The asking price is five million. If each of the band put in half a million from last month’s earnings, we can buy it outright and still have enough left in the kitty to make any changes. At the moment, the seven of us add a hundred thousand a month to the current syndicate to fund the studio development and any new projects. If the new syndicate does the same, we will have one point one a month, plus the income from the lease. So far, we have been building a portfolio for life, rather than a profit-making operation. None of our properties are liable to be less than we paid if we move them on.”
“Who is handling the portfolio?”
“That position has been a volunteer job by Jacob’s father, Wilhelm. I believe that we’ll be paying him a small stipend to continue. This office is the centre of operations, and he has been doing very well with it. If we have a new, and expanded, syndicate, there can be a place for others to oversee its operation. None of the band are old enough to make decisions, just to agree to a course of direction that the adults around us can follow through on. The current syndicate has an accountant as the registered business address, and all payments are made known through a monthly email. I’m sure that the other parents can verify this.”
Brent’s father spoke up.
“I’ve looked at Brent’s paperwork. The way the syndicate works is all above board and very tightly controlled. Brent’s share is through a company we set up with me and his mother as the oversight directors. The two properties bring in over a hundred thousand a year. What do you think the new one will return?”
“I’ve spoken to Mervyn, and he’s happy to start at a hundred and fifty, rising to a hundred and seventy-five over a five-year period. That’s for only half the site. The other half would be similar, depending on the usage. So, we’re talking about a bit over thirty thousand each, every year, for as long as we hold on to it. That would be a full return of the investment in about twenty years. That is, of course, projecting that we stop earning from today. With the albums we have on the market, and the ones swirling around in our brains, that’s never going to happen. We now have somewhere that we can be creative, without any need to ask to borrow a lock-up to practise in.”
Nancy’s father, who seemed to be taking the lead, then looked at Willow.
“What are your plans, Willow. Are you going to go solo and leave the others in limbo?”
“I find that offensive, sir. My own plan is simple, and I cannot speak for any of the others. I see me staying at the school and having good enough grades to go to university. When Gina and I were at Cambridge, recording a double album with the Kings College, we were taken around the different colleges. I expect that we, as the full band, will be producing music throughout our time at the school. We will come to a stage where we all will have to decide where we go in life then. I expect that we may tour during the holidays, especially the summer one, as long as we make albums and people buy them. I have no plan to go solo, and I’m extremely happy at being on stage with my friends around me. Does that answer your question?”
“It does, Willow. I’m sorry I sounded a bit strong, but this is the first time that I’ve been in the one place with all of you without sitting in a seat in the audience.”
“That’s alright, sir. Can I have a show of hands from the band, please. Those in favour of us forming a new syndicate?”
All of the others put their hand up.
“Do we have any dissenters among the parents?”
There was silence.
“All right. We will get Wilhelm to talk to the accountant about setting up a new syndicate with a bank account that we can seed from the current one. Once that is done, you will all receive an email with the account numbers to send the half million to, with a possible hundred thousand a month after that. With the existing syndicate, we can have another meeting to talk about leaving that one as it stands and just paying into the new one or supporting the two. Thank you all for being so supportive, and, unless there are any other matters to discuss, I think we can go home. It’s been a big day.”
Everyone agreed that they could go home, so the pizza boxes were collected for disposal in the big bin in the car park. They tidied up and neatened all the chairs. Jacob and Herb took the mugs back and rinsed them out. Brent’s father had already left with him, and the rest all settled in the coach. Sebastian backed out with Max guiding him, and then they were heading home. Willow leaned over to Jacob, across the centre aisle.
“Can you give your father a call and get him to the farm when we arrive. We have a bit to talk to him about.”
She sat back and Wendy cuddled her.
“What are you going to study at uni, love. Music?”
“I’m not sure. If I do, it would be working towards being a conductor or composer. The nicest place we visited was Newnham College. It’s all-female but they only accept two undergraduates in music in any one year. The facilities are great, and the rooms are good. It’s non-denominational so doesn’t have a chapel, so I wouldn’t get roped in to play an organ.”
“That would be a minus, wouldn’t it?”
“Actually, Mum, it would be a plus. I’m only in churches to play the organ. The rest of it has no meaning to me. There are a lot of good people who believe, but there are also a lot of bad people who do as well. I count myself as a good person who doesn’t need it.”
“That’s why I never hear you sing unless you’re in a choir.”
“That’s the music, Mum, just the music.”
“So, how do you reconcile with your friendship with Reverend Russell, or even the Bishop?”
“They’re good people at heart, that’s all that matters. Actually, the Coventry Uni offers a master’s degree in popular music, which I think might be nice. That’s only a one-year course, and they do a three-year course for a Batchelor of Popular Music and Songwriting. They may be easier to get into. Other than that, they also have a three-year course in business and marketing.”
“Who knows what you’ll want to do when you get to that point, and what qualifications you’ll have by then. You may not even have the time for further study if the band is going strong and if you’ve developed a reputation for directing.”
When they arrived at the farm, there was only the five of them left on the coach. Wilhelm was there and offered to take the ladies home in the people mover, so they thanked Sebastian and Max and went into the farmhouse. Racheal had made cake, so they all sat at the big kitchen table and Willow showed Wilhelm the folder.
“This property, Stella House in Small Heath, is on the market for five million. We had a meeting with all the band and decided to set up a new syndicate with all eleven of us, putting in half a million each. Mervyn will need to properly inspect it and get his company’s approval, and it will take a while to get him moved. We think that we’ll have to look for a second tenant, who is willing to pay a hundred and seventy-five thousand a year.”
“That’s a big step, you know.”
“We’re aware of that, but all the band had one parent or relative with them, and it was agreed unanimously. We will have another meeting of the ‘gang of seven’ to talk about carrying on with that syndicate.”
“All right, I’ll get this moving with our agent and accountant. I already have contact details for all eleven of you, and you’ll have to get the responsible adults to sign. It’s just these numbers keep getting bigger!”
“As long as they do, Wilhelm, we’ll be all right.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 5
When Wilhelm dropped them off, it was still mid-afternoon, so Willow walked to the church to check the hymns. It was soothing to be sitting at the keyboard, doodling Bach. She thought about the morning and the joy of having the band around her. They hadn’t played as the full band since the last show in London.
The label had been quiet, and she hadn’t heard from Jill in a couple of weeks. Not that she minded having some time off, after all, they had worked through most of the summer holidays. As she followed that line of though, it occurred to her that when you’re an adult, there are no long holidays, just forty-eight or more weeks a year of working.
She stopped playing for a few moments as an idea grew in her mind. When it gelled into something you could write down, she smiled and started playing again. This time, it was the slow and quiet Saint-Saens. When she left the keyboard, she walked home and found Wendy sorting out some laundry.
“I’ve made a decision about my future, Mum.”
“Oh!”
“I want to have a life where I work when I need to and visit other places.”
“How are you going to do that, love?”
“I’m going to perform, whether it’s with the band, another band, as a solo, in an orchestra, conducting, directing, or organising. I want to travel the world and be happy. I don’t want to be bound to office hours for ninety percent of my life.”
“And where would Jacob fit in with those lofty ideals. He doesn’t seem like a lad who would venture far from where he grew up. I can’t remember a time when he wasn’t just following your lead.”
“I’ll just have to draw him out, I suppose.”
“What if you do that and he turns out to be pushy or develops a mind of his own?”
“Then we’ll just have to work it out when that happens.”
“Has it allowed you to decide what you’ll be doing at university?”
“I’m not sure if conventional university is in my future now. There may be places where I can hone my skills. You never know, there may be an opportunity to go on stage as an actor. The thing is, that if I go to uni, it would be to learn how to do a job, and I want to work for myself and if I have to employ others, I will.”
“That’s entirely possible, seeing the way you’re going now. Look, it’s good that you’ve decided, but you still have some years of school left. Things may be different for you then. Just remember, your father and I will be behind you, no matter what you decide.”
“Thanks Mum, I love the two of you. I’ll try to not let you down.”
“You will never let us down, love. Make mistakes? We all do that sometimes. You’ve been on track so far, and good things have happened. Once you have this term out of the way, you might be able to coast for a while next year.”
She played the organ in the church the following morning, then went over to the club afterwards. What had begun as a hot drink to warm you up was now, in the last heat of summer, a cool drink to cool you off. After lunch, she walked home with her mother and pulled out her notebook and her laptop.
“Mum. Can you check the uni account for me please? There’s an email from Wilhelm with the current balance of Summer Love Properties, and I want to see where I stand, overall.”
Wendy checked the account on her phone.
“It’s showing sixty-seven thousand, love. With what you spent in the early days, it dropped quite a bit, but’s still good enough for a three-year course fully covered. You’ll have enough of your own to cover living expenses.”
“Thanks, Mum. The syndicate is sitting on a bit over one and a half million at the moment, with everything paid for and some months still to go on our property insurances. If we all chip in, as usual, it will be up to around two and a quarter million, just shy of what we had before the studio.”
“What about the account with Peter, that should be pretty big by now.”
“I’ve been pulling money out of it to add to my own company account. At the last month, it was down to a bit under a quarter of a million.”
“What about your personal account? I know he’s been putting a thousand a week into that, and you haven’t gone out and spent a lot.”
“That’s now at twenty thousand. You’re right. I haven’t had to spend a lot because a lot of what I get comes through the band purchases. Our company account is sitting at two point three, but I’ll have to send a half a million to the new syndicate when that’s set up, so it’s effectively one point eight. It will be interesting to see the next statement, without the huge windfall that was the tour.”
“You still have over two million, even after buying into all that property and paying off this house! That’s amazing.”
“Wait until the accountant has worked on it and the taxman has had his share. It does have to pay company tax. I’m not sure what that would be, as it’s only been money paid in from outside without any trading done. The syndicate hasn’t shown a profit and is likely never going to do so until we sell off sites.”
“So, what are you going to do with that money?”
“I was thinking of an investment on my own, without any others. I looked at shops, but you can easily end up with an empty one and a lot of back rent owing. No, something where the tenant has a good reason to look after the place and pay their way. I’ve looked on the net, and there is a building in London with the lower floors used by a restaurant, two apartments sold on a hundred-year lease, and another two that are just leased. If I bought that, I may have somewhere to live if one of the leases ends. I could afford it next month. It’s only a short walk to the University of London.”
“That way you could eat well and walk a lot of the excess weight off.”
“Like we do here, you mean? Home to club, then club to home.”
They had a quiet evening, with Willow thinking hard about her finances and future.
Monday morning, she was picked up and started another normal week. Xavier handed out the four-track CDs at lunch. Willow played the organ on Wednesday morning and took the orchestra through the complete first third of the Messiah in the afternoon, with Xavier and the others recording it. On Friday, the Keyboard session was fun, with Willow learning something from the lesson and the two girls imparting tips that they had learned from performing in front of sixty thousand fans. After school, they set up the Vines in the rehearsal room and worked some of the songs with the main singers in ‘Wicked’. As far as she was concerned, it had been a good week.
On Saturday, she spent a lot of time in her room, working through songs that the others had sent in, especially some that Vivienne had produced, adding her input and sending them back. She also made notes for herself; titles and scraps of words for songs which she gave a group name of ‘Working Girl’. It had a single theme, all the bad things that can happen to a ‘working girl’ in different jobs, based on TV shows she had seen and magazine articles she had read. It bore about as much similarity to real life as Dolly Parton’s ‘Nine to Five’.
The family walked to the club for dinner and were entertained by Zara and the G-Force. Now with several new songs. In a break Zara came over and sat with them for a drink.
“Great set, Zara. Some new music tonight?”
“Yes. Gerry and Victor have been busy writing. You like?”
“I do. When are you recording a new album?”
“I don’t know. Peter is off on a tangent again, and we haven’t heard from the label for a while.”
“I haven’t had a word, either. They must be allowing us some leeway. I was wondering if they were working on a lightning tour during our half-term holiday at the end of next month.”
“Could be. I’d better get back to work.”
On Sunday morning, the family was in church to hear Gina playing. The two girls sat on the bench as the rest of the congregation went to the club.
“How are you feeling, Gina?”
“I’m not sure, friend. I feel as if we’re just spinning our wheels. I know that we’re building another album with Viv’s songs, and maybe yet another with the other ones, but we did have a busy holiday and it’s hard coming back to earth.”
“I know the feeling. How about us getting the band into the studio next weekend, even taking the two days. We have everything we need to make a full day of work. We could get Sebastian to take us there in the morning and pick us up late in the afternoon. If we do enough on Saturday, we could get Xavier in on Sunday afternoon to record some new work.”
“I’m already feeling better! Let’s do that. We can arrange it with the others at school.”
“The Gees had a lot of new songs that they played last night. We could get them to follow us on Sunday and record them as well.”
“That would be nice. A bit like our recording session in the club. That kicked off a big move, this may do the same.”
That afternoon, Willow sent an email out to the band, asking if they could find time over the weekend to attend a full day at the studio on Saturday, followed by a recording session on Sunday, with another to Xavier about Sunday. It didn’t take long for a full set of agreements to come back. It looked like they were all feeling in need of some creative time.
On Monday, at lunch, Willow went and spoke to Geoff and Zara.
“Good show on Saturday night. You get better every time you’re on stage.”
“That’s a big compliment, coming from the superstar herself.”
“Do you remember our recording day in the club?”
“How can we forget it. It was the turning point for all of us.”
“Well, we have created a little hideaway. It’s where we keep the gear that we ended up with after the tour. We’re planning a session on Sunday afternoon, and I wonder if you all want to come along. Max knows where it is, so he can pick you up after lunch. Sebastian will take us in a minibus.”
“Sounds good. Do we need to bring anything?”
“We have the amps, the keyboards and the drums from the tour. I’ll give you one tip; bring the buds that you were sent after the show.”
Geoff grinned.
“This sounds like the ‘hideaway’ is more serious than just a shed, somewhere.”
“You’ll find out how serious it is when you get there.”
Monday evening, there were a few emails on Willow’s laptop. One was from Geoff, confirming that the G-Force would be waiting for picking up from one on Sunday, and that they would spend Saturday perfecting an album-ready set.
One was from Peter with the statement. The ‘Journey’ CD had sold around two hundred and seventy thousand copies. The DVD had sold two hundred and twenty thousand. ‘Homegrown’ had moved over three hundred and thirty thousand, with the DVD at two hundred and eighty thousand. The ‘Carpentry’ album had been on a rebound with a hundred and twenty thousand, and there had been sixty thousand in merchandise sales.
His costs had added up to sixty thousand, and the label’s had come in at twenty-five thousand, some of that the extra instruments. Willow’s share, with the commission taken, was four hundred and fourteen thousand. She smiled when she saw that he was still taking fifteen percent.
There was a note on the bottom, telling them that a lot of the new sales had been in Europe, with a lot of fans who would have seen the Manchester stream. She saw that her previous balance with him was over two hundred thousand, so she replied, asking him to transfer half a million to WR Holdings. That was her side of the new syndicate paid for.
There was another from Wilhelm, telling them all that the new syndicate had been set up, with the name being ‘Legs Eleven’. A new bank account will be running next month to pay into. The estate agent had been in touch with the vendors of the Small heath property and had made an offer of four and a half, cash purchase. There would be a lot of costs involved with taking over something that size, so any extra left over would be good. He reminded the seven that their payments were due, so Willow transferred a hundred thousand and replied that she had done so.
Wednesday, the orchestra started on the second third of the Messiah, now working a lot faster. They were all in the rehearsal room now, with every session, and the preliminary work was paying off. Friday, the ‘Wicked’ sessions were gaining pace as well. The students, never having been totally involved in something so difficult, were really excited. They had decided on a modern story that fitted the songs, with a bit of tweaking of the words. The Wizard was now the Father, and Elphaba was now coloured, but not green, with a delightful, coloured girl well suited to the part. Jacob was in the school workshops, with his crew, busy making the scenery which indicated the run-down city where they were setting the story.
On Saturday morning, Willow was the first to be picked up and then the others were picked up in the coach. They were dropped off in the road outside the site, and Sebastian continued on to head home for the day. The band went and collected their hi-vis and then made their way into the studio. After switching everything on, they spent the rest of the morning working through Vivienne’s songs until they had them sorted out. After that, they had the pizza delivered to the site gate, with Willow waiting for them. It was the same lad who delivered.
“Hi, ten assorted, as ordered. The workers here must be well looked after.”
“They are, I can assure you of that.”
“Are you doing anything tonight?”
“It’s nice of you to ask, but I live south of Coventry, and already have a boyfriend.”
“Lucky guy. You know, you look a lot like Willow Rose.”
“I get told that many times. See you another time.”
She was smiling when she carried the pizzas into the rest area. Gina looked at her.
“Something funny?”
“Something male and cute and he asked me out tonight. He told me that I looked like his favourite singer.”
They had their pizza lunch, brewed some drinks, and relaxed for a while. Herb gave out a big sigh.
“This is already feeling like home. Everywhere we had practised before had others looking on. I miss the idea of having an audience, but it’s nice to be able to work things out without them.”
In the afternoon, they worked on some of the songs that had been exchanged via email, before taking another break. Then they ran out of those, finding that they now had ten of Vivienne’s and ten of the new ones. Before they were picked up again, they had a brainstorming session about names for the two albums.
The ones by Vivienne ended up as ‘The Magic Laptop’, as the clown that won the lady’s hand won by bypassing stupid dances and pet videos on Tic Tok, going to YouTube with a longer post where he did magic tricks. He then turned that into money by being contracted to do his magic on stage, creating a solid fan base.
The other one was more difficult. There wasn’t a theme to the set, so they finally decided that it would have to be called ‘Greenhouse Varieties’. There was one of Herb’s songs that sounded like hit material. He had called it ‘Lit Up’ and was about a lad meeting the girl of his dreams. When it was time, they all tidied up, took the hi-vis back and gathered in the car park until Sebastian pulled up. They all boarded and he could see the grins.
“Good day, then?”
“Sure was. We’ll record them all tomorrow. It was good to be creating something new?”
Willow was dropped off at home, in time for her to stop for a comfort break and walk over to the church.
“A bit late, Willow. Were you busy today?”
“You can say that Reverend. We’ve been working on new material.”
“That’s good. I can’t wait to hear what you will come up with next. How’s the orchestra going?”
“Really good. Next week I hope to finish off the second part, and that includes the big one at the end, so we may run late.”
That evening, she had dinner in the club with her parents and friends. After that, she sat in her room, working on the sections of the second third that they hadn’t done, as well as trying to pick holes in the ‘Wicked’ story.
Sunday morning, she was in the church playing the organ, allowing the music to wash through her. After playing the Bach when the church emptied, she was in a good frame of mind. She sat in the club with Gina and the parents, when Jacob came in with Rick.
“Willow, Rick wants to come along today to see how the studio works. He wants to check with Xavier about recording an album.”
“That will have to be in a few weeks’ time, won’t it, Rick?”
“Why is that?”
“How’s your maths. It’s almost exactly nine months since that song of yours went viral. Have you forgotten what you did then? Or didn’t you remember much of that night.”
“You’re right, Willow. I’ve got so used to Rach moving around slowly, it’s felt like it would carry on for ever.”
“If I were you, I’d stay close to home for the next couple of weeks and make sure the car is ready for a trip.”
“Yeah, yeah. I get you. The label wants us to do a tour in Spain. The streaming of the show from Manchester seems to have created a bit of interest. I was hoping to get an album ready to issue for that.”
“When is the show?”
“Three weeks in November.”
“Why don’t you talk to Xavier to spend some evenings with you. Get Racheal’s mother to stay with her while you’re not in the house. You might even get it in the can before the end of the week.”
“Can you get Xavier to give me a call. I’d better head back to the farm now. Thanks for reminding me of my responsibilities as a married man.”
They had an early lunch and went to Willow’s house to be picked up. Sebastian had a coach, so they went off to pick up the rest of the band and Xavier, who had Frank and Dave with him. When they arrived at the site, Sebastian dropped them off, telling them that he would be back at about five-thirty. They collected up the hi-vis for moving around the site, and Willow waited outside, with more, for when Max arrived with G-Force.
When he arrived, they all got out, carrying their guitar cases, to be issued with the vests.
“Welcome to our hideaway. Please wear the vests while you are moving around the site, even if it’s only a short walk. Being Sunday, it’s a bit quieter, but this site operates seven days a week. It’s a distribution centre, and goods are moved from the shed that we are going into, to the big shed behind me. The forklifts are electric, so quiet. No messing about, stay to the edge of the walkways, and keep your wits about you. Our transport will be back at around five-thirty. Now, follow me.”
She could hear the comments as she led them past the pallet racks, then into the workshop. The door was unlocked, so she opened it and told them to enter. When the last one was inside, she shut the door and that was the first indication that this wasn’t a wind-up, as all the outside sound was cut off.
“Around the corner is another door. Head on into the rest area.”
There were comments and a little laughter when they saw the comfortable room, with the kitchenette and the awards on the wall. Willow grinned when she saw what Frank had been carrying when he boarded the coach. On the other wall, previously unadorned, was a painted sign that read, ‘Summer Love Studio’.
“Toilets to the right, drinks and biscuits to the left, and Xaviers wet dream through this door.”
She opened up the door to hear the sound of the band coming from speakers. The others filed in, and mouths were agape at the sight in front of them. Geoff was the first to gain his voice.
“How on earth did you find this?”
“We bought the site as an investment, and this was unused. It was a cold store, so the four walls and ceiling were filled with expanded plastic, and eighteen inches thick. The studio was about two months in the making, and yesterday was the first time we’ve used it seriously. If you guys make yourselves comfortable, I’ll join the band and we’ll record an album that we’ve put together. Then you get the chance to make one of your own. Did you bring the case with the buds?”
Victor held it up.
“Good. We have the same system as the tour. There are twelve cameras, which Frank and Dave are controlling. We don’t plan to use the vision for our DVDs, but it’s handy to have one for a keepsake. Xavier can tell you what’s happening, so I’ll go and join the band.”
She stopped to pick up her buds, put them in and went through the two doors to the studio. Over the next hour, they recorded ‘The Magic Laptop’ in almost a continuous wall of sound. When they had finished, and confirmed that it was all good, they came out and the Gees went in. Most of the band went through to the rest area as the Gees tuned up.
Willow stood behind Xavier as he unplugged their communication transmitter and plugged in the one for the Gees.
“Can you all hear me?”
There was a chorus of yeses.
“All right. Seeing that it’s your first time, play something for me to get a sound check and then I’ll play it back to you.”
Leaving them to enjoy their time, Willow went to the rest area, had a comfort stop, and asked the band if anyone wanted an ice cream. With the numbers jotted down, Gina joined her to walk around the corner to the supermarket. With two dozen ice creams in a box, they went back to the studio, handing around the ordered ones and putting the remainder in the freezer. She ate hers, and then went through to see what the Gees were doing.
She sat on a roller chair next to Xavier. The Gees were playing one of the new songs that she had heard at the dinner dance. It sounded so much better with more amplification and a good mix.
“They’re four songs into the album. It’s good.”
“What we can do is to give them CDs and DVDs of the songs, and a stick with the digital recording. That way, they can do with it what they want. I guess that the label will want another take, for the saleable DVD, but this would hopefully be good enough for manufacture. Can you do copies for them while we’re doing our second album.”
“Frank has the skill for postproduction. The unit here is easy enough to use if you’ve done it before. We’ll give them a dozen CDs and can produce a DVD on the synchronised audio and visual. We’ll do the same for you, if you want to wait a little while. It depends on how quickly you get the second album down.”
“That will be great. I’ll get Peter to pay you for the afternoon. The three of you will be on two hundred and fifty an hour, including travelling time.”
“That’s better than the tour. The organisers only paid us fifty an hour, plus the accommodation. Just being here and working this board is almost payment enough, but we’re not refusing any money.”
They looked at each other and grinned, then concentrated on the recording. When the Gees finished the set and were putting the guitars back in their cases, Xavier played a couple of the tracks back to them, through the speakers. He took the transmitter out and replaced it with the one with a big, pink circle.
“Give us ten minutes and have a break. There are ice creams in the freezer when you come out. I was talking to Rick, and he wants you to call him to set up a recording session. Don’t let him spend too much time in here, as Racheal is due.”
“Thanks, Willow. You really do think of everything.”
As the Gees came out, all sporting huge smiles, Summer Rose went in to get ready. Willow followed then in and spoke to them before they inserted the buds.
“Just a word, please. Xavier is taking a short break and then we’ll record ‘Greenhouse’. While we’re doing that, Frank will be producing a set of CDs for us with ‘Laptop’, as well as a few DVDs to show people. He will also be producing a set for the Gees. When we finish this one, I’ve been promised a set of CDs before we close down. Let’s get the show on the road.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 6
They got into tune and played one of the Carpenters numbers until they saw Xavier waving to them. Then they put the buds in and waited for his word. Nearly an hour later, they finished the last song and closed down all the equipment. Most of the band went into the rest area and sat around with the Gees, talking about the tour and any likelihood of another.
Willow stayed in the control room, watching as they created the CD of the last set.
“Frank, does this equipment have all the bells and whistles to enhance a recording?”
“Sure does. What do you want? Echo, reverb, Leslie, sustain, fuzz. It’s all on tap.”
“You can apply that to different tracks?”
“Sure can. Which one do you want to jazz up?”
“Do you remember what Abbey Road did with ‘Dummy Spitter’? I’d like us to do the same sort of thing with ‘Lit Up’ but more bluesy. The sort of guitar that Herb played at the end of the Liverpool show, and a bit of a live feel. I think it would make a great single for the download.”
After he had started the CD burning, he went back and picked the number from the master file, then proceeded to ‘jazz it up’ to Willow’s specifications. It took a couple of tries before she smiled.
“Can you give me that on a few CDs only and play it through the rest area speakers.”
She went out to the others as it started, instantly grabbing all their attention. When it finished, Geoff asked if one of their songs could get the same attention. Willow looked at her watch.
“We have about twenty minutes before we’re picked up. Go and ask Frank if he’ll do one for you if you pick the one you like as the download single.”
At half-past five, the two vehicles pulled up in the road. Willow took all the hi-vis to take back to the office, with Gina taking her bag with her to get on the coach. When they were all aboard, they set off for Coventry.
“That single take was brilliant, friend. And so was the one that Geoff picked. What’s the plan?”
“Well, you all have a copy of the two albums, as well as the two DVDs. I’m going to package a set, including a CD of the single, and send it to Jill. Geoff told me that he was thinking along the same lines. If we have something on the market in the next few weeks, they may organise a tour. It would be just the two bands, as the Hikers are heading for Spain, but they might organise something in our breaks. I’ll include the days of the half-term break and the Christmas one. We now have enough for a good show, and then some new songs from both bands.”
“Kick-starting the system again?”
“Well, it worked last time.”
When she arrived home, her parents were out, so she had a shower and changed before going to the club for a meal with them. That evening, she packaged up the two DVDs and three CDs. With the names on the cases in texta. She added the note, sealed the package and addressed it. She took it through to the sitting room.
“Mum, can you please send this by priority to the label when you’re in town tomorrow. It’s a couple of sets that we recorded today.”
Her mother took the package as her father turned off the show that they had been watching.
“That was an episode of ‘Midsummer’ that we’ve seen three times already. Are you just going to stand there or are you going to show us your latest creations.?”
“If you insist, Dad. These were shot in the Summer Love Studio this afternoon. The vision is OK, but I expect that they’ll want to record something suitable for the market. We did the ‘in studio’ thing at Abbey Road, and you can’t do any better than that.”
She slid the first DVD into the machine and sat with them to watch it. When it had finished, Wendy went and hugged her.
“Now that was something out of the ordinary. That one is worthy of an award. You used most of the band, had a story woven into the tracks, commented on the modern world and produced an album that can stand alongside others, especially the Moody Blues first one. That really showed how good your teaching was, with the classical bent. I think it was an opera, wasn’t it?”
“It’s Vivienne’s version of the ‘Magic Flute”. It was originally a single song, but we all worked on it, with her coming up with the single song expanded.”
She ejected that DVD and replaced it with the other one.
“This, I think, will be the bones of our next album. It’s more to your liking, Dad.”
She sat down and, as the tracks started, Ashley moved to cuddle his wife. When it finished, the two were grinning.
“Another hit in the making, my darling. That one about being lit up was really good.”
“If you liked that version, this is what Frank produced for me. I think that it will be great live, and also the hook for the download single. She slid the CD into the slot and played them the enhanced version.
“Wow! That makes it something else. The guitar sounded like Clapton in his best days.”
Before she went to bed, Willow sent Peter an email, asking him to pay Xavier, Frank and Dave fifteen hundred each, for ‘services rendered’.
On Monday, it was back at school. Wednesday was the session where the orchestra finished working on the second part of the Messiah. They had completed two-thirds of it the week before, but Willow wanted to allow extra time for the last movement. She stood up and addressed the orchestra.
“As you can see by the music and the songbooks, we have arrived at what everyone thinks of as the highlight of the opus. The Hallelujah Chorus is hard, and it has the sopranos getting to the highest notes in the whole thing. I don’t want anyone to strain their voices with this. Drop out if it’s got too high. I expect that you younger girls will be the stars here.”
They spent half the session on that one movement, improving each time they played it, with more soprano voices as they went along. At the end of the session, they were all getting excited about playing to an audience. Willow arranged for Xavier to record it the next week, then they would start on the last third. Mister Bamborough gave her a smile before they left. He had kept back as he had allowed Willow to control the rehearsals and was glad that he had done so.
On Thursday, the Music Studies was all about the development of the musical. On Friday, Willow was deep into producing a musical herself. They had rehearsed most of the solo songs, and completed those, then started with the ones that had the chorus. Soon, they would be including the dialogue that rounds out the story. As far as Willow was concerned, they were on track for the performance in a month’s time. Jacob was well along with the backdrops, and Gina was with some of the other girls designing costumes to fit the revised story. So far, they had been left to do their own thing.
On Saturday morning, while she was having breakfast, her mobile rang. When she answered, it was Jacob.
“Good news, Willow. Racheal gave birth at midnight. Mother and baby are well, and I have a niece called Rebeccah. Rick wanted to call her Angel but was howled down because the name would be easily changed when she got to school. Rach reminded him of his surname, and said that she would end up as Anglo, as in Anglo Saxon. They’re at the University Hospital.”
“Good catch, love. When can we see them?”
“Visiting today for her is between two and five. She should be able to say hello then.”
“Right! We’ll be there.”
She ended the call and smiled, sweetly, at her mother.
“Mum, can we go into Coventry today?”
“Why is that dear?”
“Racheal and Rick have a daughter, named Rebeccah, born last night.”
“Absolutely! We need to get a nice card and a small toy. We’ll both need a new dress for the visit. You get yourself dressed and we’ll head into town. Hubby, dear, you can potter in the garden for the day, us girls are getting clucky.”
Mother and daughter went to town, literally, ending up with three new dresses and a few skirt and top outfits. Willow paid with her debit card, and Wendy paid for lunch, both being careful not to mar their new dresses, after the shopping bags had been put back into the car. The highlight, for Wendy, was when they walked past a record shop and saw a life-size picture of Willow. She had her daughter stand next to it and pose while she took some pictures on her phone. That slowed them down, as a queue of fans wanted Willow to sign their CDs that they just had to get with the star there with them.
Willow took it all with good humour, posing with the odd guy with one arm around her shoulders and the other around the photo. When they did manage to break away, citing another place to be, the manager told them to pick anything from the racks as a gift. Willow chose an album by Amy Winehouse, while her mother grabbed one by AC/DC. Oddly, one had a song on it named ‘Back in Black’, while the other had ‘Back to Black’.
The CDs joined the other bags and they headed for the hospital. When they arrived at Racheal’s room, Rick was there, looking haggard.
“Not much sleep, Rick?”
“No. My darling wife decided to go into labour at dinner time, and we’ve been here since. That’s after three late nights with the Hikers in your studio. Xavier told me that you pay the guys two hundred and fifty an hour, and they’re well worth it. We ended up with a great album, with a performance DVD, and a ripper single. That Frank can make a Christmas Carol sound like Led Zepplin.”
“I’m glad that we could help. Have you sent it anywhere?”
“It went by priority mail on Friday. I sent it directly to Clive.”
Just then, a gurgling sound interrupted as the baby was brought into the room by a nurse, who laid it on Racheal’s chest. Other conversation was stopped by praise of how sweet the baby was, and how well Racheal looked. They sent Rick off to go home and shower while the three of them talked. Racheal asked them if they wanted to hold the baby. Wendy was first, and Willow took a picture of her.
When Willow was handed the baby, she looked down at the cute little face and her heart melted. She had a feeling that rocked her to her toes. The feeling of love for a helpless infant and the feeling of sadness that she could never hold one of her own. Wendy took a couple of pictures, and Racheal got them to find her bag and pull out her own phone.
“Why would you want a picture of me holding your daughter, Rach?”
“Because I still hold you responsible, young lady. If you hadn’t added that killer organ, the song would never have been a hit. Then Rick and I wouldn’t have got drunk enough to disregard any safety measures and little Rebeccah wouldn’t be there in your arms. On top of that, the organ also gave us enough money to buy the farm and be happy. Will you be her godmother?”
“Will they allow me into a synagogue?”
“Probably, but you’ll have to be in a separate area with me, unless they’ve changed the rules.”
They spent a pleasant couple of hours until Wilhelm and Rosalie arrived. After that, they went back to Stoneleigh to join Ashley at the club for dinner. They left him working and went home. Willow put her new things in her wardrobe while Wendy did the same in her room. They met in the kitchen over a hot chocolate.
“So, Mum. Akadaka? I suppose I’ll have to put my earplugs in after Dad watches that one. Don’t you think that it’s just a bit dangerous?”
“I suppose that you’re right, darling. Just wait until you find what turns your lover on. It can be very exciting and satisfying.”
“I’ll just have to wait a while, then.”
“You can’t lie, love. You’ve had the attitude of a girl who knows what it feels like for months. Just make sure that you clean properly. You can’t get pregnant, but you can get nasty diseases.”
“It’s the ‘pregnant’ part that made me sad, today. Holding the baby today was a wonderful feeling. I’ve been able to hold it together, but that made me realise that I’ve been living a lie. I’m not, and never will be, a complete woman, and it means that I can only maintain the appearance.”
“Don’t say that my darling. You looked like a girl the day you wore that skirt, and you’ve been totally a girl since that first operation. So, you can’t have children, but that puts you in with the thousands of women in the same situation. Don’t ever put yourself down. You’re Willow Jean Rose, the leader of a successful and popular band. Did you think that any of those boys who had their arm around you thought that you were anybody other than their favourite girl singer.”
“I suppose that you’re right, Mum. I do tend to get a bit controlling, though, maybe a bit of maleness showing through.”
“Nothing wrong with that, it takes a bit of that for a woman to make it in the world, and there’s no way to say that you haven’t made it!”
On Sunday, they sat in the church as Gina played the organ. Afterwards, they all went over to the club. Willow, Gina, and Maisie were talking about the costumes for the musical. Wendy was listening.
“Wait a minute. I thought that you were doing ‘Wicked’. Where’s the pretty Glinda dress, where’s the black witches costume and pointy hat?”
“The kids are doing it in modern dress, Wendy. Gina told me that the first years had decided how they want it to look. Willow has helped them alter the words to be more modern. It’s going to be an interesting performance if they bring it off.”
“Willow, does the school know this?”
“Not yet, Mum. We’ll invite the teachers to the first dress rehearsal, but it will be too late to change it by then. Actually, I have had an idea about that, to let Mister Jamieson into the secret.”
On Monday, it was back to the usual school day, something that Willow enjoyed. The lessons gave her that little bit more confidence with learning. On Wednesday, the orchestra performed the full second section of the Messiah, with it recorded by Xavier.
On Friday, they worked on ‘Wicked’ and were able to perform every song as it would be performed. It just needed the acting part and to have a proper dress rehearsal. Willow took the email addresses of all the players and singers, telling them that she needed them in case there were any problems.
On Saturday, there were emails. One was from Wilhelm to tell them that the Small Heath property was now theirs. The vendor had accepted the offer with a quick sale. He said that he had advised Mervyn that the property was available and to contact the agent for the keys. The accountant will be drawing up a lease agreement with it commencing on January the first, giving two months to fully transfer the business. The lease at Leicester will be paid to December the thirty-first. The acceptance left them a million for other costs and any alterations that may be needed.
There was an email from Mervyn, just to Willow, thanking her for her care and attention to detail with the business dealings. He advised her that he was commencing the shift as soon as he could, with new pallet racking being installed soon. He expected to be out of the main building by the first week of November, with just the office remaining until the new one had been set up with the latest in communications and computers to handle the bigger loads.
There was another email from Jill. It had been sent to all the Summer Rose and G-Force, as well as Xavier, Frank, and Dave.
‘Hi, band members. Sorry about the short notice but we have been held up with getting confirmation of venues. During your half-term holiday, you will be on a lightning tour to cater for the growing popularity of both bands in Europe. On the Saturday and Sunday, you will be playing at the Bella Centre in Copenhagen. It will be to around thirty thousand each night. You will be staying at the Bella Sky Hotel, just a stroll away, from Friday night to Monday morning. On Tuesday, Wednesday, and Thursday, you will be at the Paris La Défense Arena and staying at the Citizen M Hotel, again just a stroll away. The arena will seat forty thousand. Robbie Williams and Taylor Swift have performed there. On Friday morning, you will be taken to Berlin, to play at the Uber Arena, with a capacity of seventeen thousand, on the Friday and Saturday nights, staying at the Hotel Indigo, close by.
All venues are indoor and purpose-built. All equipment will be supplied by music stores in each place, so only your favourite guitars and effects boxes will be needed. All travel by air and coach connections. All hotels are four-star with individual rooms, all doubles. G-Force will open all shows, but the sets are of equal time, so ninety minutes each. Both the Paris and Berlin shows will be filmed, with the plan for a ‘G-Force Live in Paris’ and a ‘Summer Rose Live in Berlin’ DVD. The stages will be similar to the ones you’re used to. The tech team is the same as the previous tour and asked for your three techs to be part of this.
This was in train before I received your new albums. The G-Force album will be released in conjunction with the DVD. Summer Rose, your ‘Greenhouse’ one will be released with your DVD, and the ‘Magic Laptop’ will be held over until close to Christmas. There was a suggestion, here, to add ‘A Hint of Musk’ to the name but that was quashed.
Anyone without a passport should contact me directly, so I can organise temporary performers papers. This is not a charity tour, so profit will be divided equally between the total band members, after costs. Tickets average out at two hundred Euro each, so the expected total will be over thirty-five million pounds. Your flight out leaves Manchester at seven on the Friday.
As a footnote, I see that all three bands have sent me DVDs of their albums, all looking amazingly similar. You need to tell me where the albums were recorded, as the quality is first-class. We can go into production with all four CDs as is. Certainly, a lot better than the good quality of your previous home sessions.’
Willow printed that one for her parents to read. Wendy read it out to Ashley over lunch. They both gave Willow a hug.
“Looks like you’re being treated like royalty, darling. Air travel, good hotels, you’ll hardly have time to look around, though.”
“Plenty of time, later, Mum. This is a working week. We will have some time during the days, if anything is organised. It’s a big logistic problem, shifting around twenty of us around, but we should be home in time to have a short break before going back to school.”
Ashley snorted.
“All of Sunday afternoon!”
“It’s OK, Dad. Just a shower, put my used stuff in the hamper, a good night in my own bed, and it’s back to normal for a while. The Leicester site should be pretty well vacant by then, as Mervyn is keen to move to Small Heath.”
“What do you plan to do with it?”
“We were thinking of leasing the ground floor offices to an accountant or something similar. If we clear the pallet racking in the long shed, we could repurpose it for an extension of the studio space, maybe an entertaining area. I’m thinking that we could use the big shed as parking and storage. We don’t have our own PA system, and we may need to have our own stage that we can erect. The cost for the tour was a quarter of a million per venue, so it may be a money saver if we had our own.”
“That would make the site the home of Summer Rose.”
“It sure would. Amazing, when you come to think about it.”
After lunch, she walked to the church to check the hymns. The weather was now cooling again, but the church would be a warm place this winter. That evening, they had a big table with Maisie and Gina, Rosalie, Wilhelm and Jacob. The adults all sat at one end, talking about new baby and the amazing tour, while the younger ones sat together and discussed the individual rooms. Gina had looked each hotel up and showed them pictures of the rooms, with big beds, just waiting for some use.
Monday, at school, Willow went to see Mister Jamieson.
“Sorry to bother you, sir. Are you nominally in charge of the ‘Wicked’ group?”
“I am, Willow. I’ve been staying away to see how you’ve been getting on.”
“We’re very close to a dress rehearsal, but I want to ask if we can get the cast into a recording studio, so that we can have a CD soundtrack to sell at the three shows.”
“How much will that cost?”
“Nothing, sir. I can get us time in the studio, and Xavier will handle the recording. I would say that we could do it over the holiday, but Summer Rose will be playing in Copenhagen, Paris and Berlin. If we can take a little extra time on Friday, we can take the cast to the studio. It’s about a half an hour away. I have all the emails and can warn them that it will be a latish evening, unless you can organise a special early leaving, which would be good for me, because I’m flying out later in the evening.”
“Look, leave it with me. They’re up for Music Studies that afternoon. I’ll check with the Head to see if they can leave after lunch. Can you organise your security to have a coach?”
“Can do, sir. It would be great if we can work it that way.”
“How’s the Messiah coming on?”
‘Two-thirds rehearsed, just the last third to go. It is the shortest part, so I’m hoping that we can get it sorted out before the holidays. After that, we have four sessions before the performance in our theatre, then the three nights at the Cathedral. It would be nice to have that behind me.”
“From what Mister Bamborough has told me, you’ll be pencilled in to direct the performances that might come up next year. Who knows, after the Messiah, the Bishop may want something else, maybe one of the requiems.”
“Please don’t wish that on us!”
“I’ll let you know what the Head decides before you leave, today.”
“Thank you, sir.”
That afternoon, heading home, Willow asked Sebastian if he could organise a full-sized coach for Friday afternoon, to go from the school after lunch, to Leicester and return. Gina and Jacob were brought into the scheme. That evening, she sent out emails to all the singing and playing members of the cast, telling them that they would be recording a soundtrack album on Friday afternoon, and to let their parents know that they would be dropped off at home when they had finished. She also emailed Xavier that he was required, and she would pay him, even though it was a school project. She also emailed Jill to tell her that if she wanted to see the studio, to be at the school around noon on Friday.
On Wednesday, they started with the last third of the Messiah, now with the expanded orchestra that included timpani, trumpets, and French horns. It was, thankfully, only nine movements, and they all breathed a sigh of relief when they had finished the last ‘Amen’. It was the usual time for the session to end. Before they all left, Willow looked at Mister Bamborough, who nodded. She stood and called out.
“Please. Listen up. Thank you all for your hard work on this. It has been hard for everyone. We have the half-term holiday next week, and you can have an early finish on the first Wednesday back. It does leave us three sessions before we present this to the public, in the theatre. I’m going to see if we can set up in the theatre on the second week, to run through the whole opus. That will give us another long session to sort out any wrinkles. The last Wednesday of the month will be a full-dress performance for the Head and invited guests, probably the Bishop to see how we’ve got on. After that, the following Tuesday is a full performance in the theatre, for parents and friends, then we’re off to the Cathedral for three nights. Again, my congratulations to you all for all the work you’ve put into this. It’s just the final things to get done and you’ll be able to bask in the applause that I’m certain you’ll be getting. Have a good holiday, and we’ll see you all in November.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 7
On Thursday, it was the last of the Music Studies with the Musical. There was some listening to snippets of various performances and discussion on them, with a question-and-answer session that everyone had to be part of. That evening, Willow packed her case and filled a garment bag with her four stage outfits.
Friday, she saw Jill poke her head into the lunchroom so beckoned her over.
“Welcome to the zoo feeding time, Jill.”
“It’s much nicer than the school I went to. What are we doing this afternoon?”
“We are going to record the first-year musical project. We’re performing a modern version of ‘Wicked’ in the middle of next month.”
“What part do you have with this?”
“I’m the director, Gina is in charge of the costumes, and Jacob has a team making the backdrops. They will be with us this afternoon, and Xavier is coming along to run the desk.”
“That lad, and his friends, have made some serious friends during the tour. There are some very respected producers who have them pencilled in when they leave school. They would be fifth form now, wouldn’t they?”
“Yes, same year as the Gees. I think it might be time to get the crowd together. Come and meet Petunia and Ivy, twelve-year-olds with a huge future ahead of them.”
The three friends collected up Xavier, the singers, and they all collected their bags to take home afterwards. The guitarists had their cases with them. It was an excited group who went out of the main doors to get in the coach. They were joined by both Mister Jamieson and Mister Bamborough, as well as the twin’s father, and a few other parents. There was plenty of room in the coach, and they left the school. Willow stood at the front with the microphone.
“Good afternoon, and welcome to the Magic Bus. Today, we are going to a very private recording studio in Leicester. So far, it has only made albums for three bands. It is not, and I repeat that, not a commercial studio, so we will be the only ones there. The site is a working distribution centre, although the company is in the process of moving out. When we get there, I’ll go and see what the state of play is. If they are still in full operation, we will all have to wear hi-vis vests outside of the studio.”
When they did arrive, the car park was almost empty, and the big shed was open and looked like there were no workers. Sebastian pulled into the parking area and stopped. Willow jumped out and went into the office, coming out a few minutes later with a smile. She looked into the coach.
“All right, Xavier, do you want to go and open up, please. Everyone else, you can get out and stretch your legs. There are no forklifts operating today, but there will be a couple here on charge.”
They all got out, with the adults having querulous expressions, especially Mister Vines, with a daughter on each side of him. Willow told them all to be careful and follow her, leading them into the shed. A lot of the racks were empty, and there were some pallets on the ground, but it was a clear path through to the workshop and the open door to the studio. Gina led them in, while Willow waited for Sebastian, who had locked the coach. When he was inside, she followed, closing the doors as she went. The students were looking at the awards with excitement. Willow stepped up a couple of rungs of the stairs.
“Can I have your attention, please. This is the rest area. While the students are recording, all of you adults are welcome to use the kitchenette. There’s tea and coffee and should be long-life milk in the fridge. There are toilets to the right, both male and female. If the cast can follow Gina and Jacob, they’ll get you through to the studio proper. Be prepared to be amazed.”
The students followed the others through, with those left hearing exclamations of wonder as they went through the control room. When they had left, Willow went and spoke to the adults that were left.
“Before we go any further, I have some explanation. This site is owned by seven members of Summer Rose and was purchased with money we had earned from record sales. We bought the site because of where we’re standing. It was originally a cold store for vegetable distribution. Overall, it’s over a hundred feet long, with eighteen-inch insulated walls, so perfect to turn into a recording studio. We’ve produced well over a hundred decibels inside and the people in that big shed didn’t hear us. When we move to the next room, please do not touch anything. It’s a state-of-the-art recording desk and has recorded three albums in the last two weeks that will be on the market next month. I’m sure that your children have talked about Summer Rose, G-Force, and Rick Sacks and the Hikers. This is our home away from home. If you follow me, we can stand and watch as your children make music.”
She led them in, and they all stood in line, looking at the wonderful vision of the mixing desk, and through the glass to all the cast sorting out leads to the amps, and microphones, while Gina and Jacob handed out buds and told the students how to put them in for best effect. When they were ready, Gina gave Xavier a wave and the two came out into the control room. Willow sat next to Xavier, and he switched on the microphone.
“Can everyone hear me? Wave if you can. Good. With this as your first time in the studio, we want you to get used to it. When you play, you will hear the mixed result in your earbuds. There will be a short while as Xavier gets the mix right, so, Vines, do you think that you can play some of your own music. If you can do that middle eastern song second, I want to get it onto tape so we can give you all a keepsake. When we’ve finished recording the musical, we will be able to produce a CD for everyone. You’re good to go.”
She went over to Gina and Jacob, messing around with the camera vision.
“If you want to get serious, get one camera showing the whole group, and have that one picked when you press that record button. That will be the base vision. Then you move the others by selecting the number to control that camera. There’s a button marked ‘change’. If you press that, it will then use that vision. You can then go back to the base vision or pick another one. It will give you a pre-edited recording for a DVD.”
She left them being creative and stood by the teachers. Mister Vines joined them.
“You never fail to surprise, Willow. This would have cost a bit.”
“About one point two, all up. If the album we recorded last weekend takes off, that will return about the same amount. It was a win-win and something we all agreed on.”
“So, what do we get out of today?”
“When they’ve recorded the songs, we can let them play a bit of their own music for us to record while the rest of the cast can relax. There’s a supermarket around the corner. I could go and get ice creams. It’s warm enough in here to make an ice cream enjoyable.”
Mister Vines smiled.
“I’ll help you, Willow. I’ll buy them. This has been an interesting experience for me, and I’d like to talk to you, if you don’t mind.”
“I don’t mind. Xavier, I’ll be back in a few minutes.”
“No problems, Willow. These students are really good. I can see them on the theatre stage next year, after the Head hears them and sees the show.”
Howard Bamborough laughed.
“She’s already been told that there’s a new supergroup that’s only been in the school for half a term. She’s quite pleased.”
Willow and Mister Vines left the studio. On the way to the shop, he chuckled.
“I’ve always thought that my daughters were just playing around with the guitars. Today has opened my eyes to how good they are. What do you think of their band?”
“The first time we put them in a rehearsal room with the equipment, they impressed with most of an hour of jazz-based songs, and one with a middle eastern beat that could be considered as chart material. You have two incredibly talented girls, Mister Vines, along with their talented friends. They are so far ahead of what I could do at that age, it’s not funny.”
“Look. I’m only Mister Vines to my bank manager. I can see that you have a big influence on my girls. My name is Samuel, or just Sam. I’m interested in this site you’re at. What’s the situation?”
“Seven of us formed a syndicate, pooling some of our earnings. We bought a commercial factory in Coventry, and then looked around for something bigger. This came up, and when we saw the cold room, we bought it. We have only renegotiated the lease a few months ago, but the head office of the company wanted this site to increase the flow-through. We found another site in Small Heath which the manager thought would be perfect but would only need half of it. We formed another syndicate with the entire band and bought it. He’s in the process of moving.”
“Was that Stella House?”
“It was, why?”
“I was looking at that site, myself. The thing was that it was too big for me as it was and would stretch my assets. Do you have an agent?”
“We do have one that looks after all three sites. This one will probably stay vacant for a while, as we make changes to suit what we want. If you still want half of Small Heath, the lease will be five years, starting at one fifty, and increasing to one seventy-five over that lease time. What do you want to do with it?”
“We’re in a number of older buildings and I want to consolidate those under one roof, starting with the installation of more modern machines and a bank of 3D printers.”
“That may need a bigger power supply than what’s on site. We could come to the party there, as long as it’s still in place should you move out.”
They got to the shop, and he paid for three dozen assorted ice creams, and carried the box as they went back.
“You seem very assured for a teenager?”
“I suppose it’s standing on a stage in front of sixty thousand screaming fans. Next week, we’ll be in Europe playing to a total of over two hundred thousand, and then I’m back in school getting the cast ready to perform the musical.”
“My girls used to think that you were wonderful, now they tell me that they know you’re wonderful.”
“Oh, lovely. I got the ‘Wonderful Willow’ nickname last year and hoped that it would just die out.”
“They told me that you were in charge of another big project.”
“Yes. A couple of weeks after their show, we’re performing the Messiah at the Cathedral. That made ‘Wicked’ feel like a walk in the park.”
“Not much organ in that one.”
“No, they got me in the hot seat as leader and first violin. Before we go to the studio, I know the manager is in the office today. He should have the cards for the agent, if you want to get serious.”
They went into the office and Mervyn looked up. A smile appeared on his face.
“Grape! It’s been a long time.”
“Perve, you scoundrel. It’s good to see you.”
He put the box on a desk and the two had a man-hug. Mervyn turned to Willow.
“We met while we were in the army, after high school. It wasn’t a good time, but we got through it in one piece.”
Willow picked up the box.
“I’ll leave you two to talk and get these into the fridge before they melt.”
She grinned as she went back to the studio, to load the fridge and put the box aside for wrappers and other rubbish. She went out into the control room where the adults remained as they had been, no doubt mesmerised at the sound of their children through the speakers. Willow stood beside Jill.
“What do you think?”
“I think that you’ve built one of the most remarkable studios I’ve ever been in. I think that Xavier has a fantastic career ahead of him as a producer. I think that what you sent us is worthy of platinum awards, and the mini opera is going to be mentioned on several awards nights, even if it doesn’t win. Oh! I also think that those kids in there are brilliant, especially the band. What can you tell me about them?”
“The twins are daughters of the man I went to fetch the ice cream with. He’s a very successful motor engineer with workshops in Coventry and was going to send them to a posh college before they dug their heels in. The rest of the band are friends, and the singer is the one playing Glinda. Actually, one of the ones playing Glinda. We have most of the stand-ins here today, so should let them get some of their own time out in front.”
“Some of the words are not as I remember.”
“We’re doing it in the current day, in modern dress, and Oz is a condemned building in a seedy city.”
“What did you think about the tour?”
“It looks really good for a week away. My mother picked up on the good hotels.”
“You’re stars now. We can’t put you just anywhere. Expect that sort of accommodation in future. There’ll be a hairdresser, a cosmetician, and three dressers with you for the week. All had been on the previous tour. Are you bringing the outfits that you wore last summer?”
“I’ve put mine in a garment bag.”
“There are a couple of good places in Paris who want to dress Zara and the four of you for the shows there, so you could wear the other four in Copenhagen and Berlin, and theirs in Paris. If that’s all right, they can fit you on Monday afternoon or Tuesday morning.”
“That would be different. We could wear them for the Berlin show that’s going to be filmed.”
“That’s a good idea. There isn’t much time for sightseeing, I’m afraid, but we have organised a trip to the top of the Eiffel Tower and a morning at Versailles. There will, of course, be photographers present. It can’t be helped, but both bands are growing in Europe, while the Hikers are bigger in Spain.”
They stood and watched until the group finished the last of the songs. Willow sat next to Xavier, and he turned on her microphone.
“Well done! We’ll take a break now. There’s ice creams in the fridge. When you’ve had a rest, I’d like all the stand-ins to sing at least two songs before we close down. When you take the buds out, give them a wipe with the towelettes that Gina will give you before they go back into the box.”
The adults made a move to the rest area to brew hot drinks as the children came out from the studio. When the twins had wiped their buds, they both hugged Willow.
“That was brilliant! We felt like pop stars with those big amps. This has been the best day ever!”
“I can tell you that you made your father proud today. If I’m not mistaken, he’ll be more supportive in future. Keep your marks up and the idea of that posh school will be forgotten.”
When the others had gone through, only Jill remained to watch as Xavier talked the other three through the process of outputting two dozen complete CDs, after trimming the two ends of the file to get rid of unwanted silence. Then, they made another dozen of the single song. Jill asked for a copy of each, to play to Clive, purely as an idea of the sort of talent coming along in the future. She asked if she could have a still from the recorded session, and Xavier showed Jacob how that was done, printing off one of the whole group.
They joined the others in the rest area, Mervyn and Sam with the twins, in conversation. Willow went around giving out CDs. She texted an ‘S’ on the twelve singles, and only gave these to the Vines. She had an ice cream and joined the queue for the toilet. After that, she called for the band to set up again, and the stand-ins to take centre stage. Most of the adults remained in the rest area as they recorded the main stand-ins. That was almost all of the songs again, and then Brenda went back into the studio, and it was just the Vines recording their own songs for about half an hour before Willow called for a halt.
It didn’t take long for Xavier to output a dozen copies of the CD, with Willow and Jill taking one each. Sam Vines asked if he could have a photo, so they found one from the previous session with Brenda out in front and printed it for him.
After that, they were ready to leave. The others went out towards the coach while the four made sure the studio was tidy and all of the visitor’s guitars had been removed. They checked that all the buds were back and then made sure that the equipment was off before they closed the doors.
The rest area had been tidied up, and someone had emptied the bins and taken the box away. The three friends had a last look around and had a silent group hug before leaving, locking the door as they went.
On the way back, Sam Vines spoke to Willow.
“I’ve got the details from Mervyn and will take my operations manager to look at the site during next week. We’ll let you know if we move forward. This has been a good day and a great experience. They only downside is that the girls have spoken to that Jill, and now I’m being pestered to take them to Europe to see you on stage there.”
“If you give Jill your details, she can organise ‘All Areas’ passes for you, so you can come backstage and sit in the VIP seats. We had well over a hundred schoolfriends at the shows over the summer holiday.”
“I’ll do that. It will make their day, that’s for certain. Thank you for that.”
Jill came over to her as well.
“My car is at the school. If I follow the coach when he drops you off, can I leave it at your place? Then I won’t have to put it in the car park at the airport.”
“That’s all right, Jill. I think that we’ll need to pick up my bags and start picking everyone up so we can get there in good time.
While Sam was talking to Jill, she went to the front of the coach.
“Sebastian, are you taking all of us to the airport?”
“I am.”
“When we get to Stoneleigh, Jill is going to park her car and we’ll get our bags to begin the pick-up. I just need to change from this uniform.”
There were hugs and thanks at the school when they got there. Jill followed the coach as they headed south, and they dropped Jacob at the farm on the way. Gina was dropped at home and then they arrived at Willow’s home. Willow got out with her bags and Jill parked on the front lawn. Willow went inside to change out of the uniform, put her collection of new CDs on her desk, take a comfort stop and come back downstairs to find Jill talking to her parents. She had a hessian bag and reached into it.
“Willow, before I forget, this is for you. I’ll give the others out at the airport. They only came in yesterday.”
Willow was given a new passport that the label had arranged, with Willow filling in the form that Jill had emailed her and sending it back in the post with a copy of the birth certificate that her mother had created. It was just one of the passports that members of both bands had never had a need of. As she put it in her bag, Wendy gave her a wink.
She had her roller case and garment bag, so hugged her parents and went out to the coach to add her baggage to Jill’s in the compartment. Sebastian reversed up the road to the tee-junction, and then they were off on the pick-up run. They arrived at the airport in good time, and checked in. The four of them had something to eat while they waited to board, the others having eaten at home.
That night, the two bands were settled into the Bella Sky hotel, fast asleep in the big beds in individual rooms. In the morning, they all had a buffet breakfast in the dining room, then assembled in a function room for a meeting.
Clive told them that they could relax for a couple of hours and then had a lunch meeting with the media. They were big news here in Denmark, so this was a friendly way to let the reporters ask their questions. In the afternoon, they had a sound check, then dinner with the VIPs before the show.
Summer Rose had a meeting of their own after breakfast to discuss what they were going to play. They decided to use the format from before but leave out much of the Kansas material to give time for some of the new songs. They would still have ‘Spitter’ as the encore.
The day went as planned, with the lunch allowing easy talk with the media. They walked to the performance space in a well-designed complex and did the sound check. The set-up was good, and everyone was happy. The dinner was interesting, with a large group of VIPs, including their first contact with royalty, the young Prince and Princess and their children all considering themselves as fans. Willow had a lovely talk with the Australian-born Princess and the media were on their best behaviour.
That night, the Gees were well received with their set, then, after a short break, Summer Rose had a very loud welcome to Denmark. They were happy to be back in front of an audience again. Every member of the band had crossed a line during the previous tour and were happiest on stage with fans in front of them. It lifted them as they worked through the set, with examples of every album, so far, and a few new ones from ‘Greenhouse’.
On Sunday, they were given a coach ride around the area to see the sights, which included a stop at the music store that had supplied the equipment, where there were group photos, and they all signed a poster that advertised the show. Willow noticed that Jacob seemed somewhat distant. That night was a repeat of the show and Monday morning they were back at the airport for the short flight to Paris.
The weather in Paris was crisp but sunny, and they were taken to the Citizen M hotel and checked in by late morning. Today was the one free day in the city, but the afternoon was taken up with getting outfitted. The four girls and Zara were taken to a dress shop, where they were outfitted for the shows. For Zara, it was easy, good gowns in different colours, with the Gees all in denim. For the girls of Summer Rose, however, there was a fashion show for them to choose the styles that they were happy with. For the first show, they picked a harder look, with black leather jeans, red blouses and leather bolero jacket, teamed with red ankle boots, which they thought would also go well with the filmed show in Berlin. When Jill saw them dressed, she was on her phone to Clive, telling him what he should organise for the boys.
The other two outfits were more ladylike. Cocktail length dresses in a range of colours where it didn’t matter who wore what, it would all look good. The boys could wear smart casual and it would appear designed. They all met up in the late afternoon for a quick visit to the Eiffel Tower. After dinner, they had a free evening, and some the group took taxies to the Folies Bergere. Willow, Gina and Brent, were in one, while Nancy and Herb, and Vivienne and Roy were in another. They had an interesting evening, being entertained for a change.
When they arrived back at the hotel, Jacob was waiting and took Willow to his room. For Willow, it was less than satisfying. She wondered if her realisation of being unable to conceive had lowered her enjoyment level. Jacob was forceful even squeezing her breasts painfully. Back in her own room, she wondered, until she went to sleep, if Rick may be a bad influence.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 8
After breakfast on the Tuesday, they were taken to see Versailles, as promised. What hadn’t been said was that they would be followed around by photographers and posed beside wonderful artworks and, as a group, on the sweeping staircase. They weren’t alone with this, as G-Force were putting up with it as well. Jacob seemed angry about the imposition on his time but went along with it.
Finally, they were taken to a restaurant where they had a private room to relax over lunch. They were told that the dinner before the show would have a number of ‘captains of industry’. Clive warned them that many could claim to be nobility, but none will, because the French upper crust tended to fly under the radar, never forgetting how many lost their heads in the revolution, so just treat them as rich industrialists.
“Tonight, the first half will be filmed for the G-Force DVD, which will go on sale in November, along with the album. Bring your main game tonight. Needless to say, the audio has to be spot on. This afternoon, the sound check will be doubly important, so Summer Rose will go first and then the Gees will be playing with the set mix. Tomorrow, it’s looking after the sponsors, with a visit to the music store who have supplied today’s equipment. Then we have a tourist boat booked for a trip on the river, with lunch. Our venue here is sold out on all three nights. It’s well used to hosting big shows as Taylor Swift performed here on her Eras Tour.”
The dinner was pleasant, and the first half of the show went well. When Summer Rose took to the stage, everyone was on a high, and their set created a lot of audience noise. That night, everyone was too tired for sleeping in a different bed.
On Wednesday morning, it was the trip to the music store, with lots of pictures, lots of fans wanting signatures on their new instruments. Willow and Gina signed their names alongside Jim’s on at least six Nord Stage Threes. The river trip would have been better if they could have gone out on the deck to see the scenery, but the wind was bitter. That night, they all did what they were being paid for, and at breakfast, on Thursday, they were told that the sudden freeze had caused the planned trip to be cancelled. They all spent the day relaxing in various places around the hotel, with some in their rooms. The five girls all got together for a talk and a laugh. The show, that night, was a lot of fun, as the majority of the audience took to their seats rugged up, and divested clothing as the bands warmed them up. Jacob still seemed angry and not his usual self and Willow wondered if he was ailing from some virus.
Friday was a very busy day. After breakfast, they were checked out and on the coach to the airport. A flight that was shorter than their waiting time in the terminal landed them in Berlin. They were all taken to the Hotel Indigo, just a walk to the Uber Arena. The city was a winter wonderland, but the snow had stopped. The lunch was at the hotel, and there was a session in one of the function rooms with the local media. They walked in the slush to the venue and the Gees did their sound check.
Tonight, Summer Rose were all in the black leathers and red shirts, the girls with the added red boots. They had a photo session for the press and then went up to do their sound check. For some reason, they sounded more like a hard rock band with their later songs. Willow wondered if it was the outfits that made the difference. This venue was the smallest of the tour, at only seventeen thousand, but when they went on stage that night, it sounded as loud as the any of the previous shows that week.
The early material was welcomed, but when they launched into material from ‘Homegrown’ and ‘Greenhouse’ the fans went wild. Willow played the keyboard and looked out at the crowd and realised that their choice of outfit was totally in step with the majority of the audience. When the stage lights went down and the house lights came up, they were all high on the adoration, and took a while to come back down as the dressers helped them change.
They walked back to the hotel, happy that the DVD would show an energised band, looking like they meant business. They all stayed in the hotel the next day, relaxing and thinking about the last half of term that lay ahead of them. At lunch, they met the Vines family in the dining room, with the excited twins. Sam sat with Willow in the lounge.
“I’ve seen the agent and signed the paperwork for Stella House. Mervyn and I will be working together to create a sound barrier between us inside, and we have to install quick-roll doors to allow access. That was already factored into Mervyn’s budget. I’ll be able to bring the bigger equipment in and we’ll then seal my part off. I’ll bring in offices and amenities so that we’re self-contained. There may be an extra cost for plumbing, but the half I’m taking will last me many years. The agent told me that the lease doesn’t start until the first of January, the same as Mervyn. That’s very generous.”
“I’m glad that you’re happy, Sam. How are your girls, now. Have they been playing their CD to all their friends?”
“We had a party on Tuesday, and that was all we heard all night. I’m sure that a lot of their friends have already been to see ‘Wicked’ as they were all singing along. I really thought that the music was just a hobby for them, and now know that they’re serious. I’ve had a good look at the lessons that they’ve signed on for, and it’s great training in all aspects. Actually, I’ve never seen them so happy. Ivy told me that they had considered running away, rather than going to the school that we had planned. We’re looking at the school website, so that we can get tickets for the show, as well as getting tickets for all of us to be at the Cathedral. How is this tour going?”
“Pretty good. We sold out at every venue and we’re looking forward to being home in our own beds on Sunday night. I have to admit, this week has been good for us with the development of the band. I think you’ll see a bit of difference tonight. Here, we’re Sommer-Rose and a bit more hard-edged.”
The dinner, that afternoon, was full of praise for the two bands and how they had come to the party with some new material, as well as taking everything in their stride. That night, they rocked! Willow had asked the dressers to give them the black leather outfits again, which the audience appreciated and allowed the band to let their hair down. That night, Jacob wanted Willow to join him for a while, but she declined.
Sunday morning, after breakfast, they were checked out, in a coach and off to the airport. They arrived back in Manchester at one in the afternoon, and were all dropped off at their homes, with Jacob just grabbing his bags and getting out without a kiss. Willow and Jill arrived at her home around three. Willow took her bag and bulging garment bag up to her room and Jill loaded up her car. They sat with Wendy and Ashley for a while and talked about the tour before Jill left to go home.
The last thing she wanted was yet another meal out, but she joined her parents to go to the club for dinner. She told them more about the tour, showed them some of the pictures on her phone, and walked home with Wendy to unpack and have a shower to sleep in her own bed.
It took an effort of will to be up and dressed in the school uniform on Monday morning, but she was ready when Sebastian pulled up in the people mover.
“Good morning, Sebastian and Max.”
“Good morning, Willow. I wondered how you would bounce back, you looked shattered when I dropped you off yesterday.”
“What you see is a robot, the real Willow is still in bed.”
They were all quiet as the others were picked up. At the school, they went in, and the receptionist told them that the Head wanted a word. Gina knocked on the office door and it was opened by Mister Bamborough.
“Come on in, you three. I gave my copy of what was recorded on that Friday to the Head, and that’s why you’re here”
They went in and sat down on the seats in front of the desk. The Head looked at each one in turn.
“This recording that was made of the ‘Wicked’ cast singing. It doesn’t sound like anything like the stage show?”
“The whole group had a discussion and decided that they wanted to perform it in the modern day, ma-am.”
“How much input did you lot have?”
“None. They made up their minds and we went along with it. I’ve been working with the cast, Gina has been working on the costumes, and Jacob has a group workshopping the scenery. The band all joined the school this year, and Mister Bamborough heard them in the first week of term. The leaders are Petunia and Ivy Vines, and their father was there at the recording.”
“He was also a big supporter of the Bishop’s charity event. He was one of those who I said, on the night, would be unlikely to send his children here. Changing the show is risky, but that recording has shown me that it’s going to be a success.”
“I think that we’ll be able to show you a dress rehearsal at the end of the week, if we can set up the stage.”
“I’m looking forward to it. Now, this recording studio. How does one book time?”
“You can’t. It’s registered with the council as not a commercial venture, so we can’t, legally, charge for its use. Other than the band, the only other keys are held by Xavier, Frank, and Dave. If you want to use it, just talk to Xavier to run the desk. He did have the Hikers in there for three evenings that week, recording an album. We pay each of the techs two hundred and fifty an hour when we record an album for general release. The ‘Wicked’ recording was done with no cost to the school as a school project and a favour to friends.”
“So, what do we put on the notes if we get copies made to sell in the school?”
“Other than it was recorded at Summer Love Studio, just the singers names and Xavier as the producer.”
“What about having the orchestra there to record the Messiah?”
“We will need some time to set it up. There is a storeroom behind the far wall where we can put the big amps. We did buy a lot of microphones but may need more. We can record in twenty-four channel and could add small mixers with up to six mics fed into them and the total only using one channel. We may have to get a few more booms to get an overall sound. We don’t have a load of chairs or music stands, but we can get them in or take them from here in a truck. With out tenant now out, we have plenty of parking.”
“Would you be prepared to do that as a special project?”
Willow looked at the others, Gina nodded, while Jacob was silent.
“We would, ma-am. It would be a pleasure.”
“Right. Work with Mister Bamborough when you’re ready. I’m prepared to allow the orchestra a day away from school, along with the three techs. I believe that you can produce a video as well, which we could keep in the school library. Now, off you go and learn something new.”
That lunchtime, Gina and Willow spoke to the rest of the band about the session. The four wind players and Brent were happy to go along with it. Willow spoke to Zara and then sat back at their table and broached the idea with Dianne and Barbara. They were the only ones who thought that they were going back to Abbey Road, and were disappointed, at first, when told that it was another studio, much closer to home.
On the way home, Willow spoke to Sebastian about transporting the entire orchestra and the large choir to Leicester for the day. That evening, she emailed Wilhelm to see if he could be available at the site if there was a delivery of stackable chairs that would need to go into the store at the back of the studio. While she had the computer on, she noticed an email from Peter, with her latest statement.
The ’Journey’, Homegrown’, and Carpentry’ CDs had sold six hundred and ten thousand copies, the ‘Journey’ and ‘Homegrown’ DVDs had moved four hundred and thirty thousand. This was four point two-seven million pounds. With the usual expenses, as well as the four and a half thousand to the techs, and the fifteen percent commission, it left her with her one-eleventh share at just over three hundred and fifty thousand.
She transferred a hundred thousand from WR Holdings to the syndicate with a note to Wilhelm that she had done so and asking him if any decision had been made about feeding the Legs account. She then replied to Peter’s email, asking him to transfer four hundred thousand to the WR Holdings account. She then emailed the estate agent to look into the building in Fitzrovia, London, asking if he could get the details of the current leases and making an offer.
The rest of the week was normal until Thursday. She had notified the ‘Wicked’ cast about a short session after school to be fitted for the costumes. Maisie came in with Frankie and a pile of clothes. The girls went behind screens to change, and then the boys. When everything was checked and found good, they were allowed to change back and take the costumes home, with the news that they would be having a full-dress rehearsal after school on Friday, with teachers in attendance. On the way home, Willow asked Gina about the outfits. Gina told her that she had paid for them, and it was Frankie and her mother who made them.
On Friday, the three were allowed time off to prepare the stage for the show. The girls helped Jacob put out the first backdrop and then set the subsequent ones in order in the wings. Mister Bamborough helped bring up three smaller amps and a drum kit, which was all set up behind the backdrop. They prepared a number of clip-on microphones and tested them through the PA. When the final bell went, the cast and helpers arrived to change into the costumes and sort out the order of scene changes. It was a lucky thing that this show had most of the cast with unchanged outfits.
Willow had a final pep talk to the cast and then left them to it, going to join Jacob and Gina, as the teachers, the rest of the Music Studies class, and quite a few parents that had come in, including the Vines. She could see some movement of the curtains as the audience settled, and then the band started with an overture, similar to the opening of the show. The curtains opened and they were into the first act.
For this performance, the stand-ins took the stage in a couple of acts, without it detracting from the flow. At the end of the show, there was hearty applause and the whole cast came out on stage for a bow, joined by the band members. After the curtains closed, the Head, who was seated behind Willow, leaned forward.
“I wasn’t sure what to expect with this, Willow, but these students have done a great job. Leave the stage set up and be ready to have them perform on Thursday evening. We have about ninety percent filled for that one, and the Saturday one is booked out. Let the stand-ins carry the show on Friday, you’ll have to make that announcement beforehand. We can have Xavier and the others record those two shows. We have three thousand copies of the CD being delivered next week for sale at the door. I expect that we may need to take orders for later delivery by Saturday evening. If we get requests for the DVD, we can make a list.”
The three friends went and congratulated the cast and helpers, telling them about the arrangement for next week. Then, they found Max and Sebastian at the rear of the hall and went out to the vehicle.
“That’s a cracking show. Can’t say that I liked the film, too cheesy, but that had a real punch.”
“It was all their idea, Max. They didn’t want to set it in the Wonderland theme, and the story does have a different point set in modern times.”
Jacob was sitting by himself, so Gina spoke to him.
“Are you good for the sing-along tomorrow night, Jacob?”
“Sorry. I’m going to a party with Rick and the boys. They’re flying to Spain on Sunday to start their tour.”
“Just be careful with what you drink. We don’t want a repeat of that last party.”
“Yes, mum, I’ll be a good boy.”
Gina looked at Willow and raised an eyebrow.
“Looks like the two of us will be holding the fort tomorrow, friend.”
That evening, and all of Saturday, Willow worked through the remaining movements of the Messiah. On Saturday evening, the family had dinner in the club and the two girls set up the Yamahas as pianos and worked through their repertoire of drinking songs. On Sunday, it was Gina on the organ, and they spent some time talking about the two performances that were coming up. Willow sent an email to the school, to notify that the orchestra session, on Wednesday, will be the complete Messiah, and to warn any pick-ups that it would be close to a three-hour session.
On Monday, she told Sebastian that the recording of the orchestra would be the following Wednesday, so to pick them up in a coach, and have a second coach for the overflow. On Monday, during lunch, she phoned a furniture store and ordered a hundred and twenty stackable plastic chairs, and fifteen eight-foot plastic tables to be delivered to the Leicester site, texting Wilhelm with the news.
On Wednesday, she spoke to Mister Bamborough about having chairs, so just needing the music stands and the larger instruments to be taken to the studio. She also spoke to Xavier about getting forty clip-on microphones and a twenty more of the kind they already had, along with some booms, and some small mixers, to be delivered to the site, and to email Wilhelm when they would be delivered.
That afternoon, Margaret and Sandra arrived, as did Sally and Tom. The four soloists were in their places, the full choir was on their chairs, and the orchestra had all the instruments. Willow led the tuning, and when they were ready, she stayed standing.
“Next Wednesday, the Head has given us all a full day to record this opus. We will leave the school as soon as everyone is ready. There will be two coaches outside, and the school truck for the big instruments. The recording studio is in Leicester, and our producer will be Xavier. There is no rush to get it right, first time, as we have full use until we’re happy. You will all be delivered back to the school, and we’ll be able to have pizza or fish and chips for lunch.”
Then, she sat and nodded to the conductor. With a tap of his baton, he led them into the full performance for the first time. It wasn’t totally flawless, but good for a full work-out. They had a comfort stop after the first and second parts, and then brought it home to the final Amen.
Before they left, they arranged for Margaret and her friends to be picked up on the following Wednesday, and for Sally and Tom to have the Cathedral choir at the school ready to go.
That evening, Willow had an email from the estate agent. He said that he had checked with the leaseholder of the two apartments. They were both in a company name, and further enquiries found that they were for visiting executives from head office in the USA. They had asked if it would cost them much to pull out of the lease early, as the head office had just filed for Chapter Eleven protection. He had gone back to the vendors agent, pointing out that half of the accommodation would be vacant, and asking if an offer of one point seven would be acceptable. He suggested that they may take one point eight, or under, and if he should make an offer under the name of Summer Love Properties. Willow replied that up to one point eight would be acceptable to her and that it would be under WR Holdings, with payment to be made inside a week, with the break of lease to be without any charges.
On Thursday, it was full on for the ‘Wicked’ first public performance. None of the cast and helpers would be going home after school, with the lunchroom staying open for the show. The cast were excited, with the twins smiling like suns. They all had a light meal before going to get changed and to make sure everything was ready to roll. The audience started to arrive, and Jacob made sure that his crew were ready, then went off to the main entry. There was a table, loaded with CDs, at the entry to the theatre, and Willow went to buy one for herself, noting a nice picture of the whole cast on the cover, and a full listing of names inside. She was there as producer, Gina as costume supply, Jacob as scenery manager, Xavier as record producer at the Summer Love Studio.
Willow gave the excited cast a pep talk and had several hugs, with many thanking her for the great direction. She went to the curtains and had a peek out at the audience. There were a lot of the students with parents. Xavier had a mixing desk on a table to the side, and Frank and Dave were checking their cameras.
She was just about to step back, when she saw all of the Gees, with Zara and Geoff come in together, and the rest of the band with girls. Then she saw Jacob following them with an older blonde on his arm. She watched as they found their seats and made themselves comfortable. Once was enough. This time, she decided that if he wanted out, she wasn’t going to stand in the way. In one way, it was something of a relief, as she could now plan her future without wondering about him.
The show was a great success, with applause afterwards that went on for a while. Willow was in the front row, Gina on one side and the Head on the other. Brenda gestured for her to come up and get some applause, and she dragged Gina up with her. After the audience had left, there were hugs all round as the cast changed into their normal clothes, catching up with parents to go home. Gina and Willow were alone in the vehicle going home.
That night, Willow hugged her furry friends and told them that they were alone again but didn’t shed any tears. Jacob had been her first lover, and she hoped that he could remain as a friend and in the band. If he did drop out, then he would still get payments from the albums he had been playing in. They could probably be good without him, as Herb or Roy could have a second guitar with them, on stage, to use on the songs that required a semi-acoustic. If they moved into hard rock, and dropped all of the early material, he wouldn’t be missed.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 9
Next morning, Jacob avoided looking at her when he got on the vehicle. She wasn’t going to let him get away with it.
“Enjoy the show, Jacob?”
“It was all right.”
“How did your new girlfriend like it?”
Gina looked at Willow, eyes wide. Jacob looked around, his face glowing.
“Her name is Anita. She is the younger sister of one of the Hikers. I was rostered on as her escort, as she wanted to see the show and her brother is in Spain.”
“Pull the other one, young fellow. I saw her all over you as you came into the theatre. There’s more to it than just escort duty.”
“All right. She was at the party that Rick took me to last weekend. We hit it off in a way that you and I don’t anymore.”
“That’s nice for you. I don’t like being lied to, but I won’t stand in your way. At least she knows about the music business from her brother. Make sure that you let us know before you elope, so we can work out a set without you.”
When they arrived, he was out of the vehicle before Max could move.
“That got him, Willow. I saw them meet up in the foyer, and was keeping my mouth shut, but she was all over him when she arrived. I wonder how long he’ll be travelling with us.”
The two girls got off, and Gina linked her arm in Willow’s.
“So, what happened? You’ve been getting on so well.”
“We were all right until Paris. He was a bit moody that I noticed, and the last time we went to bed he was ‘wham, bam, thank you, ma-am’ and left me hurting. I think that he’s been given bad advice from the Hikers when they’ve been practising in the barn. They’re all a bit older and have had a different upbringing. I refused him in Berlin, because he had hurt me and I just didn’t feel like another round, and he uses that against me. As they say, there’s plenty of fish in the sea and we have a bucket full of bait left.”
They went in for the Friday classes, with the two of them allowed to finish early to prepare for the performance. Gina checked over all the costumes, while Willow went on stage and tested the microphones. When the bell signalled the end of classes, the cast and helpers all came in to make sure everything was ready. Gina and Willow were sitting with the twins when Willow got a text.
She read it and showed it to Gina, who nodded. It was simple, but long.
‘Am using Uber for transport now. Will not be playing triangle next week. Thinking about the rest of things. Will let you know. JE.’
There wasn’t much to be done now but get on with things. After tea, the cast all went to get changed, with the stand-ins singing tonight. Willow and Gina made sure the costumes were properly buttoned up and all the singers had their clip-on microphones on and tested. They went around and gave hugs where needed as they could hear the audience arrive. Willow looked out and saw the attendants closing the doors, so she went to a microphone and welcomed everyone to the performance, stating that the cast will, tonight, have the stand-in singers, but that it did not detract from the performance.
Tonight, the two friends left the stage by a back door and went around to the foyer, slipping into the back of the hall as the overture was finishing. They stood with the attendants for the entire show and applauded the performance. They were beckoned up on stage and bowed with the others.
That evening, there was just the two of them in the vehicle on the way back home.
“So, young Willow. Love doesn’t run smooth.”
“It doesn’t, Sebastian. This is the second loss. The first was whisked away by his mother, and the second by a blonde bombshell. I’m not going to get him out of this one, as it looks like he was sober at the time.”
“Not even going to try?”
“Nope! Not bothered. I thought that he should be given some chances to be manly, and then he turned all neanderthal. Mind you, it was in Paris and Berlin, so he could have been channelling his ancestors who may have lived close by. My mother thought that he was following my lead, but now I know that he’s too easily led. It’s having Rick and the Hikers so close.”
“So, what’s next?”
“Next, good Sir Sebastian, is the last performance of ‘Wicked’, with many dignitaries in the audience for a Saturday night out. Then, next week we record the Messiah, and then we have the shows in the school and the Cathedral. After that, it’s revision and exam time. Who knows where we’ll be over Christmas. Tomorrow, my parents are taking us to the school, so we’ll see you Monday morning.”
That night, she revisited her ‘Fractured’ song, adding a verse about when you say ‘no’, it’s not always for ever. She did shed some tears then, but not for long.
On Saturday morning, when she checked her emails, there was one from Racheal asking if she would like to visit the farm for lunch, with Wendy. She answered that she would be happy to. She told her mother about it before walking to the church to check the hymns for the next day. The Reverend was pottering around in the new kitchen when she walked in.
“Good morning, Willow. How are you?”
“All right, I think. Have you seen the show yet?”
“We’re going tonight. Hilda tells me that it’s a bit different but has about as much to say as one of my sermons. I’m not sure if that’s a complement or an insult.”
“It’s set in modern day, so relates to modern times, about good and bad, rich and poor. Taken out of the fantasy world, I agree that it does sound like what you might say in a sermon. I believe we’ll have the crowd from the Cathedral tonight.”
“You look like you’ve had a bad night.”
“I’ll look better later on, when I’ve sat at my vanity. It could be the amount of work I’m doing at the moment. Getting the show to this stage has been good, but adding the work that we’ve all put into the Messiah has added a lot more stress. We’re taking the orchestra and choirs into a studio next week to lay down a recording of the work. That has added some more complexities to the mix.”
She sat at the organ and played through the hymns, then sat for a good twenty minutes playing Bach. The Reverend knew better than to disturb her while she was settling her nerves. He knew that there was more to her problems than schoolwork.
When she went home, she joined her mother in selecting something nice for visiting, but washable in case of baby spill. They told Ashley that there was ham in the pantry for a sandwich, and Wendy drove them to the farm. When Racheal opened the door for them, there were hugs and air kisses, and then they had to inspect little Rebeccah in her crib.
“She’s just had a feed and is settled, so we can wait until she wakes up before you can have a cuddle. I’ve made a stew, so come into the kitchen and tell me what’s happening. Rick is busy with band stuff and rang from Spain this morning to tell me that the shows have been going well.”
They sat and talked, some about the tour in Europe because Jacob had been tight-lipped about it. Some was about the ‘Wicked’ show. When Wendy mentioned the Messiah shows coming up, Racheal smiled.
“Oh, yes. Jacob made me laugh when he told me that he had a very important part to play and showed me his triangle.”
“Not any longer, I’m afraid. He texted me that he was resigning from that instrument, so all the Messiah concerts will be without him.”
“Did he give a reason? He has appeared a bit angry, lately.”
“Her name is Anita, and I believe that she is a sister to one of the Hikers.”
“Oh dear! I saw them talking at the going away party last week. Come to think of it, they did disappear for a while. She’s seventeen and Alex, her brother, has given her a car. I saw it in the yard this morning, very early, but isn’t there now. Alex is a bit wild, a hard drinker when he gets going. He also dabbles in weed and has asked Rick if we could plant some on the farm. I put my foot down with that one.”
Wendy looked at Willow.
“Is this why you’ve been a bit down the last couple of days?”
“He was at the Thursday performance with her, and she was all over him. I helped him last time, but this time he’s going into it with his eyes open, so he’s on his own. I’ve decided that I’m my own woman, and I can get through this.”
Both Wendy and Racheal gave her a hug. Wendy then turned to Racheal.
“What do your parents think of this?”
“They won’t be happy, especially when they find out that she’s been sleeping here with him. But what can they do? He’s grown up in the last six months to the point where he can act like an adult and has the money to just walk away from the farm if he wants. I have no control with his life. If he wants to throw it away, that’s his to do. Just lately, if I offer a suggestion, he just tells me I’m not his mother.”
“He said the same thing to Gina the other day.”
“How does this affect the band?”
“I’ve thought about that. If we move towards a more ‘hard rock’ set, then he won’t be missed if he’s not there. The only ones that would miss him would be some female fans. When you get to see the DVD that was shot in Berlin, you’ll see what I’m talking about. If we do any of the old songs, Roy can play a semi-acoustic to get the sound. It may make things complicated for your father, Racheal, if Jacob isn’t part of the syndicates, and Peter will have to separate income with a ‘Jacob playing’ and ‘Jacob absent’ division.”
“That’s a bit cold blooded!”
“That business, Mum. The band is fun and makes money, but it can change overnight. There’s hardly a band in the world that’s been the same line-up throughout their time.”
They heard the baby cry, so went to the crib and Racheal lifted her out. They took it in turns to cuddle the baby while Racheal ladled out the meal. When the baby was quiet, once more, she was put back into her crib and it was put next to Racheal at the table. They ate the meal, had a cup of tea, and cuddled the baby again before they left. On the way home, Wendy turned to her daughter.
“Are you really all right, love?”
“Yes Mum. It does make the future that we were talking about a lot easier. I should be getting the keys of a building in London soon. That one I told you about near the London University. Perhaps we can go down to see the Christmas lights this year. It all depends on what state the apartments are in.”
“That would be interesting. Didn’t you say there was a restaurant on the ground floor. All we’ll need would be breakfast makings. Can we go and have a look before then? We could do it in a day, if we can’t stay overnight.”
“I’d like that, Mum. Two women with money in London on their own. What can go wrong?”
That afternoon Willow took her time getting ready, and then the family went to the steakhouse for a meal, before going to the school. Her parents mixed with others in the theatre foyer while Willow went backstage to see the cast, meeting Gina making sure that all the costumes were correct.
“Looking good, Gina.”
“And you, friend. I suppose we have to sit in front again, with the VIPs.”
“As expected of the director and costume manager. I wonder what the reception will be, tonight. So far, it’s been good. I did see Bruce on Thursday night, so it looks like there’ll be something in the Observer.”
As they were getting the cast settled for the final performance, Mister Jamieson joined them, raising his voice to be heard.
“I have come backstage to tell you that all of the cast and helpers will be getting full marks for this production. The first two performances have been recorded and filmed, so there will be a DVD available through the school website, marked Cast A and B. The CD that you made has been selling like wildfire, and we’re likely to have sold out tonight, with another thousand to be ordered. There will be some important people in the audience tonight, supporters of the school, but I’m sure that Willow can tell you that they’re just more people who are there to be entertained, so just do what you’ve done before, and you’ll be the topic of conversation in households other than your own. Good luck tonight.”
While the theatre was filling, the twins stood with Willow, peeking through the curtains and asking who certain people were. Willow was quite surprised that she could name most of those who stood out. Ivy asked her if this was like going on stage in front of huge crowds.
“It’s not the size of the crowd that counts, girls. It’s how happy they are to see you. You have to remember the one constant in entertainment. The audience has paid good money to be in those seats. They have done that in order to be entertained by you. They have already made the commitment to be your friend, so you’re more than halfway to making them happy. You, and your band, made me and the teacher happy back at the beginning of term, the cast made a lot of people happy when you recorded the soundtrack. When you bow, tonight, to applause, you would have made four and a half thousand people happy over the three nights. It just gets more exciting the bigger the crowd. We played to audiences of sixty thousand in the summer, but the thing was that we did what we would normally do playing to six. Now get yourselves ready for the overture.”
She stayed by the curtain until it was just stragglers coming in and the doors were being closed, then went to a microphone.
“Good evening, ladies and gentlemen. Welcome to this performance of ‘Wicked’ by the first-year students here at Blue Coat School. Please make sure that all mobile phones are set to silent. There will be an after-show party in the lunchroom when the cast have changed into normal clothes, so please stay and congratulate these talented boys and girls.”
She left the stage as the band started with the overture, the twins giving her a big smile as she left. She found her seat next to her parents, with Maisie and Gina and most of the senior teachers and the Bishop with his party. The show was smooth and professional. Willow thought that if they hadn’t got full marks already, this one would have nailed it. When the cast were all on stage, making their third bow, the Head stood and pulled Willow and Gina up on stage with her, finding a spare clip-on mic and attaching it to her dress, holding the sender in one hand. She took the two friends to the edge of the stage.
“Ladies, and Gentlemen, distinguished guests. Tonight, you have seen a performance which has smashed several records for this school. Usually, the first term musical has been something traditional. This year, it was a leap of faith to offer the first years the ‘Wicked’ show. Not only did they accept something that takes months for a professional cast to master, but they gave it a modern setting and, doing so, made a powerful statement about the world of good and evil, something that this school has a lot of interest in. Not only that, but they never sought the help of any of the teachers, and followed their Director, Willow Rose, to produce something outstanding. Normally, we have to go begging for costumes, but these, on stage, were supplied by Madam Francesca without any need to ask her. Our thanks to Gina Summer for this. Lastly, they wouldn’t have known this, but every musical put on, in the past, has been to a backing track, pre-recorded by the school orchestra. This is the very first time that the performance was totally live, and we have to give a special round of applause to the Vines for the music.”
There was applause, and Willow could see the Vines parents with big smiles.
“Now, as Willow told you at the beginning, the cast will be circulating when they have changed. Finger food and drinks are available in the lunchroom.”
The curtain closed and the cast all set off to change, leaving the Head with the two friends.
“Looks like you two have done it again,”
“Just doing what we were asked to do, ma-am.”
“More than was asked, Willow. I know how much you’ve put into this, giving the cast tips and hints, without yelling at them. With that, alone, you will make an excellent teacher, if you want to go that way. And you, Gina, I am fully aware that you paid for the costumes, but we do have to make our outside supporters feel good. The CD is almost sold out, so we don’t have to order more, but we will, for the website. Our thanks to you for the use of the studio, it really made a difference. I’ll be joining you with the recording of the Messiah, I’ve heard so much about how good the studio is, I have to see it for myself.”
“It will be interesting as we try to fit everyone in. The biggest crowd there has been the cast, so we’ll have to be very inventive to get the orchestra in. We don’t have the space that Abbey Road has. We built it for pop groups.”
“You’ll all have to be very friendly, then. Now, let’s go and press the flesh with the happy parents and even happier guests. I know that the Bishop was impressed by the way you all turned a vapid, but entertaining, show into a moral observation.”
They went through to the lunchroom, with the Head telling them to stick with her, and met up with several civic dignitaries, a couple of local politicians, and the Bishop, who hugged all three of them and told them that they were all wonderful. The cast started to come in, to be hugged and kissed by parents and friends. The Vines family came over to Willow and the others.
“Headmistress. I wasn’t going to let my girls attend this school in the early part of the year, but they were insistent about coming to where their favourite band were students. Tonight showed me that they were right. I’m totally happy with the way things are done here and will recommend the school to anyone who asks. My girls, and their friends, have shown everyone how good the environment is here. Anytime you’re looking for help, just call.”
“Thank you, Mister Vines. Your girls impressed our Head of the Music School in the first week they were here and haven’t disappointed since. I can tell you that if they do reasonably well in the end of term exams, they will both be ‘A’ students, along with Willow and most of the other music students. It’s something about learning to play music without it in front of you that improves the retention of facts in other subjects.”
In the meantime, the twins had introduced Willow and Gina to their mother, who gave them both a hug. There was more talk and then the room started to thin out. Gina was talking to her mother and Frankie, and Willow was waylaid by Tom.
“Just asking, Willow. This recording studio. I don’t know of any in Coventry that are big enough for an orchestra.”
“It’s in Leicester, Tom, and I don’t know if we’ll all fit in. The internal space is thirty-seven wide, by seventy or so deep. It should be all right, and we have microphone jack points down the whole length, so it’s only getting the seating right. We’re getting over a hundred seats in.”
“We?”
“Well, yes. You’ll see on Wednesday. It’s a new studio that we’ve developed in an industrial site. The whole site is owned by the band. It’s not a commercial venue, so don’t ask to hire it, but it will be available to friends, say, a choir wanting somewhere to sing church music for an album.”
“Since when have you been able to read minds! That was something that crossed my mind, with our organist. Do you have any organs there?”
“We have two Nord Stage Three keyboards which can emulate a pipe organ. If you have a copy of the show soundtrack, it was recorded there a couple of weeks ago. We have twenty-four track on the desk, and plan to use some small mixers to give us a full mix with the orchestra and choir.”
Eventually, Willow caught up with her parents and they made their way to the car and Ashley drove them home. It was late when they arrived, but they changed into nightwear and had a hot chocolate before going to bed. Ashley had a copy of the soundtrack, which he got Willow to sign, then put it with the others in the music centre.
In the morning, Willow was showered, dressed, and had breakfast before she walked over to the church with her parents, arm in arm, and their breath clouding in the cold morning air, the first cool snap of the winter. In the church it was warm and cosy. Willow went up to the organ as the bells started, playing Bach and thinking about the night before. Especially the fact that the Head had introduced them to all of the dignitaries that had stayed, as ‘my two brightest students’ and not as the founders of Summer Rose. It made Willow wonder if, indeed, she could make a career as a teacher of music and theatre.
After the service, they all went over to the club, where an urn of hot water had replaced the icebox. The Reverend was quite sure that the original premise of the play and the film was that dark magic is to be avoided and found it hard to believe that very little change had been made to the school version to turn it into a modern parable. They had lunch there, and Willow asked her father if he could take her to the studio, so she could start moving things around. Gina wanted to come as well.
When they got to the site, Willow produced a set of keys that Mervyn had given her. One opened the padlock on the gates, and one was a universal one for the office and both sheds. They opened the side shed and slid the doors so that there was light inside. The pallet racks had all been taken out, just leaving screw holes in the concrete. There was, however, twenty-four stacks of five plastic chairs and the tables leaning against the wall. Before going further, she relocked the gates.
In the studio, they switched on all the lights and the air. The studio, itself, was as they had left it after the soundtrack was recorded. Willow went to the end and opened up the sliding door and then the double door to the store. Gina was unplugging the amps and the cables to the speaker boxes. They had a sack truck with a wider than usual base, so were able to take the speakers to the storeroom and stack them in four piles of three, adding a stack of the six amplifier heads. The extra guitars and other instruments went out on the pallets. The two keyboards stayed where they were for the moment.
Some of the stacks of chairs were carefully brought in, with negotiating all the twists and turns taking time. Gina and Willow discussed how the orchestra should be laid out. The best positioning for the choir would be across the back, and there was only one way to do that, and that was along the side wall. So, a line of forty chairs were set out. The cello and basses were usually to the conductors right, so they set out six chairs for the cellos. The double bass players would need to bring their stools. Willow made a note for those to be in the truck. She also made a note that the conductors rostrum would have to come.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 10
They decided that the timpani, trumpets and French Horns should be in front of the big window, then the violins, of which there were nine firsts and nine seconds, angled at forty-five degrees so they could see the conductor. The leader was placed close to where the rostrum would be, and they set out three lines of three, side by side, and then another three lines of three, staggered to the others.
One keyboard and stool were in front of the seconds, and the other was put next to the cellos. The nine violas went in front of that, with the bassoon, which left a good space left in the middle for the soloists, with a walkway for access, with space to spare.
Gina sketched the layout on a notebook to double check that they had enough room, then they closed up the back door. They knew that it would take a while to set all the microphones needed. Where they could, they set out the stands and booms that they already had. Gina pointed out that the two keyboards would need small amps on the day. Willow made a note to get them from the music store and get them delivered to her mother’s workplace to bring home. They would only need to be about twenty watts to produce a full sound.
They left a few extra chairs in a corner, and then went out into what used to be the workshop. It had better lighting and floor than the pallet rack area, as well as some heating. They set up all the tables and the remaining chairs for the breaks.
Back in the rest area, they put a kettle on and made another list of what supplies would be needed on Wednesday. Willow opened the fridge and found the remaining ice creams. They sat with the ice creams and cups of tea. Willow had a thought.
“There used to be a big bin outside that was emptied once a week. It was usually filled with opened cartons. We need a couple more small rubbish bins and a big bag of bin liners for inside. I’ll get a big bin for outside that can take everything and get emptied on order.”
Before they went home, they walked around the corner to the shop, buying a load of things that they thought they would need. Luckily, the store had some plastic kitchen tidies, so they bought three and a roll of bags. They stocked the cupboards and fridge, put one bin in the control room and two in the rest area, used the toilets and shut everything up to go back to Stoneleigh.
That evening, Willow went on a contractor’s supply site, and ordered a large bin, with a lid, that could be emptied by one of those trucks with a fork-lift that took the bin over the cab. She paid for it to be delivered in the week, and sent a copy of the order to Wilhelm, also telling him that the school orchestra would be recording on Wednesday, arriving a bit after nine, and to please have the doors of the big shed open for parking. She also ordered two Fender MD20 mini amps from the music store and asked for them to be delivered to Wendy’s workplace ASAP marked attention W Rose, paying with her debit card.
Monday was just the two of them going in, and the day was fairly normal, except for Jacob sitting with the other boys for lunch again. There was a lot of talk about the show, and how great it was. Willow could see that the table where the Vines sat had plenty of visitors. That evening, she had an email from the agent, telling her that the vendors had agreed to a million and three-quarters. Also, that the leased apartments would be left furnished, as it would be an unwanted expense to clear them, seeing that all the furnishings had been written off. He would need the responsible person to sign the papers for WR Holdings, so that the title could be transferred. Willow asked him if he could come to their home in Stoneleigh with the keys and that her father would sign.
He came to see them on Tuesday evening, with Ashley signing the paperwork and Willow transferring one and three-quarters of a million to the agent’s trust account while he was there. He left a bunch of keys with labels. After he had gone, Ashley asked the question that was on his mind.
“What have you bought this time, my daughter, and why on your own?”
“It’s a building in London, Dad, near the University. It has a restaurant at street level with a long lease, two apartments that had been sold with a hundred-year lease, and another two apartments that had been leased to a company but are now vacant and fully furnished. Malcolm has booked the Gees for Saturday evening, and it’s Gina’s turn in the church on Sunday. It may be nice for us to go to London on Saturday and stay overnight if there’s bedding left behind. It will be a base for us there, and home for me if I go to the University of London. It can be resold if we don’t need it.”
“That transfer has just about wiped out your company account.”
“It’s almost time for another statement, Dad. The week in Europe wasn’t anything to do with a charity. We took over thirty-eight million in ticket sales. I don’t think the company account will be low for very much longer.”
He looked hard at her.
“Surely you’re joking?”
“No joke, Dad. There will be a lot of expenses and the profit will be split seventeen ways, but that, added to our record sales, should be enough to build up the bank balance.”
On Wednesday, she had her violin and two mini amps when the coach arrived. Her bag had all the keys to the property. Max put the amps in the storage and helped her in.
“Big day, today.?”
“Sure is, Max. It’s going to be a first for the studio, that’s for certain.”
They picked up Gina and then went to the school. The rest of the band members had been picked up by another coach, along with Xavier and his two helpers. The truck was being loaded with the larger instrument cases, and the timpani’s. There was a big stack of music stands to go in, as well as the four stools for the bass players. The rostrum had been dismantled for transport. There was also four, big, cool boxes, with notes on. Willow looked, to see that they held two different types of sandwich, and two held cakes.
Willow went around the crowd, firstly finding Xavier.
“Xavier, here is a keyring with the key to the gate and one that opens the sheds. You may need them now that Mervyn is gone. Did you get the extra mics and stands?”
“Thanks Willow. I wanted to talk to you about keys but that can wait until later in the day. I have the mics, extra leads, stands and booms, as well as ten small mixers with six in and one out.”
“Right. Frank, can you go with the truck and show them the way around to the lane and the back doors. Hopefully, we’ll have time to be there and open up. By the looks of what they have to load, they’ll be behind us.”
“Right-ho Willow. This is going to be interesting.”
It didn’t take long for Willow to check that all the orchestra were present, along with the school choir. The minibus with Margaret and the others from Stoneleigh arrived, followed by another with Tom, Sally and the Cathedral choir. The Head, Miss Russell, and Mister Jamieson were in a car with Mister Bamborough. He led them out with the two minibuses, and the two coaches following. The truck was nearly loaded when they left.
When they arrived at the site, the gates and the sheds were open. Mister Bamborough parked to one side, and the larger, vehicles were taken into the large shed, now just an open space. Wilhelm came out of the office to greet them.
“Good morning, Willow. That big bin arrived. I put it in the side shed. It’s on wheels, so can be rolled out when it’s ready to be emptied. I see that it’s going to be a big day.”
“Hopefully, it will be a successful one. I need to go through and open up the back. I’ll talk to you later.”
She went and put the heaters and lights on in the workshop, then opened up the studio and switched everything on. Going through and leaving all the doors open, she rolled the back screen aside and unlocked the back door, then went to the steel doors, opening them and then the doors to the lane. The truck was just entering the lane and pulled up with the rear next to the doors.
When the guys saw where things had to go, they had a routine which they had used in many places where the orchestra had played. Willow went back to the studio, where the players and singers were finding their places. Mister Bamborough was putting them in their places and smiled when he saw Willow.
“Good layout, Willow. This is cosy, but not cramped. What about the two keyboards?”
“There are two Mini Fenders in the coach, both twenty watt. Xavier has a load of microphones and more booms. I think that, once we had everyone in their seats, we can lay out the mics and start setting the mix. When the rest of the stuff is brought in from the truck, we’ll close up the back.”
She went through the control room, where Xavier was showing the Head the mixing desk, and found Miss Russell in the workshop area, supervising the players with putting coats and bags on the tables. Outside, Max had pulled out the amps, so Willow carried them back to the keyboards. Dave was creating a pile of boxes by the other coach, which the security guys carried through to the studio, going back for the stands and booms.
Willow went back to the carpark and found Wilhelm.
“Thank you for all that you’re doing, Wilhelm. I hope that Rosalie doesn’t miss out on your companionship.”
“She’s in the office. She’s keen to see what you end up doing once the madness has been defeated.”
“It is a bit mad at the moment and will be for a little while. When the school truck comes in, why don’t you lock the gate and bring her in. There’ll be plenty of room in the control room once we get ready for the actual recording. Xavier can pipe the sound to speakers in the rest room, so she can sit in comfort to listen.”
She went back to the studio, where Gina was setting up the two amps and testing the keyboards. The Head had taken in what was being told her, and Xavier was busy, with Dave, laying out the microphones and the various stands and booms. Margaret was parked in her place, with Sally, the tenor, and the bass beside her. The choirs were all sitting quietly, some looking at the songbook, with their clip-on mics and the senders clipped to the waistbands.
The rostrum was erected, and Willow went through to the back, where all the big cases were now in the store. She told the driver how to go around and enter the front area, and he closed up the truck as she was closing and locking the back doors, one set at a time. Once the sliding screen was back in place, she stood and looked at the scene in front of her.
The only movement, now, was Xavier, Frank, and Dave, setting out microphones, helped by the teachers and Tom. She went to Tom.
“Tom, would you like to sit with the songbook and make sure the choir stands at the right time? I can get you a chair and a music stand.”
“That will be good, thank you. I see a spare stand.”
“I put a few chairs in the corner, I’ll go and get you one.”
When he was set, she got him and Mister Bamborough together, and took them to the control room.
“You may have never used these before, but we usually use buds to hear what’s going on. With these in, you will hear the final mix in your ears, as it will be on disc. There are also messages that will come through from Xavier. He will tell you who he wants to hear when we get to setting the mix and will also tell you when he’s ready to record and when the session has ended. I’ll have a pair, myself. When we finish, they get wiped before going back in the box. They are very good, and, if they’re in properly, you won’t hear anything else.”
They took a pair, each and went back to the studio. The Head smiled.
“I don’t know what I expected when I was told about this place. It’s absolutely wonderful. I can see how you made that soundtrack CD so great. What else have you recorded?”
“Xavier worked with the Hikers on their next album. The Gees and Summer Rose recorded in here, with the Gees album to be released along with a DVD of them live in Paris. We recorded two albums; one will be released along with our DVD of a show in Berlin. The other will be released later in the year. That one’s a bit different.”
“How so?”
“It’s an idea from Vivienne. It’s loosely based on the ‘Magic Flute’, set in the digital age. The clown ends up with the girl. I’m not sure how well it will sell, but I’m told that it will receive good reviews from the purists. It looks like they’re almost ready to set the mix. I’ll just check that Wilhelm is coming in and close the doors. You will notice a sudden dampening of external sound when I do. The guys who built this really know their game.”
She went out as Rosalie was coming into the rest room, so went and closed the two doors to the workshop. She went to her own seat, collecting her violin and bow on the way, along with the soft cloth that she would drape against her neck. At her seat, she stood and looked over the orchestra. She oversaw the tuning, while the setting up was happening, to save time. Xavier came to her.
“All set up. We’re running the choir through the receivers in the jack plugs. Each one of the string sections are being fed into the small mixers, two to a section. When you have the buds in, I’ll tell you which section I need to hear.”
Willow stood up again.
“Please listen carefully. We are about to set the mix. I will be wearing buds and will be able to hear what Xavier hears. As I point to each section, please play or else stay quiet. Any discussion will be picked up by these microphones. We will take each movement at a time and can take a break at any time should you need it. We have our conductor, who will also have his buds in, as well as a conductor for the choir.”
She heard Xavier, starting with the double bass. They worked through the different sections, and the different voices of the choir. Lastly, it was the instruments that had their own microphone, the two keyboards, the timpani, bassoon, horns and trumpets, followed by the four soloists. Xavier told them that he was ready, so Willow sat and looked at Mister Bamborough, who was grinning. He called out that they would start with the first movement and Willow heard his voice in her buds. He tapped the baton and guided them into the first part of a long day.
That morning, they worked through the first third, and part of the second third. They stopped for lunch, emptying the cold boxes of the sandwiches and cake, drinking teas and soft drinks, and finishing off all the ice creams. There was a queue for the toilets, so Wilhelm took some out to the other shed and the toilets there. Rosalie helped out with Miss Russell, to make sure nobody went hungry, or were holding on to a full bladder for fear of upsetting anyone or missing anything.
The whole orchestra were keen to get it all good, knowing that there would be a CD that would have them playing an iconic piece, in their private studio, and with the Head present. The Head was really getting involved, talking to individual players and giving out hugs as needed. Willow found herself at one of the tables, with Wilhelm and Rosalie sitting with her. He cleared his throat.
“So, Willow. Can you tell us what’s going on with Jacob?”
“As far as I know, he is now going out with Anita, a sister of Alex, one of the Hikers.”
“Did you have an argument?”
“No. He just went to the band’s going away party and turned up at the ‘Wicked’ performance with her.”
“You’re just letting him go?”
“Yep! I got him out of trouble with his cousins, and I know that he’s doing this without any loss of control. He is the one who has broken it off. He should have been here today, playing a triangle. It was a nominal position but made him part of the orchestra.”
“I have to tell you that he has asked me to organise his pay-out of the two syndicates. I hate to think what he’ll do with the money, but, at least, I can pay it into the account that I’m still the controller of. We have been paying some into his personal account, but he hasn’t had access to the rest.”
“I wondered if he would do this. I suppose that we’ll get an email that he’s dropping out of the band. Peter will have to draw a line under the albums he has played in and only pay him his share of those. It will make that difficult for a good six months.”
“You’ve obviously expected this?”
“From his attitude last week, yes. I was wondering if we had moved the band into a type of music that he isn’t happy with. He was always a folk player first, and we became a heavy rock band on tour. When you see the Berlin DVD, you’ll know what I mean. If we have to stay behind, can you take Gina and me home?”
“Of course. By the time this winds up, it will be our time to leave.”
Xavier came over to them.
“I think it’s time to start them getting back in. Can I have a private word, Willow?”
“If it involves Jacob, his parents and I have probably guessed what you’re going to tell us. Has he booked the studio for non-band use?”
“I don’t know how you read minds, Willow, but yes. He wants studio time on Friday evening, and all-day Saturday.”
“Make sure he knows what you get paid for any non-band, or non-school time. Let me know by email what he got up to. We were just discussing him pulling out of any ownership of this site, so we will let you know when to change the locks.”
They all went back into the studio and settled down, resuming from where they had left off.
For Willow, their version of the Hallelujah Chorus was as good as it gets, with the top note that the sopranos hit enough to raise the hairs on your arms. After another short break, the extra players had their time in the spotlight, with Nancy and the trumpet sounding in the bass air. At the end, when Xavier said that all was good, the door opened, and the Head came in to shake Mister Bamborough’s hand and then hug each of the soloists. There was a distinct sense of satisfaction, tinged with relief that it was over.
Willow stood and called loudly for some quiet.
“Today, we have done well, but we now have to repeat it in under two weeks in the school theatre, then three times in the Cathedral. You have all done an excellent job. There will be a complete performance in the theatre next Wednesday afternoon, after school. With that, I expect that we can repeat today’s effort, in a seamless performance with just two breaks. Take a rest, and our techs will see about giving us CDs of today. They will need to work on the vision to synchronise with the music, so a DVD and proper CD may be a few days.”
She went and collected the buds from Tom and the conductor, taking them into the control room to wipe over and put in their boxes. Xavier saw her.
“Thanks for giving us some time. I’ll bring Frank and Dave with me on Saturday, and we’ll work on producing the DVD. This is as long as three albums, and the linking silence has to be carefully set. We can put together a CD, but it won’t be perfect today. I’ll give the Head, you, Mister Bamborough, Mister Jamieson and Tom one today. The one to go to the manufacturer will be ready next week. I’ll download today to my laptop and work on it at home with the new software.”
“All right, I’ll tell the Head. What’s the vision like?”
“Good, we have multiple views of the whole ensemble, and were able to utilise most of the cameras.”
Wilhelm went out and opened the gate, the drivers went and opened up the vehicles. Slowly, they cleared the studio. The truck was brought to the lane. Willow and Gina opened up the back doors for them to collect the big instruments and the music stands. Willow told Sebastian that they would go back to Stoneleigh with Wilhelm but to get the others home. She saw the Head and told her about the delay in getting a saleable CD. The Head hugged Willow and told her that just getting one would be a true gift. The orchestra and choir went to the coaches, the Cathedral and Village choirs went to their minibuses, with Tom expressing his thanks for the opportunity to be part of this and commenting on the extra dimension that the buds gave.
Wilhelm, Willow, and Gina helped the guys load the truck, and then had a walk through to make sure that nothing was taken that shouldn’t have been. The truck left, and they closed up the back doors, leaving the chairs and keyboards where they were. There was a mass of mics and cables to tidy up. Willow picked up her violin, put it in her case, and got her bag. As they moved towards the exit, they tidied up and filled the small bins, carrying them to the big bin to empty.
Turning off the lights to the studio, then turning of all the switches on the way out, it felt a little bit of an anticlimax. Still, it was another hurdle jumped. Wilhelm had closed the doors of the main shed and locked the office. His car was outside the gate, so they slid the shed door closed, locked it, and closed the gate to lock it before getting in the back seat.
On the way back to Stoneleigh, they spoke a little about Jacob, bringing Gina up to date. After they had dropped Gina at home, Wilhelm was driving to Willow’s house, when he asked the one question that Willow really didn’t want to answer.
“Willow, I really have to ask if Jacob is now sexually active?”
“Yes, he is.”
“Do your parents know?”
“My mother guessed it some time ago. She may not totally agree with it and has told me to be careful. It’s not as if we went at it like rabbits, I think that you could count the total times on one hand. To be honest, I think that he wanted it more than I did, but that’s being a boy.”
“Thank you for your honesty, Willow. We both think that you are an exceptional girl, and that he’s a fool for dropping you. I’m going to make it my business to be on site on Saturday, to meet this new girl. Today has been very interesting. That music and the strength of the words have triggered something in the two of us. I think that we might see if we can find a synagogue. We need to get one for Rebeccah to be named. Perhaps that’s where we went wrong with Jacob, no moral compass.”
They dropped her off at home, and she went up to strip and have a shower. It had been quite a stressful day. Dressed casually, she took the CD that Xavier had given her and wrote the title and date on the cover. Then, she started preparing the dinner, with the cutting and dicing helping her to settle. That evening the family sat in the sitting room and listened to the recording. Except for the odd spacing between the tracks, it sounded pretty good. Her parents didn’t worry about the spacing and thought that it was great.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 11
That night, Willow took a little while to drop off to sleep, snapshots of the day in her brain. But sleep she did, and she woke, refreshed, in the early morning. She went to the bathroom, then showered and dressed for school. On the way, the two friends spoke about the strangeness of yesterday, with them hosting the entire orchestra in the studio.
“We’ll need to go in one evening and tidy up”
“If your father can take us, pick me and Mum up on the way. We put the chairs out, so it shouldn’t be too hard to put them away. If we make a bit of room to get the amps and other things into the studio, they can go out into the store.”
Willow rang her father, who was still on his way to work.
“Dad. Can you take Gina, Maisie and me to the studio this evening, please? We need to tidy the mess after the orchestra session.”
“Sure thing, love. Will it take long?”
“Not too long, just moving the band gear in from the store and then stacking all the chairs and tables out there. If we put our vacuum in the back, we can give the floor the once over.”
“All right, I’ll give your mother a call to bring home fish and chips so we can be away by a bit after six. She’ll want to come and there’s room for three in the back seat. Have a good day.”
When they went in, the receptionist told them that the Head wanted a word. They went and knocked on her door and went in when they heard her call.
“Ah! Good morning, you two. I just wanted to tell you how much I enjoyed yesterday. It was a pleasure being close to so many hard-working students. Too often, I just get to sit and listen to the final performance, not really experiencing the dedication that goes into producing it. That studio of yours is a masterpiece, and I’m sure that it has the biggest space in the local area. We spoke about things on the way back to the school, and we want the two of you to be part of school events while you’re with us. You’re both so good with first year students and impart your knowledge with a quiet assurance that helps them do their best.”
“Thank you, Ma-am. We just did what we can do. These students are all very bright, and having a ready-made band made it so much easier. I know that most of our band will be happy to help in any way we can.”
“When we get the final mix from Xavier, we’re going to get two thousand made to sell through the website, and to give out to all that participated. I was looking at Frank and David working with the vision from the cameras, and the resulting DVD will be on the site as well. We were thinking of paying those three lads an amount to be the audio-visual group in the school while they’re here, with us equipping one of the small rehearsal rooms as a post-production office, instead of the cramped room that they’ve been using. We also hope that they will help train future students in what they know. It will be added to the Music Studies and the first one being taught will be Jim Jamieson, who had had a sudden desire to join the current century.”
“I think that he had his eyes opened when he came to Abbey Road with the band.”
“Now, something completely different. Some of the teachers have remarked about a change in Jacob Epstein’s attitude. What can you tell me?”
“I have the idea that when we played in Berlin, we became more of a hard rock band, and it’s not what he signed on for. He had only played acoustic before we had him play in the orchestra. He also has a new girlfriend, three years older, who is the sister of one of the Hikers, and I think he may be growing up faster than he should. But that’s only conjecture.”
“You’re not a couple any longer?”
“No. He sent me a text to tell me that he wasn’t going to be part of the orchestra, and I spoke to his parents, yesterday, who told me that he wanted to leave the band syndicate that we’ve been paying into. So, I really don’t know what he wants to do any longer.”
“Thank you for that. It helps me to monitor the situation. He can’t leave school early but can apply to leave if he gets private tuition, which he can afford. We’ll just have to wait and see.”
The rest of the day was normal, with the orchestra being given notes for what they had missed the day before. Jacob sat with the boys at lunch. That evening, the Roses had fish and chips, then she and her mother put on jeans and old tops. With the vacuum in the back, they went and picked up Maisie and Gina.
At the site, Willow opened the gate and her father drove in, with the gate shut and locked behind him. Gina opened up the sliding door and turned the lights on in the long shed. They walked through to the workshop and then into the studio, turning everything on. With fresh eyes, the whole place was a mess, after over eighty people having spent all day there.
Willow went and opened the slider and the doors at the end. They made some space in the studio, then moved the amp stacks and speaker stacks into the space with the sack truck. Wendy and Maisie were folding the legs on the tables after wiping them down. Willow and Gina started moving the chairs, while Ashley took the sack truck to bring the tables through the studio. With the five of them, it was about an hour and all the chairs were in the store, along with all the tables. The extra microphones were collected and put on the pallets with the guitar cases, while all the stands and booms joined the tables and chairs.
Maisie was vacuuming the rest area, and Willow went over to the offices, finding a cleaning cupboard with a couple of brooms. She took them back to the studio and the two friends started at the bottom and swept towards the window. They moved the keyboards to be near the pile of amps, and set the two, new, amps to one side. When they were finished, the vacuum was used to gather all the dust and was emptied into a bin bag.
With the vacuum and small amps in the back of the car, the brooms returned to the office, everything turned off and locked up, Ashley backed the car out and Willow locked the gate behind them as they went home.
“Thanks for all your help, I didn’t realise what sort of mess they left.”
“It’s all right, love. It’s a bit like taking care of a second home. It’s been good to have been there, as it is becoming more like a place that is part of us.”
“Hopefully, it will be a part of us for some time.”
Friday, Xavier was told where everything was, and that they had cleaned the studio but hadn’t touched the control room equipment.
“I was planning to take a few cloths and some cleaner with me tonight. The set-up can wait until Jacob tells me what he wants. That was some session on Wednesday, I know that I learned a lot. I had Jim Jamieson over my shoulder the whole time, and he told me, yesterday, that we’re going to get a new post-production room. I suppose that the school has the money after all the sales through the website. I know that they’re getting a cut of the two BBC DVDs and the orchestral double album. He also asked me if I would become a teaching assistant in the processes until I move on. I’ll be leaving when I can, as I might have a job waiting for me with the company that supplied the sound for your tours. Frank and Dave have also been offered jobs.”
“That’s fantastic, Xavier, congratulations.”
“It’s all down to you guys for letting us be part of what you do. The experience of the two tours, and running the desk, have given all of us so much basic knowledge. The sound guy on the tour told me that I had the one attribute that was needed, and that was being unflappable.”
“I know that it was your voice we heard in the buds from Liverpool on. He must have decided that you were up for it by then. I hope to be hearing you again, as we move forward.”
“As a ten-piece, I expect.”
“That’s to become clearer after this weekend, I think.”
On Friday evening, Willow played her keyboard through the new amp, with a lot nicer sound than her old one. She expected that Gina may be doing the same with the other amp. Saturday morning, they had breakfast, put overnight bags in the car, and set off for London. They found the address and some parking in nearby Foley Street. They carried the bags up to the door next to the restaurant and Willow opened it to see a flight of stairs. At the top, there was a landing with a corridor and a sign that read ‘Apartment one and two’.
Another flight of stairs, doubling back on itself halfway, took them to apartments three and four. These were the two that she had the keys of. She opened apartment three and they went in. They all stopped and took it in. It was fully furnished, with modern Scandinavian furniture and a huge TV on the wall. The kitchen was equipped with good cookers and oven. There was a bedroom that looked out over the road junction outside, with a big double bed, fully made up, and an ensuite. Wendy gasped.
“It’s like a hotel suite! I love it.”
There was an odd door in the kitchen, and when Willow opened it, she saw a set of stairs. At the top, she walked into a full master bedroom in the attic, with a view out to the junction, a walk-in robe and an ensuite. There was a sitting room next door. Wendy had followed her there.
“It’s another hotel room. It’s all beautiful. How on earth did you get the lot for the price you paid?”
“It was on the market as a fully leased property, with the ones downstairs sold with hundred-year leases, so, they would have made around a million, each. These two were leased to a company as somewhere for visiting executives. I suspect that the vendor had an idea that the company would have to try and break the lease agreement as the parent company is in big trouble in America. The place was an investment property, so the wrangle of getting the lease money, or taking them to court to vacate, would have been a deciding factor. Luckily, we were able to let the lease lapse without any charge, and the furnishings were left as being written off on their books.”
They went back down the stairs, to find Ashley looking at papers that were on the kitchen table.
“With this being for executives, there is paperwork here for a parking station reserved space, not far away. I’ll get the car and park it there overnight. There’s a card for the payment boom, in their company name. There’s also a menu for the restaurant, with another card in the company name. I suppose that we should go down and tell them about the new ownership.”
“Let’s have a look at the other apartment, first.”
They went next door, to find an identically furnished apartment, in the mirror image, but without the corner window. They had a quick look around, with Ashley going up to check the attic suite. They took all the paperwork from this one, locked up, and went back to the first.
“OK, who wants the upstairs?”
“You can have it, love. It’s too risky for us old folk.”
“I know. It’s just that you’re afraid the bed creaks. Let’s check the kitchen for the breakfast makings. If the restaurant doesn’t do breakfast, we will have to get something in.”
“I’ll move the car first. My phone shows me that it’s not far away, a Q-Park near Harley Street. Just down the road and over Langham Place.”
“Hold on, Langham Place is where the Broadcasting house is. We ate at the Langham when we were here with the band. I didn’t realise that we would be so close. You go and park the car, Dad. There should be another space next to it. If you can find out when the rent’s due, we can pay for another year. Mum and I will be in the restaurant, seeing what we want for lunch, and finding out if these cards have any credit left.
Ashley went off to get the car and find the parking station. He had a smile as he thought of weekends he and his wife could have, here in the big city. Willow could look after herself if she was home. If she was on tour, that was another matter.
With the two apartments locked, Willow and her mother went into the restaurant, breathing in the smell of freshly cooked pizza. They went to the counter, where Willow showed them the two cards.
“Yes, ladies. Are you here for the company? They usually have guys in smart suits staying in the apartments.”
“I’m from WR Holdings. We bought the building last week.”
“Welcome, new landlords. We knew that the place was for sale. How did you get the cards?”
“The tenants have given up the lease, as the parent company is in trouble, so we’ve kept their two apartments for our company.”
“Right. Give me those cards. I’ll see if there’s anything owing on them.”
He came back with a smile.
“The debt on these was cleared last week. If you give me the new address to send invoices, whatever you order will go on your tab, paid monthly. I’ll take the details and there will be new cards for you when you come in next. How many will you want?”
“Can you give us eight, please. I don’t know who else will be staying here at the moment. This is the first chance we’ve had to have a look. Our agent should be getting in touch about where to pay the lease payments.”
“You look familiar, young lady. Have you been on the TV?”
“Only for a couple of interviews, one down the road at Broadcasting House. I’m Willow Rose, and this is my mother, Wendy.”
“Willow Rose! Oh my. Hey! Julia, come and meet our new landlady, your favourite singer.”
The waitress rushed over and was flustered at meeting Willow, but Willow assured her that she was just a normal girl and would be eating here whenever she stayed in town. They were shown a table, telling Julia that Mister Rose was off parking the car. They were brought drinks and the menus. They sat, sipping the drinks and thinking about things, until Ashley came in and sat down.
“I saw that Langham as I walked back. That’s one posh place. This is a handy area, just a walk to Oxford Circus and the tube. I had to go to Mortimer Street to get across Regent Street but walked back through Riding House Street and back up Langham Street. There’s a Victorian style pub down the road, with lead-light windows. This is a great place to stay. What’s happening with the cards?”
“We’ll get a bunch of new ones under WR Holdings, and there’ll be a monthly invoice. That means that you and Mum can have a romantic weekend with all food and accommodation supplied. Did you find out about the parking?”
“I did. I gave them our address to send the invoice when the next year is due in January. Have you ordered?”
“Waiting for you, Dad. Here comes Julia, now.”
They ordered a meal, and her parents had wine. They asked Julia how to get from here to good places to see.
“The guys that used to come to town always wanted to see the Tower of London and the Bridge. To get there, just go a couple of blocks north-east and get on the tube at Goodge Street to Embankment. If you come up there, you can visit the big gallery, but if you take the District line, you get off at Tower Hill. If you’re into history, you can just walk almost due east and you’ll find Bedford Square and the British Museum. That one will take you weeks to see all of it.”
Well filled with the knowledge that they could have breakfast as well, they took the walk to Mortimer Street and then down Tottenham Court Road to Bayley Street, so into Bedford Square with the imposing sight of the British Museum in front of them. On the way, the passed a clothing store and a nail salon; a large cosmetics store, and a breakfast café called Eggslut, which Ashley wanted to try one day.
They spent the afternoon in the museum, seeing the Rosetta Stone and the Elgin Marbles, having afternoon tea at the Great Court Restaurant. When they were tired, they walked back to the apartment, to unpack and freshen up. Willow sat on her bed and looked out on the hustle and bustle, so different from Stoneleigh. With all the places she had seen, home was always the quiet haven, but this could run a close second. They had dinner in the restaurant. It was quite noisy, but the food was good. Willow tried some seafood on pasta, and quite liked it.
They went up to the apartment and looked at what was available to watch in the DVD rack. Oddly enough, most were action movies, featuring mafia gangs in smart suits and lots of guns with seemingly endless bullet capacity. They did find one of the Die-Hard franchise that none of them had seen, and the huge screen almost felt like they were at the movies. There were some bottles of wine in the cooler, so her parents had a few glasses while Willow stayed on the cola she had found. After the film, she said goodnight and went up to her suite. There was enough light from the street to cleanse by, and she changed into her nightie and got into the big bed, falling asleep with just one thought, that she needed another Tiger to cuddle.
In the morning, they had a cooked breakfast in the restaurant, then found the tube station and ended up at Tower Hill, joining the throng that were there to see the Tower. Ashley said that he had always wanted to tour the Bridge, so they paid for the Bridge Tour, being shown the huge space that the counterweights filled when the bridge was open, other places, and the walk across the top span with views up and down the river. For Willow, this was the best part of the weekend. A place that isn’t usually open to the public, with views of the Tower on one side, and what used to be the Millennium Dome in the distance on the other. This was the middle of what people imagine when you say Britain. They ate chips from a street vendor, looking over the Thames.
They took the river trip to the Westminster Pier, had a look at Parliament and stood in wonder as the refurbished clock struck four, with Big Ben making their insides vibrate at such a close distance. They got the ferry back to the Embankment and took the tube back to Goodge Street. On the way back to the apartment, they stopped at a restaurant called Gaucho, a steak house which Ashley thought was the best he had eaten, outside of home, of course.
They went to the apartment, freshened up and packed the bags, taking them down to the street. Willow checked through the two apartments and made sure that everything was off, then locking up and joining Wendy to wait for the car. When Ashley arrived, it didn’t take long to load up and get strapped in. GPS helped them leave the city, and they were on their way home.
Willow turned on her phone for the first time in two days and saw that she had a few messages. One was from Xavier, which said ‘JE & bimbo sung folk, but paid well.’ One was from Wilhelm that was short and sharp. ‘J to be paid out, will send email with details. Walked in studio to find them smoking pot. Not happy.’ There was another from Peter. ‘Jacob has advised he is leaving band. Please call to discuss.’ Yet another was from Jill. ‘Launch on show next week. BBC to record. Will need you and a few others to talk.’
As they were cruising on the freeway, she rang Jill.
“Hi Jill, it’s Willow.”
“Yes, thanks for calling. The album and DVD will be in the shops on Monday, and we’ll send some to you by courier. BBC want to record an interview with you next Saturday afternoon. Can you get down here?”
“I have just bought a place within walking distance of Broadcasting House. I can bring another four, if we get my parents to drive both of their cars. I think I’ll be able to get Herb, Nancy, Brent, and Gina. That’s most of the front line plus another girl.”
“That must be some place you have.”
“It’s two apartments, sleeping four in each. With a restaurant on the ground floor.”
“Is there parking?”
“The previous tenants left cards for two parking spaces in a Q-Park, a stone’s throw from the BBC.”
“All right. Email me with the details, you’ll need to be there by lunch.”
“If you want, I’ll book a table for us downstairs, will it be just you, or you and Clive?”
“Make that for the two of us. See you for lunch on Saturday.”
She ended the call and Wendy turned to look at her.
“What’s up, love?”
“Jacob and his girlfriend recorded folk music, and his father walked in to find them smoking pot.”
“That will put the cat among the pigeons.”
“Peter has been told that Jacob has left the band. I’ll need to call him next.”
“And that call?”
“There is to be an interview to launch ‘Greenhouse’ and the ‘Live in Berlin’ DVD next Saturday. If you can drive us, we can all stay in the two apartments on Saturday night. I’ll see if Herb, Nancy and Brent can join us, along with Gina. You can go off and do your own thing or sit in a radio studio to see us interviewed.”
“That will be nice. I like that big bed. We’ll have to get the laundry done after that. I didn’t see a washing machine.”
“I saw a note in the kitchen. There’s a laundry service that the restaurant uses, we just leave the sheets and pillowcases in bags, and they’ll be ready a couple of days later. I’ll call them to ask about the procedure when I book a table for nine.”
She rang Peter.
“Hi. Peter, it’s Willow.”
“What happened, Willow. Jacob is bailing out.”
“We became a true hard rock band in Berlin. The DVD and the latest album will be in the stores Monday, and we have an interview for the BBC on Saturday. Jacob was always a folkie, and the new look doesn’t suit him. It won’t matter with the line-up, as we can rock it without him.”
“So, how do we work it?”
“Draw a line under ‘Greenhouse Varieties’ and the DVD and pay him one eleventh from all album and DVD sales up to then and split it ten ways after that. There may be a problem with an album we did record with him but hasn’t been released yet. We can work that out at the time.”
“All right. As long as the rest of you keep up the good work.”
When they got home, they unloaded the bags and went inside. They changed for bed and sat in the kitchen with hot chocolate. Ashley grinned.
“Well, that was an interesting time away, and we get to do it all again next week. I could learn to like this life.”
“At least we had plenty of walking to get rid of all that rich food, hubby.”
In her room, Willow turned her laptop on. Wilhelm had calculated that Jacob had paid seven hundred thousand into the original syndicate, and there had been no sales that would add a dividend. So, if each of the ten paid him seventy thousand, he would be paid his due. There was over two million in the account at the moment, so he was going to transfer the money from the syndicate account. As far as the bigger syndicate was concerned, he would transfer the other five hundred thousand from the smaller syndicate and give them a free month from any input. It would still leave just over a million in the account without having to worry the new members. Willow replied with her agreement.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 12
On Monday morning, they talked about Jacob’s melt-down. Gina had received the email from Wilhelm and the one from Peter. Willow stayed quiet about the drugs. She did ask Gina about going to London during the next weekend and told her that accommodation had been organised.
Jacob wasn’t at the school that day, and Willow went to speak to Herb, Nancy, and Brent about going to London for a launch interview. They all agreed that what Wilhelm had suggested was the quick and easy way to see Jacob leave. She also went to see the Gees, who had also been contacted and would be staying at the Langham for the interview. Not all were going, only Geoff, Zara and Garry.
Monday, when she arrived home, there was a box on the porch. She took it in and left it on the kitchen table as she went up to her room to change into something casual. Back downstairs, she opened it up. There was a copy of the Gees album and the ‘Live in Paris’ DVD. There were six copies of their album and six of the ‘Live in Berlin’ DVD.
A note told her that all the band members had received the same package, with the Gees getting a single copy of Summer Rose discs. She put a copy of the album and DVD aside for her grandmother, and another of each in the sitting room, next to the music centre, along with the Gees products. Then she put the other four copies of each in her bag for tomorrow.
She started peeling and dicing for tonight’s meal, checking what they had in the fridge. There were half a dozen pork sausages, so she cut up the potatoes to cook as mash. When her parents arrived home from work, they cooked the sausages and veg. After the meal, Willow gave her mother the two discs to send to her grandmother, then suggested that they may like to see the DVD.
They took their mugs into the sitting room and Ashley turned the TV and music centre on. Willow slid the DVD into the slot.
“Now, you did hear the album in its original form, so we don’t need to hear it again. This DVD was filmed in Berlin, at the end of the short tour. Berlin was odd, because the audience were all hard rockers, and looked like it. We reflected their own likes, and it made us play a bit differently. I have to warn you, this is Summer Rose like you haven’t heard before.
She sat down and pressed the play button, keen to see what had been produced. The show opened with vision of the crowd arriving. Ashley chuckled.
“I see what you mean. This looks like a massive biker convention.”
“That venue only held seventeen thousand. At times, it sounded like a hundred thousand.”
There must have been a cameraman behind the stage, but Willow couldn’t remember seeing one. There was vision of the band getting ready for the performance, with each one named. Then, they were heading for the stage and the scene became the audience, chanting for Sommer Rose, until there was a big cheer as the band walked out on stage. From then on, it was the full ninety minutes of the show, with no breaks and no lessening of the high pressure. Ashley and Wendy were cuddled on the sofa, agog at what they were looking at. Willow was looking very closely at the scenes that showed Jacob. To her, it was obvious that he was well out of his comfort zone, while the rest of the band was finding theirs.
When the final notes of ‘Spitter’ died and the crowd roared like wild animals, the credits rolled as the band took their bows, with Jacob only half-hearted. He was the first to start heading for the rear of the stage, while Herb, Gina, and Willow were still waving to the fans. When the screen went dark Ashley stood to hug her, and her mother asked if she still had that leather outfit. Before they went to bed, Willow asked her mother if she could pick her up after school, the next day, because there were a few things she wanted to get for her suite in the attic.
On Tuesday, they spoke about the power of their performance. Gina had also seen Jacob’s attitude. Willow went to give a copy of the DVD to the Head, who thanked her for it, telling her that Xavier had delivered the two master recordings the day before. At lunch time, most of the band had extra albums and DVDs to hand out to their friends. Willow gave a DVD to the twins, to remind them of the show that they had seen. She asked Jim about playing at the church on Sunday, as they would be in London. Xavier gave her three copies of the Messiah CD for her collection. After school, she waited for Wendy, and they went into Coventry and spent a little while in the shop where she had bought Tiger. There wasn’t one on the shelves, but there was another Shaun. She came away with some posters and the Shaun. That evening, she rang the restaurant and booked a big table for lunch on Saturday.
On Wednesday, Jacob still hadn’t shown, and Gina, Willow, Nancy, and Zara spoke about what they would wear for the interview. It may be for radio, but you have to make an impression. They decided on the cocktail dresses that they had worn in the Paris show. After school, they had the orchestra session to play the Messiah right through. All the soloists, and all the choir were there, and Mister Bamborough had organised for the stage to be set up in the same way that they had recorded. By the time that they had set up and tuned, there were quite a few interested teachers in the stalls, along with most of the cast of ‘Wicked’, with the parents who were picking them up.
Willow didn’t give any instructions, just sitting after they had tuned, and waited for the conductor to set them off. They all knew what they had to do, now, and did it well. With a short break for a comfort stop, they moved into the second part, with the audience all standing for the Hallelujah Chorus, as is the tradition. That does have one advantage, as the audience are on their feet at the end of that section, so the applause is magnified. After another break, they played the last part, and every voice gave their all with the extended Amen.
The stage was left set up for the following week, when there would be a paying audience and some invited supporters of the school. Willow left her violin in her locker for then and joined Gina to leave. It was quite a while navigating all of the teachers and parents who wanted to congratulate all the players, including the Vines. They finally found Sebastian, who told them that they had really nailed it.
On the way home, he told them that they had expanded his musical knowledge since he had started driving them, and Gina had a copy of the Berlin DVD for him, to expand his mind even further. On Thursday morning he had it with him so they could sign it for him. He told them that it must have been good to be there, and that it was far better than even the shows earlier in the year.
On Friday, they arranged the pick-ups for the next morning. Wendy would follow Ashley in her car, both with a card for parking. That evening, overnight bags were packed and in the back of the car, with Willow’s containing a city Shaun and a few rolled up posters.
Saturday morning, they left home, in convoy. Stopping at Gina’s home to pick her up, she got in with Willow, her bag and garment bag in the back. They went into Coventry and picked up Herb, Brent, and Nancy. Brent got in with Gina, while the other two were in the back of Wendy’s car. The drive down to London was easy, until they reached the city. Wendy stayed close and Ashley drove with one eye on the mirror.
They stopped in Foley Street and the band got out, the boys carrying Wendy and Ashley’s bags with their own. It was a quick operation, and the two cars left as Willow was leading them to the door, opening it with her key.
“Go on in, right to the top. We have number three and four.”
When they reached the top landing, Willow went to the front and opened number three, putting her bag, and garment bag inside, with her posters. The boys put her parent’s bags on the floor.
“Right, thank you, lads. If you follow me, I’ll open number four. This will be your apartment for the night.”
She opened that one up and gave Gina the key.
“There are two double bedrooms. As far as anyone else is concerned, the boys are doubling up down here, and the girls are in the attic. How you sleep is entirely up to you. For the weekend, Gina has the key, so my mother will have to knock. If that happens, make sure that you’re presentable. The bedroom is through here.”
She opened the door to the bedroom and pointed out the ensuite.
“There’s a door in the kitchen that goes up to the other suite. That has ensuite and a sitting room. There should be some drinks in the fridge, but you don’t need food because we eat in the restaurant downstairs. There should be cards waiting for me when we go in. There is a monthly invoice for our meals there, so order what you want.”
Brent and Gina found the door to the attic and went up with their bags, coming back later with big smiles. Willow went back to her apartment and put her parent’s bags in their room. She took her things up to the attic and hung the garment bag in the wardrobe, next to the dressing gown she had left behind last week. Putting City Shaun on the bed, she went back to the next door. Gina wanted to know all about the apartments, so the five of them sat in the kitchen and Willow explained how they came to be here.
“We are only a couple of hundred yards to Broadcasting House and a half an hour stroll to either the University of London or the British Museum. There are lots of other places nearby, and a tube station which can get us into the City. We went to the Tower last week when we came down to see what I’d purchased.”
“Did you buy the two apartments?”
“No. I bought the whole building. The restaurant is leased, and the two other apartments were sold with a hundred-year lease. These two used to be leased by a company to house visiting American executives. That’s why they’re so well furnished. We’re having lunch downstairs, with Jill and Clive, before we head to the BBC. The Gees are staying at the Langham. Now, I’ve been a bit naughty, and booked seats at the Novello, tonight, to see Mamma Mia. I did book ten, so the three Gees can come as well. Is that all right?”
Brent laughed.
“Do you think that anyone would mind if we sang along?”
“I’m sure that a lot of the audience will be singing along.”
They heard her parents arrive, so Willow left them to unpack and went to unpack her own things. Wendy was happy that she had driven down without any problems, and that the two cars were inside and under cover. Willow went down to the restaurant to speak to the owners about the new cards. On the middle landing, her phone buzzed, and she stopped to take the call.
“Hello, Willow, it’s Jill.”
“Hi Jill. We’ve all arrived and settling in. What can I do for you?”
“I’m with the three Gees, and I wonder if we could add them to the lunch. Have you booked anything for dinner?”
“Not yet. I’m on my way down to see the restaurant, now. I’ll add another three, if I can. I can book for ten for dinner, if they want to eat with us. I’ve got ten tickets to Mama Mia, so they can stay with us this evening. It’s an easy tube ride to get near, with a short walk.”
“All right. I’ll get them dressed for the interview and bring them to the restaurant. They can stay with you after lunch, and they have transport home tomorrow afternoon. See you for lunch.”
As Willow was standing there, a man came out of one of the apartments. When he saw her end the call, he spoke.
“Hello. Are you visiting? You look too young to be an executive. They always look like something out of a mafia movie.”
“That accounts for all the DVDs that we found. We watched a Die-Hard last week. No, I’m the new building owner, bought through my holding company. I plan to use the two upper apartments as a London base. There’s quite a crowd of us there this weekend. We have an appointment at Broadcasting House this afternoon. How are you finding the life here?”
“It’s very handy. I’m a lecturer at the University of London, and the other apartment is another of my colleagues. It’s a nice walk, most mornings. My wife works in the City, and his works as a PR Consultant. You look like you’re still at school?”
“I’m in third year at the moment. So are my friends. My parents drove us down from Coventry. I’m just going down to see if I can expand our table for lunch, we have three others joining us, who are staying at the Langham. What do you teach?”
“Business Studies and Management. My colleague teaches courses on promoting and advertising. I’ll join you on the way down, I’m going to pick up the bags for the laundry service. Carlo, in the restaurant, has those, and puts them on the landing when they’re returned.”
“That’s something that I needed to sort out.”
She led them down and into the restaurant. As they walked in, Julia saw her and came over to give her a hug.
“Willow! I got the DVD of the live show in Berlin. It was fantastic! I’ve almost worn it out by playing it so many times. I also got the Paris show by G-Force. That Zara has a wonderful voice.”
“You can tell her that when she joins us for lunch, that’s what I want to change.”
Her companion looked embarrassed.
“I’m sorry I didn’t recognise you. One doesn’t expect to leave your apartment to find Willow Rose on the landing.”
Willow chuckled.
“It’s perfectly all right. We had a short time where we were two normal people. I’m all right at school, with the people that I know, but it sometimes gets odd when little girls want me to sign their tee-shirt.”
The manager come out from behind the counter.
“I see that you’ve met the Professor. Are you looking for laundry bags, Prof?”
“I am, Carlo. Willow wants to sort some out for her floor as well.”
“If you can give me a few minutes, I’ll write out the tags. Both apartments for you, Willow?”
“Yes, Carlo. We have a full house today. There are four others from the band in number four. I did book for a table of ten, can I make that twelve, please. We will be joined by three members of another band for lunch and dinner. Would you like to join us, with your wife and friends, Prof?”
“If it’s all right with you, Willow. Both our wives have the two early albums, so sitting with you would make their day. I’ll try to get them to act like normal people.”
“Just like adults would be good. With a lot of ‘normal’ people, the result is usually tears and hyperventilation.”
He grinned.
“OK, adult mode initiated. My name is Theodore, usually Ted, unless you’re a student, when it’s sir. My colleague is Kevin, and our wives are Alicia and Hazel.”
Carlo rushed off to move tables around. When he came back, he had four big plastic bags, two blue and two green. He gave the green ones to Willow.
“Just bring them down when you leave, and I’ll put them aside to be picked up. I have the door key, so will leave them on your landing when they come back. It will be just sheets and pillowcases, I expect.”
“It will, Carlo. Do you have those cards for me, please?”
“They came back yesterday. I put them by the register. Eight cards in the name of WR Holdings. If you’re covering today’s meals, it will be on the invoice at the end of next month.”
“That will be good. Where are you putting us, today. Last week was a bit noisy.”
“I’m setting you up in the cellar. It’s a lot quieter with the curtained wall and no windows. You would know all about echo reduction, I expect.”
“OK, I’ll see you, with all the others, for lunch.”
She picked up the cards and followed Ted up the stairs. At his landing, he stopped.
“Do you mind me introducing you to the others? It would help them get over the shock.”
He opened his door and called out.
“Alicia, darling. You would never guess who I met on the stairs.”
His wife came to the door and saw Willow. Her face was a picture of surprise. She rushed forward and gave her a hug, squashing the bags between then. When she stepped back, there were tears in her eyes. Willow grinned.
“Well Professor, I think that this proves that Alicia is normal.”
He laughed as he went to knock on the other door. When it was opened, a woman stood there.
“Hi, Ted. What can I help you with? We’re all out of sugar.”
“Hazel, I just want you to meet our new landlord. We’ve been invited to have lunch with her and some friends today.”
Hazel looked out at Willow, and she looked as if she was trying to remember something.
“Hello. You look familiar. Did you come around selling things for Guide Week?”
Alicia giggled.
“Hazel, my scatty friend. This is Willow Rose, leader of the Summer Rose band.”
“Wow. What are you doing on our landing with laundry bags in your hand?”
“I bought the building, and I’m staying upstairs tonight. We have an interview at the BBC this afternoon.”
“Did you bring that lad, Herb? If he was five years older, I’d leave Kevin for him.”
Willow turned to Ted, and he laughed.
“By your gauge, Willow, my wife is normal, and Hazel is adult. Who would have thought it. We’re invited for lunch in the cellar, Hazel. Then you and Kevin can try and work out how Willow and her band have gone from unknown, to the biggest names in the country in less than a year. It could be a good case study for Kevin.”
“You will be able to talk to Jill and Clive, from our label. A lot of our fame is down to them with the tours they’ve organised.”
She went up to the upper level, finding her parents had arrived. She gave her mother a bag.
“Sheets and pillowcases when we leave. One bag for us, and one for next door. We’re in the cellar for lunch, and we have added the Gees and our neighbours downstairs. Both the men are lecturers at the University of London.”
“That could be handy in a few years.”
She took the other bag and knocked on the door. Gina opened it.
“Got a bag for all the sheets and pillowcases tomorrow. They will be brought back in the week and left on the landing.”
“After all night with Brent they may need washing. I think Herb and Nancy have already been at it.”
“I just met one of our downstairs neighbours who told me that if he was five years older, she would leave her husband for him. They’ll be joining us for lunch. We know their type. Both men are lecturers, and their wives are an office worker and a PR Consultant.”
“Lunch with them will be barrel of laughs, I’m sure.”
“I had a call from Jill. She’s bringing the three Gees for lunch. They will be glammed up for the interview, so I expect that we had better be ready to go around to the BBC as soon as we finish lunch. I hope that the napkins are big enough to protect our dresses.”
“All right. I’ll tell Nancy when she surfaces. I’ve been looking at that big TV. It has normal signal and a satellite dish. I may have to look for one at home.”
“Don’t bother with the movies. Everyone has told me that the guys who used to stay here looked like extras for ‘The Godfather’. All we could find, last week, were movies that they may have even had parts in.”
She went back to the other apartment and up to her own room. The shower was luxurious, and she felt good when she dried off. She had brought underwear suitable for the dress. She thought it was good to be able to wear a stage item for normal use. It needed tights and heels, and she looked in the mirror and smiled at her reflection. She was good looking, rich, and free. What on earth could go wrong?
Back downstairs, her mother saw her and patted her shoulder.
“My talented and beautiful daughter. I hope that they have big napkins.”
“I thought that myself, Mum. Are you and Dad coming to the interview? You may find it interesting to see a well-oiled show being put together.”
“Of course we will. What have you planned for dinner?”
“I’d booked downstairs for ten, now more with the Gees and our neighbours. I do have ten tickets for Mama Mia but can’t be certain to get others.”
“That’s all right. Your father is taking me out, and we’re going to see if we can get late tickets for ‘The Mousetrap’, so the ten of you can have dinner and a night out by yourselves. Just be careful, you don’t have any security to look after you.”
“We’ll tube down, and Uber back. Nothing has been planned for tomorrow, yet.”
When they all went down to the restaurant, Jill was already at the table with the others, including their neighbours, and they all sat down. Clive commented on how good they all looked, for radio. Hazel laughed.
“There will be photos taken. You don’t want your stars to look dowdy.”
She then introduced Kevin to them, and then went on to introduce Ted and Alicia to those who hadn’t met them yet. The Roses had naturally arranged themselves with the other adults, and soon talk was flowing about work and the state of the world. Clive was telling both bands about today’s interview. It would centre around the latest tour and both DVDs, which were already selling well in both Britain and Europe. Nothing was mentioned about Jacob until they were walking towards the BBC.
Jill had lagged back with Willow as she was talking about things. Willow gave her a copy of the Messiah session, and then Jill brought up what was on her mind, quietly.
“I had a CD sent to me this week. It was directly from Jacob. He played acoustic guitar and sang duets with a girl called Anita. It wasn’t bad, just so last century. I didn’t want to upset him, so haven’t done anything yet.”
“If you look at the Berlin show, you will see that his heart wasn’t in it. He has asked to be paid out of our two property syndicates, which has happened. He has told Peter that he isn’t part of Summer Rose, and that recording was done with him dealing with Xavier directly. He hasn’t been at school all week, and his father walked in on that recording to find him smoking pot. Anita is a sister to one of the drinking members of the Hikers, who is known to deal in weed, or so Racheal told me.”
“Right. So, it wouldn’t bother you if I sent it back with a note that it isn’t commercial. I thought that you two were a couple.”
“For a while, we were. He went all ape-man in Paris and that’s when the rot set in. He says he met her at the going-away party that the Hikers put on and turned up with her at the opening night of our ‘Wicked’ show. I’m wondering if he’s been on something for a while.”
“Could be. If a question is asked today, is there part of the DVD that shows him looking different?”
“Just watch the end of the final song, to the end of the credits. He looked as if he wanted to be somewhere else. Now, he has the opportunity to be there!”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 13.
The new neighbours had expressed a desire to see inside Broadcasting House, so it was a big group who were escorted to the studio where the show was to be recorded. It was set up for TV, and the presenter apologised for the change in format.
“Since you were last here, you’ve all gone from strength to strength. This will be a special on both One and Three, as your appeal covers both demographics. If you can go with our make-up girl, she’ll give you the matt skin that looks better.”
They were taken away, while the adults sat in the front row. After about five minutes, the other seats were filled with people who had either paid for a seat or had won it on a radio promotion. Jill and Clive were filled with dread, as this had been organised without their knowledge. For the other six, it was all new and very interesting. Eventually, the floor manager called for quiet and laid down the ground rules to only applaud when the sign was lit, and to stop when it went out. Then the doors were closed, and the director counted down to the opening of the show. The presenter looked at a camera and spoke.
“Good evening, ladies and gentlemen, and welcome to our special interview with members of two bands who have shot to prominence this year. Over summer, they toured the country for charity, raising over forty million pounds for the disadvantaged in the cities where they performed. Recently, they had a lightning tour in Europe, taking in Copenhagen, Paris and Berlin. Both bands have released DVDs of shows, recorded during that tour. Please welcome members of G-Force and Summer Rose!”
There was prolonged applause as the eight of them came out. There were two long couches, one each side of the presenter. The three couples sat, with Garry sitting with Geoff and Zara, leaving one only other seat next to him, closest to the presenter, so Willow sat there. The interview was mainly about the latest tour, and the making of the two DVDs, which were held up for all to see. Everyone had a say, with Zara saying how she started singing with G-Force having been in the school choir. Nancy spoke about starting to play in the dance band and how things had moved on from there. They had been talking for over a half an hour. Then, the presenter asked an interesting question.
“I know that you all go to the Blue Coat School in Coventry, but there must have been a single moment that changed everything, to find you where you now are.”
Garry chuckled.
“One moment, you say. Well, it all started in the summer before last. I was playing bass with my friends, Geoff, Gerry, and Grant, as the G-Force. One of the lads in our class played organ and suggested that we put on a show where we played Deep Purple numbers. On the day before we were going to perform, he went down with measles. Willow was being shown the school, not even having started there, and she stepped in to play organ for us the following evening. As they say in the classics, the rest is history.”
There was applause, and then Herb wanted to continue the story.
“After that, G-Force was asked to play again in the next year. I wanted to put together a show with my friends, who are now the front row of Summer Rose. Willow stepped away so that Jim could return, and worked with us on a set that was all Moody Blues. We also worked on what became our Kansas album. The G-Force set, and the Moody Blues set were recorded by the school technical guys, and a mistake was made in the ordering, with hundreds more turning up at the school. We put that show on, in the school, before Christmas, with G-Force playing blues, and us playing Moody Blues. We were just six of us at that time, with Willow and Gina providing the full sound like an orchestra.”
The presenter looked at his notes.
“And now, G-Force has Zara singing, very beautifully, and Summer Rose is now eleven strong, with a very hard-working wind section. I believe that most of you are in the school orchestra. We did introduce two BBC DVDs that have been produced with most of you in the line-up. One was shown on New Year’s Eve, last year, and the other was recorded at the Proms and is scheduled for a viewing in the run-up to Christmas, this year. You have all been very busy. Your label has released a CD of the orchestra recorded at Abbey Road, and I’ve been told that there are two more albums of organ music about to be released, with Willow Rose and Gina Summer playing organs at Kings College, Cambridge, and York Minster.”
Zara laughed.
“Don’t forget that we’re performing the Messiah in the Coventry Cathedral next weekend. We recorded it a week ago.”
There was more applause.
The presenter looked at them as a light came on over a band set-up, with amps, a keyboard, guitars on stands, and a drum kit.
“I hope that you will allow us a little more of your time. Last time I interviewed you, Willow gave us a wonderful solo rendition of two of her hit songs. I know that we don’t have either full band here, but can you indulge us, please.”
Both Jill and Clive had dry mouths. This could be where everything unravelled. The eight stood and walked over to the instruments. Garry suggested that they should do something from the very beginning, and Herb said that he knew ‘Smoke on the Water’. Willow went to the organ, Brent sat at the drums, Geoff and Herb put on the guitars and Garry strapped on the bass. Nancy, Gina, and Zara went to a microphone. Geoff spoke into his microphone.
“This is something from the very first show that Garry and I played, with Willow on organ.”
He hit the first notes of ‘Smoke on the Water’ and then they recreated that iconic piece of music, with Garry playing rumbling bass, Brent thumping out the beat on the drums, Willow doing her best Jon Lord, Geoff and Herb swapping riffs, and the three girls adding backing to the title phrase.
When they finished, the audience couldn’t wait for the sign and were on their feet and shouting out. Willow’s parents, and the two from the label, had heard it before, but it was something totally new for the other four. Jill and Clive looked at each other.
“They’ve gone and done it again. That will make the music media when the show is aired.”
“I know. Why on earth were we worried. What’s the story with this Messiah?”
“Willow gave me a copy of that, recorded in a beautiful work of art that’s up to the minute. There will be a recording on the school website. The BBC will be recording the show in the Cathedral, but I suppose we could issue a CD.”
“Bring it to work. We can get Abbey Road to make it saleable. We could put it on the market in a couple of weeks before the TV show goes on. Knowing the BBC, it will be three or four months before they issue the DVD.”
“You’re wicked, Clive.”
“You’ve said that before.”
The studio slowly cleared, as the eight went off to be cleansed, with four getting fresh make-up. The presenter told them that it was a fantastic show, thanking them for their informative and interesting stories. When they returned to the studio, Wendy gave Willow and Gina hugs, and Hazel singled Herb out for a special hug, much to Alicia’s delight as she captured it on her phone.
They left Broadcasting House and strolled back towards the restaurant. Kevin asked what the station would do with the interview, so Clive enlightened him.
“Right from the beginning, there are places where they can fit in clips, some of the charity tour. When someone mentioned a moment in time, they can fit something in then, say, when Gina spoke about Willow writing ‘Finding a Friend’ for her. When he held up the two DVDs, they can play part, or a full, song from each show. We went in there expecting a radio interview and were surprised when it turned out to be for TV. It makes the interview ten times the punch, so it turned out well. If you want to see a twelve-year-old Willow playing that Deep Purple, all the shows can be bought through the Blue Coat website. That finish will be in the final cut, be sure of it. If I’m any judge, I’d expect the credits will be during the last couple of minutes of the song, with it clear for the final. I expect that there’ll be several seconds of the audience going mad.”
“I teach business promotion and advertising skills, and that session had everything in the course, do you train them up, beforehand?”
“Kevin. There is no way we could train Willow. She’s a force of her own. She has done things, in the past, that would make you run for the hills if you knew about it before. She hatched a plan, with Zara and Herb, to get sixty thousand singing ‘You’ll Never Walk Alone’ after the encore of the show in Liverpool. It made your hairs stand up, and I’ll never forget it.”
Back at the restaurant, the eight band members went down to the cellar to relax before dinner. Jill and Clive congratulated them on a job well done, Ashley and Wendy went up to change for their own night out, and the other two couples went to one of their apartments to discuss what they had experienced that day. One topic was the sweet and polite girl who turned into a banshee behind the keyboard.
The ten had a dinner, said goodnight to Jill and Clive, and then the eight walked to the tube station to head for the theatre, looking just like four couples out for the evening. With all the others paired off, it was natural to walk with Garry. Some people took second looks, but who would consider that a group of pop stars would be riding the tube. At the theatre, Willow showed her paperwork to the ticket office, and they received the ten tickets. Willow got Garry to give the two they didn’t need to a forlorn looking couple looking for a scalper.
The show was cheesy but fun, and the audience sung along with almost every song. When they came out, Geoff used his phone to call up a couple of Ubers, with four in each one. Willow and Garry were squeezed in with Zara in the back seat of one. He had his arm around her shoulders. She chuckled.
“What’s so funny, Willow?”
“I’m thinking back to that first time we were on that stage. You were so friendly and supportive, and the first guy to give me a hug.”
“That’s because you were such a great performer, and you came alive that night. How could I not hug you. What you’ve done since has been amazing.”
“What we’ve all done since has been amazing for a bunch of schoolkids.”
“Don’t sell yourself short. You have more talent in your fingers than most of us have in our whole body. I’m just proud to know you and be your friend.”
“Thank you, Garry, that means a lot to me. I enjoy having friends as nice as you.”
They arrived at the restaurant and Garry got out and helped her get to her feet.
“Thank you, kind sir. It’s been a fun evening, where we were entertained, rather than being entertainers. I’ll see you in school.”
She went up on her toes and kissed his cheek. He then bent down and properly kissed her.
“I’ve been wanting to do that for months, but there was always another guy in the way.”
“Well, there isn’t now. Perhaps we can have other times out.”
“That would be good.”
He kissed her again and then she opened the door and gave him a wave as he got back in the car. As she stood, the other Uber arrived with the other two couples. Herb paid the driver, and they all went up to the apartments. Gina and Nancy gave Willow hugs and said goodnight. She told them that breakfast will be in the restaurant, and they entered the apartments.
Willow saw that her parents weren’t back yet, so she went up to her room and made ready for bed. She didn’t pull the curtains as there was enough light from the street to see. She got into bed and cuddled City Shaun, and told him that another guy had kissed her, and that she liked it, a lot.
The next morning, she had jeans and a jumper to wear, hanging the dress back in the garment bag. She took care with her make-up, wanting to look like any other girl, and went down to fetch the laundry bag. She stripped her bed and put everything in the bag, then had a little look around, finding clean bedclothes in a drawer in the wardrobe. She remade the bed, ready for when she was back again.
She put the bag by the other bedroom door, hearing her father’s soft snoring. She let herself out and went down and into the restaurant, where she found Kevin and Hazel, Ted and Alicia having breakfast.
“Good morning, Willow. Would you like to join us? This is a common sight, a sort of Sunday ritual to have breakfast together.”
She sat at their table and Carlo came out to take her order.
“How did you enjoy the show, yesterday?”
“Very interesting to see how they put together a show. Clive told us how they would beef it up with clips. It will be good to watch it, knowing that we were there.”
“You may even see yourselves, Ted. There was a fixed camera on the wall behind the presenter, so they would have audience shots.”
“How many times have you played that Purple song? It was fantastic.”
“Twice, I think. The first on the day before the show, and the other in the show itself. We never put it into our act, as we were much quieter for the first albums.”
“How on earth do you remember all the songs?”
“I have the ability to be able to remember almost everything I’ve ever heard. When we play for a dinner dance, we can play for up to four hours without repeating anything. Our Headmistress thinks that it’s an aid to retaining knowledge. Most of us in the band are ‘A’ students.”
“Was buying this building your first foray into property?”
“My first on my own. I love it here, being so close to everything. We have a syndicate in the band, where we pool money for property. We have a small factory in Coventry, the site in Leicester where we’ve built our studio, and we’ve not long bought a big place in Small Heath where we have two tenants. I have got interested in property management and was thinking about taking it when I get to University, instead of concentrating on music.”
“You could do courses with us, as long as you’re eligible, before you finish High School. We do have on-line access. If you let me have your email, I’ll send you the details and an entry exam. Pass that and you can study, after we get a letter of recommendation from your Head.”
She pulled he notepad out of her bag and wrote the WR Holdings address.
“That’s my company. My parents and the accountant are the responsible adults. If you have any problems here, just let me know. My own email can get a bit clogged with unwanted rubbish, and I could delete something accidentally.”
The others walked in and joined them. Hazel pretended to be grief-stricken when she saw Herb and Nancy holding hands, much to her husband’s amusement. He asked them what they were doing that day. When they said that they hadn’t planned anything, he asked if they would like a guided tour of the University.
They agreed that it would be interesting, so, when they had all finished breakfast, they went up to put warm jackets and beanies on. Willow found her parents in the kitchen, greeting the morning with a hot cup of tea. She told them where she was going, and to drop the bag with Carlo when their sheets had been added. Ashley told her that if they had seen everything by one, to meet them at the Gaucho Steakhouse for lunch before heading home.
They all went to the university area. Kevin explained that there were seventeen colleges that made the whole, with outlying colleges as far away as Paris. The central college here was where humanities were taught. Kevin taught courses at the Birkbeck College, over a range of studies in Consumer and Buyer Behaviour, Digital and Social Media Marketing, and degree lectures in Marketing. After looking around that building, Ted led them to the building behind it, the SOAS University, where he taught courses in Business and Financial Management. He explained that this campus taught a lot of students from different ethnic backgrounds, with a view that they would go out in the world and improve their home countries.
“One of the other colleges linked to the University is the London College of Music, if you want to take your music studies to the next level. That’s some way to the west of us, and you would need to take the tube. It’s not hard once you’ve got used to it.”
They all left with lots of literature. Willow told the others about Gaucho’s, so they walked there to find Wendy and Ashley saving a big table. Willow found herself sitting between Kevin and Ted. Ted was asking her about what she really wanted to do for further studies.
“That TV presenter said that the two of you had made an album with Kings College. Did they show you around?”
“They did. We were there for a few days and got to see several colleges. They have a couple that are female centric, and we were urged to consider going there. I have grandparents who live nearby and my parents both went to Cambridge, so it was assumed that I would follow in their footsteps.”
“But you’re finding an independent streak?”
“Good Lord, Professor. You’re so erudite! Yes, I am finding my own way to do things.”
“We were told, yesterday, how you got sixty thousand singing the Liverpool club song once.”
“That was funny. It was three times, actually. The second had all the first team on stage with us, and the third had all the women’s team on stage. It made the newspapers.”
“So, why business studies when you have a great future in the music?”
“I want to learn how to make what I earn work for me. I want to be independent and live my own life, taking up offers to play that look good. Being at school has removed us from the constant grind of tours and having to keep producing hits. We’ve been lucky that we’ve made albums that sell, but, after a while, that will become work. Being a pop star isn’t all beer and skittles. You have to go where your manager gets you work, be happy and cheerful all the time, and there are no ‘down’ days. One bad show and you’re talked about as fading.”
“That’s a cynical view, but true. There are some that stay popular and draw the crowds, and some who end up playing at the end of some forsaken pier in summer. At least you and your band are investing in property. Look, I’ll send you the paperwork. Fill it in, do the assessment and get a letter from your Head. We may be able to start you off with a certificate course on-line, which would be a certain entry to study here after you leave school.”
“Thank you, Ted, or should I now say Sir. That would let me see what I’m happy with. The Head has told me that I’m pencilled in to take next year’s first-year musical again. We just presented a modern version of ‘Wicked’. It should be available through the school web site.”
“I’ll look that one up. I’m keen to get a copy of that show where you played Deep Purple.”
“That one also has me playing violin in a quartet. I’m sitting in the Leader’s seat next week when we perform the Messiah.”
“Is that also on the website?”
“Yes. You will have to be quick if you want seats, as we are filling fast.”
After lunch, they walked back to the apartments. For Willow, the weekend had been far better than she could have hoped. The occupants of number four had filled a plastic bag with linen and had all found fresh to make up the beds. Willow had to show Wendy where the clean sheets were and helped her make that bed. Gina went to give Willow back the key and Willow handed her one of the restaurant cards, and a key to the front door.
“Keep the keys, friend. You and your mother may like a weekend here in the future, so consider it a home away from home. I think that we may come down over Christmas to see the lights and do some shopping in the New Year Sales.”
They waited, with the bags, while Ashley and Wendy collected the cars. Willow told Gina that she was going to have to get new parking cards in the name of her company, so will get extra then, so that Maisie would have somewhere safe to park. When the cars arrived, it didn’t take long to load up, and they headed back to Coventry. On the way, Ashley commented about the version of Deep Purple.
“I saw the original show, but you weren’t the drummer, Brent.”
“I wasn’t, but I also saw the show, along with my friends. It was that show which pushed us to ask about doing something ourselves. Up to then, Herb and Roy were in the guitar group, but it made us want to play as a band. I never thought that it would lead to what it has, though. Other than Herb and me, that front line was as it was back then. It was a real blast!”
“Herb is as good as Geoff, I think.”
“Not as good as Gerry, he is out of this world. He was second fiddle to Geoff for a long time, but I think that the encore with ‘Lazy’ made them both realise what he could do, if allowed. His blues guitar is as good as anything I’ve heard.”
Gina giggled.
“Alicia told me that she and Hazel have our earlier albums but will go out to get later ones after seeing us play. She said that the four of them wondered what you became after midnight, Willow, seeing you turn from angel to banshee when you play.”
“I don’t know what I become, friend. Either I’m just asleep, or else I wander the streets looking for blood but don’t remember it.”
“You wouldn’t find much in the way of blood in Stoneleigh, after midnight, although it never really became totally quiet last night. That area is so exciting. I was never keen to hit a city, but with the places we’ve been to, this year, it’s opened my eyes to the wider world.”
“Did you think about future study while we were looking around, this morning, friend?”
“Actually, the idea of the College of Music sounded good. I want to continue to study piano, now. Maybe become a soloist for hire. Dress beautifully, play great music, be taken to exotic places and stay in swanky hotels, and get paid for it. Sounds good to me.”
“What about you, Brent?”
“I’ll follow Gina wherever she goes. That College teaches percussion, in all its forms. If Gina plays and sings in night clubs, I could be her drummer.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 14
Back at home, that evening, Willow opened her laptop to find some emails. One was from Wilhelm, showing the balance of the SL Holdings account at just over a million after Jacob had been paid out.
He also told them that Jacob would not be returning to the school, as he was currently in a rehab clinic, having spent some days in hospital after Racheal found him in his barn, having OD’d on heroin. Anita was in another ward in the same clinic. He said that the prognosis for Jacob overcoming it was good, seeing how short his time with the drug was, but there would always be a possibility that he would return to it.
One was from Jill, telling them that they had been great with the interview, and that she had been asked to take the Messiah recording into Abbey Road to see if it could have the silences clipped to be a commercial issue, and that the school would be consulted if it was good. She also told them that no tours had been planned for the Christmas break, but that there were a few requests for interviews and promotional visits that were in the pipeline.
Another was from Peter, with the statement. The tour was broken into the three different venues, with takings and costs subtracted, then each venue taking ten percent of the box office. Copenhagen netted nine million, three hundred and fifteen thousand. Paris netted eighteen million, nine hundred and forty-five thousand, and Berlin had netted two million, three hundred and fifty thousand. That was a total of thirty million, six hundred thousand to be shared between the bands, giving each one of the seventeen a payout of just over one point eight million.
With the sales, ‘Journey’, ‘Carpentry’, ‘Homegrown’, and the new ‘Greenhouse’ had sold a total of eight hundred and five thousand albums, with the DVDs selling a total of six hundred and forty thousand copies. With the merchandise sales added, Summer Rose had earned six point three eight five million. After costs, which included flights and hotels, each of the band had another five hundred and seventy thousand. Willow’s share, this month, totalled just on two million and fifteen thousand, after management commission had been taken out. She replied to Peter, asking him to transfer two million into WR Holdings.
There was another from the label. This was to all Summer Rose, as well as Xavier, Frank and Dave, inviting them to a Christmas party, on the Saturday night after term finished, at the Dorchester Hotel. Everyone would be accommodated at the hotel, along with partners or parents, and the label was picking up the bill for it all. They just needed to get there and get home. It also told them that the ‘Journey’ album, and the DVD, had both reached the dizzy heights of Double Platinum. The ‘Homegrown’ DVD had also reached Platinum, and the album was only ten thousand shy of going Double Platinum, so they were going to award that with the expectation that it would pass the mark in the next two weeks. The awards will be made at the Dorchester, and the event will be ‘black tie’. It was signed by Clive, with a postscript that said that there would be other artists from the label on hand. She printed that one to show her parents. At this rate, they would have to get some more hanging hooks for the studio.
There was another from Wilhelm, timed after he would have read the one from Peter. It asked Peter to draw a line under this month, in Jacob’s case, and to divide future income ten ways, as Jacob now had enough to be sure of his future and pay for private tuition and guitar lessons. He pointed out that he would be administering Jacob’s affairs until he turned twenty-one. Willow did a quick mental calculation and thought that Jacob probably had over five million after this dividend and the payout from the syndicate.
Her computer showed an incoming email, and she looked at it. It was from Gina, and just said ‘All that money – Wow! All those awards – Double Wow! Can we organise ourselves to stay in the apartment for a few days after the event? Mum can follow your father down.’
Willow grinned as she answered. ‘Why not. We can Uber to the event with an overnight case and gowns in bags. I’m sure the label will put on a make-up artiste, although the hotel has a spa and hairdressing salon. We can get more from Jill before the event. If you want to stay for Christmas, you can do so. You won’t get the tan you got last year. I’m looking forward to seeing Dad in a bow tie and dress suit.’
She took the email to show her parents, who needed to look up what a ‘black tie’ event entailed. She also mentioned Maisie and Gina staying at the apartment over Christmas, and they discussed the possibility of them all spending some time there, depending on what holidays Ashley and Wendy would have.
Monday morning, it was back to school and a very busy week. The friends spoke about obtaining red-carpet quality dresses, and Gina said that her mother would be researching a good place to get them. They knew that long was usual, along with jewels. Neither girl had considered expensive jewellery before, as they really hadn’t been anywhere as celebrities.
At lunch, the main topic of conversation among the two bands was the influx of money. The consensus was that they had enough, between them, for a serious property, perhaps a small shopping centre. Willow stayed quiet as she had ideas of her own. She had decided to sit on her earnings until she could get something substantial that would be interesting to own.
That evening, she had an email from Ted, with an application form for applying for an on-line certificate course, and a basic entry paper with questions designed by a specialist to see what sort of person you are, mixed with questions about your knowledge of business and finance. There was also a form letter, for her to give to the Head, asking for a letter of confirmation of suitability, attitude, and scholastic achievements. She put that one in her bag for tomorrow. What she did see, was that there was a deadline of December the ninth, to apply for the course that began in February, so she had just on a week to get it in.
Tuesday morning, she knocked on the Head’s door. Sitting in front of the desk, she explained that she had met the Professor who taught at the University, who had told her that she should try for an on-line certificate course, which would give her a certain entry to an undergraduate course when she was able to attend. The Head looked through the letter, and told Willow that she would write her recommendation, email it and then send the hard copy to the address by registered post. She then commented on Jacob’s downfall, asking if Willow had seen any sign of his drug taking. Willow had to own up to Jacob getting very pushy and aggressive in Paris and then in Berlin. After the tour, she really hadn’t seen much of him at all.
That afternoon, Willow was given an early finish to go to the theatre to make sure things were good. She, and Mister Bamborough, checked out all the player’s seating, the score on the music stands, and anything that they thought was needed to look at. They worked together, as equals, to ensure that tonight would be a success. Willow told him about the recording going to Abbey Road to see if it could be made a commercial issue. He told her that he had listened to his CD, and that the music was perfect, and if they clipped the silences, it would be a great feather in their cap to have it joining their other discs for public sale.
He then told her something that he had been told by the Head.
“The Head and I, with our partners, have been invited to a party on the Saturday after we break up. It’s in London, and it’s hosted by the label. I haven’t worn a black tie since I got married. I wonder what it’s all about.”
“Has the school been getting good payments for the classical CD we made in Abbey Road?”
“Yes. It has been what has allowed us to work towards setting up the post-production suit to teach advanced courses.”
“Summer Rose has been invited to that party at the Dorchester. I’ve been told that we’ve achieved some more awards for our albums. May I suggest that the orchestral recording may have passed a half a million sales, and that the school is in line for a Gold Record.”
“Do you really think so? That would be a great honour. Of course, half the album is you and Gina, so they may be buying it for that.”
“We were there as orchestra members, not fly-in celebrities, so any award is the orchestra success.”
“I suppose you’re right. The reviews that I’ve read have all been positive about the quality of the whole orchestra. It will be an interesting evening.”
They took a break and went to the lunchroom for tea with the rest of the orchestra. After that, everyone went to the lockers and changerooms to change into the black outfits. Willow had left hers there yesterday, and her violin had been there since last week. She had the usual long skirt, but had brought a better blouse, with some sparkle, so that she stood out as the leader.
It seemed to work, because, as soon as she was on the stage, she was being asked questions. Most of the questions were due to first-night nerves, so she was able to keep the questioners calm. The Cathedral choir arrived, Margaret and Sandra arrived. Margaret was particularly excited to be singing to a paying audience again. Xavier and the assistants got busy, fitting microphones and testing the PA system.
Xavier went to his station beside the stage, where the new recording equipment was powered up and ready to go. Frank and Dave flitted around the stage, with their cameras, filming the orchestra settling for the show. The doors were opened, and they could hear the audience take their seats. For Willow, this had always been that time when you know why you spent hours in practise, the calm before the musical storm. Only, this time, the piece was more of a tempest.
They tuned up, and, at the allotted time, the curtains opened with the orchestra all seated, with them getting applause, which grew as they stood and the conductor led Willow to her seat as leader, before mounting the rostrum and acknowledging the audience. Silence fell as he turned and raised his baton
Two and a half hours later, there was a standing ovation after the final Amen. The soloists had been magnificent, the ‘Chorus’ had everyone on their feet to end the second part, with the sopranos in the choir climbing higher and higher. Mister Bamborough pointed to various players for recognition, finally going to Willow to get her to stand with him as the whole ensemble bowed before the curtain closed.
The gathering in the lunchroom was joyful. The Head basked in praise from the city dignitaries that had attended, the orchestra were hugged and kissed, Margaret and her friends were cornered by some press who had come just to hear them sing. Harold Withers, from Abbey Road, cornered Willow and Howard Bamborough to tell them that he had tidied up the recording he had been given by shaving the breaks, and the label would be in touch about issuing it. He had a notebook and was writing down all the names of the ensemble. Willow told him that it had been produced by Xavier, so he thanked her and went off to find ‘his protégé’.
The Vines had attended, with Sam saying that he wanted his daughters to learn more of the classics, especially after seeing such a professional performance. Willow found Gina, with her parents and Maisie, and they slid out of the room. Gina and Willow went to their lockers to get their school uniforms, and Willow retrieved her violin. They all went back to Stoneleigh in the company car.
Wednesday should have been anticlimactic, but the big event was the next day. The classes were getting towards revision time, so were easy enough to relax in. Lunch was a lot of hugs and congratulations from the other students who had experienced last night, many of the more faithful ones declaring that it was like being in church. That evening, Willow prepared her outfit for the performance in the Cathedral, opting for a different look, a long dress with three-quarter sleeves and black sequins around the neckline. She also polished her violin and treated the bow. Then, she sat quietly at her desk and filled in all the forms and the questionnaire. Scanning and emailing them to the university, before sealing them in an envelope and taking it down to her mother to post on Thursday, priority mail.
On Thursday morning, she had her garment bag, shoulder bag, and violin case when she got into the vehicle.
“Big show, tonight, Willow.”
“It is, Max. We did get it right on Tuesday, so we should be able to do well tonight. We’ll be filmed and recorded for this one, so you may get to see it on TV at Christmas.”
They picked Gina up, with her own garment bag. At the school, they hung them in their lockers and went to the classes. Lunch was full of expectations with the upcoming performance, with this particular opus creating a lot more interest among the students. Howard Bamborough went around the room, picking out all the orchestra members, saying kind words. None kinder than when he told every one of them that they had Friday off school, as the performance was paramount, but to be at the Cathedral by six on Friday night.
When he got to Willow, he told her to be at the school entrance after lunch, with her violin and outfit, as she would be joining him as leader, to supervise the setting up in the Cathedral. At the end of the lunch break, Gina gave her a hug.
“See you in church, friend leader.”
As the others headed for classrooms, Willow went to her locker to collect her things. When she got to the entry, the truck passed by, heading for the Cathedral. She didn’t have to wait long before she was joined by Miss Russell. Then Mister Bamborough pulled up in his car and they got in. At the Cathedral, there were already cars and vans with BBC-OB logos, and lines of cables were snaking towards the entrance.
Willow put her things in the Chapter House, noting two long tables with chairs, and then they worked to set out all the chairs and music stands. Tom was already there, with Sally, to set out the choir seats and put out the song books. Along with the BBC technicians, they made order out of the chaos. The orchestra were set out so that the conductor could see every one of them, the larger instruments were in place, the microphones for the soloists and choir were placed in position and tested. The cameras and boom microphones for the recording were set in place and checked.
When the rest of the orchestra and the school choir arrived in two coaches, they all sat down in the Chapter House for a light tea. Then they all took turns behind screens to get changed, with the girls lining up for the mirrors in the toilet. The soloists arrived, and they were followed by the Cathedral Choir.
The performance was to start at seven-thirty, the audience started to arrive, and the tension built. The Bishop came into the Chapter House and led everyone in a prayer and blessed the ensemble before going out to take his seat. Finally, it came to the moment when the show was about to commence.
The door to the Chapter House was opened, and the assembled choirs walked out in single file to take their places. The rest of the orchestra were led out by Willow, to take their own places. There was applause as they settled. Willow stood and oversaw the tuning, then sat down, only for the whole ensemble to rise as the soloists came out to take their places, with Margaret in her wheelchair getting some cries of encouragement. Then Howard Bamborough, resplendent in tails, came out and stood beside the rostrum to applause. He went up to his place, tapped his baton for quiet, and then raised it to commence the performance.
They had a short break after the first part, with drinks and comfort stops, then repeated the entrance for the second part. When they arrived at the Hallelujah Chorus, the audience were all on their feet, and Willow could see some singing, although she couldn’t hear them from the sound of the orchestra and the power of the choir.
For the third part, the entrance differed slightly, with the extra players walking on with them. Brent had been waiting for his time in the spotlight, and Nancy was ready with her trumpet. Willow realised just how many of the band were on stage tonight. With her and Gina, there were these two, Edward on French Horn, Herb, Roy, and Victor in the choir. The only ones missing were Vivienne and Bryan, and that was only because the piece didn’t have flute or saxophone in it.
The final, triumphant, movement was full of joy and power, and there was almost a collective indrawing of breath from the audience as the final Amen faded, before rapturous applause. The orchestra were allowed to leave early, while the adults stayed for an after-show chat. Willow picked up her bags, leaving her violin case with all the others, and went back to the school in the coach, where Maisie was there to take the two of them home.
She slept late on Friday and spent the day thinking about her developing plans for the future, as well as tinkering with ideas for another album. In the afternoon, she had an email from Ted, to tell her that the administrators had read her application, telling him that they were impressed with the knowledge of someone so young, and that the Head’s letter had sealed the deal. She would be getting a letter of confirmation, along with a parcel of her course notes and the schedule of submissions for marking. The course would be mainly Zoom lectures in the evenings, two a week, on Tuesday and Thursday nights, with them available as a download afterwards, should she be unable to be present.
Later on, she dressed for the performance, and Maisie picked her up. She was going tonight, and Willow’s parents were going on Saturday, so would take the two girls in. Friday night was a repeat of Thursday, with even louder applause at the end. Maisie took the two of them home, full of praise for the wonderful evening. She also told Willow that she would pick her up on Saturday morning, to go into Birmingham to a shop where the two of them could choose evening gowns for the Dorchester.
On Saturday morning, Wendy joined them, and they had a wonderful time buying very expensive, but beautiful gowns. When they had finally made their choices, they needed the perfect shoes to go with them, then the perfect jewels that matched the dresses. In every shop, they were treated like royalty and spent a small fortune. Willow and Gina used their company credit cards to pay for their, and their mother’s outfits.
In the afternoon, Willow wore a skirt and top for the performance, and the four of them had a meal in the steakhouse before going to the Cathedral. Today was different, as the OB vans had left, taking all their equipment with them, and the playing area was much easier to navigate. Gina and Willow went to the Chapter House as the rest of the ensemble arrived. The audience were better dressed, with many of the city dignitaries and local celebrities present. The Head was there, with her family, as well as several of the teachers.
By now, the ensemble were old hands at this, and there were no fears about the performance. As they entered, there was even some standing ovation, before they had played a note. Tonight was the culmination of a lot of hard work and dedication, and they didn’t disappoint. As the final Amen faded, there was a standing ovation and they took several bows, with one of the Cathedral staff coming out with bunches of flowers for Margaret, Sally, and Willow. With the stage close to the level of the audience, tonight had them mingle, with the Head hugging everyone she could find.
It was a good hour before Willow could put her violin in its case and collect her bag. Gina joined her and they found Ashley and Wendy talking to Sam Vines and Mervyn, then taking their leave and going out to the car, where the truck was waiting to clear the Cathedral for the Sunday services. On the way home, the girls relaxed. After this, it was just revision time, the exams, and then the party in London. They had reached the end of the first term of their third year, and all was good.
On Sunday, it was Gina playing in the church, and they all went to the club afterwards. Reverend Russell had been at the school and the Saturday performances and raved on at how good they were, with Saturday even better. They had a quiet lunch, and then left for home. Willow sorted out her wardrobe to make space for her good dress to hang without creasing, then sat at her keyboard, working up tunes for some lyrics in her head. The album concept was a continuation of the story of ‘Journey’, after the wedding, with a lot of partying and some drug use. She didn’t have any titles, yet, but saved what she had done under a ‘Project next year’ file.
On Monday, she got an email from Jill, with just her and Gina on the receipt line. It told them that they would be flying to Sydney, Australia, on the twenty-seventh of December, with a couple of days there recording a TV show. The TV station will be broadcasting a two-hour show on New Year’s Eve, with the Berlin show taking up ninety minutes, and them talking about it and the formation of Summer Rose for the rest of the time.
They would be part of the local show before the big fireworks display on the Sydney Harbour, then flying home on the first of January. The outward flight would leave in the evening of the twenty-seventh, with a day in Dubai, and an overnight to Sydney. The flight back would be in the opposite direction, leaving in the late afternoon of the first. One companion was allowed, and the flights would be in first class.
She printed that one off and took it down for her parents to read. Ashley told Wendy that she would be the best one to go and look after her daughter, as Maisie would probably be with Gina.
Gina was really excited about the trip on Tuesday morning. At lunch, they went to talk to Jim, getting him to play the organ in the church after the school broke up, with them in London the next weekend and beyond. At lunch, Willow rang Jill to confirm that she was good for the flight, with Wendy and Maisie travelling with them. Jill told her that they would have their own hairdresser/dresser/make-up artist travelling with them so that they would look good, even after fourteen hours in a plane.
Willow also told Jill that the two of them would be staying at the apartments for the party, with them just bringing overnight bags to the Dorchester. She was told that the dresser was staying at the hotel to prepare them for the event.
That evening, Willow told her parents that Maisie would follow them down to London, on the Friday after school finished, and then they could stay in the apartments until the four of them took an Uber to the airport for the flight. Ashley could stay on or come home. If he came home, Maisie would drive them home when they returned.
Revision continued through the week, and Ashley went into Birmingham on Saturday, to get himself kitted out for a black-tie party. That evening, they all met at the club for dinner, and the two girls thought that they would be playing for a sing-along. However, when they saw the stage, there was a big TV set up, with the PA amp plugged into it.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 15
After the food had been eaten, Malcolm went to the stage, asked for quiet, and then smiled at the full house.
“Tonight, it should be Willow and Gina playing honky-tonk piano for a sing-along. However, tonight, we’re giving them the night off. Many of you have been here, in Studio Two, to see G-Force playing, and many have danced away the evening to Summer Rose. Tonight, we bring you both these bands. Not on this stage, but in Europe. First will be G-Force in Paris, and second will be Summer Rose in Berlin. The shows go for three hours, and we’ll have a break between them, so be prepared for an entertaining night.”
He stepped away from the stage as the first DVD started. Willow and Gina both watched the show, having been backstage when it was happening. They were pleased that the Gees had moved on, with a lot of original material for Zara to sing. They sipped their lemonade and thought back to that week, now six weeks in the past.
In the break, they tried to answer the questions that were mainly about their own group, but also about Zara. There was about a quarter of an hour of that, and then their own DVD started. Through the PA, the sound of the crowd was almost feral, and the music was loud and proud. At the end of the ninety minutes, the questions came thick and fast. Mainly about the new direction and some bemoaning the move away from the soft rock.
Willow gave her stock answer to those.
“Do you think that we would have filled seven nights in those stadiums if we were singing Carpenters songs? Big venues mean big music. Berlin was the smallest place, with only seventeen thousand. When we played to a big crowd in Coventry, for the first time, it was under nine hundred with a full house.”
Someone asked what sort of money were they earning, so Willow gave them some details about the summer tour.
“When we did the tour around the Midlands and ended in London, last summer, the box office takings were over eighty million. We were paid twenty-five thousand per band, per show. That’s for the band, not each. After the costs, the charities received over forty million. When I say costs, I don’t mean just food and drink. The stages we used cost a quarter of a million to build in each venue, on-ground staff for every show was around a hundred thousand each night. There’s an awful lot of costs that go into putting on a single show, which is why we don’t do it every weekend.”
There were a lot who wanted signatures afterwards, and the younger ones with their parents all wanted a hug. When Willow and Wendy walked home, they were quiet until Willow broke the silence.
“Was that our two DVDs that were shown tonight?”
“No, Malcolm is now one of your biggest fans. He went out and bought those, just to show tonight. I suspect that he may be in there, alone, with your show and the PA turned up during the week. Did you make any arrangements for the church this Christmas?”
“I’m playing tomorrow, and then Jim will take over until we get back from Sydney.”
Sunday morning, Willow was up early to check the hymns, staying in the organ loft to start playing Bach as the bells started. It allowed her to think about the exams to come. Next year, she had given herself an extra load with the certificate course, but there wouldn’t be a first-year musical until after summer. She thought about Jacob, feeling both sorry for him, and also angry at him. She wondered about Garry, who was nice but would be out of the school before her. His kisses had been different; less lust and more loving.
After the service, she went home to work on her books for the exams. Sebastian would be picking the two of them up in the mornings, but they would call an Uber to get home, seeing that the timings were dependant on the exam finishes. Sebastian would be taking the rest of the band to the Dorchester on Saturday morning in a coach and bringing them home on Sunday.
Monday was typical of the rest of the week. Get to school, look at the books for the exam, do the exam, have a break looking at the books for the next one, and so on until it was time to go home. Some days there was only time for two exams, others had four. When Friday came around, she only had one in the morning, but waited in the lunchroom for Gina to finish her last one. Mister Bamborough saw her and sat down.
“A busy year, Willow.”
“It certainly was sir. We got through it, though, didn’t we?”
“We did. And I have to say that ‘we’ included you and Gina, who have done so much more than is usual for a student. It has been a roller coaster ride with that musical and the Messiah. The Head tells me that you’re taking an outside course next year.”
“I’ve been accepted to study Business and Financial Management through the University of London, on-line, with two Zoom lectures a week, in the evening.”
“Not advanced music?”
“No. I have no desire to be ordered around by promoters. If we can keep Summer Rose going for another year, with tours in the holidays, I’ll have enough money to invest in more property and then I can pick and choose what I play and when, should anyone want to hear me.”
“An admirable plan. Are you resting for the holiday?”
“Actually, sir, Gina and I are staying in London after the party, and then fly to Australia after Christmas to record an interview and do some sightseeing, coming back in the New Year, with a day off until school starts.”
“My! That’s a long way for one interview. I hope that they think it’s worth it.”
“We’ll enjoy it. I may start the first day back with a tan. I might bring you back a boomerang for you to conduct with.”
He laughed and stood.
“Have a good trip, Willow. I’m looking forward to seeing what we get up to next term. If nothing else, having you around has made this teaching game a lot more interesting.”
“A Merry Christmas to you and yours, sir. We’ll see you tomorrow at the party. I doubt that you’d look any more dapper than you did in tails last week.”
He was still smiling as he left the room. Ten minutes later, Gina came in and they had lunch before calling for their Uber driver to pick them up outside the school entrance. That afternoon, Willow made sure that her bags were all right. She had an overnight one with underwear, shoes, and a clutch for the party, along with nightwear. She had another with a range of outfits that she was going to leave in the wardrobe in her apartment, and a roller case with enough for a few days in Sydney, knowing that she could buy more on the way there. Her mother had much the same set of cases, and her father had just the one. His PJ’s would be in Wendy’s bag for the night in the hotel, along with his shaver. They all had a garment bag, with Wendy’s and Willow’s being much longer than Ashley’s.
When her parents got home, with both leaving early, they quickly changed, loaded up the company car, and went to collect Maisie and Gina in their car. Willow had called Carlo to book a table for dinner, tonight, so they didn’t stop for any food on the way. The two cars were stopped near the restaurant and unloaded, then Maisie followed Ashley to the parking station as Willow opened up and they put all the bags inside. They carried them up to the apartments, one at a time, and they were all in the rooms by the time the drivers got back.
Maisie was amazed at the quality of the fittings in the apartments as she put her things away in the lower bedroom. Gina, like Willow, liked the upstairs suite better. She didn’t have Brent to keep her warm, but she did have a little friend that had been purchased on-line.
They all went down to have dinner, and then back up to watch a bit of TV until bedtime. Next morning, they had breakfast and got their overnight bags and garment bags, calling an Uber people mover to take them to the Dorchester. When they arrived, the concierge opened the doors and helped them out, snapping his fingers for a couple of uniformed lads to carry the baggage for them. Inside, they were given room cards, and the lads were instructed which rooms the luggage was destined for. They had two suites, side by side, so it was an easy job, and the lads were happy with the notes that Ashley gave them.
The rest of the band, and their parents, arrived before lunch, and they all gathered in the dining room to eat, at a table reserved for them. They were joined by the girl who was in charge of getting them ready for the evening.
“Hello. I’m Lauren, and I’m your queen of all things beautiful. This afternoon, I’ve been given a room in the spa to get you all ready. Well, all the girls. I’ll work with all the mothers first, because I know that you can stay looking elegant longer. Then we’ll work on the four girls in the band. Any gentleman who wants some help in looking good can see me after that. I can tie bow ties. We don’t have time for any of you to use the spa, as it’s by subscription and they take over six hours with a full service.”
After lunch, the first mother went to get her garment bag and followed Lauren from the room. Twenty minutes later, a very elegant woman came in, told her husband that he needed to change, and another mother followed Lauren to be transformed. One by one, the eight others went off to me magically turned into goddesses, with the men and boys going off to their rooms. Then it was Maisie’s turn.
“See you later, Mum.”
When she came back, it wasn’t the careworn mother that had left. Wendy muttered to herself as she stood.
“What was that, Mum?”
“I said that this was going to be a bit different to the hairdresser near the warehouse.”
When she returned, she came back as a heartbreaker angel, in the black off-the shoulder dress with the split up one side, waggling a finger at Ashley to follow her. Then it was Nancy’s turn, followed by Vivienne. The two friends went to their rooms to get their garment bags and underwear, going back to wait their turn. Jill came in.
“How are you two. Waiting for Lauren?”
“Yes. She’s worked on all the mothers. It’s just the two of us left.”
“She’ll be calling the two of you in together. She’s been told to make you look something similar, as the guests of honour.”
“Can you get her to work on the Head and Mrs. Bamborough?”
“I suppose that will be all right, I’ll give their rooms a call to bring their things down and wait to be worked on. We do owe it to the Head, with the way she has been helpful all year. Is everyone here?”
“All except for Jacob. If there are any awards for him, Roy can collect them on his behalf.”
“Didn’t he want to come?”
“He can’t. He’s in a clinic. He picked something up in Paris and got quite sick after we got home, about the time he made that folk album.”
“Oh! I’m sorry to hear that. Any idea when he’ll be back in the band?”
“He’s not coming back. His father has put his foot down and Jacob will be under parental control until he turns twenty-one.”
“So, by ‘sick’ you mean something self-administered?”
“You may say that. I could not possibly comment.”
“Ah! So, the band is now a ten piece. I’ll adjust all the bookings to reflect the new look. It won’t affect the sound, from watching that show. He did look a bit seedy at times. We’ll run with the sickness story if anybody asks.”
She went off, and Vivienne came back, with Lauren telling both of them to follow her. By the time she had finished with them, they looked almost like sisters, but a good few years older than they were. Their ordinary clothes were in the garment bags, on a rack with all the others and a room number marked on them, to be delivered to their rooms before the party.
They went up to their rooms, getting looks along the way. When Willow went into the suite, she saw her father looking like someone in a movie with Fred Astaire.
“Wow, Dapper Dad!”
“Who are you, young lady, and what have you done with my daughter.”
They sat, quietly, until a housemaid knocked on the door and handed Wendy the two garment bags then wheeling the rack off towards Gina’s room. Wendy gave Willow her bag, and they went to hang them in the room. Willow got a text on her phone, telling them to head for the dining room and to leave all phones in the rooms. Wendy and Willow put on their new jewellery and the three of them strolled to the lifts and went down to the floor where the dining room was. They were directed to a separate function room, which looked like a gathering of supermodels and their rich husbands.
The room literally sparkled with jewels, in the band’s case, all of it new. There were singers and members of bands that they had seen on television, but all were keen to meet these new kids on the block who had turned the business on its head during the year. There was a lot of introduction, talking, and swapping of stories of happenings while on tour, and then they were all called to the tables that were set with genuine silverware. The places were set with names, and the parents found themselves at one end, while their children were scatted among a bevy of stars that none of them could have ever dreamed that they would meet, let alone share a meal with. The Head and Howard were in the middle, on opposite sides, with their partners.
At the head of the table were the bosses of the label, with Clive, Jill, and Harold Withers. Xavier, Frank, David and their parents were just on the band’s side of the Head. The meal was wonderful, and all were very careful with eating, and had the napkins spread over their laps to catch any drops.
After the coffee and cheese was placed on the table, and anyone who wanted a different drink catered for, the CEO stood and tapped his spoon on a glass.
“Good evening, everyone. Tonight, we are here to acknowledge those in the room who have made our label one to be envied by others. We are going to hand out some awards. Please come up when your name is called and pose for the official photograph. These will be featured in the reception of our offices for the following year.”
He stood by a table with a cloth over it, removing the cloth to reveal a lot of Gold and Platinum awards. Clive stood by him and started calling out names, along with the winning song, with each one standing, accepting their award, and posing for the photo. For the big group of parents, it was songs and stars they had heard on their radios over the year. Each one received generous applause.
The awards were taken back to the table and proudly exhibited. Then Clive called out the first one that Willow had been waiting for.
“We now have a very rare occasion. Earlier in the year, we had the Orchestra from the Blue Coat School in Abbey Road. The double CD that was recorded has achieved Gold record status. We have three awards here, the first goes to the Orchestra, and will be presented to their headmistress.”
The Head went up and took the award, posing for the camera. The CEO asked her to stay with him, while Clive read out the next name.
“We have another award for the conductor of that fine orchestra, Mister Howard Bamborough.”
Howard went up and received his award and posed, then there was a picture taken of the two of them, smiling broadly. They went and sat down, and Clive carried on.
“The producer who recorded the album is Harold Withers. Come on up Harold.”
Harold took the award, posed for his picture and then turned to the table.
“I have to say that this was the easiest recording session with an orchestra that I have ever had the pleasure to oversee. I will ask that the members of Summer Rose who were in that orchestra to put your hands up.”
There were gasps from the other pop stars when seven of the band put their hands up. The Head had a big grin. Harold went to sit down, and Clive carried on.
“We discussed how to do this before tonight. We will give out all the awards to each person and a photo taken. There are ten of Summer Rose here tonight, and we’ll start with the production crew first. There are two Double Platinum awards for production, to be given to Xavier for recording both the ‘Journey’ album and DVD.”
Xavier went and collected his awards and returned to the table.
“For the vision of the DVD of the ‘Journey’ album, we have one Double Platinum award for both Frank and David.”
The two boys went and collected theirs, posing together.
“For the recording and vision of the album ‘Homegrown’ we have Double Platinum awards for Harold Withers.”
Harold collected his awards, posed for the camera and then spoke again.
“For all you other members of our profession, this album was recorded in real time, in a single take. The recording time was the same as the album time. Please try to emulate these talented youngsters and leave your egos outside the door when you next visit.”
The table was now bare, but the CEO went to another table and pulled the cloth off, revealing another load of awards. Clive smiled.
“Now, to keep things moving along, we will present these to each member of the band, individually, and could you please stand here until everyone has been presented. Then we will take a band picture. There are Double Platinum awards for the CD and the DVD of both ‘Journey’ and ‘Homegrown’, as well as a Gold award for the DVD ‘Live in Berlin’, which passed the mark during the week.”
He called up Bryan, then Edward, Vivienne and Nancy. Then it was Brent, Herb, Victor and Roy. He announced that Jacob’s awards would be collected by Roy, afterwards. Then he called up Gina. She was standing with the others when he looked at his notes. Willow could see six awards left.
“I call on the most talented teenager I’ve ever met to collect her awards. Willow, please come and collect your Double Platinum awards for the two albums, the two DVDs, and the Gold award for the live DVD. There is also another for you. We did overlook the fact that you were the main writer of the entire ‘Journey’ album, so there is a Double Platinum for you as composer.”
Willow went and collected her awards and then went to stand with the others, with the photographer taking several pictures, before they were allowed to return to their seats.
After that, there was a lot of talk, some drinking for the adults, and some discussion between the band and the other stars, being asked how on earth they could record a complete album in one take. The entertainers grouped together, and it wasn’t long before some acapella singing of the various awarded songs broke out as the older ones got slightly inebriated. There was a lot of laughter and smiles, but it did peter out as the stars left. The band and their parents went to their rooms, with fathers helping to carry the awards. When they arrived at their rooms, each one had a big hotel carry bag at the door, so they could carry their awards away on Sunday. Wendy turned her phone on and got Willow to take a picture of her and Ashley looking good, then took pictures of Willow with all the awards for her own album.
The next morning, they were all back to looking like normal people and having breakfast. The atmosphere was happy, and they were all looking forward to Christmas. Jill came in as they were finishing.
“Congratulations to all of you. It was one of the biggest award parties I’ve been to. Now, the back catalogue of albums are taking off around the world, and that’s probably due to the effect of the Manchester and Liverpool overseas fans. The ‘Homegrown’ album has been selling well in Australia, with the ‘Greenhouse’ album starting well. The live DVD has been released, and Willow and Gina will be going there in the New Year on a short promotional tour, getting back in time to go back to school. I’ve been told to go with them to smooth any problems, so we’ll see the New Year in on Sydney Harbour. Thank you all for your hard work, and thank you, the parents, for the support of your children. I’ll see you two at the airport, and I wish the rest of you a Merry Christmas and a Happy New Year.”
They all wished her well and she left. Herb laughed.
“The things that you two do for the band. It will be hard to be on the beach, in your bikinis, while we shiver in the snow.”
“It’s all work, Herb. If we do our job right, we’ll all be down there in summer. It’s their winter, but I’m told that their winter is about as bad as our autumn.”
They all went back to their rooms and packed to leave. They carried their bags down to reception, where some were waiting for the coach. Willow and Gina talked to the other band members, and the parents, while they waited. When Sebastian arrived, everyone got on board and the friends waved them off as their Uber people mover arrived to take them back to the apartments.
They relaxed in the apartments until it was time for lunch, then went down to the restaurant to eat. They took the tube into Regent Street to look at the shops until the lights came on, three adults with a couple of teenage girls in hoodies. They looked, tried things on, and all bought things that they couldn’t have afforded this time last year. That became their next couple of days, meeting up with Ted and the others. Christmas Eve, the restaurant was closed, but the apartment dwellers had a private dinner that Carlo put on, with them watching the Messiah on the big TV over the counter. When the camera panned along the choir, Hazel screamed.
“That’s Herb, right there.”
On Christmas morning, Maisie and Gina joined the Roses for breakfast in their apartment. They gave out small gifts, mainly jewellery, with nobody being left short. The next day was the Boxing Day sales, so they were in the city again, ready to buy up big. In the afternoon, Ashley went and got his car, parking outside as they loaded it with extraneous luggage, keeping the cases and carry-on’s that were going to Australia. Maisie and Gina’s extra things went on the back seat, and Maisie went back to the parking station with him to load them into her own car, ready for when they returned.
The next day, they all had lunch and talked about things for the upcoming year. In the late afternoon, they called for an Uber to take them to the airport, with Ashley waving them off. He had planned to go and see some movies that he wanted to see, and some pictures in art galleries. He would then see in the New Year in Trafalgar Square, having bought a money belt to wear under his pants. It was something that he had always wanted to experience since he had seen a report on TV when he was young. Then, he was going home, via Oxford, to see if that cowboy outfit was anywhere.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 16
When the four arrived at the airport, they went to the Emirates desk to check in, to find that they needed to check in at the first-class desk. There, Willow showed the paperwork that Jill had sent her, and their cases were tagged and put onto the conveyor. They went through emigration and a bag Xray, then they were directed to the Club Lounge, where they found Jill and Lauren waiting for them.
“I hope this isn’t going to show up on our next statement as an expense.”
“It won’t, Willow. The four of you have been paid for by the TV station in Sydney. The label has a membership with British Airways, which has a reciprocal agreement with Emirates. Any expenses on this trip will be counted as advertising and promotion by our accountants, so sit back and enjoy the flight.”
They settled in comfortable seats, with the adults enjoying the free wine. Jill made a comment about the party being special.
“How was it special, Jill?”
“In other ones I’ve been to, the pop stars have usually got high as a kite and bad-mouthed each other. I’ve never heard them laugh so much and sing together before. Also, you wouldn’t know this, but we’ve never had a classical album go gold before.”
“Mister Bamborough seemed to think that it was being bought because we’d played organ on it.”
“That may well be the case, but it’s still exposing a whole new demographic to classical music. It will be different when we release the Messiah album, that will be one for the purists. The two albums you recorded in Cambridge and York will show if you’re the magnets that attracts the customers pound. We held back the ‘Musk Rat Quest’ until February, seeing how the Berlin show is selling.”
“It’s not called the ‘Musk Rat Quest’ and you know it!”
“It’s what our promotions people have called it, ever since they listened to the CD. It’s got it’s hook into them. There’s a couple of songs that have been hummed around the office for weeks. These will be the ones pushed to the radio stations.”
“That’s odd. I suppose that I’ve only considered it as a concept album in its entirety.”
When they were called, they followed the other passengers to the plane, where they were settled into the plush seats that would stretch out to be a proper bed. Once they had gained altitude, they were served dinner and given PJs. The seats were far enough apart to have a curtain between, allowing for privacy in changing. Willow didn’t find it hard to get to sleep, even considering how high they were.
They were woken with a breakfast, some five hours later, and the sun was shining in a perfectly blue sky. They ate and washed before changing back into their previous clothes. The plane started to descend towards Dubai. They had taken off at eight in the evening, and they were now arriving in Dubai at just after seven in the morning, so had lost four hours.
When they disembarked, they were led through to a transit lounge, where they were given the choice to stay, or take a guided tour as temporary visitors. They took the tour and were taken into the city in an air-conditioned coach. During the day, they saw various sights, went up to the observation deck at the Birge Khalifa Level one hundred and forty-eight. They ate lunch in a restaurant under an aquarium, and shopped in an arcade that made where they bought their party dresses look like an op-shop. Maisie was looking in one window.
“Good God! Look at that outfit, they’re asking fifteen thousand for it.”
Gina peered at the mannequin.
“That’s just for the skirt, Mum. The top has a tag which says that it’s another ten thousand.”
The coach took them to a posh restaurant where they had dinner, and then it was back to the airport. They were due to take off around half-past nine, and glad to be inside and under cool air, as a TV screen showed that it was twenty-four degrees ‘C’ inside, and still thirty-four outside.
Back in a plane, they were going to be in the air for close to fourteen hours but would be landing at six-thirty in the evening, so losing another five hours. Jill told them that she had spoken to the contacts in Sydney, and it was, indeed, eleven hours ahead of London. On the way back, she said, they would be chasing the sun and with twenty-one hours in the air, in clock time it would only be a ten-hour flight and a very long night.
It wasn’t long after they took off when they were all snug in bed after an exciting day. It was bright and sunny when Willow woke, and she gazed out of the window to see clouds below them, and the sight of water in the clear spaces. They got themselves clean and tidy and redressed. She could see some who had different outfits on this morning. That was something to think about next time. They ate, read the airline magazine, looked at the films on the screen. They looked at the map with a line between Dubai and Sydney, with a red dot that showed where they were. In the end, Willow resorted to laying back and thinking about songs in her mind.
They were given lunch, and then dinner, and then they started the descent into Sydney. By this time, Willow had decided that, if she ever took the trip again, it would be in first-class and never mind about the cost. Lauren came and made Willow and Gina look like stars before she was asked to return to her seat.
Before they landed, the captain thanked them for flying Emirates and that the time on the ground was half past six in the evening, and the temperature was a warm thirty-two degrees. When they disembarked, the airbridge was hot, but the terminal was cooler. They went through customs and immigration, to emerge into the concourse and bright lights of a TV camera, and the sound of some screaming girls.
They were blinking with the light when a man came over with his hand out to shake.
“G’day. I’m Barry Boysee, the host of the TV show. Welcome to Sydney, the beating heart of Australia.”
Jill took his hand.
“Hello, Barry. I’m Jill and we’ve spoken by phone.”
“G’day, Jill. I guess the two young ones are our stars. Let’s get you through this mob and into the cars. You must be knackered from the trip.”
Willow was looking past him at the crowd. She started to make out details, and saw that there would have been about twenty, or so, and all looked about her age. She thrust her case into her mother’s hand and walked towards them.
“Hello. Thank you for coming out this evening.”
The crowd of girls quietened, and one, wearing black jeans and red shirt, stepped forward.
“Hello, Miss Rose. Welcome to ‘down under’. We’re the Summer Rose Fan Club here.”
“Well, that’s a bit different. We’ve never met anyone from a fan club before. In England, we just go to a venue and perform, with some fans wanting to meet us. I suppose we may have a fan club, but the record label would see to that. What’s your name?”
“I’m Evelyn, and I’m the Founder and President. It’s such an honour to talk to you, most pop stars just wave as they breeze through.”
“I’m not a pop star, Evelyn. I’m just a schoolgirl, like you, who just got lucky and worked hard to make things better. I see you have a medallion around your neck. That doesn’t look right.”
“I’m sorry, but it’s plastic from the cheap import shop. The ones on the website would cost seventy-five dollars to get mailed here, and this one was only five dollars.”
Willow delved into her bag, where she still had a few of the real ones.
“Here, Evelyn. These are genuine and my gift to you and your friends for coming out to say hello.”
She gave the packets to the startled girl and pulled her notepad and a biro out of her bag.
“Look, if you write your name and address on this, I’ll send you a box of medallions to give out to your members when I get back home.”
“Would you do that for us, Miss Rose?”
“I certainly would, Evelyn and friends. It’s lovely to be met by friends when you arrive anywhere. So far, the only other person to speak to us was Barry.”
“Him! He’s a right wanker. The current one of a long line of TV pop show wankers. We only watch his show for the stars, even the adverts are better than his blather!”
“I’ll keep that in mind when I speak to him on air. Look, add your email address and I’ll let you know what we’re doing here. Even I haven’t been told that.”
Evelyn added her email and gave the notepad back to Willow, who put it in her bag and reached out to hug the girl, with her friends gasping.
“Thank you, again, Evelyn. I hope we can meet up in the next few days. I’ve got to get back to the others. As they say, the show must go on, and I think I might have put someone out by talking to you.”
She went back to the others, where Barry and Jill were discussing the schedule and hadn’t even noticed she had gone. Willow winked at the others, took her case back, and the five left the two to their business and walked past the bewildered cameraman, to be joined by the fan club.
“Evelyn, this is Gina Summer, my best friend for life. It was us getting together that started Summer Rose.”
Gina had watched Willow, so stopped and gave Evelyn a hug.
“So, Evelyn. Where can we stop for a chat before we get whisked away? I need a cup of tea.”
They were led to a café area, where Wendy and Maisie organised tea for them and drinks for all the girls. That’s where Barry and Jill found them, in conversation with the fans, talking about where they went to school and what they did for fun. For Willow and Gina, it was such a different life, filled with tennis and the beaches. The girls couldn’t agree on the best beach, as there seemed to be half a dozen along the coast of Sydney. The one thing that they all agreed on was that Manly was ‘naff’ with all the tourists.
When Barry and Jill got to them, he looked a bit angry.
“Come along. We have a hotel to get you to.”
“Sit down, Barry. We’re relaxing after that long flight and talking to friends. Your urgency is not our concern. The hotel isn’t going anywhere.”
“But I’ve organised a few of the press to interview you.”
“Let them wait. We’ll tell them the plane was delayed, turbulence can happen, you know.”
“What about my reputation?”
“Reputation? I’ve just spoken to twenty ordinary TV viewers who tell me that they mute their set when you’re speaking. If you’d done any deep research before you got us here, you should have known that I sometimes do things out of the box, and that we’re all still in third year at school, so are normal people and not vapid pop stars with egos the size of this country. Now, sit down and tell us what you want us to do, and I’ll tell you if it’s agreeable.”
He looked bewildered and sat, as his cameraman couldn’t hide his grin.
“All right. We will take you by limo to the hotel on Darling Harbour, where there was an interview session with the local music reporters. Tomorrow, it had been planned to take you on a tour around the Hunter Valley, with a visit to a winery or two, with lunch in the Blue Mountains at Katoomba. Then we will record the show in the afternoon. Your bit won’t take long, as it will be some talk, before we show the entire Berlin DVD, and some more after the DVD to round out the show. We were planning to show the interview you did with the BBC recently, but talking to Jill, here, about using it, we found that the two of you were available.”
“I can tell you that the wineries are off the table. You seem to forget that we’re only fourteen, not twenty-four. Girls, where do you think we should go and have fun?”
There was a chorus of, ‘Luna Park’.
“What’s at Luna Park, Evelyn?”
“It’s lots of rides and fun things, just the other side of the bridge.”
“All right. Barry, tomorrow morning, after a late breakfast, you will take us to this Luna Park. Jill, I’ll pay for any of the fan club that come along. Put it down on my account.”
Gina chimed in.
“Split it between us, Jill. I didn’t spend over twenty hours in a plane to then spend six hours being driven around in a car.”
“Now, Mister Boysee. What are we doing on New Year’s Eve?”
“You have a free day, but we have you as part of our count down to the fireworks show. There’s actually two shows, one for the young ones earlier in the evening, and the big one at midnight. You will be part of the hosting team, along with some station regulars and a popular duo called ‘Funbase’.”
Willow was looking at the expressions on Evelyn and her friends faces.
“What do you think of ‘Funbase’, girls?”
It was one of the others who answered.
“They’re a couple of stuck-up failed uni students who play electropop. They think that their shit doesn’t stink, they’re very Sydney, and they’re both as bent as a paper clip. We give them about three months before they’re forgotten or in rehab.”
“Looks like you’re not the only one around here with a false impression of your reputation, Barry. We’ll go along with that, seeing that you’ve paid for us to be here. Now, we’ll allow you to take us to the hotel. We’ll see you tomorrow at Luna Park, girls. Tell Jill where we can meet.”
It was the cameraman who led them out to the waiting limo. Their luggage went in the back, and they had some hugs with the fans before getting in with Jill. Wendy, Maisie, and Lauren were in another limo.
They sat with the air-conditioning going. Willow asked the driver why they weren’t going.
“We have to wait for Mister Boysee, young lady.”
“Do you know where we have to go?”
“Yes, but…”
“Barry can get a cab, take us there.”
She saw his grin in the mirror as they pulled away from the terminal. He looked in the mirror and saw her looking.
“Barry was getting into the other car with the cameraman as we had left, Miss. He’s not going to be happy at this.”
Gina laughed.
“No happier than when Willow put him in his place in front of those fans of ours. I thought some of our pop show hosts in Britain were bad, but he’s really the dregs.”
“He’s not the first in this country, not by a long way. It will be fun driving you two around tomorrow.”
“We’re not going far, just to Luna Park to have a bit of fun with our fans.”
“What, no wineries?”
“We’re fourteen, sir, and not allowed to drink yet.”
“I’ve seen the Berlin video; you looked a lot older there?”
“The magic of cosmetics is a wonderful invention. It even made the guys look older.”
“I brought my daughter’s copy of the Berlin show with me. She insisted that I try to get your autographs. I told her that talking to the customers doesn’t usually happen, but she insisted.”
“Sounds like your daughter has done more research than Barry ‘G’day’ Boysee. Bring her along tomorrow, there’ll be at least thirty teenagers there to have fun with us on the rides.”
“Oh, dear. The other presenters won’t be happy. They put on a show for teenagers but have no rapport with them, too busy trying to get promoted to more mainstream shows.”
“We’ve been told that the viewers mute the blather, and just put the sound on for the video clips. The station could save money by just showing back-to-back videos. It does happen in other places.”
They arrived at the hotel, and he pulled up by the main door. The other limo pulled up behind them. Their luggage was whisked away by uniformed lads, and they thanked the driver for a safe trip. They all followed Jill into the foyer, where she collected all their room cards and gave them out. They were in three suites, each with two bedrooms. The luggage had already gone up and Jill asked the reception where the reporters were. The receptionist grinned.
“Two have spent some time in the bar, madam. There is one in the lounge reading a book. He is more of a classical reviewer than a pop reporter.”
“Thank you. We’ll just go and see him.”
In the lounge, they saw him on a seat, reading a book, with an empty cup and saucer on the table in front of him. Willow told Wendy and Maisie to go and rest, and that they would join them in a little while. Jill went up to him, introduced herself and then introduced Willow and Gina, then left them to handle the questions, knowing that they could hold their own.
The friends went and sat down on the two seats opposite him. He gazed at them for a few seconds, and then spoke.
“Why are a couple of good classical players wasting your time with this pop nonsense?”
Willow laughed.
“Perhaps because it makes people happy, we’re good at it, we have fun, and it makes us a lot of money. Pop has always had a use-by date, and it will allow us to spend the rest of our lives in the way we want. How much of our classical work have you heard?”
“A friend of mine has sent me the double CD of an orchestra, with you two playing organ solos on one of the discs.”
“Do you have a shop in Sydney that sells BBC products?”
“There is one, yes.”
“Then have a look for ‘Coventry Classics one and two. One is that orchestra in Coventry Cathedral, with the final piece as Saint-Saens Organ Symphony. Two is also in the Cathedral with the final piece as Beethoven Nine. If you can’t find them, go on-line at the Blue Coat School in Coventry, which has links to all the works that the orchestra have done. The latest is just about to go on the market with us performing the Messiah, which was a BBC show Christmas Eve in Britain. There will also be a BBC product of us with the orchestra with a performance in the Albert Hall as part of the last week of the Proms. That one had Gina playing Grieg.”
“That’s an impressive resume. I’ll have to look at these and write a story based on your output. What do you play?”
Gine answered that one.
“I’ve played piano since I was seven. My mother would drive me to the teacher and leave me there for a few hours. I’ve played piano in the Junior Orchestra at Blue Coat since I started there. It was Willow who introduced me to the organ, by getting me to try out the organ at the church in Stoneleigh, where we both live, and that led to us alternating for services there, which led to us alternating in the Cathedral for about four months.”
“You’ve played hymns and church music a lot?”
“We both have. There are two albums that Willow didn’t mention, as we both recorded double albums at the end of our summer. One with the Kings College Choir, and the other at York Minster, which is religious music and some historical madrigals. Actually, we have both recorded one-hour episodes for ‘Songs of Praise’ at Saint Martins in the Fields church in London. We did that after we recorded our ‘Homegrown’ album at Abbey Road. That was the week after we recorded the orchestra album that you have.”
“What about you, Willow?”
“I’ve played piano and violin since I was in primary school. I also play clarinet, which is my usual seat in the orchestra. I did act as first violin and leader for the Messiah. The organ playing came about as a strange situation before I started at the Blue Coat, and it’s been my main instrument since.”
“How much further are you going to take it?”
“I’m not studying music after high school but will concentrate on business and financial management. That’s not to say that I won’t do further studies along the way. Gina has set her sights on being a soloist pianist.”
“I’ve looked at the Berlin show a couple of times before I came to talk to you. Are any of the others in the orchestra?”
“All of them. The four wind players are regulars, Brent, our drummer, is a percussionist, and plans to do that as further study. The three guitarists have all performed in the Messiah as part of the choir. Jacob, who played the semi-acoustic in the show, has performed the Rodrigo concerto, and did so at the proms. He is sick, at the moment, and unlikely to be playing with us again.”
“Yes, I noticed that he didn’t look happy. I believe that you have a recording for the two-hour show tomorrow, and that you’re going to be part of the team to count down to the fireworks. Then what?”
“Then we get on a plane and go home. We start our second term on the fifth. It’s only a short holiday in Britain. If there’s enough interest, we may be back down here in our summer holiday, which starts at the end of July.”
“Look, I won’t hold you up. It’s been a long day for you. Thank you for being so forthright with your answers. I’ll look at the rest of your impressive careers and will write a piece which will reflect your obvious classical training that allows you to be the pop performers with that slight difference that makes it commercial. Now that you’ve told me this, I’m remembering why some of your music sounded interesting. It’s the infusion of old masters that makes them better. I wish you goodnight.”
They all stood, and he shook hands with both of them, before they went off to their room for a well-earned sleep.
Next morning, they had a large breakfast and felt better after it. None of them could be certain of the time, and the waitress told them that jetlag was usual travelling in the opposite direction to the sun, and that they would have a better time when they go the other way. They had all bought summer dresses which made them feel a bit better when they went outside to the limos. There was a teenage girl standing with the driver.
“I took your advice, Miss Rose, and brought my daughter along. She’s been to Luna Park several times, so can show you the ropes. Samantha, this is Willow Rose and Gina Summer.”
The friends broke the ice by giving the unsure girl a hug.
“Come and sit with us in the back, Samantha. Jill, what are you doing for the day?”
“I’ll come to the park with you to pay for everyone, and then your mothers, Lauren and I are going to do that winery tour that’s been organised. We’ll see you back at the hotel, after you’ve done the recording. Remember, treat young Barry gently, as you may have broken him yesterday.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 17
On the short trip to the Luna Park, Gina gave Samantha a medallion that she had in her bag, and they both carefully signed her copy of the Berlin show. They did a loop around to take the road over the bridge, and then another loop on the other side to arrive at the entrance to Luna Park. There must have been about fifty teenagers waiting for them and they cheered as the three got out of the car. Barry was there, with a grinning cameraman, and a sour-looking woman, made up as if she was a teenager.
Jill went over to Evelyn and made sure of the numbers that were joining the other three and went to pay for four hours of entertainment for all of them, giving Willow, Gina, and Samantha a lanyard, and then going to the others to hand the remainder out. When she had finished, she came back to Willow.
“There you go, you have a lot of friends for being in the country for less than twenty-four hours. Me and your mothers are heading to the hills to try out the local beverage and see if we can get pissed. Have fun. Oh! You have my permission to break that lemon-faced bitch. She wasn’t very nice on the phone, but Clive will be upset if it’s me that broke her. You, you have a free pass. See you later.”
With that, she went to the car and left, with Wendy and Maisie waving as they were driven off. Barry and the woman came over.
“Willow and Gina, this is Meryn Tolberry. She is a co-presenter of the show and was looking forward to showing you the Blue Mountains.”
“Nice to meet you Meryn. If you want to join our parents and get pissed, I did see a radio in the limo, I think that the other car wouldn’t have gone far. We could always get it back for you.”
“I beg your pardon!”
“I can repeat it if you want. The longer you wait, the further that car will be away. Make up your mind. Wineries or some fun with the ones who actually watch your show, if only for the videos.”
“I’ll stay, for a little while.”
“Well, you’d better go and get a lanyard, we seem to have run out. Come on Samantha, we’ll go and meet some more fans.”
The driver said that he had a book to read, so Samantha gave him a hug and rushed after Willow and Gina, who were going over to the big crowd. Willow called out in her leaders voice.
“Now, listen up. You all have four-hour passes. We will be here all morning but have to go back to the hotel to get ready for the TV show.”
She turned to Barry.
“Do you have a live audience?”
“Not usually, what are you thinking of?”
“If you can organise a coach, we could transport a lot of teens to be a captive audience in the studio. That way, they may even listen to the two of you, as long as you don’t do the usual blather and stick to the facts.”
“I don’t know. It would be something different. We could shift studio where there’s seats. What do you think, Meryn?”
“I think that this girl has you around her little finger, Bas. I’m all for it if it means that you get thrown off the show. Don’t worry, Willow, if he’s too chicken, I’ll organise it. We’ll even give you and your pals lunch. You look good enough to go directly on the screen already, so you don’t have to go back to the hotel.”
She went off to one side and rang a friend in the studio, another one with little respect for Barry. The cameraman had all the previous talking recorded for private use, once he and his friends got together in the pub. Willow and Gina went to tell the fans that they would be taken to the studio by coach, given lunch, and would be in the studio for the interview. There was another cheer and a lot of smiles. Then, they all trooped into the funfair to test out the rides.
Over the course of the morning, Willow and Gina rode the rides with most of the group, ate things that were never designed to let one lose weight, and helped Barry and Meryn become less stressed. The cameraman was everywhere, filming the hosts and the stars as they interacted with the teens. As far as he was concerned, the arrival last night would be a great snippet in tonight’s news hour, as well as added to the countdown show. He knew that the news hosts that night would be keen to feature Barry and Meryn with actual smiles on their faces. The two of them would find it hard to live this down, and it couldn’t have happened to two more deserving people.
By the time the coach arrived, all of the teens had phoned home to tell their parents where they could be picked up, later in the day. They all crammed onto the coach, now firm friends, and the limo followed it to the studio, where they were welcomed in and shown to the canteen by Meryn’s friend who had to ask which ones were Willow and Gina. The driver sat with his daughter, Willow, Gina, and Evelyn at a table. They were all given soft drinks and then trays were brought out with plates of pies and chips.
When they were led to a studio, there was a tier of seats, which the fans went and sat on. Willow and Gina were led through to a room to be prepared for TV, something they were now used to. When they came back, there was a cheer from the fans, and then they joined Barry and Meryn, with them on one couch, and the friends on another. Barry opened the show with the welcome and introduced the two stars. The discussion was almost interesting. He had obviously made a major decision and done some quick research, and was aware of their situation at school, their involvement in the orchestra and even the extra albums they had made.
The longer it went on, the sourer Meryn got, and the more she showed herself up with questions about their favourite food, clothing, and even boyfriends. Willow could see Barry quietly enjoying her trying to derail the interview, as he stayed with his notes. Then he said.
“Well, this show is all about the new DVD, ‘Live in Berlin’. We’ll play it first and then come back to Willow Rose and Gina Summer.”
The director called cut. Meryn stood up.
“I’ll be back in a few minutes, and we can finish this.”
Barry looked at Willow, grinned and then called out.
“Does anyone want to actually see the show?”
There was a roar of ‘Yes’, and he turned to Willow.
“Looks like my co-host is going to have to delay her nastiness.”
They had a projector that showed the video on a plain wall of the studio, and good audio, so it was like being in a cinema. They sat and watched the show, with Barry coming to sit next to Willow, and her pointing out moments in the show that made him realise just how professional the band was, having been used to bands with small repertoires and big egos.
When the show finished, Meryn hadn’t returned, so they finished the show, with Barry able to ask questions based on the information Willow had imparted. She was able to expand on the look of Jacob, explaining that he was currently in hospital and that they would carry on as a ten-piece. With the final cut, the director came over and asked Barry if he wanted to help out for the countdown, tomorrow. When Barry said ‘yes’, the director turned to the teenage audience.
“You have been a great help today. We have room for you to be in the background of our live show tomorrow night. We will have the coach outside at seven, so any of you that are allowed to join us should be here by then, and you’ll see the fireworks from our commentary position. The coach will bring you back here for your parents to pick you up at about one in the morning. I know that there’s several cars outside, so go and see if you’re allowed. Thank you for making the show something better.”
Willow and Gina were taken off to be returned to normal look, and then they joined an excited Samantha and her father, to head out to the limo. Outside, the friends spent some time being introduced to a lot of parents, by their excited children. Samantha looked on, alongside her father, and then turned to him.
“Daddy, those two are so sure of themselves. They’re the same age as me but seem years older. I wonder if it would help if I took up an instrument. Gina told me that learning to play music without reading the score helps the brain, everyone in Summer Rose are ‘A’ students and heading for university.”
“We’ll have a look in the music shop and see what we can find. You do realise that it would be a lot of practise and some extra tuition.”
“That’s all right, Dad. I’ll stop playing video games, none of the band do much of that.”
“It’s a pity we don’t have a school here that’s as good as the one they go to.”
He had a little smile. He had been trying to wean Samantha off video games for several months. Perhaps this could be the turning of that particular corner.
He took the girls back to the hotel. The other limo was in one of the carparks, so he parked his and escorted his passengers into the hotel. The other driver was sitting with the four women when they went into the lounge. Jill stood up and came to give Willow a hug. Willow could smell a little wine on her breath.
“Welcome back. How did the show go”
“Ask Samantha, she was in the audience.”
“Audience! Barry told me that they did the show in an empty studio.”
“Not today. That Meryn ordered up a coach for the fans, and we were all taken to the station for lunch and then to a studio with seats for the fans. I thought that Barry was very different and had done some homework. Meryn got more and more pissed off and didn’t return after we saw the video. That would look great in a cinema.”
“Let me get this right. You broke her and mended him. We’ll have to ask Evelyn what she thinks, sometime.”
“You can talk to her tomorrow night. The whole group have been invited to attend the countdown at the commentary site. The station is putting on a coach to take them there and take them back.”
“That’s not what I had been told. That Meryn said that she was getting a load of trendy friends to look cool as the backdrop.”
Samantha’s father was asked if he would like to join them for dinner, so he rang home to tell his wife that he, and Samantha, would be a little late. So, it was nine of them who sat down for dinner. There was a TV in the corner, and the news came on at six. Jill gestured to the waitress to put the sound up for a few minutes, as the screen showed an Emirates plane touch down, and then a crowd of teens in the terminal. The voice-over spoke about two British teenage pop stars arriving, and then spoke about the unusual attitude of the stars as Willow went over to speak to them. It went on to say that the pop stars took time out to enjoy the delights of Sydney, with some great footage of them all having fun on the rides, with close-up pictures of Barry and Meryn smiling among a bunch of teenagers. The waitress was watching and snorted.
“That’s one reputation in the bin. That Meryn has built a persona as a sophisticated mentor of older teens. Those pictures are going to kill her.”
She went and turned the sound down again, and Jill smiled at Willow.
“The smiling assassin strikes. All done with a minimum of violence.”
They had the dinner and said goodnight to the drivers and a sleepy Samantha, then went up to their rooms. Willow sat and looked out of her window, across Darling Harbour, to the Opera House, looking exactly like it did in pictures she had seen. It had been a good day, with a lot of fun at Luna Park. It was an experience that had evaded her in her younger days, and the joy of being on the rides with a load of friends was something she had often wondered about. She watched a little TV and went to bed early, after a shower. The travel had caught up with her.
Next morning, they walked around the Harbour to the City and wandered through the shops. It was so much similar to what you see in Britain, and it felt, at times, as if they hadn’t left home. What was different, was one shop that sold a lot of New Zealand products, and she bought a few pure merino sleeveless tops for when she got home.
They had dinner in the hotel, and then went to change for the show. It was going to still be hot, but they needed to look like pop stars, so had brought light shifts that were all right with open sandals, but flashy enough to stand out. The two limos picked them up and took them to a place closer to the mouth of the harbour, where they had a good view towards the bridge. It was an iconic view that they had seen on TV before. They met the other presenters.
Barry was there and hugged the two friends.
“Thank you for yesterday. I’ve been trying to live up to Meryn and her ‘cool’ for some time, never realising how hard she’s been working to prise me out of the show. The director has told me that he was appalled at her attitude in the first part of the interview, and is being moved to commentating on sport, something she hates with a passion.”
He introduced them to Bluey Jones, a gruff New Zealander who was on another music quiz show, and his co-host Maddie Parker, a vivacious late twenties with a sparkle of fun in her eyes.
“The news is racing around the business about Meryn. Three studio friends have already rung me to tell me the news, as well as how good Barry is now. Who would have thought that he had it in him.”
The duo from ‘Funbase’ was everything that had been described. Vacuous, totally gay, and with egos as big as the bridge. Willow decided that she was going to stay well away from them during the night. The coachload of fans turned up and the atmosphere became party-like. There were several monitors, which showed what was going to air, and it was getting towards the end of the news, with a picture of this part of the country with several numbers in the high thirties and low forties for tomorrow. Following was the two-hour show which was timed to finish for the nine ‘o’ clock fireworks. There were plenty of seats, so everyone just relaxed and talked.
The director gave Jill a DVD of the edited show for her records and told her that the money they had spent had been well worth it, if not in ways that they had thought. Some of the fans sat at the monitors and watched the show, squealing whenever they thought that they saw themselves. When it finished, the hosts were ready to go live, introducing themselves and the guests. The half an hour before the first fireworks was made up of chat, and some prerecorded music from local singers.
They all laughed and clapped with the first session of fireworks, a brighter effect to counter that it wasn’t fully dark. Willow suspected that it was aimed and those watching the show at home, because there didn’t seem to be many leaving the vantage places when it had finished.
After that it was work for the next two and a half hours, some of it trying to stop ‘Funbase’ making silly remarks and giggling. By eleven, the two of them were stretched out on the grass and snoring, which forced the director to get some help to take them away. He apologised to Jill and wondered if it had upset any of the fan club. Jill told him that the fan club had told them, soon after they had arrived, that ‘Funbase’ would be forgotten or in rehab in a very short time.
Willow and Gina were sitting with Evelyn and Samantha when the cameraman came over with Bluey and set up to film them from their level. Bluey sat on the grass, and, when they went live, started to talk to them as if they were friends at a picnic. They compared the English school life with the Sydney version, with Evelyn and Samantha being quite open with him. Gina had to tell him that they had been transported to and from school with security, and they spoke about the summer tour, laughing about getting the Liverpool audience singing the club song.
Bluey suddenly face-palmed.
“I remember that. It was six months ago. I saw it on Liverpool TV. I thought that it had to have been part of the set. You’re telling me that it was a spur of the moment thing?”
“We had talked about it during the day, while standing beside the Mersey, after visiting the British Music Experience. The next night, we repeated it and had the entire first team on stage with us, wearing their jerseys.”
“What about this other band that toured Europe with you, G-Force?”
“They are all fifth formers at our school, and Zara, the singer, plays cello in the orchestra. We did the Monday night of the last week of the Proms, in the Albert Hall, and we needed an encore but didn’t have one. She went out and played the ‘Swan’ and it was beautiful.”
He then said that it was time to see a clip of G-Force, and they went to part of the Paris show. As it was playing, he wondered if the two bands would come down and play for them. Gina just said that if it’s organised, it would be nice, as long as it was at a time when it wasn’t so hot, but still nice enough for them to play big venues. He smiled.
“Leave that with me, I have friends.”
At midnight, they saw the main fireworks, and it had been worth waiting for. When it finished, the hosts signed off with a thanks to all their guests, and people started to leave. Willow glanced at the monitor, to see the clip from the BBC interview playing, with the credits rolling. She looked over to the bridge and decided that ‘Smoke on the Water’ fitted quite nicely.
The fans were all teary at saying farewell, and Willow promised Evelyn that she would be in touch, with Evelyn hugging her hard enough to make breathing difficult. They were taken back to the hotel in the limos, with Samantha very sorry to see them go. Gina took her details and promised to be in touch. She hugged them both, with tears in her eyes, at the hotel, and her father thanked them both for such an uplifting couple of days as her made sure his daughter was strapped in.
They slept in, as the flight out wasn’t until a quarter to ten that night, to arrive in Dubai a bit after five the following morning, after fourteen and a half hours in the air. They remembered what they had been told. It was going to be a long night. They were having breakfast and talking about what they could do on a very hot day. The hotel was part of a long row, so they could walk quite a way, and look at lots of shops, while still inside. They came to a shop, on the ground floor, that sold boat tours of the harbour, with a tour starting in five minutes and the boat moored ten yards away.
They bought tickets and walked across to the boat, going inside where the air was much cooler. There was a small crowd of sightseers when the boat cast off, with the speakers immediately coming to life with the captain telling them about the Opera House as they edged out into the harbour. From a side window, they could see the bridge looming over them, so Willow and Gina went to a little shop that sold expensive souvenirs, buying big hats with a picture of the bridge on them, and going up on deck to look up as the boat passed underneath. Willow also had bought a small boomerang with a picture of the Opera House on it for Howard Bamborough.
The breeze across the water was almost refreshing, so they stayed on the deck as they went past Luna Park and a little way further, before the boat made a wide turn, to head back. As they went under the bridge again, they thought that it might be a very short trip, but they carried on towards the mouth of the harbour, reaching the open sea before turning back and heading for the dock once more.
All the way, they were talking about the events of their short stay, and the effect that having a fan club around them had on the way they thought. Both had lived almost solitary childhoods, and being among so many of their own age, just having a good time, had been cathartic for them. As they went back up the harbour, they went and joined the others inside.
“Jill, do we have a fan club in England?”
“We do get a sackful of mail for you every couple of days, Willow. They are usually gushing praise and a request for freebies. We have a stock of photos, done at the Abbey Road session, which have been overprinted with your autographs. We generally send back the band picture, with an individual picture if asked for. As for actual fan clubs, there have been a few that have sprung up, and these are listed on the label website, in a list of all the fan clubs which our other artists have. I am aware that there have been a few that have sprung up in Europe, but this was the first I had heard of anywhere else. What do you want to do about it?”
“I promised Evelyn that I would send her some medallions to replace those tacky plastic ones, and I thought I would get Peter to send her a bunch of posters as well. I have her email address, so I’ll send her a message when I get home, to tell her I’ve arrived, and I’ll ask her if she knows of any other clubs in Australia. That Bluey, last night, asked us if we’d play a tour and told us that he had friends, so you may have somewhere for us to go next summer.”
“It would have to be worth it because of the logistics. Getting ten of you here, with the extras, can be expensive. It would have to be a multi-city tour to make it worthwhile. Ticket prices here are a bit cheaper for new bands, so we’ll have to be playing big venues to make it work. We’ll wait and see what happens. Last night was a blast, in more ways than one.”
When they got back to the hotel, there was a message for them at reception. The director of yesterday’s show wanted to talk to them, and asked if they could call. Jill rang him, and he told her that he would send a minibus to pick them up and take them to lunch. They had time to go and freshen up and were in the reception when a minibus, with the station logo on the side, pulled up. Barry got out and came into them.
“Good morning to you, my friends. It is a good morning, as it’s the first day of the year and the first day of my new contract. I have a music show to host, with a mainly teenage audience, and have been instructed that if I carry on like I did with you, the contract has no limit. I, and the station, am pleased to take you for lunch before you go home.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 18
He helped them into the minibus, and they settled as the driver took them towards the city but took a road that put them on the New South Head Road, back towards the site of last night’s commentary position. Eventually, they arrived at Watsons Bay, and stopped outside Doyles on the Beach. At first, the friends thought it to be just a fish and chips café, but inside, when they met up with the show director, the Head of Entertainment, and Bluey, they found that it was much more than that.
They had a table that looked up the harbour to the city skyline in the distance. The food was sublime, with Willow being beaten by the size of her ‘surf and turf’ plate, never having so much meat on a plate before, not forgetting the king prawns and the chips she had asked for.
The talk was about last night and the show. Everyone at the station was happy with how it progressed, with a lot of phone-in comments on how friendly the later part was, with interesting conversation, rather than tipsy socialites gibbering. The two-hour show was slated to be repeated in other states during the next month and had already been syndicated to a station in New Zealand.
Of course, they wanted more, only to be reminded that the band were still at school and unable to dash around the world at a moment’s notice. Jill stated that any visit by the full band had to be linked to a tour, or else it wouldn’t be viable. The friends and their mothers listened as the talk flowed to and from, with the upshot being that the station would back a promoter, should one eventuate, with free advertising and a promotional show, filmed by the BBC, in Britain, to be shown a few weeks before any tour.
Lauren was quietly recording the conversation, to be played to Clive and others when they got back to London. Bluey asked the girls if they would have any new material by then. Willow told him that there was already an album that hadn’t been released yet, and that she was thinking about a sequel album to the ‘Journey’ one, that took the newly married girl beyond the wedding and into real life. She didn’t tell them that last night, before she went to sleep, she had written the title of every song in her notebook, all names of various fireworks.
The lunch was a protracted one, with conversation filling the period between the main meal and dessert, which gave Willow stomach space for some tiramisu. The adults drank wine, and the girls had ginger beer. They did find out that Meryn had been offered a new role in a commentary team for the upcoming tennis season, starting with a junior role with the Australian Open. Although it would include a lot of overseas travel, she had taken a few weeks off ‘to consider her options’. Barry was now the ‘King of the Kids’ and there would be clips of him on the rides to prove it.
Jill asked the question about whether showing the full Berlin show was wise, considering that people could have recorded it. She was told that everyone at the fireworks would have left the TV off as they were there, and it was unlikely to affect the sales. When the lunch wound up, the visitors were thanked for their professionalism and friendliness, as well as their honesty and ability to round up so many of the show’s demographic at a moment’s notice.
Barry stayed with the others, to talk about future directions, as the minibus took them back to the hotel. The rooms had been booked until the following morning, so there was no rush to pack. They were all too full to eat, knowing that there was likely to be a snack on the plane. Gina and Willow found an ice-cream shop near the hotel and sat in the shade with ice creams in tubs, as cones would have melted too quickly.
“So, friend. We may have a tour down here in the summer. That would be interesting.”
“Yes, it will. It will longer distances between shows, and there are only a small number of places with a big enough population to play at, if you include New Zealand, so there may be time in between shows to sightsee. I believe that there are big enough sporting venues in each city, so we could be playing outdoors again, and I think the only difference will be that some grounds might be ovals, rather than rectangles. But that’s for others to work out. For us, it’s getting home, sleeping in our own beds, and going to school to start another term. I wonder what the Head will say at assembly?”
“I wonder what the Bishop will want at Easter!”
Back in their rooms, they all packed for the return. It would be the long fourteen-hour trip to Dubai, with a long night, and leaving again for London after two in the afternoon, to arrive, after a seven-hour flight, just three and a half hours after they had taken off. In Dubai, Jill had told them that they would spend the time in the International Lounge, with a café and shower facilities, so to pack something to change into in the carry-on.
They checked out, and a stretch limo took them to the airport, the last gift of a grateful Barry. There, they went through the usual procedure to end up in a lounge, being looked after. Some of the other passengers were businessmen and women going to London to see various companies, and the girls had polite requests for autographs in the new diaries, with nice comments about the show last night. It was certainly a different fan base from the last couple of days. The first flight was, as they had been told, a very long night, as it dark when they took off, arriving as the sun was rising over the desert. They enjoyed a late-night snack, a long sleep, a ‘midnight’ break, more sleep and a very early breakfast as they began the long descent.
They landed after five in the morning and were due to leave after two that afternoon. They took their carry-on luggage to the first-class transit lounge, where there were comfortable seats, air-conditioning, showers, and a view out over the airport. They all took showers and came out in new outfits for the trip to London, having learned a lot on the way out. They all sat in the comfortable chairs and spoke about the trip. Jill and Lauren were upbeat about the whole thing. The pre-fireworks show looked good, the fireworks were fun, with the overall show coming out as positive. The talk about the tour was something that had been hoped for, without any real thought that it could happen.
Wendy and Maisie had enjoyed a great holiday, in a place they never thought that they’d see, had met a lot of nice people, and had a great deal of pride in how their daughters had behaved. Jill asked the girls about the interview with the reporter. Gina laughed.
“He tried to get us off-balance by insulting us, and ended up telling us that he had to do a lot more research before he wrote anything. All he had heard was the school orchestra album and the Berlin show. He thought that we were selling ourselves short with the rock.”
They ate lunch and then prepared for the next leg of the trip. They would be landing before six, that same day, and it would be dark by then, but over six hours would have the sun shining on the wings. They had time to watch a movie, and eat a good dinner, before the descent started. They were coming home and looking forward to sleeping in the apartments that night.
They were met by Ashley, with a limo waiting outside and sporting a bandage around his head. Wendy hugged him.
“What on earth happened to you? I can’t leave you alone for a couple of days and you’re injured. Does it hurt?”
“Not as much as my pride, darling. Let’s get heading home and I’ll tell you about it.”
They had hugs with Jill and Lauren, who had called for an Uber to take them to their homes and went out to the waiting limo.
On the way, Wendy touched his arm.
“Now, you bad boy, tell all!”
“Well, I had a nice couple of days going to see a couple of movies I wanted to see. I decided that I wanted to see the fireworks along the Thames. I had originally thought about going to Trafalgar Square but ended up on the Embankment; just the right time and place to be involved in a battle between two warring street gangs. I only had a money belt with some cash, and a wallet with a twenty-pound note, in case I was robbed. I was trying to get out from the melee when the boys in blue arrived, not in the mood to be nice. I copped a baton to the head, and woke up in a van, heading for Charing Cross police station.”
“Why didn’t you tell them who you were?”
“They wouldn’t listen. A lot of the protesters looked just like me and only a few had whatever tribal outfits they usually wear. It took until morning before I was allowed a phone call, and I called Carlo to ask Ted to come down and vouch for me. They didn’t even let me out for that and just showed him my mug shot!”
“That would be difficult, seeing that you look like a serial killer on your passport.”
“Thank you, my darling, I love you too. Anyway, he confirmed what I had told them, and they allowed someone to look at my head and dress it. He took me to the apartment, where I’ve been living on paracetamol before coming to pick you up.”
“Have you kept the mug shot? It would make a great Christmas card for your parents.”
“Who stole my loving wife and sent me this comedian? I didn’t even get to see the fireworks.”
Willow grinned.
“But you did see stars, Dad, didn’t you?”
“Not you as well. What happened on your trip that sent you here with such cheerfulness? There I am, injured and hurting, and all I get is jokes. It’s enough to take all the fun out of being a loving husband and father.”
“It’s OK, Dad. We’re just happy to be home and to see you alive and mostly well. We had a big few days. Your wife went off and got pissed in wineries while Gina and I saved one career, while destroying another, and hosted fifty teenagers in a funfair. We also made a two-hour TV show and then spent over five hours as hosts for the Sydney Harbour fireworks. Nothing out of the ordinary, for us.”
He smiled, for the first time in a couple of days.
“That’s something you’ll have to expand on when we drive home. We’ll leave when you all wake up in the morning, so you have a day at home before you start school, and we go back to work.”
When they arrived at the apartment, it was a bit like coming home for Willow, to be able to snuggle with City Shaun tonight and have time for herself. Ted came out of the restaurant as they were unloading the bags.
“Welcome home, International Ladies of Mystery. I suppose that you’ve been told about my mission of mercy, saving Ashley from the dark cells of the local plod? He certainly saw in the New Year in an interesting place, not usually seen by us pillars of society.”
“It’s all right, Ted. They’ve already given me heaps on the drive here. I’m genuinely sorry for myself, but I will rise above this!”
He put his fist up in the air and staggered a bit. Wendy took his arm.
“Come on, Sir Knight, let’s get you upstairs, unless you want to stay down here, and we’ll join you for something to eat.”
“I’ll sit with Ted and wait for you, darling. Just one climb up the stairs will be enough for today.”
The women carried their luggage up to the apartments, had a comfort stop, and then went back down to join Ashley and the other two couples for a meal. Over the course of the dinner, the others were treated to a potted version of their time in Australia. Even though they had a lot of sleep in the plane, the effect of night falling was enough to send them all for some more slumber after dessert.
After breakfast in the restaurant, the girls waited by the door as Wendy, Ashley, and Maisie went off to get the cars. They loaded the luggage in the cars, now a lot lighter as they were leaving things behind, and then said cheerio. The friends had a hug before getting in to go home. Maisie followed Wendy out of London, with Ashley helping with instructions until they reached the motorway north. Willow sat in the back seat, eyes shut and dreaming about being on tour, and playing Sydney with her new friends in the front row.
It was nice to arrive at their house, but a little odd as well. They hadn’t been here since the last day of the school term, and so much had happened since. She had her bags to take up to her room and unpack, she had the pile of awards to take in, and she needed to have a look at her laptop, so put it on to charge.
First was unpacking and putting the clean things away, putting the dirty in for the laundry, and adding any souvenirs to the top of her desk. She hung her Luna Park lanyard with her Abbey Road and tour ones and then stripped off to shower and wash her hair with her own shampoo and conditioner.
By the time she had dressed, the laptop was fully charged, and she grabbed her notebook and went downstairs to the kitchen, joining her parents. When she turned the computer on, she saw that she had emails.
There was one from Peter, congratulating the band on all the new awards they had gained and wishing them a good festive season, as well as saying that the next statement would be later, as the label and his office would be closed until the second week of January. Willow composed one to him, asking him to send a box of the gold medallions and a stack of posters to Evelyn, the President of the Summer Rose Fan Club in Australia, and gave her address and email address. After she had sent that, she sent an email to Evelyn to tell her that they were back home. She hinted that there had been talk about a tour in the middle of the year, and asked if she knew of any other Summer Rose Fan Clubs in Australia.
Before she sent it, she noticed one from Jill dated before the trip, which had attachments. When she looked, it had some photos taken at the award presentation, with a nice one of her with her awards, as well as one of the whole band. She saved all the photos to a separate file and then added the two to the draft, adding the note of what the awards were, and that there would be a package from her manager late in the month. After she had sent it, she showed the photos to Wendy, who got her to email them to her so that she can get them printed at work and laminated. The one of the whole band would look good, she said, on the wall in the apartment.
Wendy had taken pictures of them in their finery and said that she would get them printed and buy frames, as they showed the Rose family looking like royalty. After that, Willow looked at a lot of other emails, mostly from the band, wishing her and Gina a good trip. To save time, she went into Word and wrote a precis of what had happened, transferring her phone pictures to a separate file, and adding a few to a group email, then copying and pasting the message. She also sent the same message and photos to her grandmother, after thanking her for the Christmas card that had been opened by her mother, just ten minutes before.
There was one that she hadn’t opened, and that was from Wilhelm. She hoped it wasn’t bad news and was pleasantly surprised that it was a statement of accounts for the end of the year for the two syndicates. The Summer Love had received a payment from the estate agent, with the fourth quarter lease payment from the Coventry property and also the Leicester property, while the Legs syndicate had received the lease payments from both tenants at Small Heath for the full year to come. Wilhelm said that he would wait a while before requesting any top-up from the band. He had a note on the end, thanking all the band for their messages of support for Jacob, and for the awards that Herb and Nancy had left with Racheal.
They had lunch, and Willow asked her father if they could go to the studio to add the new awards to the display. She wanted the four Double Platinum to go under the new sign. The two of them did that while Wendy started to work on the laundry.
At the Leicester site, it looked forlorn without the bustle of industry. Willow opened the gate so Ashley could drive in. They took the awards and his toolbox through to the studio and set to work making a new set of hanging hooks. The Gold for the Berlin DVD went with the other ones, along with her composing Platinum, and the four doubles were hung under the sign.
When they had done that, they went through to the control room and switched on the lights for the studio. They could see a couple of the chairs, with two microphones, and an acoustic guitar on the floor. They went into the studio to tidy up. Willow picked up the new Martin and placed it in its case, while Ashley took the chairs down to the end near the sliding door. Willow then found the dustpan and brush that they had brought and swept up the remnants of drugs that must have been scattered in the rest room when Wilhelm had found Jacob high, which led to the rest of it.
“Can we drop the guitar with Racheal, please, Dad. It needs to be kept safe for Jacob.”
“We can do that by looping through Coventry on the way back. I was given a shopping list, so we can stop at the supermarket on the way as well. This was a sad state of affairs.”
“It was, Dad. At least he was caught before he was totally lost. We had a couple at the fireworks commentary. They were well lost, hardly able to string two words together without falling about giggling. They ended up falling asleep by eleven and had to be carried away because we were tripping over them. Evelyn’s friend told us that they were a pair of gay, failed, uni students and wouldn’t be remembered by Easter. Rather a sobering thought.”
“That’s not something that you told us yesterday.”
“Well, there are some things for friends to know, and other things to share with my Dad. Did you get to keep the mug shot?”
He pulled his wallet out and extracted a very small picture with him in front of a height scale, with a nasty red lump on his head.
“This is strictly between us, love. Take it as a warning to be very careful where you go, and to take notice of the people around you. If I had not been so keen to look along the river, I may have extracted myself from the area before the fight started.”
“Already do that, Dad. One of the hazards of being a girl. I’ll put this rubbish in the bin, and we can head off. It looks like nobody has been here since Jacob and Anita. I suppose that the place will get more work during the year. Thank you for helping put up the awards.”
“Only too happy to be part of what you do, my daughter. Those walls are testaments to your skill and hard work.”
They turned things off and locked up, driving into Coventry to stock up the fridge and larder at home. When they pulled up in the farmyard, it seemed quiet until Racheal opened the door and beckoned them in.
“Hello, Racheal, Happy New Year. I’ve got a new guitar that Jacob left in the studio. How’s my favourite goddaughter?”
“Hello, Willow and Ashley. I hear that you’ve been on a quick trip to Australia. Herb told me when he came to drop off all those awards. Rebeccah is doing fine, and asleep at the moment. Come on in for a cuppa and I’ll tell you the saga of the Hikers.”
After looking at the sleeping baby, they sat at the kitchen table.
“So, Rach. What’s this about the Hikers? Nothing too serious, I hope.”
“You know that they had a tour of Spain. Well, that was going well until Alex scored some drugs. You knew that he was into weed and stuff. The problem was that what he had bought wasn’t as good as it should have been. Mixed with soap powder or something, they say. He ended up in hospital with twenty grammes still in a bag in his pocket. He’s still in Spain, but under police guard. Of course, the tour was ruined. Rick said that the boys tried to carry on without him but were so bad they got booed. He’s out in the fields on a tractor at the moment and thinking hard about what he wants to do in life. Be a pop star or a farmer. I know the money is chalk and cheese, but I know what I’d like him to do. We have enough to buffer us for a good five years, so we could be up to full output by then, so could be comfortable. I suppose that he may be asked to sing in another band, but I’m not holding my breath.”
“Look, Rach. If you ever need help, just ask. We had a windfall from our European week, so I have some extra on hand. I know that Jacob also got a big payout, so your father may be able to help as well.”
“He’s already told me that he would loan me some of Jacob’s money, with a view to Jacob writing it off when he’s better. Mind you, I believe that my brother isn’t taking his confinement very well. It’s certainly not voluntary, but Dad has put his foot down. That trouble with our cousin, getting caught smoking pot, and then OD’ing on heroin isn’t a good look for a fourteen-year-old ‘A’ student. From what I’ve been told by Rick, Anita and Alex are not in their own parent’s good books either. What happened with your head, Ashley?”
“Would you believe that I was hit by a policeman’s baton, while being thought to be a protester on the Embankment on New Year’s Eve.”
“You were there! I saw that on the TV news on New Year’s day. Did they say sorry and take you to hospital?”
“No, they threw me in a van and took me to the nick where I spent the night in a cell.”
“They did let you out, though?”
“Eventually. I heard the fireworks but didn’t see them, which was why I was there.”
“You poor thing. Maybe next year. You may even be down under with Willow and see Sydney. That would have been loud.”
“It was spectacular, Rach, and well worth the trip, although it was work for Gina and I as we were co-hosting the TV show for about five hours.”
They said that they had shopping to take home, so gave Racheal a hug and left. On the short trip home, Ashley was quiet. Willow put her hand on his arm.
“It’s all right, Dad. I have no intention of getting caught up with drugs, not even wearing nicotine patches. I have far too much respect for my family and my body to go down that hole.”
“How many times have you been told that you can read minds, great one?”
“Too many times, Dad, too many times.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 19
Back at home, they put the shopping away and Willow went to help Wendy with the laundry. Being Saturday, they went to the club to have dinner and catch up with the villagers. When Ashley was asked about his head, he just told them that he had run into something wooden.
Maisie and Gina came along, so the two friends sat together. Willow told Gina about what Racheal had told her that morning.
“That’s terrible. No wonder his parents are laying down the law. I wonder if the statements that he was leaving the band and the syndicates had actually come from them. Wilhelm was pretty slick with transferring the money. Still, we can’t take the chance that he would do something to derail a tour, like the Hikers, so it’s best that he’s out of it.”
“It would be better for us if we’re more hard rock, but the album I’m trying to work out follows the ‘Journey’ one, which was all sweetness and love. I suppose that I can make it hard-edged with nasty surprises, but it should have an uplifting final track to give hope after the angst.”
“Didn’t you say something about that in Australia? While we were at that seafood place.”
“Yes. I have all the titles written down; it all came to me as we were watching the fireworks. I have the idea that it will be called ‘Fireworks – The Journey Continues’, and all the songs are named for fireworks.”
She pulled her notebook out of her bag.
“Now, we start with ‘Sparklers’, which describes the rings on her fingers as a continuation of ‘Her Day”. Then we have ‘Catherine Wheels’ which is about the reception and all the mad dancing. Then there’s a song about the honeymoon, called ‘Rocket (to the moon and back)’. That’s followed by ‘Crackers’ about the craziness of newly married life and getting into a routine; ‘Banger’ is buying a car for her; ‘Shower’ is the realisation that it’s all hard work. Then the bad bits. ‘Thunderclap’ is finding out that her husband is seeing someone on the sly, and that’s followed by two songs that run together. ‘Pyro (technic)’ is getting a detective to get the evidence, with ‘Pyro (maniac)’ where she presents her evidence and accuses him of trying to burn down the family. The final track will be ‘Starburst’ which is an uplifting song about a new life without him but with a car, a house, a career, and -as a final twist- a new baby growing inside her. That could lead into another album about taking the journey further, but with a companion that you had not considered.”
“Wow! That will be interesting once you get the words and the tunes. You know what you want to say, and that’s a start. If we’re a bit free in the next term, you’ll have time to work on it. It does sound that you listened to that reporter in Sydney. I can see bits of classics in many of those songs. Some of the ‘Fireworks Symphony’, bits of the Wedding March, maybe some Wagnerian themes. In ‘Rocket’ I can hear a building crescendo with a moment of silence. The cover can just be pictures of the fireworks scattered across it.”
“You’re right. I had thought that the ‘Pyro (maniac)’ track could have a background theme similar to ‘Ride of the Valkyries’.”
“Mum and I had a lot to talk about on the drive home. We spoke about the convenience of having a second home. With what I’ve earned, we can buy something in the south of France, which she loves. It can be somewhere we can go to in the Christmas break. I’m doing well with French and Italian, so we can get somewhere nice.”
“You could get a chateau, like on TV, and put us all up. That will all depend on what France does about expats. Spain has put a lot of hurdles in the way of living there.”
“If we get a chateau, there should be room for a grand piano, and would be a good base for when I’m a soloist. I like that. I’ll talk to Mum about that idea.”
That night, Willow was able to tell her Tiger of all the things that had happened to her since she had last cuddled him. She didn’t tell her furry friends about City Shaun, in case they got jealous.
Sunday morning, the family went to the church and listened to Jim on the organ. They went over to the club, where Ashley put a beret over his bandage and pretended to be a French waiter. They had lunch and went home, where Willow sat down with her notebook, and her previous lyrics, to turn everything into a pop masterpiece. That evening, she made sure that her uniform was ready to go.
Monday morning, she climbed into the people mover.
“Good morning, Max, good morning, Sebastian. I hope that you had a good break?”
“It was all right. How was yours? Did you get plenty of rest?”
“If you count over forty hours in a plane rest, yes, I did.”
She was starting to tell them about the trip when they picked up Gina, and both related the saga that was the trip. At the school, they went to put bags in their lockers and joined the throng waiting to go into the theatre.
When they went in and lined up in their years, Jim was playing the Bach. Gina giggled.
“Looks like we both got bumped by a man.”
After the sermon, hymn, and blessing for the term to come, the Head came out to the microphone.
“Welcome to the New Year and the Spring Term. This is usually one where the first-year students have found their feet, and other years are striving for good marks. Last term was, I have to say, different. The very first day of term saw our orchestra play in the Albert Hall for the Monday of the last week of the Proms. That was a very great compliment for the combined orchestra, but also for our teaching methods here in school. After that, that same orchestra, with our choir and others, started to work on the greatest religious oratorio of all time, the Messiah. They played one night here in this theatre, and then went on to play three sold-out performances in the Cathedral, which were filmed by the BBC and broadcast on Christmas Eve. I’m told that there will be an official DVD later in the year, but we do have a CD and a DVD filmed here in the school, for sale from this week. The CD that we have has been taken up by a record label and will be released nationally. On that note, the CD that our orchestra recorded at Abbey Road, last year, has been given a Gold Record for sales, which is now on display in reception.”
She paused and looked around the hall, her eyes finding Willow, sitting quietly.
“What I’m going to tell you, now, is a direct result of all that success. We now have the equipment to teach advanced mixing and recording techniques, with courses starting this term. Our friend, the Bishop of Coventry, has requested that our orchestra works on another oratorio, Joseph Haydn’s ‘Creation’. It is another huge work, with the original performance featuring a hundred and twenty instruments, sixty singers and three soloists. Of course, we won’t go that large. Also, the BBC have spoken to us about performing at the Proms again. This will be a better evening, the Saturday night before the last week. They have asked us to perform the Messiah, and our choir will be boosted by the soloists and voices of the English National Opera. They will come here for rehearsals. The Saturday performance will be broadcast live. Because of this, our original plan of separating the two orchestras has been forgotten. The Junior Orchestra will now consist of the first- and second-year players, plus any third-year players who want to mentor them. The current combined orchestra will now be the Senior Orchestra for this year, with the unenviable duty to perform the two biggest oratorio in the same year.”
She scanned the theatre as the orchestra was taking this in.
“Before I go on to more mundane things, I would like to tell you about a party I went to, before Christmas. It was presented by the label that has marketed our music on a national basis, and there are links to that on our website. At that party, I received the Gold Record for the album, on behalf of the school. Our conductor, Mister Bamborough, also received one. There were a lot of well-known singers there, but the runaway winners that night was our own Summer Rose, all students at the school. Will you all please stand.”
The ten stood and blushed as the school applauded them. When they sat down, the Head smiled.
“That evening, they received Double Platinum Records for two of their albums, as well as for two of their DVDs. Their new live show in Berlin was given a Gold Record, and Willow Rose was awarded an individual Double Platinum for writing the entire ‘Journey’ album. We are proud to be able to support such outstanding students. Now, on to more mundane matters…”
When the assembly was over, a lot of the students wanted to congratulate the band members. When they were back into the main school, everyone wanted to pass through reception to see the Gold Record. Above it was the group picture, taken at the party, blown up and framed, with them all looking dapper and beautiful and laden with the awards. Miss Russell stood by it, with a texta, and told all the band members to sign the picture as they passed by.
When Willow and Gina had signed, Miss Russell grinned.
“Busy year for you two this year. At least you only have to master one extra piece. It looks like you’ll be leader again, Willow. Abbie has asked to lead the juniors. She’ll be good for them as she learned so much from you last year.”
The lessons brought them back to something approaching normal, and the school year had started. Willow had looked at her schedule and found that gym was on Tuesday afternoon, this term, and the Combined Orchestra was on Wednesday afternoons, finishing in time for her to help out in the evening with the Village Choir.
When she arrived home, she found a parcel on the step, from the University. It contained her course notes, and the lectures were set for Tuesdays and Thursdays, from eight to nine. There were short exams, every now and then, to show that the students were actually attending, and a warning that there would be projects for the end of each term, with a real-world situation for them to explore and offer a solution to.
She was expected to study for up to twenty-five hours a week, with the total course taking the year to complete the four separate modules, which would give her a Certificate of Higher Education in Business Management, and the key to a degree course later. She read a letter which stated that, although she was years younger than the minimum age, the committee had agreed to let her register due to her consistent high marks and the letter from the Head of the Blue Coat School.
There was paperwork that gave her access to the Student Portal and the Virtual Learning Environment, and a membership card for the Senate Library, should she need to look at books and was able to get to London. There was also an invoice for nearly three thousand pounds, with various ways to pay. She turned on her computer and paid, in full, using the ID to verify who was paying. She saw that she would need to attend the actual Centre of Learning, in Royal Holloway, for exams.
When she showed her parents what she had enrolled for, her father patted her shoulder and told her that she would be the brains of the family. Her mother gave her a hug, a kiss on the cheek and grinned.
“They say that if you want anything done, ask a busy person. Have you found out what the school has in mind for you, this year?”
“Yes, Mum. We’re going to work on Joseph Haydn’s ‘Creation’ for the Bishop, and do the Messiah in the Albert Hall, on the penultimate Saturday of the Proms. I’m the orchestra leader, so will be playing my violin more.”
“So, you’ll be as busy as you were last year. All you need now is another tour.”
“That may happen. Mum, how would you like a trip into Coventry on Saturday? I want to get another computer for the uni study only. One I can take away with me and do work on in the free time.”
“That will be nice. We need some things to fill the gaps in our wardrobes, now we have the two places to go to. If we have enough in London, we won’t need to carry much with us.”
That evening, Willow sat at her computer, researching the ‘Creation’. She found an orchestra list, which was impressive. There were a lot of wind instruments. Three flutes. Two oboes, a C and a B-flat clarinet, two bassoons and a contrabassoon. Then there was two horns, two trumpets, and three trombones.
With the strings, there was first and second violins, viola, cello, and bass. Percussion was timpani, and then there was a continuo, which would give Gina a place. As far as the soloists went, the bulk of the work only had parts for the soprano, tenor, and bass. With the alto only having something to do in the finale. She thought about what they already had and decided that they could perform it as a full school operation, without any additions from outside. She had heard one of the choir from second year with a good soprano voice, and another with alto. They already had the tenor and bass.
She could see why the Bishop wanted this, as it told the story of the first seven days, as described in Genesis, and took other words from the book of psalms. She made notes for herself and made ready for bed. She saw that she had an email from Evelyn, thanking her for the pictures, which had been sent to all the members, with both blown up and now on her bedroom wall.
On Tuesday, she was waylaid on the way into school and sent to see Mister Bamborough.
“Good morning, Willow. Knowing you, I expect that you already have some idea about the orchestra for the ‘Creation’?”
“I have, sir. We won’t be much bigger than last year, as we can decrease the number of the violins. With the extra wind instruments, I think we would end up with forty. The choir will be what we make it, but I think we can do a good job with what we had before from the school. I have thought about the soprano and alto places, and there were a couple in the choir that could do a fine job.”
He laughed.
“You and I think along the same lines. I agree that we should make this an in-house production. Hold your thoughts. I’ll be playing a CD of the piece at the first meeting next week, and then we can start sorting the players out then. I expect that most of the band will be in the line-up. If they’re not playing, they can be singing. We concentrate on this until we perform, and then move to the Messiah again, with our visiting extras.”
As she rose, she reached into her bag and pulled out the small boomerang.
“Here you are, sir. I did promise you a boomerang and this was the only one I could carry.”
As she left him, he waved the boomerang around and was smiling. The day was normal, and the first gym lesson had the PE instructor getting them to sit on the floor while she spoke to them.
“This year, girls, we will be in the netball competition again. It will take place in the last week of May. What is different, is that we will only be fielding the first, second, and fifth-year teams in Birmingham. Because the second year and third-year teams won the trophies last year, they have qualified for the National Competition in London as a third year and fourth year team. This is limited to just the winners from the five regional competitions, so there’s only a total of twenty-five teams. It is taken at a much slower pace than you found before, with each team having four games in the round robin, just two a day. The top two teams play off for the trophy. It only takes four days to complete, so, if you make it to the final, you only play five games in total.”
They were put through exercises to loosen the muscles after the holiday. Willow needed a shower after that, and, feeling refreshed and supple, the friends went home again. That evening, she revisited the songs that she had been working on to see if any could be changed to suit the fireworks mantle.
Wednesday, school was starting to become usual again, and that evening, after dinner, she walked to the club to see if the Village Choir were ready to start a new year. It was a small group, without the ex-professionals, so she led them in a few easy songs to start the year and feel as if they had done something. Thursday and Friday evenings, she continued to work on the fireworks songs, taking the hints that Gina had made about the classical content.
On Saturday morning, the family went into Coventry and did some shopping. Ashley bought a woollen cap that hid his lump, now that he wasn’t wearing a bandage, and the girls bought a few outfits still on racks from the New Year Sales. In the electrical store, Willow chose a similar laptop to the one at home and got them to set it up using the WR Holdings contact and email only, with the MS365 and other packages that had been recommended by the University. She added a mouse and keyboard pack and a carry case for the lot. The salesman tried to get her logged on to all the social media, but she refused, getting him to delete any that were already set. At home, she added the Student Portal and other university links. Her home unit was black, and she had deliberately bought a silver one, so she didn’t get mixed up. She had done without getting emails while away without her laptop, and she wasn’t going to start chatting on-line now.
Sunday, they went to hear Jim on the organ, now pretty much the main organist, with his name replacing the other two on the board. They went over to the club, had the hot drinks, and a light lunch. She worked on the songs some more. The coming week, she knew, wouldn’t allow this much free time.
On Monday evening, she had an email from Peter, with her new statement. The CDs had sold a total of six hundred thousand albums, and the DVDs had sold six hundred and eighty thousand, with the Berlin show accounting for three hundred and eighty thousand. Merchandise had moved eighty-five thousand pounds worth, and expenses totalled eighty-five thousand. Her share, after the commission, was a bit over six hundred thousand. He had a note on the bottom that she wasn’t being charged for the shipment to Australia, as it would be classed as advertising.
She answered him, asking if he could transfer six hundred thousand to the WR Holdings account. Then, she transferred fifteen thousand to her uni account. By her calculations, they were making a lot of people rich, with Peter taking a million from this statement alone.
Tuesday, in gym, they did warm-up exercises and played a full game of netball, her first real hit-out for a while. Because of the time since the competition, she hadn’t realised how fit she had got, nor how much more body mass she had. Not that her dress size was much bigger, but the body that the dress contained was somewhat bulkier, and the hem was a little higher than before. It made her realise that she would need to shop for bras soon. Gone was the weedy boy, replaced by a developing girl.
Tuesday evening was the first lecture in her course. It was mainly an introduction session, with her the youngest of the dozen students. When she gave her name, there was a look of surprise on the faces of the others, but the lecturer, ‘call me Terry’, carried on as if she was a normal student.
On Wednesday afternoon, the Music Studies started with discussion on Film Music, and the need for it to convey the mood of what the scene was showing, leading to the music that you could hear, with your eyes shut, and be able to describe the scene. Willow took this in, as it would help her with her own narrative songs.
After that, it was the Senior Orchestra, which she was now leading. Mister Bamborough gave her a copy of the score, and she followed it as he played the CD of the work. It was as long as the Messiah, and in three parts. It had as much impact, with Willow quite excited by the whole thing. Again, it would be hard work, but with it being only students, they could just take it in order.
Thursday evening was the first proper lecture on Zoom, leaving Willow with lots of notes. At this rate, she would need to get a box of notebooks. And so, she settled into a routine, lectures on Tuesday and Thursday, Orchestra rehearsals on Wednesday, schoolwork as needed, and writing up lecture notes or working on songs over the weekend.
She and Gina still played the occasional sing-along, with Malcolm booking other bands for the dinner dances. The club had turned the corner, becoming a popular place to be on Saturday nights. Gina would lament that they still hadn’t found a suitable new home, and had started to look outside France
In the first week of February, there was another statement from Peter, with her share being just on four hundred and thirty-six thousand. She had him transfer five hundred thousand to the WR Holdings, leaving thirty-six thousand with him and over three point eight million in her account, enough to get something serious, if she could find time to do the research. The Berlin DVD had gone Platinum.
On the Saturday, the first day of the half term, Wendy drove her down to London, with both laptops, staying overnight and driving home, leaving Willow at the apartment for the week. Gina and Maisie had flown to Italy to look at a few places.
Willow spent the weekdays in the Senate Library, and two of the evenings with lectures. The rest of the time, she worked on her new songs, with peace and quiet to concentrate. She ate in the restaurant or at the university. Sometimes having dinner with Ted and the others. On the Monday, she had taken an Uber to a music store and came back to the apartment with a Nord Stage Three, which she set up in the upstairs sitting room. On Friday, she had recorded every track and emailed them to the others in the band.
On the Saturday, Wendy came back, and they had a little retail therapy, this time buying four small vacuum cleaners for the two apartments, as well as some spring outfits for the next time they would stay. On Sunday morning, Willow cleaned her rooms, with Wendy cleaning downstairs. They then went next door and repeated the cleaning there. They had lunch with Ted and Alicia, and Kevin and Hazel, then Wendy drove them home.
Monday, it was back to school and the usual routine until the last day of February, when there was an email from Jill. The latest album had been released, to critical acclaim, and the band was going to spend a good part of the Easter Holidays on tour. They would fly from Manchester to Madrid to play a single show to eighty thousand at the home of Real Madrid, then on to Rome for another show to seventy thousand at the Stadio Olimpico, and then Athens for a third at the Olympic Stadium in Athens, to seventy-five thousand. There would be local bands to open, and they were expected to play for ninety minutes or more. They would be home from Athens on Good Friday, with a week to rest before going back to school.
Willow spoke to her parents and Gina. At school, Gina spoke to Brent, who spoke to Herb, who spoke to Nancy. Willow emailed Jill that the five of them wanted to return to London. They would Uber to the apartments and spend the week there, with them organising a minibus to take them home on the Saturday.
Willow emailed the Uni, explaining that she would be on tour that week, until Easter, and asking if she could submit her project and attend the exam in the week between Easter Monday and the start of her next term, the following Monday. She got a reply from her lecturer, telling her that it was approved, considering her busy life, and that she was to present herself at the Royal Holloway Campus, at ten on the Thursday of that week, and to bring her project with her in digital format.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 20
All too soon it was into March and another statement. The older albums were fading, but ‘The Magic Laptop’ had nearly reached gold status in its first month. Willow’s share ended up at just on four hundred and twenty thousand, keeping the twenty thousand with Peter and transferring four hundred thousand to WR Holdings.
At school, they had finished the segment on film music, and were now on the weirdly named ‘Baroque and Roll’, with one session on baroque music and the next to be rock and roll. In March, they had another two sessions with the oratorio, now into the second third after the seven sessions. The third week of March was revision time, and the fourth was exam week. That was also the last week of the first university term, with Willow having been given the project to do before they had another lecture.
The band had spent a couple of Saturdays at the Summer Love Studio, just getting back into the groove with, basically, the Berlin show with a few extra earlier songs at the beginning, seeing that these were totally new audiences. They all finished early on the last Friday at school, went home to collect their luggage, and then were picked up by coach to go to the airport.
They were checked into their Madrid hotel before midnight and slept late on Saturday. There was a media session after breakfast, lunch, and then a trip to the stadium for a sound-check. The set-up was much the same as they had been used to, with the big stage and huge screens either side. Saturday night, they got themselves ready while the locals did their best, and then went on to blow everybody’s mind. Sunday, they were flown to Rome, and Monday night they did what they did best. Tuesday, they flew to Athens, rocking the Olympic Stadium on Wednesday evening.
Willow had taken her uni laptop, and, when possible, worked on her project. They had a day in Athens, visiting the historical sights, and flew home on Good Friday, the five of them going to London while the others went back to Manchester. After clearing the airport, they boarded a minibus, ordered on-line, into the city and the apartments. They had dinner in the restaurant, and then went up to their rooms for a good sleep. It had been a successful, but exhausting, trip.
Over the rest of the time in London, the two couples went out exploring, while Willow worked on her project. It involved a fictional company that had relocated to better offices and had run into a cash-flow problem. The question was if it should shed staff to save money or do something different. There was enough financial and staff information to be able to consider the answer. Willow spent some time in the Senate Library to look at the laws surrounding staff layoffs, and then wrote out her project essay, with some staff being relocated to the manufacturing base, where they would be more hands-on, and actually boosting production with the leasing of a new production line. Space saved in the new offices could be used to house a better sales team.
When that had been saved to a USB stick, with pages of graphs and projections, she took it with her on the Thursday to submit it and take the exam. On the Friday, she was able to spend time with the others, with them all walking to the British Museum for the day. On Saturday, the laundry bags were filled with sheets and pillowcases, then left with Carlo. They had lunch in the restaurant with the other two couples and loaded up the minibus when it arrived to take them home.
Willow was the last to be dropped off, so she gave the driver a good tip and took a card to call if they ever needed to be taken around. She took her things into the house and hugged her parents.
“Good trip, love?”
“It was, Mum. We played to full houses in all three places, and I was able to use my free time on my project. I finished it when we stayed in London, and the others went sight-seeing. It was a good break after the tour.”
After she had put things in the laundry basket and packed away unworn clothes, she sat at her desk and opened up her usual computer, seeing a message from Peter with another statement.
The older albums were fading away, but the new ones were doing well. Nothing was included about the tour. The albums had sold six hundred and thirty-five thousand copies, and the ‘Magic’ album had contributed three hundred and ninety thousand, going Gold. The DVDs had sold four hundred and eighty thousand copies, with the ‘Berlin’ one contributing three hundred thousand of those. Adding the merchandise and taking away the costs and commission, they each received four hundred and ninety thousand. She replied to Peter, asking him to transfer five hundred thousand to the WR Holdings account, which would bring that close to five million.
There was an email from Wilhelm, reporting that things were ticking over, and that he had only needed to look after a few niggling problems with the two properties. The Leicester one still had no other tenants, and he wondered what they intended to do with it. Willow started to think about buying it for herself. Or, as an alternative, do some soundproofing and using the bigger shed as a rehearsal space, resurfacing the end of the long shed for car parking. There was still a shed in the carpark which they didn’t use, and that she would get taken away if it was up to her. She replied to Wilhelm, adding the others, with her thoughts on changes.
Sunday, they went to the church to listen to Jim on the organ. He was becoming quite fluid with his playing. Afterwards, they went over to the club with Maisie and Gina and stayed for lunch. Rick and Racheal came in, with little Rebeccah in her carry basket. Rick told them about the situation with the Hikers.
“That was a terrible situation in Spain. We were stuck without Alex on stage. The rest of the tour was cancelled and the rest of us came home. The tour lost some money, which we had to cover out of savings to save face. We’ve been auditioning for a new guitarist, but they’re not behind every tree in Coventry. Not good ones, anyway. Alex was given jail time for possessing drugs, even if it was mostly baking powder. He won’t be back in the band, so we’re looking at a new album without him as a new start. We’re thinking of a name change to just ‘The Hikers’.”
“That sounds positive, Rick. How’s the farming going?”
“We’re on track with laying the groundwork for sustainable crops, so that we can sit back and let casuals do the actual work. Rach has been brilliant with her knowledge. The income from the previous albums has given us a decent cash situation, so, as far as we’re concerned, it’s all good. Not so good for Jacob, though. We hear that he’s been a problem in the clinic, tried to leave a couple of times, once where he was found in an area that’s notorious for dealers. The clinic always goes to those places first. Not that he could buy any, as he has no money in his pocket, but dealers will often offer a credit on those they know have a good bank balance.”
“We had an email from Wilhelm, and he sounded a bit curt about that, just details about the syndicates, without anything else. It must be hard on him and Rosalie.”
“At least they don’t have to cope with the farm on top of this. That Anita had a history of drug use, being suspended from school when she was thirteen for cannabis use. She had been on hard drugs since she was sixteen. It’s a pity that she got her claws into Jacob. He had such a future ahead of him. I play the DVD that they recorded at the Proms and see him play so beautifully. It’s so sad to watch.”
When they had left, Willow and Gina went outside and sat on the bench near the church. After a while of silence, Gina put her hand on Willow’s shoulder.
“Remember when we first sat on this bench and none of this had ever happened. I wonder what would life had been like if we hadn’t become friends.”
“Too hard to think about, friend. We wouldn’t be rich and famous, I wouldn’t have dragged Jacob into see Howard Bamborough, and you wouldn’t be on your way to being a piano superstar. Even with all the bad things, I don’t think that I would change a thing.”
“Nor me. Jacob could have gone down his own rabbit hole without the music. It may have been part of him that would have come out anyway, once he had enough money to experiment. Given the choice, I would have still embraced the future that we created. I love entertaining, and those last three shows we did were great. We were out there, without the rest of the bands, as ourselves, not just part of the Coventry Sound. I like your idea of creating a rehearsal space. With a lot more room, we could put together some dance steps. At the moment, we just stand and wiggle while making noise.”
“We would have to get a complete new set of equipment. It would be a pain to drag everything from one place to another.”
“Use your new skills to work out a way we can write it off as a business expense. It would round things out if you became our manager.”
“That’s a bit too early in the game! We’ll just have to continue making Peter rich. Actually, I had those thoughts about Leicester as if I owned the site. I have enough set aside to buy it from the syndicate. That would be good business, as the syndicate isn’t getting an income from it, so the cash could be used to buy into another leased site.”
“What would you value it at?”
“Well, we paid one and a quarter, and put the same into the studio, so I would guess that an offer of two and a half would be equitable.”
When Willow went home, she used her new knowledge thinking about Leicester. If she had the big shed soundproofed, and created more parking, she could apply to the council to convert the use to a full commercial studio. That would have less traffic than the distribution centre, and less employees. With the sound minimised, she couldn’t see that there could be any objection. Then, it could be advertised as the most up-to-date studio in the area, and also as a try-out space for bands preparing for shows, or even dance groups or drama groups to rehearse away from established theatres.
On Monday, it was back to school for the last term of her third year. After all the other assemblies she had attended, this one was almost boring. She had no uni lectures until the beginning of May, so was able to concentrate on her learning and getting the oratorio into shape. In the second week, the Music Studies moved into Minimalisation, thankfully being spared from listening to several minutes of silence. They explored Riech and Glass, Taverner and Nyman, Arvo Part and Sebelius. It opened up another avenue in Willow’s mind, but only for something solo, with thoughts returning to her ‘Fractured’ file with the MRI sounds.
The April raced by, with the band getting together to rehearse the ‘Fireworks’ album and getting Xavier in to record it on the last weekend of the month. She sent a copy to Jill and then they were into May.
On the second day of the month there was the next statement from Peter. The older CD sales were almost non-existent, but the later ones were selling well. The DVDs were the same. With merchandise, the total sales was just over five and a half million, with costs pulling it back to give each member four hundred and sixty thousand. The shows had grossed over twenty-seven million, due to the huge crowds. It would have been more, but the average ticket price was lower with the state of the economies in the countries they had visited. After paying for the stages, the other bands, the staff, the venue cut, the flights, hotels, food, Peter’s cut, and out-of-pocket expenses, each band member had received two point two-seven million, giving a total payment of over two point seven million. She got Peter to transfer two and a half million into the WR Holdings account, which would take it to seven and a quarter million.
With May came university lectures and more orchestra rehearsals. There were two before the half-year holidays, and they worked through to the finale of the piece. Willow told them that they had done well and would play the whole oratorio in the first week of June, and that the second and third week would have them playing the Messiah right through with the visiting singers.
“I will set up a recording session on the last Wednesday of June, and I’ll see if we can spend a half a day in the studio as it’s before revision week. The school performance is the Tuesday of the next week, with three performances in the Cathedral that weekend. After the summer holiday, we have the Messiah final rehearsal before playing in the Albert Hall on the Saturday. The ENO singers are all professionals, so I expect that they’ve done this before. The two rehearsals before the holiday should tell is if I’m right. If I’m wrong, we may need to set a rehearsal in the last week of the holiday.”
The last week before the half-term holidays brought Willow’s and Gina’s fifteenth birthdays. They had a simple evening in the club, not doing anything flash. They had agreed that they were beyond flash, so just had a dinner for lots of their relatives and friends, without a band, but with a big cake.
The week of the holidays was the netball competition in London. The two teams were taken there in a coach and put up in a hotel near the venue. They all had three sets of new uniforms; in case they made it into the finals. Monday and Tuesday, the third year played the four games of the round-robin, winning three and losing one, ending up in second place, with the first place being the team they had lost to. Their final was late in the afternoon of the next day. The other team also advanced to the finals.
Nobody could explain whether the other team thought that it would be a walk-over, or else they had gained something extra. The other school team lost their final, but Willow’s team won. They watched the finals of the older teams, mainly to see what they would be up against next year, seeing that they would all have to be a lot stronger by then. They came home after the presentations, with a new cup for the display cabinet. The other team had a smaller one for being second. That Friday, Willow went on-line to view the two lectures she had missed and make plenty of notes.
The last term of her third year started on the first of the month. The assembly lauded the winning netball team, and the Head got them all to stand. The Tuesday gym session was a party, with all the third-year students invited. The Head made a speech of congratulations for both teams, being first and second in their years in a National competition. On the Wednesday after school, the orchestra and singers played the complete ‘Creation’ for the first time, with the Head and a few teachers sitting in. The ensemble were now showing their professionalism, as it worked well.
The Head asked Mister Bamborough what was next, and he told her that they would have two weeks with the ENO and the Messiah, with a recording session of ‘Creation’ the week after, if she could allow them the time away from school. She nodded her head and told him that she would see to it.
The June statement was back to just sales, with each member getting four hundred and twenty-two thousand. Willow asked Peter to transfer four hundred and fifty thousand to WR Holdings.
On the Thursday, at lunch, she was given a note from Herb, asking if she could attend a meeting of the band, with her responsible adult, on Saturday afternoon, at the studio, to discuss the ongoing future of the syndicates. He did tell her that it was all good. That Saturday afternoon, Ashley drove her to the Leicester site. When they got there, they saw more cars than they thought. As they got out, Herb came over.
“Good, you were only a few minutes behind. We’re all here, so I’ll lock the gates and we can go through to the studio. It does have a great advantage by being a secure place to talk.”
He locked up and they followed him through to the studio, where they had set up some of the tables, with chairs around them. All the band were there with a parent, as well as Wilhelm, the estate agent and the accountant from Leicester that Wilhelm was using for operating the syndicates. After they had sat down, Herb stood.
“Thank you all for coming, today. I apologise for the cloak and dagger of the occasion, but I have asked you all here to talk about the future of our properties and of our two syndicates. Now, some weeks ago, Willow spoke to Gina about some things she had thought she could do if she owned the property here, and also emailed us all with those enhancements. Is that still your thoughts, Willow?”
“It is, Herb.”
“You valued the property, including the studio, at two and a half million. Are you still happy with that?”
“I am.”
“While we were talking, Nancy suggested that if she and I buy the first property we bought, and you bought this property, we could wind up the original syndicate. Then, we could have freedom to do something more with the larger syndicate of all ten of us, which currently owns the property at Small Heath. I think that we now have enough behind us to go for something substantial. Bryan has been doing some research and has found a shopping centre for sale in the outskirts of Manchester. It has thirty-five fully leased shops but needs some work to bring it up to date. He has spoken to the agent, who has estimated that the cost to bring it into this century is around fifteen million, and the purchase price is twenty-five million.”
There was an intake of breath at the size of the numbers.
“Now, Nancy and I are prepared to give five hundred thousand for the Coventry property, and if Willow pays two and a half for here, that will give the syndicate three million. If you add the million that is currently in the bank, we would all get six hundred and sixty-six thousand. What I suggest is that the ten of us then put four million into the big syndicate and our agent starts negotiations to buy the shopping centre. Do we have anybody against the idea?”
A couple of the parents wanted to know about the security of the investment, and the likely return. The estate agent told them that the usual return on a property of that size would be about two million a year, or around fifty thousand per shop, which neatly came in at a thousand a week. Depending on the leaseholders, there could be an extra charge for whole-of-centre advertising and security. Insurance would be high, but manageable.
For Willow, it was a good idea, something she had been mulling over, but not on this scale. The question not asked was if all of them had four million to spare. Most of them had left most of their money with Peter, so that wasn’t a problem. Only Willow had gone out and bought a property of her own. She had seven point seven now, so the two and a half would bring it back to five point two, and the return from the syndicate would put that at nearly five point nine, which would leave her at one point nine to have to do the changes here.
In the end of the discussion, everyone agreed with the way forward. The accountant and agent would draw up the contracts to sell the two properties to the individuals, and then the rest would happen after they went through, with the negotiations for the shopping centre starting soon.
On the way home, Willow told her father what she had planned. When they arrived home, Wendy asked what had happened.
“Herb and Nancy have bought the Coventry factory, and Willow has bought Leicester.”
“And?”
“And then they’re going to wind up the original syndicate and put four million each into the other syndicate to spend forty million on a shopping centre in Manchester.”
“That part’s all right, but what is our daughter going to do with a site where the only thing of value is the studio? There are no tenants.”
“She told me that this made it perfect. She has plans to upgrade the big shed as a rehearsal area for music, dance, and plays. She will resurface the car park and the bit of the long shed they don’t use and apply to the council to get a commercial usage passed. Then, she has plans to hire it out. I agreed with her and told her that she was sneaky.”
“Sneaky! If she has total control, she can charge a thousand or more an hour. It could be a gold mine.”
They went to the club that night and listened to Jim on Sunday. Gina and Willow discussed the outcome from the previous day. Gina said that it would restrict how much she could spend on a chateau, so a villa may be the way forward. Jim also came into the club with them and spoke about G-Force.
“We’re all working hard to get a good enough score to go the next level in sixth form. Gerry has gone and auditioned with the Hikers and has told us that he’s going to take a year off to see if they can be a professional band. Geoff is talking about a wedding, with Zara being spoken to about recording a solo album with an orchestra. I think that I’ll be playing here, in the church, for some time to come.”
For Willow, the next two weeks included the rehearsals with the ENO. They both went very easily, and they were happy with another rehearsal before the Proms. Those weeks were the last ones of the current university term. She would have all summer to work on two projects that had been set. Or did, until there was an email from Jill, telling them that a tour had been arranged.
They would fly out of Manchester on the Saturday after school finished, playing two shows in Perth, then going to Adelaide for one show, Melbourne for two, Canberra for one, Sydney for two, Auckland for two, Brisbane for two, Tokyo for two and Seoul for two, before arriving home with nearly two weeks before school started again. A small crew from the BBC would be visiting her on Sunday, to film a short interview about her excitement in going to Australia, and to try and have Gina with her in the afternoon.
She compiled an email to Evelyn, to tell her that they were on their way. She said that they would have two shows in the Sydney Olympic Stadium, that can hold up to eighty thousand. The next day, she had a reply which thanked her for all the goodies that had been sent, and that they were all looking forward to seeing them on stage, for real.
This week, the Music Studies looked into the Tango, which caused some laughter when she was chosen to demonstrate the dance with Mister Jamieson. After school, there was no orchestra, because the Head had planned for them to have all day in the studio on the Thursday, with Xavier and the others coming. Willow asked Gina if she could create the sound of a continuo on a Nord Stage Three, having been playing one for a while. Gina said that she would look into it that night.
The next day, they were taken to Leicester by coach, with the bigger instruments and the music stands going in the truck. They had done this before, so the truck stopped outside the back door, and all the things were moved in, while most of the amps were moved out. With all the seats arranged, the tables set up in the workshop area, and everyone in their places, it didn’t take long for the microphones to be laid out, already having all the equipment on hand. Gina had reported that she could get the right sound from a Nord, so they left one speaker box and amp head next to the keyboard and left the continuo in the truck.
Before lunch, they had recorded the ‘Creation’. Willow paid for fifty pizzas to be delivered, and they spent a happy few hours recording various members of the orchestra, in trios, quartets and quintets, and six madrigals that the choir had been working on, with a small orchestra backing them. Then, the truck was loaded, and Xavier worked with producing enough of both sets for everyone and a few for the school. Mister Bamborough totally enjoyed that day, seeing a level of expertise among the orchestra that he hadn’t known before.
He sat with Willow on the coach back to Coventry.
“An interesting day, Willow. Some extra knowledge of what the other players get up to outside of school.”
“They are a talented bunch, sir.”
“None so talented as yourself, Willow. Gina told me about that ‘Fireworks’ album today, with all the classical hints, it was impossible to count.”
“That was the point, sir. That was the point.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 21
Mister Bamborough looked at Willow with a grin.
“Tell me more, Miss Rose.”
“There was this reporter in Sydney who berated us for playing that nasty pop music when we were such good classical organists. He’d only seen the Berlin concert and had been sent the school orchestra CD with us playing on the second disc. We had to tell him about the other albums we had been involved in. I wonder what he would have made of ‘The Magic Laptop’, or ‘Musk Rat Quest’, as people at the label call it. I wanted to weave the classics into ‘Fireworks’ to show our classical training. Gina suggested some of the threads.”
“Whatever you set out to do, you have created an album that I would be proud to have in my collection. My growing collection, I might add.”
“We’ll just have to see how the public likes it when it’s released. It may go on the market before we tour again.”
“Where to this time?”
“Six venues in Australia, one in New Zealand, one in Japan and one in South Korea. It should be good in their winter, but, if it isn’t, the shops will be open. If the new album is on the market, we’ll have to add a few into the show.”
“I’m sure that you’ll work it out. Are they big venues, or smaller theatres?”
“I’m told that they’re all sports stadiums. Average around fifty thousand with a couple up around seventy thousand. They must be convinced that we’ll fill them.”
Back at the school, they all got out of the coach and made their way to the various cars waiting for them. Willow went to the locker area first and stored her violin case. She checked that she had the two discs that Xavier had given her and went to join Gina to go home.
After dinner, she had a look on her project laptop, to find two projects that she was to submit before the next round of lectures. One was similar to the first project, a company in trouble, while the other was all about the steps you would take in setting up a company and recruiting staff, with an option as to what she wanted that company to do. She got her notebook to start writing notes on what she wanted to say. She would work on them as she could during the tour but expanded on her thoughts over the weekend.
On the Sunday, she and Gina were sitting with Ashley and Wendy when a film crew arrived. The interview was just over half an hour, where the two of them described how well treated they had been at Christmastime, and how much fun they had with the fan club and making the TV show, followed by how much they were looking forward to the tour.
Again, she had to email the lecturer that she was heading for Australia on a tour with the band, and advised the date that she would return. Two days later, he replied, telling her that it had been approved for her to attend Royal Holloway on the Thursday and Friday of the last week of August. The first to do one exam and submit the first project, with the second to do the second exam and submit the second project.
She emailed Jill that she wanted to return to London after the tour, directly from Seoul. That would give her some time to finalise both projects and submit them. She would need extra research in the Senate Library for one, but the second project was already happening in Leicester.
At school again and Tuesday was the performance of the ‘Creation’ in the theatre. She took her black dress with her in the morning as she would be needed to organise the orchestra. Her parents had tickets, as did Maisie and several of the Village Choir, including Margaret and her friends. Willow and the rest of the orchestra had a light meal in the lunchroom, before going to the theatre, checking the seating and then going off to change. Willow did her make-up, thinking about the performance but not really worrying about it.
The performance was as good as it could be. The soloists singing beautifully, the orchestra playing powerfully, and the choir singing lustily. There were the two breaks, with the second being a little longer, and then they took the audience to new heights to the finale. There was a long applause, with many standing, and the orchestra took several bows. Afterwards, they all mingled in the lunchroom, before Willow joined her parents to go home, after changing out of her long dress.
Wednesday was the last lesson on the Tango, and then it was the performances in the Cathedral. As it was just before revision week, the entire ensemble were given the days off, to be at the Cathedral in time to entertain the crowd. Wednesday afternoon, the friends told Sebastian about the arrangements, with him picking them up before the performance and taking them home afterwards. On the Saturday, that would include her parents, with Maisie going with them on Friday.
Willow was up early and working on her projects as soon as breakfast was over, creating two new files to hold the two projects and creating sub-files. Around lunch, she rang the council offices in Leicester, and had a talk with the woman who was in charge of the planning permissions, who she had spoken to when they first started work on the studio. It was a good discussion, and they made an appointment to meet at the site on the Saturday morning.
Later, that afternoon, she was dressed in her performance outfit, with her violin and her bag, waiting at the door when Sebastian arrived. They picked up Gina and went to the Cathedral. The two of them met Mister Bamborough and checked the seating and that all the instruments had been delivered. They were given a light meal in the Chapter House as all of the others arrived. That night, they made the Bishop extremely happy, if the smile was an indication.
Friday was a duplicate, with her working on her project and then playing violin in the evening, this time with Maisie joining them in the vehicle. Saturday, Ashley took her to Leicester in the morning.
There, she showed the council representative around the whole site, explaining what they had done and what she had planned, and the timeline that depended on being reassessed as a commercial site. They started in the office area, where she stated that they used to upstairs office, but that she would be happy to offer the downstairs one to the local Arts Alliance, or similar organisation. In the big shed, she explained how it would be given a laminated floor and soundproofing, to allow for drama, dance, or music rehearsals, with local schools and groups being offered a discounted hire.
She pointed out the extra space when the shed in the carpark had been removed, and then took her into the long shed, saying that it would be resurfaced and have lines for parking under cover. In the studio, the council lady was taken aback by the quality of what she saw. Willow explained that a number of hit albums had been produced here, without a single complaint from the neighbours, as well as two complete oratorio performances, and they spent several minutes looking at the awards.
As she locked up, Willow told her that there would be professional bands invited to record, with an hourly charge, as well as advertising to fill the days in both the studio and shed. Before they shook hands, Willow had one last comment.
“I’m sure that visiting bands will be staying in local hotels. If the group that uses the office is run by adults, I would be happy to pay one to manage the site and oversee the usage and security.”
“I’ll discuss it with my supervisor and the volunteers.”
Ashley took her home again after she had locked up.
“Do you think she’ll bite?”
“Of course she will. There’s an Arts Alliance group who liaise with all the drama and arts groups in Leicester. They operate from offices in the municipal building, and the council has been trying to figure out a way to remove them so they can expand the town planning office. You have to read the council meeting reports on the city website to know what buttons to push.”
“I’m not going to say it, but I’m sure you know what I’m thinking.”
“It’s all about doing research, Dad. You can’t put a new part in a car unless you know if it will work as intended.”
That afternoon, the family was picked up by Sebastian, and then they went to get Gina. When they arrived at the Cathedral, the OB vans were there with cables running into the building. Willow left her parents to go to the Chapter House and make sure that everyone was arriving. The audience was primed that night, knowing that they could be seen on a DVD, if they looked hard enough. The city dignitaries were becoming regulars, along with the local celebrities. The fact that the entire Summer Rose was there was enough to attract a lot of younger fans who would have never gone to a concert featuring a religious oratorio.
The night was a success, and Willow was presented with flowers, along with the soloists. She went out to the audience and presented hers to Margaret in the front row. There was an after-show party in the Chapter House, and a general mingling until those who had done all the work were ready to leave. Gina, Willow, and the Roses slid out and found Sebastian waiting for them. He congratulated the girls on exposing him to yet another beautiful piece of music, and then took them back to Stoneleigh.
On Sunday, Willow looked at her laptop. There was an email from Peter. The early CDs were now almost gone, but the later ones were doing well. Her share, this month, was just on three hundred and sixty-four thousand. She replied to Peter to transfer three hundred and fifty thousand to the WR Holdings account.
The following week was revision time, and Willow spent it revising and working on her projects. The band got together in the studio on Saturday, with Xavier recording, to work through the set for the tour, with more of the earlier hits, making an opening half an hour of Carpenter and Journey songs before getting into the rocking music. On Monday, it was the beginning of Exam week, and everyone had their heads down.
Monday evening, Willow looked at her laptop to see a message from the lady from the council, telling her that the change of status was approved, and that she wanted a meeting. Willow replied that it would have to be Friday evening as she was flying to Australia on the Saturday. On Tuesday, there was an email from the accountant to say that the change of ownership had gone through. On Wednesday, during lunch, she went around to the band and techs, asking for their gate and door keys, so that the site could be made secure.
After the last exam on Friday, she showered and changed when she got home. The meeting had been set to be at the studio and Ashley drove her there after an early dinner. She met with the council lady, the mayor, and two leading members of the Arts Alliance, both older ladies. Willow showed them all around, stressing that the studio could only be used by a trained producer, but the large shed would be all right once it was refloored and soundproofed. At the end of the meeting, she had the details of the Alliance ladies, and they had keys to the gate, shed, and the office doors. They would move their office over the next few weeks.
Willow assured them that the physical changes would take place before Christmas, and to let everyone know that the space would be available next year. On the way home, she asked Ashley if he could get in touch with the locksmith to change the locks on the studio and the back doors while she was away, as there was too much tied up in the studio to leave it vulnerable, seeing that she didn’t have Jacob’s keys. That evening, she sent an email to Wilhelm, telling him what had transpired, and that the upstairs was still useable as the syndicate office.
Saturday morning, she had breakfast with her parents, put her bags out on the porch and hugged them both as the coach came down the road. She didn’t have a lot of luggage. One case with the stage outfits, one case with her own clothes, a smaller case with the project laptop and cosmetics. They would have a dresser and make-up artist on tour, so her appearance will be good every day.
Monday evening, they landed in Perth, after the day in Dubai. The previous arrival in Sydney had surprised with about thirty fans, Perth surprised everyone with about three hundred. With so many, there was no way they could go and talk to them, so they waved happily as they were ushered out of the terminal to a waiting coach, with still more fans outside. That evening, they all relaxed in the hotel and were happy to stretch out on a comfortable bed, as the flight didn’t have enough first-class seats, making them all travel business class.
Tuesday was a free day, to let them get used to the time-shift and settle after the trip. The boys found a games room in the hotel and started a snooker championship, while the four girls were treated to time in the spa. Willow talked Jill into going outside to see if any of the teenagers hanging around were from a fan club, and she came back with three girls who were treated to meeting all the band socially and having dinner with them. When the girls left, their nice tops were covered in signatures.
Wednesday was the first show. The stadium was near-new and could seat sixty thousand. The set-up was their standard stage with the overhead light rig and big screens. The stage equipment was as they usually used. They went there by coach in the morning to get the feel of it, being basically an oval rather than rectangular. There was the usual mixing and visual tent out front, with the older guys from the British tour, but no Xavier and his friends.
Everyone was reunited with their instruments, and they did a sound check to make sure it all worked. They went back to the hotel for lunch, and then lazed around a big swimming pool before a light dinner. They were taken back to the stadium as the opening band was playing and got themselves ready for the show.
When they went on stage, there was a roar, which settled as Willow doodled the opening of ‘Close to You’ on her keyboard. There was good applause as they worked through some ‘Carpenters’, into the’ Journey’ album and then it got louder as they ripped into ‘Homegrown’ and ‘Greenhouse’ tracks. They slipped in the earworm tracks from ‘Magic’ and some new ones from the as-yet unreleased ‘Fireworks’ before finishing with their biggest hit in Australia, ‘Dummy Spitter’.
The following day was a repeat, and they flew to Adelaide on the Friday, for the Saturday show at the Adelaide Oval, in front of fifty thousand. Sunday, they were taken to Melbourne for the two shows Monday and Tuesday. This was at the famed Melbourne Cricket Ground, with each night having seventy thousand. Whenever she could, Willow let the pressure go and sit somewhere quiet to work on her projects.
Wednesday, they flew to Canberra, for a smaller show at the Manuka Oval, with just thirteen thousand fans. So far, every time they had landed, there had been fans waiting for them. This didn’t prepare them for landing in Sydney on the Friday for the two shows there. There must have been a thousand fans waiting for them, many would have skipped school to be there. Barry greeted them with several TV stations having cameras and lights.
When they were all in the terminal, Willow looked at the fans and waved, trying to pick out Evelyn, but not seeing her. They were taken to the coach and driven to Darling Harbour and the hotel. Evelyn and the fan club were waiting for them in reception, having been taken there by coach. There was a happy reunion and some tears. When asked, Barry admitted that the fan club were regulars in his audience for the TV show.
They all had lunch in the hotel, and then the fan club were taken back to school. In the afternoon, Willow was called, in her room, to say that there was a reporter in the lounge to speak to her. She went down and saw the man who had spoken to them before. He smiled when he saw her.
“Miss Rose. I asked my friend in Britain to source that material you spoke about on New Year. I have to say that you, and your band, have gladdened my heart. The depth of your writing is amazing, and the ‘Journey’ album was just beautiful. He sent me that new one that was obviously based on the ‘Magic Flute’. So sublime.”
“That was an idea of Vivienne’s. I think that if you liked that, then the next one is for you.”
She pulled an unmarked CD case out of her bag.
“This is a pre-release copy of the next album. We recorded it in our own studio in Leicester. It’s a follow-on to the ‘Journey’ and was given life by us watching the fireworks last time we were here. The release name will be ‘Fireworks – the Journey Continues.’ Have a listen to it and let me know if you accept that pop music can be enhanced with classical themes. You can keep this so that you can be the first in print with a review.”
“Thank you, Willow. That’s very kind of you, considering what an awful start I made to our last meeting. I do have tickets to the show tomorrow night. I hear that you open with some of the old music, so it should be good. I’ll listen to this and pop by on Sunday to let you know what I think. I ended up not writing a piece last time we met, just letting the others report on your TV show and the fireworks, which was excellent, by the way.”
“Thank you, sir. I’ll be here. We’re not dashing all over the countryside this visit, too much to do and so little spare time.”
He held out his hand and they shook, and then Willow went back to her room and her project.
When they went on stage for the first show, the fan club were all in the front row with a beaming Barry, all now local celebrities in their own right. The show was one of the best, so far, with a lot of the audience singing along. Next morning, there was a rare, planned, outing. The whole band were taken to a ferry and across the water to Luna Park, where close to five hundred fans were waiting for them to have fun on the rides in a closed event.
Barry and Bluey were on hand, and the fans must have been told to keep it polite and social, because the band enjoyed a few hours of genuine fun and friendship. Evelyn and Samantha kept close to their friends and there was a lot of love in the air. It was all filmed to cement Barry’s new role as King of the Kids. Some of the fans were invited back to the hotel, and joined the band, Barry, and Bluey for lunch. After lunch, Gina nudged Willow and nodded towards the door, where the reporter was standing.
Willow gave him a wave and he came over and sat with them.
“I’ve listened to that new album, Miss Rose, and it has to be the most polished piece of pop/classic fusion I’ve ever heard. It is magnificent!”
“Thank you, sir. We did our best as classically trained members of an orchestra. There will be a new classical DVD coming out sometime. We performed the ‘Creation’ in Coventry Cathedral a few weeks ago. Hang on, I’ll find out when the ‘Fireworks’ one is being released.”
She went to speak to Jill and came back.
“It’s being released in the UK this week, with the Australasian release in two weeks. That should give you time to put an article together.”
She pulled out her notebook and wrote her email address on a page, handing it to him.
“I would appreciate a copy of the article when you publish, please. My Mum is keeping a scrapbook of important things. Did you enjoy the show last night?”
“I did. Now that I’m looking for them, I’m hearing all sorts of snippets of classics in even the brashest of your songs. You must have had a very deep involvement in classical music to be able to fit them in so effortlessly.”
Evelyn had been listening.
“Willow and the band can do anything, sir. That’s why we love them so much. They’re all top-level students, totally talented, and they’re all lovely people. I met Willow and Gina when they were here before, but never realised that the whole band are so lovely. We all had a ball this morning at Luna Park, and they’ve made a lot of us think that we have a future. Samantha has taken up the guitar after meeting them, and is getting good, as well as getting better marks at school. When you write their names, make sure you put a halo over them.”
Both Gina and Willow gave her a hug.
“That’s very kind of you, Evelyn.”
“It’s true, Willow. After we met you, everyone in the club has worked harder at school. They saw what you can do, at the same age as us, and want to improve their lives. My life has changed. I get to sit in the TV studio regularly, I’m being asked what I think of bands, and what I think about a lot of things. Before, I was just blindly living like a moronic teen.”
“Well, you keep it up, Evelyn. Music and study can take you wherever you want to go. Now, we have to go and get some rest. The playing does take a lot of energy. Are you going tonight?”
“We’ll be in the front row again, ‘Barry’s Band of Babes’. Several of us have an appointment for a fashion shoot in a few weeks. That’s something totally new.”
The band drifted off to go up to their rooms and Willow to go back to her laptop. They had a light dinner and were then off to the Olympic Stadium again for another show. Next day, they were back in a plane, heading for Auckland. They did have a full day off there, and the fans weren’t so thick on the ground, so a few of the band went for a walk. Willow kept at her project, winding up the first one and just needing some information from the Senate Library to finish.
The second project needed some careful handling. She needed to describe the background to her development of the Leicester site without giving too much away about the level of band involvement, but still needed to lay out how she ended up owning a recording studio.
The following two nights they entertained fifty thousand at Eden Park, and then they were flying back to Australia, to entertain another fifty thousand on the Saturday and Sunday evenings in Brisbane.
It was the final parts of the tour, and the newest experiences to come. So far, it had been like playing in Britain, with everyone they met speaking some version of English. The next two venues were in Japan and South Korea, both places where pop music flourished. They played the Wednesday and Thursday nights in Tokyo, and then the Saturday and Sunday in Seoul. Both were big stadiums, and both were packed. It may have been the hotels they stayed at, but they didn’t meet anyone who didn’t speak English.
The band was due to leave for Britain on the Tuesday, but Willow was taken to the airport on Monday morning. She had been booked on a Lufthansa flight that left after lunch, arrived in Frankfurt around six, and then there was another flight that left two hours later to get her into London before nine that night. Total time in the air was over fifteen hours, but it would still be Monday when she arrived, with the added bonus being that she flew first class.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 22
On Tuesday morning, she rang Wendy at work, to let her know that she was at the apartment. She had rung home fairly regularly to let them know how things were getting on with the tour. She was having breakfast in the restaurant when Ted came in.
“Good morning, Willow. How was the tour? Carlo sent you an invoice at the beginning of the month and wondered why you hadn’t paid, so I told him you were on the other side of the world and were good for it.”
“The tour went well, thank you. I’ll get Carlo to tell me what he wants, and I’ll pay it now.”
When she got back to the table and sat down, Ted smiled.
“I’ve spoken to your lecturer, Terry. He’s an old student of mine. He says that you’re a stand-out in this year’s intake.”
“It’s still only early, Ted. I have to finish off the two projects to submit this week and do both the module exams. I spent most of my free time in Australia working on them but need to go to the Senate Library to double-check a few things.”
“I’ll drive you there on both days, as I need to talk to a few other people as we gear up for the last part of the year. I’m sure you’ll present a good pair of propositions; he was very pleased with your first project. He wants to talk to you about it on Thursday, after you’ve finished the exam. I’m invited to join you for lunch, and the venue is very swish, so wear something nice. It’s the Tudor Pass at Great Fosters. That’s a stately manor that’s run as a hotel, with the restaurant having less than ten tables and a Michelin Star. Don’t ask me who’s invited us, as it's all very hush-hush.”
After breakfast, she walked to the Senate Library and did her research, glad to be home again and using her time to further her knowledge. One of the problems with having a mind like hers was that it needed constant stimulation. That day, and the next, she added her graphs and projections to the first project. Once again, she had thought outside the box, and had suggested some radical changes to make the business viable. She was glad that she wasn’t doing this work for real, as most companies would probably just put her things in a bin, but, for a college project, you’re supposed to use your imagination, as long as it stayed within the bounds of possibility.
The second project was more out of her brain than the others. She had ended up writing an essay, laying out the basic facts about her ending up owning an industrial site with a recording studio, and her plans for the rest of the year with the modifications. The hardest thing was to sit down and list the sort of charges that would have to be made to bring it into the black.
The big shed would be just enough to pay the ongoing costs, so the profit would have to come from studio hire. When she thought about it, charging a thousand an hour, with eight hours a week, over forty weeks, would bring in over three hundred thousand, and any more would be cream on the top. She couldn’t rely on Xavier, as he may be looking for somewhere else, so either a casual operator or a full-time one would need to be factored in.
In the end, she offered three optional outcomes, the first with the shed mainly used by schools and amateur groups, with minimum use of the studio. The second with more studio time and more professional groups in the shed. The third, which she called the ‘Blue Sky Option’, included regular studio work and shed usage, which returned around one and a half million a year. She factored in the free use of the offices by the Arts Alliance and the ‘Legs’ syndicate.
On Thursday morning, she had breakfast with Ted and then got herself ready to be taken to the Royal Holloway campus. She had her laptop in a bag, and her submissions on two USB sticks, in marked envelopes, and her memory of what the exams would entail. At the campus, she gave the first stick to Terry, who took her to a room where she would sit for the exam. Three hours later, she had finished and double checked her answers. Terry sat at a desk, with the USB plugged in, and looked at her project, without saying anything. When his alarm clock sounded, he asked for her papers.
“You know, Miss Rose, you really are a student from heaven. This second project of yours is so far out of left field, it took me some time to work out the logistics of your suggestions. A bit like your first project. I can tell you one thing about our next session of lectures, and that is that you will now be one of five left on the course. It was the third project that has made the difference. Some took on this course without thinking that it was designed for them to make decisions for themselves. They thought that we were going to teach them how to manage a successful role in a successful business, not that they may want to do something of their own.”
“I had no preconception, sir. Whichever way it went, I was happy to learn.”
“Are you ready for the next test?”
“I am, sir.”
“Do you have your project with you today?”
“In my bag.”
“How would you like to sit it this afternoon? That way I can look at them and get a week off before we continue the lectures, next month.”
“That would be fine by me, sir.”
“Right. Now we will be having lunch with one of our clients, who is keen to talk to you, and no, not because of your star status. Take some time to freshen up and meet Ted and I by his car.”
She went to the toilets and got comfortable, then made sure her make-up was right. Outside, in the carpark, she found the two men talking about the joys of being in the teaching game. They got in the car, and Terry directed Ted to the lunch venue.
It was as Ted had described, a mainly red-brick stately home in lush gardens. When they had parked, they went in and found the restaurant, telling the elegantly dressed man at the door that they were the guests of Mister Kelly. He led them into the smallest, but most lavish, restaurant that Willow had ever seen. A man rose from his seat and greeted Terry and Ted warmly, and then turned his attention on Willow.
“Miss Rose. It is an absolute pleasure to meet you. I do have to tell you that my daughter is one of your fans, so I have a knowledge of your fame. I believe that you’ve been in Australia?”
“Yes, sir. We did a tour there, finishing in Tokyo and Seoul. I only got back on Monday so I could finish my projects. I spent time while I was away working on them but needed some information from the Senate Library.”
“Look, sit down, all of you. I’ve ordered four of the seven course tasting meals, so we will have plenty of time to talk. Who’s having a drink?”
They gave the order to the waiter, who asked Willow if she preferred bottle lemonade or freshly squeezed. She asked for freshly squeezed. The gentleman then introduced himself.
“I’m Hugh Kelly, owner and chairman of Kelly Industries, originally based in Manchester. It was my problem that I took to Ted to ask his advice. He passed it on to Terry, who made it the first project in your Certificate course. It was all a real-life case, and one that had baffled my management and finance people for months. As you would have seen from the data I supplied, we’re not a small business, and could afford to wait for a solution to eventuate. That solution happened to be yours, Miss Rose. We did what you suggested, and your projections turned out to be within five percent of the actual results.”
“That’s good to know, sir. I thought that I was being a bit too imaginative with my submission but didn’t know that it was for real. How did the staff that were relocated take it?”
“Hardly any problem. Most knew that they were chasing their tails by trying to run the production without being there but had been afraid of suggesting it. The new production line took a bit of sweet-talking to our bank, but the results are so good, with the bigger sales force, that we’re working on another line.”
“I’m glad that I could help, sir.”
“Enough of this ‘sir’ business. I’m Hugh.”
“In that case, Hugh, I’m Willow.”
“So, Willow, what did you make of the second project? That’s also one of my problems, this time one of the subsidiaries.”
“I used my imagination, Hugh. Terry has been looking at it all morning. Perhaps he can tell you if it works, or not.”
As they ate through the seven courses, Terry outlined Willow’s answers, in quite a reasonable way, or so she thought. Hugh would ask a question, and Willow would expand on her thinking that wasn’t part of the original project. By the time they had arrived at the fifth course, Hugh sat back in his chair.
“What did the others on the course say, Terry?”
“Roughly the same as the first project, Hugh. Lay people off and sit under your rock. Willow has one of the best minds I’ve known when it comes to thinking outside the box. It’s the same with her music. She went from smooth wallpaper music in her first album, to a similar, but more realistic, theme for the second. Then they got progressively rocky, with an abrupt shift with the one about the website quest. I bought the latest album last week, and it’s almost like listening to a soundtrack of a musical. The difference between that and the full, in your face, Berlin show seems like two different bands.”
“I’m told that you raised forty million for charity with your first tour, Willow. Have you found that charity begins at home?”
“With a loop past our manager, Hugh. We did a three-city tour in Europe, and another across the Med, and now this one in Australasia. The logistics are huge, the costs are huge, but the returns are humongous.”
“How much does it cost to put on a show?”
“Usually about a quarter of a million to erect the stage with the sound and vision. Another hundred to two hundred thousand a night for staff and security. Then the venue takes ten percent before we even start talking about transport, hotels, food, our own security, dressers, make-up technicians. To give you an idea, that set of charity shows that raised forty million actually grossed out at around eighty-four million.”
“Now that is serious money! I won’t be so impolite to ask how you’ve fared out of this, but I expect that you’ve done well. Are the rest of the band as level-headed as yourself?”
“We had seven of us in a syndicate, Hugh. Our first property was a fully leased industrial unit in Coventry, which cost under half a million. Our next was the site in Leicester which was more than double that. We had a meeting before the tour, and two of the band bought the Coventry property from the syndicate, and I bought the Leicester one, where we had built our own recording studio. We closed down that syndicate, to put money into another that we had formed with all ten of the band. We own a site in Small Heath with two tenants and are in the process of buying a shopping centre in Manchester with thirty-five shops. Yes, I would say that we’re all level-headed.”
“Is Leicester the subject of your third project?”
“It is, Terry. The projections are very much imaginary, but I hope that my crazier ones become the norm.”
“I’ll be reading that, this afternoon, while you’re doing the third exam.”
“You’re having her sit that, today?”
“We spoke about it this morning, Ted, and Willow is happy to put them behind her.”
“That means that you can relax, Willow, at last.”
“Not just yet, Ted. In two weeks, I’m the orchestra leader in the Albert Hall, performing the Messiah with the school orchestra and singers from the English National Opera. We have a final rehearsal on Wednesday week, and the show on the Saturday. We put Haydn’s ‘Creation’ on in Coventry Cathedral two weeks before we flew to Perth. I’m rather hoping that the Bishop of Coventry doesn’t think of something else he wants us to perform this Christmas.”
“Are there recordings of your orchestral work, Willow?”
“There are, Hugh. The BBC have two DVDs of us in the Cathedral, our label has a double CD of us that was recorded in Abbey Road and Albert hall, and there are now two CDs out with Gina Summer and me playing the organ at Kings College and York Minster.”
“How on earth do you fit it all in?”
“My mother told me that if you want anything done, then you ask a busy person.”
They chuckled and continued to concentrate on the last couple of courses. They were sitting with coffee and cheese when the chef came out and asked Hugh if everything was all right. Hugh said that it was, as usual, magnificent, and introduced his guests. The chef, when told who this pretty girl was, went off to get a camera for a selfie.
Before they left, Hugh reached into his briefcase and pulled out a framed certificate.
“This may not be your final course certificate, Willow, but this is one from me and a very grateful board in recognition of your input. It doesn’t state what you did, as that is all confidential, but I expect to be able to give you another one after Terry sends me your other project answers.”
“Thank you, Hugh. I will treasure this more than all the Gold Records.”
“Not more than the Platinum ones?”
“They’re all on the wall of the studio. This goes on my wall at home and will be in pride of place in my first office.”
That afternoon, she gave Terry the USB stick and sat working on the other exam. When she had finished, Terry took up the papers.
“That project of yours is very interesting. I would dearly love to see this studio.”
“You have my email address, just let me know when you’re coming north, and I’ll take you on a tour. I should be starting the new work soon, but there’s nothing needed to be done in the studio. Hopefully, I can have Christmas at home this year.”
Friday, she spent some time with her keyboard, just playing favourites, and her parents arrived later in the evening. They spent Saturday catching up and went back to Stoneleigh on Sunday. Once again, for Willow, it felt familiar, but odd, to be back in her room, unpacking her cases. She plugged her home laptop into the mains and turned it on. There were a lot of emails. The oldest one being from Peter with the July statement.
Once again, the older material was almost non-existent, with the new releases making up the income. Her share was three hundred and sixty thousand. There was a note to say that the Berlin DVD was racing towards a Triple-Platinum award, with a lot of the sales in Europe and Australia. She asked Peter to transfer three hundred and fifty thousand into the WR Holdings as usual.
There was one from Wilhelm, asking if she could expand on the situation for him with the site changing hands. She replied that everything would stay the same, with him able to continue to act on behalf of the syndicate in the office upstairs, but that the downstairs office would be home to the Arts Alliance, who would manage the big shed once it had been transformed into rehearsal space. She pointed out that her father had organised for the locks to the studio to be changed, and that she would give him a key when she saw him next. She outlined the changes that she had in mind and asked him if he could research tradesmen who could do the work, with the studio builder asked to quote on soundproofing the big shed.
There was one from Xavier, apologetically telling her that he had left school, and was now working as a junior at Abbey Road. He said that Frank and Dave had also left school to work with a small company specialising in videos for bands. Willow replied, wishing him all the best.
There was one from Frank, offering a discount to Summer Rose if they needed a promotional video. That was sent to all the band and Jill. She answered wishing them both well and saying that they would be kept in mind.
There was one from Zara, to tell her that she had also left school, after a blow-up with her mother. She was now living in London, with an aunt, had signed a solo contract with the label, and was rehearsing with a piano quintet. She said that she would be in Coventry for the final rehearsal and would fulfil her orchestral duty at Albert Hall.
Then came one from Garry. He also told her that Zara had left G-Force. He also said that Gerry had left school and joined the Hikers, taking Grant with him, as the Hiker’s drummer had declared that his band wasn’t the same without his friend Alex. Geoff was still in Coventry, but calling Zara every couple of days and looking for somewhere they could live together. So, G-Force was no more. He told her that he was continuing with the higher studies and would be happy to see her in school.
Willow sat back and thought about things. She liked Garry, a lot, but she had a lot of balls in the air, without room for another relationship. There was an email from Jill, sent the day before, telling her that the Berlin DVD had passed Treble Platinum, while the ‘Laptop’ album had gained Platinum. She wanted to host a small presentation dinner in Coventry on the Saturday evening before they went back to school, with their photographer on hand. It was to be smart/casual at one of the city restaurants, and families were welcome. Willow replied with her attendance.
She went downstairs and told her parents about the dinner, and then showed them the certificate that had been presented to her, with it packed away in her case in London.
“That’s beautiful. What on earth did you do to get this?”
“If I told you, I’d have to kill you. It was some suggestions I had made in my uni project earlier in the year. Everything else is clouded in secrecy.”
“My daughter is now the International Woman of Mystery!”
“That’s about it, Mum. I’ll be keeping this in my room, unless Dad wants to put it on the wall of his office.”
“He’ll love to, I’m sure of it. Where was the presentation?”
“In a Michelin Starred restaurant where the chef wanted a selfie with me.”
She had a full week before school, resting, sorting out her wardrobe, catching up with her laundry, thinking about new songs, and about the tour. She had read the newspapers in Australia and was surprised at how cheap the real estate was when you halved the price to get pounds that she could relate to.
She made an appointment to see Wilhelm in Leicester and called up an Uber to take her there. They discussed the changes that she wanted, spoke to the ladies of the Arts Alliance, who were now nicely settled in, telling them what changes would be taking place and sounding them out about managing the shed when it was finished. They didn’t want to do that, but there was a retired bank manager who worked with the schools and drama groups who they knew would be happy to step into those shoes.
She also took out an advert in the local papers and an internet site for a competent studio operator to run a successful recording studio in the Midlands. On the Saturday, the family went to the restaurant in Coventry, where the whole band received their awards and had a good meal. The others told Willow that the trip back home had been better than the trip out, but not by much, and were all looking forward to some time off. On Sunday, they listened to Jim, who was now happy to be the regular organist, now that his band had broken up.
Tuesday was the first day of fourth year, and also the first Zoom lecture with fewer faces on the screen. At school, the assembly was the usual reporting of great things that the orchestra had done, as well as the big performance coming up on Saturday evening. Wednesday, they ran through the Mesiah with the ENO, and declaring it good to go. That evening, the soloists from the ENO joined them in the club for the Village Choir practise, much to Margaret and her friend’s delight.
Garry had sat with Willow in the lunchroom that day, now that his friends had deserted him, and they spoke about things lost, and things gained. He was happy that he could now work towards uni without any money worries, so, as far as he was concerned, it was all good.
Thursday, there was another statement. The tour had grossed over a hundred and eight million, with nearly nine million in costs. The CD and DVD sales were better, due to the sales in Australasia, with the old CDs making two point three-two million, the DVDs making three point one-five, and the merchandise selling a hundred and forty thousand pounds worth. The new album, released in the middle of the month, had already made over seven hundred thousand. There was a note that the tour returns would have been better if they could have charged the sort of prices that they did in the UK and Europe. Still, each band member received eight million and eighty thousand pounds. She replied to transfer the eight million to the WR Holdings. At this rate, she expected to get an invitation for another band meeting.
Saturday, she was in her long black dress with her violin case and her bag, picked up by the coach, already nearly full of the orchestra. The choir had already started for London. They were taken to the hotel where they had stayed the last time they played at the Albert Hall, checked in and taken to the venue. The truck had arrived with all the instruments.
Willow and Gina sat in the stalls, watching the hustle and bustle.
“Not seen much of you lately outside school, friend.”
“I’ve been pretty busy, Gina, sorting out the studio site and my other studies. How are you going with your quest to find a chateau?”
“That, my friend, is a slam dunk with the payment we got from the tour. We have found a good house near Florence, with a bit of land. It isn’t far into the city to the Centro Studi Musica e Arte, where they can take me further on the piano. I have no idea when we’ll make the move, hopefully in a year or so, but Mum’s keen. It’s warm and the house has a pool. There are fruit trees and vines, and the harvest is picked by locals, who pay for the privilege.”
“You could always hire someone to look after it before you move. You know, it’s all a bit different without some of our friends.”
“It is. It will be interesting to see what the new Hikers come up with. Geoff was the writer in G-Force. If he joins Zara in London, he may end up in her backing band. I think he loves her enough to take a demotion.”
“It does make you think how long we can last. This last tour has given us all the chance to do something magnificent, or something silly. I was wondering if anyone was going to suggest that we buy another shopping centre, or even an aircraft that would take us wherever we want to go. Talking about where to go, I think it’s about time we got our act together for tonight, the team from ENO have just walked in.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 23.
They went and joined the rest of the orchestra, Willow starting to take control. The mayhem wasn’t helped by camera and sound crews setting things out. Mister Bamborough arrived in tails, and it got settled enough to run a sound check.
After that, they left the hall and went to the side rooms where there was a meal for them. When that was finished, and they had got comfortable, checked their teeth and make-up, they lined up in order to wait for their entrance. Willow took the opportunity to have a word with Zara.
“Last night of the Proms for you, my friend.”
“It is, Willow. Next week, I’m starting a regular spot at a nightclub, with my quintet. It’s not as much money as the old band, but it is work until I get my album out. Clive has told me that I would likely be in the charts before Christmas.”
“I’ll buy it, that’s for sure. Is Geoff joining you in the city?”
“He wants to, but I’m not sure if I want him to. We’ve become like a married couple, and he wants stability, where I want to get out and take a chance. I’m dragging my heels looking at somewhere to live. He wants a house, and I want an apartment.”
“Take it from me, apartment living is great, especially if you have one over a restaurant.”
The call came for ‘five minutes’ so they all stood up straight. Tonight, Willow was to lead them out, including the school choir. Then, the choir of the ENO would join them, followed by the soloists and the conductor. It all worked smoothly to applause. Willow controlled the tuning, and the ensemble stood as the others came out. At two minutes past the programmed time, they were into the piece. There was the first break, and then repeated the entry, but a bit more quickly. When they reached the Hallelujah Chorus, the audience stood as per the custom.
In the Stoneleigh Club, where two hundred and fifty diners were watching the live broadcast on the big TV, they all stood as well, Wendy holding her husband’s arm as they watched their daughter leading the orchestra.
When the final Amen was sung, the audience stood and cheered them, echoed in the club. The soloists were all given flowers, as was Willow, and there were several bows and picking out individual players before they left the stage and the program ended. For the players, it was a trip back to the hotel and a good night of well-deserved sleep, while the school contractors gathered up all the larger instruments to take back to the school in the morning.
Next morning, after breakfast, they all wished Zara the best of luck as she left, with her overnight bag, to go back to her aunts’ and her new life. The rest of them got on the coaches for the trip back to Coventry, with Willow being dropped off first.
The following week set the scene for the rest of the month. School, Zoom lectures, sometimes in the club, and working on new songs. The Music Studies was into Composition this term, and Willow took it all in. The work on the Leicester site was moving forward, with the old shed removed and donated to one of the schools as a storage shed. The car park and inside the long shed was resurfaced with bright new lines. The new parking area in the long shed was given better lighting as well. The next statement arrived in the first week of September, with another four hundred and sixty thousand as her share. She asked Peter to transfer four hundred and fifty thousand to WR Holdings, and then transferred a hundred thousand into her personal account. She also got the Leicester accountant to set up a new account for Summer Love Studios, as a subsidiary of WR Holdings, and transferred two hundred thousand to his trust account as seed money.
The studio people had quoted on soundproofing the big shed, but Willow was holding off on that until the concrete floor had been covered in laminate flooring on low joists, to make it more like a stage or a dance floor. Willow had resumes from several console operators but hadn’t decided on any yet. She intended to pick the best three and bring them into the studio to interview and record something. She had spoken to Petunia, who was keen to have more on disc. Summer Rose was, at the moment, resting on its laurels. They had issued enough albums in the year, and now all had enough behind them to pursue other, more personal, things. Gina and Maisie were spending more weekends in Europe.
As October progressed, the floor of the shed was completed, and the soundproofing was being fixed. Willow had spoken to the referees and then contacted the best-looking applicants to arrange interviews. The others were sent an email to tell them that they had not been successful this time but would be kept in mind. As they had all indicated very little genuine experience but a desire to learn, it wasn’t a difficult choice.
She had scheduled them all to come to the site on a Saturday afternoon. One had done work experience with the company that built the studio and had been working in a radio station in Dundee for a few years as the producer. The other two had some time in studios, one in Birmingham and the other in Liverpool. What clinched their pick was that both had put photography or filmmaking as their hobbies.
Wendy took her to the site after lunch and they were chatting to the Alliance ladies when the first one arrived. Willow went out to the carpark. A rather stunning blonde got out of the car.
“Welcome, I’m Willow.”
“Good to meet you, Willow. I’ve Sydney Morris, here for the interview.”
“If you follow me, Sydney, we’ll go into our office, and you can relax. I have brought all three of the final applicants here today. The reason will become clear as we talk.”
She took Sydney up to the office.
“Take a seat. Do you want a drink, hot or cold?”
“Something cold, please. You look familiar.”
“Well, I have had a bit of time in the news this year. I’m Willow Rose.”
“Wow! This is a real pleasure, meeting you in the flesh. I have your albums.”
“If you have the Berlin DVD, you’re in good company, as that went Triple Platinum recently.”
She was looking out the window and saw two other cars come in and park.
“Hold on a moment, I’ll go and get the others.”
She went down and smiled.
“Good afternoon, you two. You, sir, must be Josh Hamilton, so you must be Sarah Wilkinson. I’m Willow Rose. Please follow me upstairs where we can have a chat.”
They followed her upstairs and she introduced them to each other, got them drinks and sat down.
“I expect that you’re wondering why I have brought the three of you in today as the advertisement was only for one position. In the past, we have had three lads from my school to do the studio work. The main mixer operator is now working in Abbey Road, and the two that concentrated on visual work are both in a company making band videos. What I’m looking for is a team to replace them, but able to fill in with any position.”
She started to ask them questions and draw them out. Sarah had family in Leicester and wanted to come home again; Josh was at a crossroads in his life, having broken up with his girlfriend in Birmingham and looking for somewhere away from the city as a new start. Sydney had been working as a DJ in Liverpool clubs but had some mixer experience. When the talk petered out, Willow told them that it was time to show them around.
“Where we’re in is our band headquarters. It looks a bit sparce as we only have a part-timer who looks after our property. All fan mail is dealt with by the label in London, as well as any tour organising.”
They went down and she opened the door to the big shed.
“This is in the process of being turned into an arts rehearsal space. I hope that we can have bands rehearsing, dancers and actors. It used to be a distribution centre. The company that you had work experience in, Sarah, are doing the soundproofing.”
She then led them into the long shed.
“This doesn’t look a likely studio location. This shed had been used for pallet racking and I’ve had the wall between that, and the old forklift workshop removed.”
She opened the door to the studio.
“This is where you will, hopefully, be spending a lot of time.”
She led them into the corridor, stopping to switch all the lights and master power on.
“This board has to be fully switched on, or else the next door will set off alarms. One of the switches turns them on and off, but I won’t tell you which one just yet. Please go through.”
The three went into the rest room, and immediately went to the wall with the awards. Willow gave them time to read a few and then went to the door to the control room.
“Through here is what our previous operator called ‘heaven on earth’.”
The room had been powered up from the switchboard, so all the lights were on across the mixing board.
“This was installed last year. We have enough mixing ability to record an orchestra, which we have done twice. The storage is twenty-four track digital and there’s the twenty-four track tape as back-up. There is a post-production unit on the back wall, which can produce issue-worthy CDs or DVDs. In the corner there, with the three screens, is the control unit for the twelve cameras that are located in the studio itself. They can be set with a main view, and then you can switch to another view at the press of a button, all the cameras are able to be removed, so there’s nothing to stop you using them on tripods.”
She went to the big switch on the mixing desk.
“This is the actual studio.”
As she switched it on, the others gasped at the sight of the long space with some keyboards, amps, and drums sitting there.
“We have recorded up to fifty players at once, using small, six-channel, mixers to feed into the main board. We recorded the original ‘Homegrown’ album here, with the DVD shot in Abbey Road. All the other albums started life in here, as well as the latest G-Force and Hikers ones. I’m planning to advertise this as a commercial studio for other bands, something we couldn’t do until I was able to get the permission changed to commercial use.”
“This is just wonderful, Willow. The board is bigger than anything I’ve seen, but it’s just the one control, duplicated. Are there jack plugs in the studio that are numbered?”
“There are, and they’re duplicated down the entire studio. Down at the back there is a way through to a storage area, and then security doors to the lane behind us. The air is a split system, set to twenty-two degrees ‘C’, and the walls are eighteen inches thick. Now, in the rest area we came through, there is a stocked kitchenette and his’n’hers toilets. I expect that you thought there may be a test, well, I’ll show you how the visual recording works, and then I’ll go into the studio and play a few things for you to record. There’s no rush, we can take all afternoon, but the plan is for us to end up with four CD’s and four DVDs of what we’ve done.”
It didn’t take long to show them the way to swap vision and record it. Sarah spent a little while finding out where the switches were for the speakers in the control room. Willow unplugged the transmitter for the buds, explaining that they used these, as it was what they used on stage. The three said that they were ready.
“Right. We’ll do this for real. You are in charge of the recording. Tell me where you want me to sit, set up the microphones you want to use, and make sure you have the visuals you want to use before we record.”
The four of them went into the studio, and Willow was sat at her keyboard, with it plugged into one of the amps. She had a boom with a microphone set up, and the three went back into the control room to do a vision and sound check. When Sarah said it was all good, Willow could see the tape moving and started to play. She did a version of a Carpenters song that she had sung, all that time ago, on stage at the club.
When she finished, Sarah asked her to play some more until told to stop. Willow played a solo version of ‘Finding a Friend’ and ‘Her Day’ before going on with a few numbers that she had been playing around with at home. When Sarah called to stop, she went into the control room and the four of them worked the post-production system to output CDs and DVDs. Willow had watched this done enough times to be able to show them the ropes.
“How are you all with this? I know it’s a steep learning curve.”
They all had smiles and both Josh and Sydney looked at Sarah. She thought for a bit, then asked.
“How much do you pay, and what are our duties?”
“Let’s sit in the first room and talk.”
They went and sat down. Willow looked in the fridge.
“There’s ice creams, anybody want one?”
When they were all sitting comfortably, Willow gave them more information.
“I’m prepared to pay forty thousand a year to each of you. I have bought a house in a nearby street that had been converted to three flats. That will be available to you at outgoing costs only. You can set up in the office we were first in, and, as a team, you will be in charge of the studio, taking bookings and scheduling recording sessions. I will be standing back, but behind you all the way. There will be advertising to attract customers who want to record in the Summer Love Studio, and there will be rehearsal space in the big shed, which will need to be co-ordinated with the Arts Alliance ladies in the ground floor office. You will be expected to keep the place clean and tidy, including the kitchen and toilets. If you want to, there will be an opportunity to teach others about this equipment at the Blue Coat School in Coventry, which has a post-production suite.”
Sydney grinned.
“What about relocation expenses?”
“Not a problem, within reason. If you say that you want to be part of this, we’ll get you signed on as an employee of the WR Holdings company, with a debit card for expenses. The accountant will expect a wad of receipts at the end of each month. That will include fuel, although the house is close enough to walk.”
They all said that they wanted the jobs, so Willow took them to the house and gave each one a key ring, with the site gate, the new studio key, and the door keys for one flat on each ring.
“I’ll let you talk about which one gets which flat. I’ll be back in the office when you’ve sorted yourselves out. I’ll need to arrange for my accountant to create a contract for each of you. When you come back to the office, I’ll give you an information sheet each, which gives his contact details and my contact details. You’ll be on the books as soon as he gets your signature.”
When they returned to the office, she gave them the information, pointed out the boardroom table where they could talk to bands and plan sessions, the introduced them to the Alliance ladies and her mother. On the way home, Wendy looked over and commented.
“They seem a nice bunch. That Sydney is a real stunner, isn’t she?”
“They are good, Mum.”
Willow slid the CD into the player, and they listened to her singing on the way home. Willow thought that it was good as is, and wondered about what it would sound like with a bit of tweaking.
She emailed the accountant with the names of her team, to list each one as a ‘Studio Technician’ and to start an employment folder for each one, from the day they signed the contract, and to prepare three debit cards with WR Holdings as the card owner. All three had contacted him and were on board from Wednesday. Willow expected them to take a week or more before she was contacted that they were in place. When they did that, she spoke to Petunia about getting her band recorded properly, and it was arranged for the following Saturday, from eleven in the morning. Willow emailed Sarah that she had a session to record a band at that time, and to treat them kindly, as they were all only twelve.
In her quiet times, Willow had been thinking about recording. She had been listening to some of the great female singers of the forties to sixties, finding a lot of material that they had played as the dance band. She emailed Sarah, booking the Monday of the half-term holiday as a recording session for herself. She noted that she wanted the result to sound like it had been recorded in a smoky club in the fifties and suggested that she look in the manual to see how she could produce that sound.
Before that, though, she ordered a large erectable blue screen and a Steinway Baby Grand to be delivered to the studio, with Sarah as the contact. She emailed Sarah that they were coming, and for her to go to see about how you can get out of the back door and into the lane.
On the Monday of the last week of the half-term, a very thankful Petunia gave her a copy of the Vines album, saying that her father had been very impressed with the way they had been looked after, and would pay any costs incurred.
The half-term ended, without any new tour or engagement booked, so Willow looked forward to a week where she could study the uni course, now in the fourth, and final, module. Gina was in Italy with Maisie, looking at the property they liked. On the Monday, she called for an Uber to take her to Leicester. There, she recorded one song to see if Sarah had nailed the sound, and then proceeded to record another fifteen tracks, just her and her voice with piano backing. The result started with a jazzy version of ‘Finding a Friend’ and finished with one she had written, ‘Where are they now?’ that was bridged with old songs about love, happiness, heartache and sheer joy. She already had twenty-four copies of the artwork for the cover. It was a picture of a willow tree, beside a mirror-like water, with her signature across it. The title was ‘A Girl has to have Standards’. The back of the cardboard had the names of the songs, with the writers, and the team at Summer Love Studio.
She stayed with them while they produced two dozen copies of the album and packed them in CD containers. She gave each of the team a copy as a keepsake and took them to a local restaurant for lunch. Sarah offered to drive her home, so Willow directed her to go via Coventry. There, she guided her to the Blue Coat School, and took her in. At reception, she asked the girl if Mister Bamborough or Miss Russell was in and was told that Mister Bamborough was in his office. She took Sarah to his office and knocked.
When she heard the call to enter, she led Sarah into the office.
“Good afternoon, Willow. What are you doing here on a holiday?”
“Good afternoon, Sir. This is Sarah Wilkinson. She is the new operator at the studio, replacing Xavier. I’ve brought her here to meet you and look at the suite of equipment that you now have.”
“Yes, I didn’t think that Xavier would up and leave us. Mind you, a job in the Abbey Road studio is not one to refuse. Good afternoon, Sarah. I’m Howard Bamborough, and I’m in charge of music studies here. Follow me and I’ll show you the room.”
By the time they left, Sarah had been taken on as a temporary teacher, with one evening a week to teach pupils how to use the equipment. She had looked at the visual equipment and had promised to bring Josh and Sydney in to see about teaching as well.
That afternoon, when Willow turned on her laptop, there was an email from Terry with her project for the end of the course. It was another ‘company in trouble’ and he wanted her to email it to her as soon as she had finished it. Her final exam was set on the twenty-first of December, and that Ted would take her if she was at her apartment. She acknowledged the email and started looking at the project for the rest of the week, only taking time off to go into Coventry with her mother on Tuesday morning to post a copy of her album to Jill for evaluation, another to her grandmother, a third to Evelyn as an early Christmas present, and to wander the shops before getting an Uber home.
The following Monday, Gina told Willow that they had settled on the property, and that she was booked to start at the music school in January. The leaving age in Italy was sixteen, and she had signed up with a private tutor to take her through to her sixteenth birthday at the end of May. She had advised Jill of this and also gave Willow a letter, with her accountant’s letterhead, giving Willow the full ownership of the name ‘Summer Rose’. Willow didn’t mention that she had already registered the name as a trademark.
“This is all a bit quick, friend.”
“I know, but it’s the chance for me to move on. The tutors at the music school listened to me play and promised to get me playing as a soloist by the end of next year. I have you to thank for it all, my best friend forever.”
“What tipped the scales?”
“We found a lovely villa, with plenty of room for a Grand Piano, and we were looking around the property when we came across a man, pruning the few rows of vines. We got talking, with me translating for Mum, and found out that he was the son of the man who had leased our land. The result was that we were taken to his father’s house, that backed on to our place, and stayed for dinner. The father, Guiseppe, is a widower, and he and Mum got on like a house on fire, in a mix of Italian, fractured English, and French, which Mum speaks. We signed the paperwork two days later and I transferred the price straight away.”
“I had a Steinway Baby Grand put into the studio. How would you like to record a couple of albums worth of your playing. My gift to you.”
“That would be fantastic. Do you have an operator?”
“I now have a full team on the payroll. They’re good. I had them record an album for me last week. I have a copy for you here. Have a listen and let me know what you think tomorrow.”
On Tuesday, the next statement came through, with each share at four hundred and twenty thousand. Her WR Holding account had another four hundred thousand added to it, handy as the accounts for upgrading the big shed had come in at just over three hundred and fifty thousand. Gina had told her that the CD was beautiful and should be released.
“That last track. That was about the band and our friends, wasn’t it?”
“If you want to think that, then yes. It was written so that anyone can fill in their own memories. With the way the others have been, I wonder if we’ll ever play in public again. I can see us getting together in the studio, but I had the feeling that Australia may have been our last gasp. I’m not sad about it, and I’ll be happy to be proved wrong, but we had played a lot of those songs as a dance band, and the album sort of grew.”
This part of the term, the Music Studies were all about the Bandinerie from JS Bach. A bandinerie was an odd dance form that had been explored by many composers, and sometimes used as the basis of a movement within a bigger work.
The year moved on, with Willow completing the project and emailing the result to Terry. Wilhelm sent in his report, with the shopping centre now in their hands, with a management team, and the modernisation being planned, with an architect being appointed. Jill had called Willow to tell her that her solo album had been launched in time for Christmas. Willow replied that she would be in the city for the Christmas break and would be staying at her apartment.
Willow had placed adverts in the music papers, and online, with Sarah as the contact point, and there was some interest being generated. The big shed was now hosting school groups several days in the week, with the Arts Alliance over the moon. Gina had been into the studio and recorded two CDs of classical piano works, reporting that the new team were fantastic, and the Steinway was beautiful. She gave Willow a set, signed to her best friend forever.
At the beginning of December, there was another statement, with the sales dipping slightly, and each share three hundred and seventy thousand. Willow had four hundred thousand transferred to WR Holdings, taking that to over fourteen million.
They moved into the revision week and the exam week. This year, the Bishop had decided to have a choral carol service instead of a bigger show, so the orchestra had only worked on other works through the last term, and the larger choir was out in hospitals and aged care homes.
Willow emailed Sarah to tell her that the team would have two weeks holiday on full pay, getting a thank you email with a Christmas card attached in return,
After the exams, and a tearful farewell to Gina, the Rose family locked the house and went into London. They had an invitation to another ‘black tie’ party at the Dorchester. This time, however, it was only Willow who was to receive an award, her Gold Record for ‘Standards’, which had outsold ‘Fireworks’ ten to one. The evening was as glittery as the last one, with Wendy and Willow in new dresses for the occasion. She collected the one to be given to Sarah for production, to give to her in the New Year. She thought that it may be something they could do in front of her family and friends, with the Leicester paper covering a local girl making waves.
On the Monday, Ted took Willow to the Royal Holloway, where she sat for the exam, with Terry checking it while she waited, and then presented her with her framed certificate. He also gave her two other framed items, both from Hugh Kelly, and both in acknowledgement of her input, one for one subsidiary, and the second for another subsidiary. Terry asked her if he could send her more problems to solve, and Willow grinned and told him that it would cost five hundred pounds an hour, minimum of fifty hours.
That week, she went shopping for presents for her parents. She had already sent something to her grandmother. They ate out, every single day, and saw the New Year in at a good vantage point, without any riots. It had been a very busy year, and Willow wondered what the next would bring.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
End of Book 4
Ending of Book 4
That week, she went shopping for presents for her parents. She had already sent something to her grandmother. They ate out, every single day, and saw the New Year in at a good vantage point, without any riots. It had been a very busy year, and Willow wondered what the next would bring.
Chapter 1
They cleaned up the apartment and left a lot more in the wardrobes than had been there before. The linen had been put into the bags and taken down to the restaurant. The main things that went in her bag were the Gold Records and her framed certificates.
The drive back to Stoneleigh, that Saturday, was spent listening to the radio and hearing either Summer Rose or Willow being played every twenty minutes. The family sang along to the tunes, much to the amusement of others on the road, seeing three people singing lustily.
At the house, they went in and opened up a few windows to let the stale air out and fired up the central heating. Ashley and Willow spent a little while putting up her new certificate and the other two certificates of appreciation. There was a part of the office wall now set aside for her various personal awards, with her second year and third-year results already in a neat line, with more space to spare. Ashley would often sit at his desk and gaze at these, with nothing but ‘A’s.
Willow went up to her room and put the few things away that she had brought back. During this break, they had found a launderette and had been able to leave clean underwear in the drawers. She put the two Gold Records in a bag to take to the studio. Then she laid on her bed and closed her eyes, thinking about the year to come.
G-Force was no longer a band, with two joining the Hikers. The orchestra was now without one of the best cellists she had ever heard, as well as a great pianist. Who knew what others may have moved on. They were all getting to an age where moves happen. Although the official leaving age was a couple of years later, there were so many ways you could bypass the system. Some of the leavers would have gained an apprenticeship or traineeship, others may have moved schools.
She was sorry that Jacob had turned out the way he had. It was such a waste! She had thought about visiting him but had decided that it may be a mistake. Wilhelm hadn’t been forthcoming, but she may learn more from Rick or Racheal. The thing that did hit home was that her best friend had left the village, meaning that they couldn’t do duets in the club, and that if any accompaniment was needed with the village choir, it would have to be her, unless she could rope Jim into it.
She roused herself out of her sad thoughts and turned on her usual laptop. There were a few messages after they had gone to London. One was a message from Peter, telling her that her future statements would now have two components. One with the rest of the band, and the other with her solo income. Gina would keep receiving her share until that stopped. Peter did make the comment that the rest of the band seemed to be having a long rest.
Another was from Sarah and the team, thanking her for the Christmas bonus that she had organised, even though they hadn’t been there long. She attached a picture of her with her family on Christmas Day, looking happy.
There was one from Terry, telling her that he planned to visit Blue Coat School, to talk to the Head about having more of her students take up a certificate course, and that he would like to see the studio. He would be at the school on the Thursday and Friday of their first week of term, before his next lectures started. She looked at her new calendar and replied that the Saturday would be good. Before she sent the email, she went down to ask her father if he could take her to the studio that day, picking up a passenger in Coventry along the way. He said that it was all right, so she went and sent the email, saying that her father would be picking him up at his hotel, around ten on the Saturday morning. She then sent an email back to Sarah, asking if all the team could be in the studio from ten-thirty, that day, as they would have a visitor, and told her, that if she hadn’t shown her family the studio, this was the day that it would be allowed.
Then she sent an email to the Leicester newspaper, telling them that on the Saturday, the Studio Technician at the Summer Love Studio would be receiving a Gold Record from Willow Rose for the album ‘A Girl has to have Standards’. She gave the address of the studio and told them that access was strictly limited to that day and asked them to turn up at eleven.
That evening, the family walked over to the club. Ashley to pick up where he had left off before the break, and Willow to see what was going on. Malcolm greeted them all with hugs. The back room was set up with a load of tables, and still had the decorations up.
“We had a cracking New Year show. The new Hikers played for us. The only thing we missed was that Zara. They tell me that she’s gone down to the big smoke to make a name for herself. Her chap certainly misses her. He came along and spent the evening drinking. We had to call a taxi for him to take him home. When are you likely to play for us again?”
“Don’t know, Malcolm. The rest of the band seemed to retire after the summer tour. They haven’t even spoken about our investment properties. With Maisie and Gina now in Italy, for good, I don’t have anyone else who would be as good. I could come along and do something solo, but, right at the moment, I can’t raise the enthusiasm. I had a big year, last year, and I may be suffering work-lag.”
“You did work hard last year. Don’t be hard on yourself. Give yourself a break before you burn out. We don’t need you as a headline these days, we’re getting a regular two hundred plus on Saturday evenings, and we have a new chef starting this week to create something different for us. We’re getting queries for weekday events, so the kitchen is working a lot more. Studio Two is the place to be. I’ve even put a charity box on the bar in front of those records of yours, asking a pound for charity if they take a picture of them. We gave over four hundred pounds to the Old Peoples Home before Christmas.”
They had a meal, and Willow and her mother went home again.
“You seem down, love.”
“I am, a bit. It’s the changes. My best friend has left the village and I’m feeling alone. I know that she’ll be back, now and then, as they didn’t sell the house, but there aren’t any others in the village I know that are my age, anymore. I realise what Gina must have felt.”
“You’ll be better when you get to school, with all your friends there. Talking about school, I was sorting the post that had come while we were away. There’s one for you from the school.”
She went and fetched it, giving it to Willow, who opened it.
“It’s my class schedule for the rest of fourth year. I see that I get gym on Thursdays, followed by the Orchestra. We’re into some heavy stuff with Music Studies, and that’s now every week, instead of every two weeks, on a Friday afternoon. I’m listed as the leader of the Senior Orchestra until summer. Hello! There’s a note here that I’m to see the Head after assembly on Monday, to discuss what we’ll be doing this term. By the way, Dad’s taking me to the studio on the Saturday, picking up my uni lecturer on the way, to show him the studio. I’ve made quiet arrangements to have Sarah there, hopefully with her family, and a local reporter, to give her the Gold Record. It will be lovely for her, and good coverage of the studio if we want to make it a success.”
“Do you mind if I come along? I’d like to see how your team have settled in.”
“That’s OK. Maybe I’ll feel better when I start doing things again. I don’t even have any songs in my head at the moment. I suppose it will come back, but I’m afraid it won’t.”
Wendy held her daughter and rubbed her back.
“Even if it doesn’t, love, you still have a lot behind you, and a brain just doesn’t shut down, especially in a fifteen-year-old. You’ll get your mojo back, I’m sure.”
In bed, that night, she hugged her two furry friends and told them that it was all right, she wasn’t going mad. In the morning, she felt a lot better.
They didn’t go over to the church that Sunday morning, as it had snowed quite a bit during the night and was bitterly cold. The family made ready for their new year at work and school. Ashley made sure his working suits were ready to go, Wendy double checked her skirts and blouses, to make sure she hadn’t left anything in London that would be needed. Willow laid out her school uniform and checked that her warm pullover hadn’t been riddled with moths since last winter.
She thought of where she had been to last year and sent an email to Evelyn, wishing her a Happy New Year and a good start to her term, and asked her how the modelling session went. While she was about it, she started an email to Gina, and then deleted it as being too clingy.
Monday morning, Sebastian arrived in a normal car to take her to school. That, alone, almost made her cry, and it was only his banter along the way that cheered her up. When she walked into the school, she was immediately greeted by her classmates and orchestra members, many saying that they had received the solo Willow album for Christmas and had loved it. She didn’t want to appear stand-offish, so joined in the conversation, which helped her a lot.
The assembly was another moment of feeling lost, until Dianne stood on one side and Barbara stood on the other and put their arms through hers. Jim was on the organ and the Head’s address was pretty much a carbon copy of this time last year. Afterwards, she went to the admin offices and waited for the Head to come back from the theatre.
When she arrived, she beckoned Willow to follow her into her office.
“Good morning, Willow. I hear that you got another Gold Record for your solo album. I have it at home and it is very good. Quite an adult album. No wonder it’s selling well.”
“Thank you, Ma-am. It was just something that came to me as I was thinking about all the dance music we had played. The rest of the band seem to have given up, so I thought that I’d lay it down to test my new team in the studio.”
“Who will be teaching here in the evenings. That Sarah brought the other two in before the break and they’ve been taken on as teaching assistants. Thank you for that, it was a shock when Xavier left, but he had a good job to go to and had turned sixteen, so there was nothing I could do to stop him.”
“He had become very good at what he does, I expect that Mister Withers had made him an offer he couldn’t refuse.”
“Talking about offers that cannot be refused. There aren’t any big shows planned for this year. The BBC have told us that we don’t have a place in the Proms, so we get some breathing space. One thing that has come out of our appearance, last year, is that a few of the ENO bought our DVDs of the orchestra performances of ‘Messiah’ and ‘Creation’, including the small-run copies we made of the sessions in the recording studio. One of their management is coming up to Coventry and wants to see it, to talk about getting their people in to finalise shows. He’ll be here on Friday.”
“My university lecturer will be in town at the same time, Terry said that he’s got an appointment to talk to you about having more of our students take similar courses to the one I took. My father will be driving me to the studio on Saturday morning and will pick him up at his hotel. He’s staying at the Brittania.”
“That’s handy. Let’s make a different arrangement. If you organise your security to pick you up with a people mover, you can all go in that.”
“That’s doable. I’ll talk to Sebastian tonight and let my father know that we’ll be driven there. My mother wants to come along as well. I’ve organised a little ceremony for Sarah, to give her the Gold Record as producer of the album, and I hope that the local paper comes along. I’ve let them know that it’s happening, as she’s a local girl.”
“All right. That sounds like it’ll work. Now, there’s one other thing that I want to talk to you about. The Music Studies for this, and next, term will be all about composition. It requires the students to write a piece of music to be played at the end of the summer term. It’s not something that has been fully successful in past years, usually ending up with a couple of movements. This year, with your skills as the leader, as well as your proven songwriting skills, I wonder if you would take on the task of helping this year to create a full orchestral piece that we can perform for others. You will have close to six months and the lessons are now every week.”
“Is there any expectation of what it should sound like?”
“No. You went along with what the first years wanted for the musical, so why don’t you sit down with the others on Friday afternoon and see what they have to say.”
“All right, I’ll do that. Who knows what we’ll come up with.”
“Thank you, Willow. If anyone can do it, you can. I hear that you did very well with your course. The University sent me a letter, telling me that you were an honour student.”
“That’s a surprise. When I get home, I’ll have to read the certificate more closely. When it was given to me, it was just a great relief that it was over. I’ve been a little separated from things over the last week or so. We had a great time in London, but coming home to be without my constant companion has been a bit of a shock.”
“You created her chance to make her own way, Willow. She blossomed under your guidance and belief in her. I’ll make sure that when she is a soloist in a big London orchestra, I’ll be there, probably sitting beside you. That girl had a talent that she had hidden until you pulled it out of her. Whatever you do in life, my girl, you are going to make people happy. Now, run along to your first class and tell them to blame me for your lateness.”
When lunchtime came around, she approached her usual seat to see that there wasn’t an empty one beside her. She sat down with Dianne on one side and Vivienne on the other.
“How are you, Viv? Are you enjoying your rest?”
“No more than you, Willow. I don’t have the writing skills that you have or else I may have cut an album. Yours was an absolute knockout.”
“Thank you. Don’t say you don’t have the writing skills; you wrote the bulk of the ‘Magic Laptop’.”
“Only with your help and the rest of the band.”
“Who have hardly spoken to me since Australia. It’s as if we’ve all decided to break up.”
“I know, and it makes me mad. Herb, Roy, and Victor are talking about going on as a straight electric group, and Brent, now that Gina’s gone, has decided to join them. I expect that they’ll work up a set that has some of our old songs and some new. I did hear one of them mention having you out front as a singer.”
“Not going to happen. If anything, I’ll continue as solo if that’s the way they want it. They won’t be able to use Summer Rose, as the band name has been trademarked for quite some time.”
Dianne leaned over.
“You could always record with a small orchestra, Willow. Everyone has been holding their breath waiting for you to ask. We’re all jealous of Viv and Nancy.”
“I’ll need some songs before that happens, but I’ll keep it in mind. It would be a good project for this terms Music Studies but would be too short.”
“Tell all, Willow. You obviously have more knowledge than we do.”
“The Head spoke to me this morning. The object of the rest of the school year is to compose something for presentation before the summer break. She said that previous years have not been successful in getting anything completed. She asked me if I would be the director, like I was with ‘Wicked’, and talk to you all in that class at the end of the week about what we could do.”
“Is there any set type of work? A concerto, symphony, or something like that?”
“No, it’s up to us to come up with something of show length, say two hours.”
Dianne laughed and put her hand on Willow’s arm.
“You don’t have to look far, my friends. When we were in Albert Hall, I was talking to one of the ENO, and they told me that the ‘Magic Laptop’ was almost good enough to be an opera. Why not take that as the base and build it into a full opera. We have the singers; we have an orchestra. All we need is to create the story on stage, write some dialogue that becomes a song, and you already know Tatiana’s songs.”
The other two sat there, stunned, and then the three stood to have a group hug, much to the amusement of those around them.
Vivienne grinned.
“Dianne, you’re brilliant! We’ll see what the rest of the class think about it on Friday. There aren’t enough singers or players in the story, but they can all have walk-on parts. What do you think, Willow?”
“It does take a load off my mind, Viv. I was wondering how we could do something that takes experienced writers months to do. We can put it to the rest on Friday. Thank you, Dianne. Who, from the band, would be in it, Viv?”
“Well, beside you and me, Nancy would be keen, as she’s no longer going out with Herb. Bryan and Edward would join us, and I’m sure that we could get a good singer to play the internet baron.”
“Garry is free now, after the Gees broke up. He might like to play a madman on stage.”
“Then there’s the two lads who sung in ‘Creation’.”
“I think that there’s enough skill in the class to put together visual backdrops. That would make it an interesting show without needing scenery, just a few props.”
Willow ate her lunch, feeling better than she had all day. She had a project, as long as the others went along with it. That afternoon, as Sebastian was driving her home, she asked him if he could organise a people mover and pick her and her family up on Saturday, around ten, for a trip to Leicester, via the Britannia in Coventry to pick up a couple of others.
“I’ll get a minibus, Willow. You don’t know if your extras have brought partners with them.”
“Good thinking, we’ll do that. You don’t mind, I hope.”
“Not if I get to see inside that studio again and see what you’ve done with the rest of it.”
That night, she emailed Wilhelm, telling him what she hoped would be happening on Saturday morning. She also had a new statement from Peter. Her share of the band income was higher, at five hundred and twenty thousand, due to Christmas sales. Her income for her solo album was just over two million. She got him to transfer two and a half to WR Holdings. She also went into her father’s office and looked at her certificate more closely.
Ashley came in as she was reading.
“What’s up, love, looking for a spelling error?”
“Very funny, Dad. No. The Head told me that she had been sent a letter to confirm that I had passed the course, and she mentioned something that I hadn’t picked up. What do you see on this certificate?”
He looked closely at it, and then hugged her.
“It says that you completed the course with Honours. That’s amazing but deserved. You must have done a few things for that, and those other certificates of appreciation.”
“I think it’s safe to say that my projects weren’t just hypothetical, with one saving a very large company a lot of money.”
Over a cup of hot chocolate, she told her parents about the change in plans for Saturday, and the project she had been given in the school.
“That’s why you’re a lot brighter tonight, love, you have something for your brain to work on.”
“You could be right, Mum. The other girls were all very careful to include me in discussions today. The Head told me that it was all my influence that has sent Gina to Italy and a career as a piano soloist, so I have to admit that I’m the creator of my own sadness and should feel good about it.”
“Your Headmistress is a very learned woman and has a lot of experience with teenagers. If that’s what she thinks, then believe her. What does she say about your project plan?”
“Don’t know. She hasn’t been told yet. It’s not even been discussed in class. They may want to do something else altogether.”
“If you think that, you’re dumber than your Shauns.”
“Hey, don’t knock the Shauns!”
Tuesday and Wednesday were straightforward school days, with her brain seeming to clear, the more information it was given. Thursday was gym, followed by Senior Orchestra, with Willow taking her violin to school. They worked through some of the items that they had done before, without any piano or organ, so ended up playing Bolero a couple of times to get warmed up. Mister Bamborough told them that he would look for pieces where there could be a solo piano for Willow to play but would stick to mainly string-based works.
On Friday afternoon, Mister Jamieson introduced the class to the project that would take their time through to the end of next term, with no after-school effort needed as they would be having three hours a week in school hours to complete it. He asked if anyone had any idea of what they would be doing.
There was quiet, and Dianne looked at Willow, who winked. Dianne stood up and went to his desk, turned and faced the others.
“We have to come up with something that we can put on in the theatre. It will have to be something as meaty as a concerto, or like the junior’s musicals. However, it has to be new. We have, in our class, Willow and Vivienne, both talented songwriters, and they have already released an album, called the ‘Magic Laptop’. Has everyone heard it?”
There was a chorus of ‘Yes’.
“What I’m proposing is that we develop that album into a four-act operetta, with a small orchestra, adding an overture, some dialogue, and some extension of the existing songs, with a few extras. We have a few here that could create scenery by projecting onto a gauze curtain.”
She waited for anyone to tell her it couldn’t be done. When all she could see was smiles, she nodded to Mister Jamieson and walked back to her seat. He grinned.
“Are you all happy to do this?”
There was a chorus of ‘yes’.’
“Willow and Vivienne, do you sanction this? It is, after all, your copyright property.”
“We do, sir. We think it could be fun. And, best of all, we think that we could pull it off inside the time limit.”
“Alright! The ‘Magic Laptop – the Operetta’ it is. I’ll let the Head know. She’ll be tickled pink.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 2
They all hugged and hi-fived. They had a project, and it had enough different facets to use all the skills that the class contained. For the rest of the afternoon, they talked about it. Vivienne went to the board and wrote up the basic album plotline and the song titles, explaining how they fitted into the story.
Some of the class volunteered to come back next week with some ideas on extra dialogue, while Willow and Vivienne said that they would think about extra songs, and how they could alter the existing ones to be more operatic.
When they had all left, Mister Jamieson sat back and smiled. This particular group had been the brightest one he had taught, even before Willow had joined it. He stood and gathered his papers and went off to let the Head know that there was something else coming their way that the school had never done before.
On the way out, Willow told Vivienne that she had organised a minibus in the morning, picking up at around ten at the Britannia to go to the studio. Vivienne wanted to come along, having not been anywhere near the studio since their orchestra session. On the drive home, Willow phoned Wilhelm to warn him that there would be a minibus at the studio in the morning.
She sat back in the car seat and sighed.
“I could get used to this comfort. The old people mover was a bit harsh.”
“You will, Willow, when you’re being driven around from party to party.”
“Not me, Sebastian. I’m no party girl. It’s over a year before I can start learning to drive, I wonder if I could get a discount from where Dad works?”
“He’s at Aston Martin. I’m sure that if you ask nicely, they’ll lend you one to promote the brand.”
“Ha! That reminded me of something that our manager spoke to Dad about, way back. He spoke about ‘Brand Willow’ as if I was a box of cornflakes.”
“It’s quite likely that somewhere, in a head office, someone is wondering if you’ll be the face of their brand.”
“I can just see that now. Eat your Acme Prunes and sit like Willow Rose.”
He pulled up outside her house.
“See you in the morning, Miss Prune.”
“See you, Sebastian.”
She went in and changed, then started preparing dinner. As she sliced and diced, she thought about how her day had lifted her out of her doldrums. She thought about the opera. The album started with her, as Tatiana, bemoaning the quest that her father had put on his website. What the stage show would need would be an opening scene with her and the father, where he lays down the law. She wondered if it should be a totally sung part.
When her parents came home, they cooked the dinner and relaxed in front of the TV. Willow was so bored; she said goodnight and went upstairs to prepare for bed. It may be a big day in the morning.
She woke, feeling better than she had felt for a while. There was a weak sun, and it hadn’t snowed for several days. She showered and made ready for the day, picking out a smart skirt suit that she had picked up in London. She had a light breakfast with her parents, and they all prepared to be picked up. They all looked good when Sebastian pulled up. Locking up, they went out, Willow with a bag with the Gold Records in.
At the Britannia, there was more than expected waiting. Willow got out to say hello to her guests. Terry Savage, her lecturer, had Hugh Kelly with him. Then there was Derek Coward, the chairman of ENO, with Norman Strong, his producer. Vivienne was standing a little way apart and Willow beckoned her over.
“Gentlemen, this is Vivienne Armstrong, she plays the flute in Summer Rose.”
They all exchanged greetings and boarded the minibus. Willow was last in and picked up the microphone as Sebastian pulled away.
“Good morning. The two that you haven’t been formally introduced to yet are my parents, Ashley and Wendy Rose. The gentlemen who have joined us are Terry Savage, the lecturer of the uni course I took last year. His companion today is Mister Hugh Kelly, who gave me those other three items, Dad. Then we have Derek Coward, the chairman of the English National Opera, with his producer, Norman Strong. Vivienne has joined us for this visit and our driver is Sebastian, my regular security to and from school.”
She waited as nods were exchanged.
“We’re going to Leicester, where the Summer Love Studio is located. I have a Gold Record, which I will be presenting to Sarah Wilkinson, as the mixing board operator on my latest album. It’s really for the team there, but they only name the operator. The other two there are Josh Hamilton and Sydney Morris. For your information, Vivienne is the other main composer in Summer Rose, having contributed most of our ‘Magic Laptop’ album.”
Norman laughed.
“Now, that’s something I would like to talk about. That was almost an opera. It was, of course, a take on the ‘Magic Flute’, set in modern times.”
Vivienne smiled.
“It was, and started life as a single song that was a bit of a mash-up of the whole story. Willow pointed out the obvious, and that was that it could be expanded into a full album. Actually, we have just started to work on expanding it into a two-hour operetta for a school project, to be put on the stage there at the end of June.”
“That’s interesting. I’d certainly like to see that.”
“If you keep an eye on our school website, Mister Strong, you’ll see when tickets are being released.”
Terry looked at Ashley.
“Mister Rose, I believe that you work at Aston Martin as a design engineer.”
“I do. I think we use the seats supplied by Mister Kelly.”
Hugh laughed.
“Let’s put all this Mister stuff away this morning. I’m Hugh and this is Terry. I’ve been a client of the University of London for some years, picking the brains of their brightest. Not many as bright as your daughter, Ashley. We do have a subsidiary that provide first class seating for expensive motor cars, among other things we do. I was at the Albert Hall, Norman, when your artists joined the Blue Coat Orchestra, led by Willow, in the ‘Messiah’. It was a superlative experience. I believe that you performed ‘Creation’ before the summer, Willow.”
“We did, Hugh. Three nights in the Coventry Cathedral, filmed for the BBC. We recorded both oratorio at our studio, the biggest group we’ve ever had to record.”
She went and sat next to Vivienne as there was general talk. Viv leaned close.
“This is a high-powered bunch today.”
“Yes. Terry is here to see the project that I used as an example during the course, Hugh is a surprise. The other two were in the school to speak to the Head, probably about another collaboration.”
When Sebastian pulled into the parking area, he stopped where the shed used to be, now marked out as ‘Coach Only’ parking. Willow went to the front.
“We’ll have a quick look at the newer bits of the site first. This used to be a distribution centre, and our tenant is now a tenant of our band property in Small Heath. If you’ll like to get out, I’ll show you around.”
When they were standing in front of the vehicle, she pointed out the offices.
“Upstairs is the nerve centre of the band property portfolio, as well as the operation of the studio, and the ground floor is the new home for the Leicester Arts Alliance. They are involved with all the schools and dramatic groups in the city. If you come over to this door, you can have a look at one of the changes that we’ve made. She opened the door and the sound of loud dance music hit their ears. They all had a look in to see a dance group practising a stage show. She shut the door, cutting off the sound.
“As you can hear, we’ve soundproofed what used to be an industrial site, along with laying a laminate floor suitable for dance or drama. Now, if you follow me, I’ll take you to the studio proper. Sebastian, if they turn up, there should be a reporter and photographer arriving soon. Can you bring them through, please.”
They followed her into the long shed, where some more cars were parked in marked spaces.
“This used to be used for pallet racks and a forklift workshop. What you see, in front of you, used to be a cold store for vegetables. The walls were eighteen inches thick with expanded foam.”
They went through the open door, and into the rest area, where Josh was talking to some people.
“Good morning, Josh, how are you this morning?”
“Extra good seeing you, Willow. These are my parents and my two sisters. I’ve just been showing them the wonder wall. I’ve made some changes; I hope you don’t mind.”
“It’s where you work Josh, all good unless you have a wall of nude calendars.”
Introductions were made, and he showed Willow and Vivienne what he had done.
“I’ve been looking at the saved files in the system, and they’re fabulous. I’ve moved the awards around a bit, putting them higher and lower, so that there’s space for photos that I’ve printed off from the visual files. There’s one from every session, so far, and plenty of room for more.”
Willow called Norman over.
“Here are pictures of the school orchestra recording ‘Messiah’ and ‘Creation.’ The first had around forty players and the same number of singers.”
She spoke to Josh’s sisters, who had albums to sign, happy that two of the band were here and happy to talk. Sebastian came in with two other men.
“Willow, this is Jeff and Bernie, from the local paper. They were wondering about so many cars and so little noise.”
“Thanks, Sebastian. Gentlemen, if you all follow me, we can get to something of a surprise.”
She led them through the control room, and into the studio, where the team had set up tables and chairs and had laid out crisps and biscuits. Sarah saw them come in and came over to Willow and gave her a hug.
“Thank you for this, Willow. My folks have been getting on to me about this mysterious place where I work. I’ve a bit to talk to you about, afterwards, so don’t rush off.”
“Don’t intend to, Sarah. I’ve brought along a couple of gentlemen who wanted to have a look at the place. One pair is, I think, only for interest, but the others are the chairman and producer for the English National Opera. There are two from the local paper here, so, I’ll get to the good bit of my visit first. Can you call for quiet and for everyone to gather, I’ll get introduced around after.”
Sarah called out for everyone to gather around. The newsmen stood near Willow. When there was quiet, Willow could speak normally.
“For those of you who have never been here before. This is the Summer Love Studio, specially built in an old cold store after Summer Rose bought this site. The whole site has gone from a distribution centre to be an arts centre. What used to be the assembly building is now, at this moment, being used as a dance studio, but can be used for drama or music practise. This room has seen the recording of several hit records before Sarah, Sydney, and Josh came on board. Since then, they have recorded some groups from the Blue Coat School, and an album that I recorded here, back in November. That album was called ‘A Girl has to have Standards’ and has sold very well.”
There was some polite applause.
“So well, that I was presented with a Gold Record before Christmas. Josh, here is another one for the wall.”
She pulled it out of her bag and passed it to Josh, noting that Sydney had her hand on his arm as they looked at it.
“On that same evening, they gave me another to bring along, today.”
She pulled the other one out.
“This one has the inscription, ‘For passing five hundred thousand sales, this is awarded to the producer of ‘A Girl has to have Standards’, Sarah Wilkinson.”
There were cheers and applause. Willow presented the award to Sarah, and they stood for the photos, firstly by the newspaper, and then by a lot of family members with their phones. When it eased, Willow called for quiet.
“Although that award has Sarah’s name on it, as far as I’m concerned, it was a team effort. I expect to be coming back in a month or two with the Platinum versions to go on the wall. Now, you now know that I’m Willow, and this young lady beside me is Vivienne, who plays flute in Summer Rose. The last time we were here, together, we were part of the Blue Coat Orchestra. Now, I’m parched, are there drinks?’
There was a long period where family members got selfies with the two of them, Ashley and Wendy getting to know the team, and the newsmen getting pictures and taking notes. Willow took them out and let them look into the other shed, where the dancers were still working hard. She took them into the Arts Alliance office and introduced them to the ladies, who had met them before.
Going back into the studio, she caught up with her four guests.
“Sorry to have abandoned you, gentlemen. There is a bit more I need to show you.”
She took them to the bottom of the studio, slid the door back and opened the other one to show them the storeroom and the entry from the lane.
“You may have wondered how we got the amps and the Steinway in. I suppose we could get a car in here. The climate is controlled by a reverse-cycle unit, and you can set it to a temperature of your choice. If you need the dimensions, the studio is thirty-seven feet across, and the whole structure was a hundred and ten feet long before we made the changes. Does anyone have any questions?”
Derek laughed.
“Just the one. What do you charge?”
“We have started charging from the beginning of the month. For professional bands, it’s a thousand pounds an hour, with a minimum of five hours. If you’re looking at an extended time, say a week of eight-hour days, we can bring it back to five hundred an hour. As you can see, it’s state-of-the-art. Josh and Sydney can show you our visual system. There are twelve cameras, and you can choose an overview, and then replace it with other views as you like, so ending up with a file that’s already edited and synchronised with the audio file, allowing you to pump out CDs or DVDs within fifteen minutes of finishing the session.”
“That’s better than we have when we’re at Abbey Road. Cheaper, too.”
“So far, the main output has been Summer Rose, G-Force, and the old Hikers. Plus, my solo album. That will, I hope, be added to as we attract other bands. One thing you would have noticed, is the sound suppression. We could crank up the amps in here and you could whisper to each other in the car park.”
“Yes, that practise area was a shock when you opened the door.”
“Does it come up to the project, Terry?’
“That and more. You can earn a million a year out of this and only have the wages and outgoings. You wouldn’t have been thinking of this when you originally bought the site.”
“No. It was just a hide-away for the band, but the others have lost interest. We now have a site in Small Heath, and a shopping centre in Manchester. They will bring in a tidy wage for years to come. Have you seen what you came to see?”
“Not until we’ve been shown the audio and visual equipment, coming, Derek?”
She stood there with Terry and Hugh. Hugh had a wry smile.
“You never fail to impress, Willow. I had imagined a typical small band area when I looked at the papers Terry showed me. This is magnificent. I see that you have a blue screen, have you used it yet?”
“Not yet. It’s there if anyone wants to record something in front of it, and then add the picture to look like they’re not inside. I suppose it could be used to film an advert. All the cameras can be taken off the brackets and used manually.”
“What are we doing for lunch, Willow.”
“There’s a fish and chip and pizza shop close by. What do you have in mind, Hugh?”
“If all the family members have left, I would like to host you and the team somewhere nice. This has been a really good experience.”
“All right. I know that Sarah wants to talk to me. Let’s shut this door and go and see if they’re ready to go home.”
When they got back to the control room area, any family members were in the rest area, taking selfies with the awards, Josh having added the two new ones to the selection. Willow asked Josh if he would like to join her and the guests for lunch after the studio was closed. Then she went back to the control room, where Sarah was explaining the mixing board to Terry and Sydney was outputting a DVD for Norman. She saw Willow.
“This is a composite of today, Willow. We had all the cameras and a few microphones on, with the system switching through them at twenty-second intervals. I think these gentlemen are impressed.”
“If you’ve done, Hugh is taking us all to lunch. Have you found a good restaurant in town?”
“Josh took me to a place for New Year’s Eve, it’s pretty swish.”
“That will be good. Hugh likes swish. If the three of you squeeze into the minibus, you can guide us there.”
They waited until all the family members had left, all smiling happily, and then Sarah went through the studio, checking that everything was secured, and that there was nobody still in the toilets. They went back to the minibus and were guided to the good restaurant, where they had a big table set up for them and all enjoyed a good lunch.
When they had finished, Sarah still hadn’t had the talk she wanted. She said that she would take them home if Viv wanted to stay as well. Willow raised her voice and told the table that she and Sarah had business to talk about, and that Sebastian would take the others home with Sarah driving her and Vivienne later. Hugh made the comment that business talk always came first if it’s your business. He thanked her and the team for the inspection and the experience.
“One of my subsidiaries needs to record adverts for TV. They are prepared to pay for a full day. The studio is as modern as it could be, you can show them the result while they wipe the sweat off. I’ll get them to contact you, Sarah, to book. All they need is a small band.”
Willow grinned.
“A four-piece electric or more classical, Hugh?”
“Electric would be good.”
“A singer or just the music?”
“Singer. Do you have anything in mind?”
“If you record on a weekend, I can get you a totally unknown, but very talented, group of twelve-year-olds. They are from the school and the main two are twins called Petunia and Ivy Vines.”
“Sam Vines’ girls?”
“Yes, do you know him.”
“I’ve been trying to buy him out for years and put the business in a purpose-built factory. Now, the beggar has moved into one in Small Heath. Wait! Is he one of your tenants?”
“I couldn’t possibly comment, Hugh.”
“Let me guess, the tenant here is now sharing the site with him.”
“My lips are sealed, Hugh.”
“If you can get them, Sarah, let them know who’s making the advert, and tell them that I’ll be here to oversee the session. Sam will be here with them, I’ll bet. That way we can have a very quiet conversation in a room that doesn’t need a ‘cone of silence’.”
Sebastian drove them all back to the studio, and the five got out, with calls of thanks and ‘see you again’. Sarah led the way up to the upper office and they all had comfort stops and Josh put a kettle on. They sat at the big table, and Willow looked at Sarah.
“What do you want to talk about, Sarah?”
“The money, Willow. With the flats, we’re being paid too much, for starters. We’re all getting some more from the school when we teach. The thing is that we’re underworked here.”
“That’s not going to last long, team. I thought that I may be underpaying you. You got the invoice and receipt books from the accountant?”
“Yes.”
“You now have the EFT unit linked to a bank account that I set up last year?”
“Yes.”
“How much work do you think we generated today? Any idea?”
“Did we?”
“I would expect that Hugh would be sending regular work here, if only as a cover for him to be on site in a soundproof room with people he wants to talk to. He is a multi-millionaire, possibly even a billionaire, so he’ll pay the thousand an hour without blinking, and he’ll pay on the day. The two from the ENO are very interested. If they do book, I expect that it would be the full week, if not longer. They put on several shows a year, working up to three years in advance. Doing a show here, with an orchestra, will test you to the full. It will mean that they can spend a week, in secret, make changes on the fly, and have an in-house supplied record of what they’ve achieved. When word gets out that there’s Gold and Platinum awards on the walls, there’ll be a queue of bands wanting to record. It’s early days, and the real work starts now. Up until now, you’ve been learning and settling in. Ask me in six months if you want less money.”
“If you’re happy, Willow. I thought that we needed to say it.”
“Look, the three of you were virtual unknowns in the recording game. You now have a Gold Record, and your picture will be in the local paper next week, no doubt with a story about the site. That, linked to my name, will have the phone ringing off the hook. This time next year, I expect that you’ll need to take down some of the old awards to make way for the new ones. Now, sometime in June, I’ll be booking a full day to record an operetta that we’ll be writing for the school. Viv, do you have anything in mind?”
“Well, to tell you the truth, Willow, I have a stack of songs that I had been writing before we went hard rock. I listened to your album and wondered if I was good enough to put a solo out. I’d need an accompanist. That Steinway looks good.”
“If they’re full of happiness, you could call it ‘Joie de Viv. If you want to work through them, we could make a booking now for a full day, my treat.”
“Could we?”
“Of course we could. Back yourself, Viv. I’ll play for you as an anonymous pianist. You can send me the basic songs by email, and I’ll add piano at home and email it back, as usual.”
“All right. Can we do next Saturday, Sarah. I’ll get my Mum to drive us and pick you up about nine, Willow.”
“Is there any particular sound, or atmosphere you want to get?”
“I liked the sound of yours. It was if you were in a smoky dive in Paris.”
“We can do smoky dives, can’t we, Sarah?”
“You bet we can. As well as singing next to rolling waves, under a flightpath, sitting on a toilet seat in a railway station. I’ve had a good read of the instruction manual. Do you want to sound as if you’re singing to penguins on an ice flow, I’m your girl. Look, you two. I feel so much better about what we’re doing. You’ve seemed to be overgenerous up to now, but I see that you have a total grasp at what the business is about.”
“All I ask is that you record Sydney reciting poetry in front of that blue screen and the add a background of your choice. We can look at it when we see you next Saturday. Are you, or the happy couple driving us home?”
Sydney snorted.
“That obvious, was it?”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 3
Willow looked at Josh and Sydney, both blushing.
“Just in little ways, Sydney. Most wouldn’t have seen it. I hope that you’re happy.”
“Happier than I’ve been in ages, Willow.”
“I’m glad. You’re a long way from home and it’s good to have friends around you, even better when one of them is special. Now, Josh. As the man of the house, I’m giving you a special project. I want you to line-paint three or four parking bays next to the studio entrance in a brighter colour and get them sign written ‘Studio only’. Then, I want you to look into getting a company car, or two, should you have to pick someone up and bring them here. You may have to go anywhere in the country. If the studio isn’t busy in a couple of years, we can always sell them. Go luxury, please, I might be calling to pick me up from Stoneleigh.”
“So, Jaguar or what?”
“Look at Audi, BMW and Mercedes as well. We want to create an image of success.”
“You really are pushing ahead with this, aren’t you?”
“Last year, I did a one-year certificate course in business and financial management. For one of my projects, I outlined my thoughts on the studio complex as a business. If the Arts people charge enough to cover rates and utilities, the studio, if used properly, will return between one and two million a year. For me, personally, it has already paid for itself in my first month of album sales, with more to come. I can afford to take a punt, but I don’t believe that it will be a losing bet.”
Sarah sighed.
“And there’s us thinking that we were sponging off you.”
“No thoughts of that, Sarah. See how the bookings start coming in and we can talk again later. If you start to get more work, let me or the accountant know, and we can add a driver/general hand to do the cleaning and toilets. If you have any relatives who need a job, don’t be shy of putting them on. If you move in together, Sydney, you can offer the flat as incentive if you need the extra person.”
With the air cleared, Sarah drove them back to Coventry. Vivienne asked Willow if she could stop at her home for a while, to listen to her songs. When they arrived, it wasn’t where she used to live, but a good-sized detached home in a better suburb. They thanked Sarah for the trip and went in, with Willow being hugged by Viv’s mother.
She was taken to a conservatory, where a baby grand sat, with a cover on.
“I’ve been getting lessons, but it’s been hard work.”
“Everything worthwhile is hard work, Viv. You already have the wind talent, it’s a new way of using your fingers that takes time. I often wonder if I should have learned guitar, but don’t have the time for it. I thought I might have more time on my hands, this year, but that flew out of the widow on the first day of school.”
“I’ll pop upstairs and get my notebooks. I have written out the basic tunes. Let’s get this uncovered and you can warm your fingers.”
While she was away, Willow sat and played an etude. Vivienne’s mother sat in a chair and listened.
“Do you have a favourite, Mrs. Armstrong?”
“I’m Juliette, Willow, and, yes, I do. It’s that one about friends. It says so much.”
Willow played the intro and sang along while Juliette sat with her eyes closed, and Vivienne stood by the door, papers in her hand. She had been on many stages with Willow, and had thought she had heard everything, but this was a slower version of the song that was full of affection and joy.
“That was written for Gina, wasn’t it?”
“It was, Viv. I miss her, terribly, as she was almost a constant companion, living in Stoneleigh, playing keyboard in the club, and alternating on the church organ. She is improving her life in Florence and will be a piano soloist in a few years. That’s her aim in life, and Summer Rose has helped her achieve that.”
“Hopefully, we can work this year and fill some of that gap.”
“I’ll like that. Now, where’s the music?”
For the next three hours, the two of them worked on the songs, with Willow making suggestions and Vivienne making changes of her own, now she was free to listen to them objectively. Juliette brought them tea and biscuits, and Vivienne’s sisters put their heads in for a look. When they finished, the music and lyrics sheets had edits. Vivienne said that she would write them out clearly for next weekend, and arranged transport to the studio, her mother keen to see the business end of the entertainment.
Vivienne’s father drove Willow home, talking as he drove, about how much better their life has been since his daughter had been added to the band. Willow told him that everyone had an improved life, and she sat, wondering about the others in the band. Nothing had been said about new houses, but she realised that it was quite likely that they had all moved up in the world.
That evening, she sent an email to Gina, to tell her of the first week of school, and the ongoing operetta project. She also sent an email to the man who was now managing the Arts Alliance bookings for the practise area, to remind him that the building now needed to be charged for, and to start using the invoice books and the EFTPOS unit that the accountant had sent, along with the rates for different customers. She also did some research.
On Sunday, they walked over to the warm church and listened to Jim on the organ. They had lunch in the club.
“When are you going to get a new car, Mum?”
“The old Ford is still working.”
“I know, but if you drive me anywhere, we can put it down as a company car, as part of WR Holdings. In two years’, you can give it to me and get another new one for yourself. You and Dad are directors, so you’re eligible.”
“Can the company afford it?”
“Mum, we could buy a car for every member of this club and still have some left over. I really should look at more properties.”
“I’ll talk to your father, and we’ll think about it.”
“Another thing is that without Gina, I don’t have to live in the village anymore. I had a look at some properties on-line. There’s a nice one about eight miles west of us. It’s on the market at just over two point six. We could still be involved here, but it would be a short drive, rather than a walk.”
“How big is it?”
“Five big bedrooms, four bathrooms, an annex over a three-car garage. It would need us to have a gardener, maybe a cleaning service.”
She was grinning. Wendy laughed.
“You’re having me on!”
“Not at all, Mum. Talk about it with Dad. We could go and have a look next Sunday; I expect that the agent would be happy to show us around. I’ll probably have enough coming in from my album to pay for it next month, without touching the nest-egg.”
“You’re serious?”
“I am. It’s behind gates, and on a large area. The annex could be somewhere that Gramma can come and live with us. I’ve got the feeling that Grandpop may not last long.”
“Who told you?”
“Nobody had to tell me, Mum. He didn’t seem good when they stayed here, and when we were recording in Cambridge, he looked ashen.”
“I was keeping it from you, with all you had on your plate. He was diagnosed with liver cancer last month and isn’t likely to see the summer.”
“All the more reason for us to have a haven. I know that you enjoy your work. Perhaps you could set up an office and work from home, going in a couple of times a week. Looking after your mother is likely to take up a lot of time. For me, it just means that Sebastian has to go somewhere else to pick me up.”
“What about the organ playing?”
“I can’t see me being needed any longer. Jim’s holding down the seat and has said that he’ll work with the choir. He doesn’t have any band to play in, so’s happy with the little bit of extra interest while he studies for his higher certificate. He has enough in the bank to be set up.”
That evening, Willow plugged her laptop into the TV and showed them the property.
“It certainly is lovely, daughter, but why now?”
“I’m breaking out on my own, I have made enough off a single album to pay for it, it’s just a short drive from here, it has an annex for Gramma, it has three garages, it has four bathrooms, it’s a suitable residence for the next conservative Member of Parliament, and a descendant of the Third Baroness Leigh, once removed. Neither of you would have to give up work, straight away. Let’s face it, Dad, you’ve met two of your company’s bigger suppliers socially, on chatting terms with a Baron and a Bishop, have a pad in London if you need to be in the House, it’s almost a no-brainer. If you sell this place, you could put some of your own money in to fund a campaign. We could buy it with funds from WR Holdings, of which you’re both directors.”
“See if we can have a look next Sunday, as you’re out on Saturday. We’ll talk about it after we see it. If it’s a no, then we just stay here.”
“Got it, Dad.”
On Monday, school was close to normal, with both Vivienne and Nancy now sitting with her.
“Not with Herb, Nancy?”
“Not any longer. Both of our guys are now ex-lovers. They seem to spend a lot of the weekends in Birmingham or Manchester, I’ve smelt odd perfumes on him. What with them going on about being a different band, I’m almost ashamed to be with them, because of the lack of loyalty to the rest of us. I blame all the fan frenzy in Australia that went to their heads.”
“What about the factory you both bought?”
“He bought my half from me and has put it back on the market.”
“Has Viv told you about our school project?”
“Yes. I was wondering if I could get a small part in it.”
“If I act as the director/producer, how would one of you like to play Tatiana, and the other can play the scheming ex-girlfriend?”
“Don’t you want to be on stage?”
“I’m a musician, not an actor, and my skills seem to be more in organising. I’ll add my bit to the words and music, but I’m afraid that I’d look like a ham if I’m acting. You would have to re-arrange your Friday afternoon lessons.”
That evening, Willow emailed the property agent, asking if it was possible for a buyer to look at the property on Sunday afternoon. She had an email in from Gina, telling her about the hunky, but married, tutor that she went to, and the extra studies she was taking in Italian. There was also an email from Wilhelm, saying that he would like to step down as the property manager. Willow had wondered why he hadn’t been on site on Saturday.
She had a think and went downstairs to talk to her parents.
“I’ve had an email from Wilhelm. He wants to stop being our property manager. I think the problem with Jacob, and the upheaval with the band may have brought this on. Herb has paid Nancy for her half of the site in Coventry, which just leaves the Small Heath site and the shopping centre. I don’t think that Wilhelm is up to the shopping centre management.”
“What do you want to do?”
“I’d like to make an offer on the Coventry site, through our accountant. I’d also like to email the rest of the band with an offer for Small Heath and suggest we confirm the current management company to oversee the shopping centre.”
“What do you get out of that?”
“Mainly the knowledge that I haven’t let the tenants down. They’re still positive parts of a portfolio. It would mean that I could talk to all of them, face to face.”
“That isn’t very businesslike.”
“It’s the way I like to do business, Dad.”
“All right. You look into what you want. You wouldn’t consider it if you didn’t have the money. What’s the bottom line in the account at the moment?”
“Around sixteen and a half.”
“Even if you pay over the odds, it’s not going to break you.”
“No, Dad. Thank you, Dad.”
She went back to her computer to write her emails, using Word to get them sounding right. The reply to Wilhelm thanked him for all his work and help and asked him to take all the paperwork to the accountant in Leicester, with a resignation letter, passing the responsibility to him. That went with all of the syndicate and the accountant cc’d as recipients.
She sent one to her team, telling them of the situation, and asking Sarah to take on the job as site manager, with a raise in salary. Wilhelm had a people mover that he should leave for her use.
She sent one to her accountant, asking him to look into the likely sale of the Coventry property and to put in an anonymous offer on her behalf, should the price be reasonable.
She then sent an email to all the other syndicate members, offering to buy the Small Heath property from them for a straight out five million, now that Wilhelm wasn’t handling it any longer. She pointed out that this would be by direct payments to each member, seeing that the syndicate was currently involved with the shopping centre, and any money in that account was slated for the improvements.
On Tuesday, at lunch, Herb approached her and told her that her offer was acceptable, as he and the others didn’t want the responsibility any longer. That was four of the band ticked off. She asked him to tell the guys to reply to her email, with their accountants given the news. Vivienne and Nancy hadn’t mentioned it, but Nancy spoke up after Herb had left.
“What’s this about, Willow?”
“I can see these guys losing interest, and not bothering to keep in touch with the tenants. After Wilhelm asking to leave, I thought that I had enough behind me to take it over. With them agreeing, it just leaves you two, the other two guys, and Gina.”
“If we talk to Gina and see what she wants to do, we may be able to end up with the four of us owning the site. We’ll have to wait for Edward and Bryan to answer. They’re more level-headed. It could be that we have one-sixth, if you didn’t mind.”
“My thoughts are with the tenants. Both companies are on the cusp of greater things. Those boys have no idea of business. Would you both be on board?”
They both nodded and gave her a hug. Vivienne went off to talk to Edward and Bryan, coming back a few minutes later.
“They both say that they don’t want to sell out. If Gina is in, we can put in our shares and pay the other four out, the income between six is better than between ten.”
“Sounds good to me, girls. Tell me, Nancy, when Herb paid you for your half of Coventry, did he pay the full quarter of a million?”
“He did. He thought that he could get five-fifty for it.”
“Look, if Gina is happy to stay in, we can create a new syndicate of six. I’ll pay the boys the half a million each, and then we can sort it out afterwards with us as the shareholders. That would mean each of you putting in three hundred and thirty thousand to me and we’ll change the ownership.”
“What about the shopping centre?”
“That’s too big to mess with. We’ll have a management team in place, so we can sit back. The money’s there for the improvements. If the others want out, they can try and sell each individual share. I don’t feel a personal link with that one. It’s just business.”
Tuesday evening, she had an email from Sarah, saying that Wilhelm had left the people mover in the shed, and had given her the keys and paperwork. He had been driven away by an older lady. Willow replied that she should get it professionally sign written with the studio name and contact details, to become a travelling billboard, and for her to use it as her own after letting the authorities know about the change of garaging.
She had another from Gina, telling her that she wanted to remain as a member of the syndicate. Willow replied that the shopping centre syndicate will remain untouched, but that the four guys wanted out of Small Heath, with all the girls, Bryan and Edward, staying in. She advised that she was going to pay the others out and would ask for three hundred and thirty-three thousand later.
There was also a statement from Peter. The December sales had picked up and her share of the band was five hundred and eighty thousand, with her payment for the solo album, as she expected from getting the Gold Record, had given her another two point four. She got him to transfer two and a half million to WR Holdings. She also transferred half a million to her personal account, which took it to three quarters of a million, not having spent big amounts on herself.
On Wednesday, at lunch, she went to talk to Garry.
“How are you, Garry?”
“Better for having you speak to me.”
“How is your lesson schedule for Friday afternoons?”
“Gym and some free study, why?”
“We have to compose and present a full show with new composition by the end of next term for Music Studies. The class isn’t big, and they decided to turn the album ‘The Magic Laptop’ into an operetta. On the album, the internet baron doesn’t appear in person, only referred to. We’re looking at having him as a character in the stage presentation.”
“He was a sort of Musk clone, wasn’t he. I did listen to the album a couple of times, but you guys were moving in an odd direction.”
“That’s right. We were wondering if you would like to play that part. Vivienne and Nancy will be playing Tatiana and her ex-lesbian lover. The only other main characters are the other four questers.”
“Could I do it in black, big boots and a black cap, looking and acting mad?”
“We would be upset if you didn’t.”
“I’ll double check and let you know. I should be able to join you in the last hour and a half.”
“That will be wonderful, Garry. I know that you have a gravelly voice which would be perfect for the part.”
“You’re not considering Herb and his friends?”
“They’re not the flavour of the month, Garry. More interested in a good time and loose women. The rest of us have given up on the band touring again, or even having another album.”
“That’s sad. Still, we did have fun for a while, and that’s the main thing.”
On Thursday, in the orchestra session, they started on more violin-based music, with ‘Serenade for Strings’. When Willow turned on her laptop, that evening, there was an email from Sarah. It had a forwarded email from Derek at the ENO, booking the studio for the last full week of every month, except December, for a full forty hours at five hundred an hour. They would be staying in a hotel for the week, and he expected to have around ten singers and an orchestra of fifteen for each booking, with that open to change.
Sarah also reported that Hugh Kelly had booked a full Saturday, the week after Vivienne’s session. He had asked for confirmation of the band. Willow sent her back a reply and said that she would talk to the Vines tomorrow, at school, to get them to contact Sarah.
She went down to tell her parents about the ENO bookings, seeing that it, alone, would bring in twenty percent of her projected turnover for the year. She was making a hot chocolate for them when her mobile buzzed. She saw that it was Jill.
“Good evening, Jill. What can I do for you?”
“Good evening, Willow. Can you talk?”
“I’m just making some hot chocolate for us. What do you want to talk about?”
“Firstly, Summer Rose, now that Gina has left the country.”
“You can add Herb, Roy, Victor and Brent to the leavers. Like many lads of their age, they’re testing out their pick-up lines in big city nightspots. They have been talking about forming a new four-piece band, but not directly to me. We’re in the process of reorganising our property syndicate, so, in a nutshell, I think that Summer Rose, as it was, is no more. I’m laying down an album with Vivienne this Saturday, all her songs with me on the piano.”
“That means that we can’t organise a tour, then. What about something with you solo, and Vivienne if we think the album is commercial enough.”
“It’s commercial. We ran through it last Saturday and it sounds good. It will be her first time solo, so I’ll help her send the album to you. It should be with you before the end of next week.”
“That will be good. Then we can organise something. It will be much easier to fly you around without the others. Now, how is the studio at the moment?”
“We have made the changes I wanted, now I’m the sole owner. We have a licence from the council to operate as a commercial site. The big shed now has a good floor and is soundproofed. That side is managed by the local Arts Alliance with a mixture of school usage, which is free, and drama and dance groups, which are charged by the hour. The studio now has a team of three, all full-time employees, with Sarah in charge. They have spent two months practising with the equipment and I have full confidence in them. I was advised, just tonight, that we have a regular full week booked at the end of each month except December.”
“That’s fantastic. Do I talk to you or Sarah about booking time. What would the charge be for our stars?”
“If you’re recording to issue the product, it will be a thousand an hour, with a minimum of five hours. You already know what quality we can produce, and our visuals are as good as Frank and Dave. I’ve added a baby grand, and also a big blue screen so we can film with it. We’re doing an advert in a week. With the team being there full-time, they’ve studied the manuals and can do more than before.”
“That sounds excellent. We’re having a meeting over the weekend, to plan things for the year. I might get you to come to town for a meeting in February, to talk about what you can help with. You would be happy touring smaller venues, won’t you? Your solo album is going strong, and I know you can fill an evening with your earlier albums.”
“That would be nice. Without the huge stages, I could play more nights if it’s a more relaxed show. As a matter of interest, we don’t have a big orchestral event for this year, and my main project with the school is to turn the ‘Magic Laptop’ album into a full-length operetta by the end of June.”
“If you record it in the studio, I’ll see about getting it on the market. With the extra time, you have to have the internet baron in person.”
“Already spoken to Garry, the bass player of the old G-Force. The way he visualises the character will make your nickname for the album more relevant.”
“Look, Willow. It’s been good talking to you and catching up. You’ve given me enough to work on and I’m feeling positive about what we may do this year. Enjoy your chocolate. Goodnight.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 4
Willow finished making the drinks, put the three mugs on a tray with some biscuits and took them through to the sitting room, where her parents were watching the late-night news bulletin. She had a text on her phone as she was carrying it in, so sat and read it. It was from the estate agent, telling her that they could inspect the property at two-thirty on Sunday afternoon. She replied with a confirmation.
“What was the call, love?”
“Jill. Sounding me out about what’s been going on. She wants me in London for a meeting, sometime over the next few weeks. She wonders if she can get enough interest for me to do a solo tour at smaller places. My album seems to be selling well. The text was the estate agent letting us know we can see the house on Sunday afternoon.”
She had her drink and went off to bed, laying in the dark with her furry friends and thinking hard about the operetta.
Next morning, Sebastian drove her in. She asked him what sort of car she should be getting for the studio to ferry clients around.
“Something classy, reliable, and easy to maintain. You’ll need to get it from a dealer close to the studio, in case you need something done. Good air conditioning, plenty of comfort and room, and an in-car phone. I think, from my travels, that the nearest ones to the studio are an Audi and a BMW showroom. The Mercedes and Lexus showrooms are in the city area, a little way north.”
“That’s an awful lot of information off the top of your head.”
“We drive a lot of different vehicles in this job. The only reason you’re not in something flash, right now, is because it would attract attention.”
“On Sunday, I want to make a statement. Would it be possible for you to pick me and my parents up, about two?”
“How much of a statement?”
“We’re going to look at a big house, and I want it to look like my father is the buyer. He is being groomed to run for election next time, and it’s a house that would be suitable for an MP to live in. If possible, I would also like you to look at the security aspect of it.”
“Happy to be of help, Willow. We have a nice BMW Seven Series that would do. I can get it from work and take my wife out in it. She does like it when I have a flash car over the weekend. Of course, it will cost, and I’ll take you to school in it on Monday.”
“Add it to my account, Sebastian. The place we’re looking at is over two and a half million.”
That lunchtime, Garry came and sat with them at the table.
“I spoke to the gym teacher, and they’ve given me permission to spend the PE period with you on Fridays, as long as I do other training at another time. Have you any more information?’
“Not yet, Garry. We will discuss it today, and probably the next couple of weeks, and that should give us a good idea of the final plot, the cast, and the songs we need. They may not end up as the songs off the album, seeing that we’re going to make some fundamental changes.”
“Fair enough. Are you happy with that, Vivienne?”
“Oh, yes, Garry. Just adding your character as a real person will change things. I’ve wondered if I over-populated the album, and we should drop back from five questees to four, or even three. It would allow us to explore the characters more, without adding a lot of different scenes.”
They went into the classroom, where Mister Jamieson was waiting for them.
“Are you joining us, Garry?”
“I am, sir. I have a pass from PE so that I can help out. A lot of teachers are very keen to see what we produce.”
“I know. The common room is alive with conjecture. Sit yourself down and don’t be afraid to speak up. Are we getting any more, Willow?”
“Not at the moment, sir. We’ll need to get some extra musicians but will have to have written the score before that happens.”
“What about actors?”
“Vivienne floated an idea, at lunch, about dropping a couple of characters off. If we did that, the cast would consist of just six; two girls and four boys. We have the two girls and one boy already, we just need two who fail, and the one who wins. The winner would have to be something of a talented comedian, like the one in the ‘Magic Flute’.”
“That’s pushing the show towards a farce.”
“Not that far, sir. I was thinking of more like school-age romp. The father is going to be played by Garry, as a madman. A rich madman, maybe, but he’ll be playing a bit like Gilbert and Sullivan. The daughter could be a vacuous late teen, only interested in clothes and fun. The two losing men could be made up as a bit older, act as if they both are certain that they would win, with the daughter certain to help them. The other female is, as in the album, an old flame, who believes that she has the inside track.”
“What about the winner?”
“I see him as shy, but talented. Everyone can remember that song in the ‘Flute’ about Papageno. I’m think that the winner should stammer, with almost everything he says as a double entendre, like playground humour. On the album, he gains a big following, and used magic as his claim to fame. He turns the following into money by getting real work. We could allude to his magic, with the back-screen projection of ‘him’ doing tricks.”
“Example, please.”
“OK. Bum, bum, bum, bum, bumbling. Dic, dic, dic, dic, dictionary. He could be called cu, cu, cu, cu, Cuthbert.”
There was giggling in the classroom and Mister Jamieson smiled.
“That does sound like a plan. What do others think?”
There was a bit of discussion, but nobody could come up with an alternative. Mister Jamieson went to the board and took his marker.
“All right. Time for some structure.”
He wrote ‘Act One’ on the board and looked at Willow.
“Curtain opens with daughter on a sofa, buffing her nails. She sings about how hard her life is and how much of a tyrant her father is. She declares that once she comes of age, she’s out of there. Father comes into room and declares that he’s put a plan into place to have her married off. He outlines his plan to have men to take up a quest to win her hand. They argue, in song, and she calls him a beast. He tells her that none of the contestants will be left empty handed, as he would give all of them a car – batteries not included.”
He wrote all of it down as the class were laughing.
“Anything else?”
“Perhaps he could introduce the competitors so we can get that out of the way.”
“All right, Act two.”
“The daughter is in the park. We could film an actual park and reverse project it onto the back screen. She meets all four of the competitors, who are waiting for her. We could sort out the order later. Then the intermission.”
“Act three?”
“The two men crash and burn; the ex-friend finds that previous knowledge does not lead to winning.”
“Act four?”
“Clown is shown building his fan base, and then gets booked for a tour. He presents that to the father, who has to declare that he won. Clown and daughter do a duet, like the Papageno one, then the full cast come on to sing a rousing finale, declaring that true love wins out, and manipulation never works.”
“What do you think, Vivienne?”
“Works for me. Close to the album but neater. I can see the final scene in my mind, but not hear it yet.”
“That’s what the next few weeks are meant to tease out. You have a basis, now. It may not be the final show, but I could see it as it was explained. Well done, Madam Director!”
There were some smiles and hi-fives.
“Anyone have anything else that they want to submit. No? Then you can spend the rest of the session discussing the song content and deciding on the names. They should be a parody, but not so close as to cause offence.”
He sat back and listened to them. Vivienne wanted the main characters to have three syllable names to make it easier to write the songs. Garry insisted that the father should be called Ego, and they could get a supply of caps that read, ‘President Ego’, or ‘Ego has always been Great’. The daughter became Tanita, the clown was a short discussion, ending up as Cu, Cu, Cu, Cuthbert, the Con, Con, Con, Conjurer.
When they walked out of the class, laughing and coming up with off-the-wall suggestions, he decided that the Head didn’t need to know what more was coming her way until they had put more meat on it. They were already about a month ahead of every other class that had been given this task.
Vivienne told Willow that she would see her in the morning and went to her ride home. Willow couldn’t help it; she was still looking around to see if Gina was there but shook her head and went to join Sebastian in a deep red BMW.
At home, she put the school uniform in for the laundry, had a shower and redressed casually. She got one of the bags that she usually sent CDs to Jill in. She addressed it to Jill at the label and put it in her bag for the next day. She started preparing dinner, allowing herself to relax as she sliced and diced.
She told her parents about the change in transport for Sunday afternoon. After dinner and tidying up, she went to her room to start thinking about songs for the operetta. She made notes and then got ready for bed.
In the morning, she had one of her better dresses on, in case she was included in the vision during the recording, and was waiting, with her bag, when Juliette arrived with Vivienne and one of her sisters in the car. Willow got in the back with Vivienne, and they went to Leicester in a light drizzle. When they arrived, she directed Juliette to drive into the long shed so they could stay dry. The door to the studio was open, so they went in to find Josh dusting the pictures and awards.
In the control room, Sarah was wiping the mixing board. Everything was ready, so Willow and Vivienne made ready in the studio. Sarah had erected the blue screen behind the piano, which was set so the full keyboard was visible to the nearest camera. There were also three cameras on tripods, plugged into jack plugs in the floor. Willow sat at the piano and Vivienne stood in front of a new microphone, with a screen that you would sing into. Josh and Sydney adjusted the cameras so that the two would be fully visible.
When they had played a sound check, the studio was left to them. To show a natural look, they didn’t use buds, so had Sarah’s voice from the speakers. When they heard her tell them it was good to go, they were in their places and Willow played the intro to the first song that they had chosen.
They worked through all the songs in the order that they had practised and ended with Willow standing and the two of them bowing to an imaginary audience, breaking into giggles when Sarah told them that it was all good.
After a trip to the toilets, they sat in the rest area with drinks and talking to Juliette. The sister had stayed in the control room to watch what was happening. She came out and sat with them as a big-screen TV came on. It was attached to the mezzanine rails, with a speaker either side.
What appeared on screen took Willow’s breath away. The two of them were shown, waiting to start playing, and it looked as if they were on a stage in a nightclub, with curtains behind them. As the first song progressed, she looked for any ‘feathering’ of their outlines as the different camera views showed close-ups. Then, she realised that there was an authentic background sound of glass clinking and muted conversation. Viv had asked for it to sound like they were performing in a smoky dive, and that’s what it looked, and sounded like.
The vision faded after the last song and Sarah came into the room, a grin on her face.
“Did we hit the brief?”
Viv’s answer was to hug her, and then hug Willow.
“That is fantastic! I think that you’ve mastered blue screen work. What do you think, Willow?”
“I think that Sarah is a genius, along with the rest of the team. That was a masterclass in recording. Are you happy with that with the background noise, Viv?”
“I am over the moon with it. I said I wanted it to sound like a smoky dive and you can’t go past that. Do you think the label will issue it, just as a DVD?”
“I guarantee that they will. Keep the CD to play to yourself, but just send the DVD to Jill. I’ve got an addressed bag I usually use, so you can put it in a case, with the details, and the label will add the opening requirements and the credits at the end. If you send it by priority on Monday, I expect that it will be in the shops at the end of the month. What do you want to call it?”
“I took a liking to the ‘Joie de Viv’, but it should now be ‘Joie de Viv at Summer Love’. What did you think of it, Mum?”
“If I hadn’t seen you in there, with my own eyes, I would have sworn that it was recorded live, in a club. It’s absolutely beautiful. How much do we owe you, Willow?”
“You owe me nothing, Juliette. My studio, my gift to a friend. When you write the info sheet, make sure that you list Sarah as the producer and Sydney and Josh as the camera and post-production operators. That way, if there’s any awards, they’ll all get one. This new set-up is good, Sarah.”
“That’s all down to Josh. He’s been making that sort of difference all over the site. The Alliance ladies now have a screen in the office where they can keep an eye on what’s happening in the shed. You may not have noticed, but we have ten security cameras around the site, feeding into a computer up there on the mezzanine, with enough memory to save four days of vision. It can be monitored on our phones. After the talk last week, we’ve been spending some of your money. Josh wants to know if you want Audi or BMW, as they’re both pretty close to here.”
“I had a ride in a Seven Series BMW yesterday, and it was wonderful. If that’s what you get, ask them to email me with the invoice and I’ll buy them on my business account, which owns this site.”
Sydney put her head into the room.
“How many and what do you want?”
“I’ll have a dozen of the DVDs, as we just watched it, and a dozen CDs without the background noise, please.”
“Give us ten minutes.”
Willow said that there was something she wanted to talk to Sarah about and they went over to the office.
“I really appreciate your work in here, Sarah. You and the team are making real improvements that only being here can highlight. Now, if you create an invoice for today, at the correct rate, I’ll pay it into the account tonight. It was work for you and should add to the turnover. Are you all feeling better about things, knowing that you have future bookings?”
“We are. We’re starting to see what your vision was, and how we can make it happen. The article was in the paper this week, with a good write-up, and I’ve quoted about fifty hours of studio time to various bands since then. I think that our trouble was that we didn’t believe in ourselves until you showed us how much you believed in us. I, for one, feel a lot surer of myself.”
She turned her computer on and created the invoice, in Willow’s name as for recording a DVD for Vivienne Armstrong. Then she gave it to Willow, who checked that it had the banking details on, with an invoice number as reference. Willow put it in her bag.
“No mention of this to Viv. I’m certain she’ll be back in a few months for her follow-up album. Now, when we go back, I’ll tell the others that I’m being driven home after some business talk. I want you to show me how you managed to find the extra sounds so I can talk about them to likely customers later. I also want to have a quick look at what sort of backgrounds you can put on the blue screen. Also, if Josh is able, I’d like us to talk turkey to the car dealer before I go home. Lastly, I would like three copies of that DVD for myself to send to absent friends.”
“All doable, Willow. It’s odd, but I got the best feeling today, seeing the look on Vivienne’s face. It’s not just recording somebody; it’s allowing them to release their talent. We’re just the connection between dreams and reality. I know that she’s been on stage many times, but seeing her shine as a solo singer was a joy.”
After hugs and cheek kisses, the three Armstrong’s left the site. Sarah showed Willow the buttons that had never been explored with Xavier, which linked to a computer that could search the internet for sound, especially libraries of sound effects and background noises, and adding them to one of the sliders. Sydney showed Willow a similar set of controls which linked to more pictures than could be comprehended.
“I sat here for a day, scrolling through the offerings, and writing a list of the ones I may need to use. Given a half an hour, I can find something to suit whatever the customer wants. Not only still pictures, but film as well. You wouldn’t have noticed, but the curtains behind you were moving in a breeze. We could put a treadmill down and film someone from the knees up, looking like they’re strolling along a beach, with waves beside them, as they sing. Or, if they’re doing an advert, talking to the camera.”
“I’ve seen adverts like that. All they make me want to do is leave the room for a pee.”
Willow waited while the three DVDs were produced, and the team locked up. Josh drove them to the restaurant for lunch. After that, they stopped at the BMW dealer and looked at cars. Once the manager had been assured that Willow was who she said she was, it all went smoothly. They chose two Series Five Long-wheel-base sedans as the easiest to use, and Willow used her company card to place a deposit on them, with the remainder to be paid by bank transfer on delivery. They left Josh’s car at the dealership, and he drove her home in a loan car, with the other two in the back.
The team had a drink at her home, and then they all went to the Saturday evening at the club, a very new experience for them. Willow pulled out the PA and a keyboard, and, after the meal, sang for a couple of hours. She sang some of the old, some of her new, and even some of Vivienne’s songs. By the time the team drove away, they had been welcomed by the village and knew that there was a safe place for them. Wendy had watched her daughter sing and knew that she was back to normal.
On Sunday, Willow paid for the recording session, and they went over to the church to listen to Jim playing. Willow thought that he was really becoming a first-class church organist. After lunch in the club, they went home to wait for Sebastian to pick them up.
When they went out to get in the car, Wendy declared that it was a beautiful ride, but over the top. Ashley was ushered into the front, with the girls in the spacious rear seat. Willow explained that it was to create an image of a future MP and his family, and that Sebastian will give them a security assessment when they head back home. She told him the address, which he put into the GPS, and they were off.
It wasn’t that far, as the crow flies, but needed a short run down the A46 to pick up the Birmingham Road outside Warwick and turning left in Chadwick End, making the driving distance just on twelve miles. It would be a straightforward ride for her father going to work.
When they arrived at the house, the agent was waiting for them and Willow could see the smile on his face as Sebastian pulled up, and then got out to open the back door for Wendy. Ashley got out and opened the other side for Willow to get out, closing the door with a rich-sounding thunk.
“Good afternoon, Mister and Mrs. Rose. Welcome to this delightful property.”
He waxed lyrical as Willow stood with Sebastian. The grounds were described, the friendly village gushed over, and then he led the way to the house. On the face of it, the façade was just a larger Georgian home, but it had been drastically renovated at the back. To Willow, it was great, as it had the extra bedrooms and bathrooms, meaning she could have one of each to herself. If her grandmother did come to live, she would be able to stay in the house.
Willow and Sebastian stayed by the car as her parents were shown the annex over the garages which the agent said could be used as a self-contained office. Sebastian leaned against the car.
“What do you think of the house, Willow?”
“I like it. Hopefully there’s an easier way to get to Coventry other than via Warwick, but it’s nice. What about the security?”
“Not a problem. You could install electric gates with a button in the cars and a control pad in the house with intercom to a speaker. Security cameras are a must but easy enough to install. What do you think of the car?”
“It’s great, although a bit large for the studio use.”
“The Five LWB is smaller but no less luxurious.”
“I know, the dealer in Leicester loaned us one yesterday, after we bought two of them.”
He looked hard at her and then started laughing.
“You made up your mind after the ride home on Friday?”
“Pretty much, although the dealer isn’t far from the studio. It was either that or Audi. We had just laid down an album for Viv, who was the flutist in the band. I played the piano to her singing, and the team produced the most magnificent DVD. I felt good so thought it was time.”
She pulled a copy out of her bag.
“Have a look, tonight, and give it back to me in the morning. I’m keen to get a second opinion.”
He took it and slid it into the door pocket.
“Will do. My wife was wondering about the others in the band after your solo album.”
“We’re in the process of dismantling the old band, and the future will tell what’s in store. I can see me, Viv, and Nancy doing something together, with Bryan and Edward, but the electric part are off doing their own thing. We’ve done the big stadium rock and made a lot of money. Now would be a good time to do something more adult. Good heavens, I’m sixteen this year, and it’s time I grew up!”
They were still laughing when the others emerged from the annex. The agent shook hands with Ashley and went back to his car, while her parents joined them.
“What a wonderful house, even better than the pictures. We told him that we would discuss it with our bank manager and let him know. You two look happy.”
“We were just talking about Willow growing up, Mrs. Rose. I’m almost scared to see that happen, considering what she’s like now.”
“Exactly, Sebastian. Have you any thoughts on the property?”
“Nothing bad, just extra security at the gate and monitored cameras. Nothing drastic or unsightly. How was the annex?”
“Really good. Enough rooms for us to have separate offices, with a kitchen and bathroom. The internet is, we were told, a very high-speed connection. The vendor will leave the place with all the furnishings, which will save us the cost of removals. If we pull our own personal things from Stoneleigh, we could be moved in inside a week. What’s your thoughts, Willow.”
“I like it. It would be a lovely environment to write songs in. My only concern is the trip to Coventry and to Dad’s work, for as long as he goes there. There has to be an election in the next two years, and he may need to take leave to campaign, unless he retires now and starts getting out and about early.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 5
Sebastian smiled.
“I live between here and Coventry, in Balsall. You can continue up the Birmingham Road to Knowle, and then through Temple Balsall to Balsall and into Coventry. Getting to Aston Martin just means getting down to where we started on the Birmingham Road and getting on the M40 to Gayden. That’s probably less than twenty miles from here.”
“Thank you for that, Sebastian. It’s not that much further than my trips now. Shall we head for home, or is there anything else we can do?”
“I know a bit about this area. Lapworth is basically a dormitory suburb, with the railway station. It’s about two hours to get to London, but the only one in the morning is about half past six. The closest pub is on the Old Warwick Road.”
“That sounds good. Take us there and we’ll stop for a drink and look at this brochure the agent gave me.”
They got into the car and were driven to Station Lane and then south, past a lot of houses, the railway station, more houses and the turned left on the Old Warwick Road. They crossed a waterway and Sebastian turned into the car park of the ‘Navigation Inn’. When they went inside, they were in an old building where the black beams on the outside wall were real. They ordered drinks and went to sit in the snug. Sebastian imparted more information.
“The water that we passed over is the Grand Canal. It runs between London and Birmingham. It’s an attractive trip with a narrowboat, and a lot of people live in them full time. There are over a hundred locks on the journey, so getting off and managing the gates would keep you fit. We did cross the canal on Rising Lane, just before we got to the house.”
Ashley was thinking hard.
“Darling. If I do run in the election, would it change us?”
“No more than having a pop star for a daughter, love. If you stay at work for a year, then we can see what happens then. You do need to talk to Malcolm and his friends, to find out how serious they are, and if living here would make any difference. Willow was right when she said that this house would suit us better if you did stand. It has a certain elegance, combined with a lot of modern improvements. If Willow stays at school to the end of fifth year, she’ll only be there until summer, next year. With that course she took, she can do a degree course without needing to go for her ‘A’ levels. She can live in London for that. We could live there if you’re in the House.”
“We’ll have to think about it a bit more. I just feel so bad about having my teenage daughter buy a house for us. It seems so odd.”
“Why odd, Dad. I’ve been lucky in that I was able to make music and make money. You bought the house at Stoneleigh as a base for our life at the time. If we’re moving on, then we need a base for the future. I’ve got the studio ticking over, with a good team in place, and the music seems to be at a crossroads. Without Gina, I’m no further away from the other band members than where we live now. Without Jacob to pick up, I’m Sebastian’s only passenger, so nothing is affected there. With those two rooms in the annex, you could set up a state-of-the-art office for each of you, with the latest computers and connections. I say, talk to Malcolm tonight, talk to both your employers tomorrow, and we can have a family conference in the week. You never know, it could be an answer that pleases everyone.”
“All right. Thank you for your help today, Sebastian. Can we get home from here?”
“This road meets the Birmingham Road, not far from the Warwick intersection.”
They finished their drinks and were driven home. When Willow got out, she told Sebastian that she would see him in the morning. In the house, the family relaxed. Later on, they walked to the club. Ashley asked Malcolm if they could have a talk, coming back to their table with the news that Rising Lane was still inside the electoral boundary which included Stoneleigh. The electorate office was in Stratford upon Avon, with the sitting member retiring at the next election. He had been told that if he was willing to stand, there would be a meeting in that office on the last Saturday of the month. The party was expecting that the current government may not last the full term, so getting a replacement candidate was paramount.
“If we move, and sell the place here, I could fund my run. It would be different, seeing that I’ve always worked for a boss.”
“There’ll be no difference, Dad. You would be working for the cabinet, or the shadow cabinet, unless you get to be PM, and then you’ll be working for the whole country.”
“That’s highly unlikely!”
“Your teenage daughter being in the charts for close to two years was unlikely, Dad. Becoming PM is merely an aspiration. You’re already on the rungs, ever since you graduated from Cambridge. Remember what I told you before, you have friends in high places already.”
When they got home, Willow put one DVD in a parcel to Gina, and addressed another parcel to her grandmother, asking Wendy if there was anything she wanted to add before they were sealed. Then she took a copy into the sitting room.
“This is what was recorded yesterday. It may not look it, but it was all done inside the studio, using a lot of tricks that Xavier hadn’t found. The songs are all Vivienne’s, and I hope that it will be in the post to Jill tomorrow.”
They got comfortable and she started the DVD. When the set finished, Wendy gave her a hug.
“That was amazing, love, that team are well worth it. Do you think the same as I do?”
“Yes Mum, Viv will be visiting the studio in a month or two to present an award to each member of the team, as long as the label promotes her properly.”
“That will be more advertising for the studio, which could mean more work.”
“It could do. That reminds me, I need to email Sarah. I’ll go to bed, so I’ll be ready for school in the morning. Goodnight.”
She put the DVD in the parcel and went up to her room to turn on her laptop. She emailed Sarah, asking her if she could source a dozen free-standing boards, six feet wide, by ten feet high, and get them painted blue on one side, the same as the blue screen. She explained that the ENO might find them handy when setting up their performance practise, and that the Blue Coat would also use them when they came in to record their operetta, as they would serve as stage wings.
When she was in bed, she thought about her two laptops. Over the next week, she would set up the silver one as her business machine, with all the property and financial details, now that the studio was getting serious. She would start from the first of the month and enter up all the movements on the bank account.
In the morning, Sebastian gave her back the DVD.
“That was unbelievable, Willow. When it’s on the market, it will be added to my collection. Enjoy the ride, we’ll be back to the normal car when I take you home.”
School was normal, except for lunch when Vivienne gave her a big hug, followed by Nancy, who had seen the DVD. Willow told them that she had seen how the vision and the background sounds had been generated, and how big the libraries of both were.
On Wednesday evening, she had a phone call from Jill.
“Willow, I have just watched you and Vivienne with a fantastic show, where did you go for that?”
“That was all in the studio, Jill. I was shown how many variations of sound and vision can be added to the session. It took Saturday morning in front of the blue screen.”
“So, if we send you a band, you can put them almost anywhere without us needing to send them out on location?”
“Yes, we can. There are literally thousands of views and sounds. You want to have them look like they’re on a beach, with vision and sound, we can do it. You want to have them looking like they’re in a warzone, it’s all there.”
“All right. When you come to see us, we’ll have a schedule for you, with names and contact details, and the dates we want them in the studio. You can give us a figure and we’ll give you a cheque. Middle of the year, we have another meeting for the second half.”
“That will be good. Just remember that we’re booked for the last full week of every month.”
“Got it. Can you get down on the last Saturday of the month?”
“Can do. I’ll get my mother to drive me down and we’ll stay at the apartment.”
On Thursday, they did some more orchestral pieces. Without a big performance to aspire to, Willow had the feeling that the players were just winging it. On Friday, they expanded on the first act, with the bones of the first song or two added. On Saturday, Willow sat at her desk with the silver laptop, creating a spreadsheet of income and expenditure for the studio and big shed. The first column was all the numbers up to the first of January, and then she had fifty-two columns for the current year. The total in the first column was a gigantic minus.
On Sunday morning, instead of church, the family had a meeting. They discussed the pros and cons of moving, with the main pros being more room. The biggest con was the distance to the club, but it was pointed out that Willow wasn’t needed there every week, now that it was getting regular patronage. Malcom had told Ashley that having a club member as the local MP would be far better for the village, even if they had moved. Having somewhere that her mother could live was a big plus for Wendy.
Both her parents had spoken to their employers. Wendy’s was happy to have her working from home, as everything she was doing was computer work, so could be completed over an internet connection, with any hard copy sent to her by courier. Ashley’s was less happy about the idea but was reasonable about him taking leave without pay to campaign, once the election had been called. Any other electorate work would have to be carried out on weekends before that. When he didn’t win, they said that he could go back to full-time. Most of his managers thought that a snowball had a better chance of surviving in hell if the current government continued without a drastic crisis.
The next week, Ashley contacted the agent and made an offer. On Friday evening, Wendy and Willow went into London. On the Saturday, Ashley drove into Stratford for his meeting.
In London, Wendy and Willow had breakfast with the other two couples and then took a taxi to the label offices, where they were ushered into a boardroom. Clive and Jill were there, along with a few others who looked like other A&R men. Willow was told that her solo album was closing in on Platinum, and that Viv’s DVD would be on the market on the Monday. She was quizzed about the studio, it’s size, it’s mixing and visual systems, and her team, with the other A&R men needing to be assured. Jill was able to verify everything that was said.
As the meeting drew to a close, Willow was asked if she had another album on the way, but her own songs this time. She told them that she had been busy but would look at it. She was given a letter, on label letterhead, booking the studio for the second full week of every month, up to June, with a request that the same week for the rest of the year be reserved, including December. With it was a cheque for a hundred thousand pounds, for the five months, given to her by Clive.
“We’re block booking the studio and will be sending acts up on a Monday morning, to stay in the local hotel. Can you arrange pick-up?”
“We now have two cars and a people mover, so can do that, as long as we’re told how many, and where from.”
“Here’s a list of the first week. A couple are solo singers, and there’s a band. The band will want to record an album, with studio vision for a DVD, and will play for the singers, who will need blue screen. You met all of them in the Dorchester over the last couple of years. If everyone’s happy before the week is finished, they can do something else or come home.”
“If past experience is anything to go by, they’ll complete what they came for. The size and atmosphere in the studio seems to allow you to do things right.”
Back at the apartment, she opened her silver laptop and entered up the dates on a calendar. Then she rang Sarah, with the sound of a band in her ear when it was picked up.
“Summer Love Studio, Sydney speaking.”
“Sydney, it’s Willow. It sounds like that you have a band in.”
The sound faded.
“That’s better. Yes, we have the Vines in here again. They’ve been working on a tune for Hugh. We did his advert last week, with him and Mister Vines spending a lot of time in the rest room, and he’s back again with another company of his. They’re very thorough, and do several takes before they’re satisfied, but do go away with smiles. What can I do for you?”
“Can you get Sarah’s booking diary, I’ve just had a meeting with my label, and they’ve given me some dates.”
“Hold on a sec.”
“Right, got it. What do you have for us?”
“My label wants to block book the second full week of every month to June, with a reservation for the same week to the end of the year. They’ve given me a cheque, which I’ll get banked into the studio account next week.”
She named the band and the two singers for February.
“Wow! That will be great, I love those guys.”
“You’ll be notified of where they’re staying, and will need transport to and from the studio, so the vehicles will get a workout. Be prepared for a lot of blue screen work. Did you get the boards?”
“Yes. We’ve had a play with them and the screen, and they give us enough space to film a full band. It’s handy the floor is blue as well; the builders must have foreseen this sort of requirement. Josh has been experimenting with the floor looking like a beach, and the background looking like waves.”
“Have you had any more bookings?”
“Monday, we have the BMW dealer bringing a car in, with a local actor to wax lyrical. They have their own backing tape already, as well as their own camera operators. Should be fun.”
“It will be about time that you got that extra help with cleaning and driving.”
“We have talked about it. I haven’t moved in with Josh, but one of Sarah’s sisters is keen, and would stay with her if you OK the move.”
“I’m happy if you all want extra help. It looks like you’re going to have a busy life.”
“And an interesting one with those singers in the place. Thanks for ringing with the news, I’ll pass it on to Sarah when she has a minute.”
“How did the ENO work out?”
“Now, that was interesting to watch. We had an orchestra of twenty, with a dozen singers. They spent three days trying out different things with the opera, and then we set up the screens across the studio, with the orchestra in front of the window, to film it as if they were on stage, using the wooden screens as wings. They were very happy by lunch on Friday and took us out for a meal. We must have used up about fifty CDs and DVDs before they had a good take. We’ll have to order in a bulk supply if this is the way things are going to be.”
“You get whatever you need, Sydney. I’ll let you get back to things. See you.”
Willow and her mother went shopping in the afternoon, looking for some good, but useful, dresses and outfits, suitable for the family of a candidate. On Sunday, they took some of their purchases back to Stoneleigh. On the way, Wendy mused.
“When we first moved up from Bristol, our house was the best one that we’d ever lived in. It was modern and spacious after the one you grew up in. Now, we’re looking at possibly moving into a home that seems like a palace. I suppose that we’ll get used to it, but I’m sure that we’ll feel as if we’re guests.”
“I like the long driveway and the grounds, Mum. I want to make sure that there are places where I can sit, during the nice weather, and think about songs. Those first ones that took us from being a cover band to one with originals were written on the bench outside the church. Nothing was said about tour dates yesterday, but they do think that I’d be in smaller venues, which suits that type of song. If I get good sales, it’s ten times better for me than last year’s income, so I only need one or two albums a year to be very well off.”
“You’re very well off now.”
“I know, but there’s a whole life ahead of me. I spoke to you about wanting to manage my time for myself. That’s still on. There’s money there for Dad if he runs for election, and that would change things for both of us if he won. You would have a country retreat and the apartment in London. Next time I spend more than a few days there, I’ll move all my things into number four.”
“Do you still plan a degree course?”
“I think so. I learned so much from the certificate course, it’s helped me as I’ve set up the studio, and to be brave with purchases. The whole site owes me about three million on paper but has now started earning. The cheque I have to bank, and the bookings that are already certain, will return over four hundred thousand this year, with salaries costing about a hundred and eighty. The way that we’ve got adverts to make, with one day each at five thousand, we could turn over another hundred thousand just working a day a week.”
“So, you would have covered your outlay inside three to four years! That’s impressive.”
When they arrived home, Ashley smiled and told them that he was the new candidate for the Kenilworth constituency and had met with several of the movers and shakers of the electorate office, as well as the retiring member. He would need to be in London on the next weekend for a meeting at Party HQ. They decided that they would go down on Friday night and return on Sunday evening. Willow gave her father the cheque, asking him to bank it in the WR Holdings account on Monday, then went up and transferred the amount from the WR account to the Summer Love Studio account.
On Monday, when her father arrived home, he told her that the offer on Rising Lane had been accepted. She transferred the deposit amount from WR Holdings to his account, so he could set the purchase into motion. On Tuesday, there was another statement from Peter. Her share of the income from band sales had dropped to just on three hundred thousand, but her income from the solo album, after all costs, came in at one point seven, with the numbers showing that it would hit Platinum in this week.
The orchestra session had something new to try out. Dianne and Barbara had written a score for the overture of the operetta, using snippets of the bits of tunes that they had been talking about. Friday, they continued to work on expanding the songs. The meetings in the park had the suiters stating that the girl had to be theirs, and that she must have a say in things. Her song was short and sweet, saying ‘the quest is the quest, and the question has been asked by my father. He is the one you must woo.’ Their answering songs both included, ‘this wooing suddenly seems like work!’
When she was leaving the class, she put her phone off silent and saw she had a text from Sarah.
‘Nxt wks band short on bass. Canuhelp?’
She called to Garry, who was walking in front of her.
“Garry, would you like to earn some money next week? We have a band and two well-known singers in the studio next week, and I’ve just had a message that the band is a bass man down. It may be all week but may be just a few days to get them out of trouble. Can you adjust your classes to take a few days off?”
“Who are the artists?”
“The band is ‘Toxic Rocks’. The singers are Lee James and Cliff Jenson. Lee did four seasons as the Phantom in the West End, and Cliff won the TV talent show a couple of years ago. I’ve met them all at the end-of-year award parties. They’re all good guys.”
He looked hard at her.
“They want me to play with that band and those singers. They’ve been in the charts for years. It would be a privilege. I’ll speak to the Head before I leave, so she can get me the class notes for what I miss. This is a chance too good to lose out on.”
She got a business card out of her bag with the studio details and Sarah’s number as producer. She handed it to him.
“Go get them, Tiger.”
He hugged and kissed her with the other class members giggling. As he raced off to speak to the Head, Vivienne laughed.
“What on earth did you say to him to get a smacker like that. He’s either very happy or else he loves you.”
“Who knows what goes on in a boy’s head, Viv. I’ve just got a text from Sarah that the band that’s in the studio next week doesn’t have a bass player. Have you heard anything about your DVD? It should be on the market this week.”
“Mum said that she heard a track off it on Wednesday, so there is a little airplay.”
As soon as she got home, Willow made sure that her overnight bag was ready, with her silver laptop in its own bag, so that she could send and receive emails through the WRHoldings account. Her parents both arrived earlier than usual, and they were off south in a short time, enough to get comfortable and change. Willow had phoned the restaurant to book a table for three at seven thirty. They were in the apartment in good time, ate dinner, and retired to rest up for the next day. They had been told that the party organisers wanted to meet all the family to see for themselves what they had to work with.
They took a taxi to the party headquarters, behind Parliament, where they were ushered into an open-plan office, where a few secretaries were on the phones to electorate offices. There was a large, enclosed office where two men waited for them, shaking Ashley’s hand and welcoming him to the nerve centre of the party.
“Good morning, Mister Rose. I’m Cyril Chalmers, and this is Matthew Huntingdon. We co-ordinate the Midlands electorate campaigns. Not a happy job with the last result, I’m afraid. I expect that you’ve been told that your quest could be an uphill battle. The retiring member is quite popular,”
“I have been made aware that a snowball in hell would have an easier life. This is my wife, Wendy, and my daughter, Willow.”
“You’re Willow Rose, the singer?”
“Yes, sir. Is that a problem?”
“Never! It’s more of an asset, if you’re happy to be seen with your father during the campaign.”
“I would help my father in any way I can, as long as he’s happy with it. I do tend to organise things, given the chance.”
“If you can organise a national fifteen percent swing, we’ll erect a statue of you.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 6
Wendy and Willow were only slightly included in the discussions. Their new home was deemed to be substantial enough without being ostentatious, perfect for small gatherings and interviews. After an hour, they all walked the short distance to the Parliament.
“We’re not sitting, at the moment, but some will be here to catch up on ministry business. Only talk to a person who talks to you.”
They looked at the Commons, and a few of the offices.
“If elected, you will share one of these with a couple of others. How much work you will be given will depend on how well you do, and how many of us there are. We’re stretched at the moment, with even members that have had short careers here, so far, getting shadow positions.”
They had moved to the House of Lords chamber, just to have a look, when they heard a voice.
“Ashley, old friend, what on earth are you and the family doing here?”
“Hello, Chris. Some of the locals want me to stand at the next election.”
“A glutton for punishment, are you? How are you, Willow? We’ve been buying your albums as they get issued, that one with you playing piano for the other girl is beautiful. How’s Cyril been treating you?”
“We’ve been well looked after, Chris. They’ve been feeding us up to prepare us for the ritual disembowelling come election night. They haven’t offered us lunch yet, though.”
Cyril looked at Chris.
“Are these friends of yours, My Lord?”
“Actually, young Chalmers, Ashley is a descendant of the Third Baroness, once removed, so doesn’t qualify for the Upper House. Willow played the organ at my daughter’s wedding, and her band was the entertainment at the reception. That was a little while before she became a superstar. How about I host them in the Lord’s Dining room and send them back to you at the Party HQ?”
“If you want to, Sir. That would be most gracious of you.”
Cyril and Matthew exchanges glances and left the Roses with Chris.
“That put a burr in his butt! He’s probably been treating you like a lamb to the slaughter, thinking that here was another crazy person wanting to be on TV. I think that he will be different when you see him later. Come along, I’ve had plenty of free meals in the club, it’s about time I treated you to one.”
On the way, Willow walked beside Chris.
“I thought that Barons didn’t qualify to sit in the Lords?”
“They don’t, but I had a nice elevation to the peerage last year. It’s not one that can be passed on, so I’m enjoying it as much as I can.”
“Do we have to call you My Lord from now, or will Sir be sufficient.”
“For you and your family, Willow, I’m always Chris. Here we are, welcome to the best trough in town.”
They went into the dining room, where the Roses were signed in. The meal was very good, and the talk was about Willow’s Australian tour, and Cassandra’s new baby. Several other peers came to their table to see who he was entertaining, and Willow was finding it difficult to remember the famous people she met, all wanting to tell her how much they liked her music.
After the meal, he led them out of the dining room and hugged the girls, shook Ashley’s hand and wished him luck. An attendant was asked to lead his guests through the labyrinth to the closest exit to the party headquarters.
When they got back to the office, the two men were much more forthcoming about the chances of winning and acted as if the chances had just improved. Ashley was given a list of contact names and numbers of donors in the area. Willow looked through it and saw both Hugh and Sam on the list. She pointed them out to Cyril.
“Do these guys donate to others? The electorate doesn’t encompass the areas where their businesses are.”
“They donate to a range of candidates in the Midlands. Do you know them?”
“We do. I met Hugh some months ago, and Sam’s daughters go to the same school as me.”
“That, with knowing his Lordship, puts your father in a different league. We’ll try to push harder with his campaign, when it kicks off. It would be good if he cultivates as many on this list as he can, before the election is called. That would show that he’s serious.”
“We’ll talk to Hugh and Sam, to see how many of the others they know, and invite them to a housewarming.”
“Sounds good to me. Will you be leading his campaign office?”
“I doubt it, I’ll be into fifth year by then, or even at Uni if it goes longer.”
“It’s hard to realise that you’re still so young. It must take a lot of inner strength to stand on a stage in front of so many people.”
“Either that, or total stupidity, Sir.”
“Look, call me Cyril. My contact details are on that sheet. If there’s anything you want to know, just call me. It will be my pleasure to help.”
“Thank you, Cyril. My father doesn’t always appreciate how good he is at dealing with others. This will bring him out of himself. It will be an interesting couple of years, even more interesting if he’s elected.”
“It will be more interesting for all of us if we get back in. The country needs a better hand on the tiller. The oddballs that we had in the Conservative Party have all dropped away. That chap, Boris, was a real pain in the butt. We’re left with a core of truly committed members, who would love to welcome more into the party room.”
When they left the office, they walked to the riverside and waited for a ferry to take them up to Embankment and the tube back to the apartment. As they were waiting, the clock chimed the hour and Willow felt it through to her bones, even more meaningful if her father was able to be working here.
Before dinner in the restaurant, she moved all her things from her bedroom to the lower one next door, with Ashley carrying the organ down from upstairs. It didn’t take very long, and she slept in a new bed that night.
Nothing much had been said after the meeting, but the dam burst at breakfast with the other two couples, when Kevin asked why they were in town. That led to a long discussion on the chances, with Hazel volunteering to help with PR. Driving home, Wendy commented on how interesting it was that so many were willing to help. Ashley was almost embarrassed.
“It’s odd. All my life I’ve worked for wages, yet I’ve been working in the club, helping people and serving drinks as a volunteer.”
“Yes, Dad. Remember that you set up the free drinks after the church service. Why don’t you talk to Malcolm about providing a free lunch to the ones in the village who are doing it tough. I’ll donate the seed money, and you can have a donation box on the counter for future funding. That will give you an interesting profile when it comes to the election.”
“Would you do that, love?”
“Of course. If it works out, we may be able to tap those on the donor list to set it up in other places. That way, you may enter the race as a ‘man of the people, for the people’. I might even write a song around that, which you could use in the TV adverts. I still have the good cameras that we used filming the shows in the club. I could get Josh to film you in various places, talking to people. We could get you into the studio, giving your spiel in front of the blue screen, and add clips of you in the background.”
“You’re starting to organise, daughter!”
“That’s what I do, Dad. That’s what I do.”
Back at home, she copied the contact list for her own use, and then made sure everything was ready for the Monday. She sat in her room and started to write a new song, one that would sound like a title song of a film, about a hero who was the ‘man of the people’. Then, she realised that it could be useful in the operetta, as the finale, with Ego starting it and the rest of the cast taking it up.
On Monday, Sebastian picked her up, as usual, and asked about the house. Willow told him that the offer had been accepted, and that her father had paid the deposit. It was likely that they would move during the month. School was as normal as usual, without Garry at lunch until Thursday. When he came in, he went over to her, lifted her from her seat and gave her a big kiss, with much jeering and hooting.
Letting her sit down, he sat.
“Willow, that session that you sent me on has been fantastic. The band had seen me play on the TV show when we did ‘Smoke’, so it didn’t take long for us to get friendly. They had the music written out, so I just had to follow it for the first playing. I asked them if I could improvise, and they agreed. By late on Tuesday, we had put down an album, and they asked me if I would be free to tour when they get one organised, most likely in the summer, so I can do it after the exams. Then, we did about half an album with each of the singers. They were going to complete their albums with pre-recorded backing from a small orchestra, which is why I’m here today.”
“Congratulations, Garry, I’m proud of you. Did you find out why they were missing their bass?”
“The silly beggar was trying to ride a skateboard, at his age! He went arse up and tried to break his fall, breaking a couple of fingers and his left arm in two places. His wife and children convinced him that it was time that he retired.”
“Will you get listed on all three albums?”
“Yes, I will. It was a great experience, and a lot different to the Gees sessions. I can’t believe that I’ve spent three days playing with such a great band! They’ve been playing so long; they can make great music with their eyes shut. And those two singers are fantastic guys, we had lunch and dinner together in their hotel and they were very friendly. One of them told me about a party where they sang along with you.”
“Did you get paid?”
“I’m getting ten percent of the band album, and one percent of the two singers albums, from their income. Being already with the label, and on Peter’s books, it was all plain sailing.”
In the orchestra session, that day, Vivienne and Dianne had a new overture for them to try out, much to Howard Bamborough’s amusement. They had written out the score for a total of twenty instruments. It was catchy, and it had snippets of all the tunes that they had already played with.
Friday, they worked on more of the operetta, working out the sequence of Act Two, where the girl meets the men in the park. They envisioned it with the girl sitting on a bench, reading a book, as the others approach her, declaring their love and telling her how well she would be looked after.
Act Three would be the same setting, with the previous lover approaching her, and then her talking to Cuthbert, who was walking by, muttering to himself. That would lead to the stuttering song which would close the act.
That was the last day of the half-term. When Willow got home, she stripped and put the uniform in for cleaning, had a shower and started preparing dinner. Her father was home first.
“Got a call from the agent today. The paperwork is ready to sign. If we transfer the remainder into his trust account tonight, he’ll pop by in the morning with the keys. We’ll have to contact our insurance company to get house and contents cover. Then we can move during the week. I’ve already arranged for it as part of my holidays. I rang a removal firm to take the things we need a truck for. The tool cabinets and work benches from the shed for one, and the piano and music centre. Your instruments, desk and other things will need to go. Then there’s the washing machine and drier. I know that there’s one already there, but, if we get busy with parties, and extra set will come in handy. Almost everything else can be taken by car.”
They left the food for when Wendy got home and went into his office to transfer the required amount. Then Willow left him to email the insurer and went back to finish the food preparation. When Wendy came home, she was told of the development, and they had a family hug before the cooking began.
That evening, Willow emailed Gina to tell her the news about Garry and the house, and the possible involvement of her father in politics. Ashley went off to the club to talk to Malcolm about running a ‘meet’n’eat’ lunch a couple of days a week for the pensioners of the village. When he came home, he told Willow that something similar had been happening before COVID, with carpet bowls and card games. There had been a small fee in those days, and the equipment for the bowls was still around, somewhere.
On Saturday morning, the agent brought the keys and the paperwork, and the house on Rising Lane was theirs. They got into Wendy’s car and drove there, opening up with the keys for the first time. This time, they looked through every room, opened every cupboard, wardrobe, drawer and cabinet. The previous owners must have been gone for a few weeks, by the dust they found. They had brought their vacuum, so Wendy started with a duster while Willow vacuumed. Ashley went off to look more closely at the garages and the annex.
As they worked, they made lists. First would be another vacuum for upstairs, and yet another for the annex. There was a lot more counter space in the kitchen, and Wendy thought that there was plenty of room for extra appliances. Two hours later, they were happy with the cleanliness.
“You realise, Mum, that we could have called in professionals to do all this.”
“I’m not having others walk into a dirty house on my watch, love. That would be embarrassing.”
Ashley came back, saying that there had been a small vacuum in the annex and that he had used it.
They sat in the kitchen and looked out the big folding windows to the uncluttered back garden. Wendy sighed.
“You know. When I was single, I’d dream of living in a place like this. All light, airy, and modern. We may be living here before the end of the week, and I almost want to pinch myself to see if I’m still dreaming.”
“Give it a few weeks, Mum, and it will become our home. One we can invite others to for dinner parties and barbeques in the garden. Talking about the garden, I found a card from a gardening service in one of the kitchen drawers. We should give them a call.”
When they drove back to the village, they parked the car and walked back to the club, having worked up an appetite. It was going to be hard to not be a short walk away, but it was only twenty minutes by car.
They had a meal and listened to the band that Malcolm had booked. They mainly played covers, and Willow had to smile when they played one of her songs. They went home and went to bed, knowing that Sunday they would be moving more things.
The first to be moved was clothes, leaving enough for a couple of days. With both cars, that was completed by lunch. Next was the contents of the linen cupboard, and some of the kitchen equipment. They called it a day as everything found new homes.
On Monday, Wendy went to work with the instruction to look around for a new car. Willow and Ashley moved the musical instruments and Willows computer to put in the room she had chosen for her bedroom. It overlooked the lawned back garden and out over the fields behind the back fence. Then they went into the annex and dismantled the bed, carrying it, and the bedside tables down to the garage. The dressing table and wardrobe would have to stay until the removalists were there. In the sitting room, they moved the sofa to one wall and put the coffee table in front of it, leaving the wall-mounted TV to act as a monitor when Ashley had his desk and chair put in front of it.
The garage had power points, so they noted where the extra drier was going to go, and where the tool cupboards and work benches would be. They moved the odds and ends from the other two garages into the one.
They had looked on the computer, the night before, and had seen a restaurant along Rising Lane, so they went to the Punchbowl for a very good lunch. They were asked if they were just visiting and told the owners that they were moving into the house the other side of Station Lane. They were given loyalty cards, and, when the waitress recognised Willow, selfies were taken, and an account was opened for future meals.
In the afternoon, all the beds in the house were made, and the lounge was rearranged to make room for the music centre. When they locked up, they went north on the Birmingham Road and then turned right at Oldwich Lane West, after noting the Orange Tree pub as they passed. It wound around until they came to the Jaguar testing ground at Fen End. They took the Table Oak Lane to the A4177 to yet another Birmingham Road that took them into Kenilworth. Going past the Golf Club, and under the A16, they were back in Stoneleigh.
Wendy came home and told them that she had test driven a Range Rover HSE diesel and liked it. She had discussed extra features, and it would cost about fifty thousand pounds. Willow said that it would be nice, and that the extra room may come in handy, as long as Wendy was happy with it. If the go-ahead was given, one would be available with her specifications on Friday. Willow had to smile, as it was a long way from the small Ford that her mother had driven for over five years.
On Tuesday, they emptied the tool cupboards and transported the contents to Rising Lane, along with the electric cars, with Willow’s still unopened, storing them in the garage. The removalists arrived Wednesday, and the washer, drier, refrigerator, tool cupboards, work benches, music centre, piano, Ashley’s office desk, and a few other chairs and wanted items of furniture were on their way to the new house, with Ashley and Willow leading the truck.
The hardest thing to move was the piano, and the men were very careful with it. It looked a bit incongruous in the modern lounge, but the family would never be without it. When the tool cupboards and work benches were in the garage, Willow and her father loaded them with the contents. The drier and refrigerator were put in place in the garage, and the washer was put into the large laundry, to be connected by a plumber at a later date.
That evening, the family ate at the steakhouse, as the kitchen was now only good for light breakfasts or microwaveable meals. On Thursday, Willow and Ashley stripped the beds and put all of the linen in a laundry hamper, added the dirty clothes in another hamper, and then packed all the other things in their bedrooms and bathrooms. When it was all relocated in Rising Lane, they had effectively moved house. Wendy came home to the new address that night, and they all went to the Punchbowl for dinner.
The first night in a strange bed was different, and when Willow opened her curtains, the view across the fields took her breath away. When she looked around her new bedroom, it was much neater than the old one. Her desk was in one corner, with her office chair. Both laptops and the printer were next to the big monitor. Her bed as now larger, with a bedside table both sides, without folded cardboard under two legs. She had a walk-in robe, filled with clothes, that led to her own bathroom.
She put a gown on and went down to the kitchen, where Wendy was sitting with a mug of coffee and a smile on her face. Willow went to her and gave her a hug.
“It’s real, now, isn’t it, Mum?”
“Yes, darling, it’s real. All I have to do now is accept that it’s home, even if I do feel like I’m a guest in someone else’s house.”
They had a hearty breakfast and Wendy left for work after making sure that there was nothing in the Ford that was needed. Willow went up to her room and powered up her silver laptop to transfer the payment on the new car, with an email to the dealer confirming payment. That day, she helped her father set up his office in the annex, making sure that the computer was good, with the big TV now being the monitor. If he got bored, Ashley could now watch programs of a different type. Wendy’s office was left alone, for her to set up if she started to work from home. For the moment, she could use Ashley’s as she had been doing.
In the afternoon, they went back to the old house and carefully went through every room, to make sure that there was nothing left that was needed. It would go on the market as furnished, complete with the security cameras. Willow stood in her old room and thought about the changes that had happened since the day she first saw it. The curtains had never been replaced and the room held memories. The day she changed in front of Gina; the times she and Gina had spent writing songs; the day she had a smooching session with Jacob. It all came flooding back.
Back at Rising Lane, she sat with her laptop and looked at messages. There was one from the real estate agent, telling her that the Coventry property had an asking price of five-fifty, and he had offered five twenty-five, with quick settlement, and that it had been accepted. She replied to continue with the transaction and transferred the money to his trust account.
There was another email from the agent in Leicester, telling her that the paperwork for the Small Heath property had been finalised, and she transferred two million to his trust account, to pay out the guys. She asked him to contact the other five that were left in the syndicate, asking for their share to be paid into WR Holdings.
There was an email from the accountant for WR Holdings, warning her that there would be a considerable amount owing in company tax, with the amount of transactions that had gone through the account. He suggested that it may be as high as two million. She replied, telling him to do the books as required, and transferred the two million into his trust account, She advised him that she now was the sole owner of the Coventry and Leicester sites, with a combined value of three million, and was now one-sixth owner of Small Heath as well as one tenth owner of the shopping centre.
She sat there, her first full day in the new house, and she had sent over four million through the banks. When Wendy arrived home, in the Range Rover, they all went in it to the Punchbowl for dinner. On Saturday, they went into Birmingham in the new car to shop for food and other things, to bring the new kitchen up to being able to feed them. Ashley went into the off-licence and came out with a carton of beer, another of soft drink, and a box of a half a dozen assorted wines. They had, of course, overbought, but any that didn’t go in the kitchen went in the fridge in the garage.
On Sunday, they all worked together to catch up with the washing, keeping the two driers working hard. Wendy spoke to her mother on the phone, inviting her to visit over Easter, at the end of March. Her father was now unable to travel, so Wendy and Willow would be going to Cambridge instead, staying in a hotel.
Monday was back to normal. Wendy went to work in the HSE, Ashley went in the company car, and Willow made sure that everything was secure when Sebastian picked her up, stopping on the edge of the road to close the gates.
“Happy in the new home, Willow?”
“Very happy, Sebastian. We found a great place further along the lane to eat and went into Birmingham to shop on Saturday. Dad is now the Tory candidate to replace the sitting member, and the trip down to Stratford is pretty easy for him. Mum now drives a Range Rover HSE, and very nice it is, too.”
“It will match the house. How long before she starts looking for clothes that match the car. What colour did she get?”
“It’s called Petrolix Blue. It stands out, I can tell you.”
“How many cars do you now own, seeing that you’re too young to drive?”
“There’s Mums, the two BMs at the studio, and I seem to have inherited the people mover that Wilhelm used to drive, bought by the syndicate, but now sign written with the studio name. If Dad ends up resigning, he’ll lose the company car but would be able to get another through our company as a director. It will be a while before I get one.”
“Not that long. You’re sixteen in a few months, another year and you can drive. I can see you in a soft-top, speeding down the motorway going to your London pad and another glamorous party. I’ve seen the picture of you in the school reception.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 7
School was a haven of normalcy after the busy week. At lunch, she told the other four about the payout of the others with Small Heath. That evening, she emailed Gina with that information as well as the pictures of her new home. The family was settling into a new way of life. Ashley and Wendy were finding the better ways of getting to work, and Sebastian seemed to know a different way with every new day, something that he told her was good security.
The operetta was moving along, with it becoming clearer with each week. It had developed into the first act with a song about the loneliness of being constantly watched, the duet between father and daughter, the contestants coming on as the daughter storms off. There were the four songs from the contestants, answering questions from the father, who ends the act alone on the stage, with the first version of ‘a man of the people’ theme.
Vivienne was the leading lady, with Garry as the father. Nancy was the female friend, Bryan was Cuthbert, Edward was one of the men, with another lad from the class, Martin, as the other. There were a couple of ‘walk-ons’, a servant and a security guard. The technical group were experimenting with ways to project from behind but make it look realistic, and Dianne had a small group writing out the score as they developed it. Willow was trying to steer them all to a successful result, and also keeping the songs within the boundaries of correctness without losing the comedy.
At home, she was relaxing in the new comfort and space that she had, thinking about songs for the operetta, as well as for another solo album. She was close to finishing the show songs, with the wistful opening song, the plaintive refrain in the park, and the duet between Vivienne and Bryan with the stutters. The ‘man of the people’ had already been written and expanded for when they worked on Act Four and the finale.
On the Saturday, she had a reply from Gina, with news from Florence and pictures of her own home. She was rehearsing with the Orchestra della Tuscana to play a series of piano concerts during the summer and finding it exciting. She asked Willow if she would visit Italy for a birthday party, seeing that hers fell on the Saturday this year. Over the next week, each of the others paid their share, putting nearly one point seven back into Willow’s company bank.
She also had one from Sarah, reporting on another successful week with the ENO. The intervening weeks were now being booked, with Midlands bands and solo singers with pre-recorded backing tracks. Willow replied to book the first week of June for the workshopping of the operetta.
Now some time of living on Rising Lane, things were settling nicely. On Sunday, the big syndicate had a Zoom meeting with the shopping centre management in Manchester. Only the five from the new syndicate attended, but they made firm plans on going forward with the upgrades, spread out over two years. The management wanted to make sure that funds were available and were happy that the syndicate had fifteen million on hand. It was agreed that there would be no lifting of lease rates until after the modifications were completed.
March was almost quiet, as far as Willow was concerned. The schooling was steady, the orchestra still learned more violin-based pieces and workshopped some of the operetta tunes. The operetta worked out the second act and the songs. Then it was revision time and exam week. Willow’s statement showed that the band earnings was dropping, but her solo album was holding up, with another six hundred thousand transferred into her company account.
It was in revision week that she had an email from Jill, asking her if she could attend a meeting at the label offices during her Easter break. She replied that she and her mother had committed to be in Cambridge over the Easter weekend and that she would investigate ways to get to London after that.
When she sat down with her parents, they discussed it, and the suggestion was made that she could now afford to use a limo service so that she could be independent. She looked them up on the computer and phoned one. The result was that she was signed on as a client, given a code number to use, and sent an information package with three cards to use, one in each one of their names. The costs would be charged to her company and paid by the accountant. She booked a car to take her from the hotel in Cambridge to the apartment on the Tuesday after Easter, so that Wendy could go home on the Monday, for work on the Tuesday.
She advised Jill of this, and the meeting was set for the first of April. She planned to spend the week in London, shopping for new clothes, as she was growing suddenly. She phoned her doctor, who explained that her body was now happy with the changes, and that she was developing normally. She booked a visit on the Friday before the third term started, just to check up.
When school finished on the Thursday, Wendy and Willow drove to Cambridge that evening. They were booked into the hotel that night, with Wendy through to the Monday morning, and Willow to Tuesday. The visit was not full of joy, as her grandfather was now in hospital, but they visited him and took her grandmother out for meals. Wendy broached the idea of her coming to Rising Lane to live in the future and was given a half-hearted agreement that it ‘may be nice’.
On Monday afternoon, Wendy left to go home, and, on Tuesday morning, Willow was collected to go to London, arriving before lunch, with just her small case. She opened up her apartment and opened a window to clear the air. She had lunch in the restaurant and spoke to Ted, and then took a taxi into the city.
Her first task was to buy some bed linen that was more her style. She bought four sets of sheets and pillowcases in pastel colours. She decided that it was enough for the day and got another taxi home. She stripped the two beds and made them both up with new sheets. The old, she put into a bag for the laundry, and the spares were taken into the other apartment for storage.
She had dinner in the restaurant and spent the evening trying on the outfits in her wardrobe, setting aside those that were too small or too short. On the Wednesday, she took a taxi to the offices, walking into a meeting where Vivienne was already talking to Jill. When they were joined by Clive, they sat around the table and Clive opened the meeting.
“Girls, you’re aware that sales of Summer Rose albums are dropping off. We’ve had a tremendous run with them and there’s nothing wrong with that. Willow, your solo album has passed the Platinum Record mark, and we’ll give you that award today. Vivienne, your DVD has passed the Gold and is so close to Platinum, we’ll give you both awards before you leave. What we want to put in place is a short season, at the end of May. It will be here, in London, and will be from the Saturday to the next Saturday, in one of the better nightclubs. We’ve been putting Zara into a number of places, and she’s building a solid following. We’ll have an album with her and her band before the end of this month. She is scheduled to be in your studio next week to record it.”
Both girls smiled, happy for their friend.
“I’ve got your holiday dates, and you can get here on the Saturday to play that night, and then every night to the next Saturday. You can go home on the Sunday. We’ve been able to negotiate a reasonable deal, with you both being paid twenty thousand each, for the week. What they want is a show with you singing your songs, with just you, Willow, playing piano. You can sort out how you want to work it before then, but work on six hours on stage, between eight and two in the morning, with breaks. You’ll be fed before you start.”
“Is it a place where they’re dancing?”
“Yes, but all very intimate and slow, so your material will be perfect.”
“Sounds good, Clive.”
“That’s not all, Willow. We will be sending the two of you on tour, during your summer break, with week-long seasons in each of six cities. Paris, Monaco, Florence, Zurich, Prague and Berlin. We expect that you can give us an album, each, before that, and one of the London evenings will be tastefully filmed for a DVD to be in those markets before you play. It’s not the millions that you got for big stadium shows, but you will both get a boost from album sales, as well as showing the world that you’re both professional entertainers, and we can build on that for next year, with you out front of a band, with them on a salary.”
“We’ll both be in fifth year after that, so will have to concentrate on our studies more.”
“Taken on board. Now, I’ll get a photographer in, and we’ll give you the awards, and then we can go for lunch.”
The photographer was summoned, and the CEO gave them their awards. Willow got her Platinum, with another for Sarah. Vivienne got both the Gold and Platinum, with one of each for Sarah, as well as another pair for Josh and Sydney for the DVD. Viv also got another as the writer and composer of all the songs. While they had lunch, the awards were bubble wrapped and put into big bags for them. Outside the office, bags in hand, Willow turned to Viv as they were waiting for a taxi to stop.
“Where are you staying, Viv?”
“I’m booked into a hotel. Mum brought me down. We’re going home tomorrow.”
“I’ve got an apartment with two bedrooms. Why don’t you let your mother go home, and you stay with me a few days. I’m going shopping for clothes that fit. I’ve got a limo booked to take me home next Thursday.”
“That sounds good. If you come to the hotel, you can talk to Mum. If she’s happy, I’ll pack, and we can go to your place. It will be nice to be independent for a week.”
By dinnertime, Vivienne was settled in the upstairs bedroom and the two of the went down to the restaurant. Carlo was happy to see them, and Julie was happy to see Vivienne, having just loved their album. Viv was introduced to Ted and Kevin, Alicia and Hazel, and the conversation that evening was about her university thoughts. Willow texted Gina, to tell her that the label had booked her in a nightclub on the day of Gina’s birthday, and that she was sorry she couldn’t be in Italy but would be playing in Florence in the summer.
Over the next week, the girls went to a lot of shops. Willow got a laundry bag from Carlo and put all of her unwanted clothes in it to go for charity. Then she filled all of the empty spaces with new outfits, suitable for an up-market girl in London and other capital cities. They both bought outfits for eight nights of performing. Vivienne would be staying in the apartment while they were here, so left quite a lot of her things.
In the evenings, they worked on some songs, with Willow on the keyboard, to get ahead of the shows and albums. On the Friday, they were picked up in a limo and went to Rising Lane first, where Vivienne was shown the upright piano and invited to come around on weekends to perfect their show. Willow’s cases were unloaded, and the driver took Vivienne home.
Willow looked up the emails, noting another statement that had come in while she was in London, with another three hundred thousand going into the business account. The next day, she had the limo service drive her to the clinic and wait for her, while she was checked and had samples taken. Her doctor was very happy that the new development was happening and told her to expect it to continue for another year or so, with her ending up at a normal size for a late-teen girl. She was told that if her B12 levels remained good, she might be able to stop having the injections.
On the first Monday back at school, Viv told Willow that she had signed on with the limo company, so would be able to visit on weekends without bothering her mother. On Wednesday, Wendy texted Willow with the news that her father had died in the early hours of that morning. and to say that she was going home to pack and would be in Cambridge until after the funeral.
On Thursday, they were notified that the funeral would be the following Tuesday. Willow and her father would take the trip to Cambridge and the three would be coming back on Thursday. With, hopefully, all of her mother’s things and her grandmother. Willow and Ashley made up the spare room bed, and Willow advised the school that she had to be in Cambridge for the next week to attend her grandfather’s funeral.
On Saturday, they went into Birmingham and stocked up with the things that they knew her grandmother liked, and they drove to Cambridge on the Sunday, checking in to the hotel where Wendy had been given a suite. When Willow saw her grandmother, she was shocked at how much she had suddenly aged. She had to be held up during the funeral, and on Wednesday, declared that she had been accepted at an aged-care home in Cambridge, where some of her old friends were already living. So, in the end, they settled her into the home and helped her sort out what she wanted to keep.
They paid for a house-cleaning service to clear the house and signed with an agent to sell it, Wendy already having the authority to make the decisions. When they did go home, on the Sunday, it was in the two cars, Wendy’s with boxes of things that had been hers and that she wanted to keep. She promised her mother that she would come and see her every month.
Over the next week, Willow was given the lesson notes for the ones she had missed and got back in touch with the way the operetta was going, now well into the third act. She advised the PE teacher that she had been booked to play a nightclub over the holiday, so wasn’t available for the netball carnival. The new statement was a lot leaner, and she was only prepared to transfer another three hundred thousand, leaving under four hundred thousand with Peter.
The next weekend had Vivienne at the house all weekend, sleeping in the spare room, and working with Willow playing the piano. This was repeated for the next three weekends. The operetta had been completed, and Willow told Mister Bamborough that she had booked the studio for the first week of next month, so that they could workshop it and get a saleable DVD. He had seen enough to get the Head to permit them all to be taken to the studio on the Monday, for the day.
On Willow’s sixteenth birthday, the family went to the Punchbowl for dinner, with the only indication that it was a special meal being them dressing a little better. After the loss of her grandfather, Willow wasn’t feeling up to throwing a party. On Friday evening, she emailed Gina with a birthday wish, telling her that she would be playing in Florence, in the first week of August.
That Saturday morning, Vivienne picked Willow up in her own limo, and they went into London. They got settled into the apartment and took a taxi to the night club. When they walked in, they were greeted warmly and shown the small stage area and the baby grand that Willow was to use. She sat and played as the manager sorted out the microphones, and then they did one of the duets that they had worked on.
Vivienne was singing and was looking around the brightly lit dance space and noticed a couple of odd neon signs on the wall. When they stopped, she asked, over the PA, something that she didn’t understand.
“This club. We were told that it was usually slow and intimate dancing, but it looks more like a rage club.”
“It is, on certain nights in the month. We have live bands at times, a DJ a lot of the time, but we’ve advertised that your week was smooth and easy. They’re keen to have you play for them.”
“What sort of people are your members?”
“Gay ones. The club is a gay club where the members can feel safe. There are more girls than boys, and you two have become somewhat like icons of female empowerment with the most recent albums. They loved the Summer Rose albums, and the DJ often plays the hard rock tracks, but this week is all sweetness and love. Be prepared to be hit on, but there’ll be no aggression if you say no.”
“Our people at the label said nothing about it being a gay club.”
“Is that a problem?”
“Just a bit of a surprise. They’ve booked us to other nightclubs in Europe as a summer tour. I think that we’ll have to ask if they’re similar. Just make sure that we only get water in unopened bottles, please, just to be sure.”
“That sort of thing doesn’t happen here, or, at least, while they’re inside. Most of our members are better than that, and our membership fee ensures that.”
When they left the club, with the advice to get back at seven for a meal, and a pair of lanyards to get them in, Willow laughed.
“I think that a lot in the crowd in Berlin were gay, it was the leather outfits that didn’t look like proper biker gear.”
“How do you know that?”
“I was a tomboy and spent some time looking at motorcycle magazines.”
Back at the apartment, they rang Jill.
“Hello Jill, it’s Willow. We’ve just been to that nightclub and found out that it’s members are all gay. Did you know about that?”
“That’s news to me. Let me look up the file and I’ll ring you back.”
They were having lunch in the restaurant when she called back.
“Willow. I’ve looked at the records, and there’s no mention that it’s gay. Is that a problem?”
“I’ll let you know tomorrow. What about the ones over summer?”
“Damn! I’ve just seen that all the venues were booked by the Rainbow Alliance, so I guess that they all are. They seemed keen to get you booked.”
“We were told that we’re ‘icons of female empowerment’. I expect that their money is as good as anyone else, but it is going to give us an interesting reputation. Next thing will be an invite to the Sydney Mardi gras. That wouldn’t go down with our fan club there.”
“You’ll just have to be seen around with guys. You already have plenty of pictures out there with Jacob, and Vivienne has several with Roy. OK, so those may be over, but it would pay for you to claim that you’re straight, just between boyfriends at the moment. Otherwise, some may think that the two of you are a couple.”
That evening, dressed to impress, they took a taxi to the club, being allowed in and bypassing a short queue. They were given a light meal, with drinks from bottles opened for them. When they stepped out on the stage, they got a welcome roar from the room. They started with some of the early songs, with the Carpenters and Journey albums. ‘Finding a Friend’ got calls to repeat and they hardly had to sing it, with the dancers singing it for them. They had breaks, when they were besieged by girls wanting to talk, and worked through the Summer Rose catalogue that could be sung as a duet, and were into their solo albums after midnight, as well as some of the new ones that they had written in the last month.
When they finally finished, a taxi was called for them and they went back to the apartment.
“That was different!”
“It was, wasn’t it? When you come down to it, they were just more people wanting to be entertained. What worries me is if it’s all the same crowd every night. They’re going to be bored with the set by Monday.”
“We’ll just have to wait and see. It was a happy crowd, though, and not as ‘in your face’ as I expected. They knew a lot of the words.”
“That’s the bit that gets to me. You write a song that you hope will be catchy, and it’s a surprise when it’s so catchy that they’re singing it for you. Some of that material was a couple of years old.”
Vivienne went up to her room and they got to bed. Willow laid for a while, telling City Shaun about some of the sights she had seen that evening. There had been a few who looked totally ‘butch’, but the majority wouldn’t look out of place in any shopping centre. She wondered if some who had seen her, and Gina, shopping may have thought that they were more than friends. Even with Vivienne when they were here in the Easter break.
They slept late, but the other two couples were still having breakfast when they went down to the restaurant.
“How was last night? A bit different to a big stadium.”
“It’s a gay club, Ted, and different doesn’t begin to describe it.”
Hazel laughed.
“Don’t tell me, they’re setting you up as the next Kylie, as ‘icons of female empowerment’.”
“Got it in one, Hazel. It was all right, and everyone was very friendly. We even didn’t have to be singing, as there were a lot of times when all I had to do was play the tune and they sung.”
“Why don’t you see if they know any of your drinking songs?”
“If they look bored, we might try that.”
By the end of the next Saturday night, they had repeated the set, added other things that had worked in Stoneleigh, mined their memories for other popular songs by Kylie and others, and generally had a good time. When they ended the last set, the manager gave each of them a bulging envelope, ‘from the tip jar’ and thanked them for a wonderful masterclass of entertaining.
They had lunch in the restaurant on the Sunday, and then the limo picked them up for the trip back home. When Willow got out and retrieved her bag, Vivienne stood, and they hugged.
“Willow, my friend, that had to be one of the best weeks of my life. It was one thing to be backing the Rose, but another to be on stage as a duo with you. I’ve learned a lot before we did this, working up the set, but I learned more about who I am in close proximity to our fans, and out front and singing some of my own songs. If I was gay, I’d kiss you!”
“Please don’t. My mother would get the wrong idea if I went in with smeared lipstick. I had fun as well, and I’m looking forward to the big tour. Gina’s going to have a surprise when she comes to see us in Florence. I’ll see you at school tomorrow. Sebastian’s taking me in, and Max will be there with a coach to take us to the studio. Don’t forget the awards for Sarah and the team.”
“I won’t. It will be odd being back at school after our week. How long do we have to get the operetta sorted out?”
“I told Mister Bamborough that it may take a couple of days, and that when the others go back to school, you and I will be recording a pair of albums before we’re back.”
“At least we know that they work, It didn’t take long for all the songs from them being sung in that club.”
“Call it a ‘focus group’ Viv. They were accepted so quickly, when the albums get issued, we’ll probably get a writeup in the Pink News.”
“Now that would be an interesting addition to my mother’s scrapbook.”
“Mine too!”
Marianne Gregory, © 2025
Chapter 8
Willow carried her bag into the house.
“Good week, love?”
“Interesting, Mum. I enjoyed it, and, best of all, the crowds enjoyed it.”
“What sort of crowd, all Hooray Henrys and Snooty Susans?”
“Not really. Most were in their teens or twenties, and as bent as a paper clip. It was a gay club, but a lot of fun. We found out that we’re ‘icons of female empowerment’ in that crowd, and we spent every night in a cloud of different perfumes. And that was just on the guys!”
“Well, you would have fitted in well, knowing your own story.”
“If that did come out, it would give me a degree of authenticity, wouldn’t it?”
“Did they film you?”
“They did. It will make interesting viewing, as they chose ‘Tart’s Tuesday’. It will go down well with the venues for summer, as they were all booked by the same group.”
“So, you’ll be spending summer touring the gay bars of Europe. Gina will find it a bit different when you’re in Florence.”
“I’ll have to put a note in with the new album when I send it to her. We’ll be recording both of our albums when we’ve finished with the operetta this week.”
That evening, she hung her black dress to drop out, and tidied up all her notes and scores for the operetta. Then she sat and wrote the list of new songs, in the order that would be good on the album. She sat and thought long and hard about the title. It should be accepted by the gay community, but not decried by everyone else. She thought back on the odd names that had been given to albums over the past and decided on ‘Tourniquet’. Most people would just have a laugh and wonder what restricting the blood flow had to do with the songs, but she had the idea that where they would be playing, it would already be called ‘Turning gay’.
On Monday morning, she had the bag with the awards she had received almost two months before, along with the dress and her normal bag. At the school, it was a hive of activity, with Max in a coach, and the truck being loaded with the rostrum, timpani’s, one cello and one double bass. The rest of the orchestra had been pared down to six violins, three violas, and a wind and brass section. They had ended up with the twenty that would fit nicely in front of the theatre stage.
Vivienne and Nancy arrived with their own security, as did Bryan and Edward. Garry was already there. Mister Bamborough and Mister Jamieson were joining them today, both keen to see how the final result turned out. The cast were all in school uniform, with their chosen stage outfits in garment bags.
The convoy left the school, bound for Leicester. Garry rode with Bryan and Edward; Mister Jamieson rode with Vivienne and Nancy, while Mister Bamborough rode with Willow.
“Interesting day, today, Willow?”
“It will be, Sir. It may take a while to get it into shape, as we haven’t workshopped the stage movements fully, and it will take a while to set up the backdrop material. The guys have assured me that they have it right and have been out filming on location on weekends. I told them that we could use the blue screen today, but they rejected that as it wouldn’t give them the feedback that they needed to recreate the effect in the theatre.”
“This project has certainly utilised a lot more of the school equipment than any other show, even the drama students are keen to see what you come up with.”
At the studio, the chairs for the orchestra were put out in front of the big window, with the rostrum facing towards the back of the studio. Further along, the big wooden screens had been placed, three to a side, and overlapping. The projection material was hung from a line between two camera mounts and the technical group set up behind it.
It was close to ten before they were ready. As things were being set out, the players, the cast, and Willow took turns in the toilets to change. Sarah, Sydney, and Josh were busy setting out microphones for the orchestra, and clipping radio mics on the cast as they changed. Willow was given one as well.
When they were all ready, Willow called for everyone to gather round. She had her bag of awards, and Vivienne stood beside her with her own bag.
“Before we get working, there is something that has been delayed due to other things. Vivienne and I had a meeting with the label, back in April, at which we were given awards. I’m afraid, Josh, that you’ll need to find some space on the wall. I have, here, a Platinum Record for ‘A Girl has to have Standards’, which needs to be hung. I also have another, for Sarah and the team for the production of the same album.”
There was applause and some happy hugging. Then Vivienne spoke.
“At that meeting, I was also given some awards. These were for ‘Joie de Viv’ DVD. There are both Gold and Platinum Records, as well as another set for this magnificent team of Sarah, Sydney, and Josh. I thank you all from the bottom of my heart, and I especially thank Willow for her piano playing.”
There was more applause and hugging, and then Willow called for quiet again.
“Today, we are going to work on the operetta. What I want to do is have all the cast with ear buds, so that I can give instruction as we go. Sarah will set the mixing board so that I can hear the mix, and also talk us through it. There should be one of the projection team with buds as well. It won’t be on the recorded mix, and I hope that we can do the final show without needing them, with everybody taking their cues from the music.”
Sarah set it up so that all those with buds could hear both the mix and Willow, with the same coming out of the speaker in the control room. The teachers and the drivers all settled down to look and listen.
Willow started by asking all of the cast, in turn, if they could hear, and then the projection leader. Then she said that the overture was about to start, tapped a new baton, and led the orchestra into the overture. As it neared the end, she told Vivienne to be ready. Vivienne was sitting on a seat in front of the screen, which was showing the inside of a swanky room.
As the overture ended, Willow stated that the curtain was opening and for Viv to be examining her nails, and to wait for the violin. She gave it ten seconds and then started the violins, with a sweet melody. She counted down from five for Viv to sing, and then they were into the first act. All of those in the control room were amazed at how plaintive, yet beautiful, the song was.
As it was ending, she cued Garry for his entrance, with him striding on stage from the wings, with ‘There you are, my daughter!’ and then telling her about how great he was for her, and how he had thought of a way to ensure that she had a life with all the things she wished for. It introduced the ‘I’m a man of the people’ when he outlined the quest he had put in place, and then they had a duet where she called him a controlling beast, and he told her that all he was doing was caring for her. When he calls in the candidates, she rushes from the stage.
He then sings the questions to the four, with each of them professing their love for his daughter. The two males with bombastic claims that she would love them, eventually, and the female claiming that they already had a love. The last candidate declared that he would ‘t,t,t treat her w,w,w, well.’ They thanked Ego, telling him that he truly was ‘a man of the people’.
They took a break and discussed changes, and then continued with the second act. This opened with Vivienne on the seat once more. On the stage, the first would be a light sofa, and the second would be a garden seat. The musical intro was playing as Willow called that the curtain was opening and to start the song. Once again, it was a sweet, but plaintive song about only being free of restraint when she was in the park. Willow was impressed with the background vision, with it being a real film, rather than a backdrop.
There was the song from one of the men, as he stood beside her. She told him, in song, that she was being watched, and that if he sat next to her, he would be set upon by hidden security. He professes that he would look after her as his trophy wife, and she sings that, ‘it’s not me you should woo, kind sir, it’s my father that set the quest. If you don’t adhere to his rules, then others would surely be best’.
They had decided that the second man should approach after the first leaves the stage, approaching her in a similar fashion and getting a similar reply. When she gets up and leaves the stage, the first man comes back and the two men have a duet about it all being too hard, and the wooing sounded more like work.
They took another break and pondered on the outcome, so far, while Josh went to pick up lunch from the fish shop and pizza store. The tables had been set up in the rest area, and it was a case of helping oneself. When they had finished, they went back to work on the third act, which opens, once more with the scene in the park. In this one, there is no opening song, with Cuthbert strolling on and muttering to himself. He sees the daughter and stops.
“Wha, wha, wha, what are you do, do, doing here?”
“Wait, wait, waiting for you, young man. A young man who has no chance of winning. How can you create all those followers and all that money?”
“I do ma, ma, magic, my lo, lo love. I do it in mi, mi, mi, mime.”
“In mi, mi, mi, mime?”
“Yes. I’m Cu, Cu, Cu, Cuthbert the mi, mi, mi, miming con, con, con, Conjurer.”
“Cu, Cu, Cu, Cu, Cuthbert.’
“The mi, mi, mi, miming.”
“Con, con, con, con, conjurer!”
He stands with his back to the audience and acts as if he was doing coin tricks, while, behind them, on the screen, a picture appears of a white-face magician in tails, performing the tricks. It took some work for Willow to lead the orchestra in playing the music in sync with the tricks. When he turns and walks off stage, Vivienne is still sitting, with a big smile on her face, when Nancy comes on.
“Are you smiling for me, my love, just for me, my love.”
They sing a duet about the time that they were younger and experimenting, before her father had the time to be home a lot. The last song, with Vivienne alone again, is about all these suiters yet only one who was kind and interesting, and seemed to like her, for herself, and not for her money. As that ended, Willow called the curtains closed and time for a break.
Act four had the backdrop as another fancy room, with several chairs. The two men come in and continue the duet about it being more work than wooing, joined by Nancy who joins in, with them wondering what the price of failure was, seeing that Ego was known for his craziness. Cuthbert comes on stage and sits down, and Ego and his daughter enter from the opposite side of the stage. Ego sings a song about how great he is, and how great his quest was, and how he, as a ‘man of the people’ would be giving all contestants something to remember him by. He then asks each one, in turn, how they had fared.
The two men declare that their efforts on Tic Toc had brought no success, with one declaring that the cat was not a good actor, and the other agreeing that it was hard to make a duck do tricks. Nancy’s character admitted that she had only entered the quest in the certainty that the shared love would overcome all.
Cuthbert declared that his ‘ma, ma, ma, magic po, po, po, po, podcast was vi, vi, vi, vi, viral,’ and that he had been ‘ar, ar, ar, ar, asked to appear in Ve, Ve, Ve, Vegas. He praised his ma, ma, ma, ma, magic la, la, la, laptop. The others all sing praises for the magic laptop.
Ego takes his daughter’s hand and leads her to Cuthbert and declares that he has won her in marriage. He then reprises the ‘man of the people’ song, telling them that all will be given a car from his factory, ‘batteries not included’ and they all sing that Ego is surely the man of the people, repeating that line to a rousing finale, with the timpani giving the final drum roll.
After that, they worked on small parts that they had discussed, trying out new movements and timings. When it was time to go back to Coventry, Sarah gave the teachers a DVD of the raw footage and sound, with another for Willow. Everything was left as it was for the next day, when they intended to run through it as a complete show, with the changes they had made.
The cast all changed back to school uniform, leaving their stage outfits on a rack that Josh brought in from the back. Willow and Sydney collected all the buds and wiped them. The truck drivers were told to come back the next afternoon, and the orchestra got on the coach to go back to the school.
In the car, Howard Bamborough had a laugh.
“You know what the Head is going to say, don’t you?”
“What’s that girl done this time?”
“No. How many full houses will this fill in our theatre. I can see her wanting to have at least three nights as a season.”
“We might get it right by the third show.”
“You’ll have it right tomorrow. Jim and I have discussed this class as you’ve moved through the years. It has been the one with the different ways at looking at things. I know that you and Vivienne had no say in what was going to be tried, but, between you, you’ve created something entirely new and wonderful. I’m certain that there are at least three songs there that would become firm favourites, should it ever get onto another stage.”
“Thank you, sir. It took a lot of thought to get them, made easier by Viv being such a good singer.”
“I believe that you’re recording albums after this. Do you mind if I sit in on that? You can take all of Wednesday, it you like.”
“Thank you, sir. That’s appreciated. We have a deadline to come out with the two albums in time for summer, We’ll be spending the whole holiday in Europe, with a week each in six cities, doing shows in clubs. Not exactly the huge stadiums we did last year, but a lot more work at about six hours a night.”
“How do you manage that?”
“We did eight nights in a club in London, last week, and we did manage to fill the time quite well. It was a lot of fun, actually.”
“Is there a recording?”
“Well, yes, there is, but I doubt that it would ever be put on the market.”
“Oh! Something went wrong?”
“Not wrong, sir. It’s just another shift in focus. It was a gay club, as are all the clubs in Europe. Viv and I have become icons. They said that we were ‘icons of feminine empowerment’. The gigs were all booked by the Rainbow Alliance and accepted before anyone twigged.”
“Nothing wrong with that. Their money is as good as anyone else. That has never done any harm to a few other singers, none as young as you, I admit.”
“It has made us both think about our next recording. We trialled a lot of the songs during the week, and they went well, so I’m hopeful that the new albums should sell.”
“If they half as good as the ones you got the awards for, you should both do well out of them.”
“It’s not the money, sir. It’s what am I going to do with the rest of my life? I seem to be jumping from one thing to the other. I own the trademark of Summer Rose, but the band will never play again. I built a good friendship with Gina, but she’s now in Florence, rehearsing for a summer season with an orchestra. As soon as I get something positive, everything changes.”
“I can tell you, right here and now, young lady, that whatever you end up doing, it will be because of everything that has gone before it. I listened to you, today, calling the shots with that show, and you pulled it together. I know that you had worked with the orchestra, and I know that you had input into the songs and the story, but you allowed others to shine. Take my advice. When you get a final cut of the show, tomorrow, send a copy to the ENO, and another to your label. I’m sure that when you present it at the school, there will be a lot of people in the audience who are there to see this new star of musical theatre.”
At the school, he got out of the car and told her that she would see him in the morning for another session. On the way back to Rising Lane, Sebastian spoke.
“I didn’t know what to expect today. Nothing could have prepared me for what I saw. There were at least three songs that reminded me of the best songs of other shows. That first song that Vivienne sung was like a stab to the heart, a bit like that killer song in Cats. There are people who will pay good money to put that on in the West End.”
“It’s just a school project, Sebastian.”
“So was the Blue Coat Dance Band, and that took you to that Berlin show, which is destined to be one of the all-time greats. So was that Carpenters set that put you on a record career. As Howard said, whatever you do is leading you to greatness, and I’m proud to have watched it unfold.”
“Are you going to write a book about it? Xavier said that he was going to do one with all the pictures he had taken. He said it was going to be called, ‘The Summer Rose Story, from The Sap Inside’.”
“I’ll call mine, ‘Driving Miss Willow’.”
He pulled up outside the house.
“See you tomorrow, Miss Rose.”
“I’ll be here, Hoke.”
That evening, she showed her parents the raw footage from the day and explained how it all evolved. Ashley waited until the end of it before he spoke.
“Is that the ‘man of the people’ song that you wrote for my campaign?”
“No, Dad. That’s the ‘man of the people’ song that your opponents are likely to use for themselves, and if they ask, I’ll give them permission. By the time that the election is called, hopefully, the show could have been seen by others, who will equate that song with pure ego and the desire to dominate. I’ll be writing you another short song, ‘man for the people’, which will be aimed at picturing you as a man who helps people. The lunches in the club will help.”
“Has anyone ever..”
“Yes, Dad, many times.”
Next morning, they were at the studio around nine, and, with no set-up needed, did the entire operetta in the morning, with just a few changes needed. In the afternoon, they did it without the buds, and with the full set of cameras and mics. Sydney told Willow that the vision looked good, with her conducting style drawing comment from the teachers, now she could concentrate on it.
Willow congratulated everyone on a job well done, and Howard Bamborough congratulated Sarah and the team on the effort they had put in, not just this week, but also in their teaching at the school, with the technical group getting handshakes from the teachers. Willow was given six copies of the DVD, with the teachers getting another six, and the cast and orchestra getting one each, with one left over for the techs. The rostrum and instruments were collected up and the truck went back to the school with them.
That evening, she looked at the latest recording, and then packaged one for Jill, with a note telling her that this was a school project and not for issuing. She also sent one to the ENO, to the attention of Norman Strong, with a note to check the school website for the date of the performance.
The next day she went directly to the studio. Mister Bamborough was already there when she arrived. With the team, they pulled the piano from behind the mock stage and pulled it towards the big window. They were stacking chairs when Vivienne arrived, With the space now set, and the microphones in place, the two of them changed into one of the outfits that they had worn in the club, the week before, and helped each other look good.
The blue screen was set up behind them and Willow sat at the piano and warmed up her fingers.
“Just so you know, Sarah. We are going to record two albums. Mine is called ‘Tourniquet’ and is a collaboration with Vivienne. We tried a lot of these songs in a gay club last week, and it will have us singing solo and duets.”
Vivienne stepped to her microphone.
“My album will be called ‘Viv-a The Difference’ and will be much the same. On Willow’s, she gets about seventy percent solo, and on mine, I get about the same.”
In the control room, there were smiles, with Howard Bamborough wondering how the label would treat these albums.
They recorded twelve tracks of jazzy pop and took a break. Willow gave Sydney a dozen covers, six for the CD, and six for the DVD. They were the willow tree again, with the album name. On the back listing, seven of the songs were listed as written by Armstrong/Rose and five by Rose.
When they had recorded a similar album for Vivienne, her covers had the old cartoon of a boy and a girl with their panties pulled open and looking into each other’s crotch. The songs were a similar mix of Armstrong/Rose and Armstrong. On both DVDs, the scene behind them was of the back of the stage at the nightclub, taken by Vivienne one night in a break, with the signs lit up.
They ate pizza while the team produced the discs. Mister Bamborough questioned the choice of material and packaging.
“It’s all about perception, sir. As I told you, we played for a very successful week in a gay club and are playing all summer in more across Europe. The label wanted two albums to go on the market before then, and these are the two albums that we’re delivering. Yes, they’re different from what we’ve done before, but they are us trying to be adult. The songs are all about love and laughter, so won’t make a fuss when they’re played on the radio. Our target market will understand, though.”
“What do your parents say?”
“Our parents are just happy that we’re a success. What we’ve done, so far, has improved our family’s lives. We’re sixteen, and in some countries, we would have been married off by now. The songs are all about enjoying life as a teenage girl in a free world. These will be forgotten in a year or so, but there is, waiting in the wings, a six-hour video of us doing what we just did, live in that club. We don’t know what’s planned for that, but it would be a real money-maker. These will divert some of the buyers cash to us. Now, sir, the studio is paid for until close of business Friday. I know it’s a short notice, but is there anything that you want to use it for until then?”
“I could get the junior orchestra in to record what they’ve learned. Thank you for that.”
“We’ll be in school, as usual, in the morning. I think that it’s been a successful few days.”
The girls changed back into the casual clothes that they had arrived in, collected their discs, four of their own and two of the other’s, and left with their drivers. Howard Bamborough arranged with Sarah about having the orchestra arrive in the morning and persuaded her to give him a copy of each of the DVDs for his own collection. He rang the school to organise the truck for the morning, and to get Mister Jamieson to tell the junior orchestra that they were spending two days in the studio. He drove back to Coventry with a smile on his face.
Marianne Gregory © 2025
Chapter 9
On the way home, Willow got Sebastian to stop at a post office, where she bought a post pack big enough for three discs, and the stamps needed for a package of three and another of one. When she was home, she sealed the one to the ENO, and filled the package to Jill. Properly stamped, she left them on the hall table for her mother to put in a post box in the morning.
Then, she sat in front of the big screen TV and watched both DVDs critically, trying to pick the songs that may get airplay. She decided that they weren’t a bad collection of songs, most were good enough for even the most middle-ground radio, and more likely to appeal to those who bought the earlier albums. The DVDs looked as if they were shot on location, with the added club-like background sounds, and she wondered if they may end up as music for dinner parties, or even intimate evenings with a favourite person.
Then, she went to her bedroom to work on the promised anthem for her father, something that needed a lot more thought. When her parents came home, she had the dinner close to being ready to cook. They had the meal and she said that she would tidy up and that there were two, new, DVDs by the machine if they wanted to watch them. She cleaned up in the kitchen and went to get a shower, dressing in her nightie and gown. When she went down to say goodnight, the DVDs were left out of the cases and her parents were nowhere to be seen.
She turned her laptop on to check for emails. The only one was the statement from Peter and she transferred another quarter of a million into the company account. It appeared that without the constant back and forth within the band, and the loss of Wilhelm, her email traffic was now at a minimum. In the morning, she was getting breakfast when he mother came down.
“Those albums, love. They work in a different way to the hard rock ones. As we watched, all I wanted was to get your father into bed. The words made me very horny.”
“Could it have been the neon sign behind us that read ‘Sex’?”
“Whatever. What we do know is that if there’s a population jump around Christmas, we’ll know who to blame. I expect that you’ll be going to school today.”
“Yes, Mum. Orchestra this afternoon, so I’ll be late. I don’t know what we’ll be doing on Friday afternoon, seeing that we got the project to the point of performance.”
Sebastian picked her up and they went towards Coventry.
“Those songs and those album covers, Willow. They’re a bit different.”
“Do you think that it’s a problem?”
“Not to me, but you’re not likely to sell any in America, with the way they are now,”
“If I went to America, they’d probably kidnap me and send me to Gitmo. I was reading an article in the doctor’s waiting room, and it was talking about all the words and phrases you can’t use any more. There’s an old song, from the sixties, called ‘Too Young’, and it’s been banned. The reason is that the opening line is, ‘They tried to tell us we’re too young’. And the word ‘they’ can be the preferred address of a non-binary person, and they no longer exist.”
“That’s a bit silly.”
“Yeah! I don’t need that kind of silly. If I get good sales here and in Europe, I’ll be happy. Look, here’s copies of the two DVDs. Humour me with a little experiment and watch them with your wife tonight. I’ll have them back with your report tomorrow.”
That day, she got the lesson notes that she had missed, and the lunch was interesting. Garry sat with her and told her that the whole experience of the operetta had been fantastic and had allowed him to have fun while singing. That afternoon, Mister Bamborough set the orchestra a task. He wanted them to take the score of the operetta and rework it as a thirty-minute piece for future playing. With the skills in the room, they had it written out and played before they finished. It encompassed the whole orchestra, with those who hadn’t been part of the twenty adding their own music.
For Willow and Vivienne, it was almost a vindication of their own skills in writing the original album. As they were leaving, Vivienne told Willow that she had sent her album and DVD to Jill. They both wondered what the label would do with them.
On Friday morning, Sebastian gave Willow the two DVDs.
“If there’s a population boom after Christmas, we’ll know who to blame.”
“That’s what my mother said. Was it good for you, too?”
“Don’t ask.”
That afternoon, Mister Jamieson told them that the modules that had been dropped to allow them time for their project, would now be able to be worked on. They would be working on discussing the song ‘Africa’ for a couple of weeks, and then a film score. They would have the stage for the last Monday of the month, to run through the operetta, with the performances on the Thursday, Friday, and Saturday, the beginning of June.
Willow spent the weekend working on the campaign song for Ashley, except for time at the club on both evenings. She learned that the mid-week lunch socials were becoming popular, and that her father had funded these from his own money.
On Monday, at lunchtime, she was told about the fantastic two days that the junior orchestra had enjoyed in the studio. For many, it had been their first time there, and Petunia gave her a letter of thanks from her father, who had attended both days to see his children in another light. At the bottom of the typed letter was a hand-written note. ‘Big things happening, speak to you in a few weeks.’
Over the next couple of weeks, things were fairly normal. Vivienne invited Willow to her house to run through some additions to the long set, and they were confident that they would hold their own when they toured. On the week before the operetta performance, both girls had texts from Jill. ‘Meeting Saturday at eleven in office, imperative you attend.’ They both texted back that they would be there. Vivienne said that she would have her limo service, seeing that Willow was supplying the accommodation.
Friday evening, they were on their way to London, with overnight bags in the back. They were dropped off at the restaurant and told the driver to be there to take them home at four on Sunday afternoon. They went up to the apartment and settled in for the night, sitting in the downstairs sitting room for a while and talking. For Willow, Vivienne was replacing Gina as a sounding board for ideas, as well as now part of a writing duo.
In the morning, they had breakfast in the restaurant and then freshened up before getting a taxi to the label’s offices. When they arrived, they waited in the reception until Jill came out to greet them.
“Thank you for coming. We have a lot to discuss, so come up to the boardroom as there are others here to talk to you.”
When they walked into the boardroom, they were ushered to seats, flanked by the CEO and CFO. Opposite were Jill and Clive, and they also said hello to Derek and Norman, from the ENO. There were two others present, who were introduced as Helmut and his wife, Delta, from the Rainbow Alliance. The CEO led the discussion.
“We are here to discuss a future tour, and the implications of a film that was shot at the nightclub, here, in London. When that has been decided, we will talk about a certain operetta which we have seen. Now, the first thing is that you girls were booked, by the Rainbow Alliance, to play that week in London, followed by six weeks touring six nightclubs in European cities. We accepted the booking and notified your manager of the times that you would be away. He replied that he had noted the booking and queried the somewhat low figure offered for your performances.”
“That was what was offered and accepted.”
“That’s not the issue, Helmut. What we didn’t pick up on was that these venues are all gay clubs, which we thought may be a problem to your reputations. When you were so successful in London, it changed the dynamic. Helmut has now informed us that the two of you are established gay icons. This could be a problem for you in the future. What do you think, Willow?”
“It was an audience, sir, like any other, who danced and sung to our songs. In fact, I think that they knew our songs better than we do. We felt safe, we were well fed, and we had fun. We also tried out several of the songs on the albums we sent in.”
“You don’t feel ashamed at being called a gay icon?”
“Not at all. The pink pound is as good as any other, and I hope that we’ll get a good reception over summer. We have both worked on extra material for it. You’re not cancelling, are you?”
“It has been considered.”
“We enjoy entertaining people. When people have turned up, wanting to be entertained, then it’s even better. I expect that flights and accommodation are supplied while we’re away, so it will be like the summer holidays that we’ve had for two years. Probably a lot less stressful. Give it another year, and let the press see us with guys, and it will all blow over.”
“Vivienne, what do you think?”
“I’m with Willow. It’s just a gig like any other. I doubt that we’ll see anything more outlandish as the Tart’s Tuesday.”
“All right. It goes ahead. Now, that video that was shot on that Tuesday. I’ve seen it and I have to praise the two of you for continuing your set with all that flesh around you.”
“Nothing we haven’t seen when we shower.”
“Yes, that may be, but we were wondering about what it’s going to look like if it’s on general release.”
“We were told that it’s for use in the other clubs.”
“That’s what we thought, but copies have turned up on the internet as bootlegs.”
“Then why not issue it as an adult level music video. It isn’t us flashing the skin, so we can’t be held accountable.”
Clive spoke up.
“Quite right, Willow. We could package it with your new albums as a special buy. Two studio albums and six hours of live performance. We could charge a premium and see how it flies. If we undercut the bootleg price for an official issue, it may stop that trade.”
“It is a first-class video; it should have been for what it cost us.”
“I’m not criticising the quality, Helmut, just trying to find a way to protect these girls and make money.”
“I’m prepared to supply security for the girls while they’re with us. We stand to make a lot of money with their performances. Their week, here in London, broke all the records for the club. If it’s needed to swing the deal, we’ll pay them an extra ten thousand a week, each. We have already needed to change venues at one city to cater for those wanting to be there. Every person who comes along has to become a member of the club first, before they pay the extra for a special event.”
“All right, if we’re in agreement, the tour goes on. Now, another thing about the video, Helmut. Who thought of the title?”
“That was my wife, Delta. It is what the members call these two songbirds. I’ve had a look at the writing credits on the two albums, and it’s quite likely what the scribes will call their collaboration.”
Delta handed Willow a copy of the video. Willow couldn’t help but laugh as she passed it to Vivienne.
“VivWillow in Heaven! That’s almost as left field as some of my thoughts.”
“You find it amusing?”
“It’s classic, Delta. It captures our working together with writing and performing. When Gina and I started playing, we used our surnames. This is just a variation. What do you think, Viv?”
“It’s certainly a step up from Armstrong/Rose. It’s catchy. We could even put out merchandise with it. Have you gone down that road, Helmut? By the blush, I bet that you’re way ahead of us.”
He laughed.
“You’re right. Do you object?”
Willow grinned.
“As long as we get some of everything for our friends, why should we object. It looks as if we’ll be VivWillow on tour, this summer. Jill, you may have to put on extra staff to handle the VivWillow fan mail. You can tell Peter, I’m not game enough.”
There was a general shaking of hands, a few hugs, and Helmut and Delta left. Norman laughed.
“Now, you two, there’s another video that we have to talk about, almost as drastic as the other one, if my imagination is to be believed. How many of these are there?”
“About four dozen. All the cast , the teachers, and the tech group who did the rear projection.”
“No thoughts of issuing them, say, through the school website?”
“Nothing said. If anything, it’s likely to be filmed and recorded when we perform it. We’re having a full-dress rehearsal on Monday, with the theatre left set up for Thursday, Friday, and Saturday evening, which are filling well, I believe.”
“We’ll be there in force to see it. The thing is, you have come up with a commercial product, worthy of a bigger audience. We would like to make an offer for the rights to perform it next year. We have spoken to this office about our video being the official one. We may want some of the cast to remain and are prepared to pay those who developed that rear projection for the rights to use it in our theatre. In some performances it’ll be far cheaper than building sets.”
Clive leaned forward.
“The other thing is that there are at least three songs on this video that are worthy of general release, perhaps on a CD of the soundtrack. A couple that you sang, Vivienne, are on par with that one from Frozen. They deserve a proper studio recording with a fuller orchestra.”
Willow looked at him.
“The operetta was a school project. The school has a stake in whatever is decided. Most of the lyrics were based on Vivienne’s original work for our Summer Rose album, with a lot of changes. The music was mainly written by members of the orchestra, especially those in our Music Studies class, who were given the project to do.”
“I spoke to your Mister Bamborough the other day. He told me that it was you that pulled it all together, even to the point of directing the stage activity while conducting. He said that the performance on the disc was the first one where nobody was wearing buds, so that they could hear your direction. That was quite an impressive bit of work.”
“So, what are you all proposing?”
“The ENO want it for their own, mainly to tour around schools and institutions where it can be shown to a lot of children. They also want to see how long it runs on their London stage. They are willing to pay the school for the intellectual property, and the rights to the projection technology. There will also be compensation for those involved in the development, which, I’m told, is about three dozen. You two will get residuals for the use of the music and lyrics, as well as Summer Rose being listed as the originators of the show. If there’s a DVD and CD, all of the cast and development team will share two pounds for every sale, with the school getting a small amount.”
“So, you’ll need the contact details for all those involved.”
“Howard Bamborough has already provided that. What is curious is that half the cast were members of Summer Rose, and one is now the bass player in one of the best bands around. You guys never fail to surprise. Are you happy with what I’ve said?”
Willow and Vivienne looked at each other and grinned.
“I think we’re with you on this, gentlemen. All you need to finish the job is to get the paperwork in order.”
They were given lunch and driven back to the apartment by Jill.
“Are you both really all right with this morning?”
“A lot of it was already running, Jill, we just had to make sure we’re still included in discussions. The clubs are what they are, and they’re a safe haven for a lot of people in a harsh world. If they like us, who are we to complain. We could see that it was only the stiff-necked morals of the upper management that was the barrier, using our reputation as an excuse for any decision that may reflect badly on them.”
“You’re right, Willow. None of the rest of us saw a problem. The amount of flesh exhibited in that video is no more than you get in the average rap video, these days. It may even add to the sales with young boys. I’ve seen the itinerary for the tour, and you won’t be upset by any of the hotels. The flights are all business class but they’re all short hops, compared to last year. I’m going to talk to Clive about your cut of a large offering. Three DVD packages are not usual, especially as one is a double DVD with six hours of entertainment. We’ll push the media with this, to get a good coverage, and there will be a TV interview before you leave for Europe.”
“Thank you, Jill. We’re grateful for your work over the last couple of years.”
“I’ve enjoyed it all and have been to places that I had never thought I’d see when I took on the job. Up until Summer Rose, all the bands I’ve looked after have either been snooty, arrogant, little shits, or high as a kite little shits. You were a breath of fresh air and I find it hard to imagine what you’ll come up with next, Willow.”
“How about a political campaign in the next election?”
“Who are you backing?”
“My father is the candidate for the Kenilworth electorate, to replace the retiring member.”
“That will certainly keep you in the public gaze, especially if you make any political statements. What about you, Vivienne?”
“This is the first I’ve heard of it, but Ashley Rose is a good friend and a great guy. I’ve known him since the early days of the dance band in the Stoneleigh Club, and he’s always been straight with us. He supported the band when others thought we were just kids having fun. My family votes to the right, so we’ll help if we can.”
They were back in the apartment and discussing the improbable future of VivWillow, when Willow’s phone rang.
“Willow speaking.”
“Willow, it’s Sam Vines, how are you?”
“I’m good, Sam. What can I do for you?”
“Where are you? I rang your home and was told that you’re in London.”
“I am, Sam. Vivienne and I have just had a meeting with our label.”
“Is it possible for me, and one other, to meet with you and then have dinner? We’ve just left a lawyer’s office in London. Do you have somewhere quiet that we can talk with both of you?
“We’re at my apartment near Broadcasting House. If you want, we can talk here, and there’s a restaurant on the ground floor where I should be able to book a table for four. Is that all right?”
He said that it was, and she gave him the address, telling him to call when he arrived. Vivienne looked at her.
“That sounded intense.”
“Yes, and he sounded excited. That was Sam Vines, Petunia and Ivy’s father. He is one of our tenants at Small Heath. I wonder what he wants to talk about, and who he’s bringing with him. Either way, we probably only have a little while to make ourselves presentable.”
Vivienne dashed upstairs and Willow changed into a better dress and checked her hair and make-up. They were both back in the sitting room and looking good when the phone rang again. Willow answered and said that she’d be right down.
She went down to the street door to find Sam and Hugh waiting. Hugh smiled.
“This is perfect. Have you booked a table yet?”
“Not yet Hugh.”
“Let’s go and book for eight, if we can. Ted and Kevin can join us, with their wives, after we’ve spoken.”
They went into the restaurant and managed to get a table for eight in the cellar, as long as they started at six, as the venue was fully booked from eight. Willow led them upstairs, with a stop at the landing while Hugh knocked on Ted’s door to invite the two couples for dinner at six.
In the apartment, they sat in the sitting room and Willow offered drinks, with some of the wine still left and the two girls drinking lemonade. Sam took a sip of his wine and then spoke.
“I suppose that you’re interested why we want to talk to you. We’re here because of me sending my girls to your school. With all the things that went on, Hugh and I were able to sit in your studio and have a very private discussion It’s taken a while, but we signed all the paperwork this morning. Hugh has bought my business, with me staying on as CEO on a salary. The thing that affects you, is that he had a chance to properly look at the Small Heath property, especially the huge amount of office space that Mervyn and I don’t use. Over to you, Hugh.”
“That property was a place that I was looking at but didn’t need at the time. Sam’s business was one I’ve been after for a while, as it fits into the others in my stable. I want to utilise the office space as my headquarters, and with Vines Engineering there it makes sense. We’ve spoken to Mervyn, and his head office, and have come to an agreement to use his distribution centre as our means of our product distribution, so boosting his business.”
“That sounds extremely fortuitus, Hugh.”
“It was, Willow. It does leave me with an offer to make to you girls, for you to take to your syndicate. There’s ten of you, yes?”
“Only six now, Hugh. The others have had their shares in Small Heath paid out. They’re only still in the shopping centre we own in Manchester.”
“OK. I want you to talk to the other four. I’m making an offer to take the Small Heath property, allowing you to retain any advance lease payments that have been made.”
“Do you have a number in mind, Hugh?”
“I have, Willow, and that number is seven point two.”
“That is somewhat generous, Hugh.”
“No, it isn’t, Willow. It allows for the increase in value since you bought it, the convenience, to me, of consolidating my operations, and as a side effect of what you saved my companies last year. I gave you lunch and a framed thank-you at the time, and you were gracious and appreciative. At no time have you ever questioned me on what we gained from that report you submitted, but I can tell you that the extra I’ve added to the property is a drop in the ocean compared to the gains we made.”
“Thank you, Hugh. We’ll take it to the others tomorrow. What do you think, Viv?”
“Well, a quick one point two each would be good, and I think that Nancy and the two boys will jump at it. What will Gina think?”
“I’ll ring her in the morning and ask. She was happy to stay with us when we reorganised, but a quick sale could sway her, especially if the rest of us want to sell. Hugh, we’ll discuss it with the others and let you know as soon as we can.”
“That will be good. Sam and I will be at the school on Thursday evening, to see the first dress rehearsal of your new offering. I’m intrigued to see what it’s like.”
“You’ll be surprised. It’s good enough for the English National Opera to want it, so expect an interesting evening. Now, It’s close to six, we should rouse the others and go down for dinner.”
Marianne Gregory © 2025